«t The Student's France. A HISTOET OF FRAICE FEOM THE EAELIEST TIMES TO THE ESTABLISHMENT OF THE SECOND EMPIRE IN 1852. ILLUSTRATED BY ENGKAVINGS ON -WOOD. NEW YORK: HARPEK & BROTHERS, PUBLISHERS, PKANKLIN SQUARE. 18 69. JC38 THE STUDENT'S HISTORIES, UNIFORM WITH THIS WORK. THE STUDENTS FKANCE : A History of France, from the Eakliebt Times to the Establishment of the Second Empibe in 1852. Illus- trated by Engravings on Wood. 12mo, 742 pages, Cloth, $2 00. THE STUDENT'S HUME : A History of England froji the Ear- liest Times to the REVOLrTioN in 168S. By David Hume. Abridoed. Incor- porating the Corrections and Researches of Recent Historians, and continued down to the Year 1S51. Illustrated by Engravings on Wood. 12mo, Su5 pages, Cloth, $2 00. THE STUDENT'S HISTORY OF GREECE : A History of Greece FROM THE Earliest Times to the Roman Conquest. With Supplementary Chap- ters'on the History of Literature and Art. By William Smith, LL.D., Editor of the "Classical Dictionary," "Dictionary of Greek and Roman Antiquities," &c. Revised, with an Appendix by Prof. Geo. W. Gkeene, A.M. Illustrated by 100 Engravings on Wood. 12mo, T38 pages. Cloth, $2 00. BS^ A SMALLER HISTORY OF GREECE : The above Work Abridged for Younger Students and Common Schools. Engravings. ICmo, 2T2 pages, Cloth, $1 00. THE STUDENT'S HISTORY OF ROME : A History of Rojie from THE Earliest Times to the Establishment of the Empire. With Chapters on the History of Literature and Art. By Henry G. Liddell, D.D., Dean of Christ Church, Oxford. Illustrated by numerous Woodcuts. 12mo, 778 pages. Cloth, $2 00. B^f- Dr. SMITH'S SMALLER HISTORY OF ROME from the Earliest Times to the Establishment of the Empire. Continued to the Fall of the Western Empire in the Year 476. By Eugene Lawrence, A.M. Engravings. IGmo, 400 pages. Cloth, $1 00. THE STUDENT'S GIBBON : The History of the Decline and Fall OF THE Roman Empire. By Edward Gidhon. Abridged. Incorporating the Researches of recent Commentators. By William Smith, LL,D., Editor of the " Classical Dictionary," "Dictionary of Greek and Roman Antiquities," &c. Il- lustrated by 100 Engravings on Wood. 12mo, 70C pages. Cloth, $2 00. i? PREFACE The following "Work has been written by an English scholar long resident in France, and intimately acquaint- ed with its literature and history. It is intended, like the preceding works in the same series, to supply a long ac- knowledged want in our literature, namely, a History of France, incorporating the researches of recent historians, and suitable for the higher forms in Schools and for Stu- dents at the Universities, It is unnecessary to point out the importance of a knowledge of French history to every one who aspires to a liberal education ; but it may not be amiss to remind the reader that the true meaning and effect of the drama of the Revolution, of which we have not yet seen the catastrophe, can be understood only by a far deep- er study of the previous condition and history of France than most of our countrymen are disposed to undertake. "With respect to the execution of the work, it has been the aim of the Author to present a perspicuous view of the events of French history, from the very commencement of the nation down to the present time, avoiding as far as pos- sible the dryness of an epitome, and presenting something more than a chronicle of mere facts and dates. An attempt has been made to draw the portraiture of every important historical character, and to include in a rapid and condensed narrative all the chief transactions, whether political, mili- tary, or ecclesiastical, which have marked the varying for- tunes of the nation. Many of the most interesting questions connected with the history, government, and institutions of vi PREFACE. the country are discussed at considerable length in the "Notes and Illustrations," which, it is believed, will be found of great service to the student. Copious*Teferences to the best authorities are likewise given, with the view of assisting him in prosecuting farther inquiries. The literature of France is particularly rich in works upon French history; but it would be impossible, in the limits of a Preface, to enumerate all the authorities that have been consulted in drawing up the present narrative. The writer on whom the chief reliance has been placed is Henri Martin, the most valuable of all the French histori- ans, whether we regard his scrupulous fidelity and accuracy, or the breadth and liberality of his views. Constant use has also been made of the works of Velly and Yillaret, Sis- mondi, Anquetil, and Lavallee. In the earlier times the chief authorities followed have been Guizot, the two Thier- rys, and Lehuerou, as well as t^e recent work of Bordier and Charton, which has been found extremely useful. In conclusion it may be observed, that it has been the earnest endeavor of the Author to avoid the capital error of writing the History of France from an English point of view, a course which can not fail to convey an unjust con- ception of the institutions, government, habits, and charac- ter of the people. What is needed is an impartial, genial, and even sympathetic account of French history. This has been the principle upon which the Work has been under- taken, but with what success it has been carried out is for competent critics to decide. January, 1862. Uruidic Monument, named I'ierre Branlante, in Brittany. CONTENTS. B.C. 50. B.C. A.D. 30-407. B.OOK I. ANCIENT GAUL. Chap. Page I. From the Earliest Ages to the Roman Conquest.. 1 Notes and Illustrations : A. Authorities 14 B. The Celtic Tribes of Gaul ....' 14 II, Gaul under the Eomans to the great Barbarian Invasion 16 A.D. 407-511. 511-752. BOOK 11. GERMAN GAUL. (a.d. 407-987.) III. From the great Barbarian Invasion to the Death of Clevis 25 Notes and Illustrations: A. On the Origin of the Franks 35 B. The Consulship of Clovis 3G IV. The Merovingians. From the Death of Clovis to the Accession of Pepin le Bref •. 39 Notes and Illustrations : A. On the Mayors of the Palace 5G B. Merovingian History 57 y{il CONTENTS. A.D. Chap. Page 752-843. V. The Carlovingians. From the Accession of Pe- pin le Bref to the Treaty of Verdun 59 Notes and Illustrations : •^ Charlemagne Emperor 84 843-987. VI. The later Carlovingians. From the Treaty of Verdun to the Accession of Hugh Capet 85 Notes and Illustrations: A. Authorities 100 B. On the Decline and Fall of the Carlovin- gian Empire 100 BOOK III. FRANCE UNDER THE FEUDAL SYSTEM.— FROM THE ACCES- SION OF HUGH CAPET TO THE DEATH OF CHARLES IV. (a.d. 987-1328.) 987-1137. VII. From the Accession of Hugh Capet to the Death of Louis VI 103 Notes and Illustrations : The Feudal System 129 1137-1226. VIII. From the Accession of Louis VII. to the Death of Louis VIIL 136 Notes and Illustrations : On the Formation of the French Language... 161 1226-1828. IX. From "the Accession of (Saint) Louis IX. to that of the Line ofValois 163 Notes and Illustrations : Early French Historians 193 BOOK IV. FALL OF FEUDALISM.— FROM THE ACCESSION OF PHILIP VL TO THE DEATH OF CHARLES VIH. (a.d. 1328-1498.) 1328-1380. X. First Period of the Wars with England.— Philip VL, John, and Charles V 196 1380-1461. XL Second Period of the Wars with England. — Charles VL and Charles VH 223 1461-1498. XIL Louis XL and Charles VIII .' 257 Notes and Illustrations: The States-General 279 CONTENTS. BOOK V. m THE EENAISSANCE AND WAES OF EEL IGION.— FROM THE ACCESSION OF LOUIS XII. TO THE DEATH OF HENEY IIL (a.d. 1498-1589.) A.D. Chap. ^ Page 1498-1515. XIII. Louis XII 282 1515-1547. XIV. Francis 1 294 1547-1559. XV. Henry II 319 1559-1574. XVL Francis IL— Charles IX 329 1574-1589. XVIL Henry IIL 34G Notes and Illustrations: Authorities 362 BOOK VI. THE ABSOLUTE MONAECHY.— FEOM THE ACCESSION OF HENEY IV. TO THE EEVOLUTION. (a.d. 1589-1789.) 1589-1610. XVIII. The House of Bourbon.— Henry IV 364 Notes and Illustrations: Authorities for the Eeign of Henry IV 384 1610-1643. XIX. Louis XIII 385 Notes and Illustrations : The Parliaments 406 1 643-1661. XX. Eeign of Louis XIV.— I. From his Accession to the Death of Cardinal Mazarin 410 1661-1697. XXI. Eeign of Louis XIV. continued. — II. From the Death of Cardinal Mazarin to the Peace of Eyswick 426 1697-1715. XXIL Eeign of Louis XIV. concluded.— III. From the Peace of Eyswick to the Death of Louis 452 Notes and Illustrations: Authorities foi- the Eeign of Louis XIV 472 1715-1748. XXIIL Eeign of Louis XV.— L From the Eegency of the Duke of Orleans to the Peace of Aix-la- 4 Chapelle 473 1748-1774. XXIV. Eeign of Louis XV. concluded. —II. From the Peace of Aix-la-Chapelle to the Death of Louis 495 Notes and Illustrations : Authoj-ities for the Eeign of Louis XV 511 X CONTENTS. A.D. CuAP. Page 1774-1789. XXV. Eeign of Louis XVI. —I. From his Accession to the Meeting of the States-General.... 512 Notes and Illustrations : On the Public Revenue, Taxation, and Ti- nancial Administration 524 BOOK VII. REVOLUTIONARY FRANCE.— FROM THE MEETING OF THE STATES-GENERAL TO THE ACCESSION OF NAPOLEON III. (A.D. 1789-1852.) 1789-1793. XXVI. From the Meeting of the States-General to the Death of Louis XVI 528 1793-1799. XXVIL The Republic 563 1799-1804. XXVIIL The Consulate 594 1804-1810. XXIX. The Empire. —I. From its Commencement to the Marriage of Napoleon with Maria Louisa of Austria 611 1810-1814. XXX. The Empire continued.— il. From the Marriage of Napoleon with Maria Louisa to his Abdi- cation 629 1814-1830. XXXI. The Restoration.— Reigns of Louis XVIII. and Charles X 650 1830-1848. XXXn. Reign of Louis Philippe 680 1848-1852. XXXIII. The second Republic and second Empire 698 Notes and Illustrations : Authorities for the Period of the Revolution down to the Present Time 706 Index 707 GENEALOGICAL TABLES AND ILLUSTKATIONS. GENEALOGICAL TABLES. Page Of the Merovingian Dynasty 38 Of the Carlovingians 58 Of the Capetian Dynasty 102 Of the House of Valois of France 195 Of the second Ducal House of Burgundy 195 Of the House of Valois-Orleans 281 Of the Ducal Houses of Lorraine and Guise 318 Of the House of Bourbon 363 Of Claimants to the Spanish Succession 454 Of the Bonaparte Family 610 Of the Bourbon-Orleans Family 679 LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. Dr uidic Monument, named Pierre Branlante, in Brittany vii Ruins of Temple of Janus, Autun xii Druidic Monument, called Mai- son des Fees, near Saumur.... 1 Druidic Dolmen, named Pierre Levee, near Poitiers 13 Temple of Pluto, Autun 16 Euins of the Palace of Julian (Palais des Thermes) at Paris 25 Chair or Throne of Dagobert .... 39 Sceptre of Dagobert 57 Presentation of a Bible to Charles the Bald 59 Map of the Empire of Charle- magne 69 Chapel of St. John, Poitiers ; an early Christian Church 85 Castle of Falaise, in Normandy ; birthplace of William' the Con- queror 103 Chateau Gaillard, on the Seine.. 136 Castle of Angers 163 Arrest of Charles the Bad, of Na- varre 196 Chateau de Chinon; place of meeting between Charles VII. and the Maid of Orleans 223 Isabella of Bavaria, wife of Charles VI 228 Philip the Good, Duke of Bur- Page gundy, in the Robes of the Golden Fleece Order 242 Jeanne Dare, the Maid of Or- leans 250 Louis XI ■ 257 Le Petit Chatelet at Paris 282 Francis 1 294 Battle of Marignano 296 Fort de la Tournelle, Paris 319 The three Brothers Coligny 328 Execution at the Castle of Am- boise, 1560 329 Medal of Pope Gregory XIII. commemorating the Massacre of St. Bartholomew 343 Catharine de' Medici 345 Henry III 346 Chateau of Pau before 1830 ; birthplace of Henry IV. 364 Castle of Arques 3GG Medal of the Duke of Sully 376 Medal of Henry VI. and of Mary de' Medici 379 Cardinal Richelieu 385 Meeting of the States-General in the Salle Bourbon at Paris, Oct., 1614 387 Sitting of Parliament, declaring the Regency of Anne of Aus- tria, May 18, 1643 409 Barricades at the Porte St. An- x,u LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. Page toine, Aug. 27, 1648, the com- mencement of the Civil War of the Fronde 410 Isle of Pheasants, in the Eiver Bidassoa, the boundary of France and Spain 426 Madame de Maintenon 440 St. Germains, residence of James IL of England 447 Louis XIV., the Great 452 The Bastile 473 Abbey of Cluny in Burgundy before the Revolution 495 Medal struck to commemorate the Alliance of France and the United States against England 512 Hotel de Ville and Place de Greve at Paris, Scene of Execution 527 Medal commemorative of the Night of Aug. 4, 1789 628 The Lantern at the Corner of the Place de Greve 533 -Reverse of Medal coramemora- Eage tive of the Night of Aug. 4, 1789 534 Patriotic Gifts. Sept. 7, 1789.. 585 The Temple 552 Massacres at the Abbaye, Sept. 2, 1792 555 Execution of Louis XVI 561 Installation of the Directorv, Nov. 4, 1795 .".. 563 House in which Charlotte Cor- day was born 566 Execution of the Duke of En- ghien 594 Medal of the three Consuls 595 Medal of Napoleon, king of Italy 608 Medal of Napoleon, struck in an- ticipation of his Conquest of England 611 Tomb of Napoleon at St. Helena 629 Medal of Louis XVIII 650 Reverse of Medal of Louis XVIII. 65 1 Interior of the Chamber of Dep- uties 680 Euins of Temple of Janus, Autun. HISTORY OF FRANCE. Cniidic Monument, called Maison dcs Fees, near Saumiir. BOOK I. ANCIENT GAUL. CHAPTER I. FROM THE EAllLIEST AGES TO THE KOMAN CONQUEST, B.C. liG. § 1. Gaul colonized by the Celts; their Settlements in the British Isles. § 2. The Iberi, Aquitani, or Basqiies. § 3. The Kymri; theBelgte. § 4. The Phoenicians ; the Greeks ; Greek Towns on tlie Mediterranean Coast. § 5. Emigrations of the Gauls into Italy and Spain ; they attack and capture Rome ; Conquest of Gallia Cisalpini by the Romans ; Roman Interference in Gaul ; the Province of Gallia Narbonensis. § G. Gaul invaded by the Teutonic Tribes. § 7. Cffisar's Campaigns in Gaul; Conquest of the Bel- gaj, the Armoricans, the Aquitanians ; general Revolt under Vercingeto- rix. § 8. Siege of Alesia ; Reduction of the whole of Gaul. § 9. Social State of Gaul; the Druids. § 10. Human Sacrifices; Druidical Monu- ments. § 1. Tradition, rather than history, informs us that the West was -originally peopled from the East. The country now called France was colonized, at a period lost in the obscurity of ages, by the Gauls, or Galls, a race of fierce warriors of Celtic descent, de- rived apparently from Central Asia. The various migrations of A 2 GAUL COLONIZED BY THE CELTS. Chap. I. the Celts Lave furnished food for much ingenious, but, for the most part, fruitless speculation. It is noAv, however, received as tolerably certain, that of this vast family there were two distinct branches, the Gaels or Gauls, and the Cimri or Kymri ; and that both Gauls and Kymri poured themselves forth at different epochs and by different routes upon Europe.* The Gauls were the first to emigrate. Journeying on steadily, in countless masses, toward the setting sun, they reached the extreme western limits of the European continent ; and the wide territory of which they took possession, extending from the Atlantic to the Rhine, the Alps, the Mediterranean, and the Pyrenees, acquired from them the name of Galltachd, or Gaul, AVith a thirst of discovery still unsated, the Gauls passed over from Armorica, or Brittany; to the opposite shores, and planted numerous and flourishing colonies in England, Scotland, and Ire- land. The identity of race between the Celts of Gaul and the earliest inhabitants of Britain rests on many sufficient considera- tions, but especially on the conclusive testimony of language. Five dialects of their common tongue are still in existence, of which three belong to the Gaelic branch — the Gaelic or Scotch, the Erse or Irish, and the Manx of the Isle of Man ; and two to the Kymric — the Breton, spoken in the remoter districts of Lower Brittany, and the Welsh. § 2. Although the Celts of Gaul were believed by early writers to be the aboriginal possessors of the soil,! it would appear that the country south of the Garonne was inhabited, before their ar- rival, by the Iberi, a group of tribes who had come probably by way of Africa and Spain. The Iberi are known to us under va- rious names. They are doubtless identical with the Aquitani of Strabo and Cassar; a race differing very widely, Ave are told, from the Celts in person, language, and manners. AVe meet with them again under the denomination of Euskes or Auskes, which seems to have been that of their predominant tribe; and the Basques of the present day may reasonably be regarded as their true descendants — that singular and isolated people who inhabit the soutliAvestern corner of PVance and a considerable tract in the no^th of Spain, speaking a language that bears little or no affinity to any other European tongue, and retaining in their character, manners, and temperament many curious traces of their ancient greatness. I * See Ame'dee Thierry, Hist, des Gaulois ; Henri Martin, Hist, de France, vol. i., 3, 12. t Ammianns Marcellinus, xv., 9. The Druids, it seems, taught that they were avToxOovtg. X The Basques (Vascones in Latin), on settling north of the Pyrenees, Chap. I. KYMRI—BELG^— PHOENICIANS. 3 § 3. The Kymri, whom we have mentioned as the second great section of the Celtic family, invaded Western Europe in their turn, toward the middle of the seventh century before the Chris- tian era.* Driven forth from their original settlements by an overwhelming irruption of the Scythians, the Kymri, led, accord- ing to tradition, by their renowned chieftain, Hu Cadarn, or Hugh the Powerful, crossed the Lower Rhine, and entered Gaul on its northeastern border. After a fierce and prolonged contest with their brethren of the earlier migration, the invaders acquired per- manent possession of a very extensive territory north of the Loire, including the peninsula of Armorica. Some of their tribes likewise made a successful expedition into Britain, and founded numerous settlements in the southern parts of the island, driving back the Gallic population into the hilly districts of the north and the west. The Belgce, who are characterized by Caesar as at once the most valiant and the least civilized of the tribes settled in Gaul, were in all probability an offshoot of the Kymri, who, instead of join- ing their countrymen in their invasion of Gaul, remained on the farther side of the Ehine, and there, through familiar association with the Germans, contracted a resemblance to them in manners and charactei'. Two centuries or more after the great Kymric immigration, the Belg^ passed the Rhine, and made themselves masters of northern Gaul, which received from them the name of Belgica. Being derived from the same stock, the Belga3 easily assimilated in the course of years with the earlier settlers, while they preserved at the same time many indications of their long sojourn among the Germans. Thus becoming inseparably blended with the Kymri, and introducing among them a certain admixture of Teutonic blood, the Belgse formed eventually a race superior in manly energy and warlike prowess to any other in Gaul.| § 4. The Phoenicians, those enterprising navigators of whom history speaks so scantily and indistinctly, established colonies along the southeastern shores at a very early period ; and pene- trating into the intei-ioi', instructed the barbarian Celts in the arts of industry and commerce. The mines of the Pyrenees and the Cevennes are supposed to have been first opened and worked by the Phoenicians ; and there is a tradition that a city named Alesia, built by them among the mountains of the Cote d'Or, became the meti'opolis (f. e., the mother or parent city) of all Gaul.J In pi'o- gave their name to the country, which was called ft-om them Vasconia, Gas- cogne, or Gascony. * It seems probable that the Cimmerii mentioned by Herodotus are the same as the Kymri. Herodot., i., 15 ; iv., 11. t See Notes and Illustrations (A). J Diodor. Sic, iv., 19. 4 WARS WITH THE ROMANS. Chap. I. cess of time, however, the Phoenicians were eclipsed and supplant- ed by the more refined and scientific Greeks; and their opulent settlements on the Mediterranean sea-board passed into the hands of their rivals. It was about the year 600 B.C. that some Greek Refugees from Phoccea, in Asia Minor, laid the foundation of the city of Marseilles. In like manner, Antipolis (Antibes), iSicsa (JS'ice), Agatha (Agde), and other towns on the southern coast, owed either their origin or their restoration to colonists from Greece. It does not appear, however, that the Greeks ever ob- tained or sought much influence in Gaul beyond the immediate neighborhood of their own cities. § 5. After the irruption of the Kymri, the teeming tribes of central Gaul, who were^ thus dispossessed of large territories, emi- grated repeatedly into the neighboring countries. Twice they crossed the Alps, and overran the plains of Lombardy, extending their conquests as far as Verona and Padua eastward, and south- ward to the confines of Etruria. On another occasion they swarmed across the Pyrenees into Spain, where, becoming inter- mixed with the indigenous population, they took the name of Celtiberi,* and signalized themselves by their stubborn resistance to the arms of Rome. At length, about 390 B.C., a Gaulish tribe called the Senones burst forth from the passes of the Apennines, and pushed on boldly till within a few miles of Rome itself. They encountered the ai'my of the great Republic on the Allia ; and the battle which ensued terminated in one of the most' calamitous defeats that ever befell the Roman arms. The city was captured, sacked, and burnt by the barbai'ian victors ; and it Avas only upon payment of a costly ransom that they were at length induced to retire from the smoking ruins. The Gauls proceeded to establish themselves permanently on the Italian side of the Alps, and occupied the greater part of modern Piedmont and Lombardy. The terror of their name be- came widespread throughout Italy; and it was not till near a century had elapsed that the Romans, now rapidly extending their dominion northward, found an opportunity of Avashing away the disgrace of the Allia. The great victory of the Consul Decius, B.C. 295, followed by those of L. iEmilius and Atilius, B.C. 284, and that of Claudius Marcellus, B.C. 223, led at no distant date to the conquest by the Romans of the entire territory possessed by their Transalpine rivals. The struggle, however, was stern and protracted ; it cost them no less than eleven campaigns and eleven pitched battles to reduce these formidable tribes to subjection. At * .... pvofugique a gente vetusta Gallorum Celtse miscentes nomen Iberis. Lucan, P/iarsaL, iv., 9. B.C. 154-118. ROMAN INTERFERENCE. 5 length, about 191 B.C., after a conflict in which the whole Gaulish population was either forcibly expelled or exterminated, the coun- try was constituted a province of the Roman empire, under the title of Gallia Cisalpina ; and a notification was made to the in- habitants of Gaul beyond the Alps, that these mountains were henceforth to form a perpetual barrier between the barbarians and Italy. About half a century after the expulsion of the Gauls from Italy, the Romans, pursuing their unscrupulous career of self- aggrandizement, found means to obtain for the first time a foot- ing in Gaul properly so called. The Greek colony of Massilia, or Marseilles, then one' of the most flourishing commercial marts of Europe, was constantly at war with the surrounding Gallic tribes ; the people of Marseilles striving to increase their territory and establish their power farther inland, the Gauls to confine them strictly to their trading towns on the sea-coast. The Massilians, worsted in several bloody engagements, and beginning to fear for their maritime supremacy, appealed for assistance to the Romans. A powerful army was dispatched without delay under the Consul Opimius (b.c. 154); and the barbarian tribes, speedily yielding to the superior discipline and skill of the legions, became tributary subjects to Marseilles. A second expedition, some years later, re- sulted in the total defeat of the Salyes on the Lower Rhone, whose capital was Arelate, or Aries. On this occasion the conquerors, instead of retiring into Italy, took possession, in the name of the Republic, of the entire district between the Rhone and the Du- rance, and founded there a city to which they gave the name of Aqua3 Sextifc, in honor of their Proconsul Sextius (e.g. 123). This earliest of the Roman settlements in Gaul is now Aix, in Provence. So rapid and decisive were the successes of the Romans within the next few years, that in B.C. 121 their possessions in Gaul were erected into a province, the limits of which coincided very neai'ly with those of modern Dauphine and Provence. As the tide of victory rolled farther westward, the famous colony of Nar- bo Marti us, or Narbonne, was founded in 118 B.C., and became the metropolis of the Roman territories in Southern Gaul. From this city the province acquired the name of Gallia Narbonensis. It embraced the greater part of Languedoc and Roussillon, in ad- dition to the former conquests, and reached in fact from the Ga- ronne and the Pyrenees to the Alps and the borders of Italy. The new province was also known as Gallia Braccata — from the breeches or trews worn by the natives — in contradistinction to the Cisalpine Gaul, Avhich was called Gallia Togata — its inhabi- tants having adopted the di-ess iind nsiiges of Rome. 6 INVASION BY TEUTONIC TRIBES. Chap. I, § 6. Time went on, and the course of events at length present- ed to the Romans a fair and tempting prospect of enlarging the bounds of their Transalpine territories, and pushing their aggres- sions into the very heart of Gaul. The circumstances were as follows. Among the most powerful of the Gallic tribes was that of the ^dui, inhabiting the district afterward known as Burgun- dy, between the Loire and the Saone. The -ZEdui were on terms of strict alliance with the Romans of Gallia Narbonensis ; and on the strength of this advantage they assumed a tone of pre-emi- nence over the neighboi'ing states, whom they irritated by various acts of oppression, especially by levying excessive tolls on the navigation of the Saone. The Sequani, Avho occupied Upper Alsace, determined to resist these exactions ; and in order to counterbalance the protection of the Romans, they in an evil hour applied for help to the Teutonic tribes beyond the Rhine. These Teutons now began to be distinguished by the name of Germans, from a Avord signifying warrior or chieftain. They readily re- sponded to the appeal of the Sequani ; and their leader Ariovistus forthwith conducted a vast host of his fierce countrymen to co- operate with them against the ^dui. A great battle was fought, and the ^■Edui were completely overthrown ; but Ariovistus now demanded of the Sequani, in peremptory terms, the immediate ces- sion of the third part of their territory to the Germans; the Se- quani refused, and coalesced with the JKdui to resist this alarm- ing encroachment. Ariovistus mai-ched against the combined tribes, completely surprised them, and gained a decisive victory, which left the whole of their territories at his mercy. This took place in the year GO B.C. The Germans quickly overran the east of Gaul, and established their dominion from the Jura and the Saone vip to the very frontier of the Roman province. They garrisoned all the fortified towns, and occupied the country with an imposing force of 200,000 war- riors. It now became evident that Gaul must eventually cease to be independent ; and the great issue remained to be decided, whether it should become the prey of the ferocious Teutons, or be merged in the all-absorbing sovereignty of Rome. § 7. Caius Julius Cassar was at this time (b.c 58) proconsul of the provinces of Gallia Narbonensis and Gallia Cisalpina. This celebrated man had carefully M'atched the recent march of events; he clearly foresaw the approaching crisis ; and was prepared, by a dexterous combination of generalship, valor, and political skill, to turn it to the fullest advantage. Having vanquished the Hel- vetii, a tribe who threatened an invasion of the Roman border, Caesar immediately afterward turned his arms against the insolent Germans, Avho continued their incursions throughout Eastern B.C. 58-50. CESAR'S CAMPAIGNS. 7 Gaul. He sent a message to Ariovistus, signifying that, if he de- sired to live on terms of amity with Rome, he must confine him- self strictly to the right bank of the Ehine. 1'he barbarian chief returned a haughty and menacing reply, insisting that the Ger- mans held their province in Gaul by the same right by which Rome had acquired hers, and challenging Ctesar to meet him in the field. After a diflScult march through the Vosges mountains, the Roman commander brought the Germans to a general action in the plains of Alsace, within two marches of the Rhine. For some time the fate of the day hung doubtfully in the balance ; but in the end 50,000 German corpses strewed the field, while the scanty remnant hurried in despaii'ing confusion across the Rhine, and gained the shelter of the forests. Ariovistus survived the battle, but died shortly afterward, either of his wounds, or from shame and rage at his misfortune. This decisive -overthrow of German barbarism left the whole of Gaul open to the ambitious projects of the conqueror. Early in the following spring (b.c. 57) Caesar commenced that memora- ble series of campaigns of which he has left us so graphic a nai-- rative, and which terminated in the complete subjugation of the country. It is impossible, within the limits of the present work, to give a detailed account of the great Gallic War, which, how- ever, will repay in many respects the careful attention of the stu- dent. A rapid summary of its principal events is all that can be here attempted. The campaign of 57 b.c. was fought in the north of Gaul, against a formidable confederacy headed, by the Belga^. The al- lied tribes, consisting of the Bellovaci (Beauvais), Suessiones (Sois- sons), Atrebates (Arras), Ambiani (Amiens), Nervii (Hainault), and many others, numbered upward of 300,000 men. One of the most powerful clans, however, the Remi, refused to join the league, and offered their friendship and services to the Roman command- er. This defection gave him an immense advantage, and render- ed the task of conquest comparatively easy. Ccesar now detached Divitiacus, at the head of the -Sildui, to make a diversion toward the country of the Bellovaci, and marched in person against the main force of the confederates, Avho were besieging Bibrax, a town belonging to the Remi. On the approach of the Roman army the siege was raised ; and a well-disputed engagement was fought on the banks of the River Aisne, in which the Gauls were re- pulsed with heavy loss. Ere long the news arrived that Diviti- acus and the ^dui had invaded the Bellovaci, and were ravaging their country; whereupon that tribe immediately announced their resolution to quit the allied army and return to the defense of their homes. This was followed by a general retreat of the Bel- 8 CESAR'S CAMPAIGNS. Chap. I. gfB, which was, in ftict, equivalent to a breaking up of the confed- eracy. The retrograde march of such a prodigious host became confused and undisciplined ; Ciesar launched his cavalry against them, and hewed down the fugitives in crowds during the space of a whole day. The Suessiones submitted unconditionally, and were treated with clemency; the Bellovaci, at the intercession of Divitiacus, and as a special favor to the ^dui, Avere admitted to like terms of pacification. The Nervii, an important ti'ibe farther to the north, on the River Sambre, made a desperate resistance to the invader. Supported by the Atrebates and Veromandui, they assaulted the Roman intrenchments, and the genius and ener- gy of Cffisar were taxed to the utmost in maintaining his ground. The Nervii were at length overlapped and surrounded, but, refus- ing to yield, were literally slaughtered where they stood ; the whole nation may be said to have been exterminated on that one day. The campaign was brought to a close by the submission of various tribes in Brittany and Normandy, who laid down their arms on hearing of the discomfiture of the Belgic league, and threw themselves on the mercy of the victors. Gaul being thus pacified, to use the half-ironical expression of the triumphant gen- eral, the Romans took up winter-quarters among the Carnutes, Andes, and Turones — the modern districts of Chartres, Anjou, and Touraine. CfEsar employed the next year (B.C. 56) chiefly in the reduction of Armorica, or Brittany, where the brunt of the Avar was borne by the Veneti, a tribe of considerable strength on the sea-coast. The entire Gaulish fleet was destroyed in the estuary of the Loire. Here the flower of the Armorican population perished, for they had ventured all upon the issue of this one naval combat. The survivors were so few and feeble that they had no choice but to surrender themselves absolutely to the will of the conqueror. Coesar acted on this occasion Avith stern rigor ; he put to death all the remaining senators of the Veneti, and sold the rest of the people into slavery. During the same campaign one of Caesar's lieutenants, P. Crassus, operated with signal success south of the Garonne, and received the submission of almost all the Aquita- nian tribes. While Cassar Avas absent on his first expedition to Britain, B.C. 55, a general insurrection Avas organized in Gaul by Ambiorix, chief of the Eburones, a Belgic tribe on the banks of the Mouse. The Roman general Sabinus Avas murdered in cold blood ; his troops Avere remorselessly put to the SAvoi'd. Another legion, commanded by Q. Cicero, was attacked in its camp by an ovei'- Avhelming force, and after a gallant defense Avas reduced to the last extremity. Caesar, on receiving the intelligence, marched B.C. 58-50. CESAR'S CAMPAIGNS. 9 hastily with what troops he could collect to the relief of his lieu- tenant. AVith no more than 7000 men he cut his way impetu- ously through the besieging army of more than 60,000, and pene- trated to the camp of Cicero, who must otherwise have surren- dered at discretion, not one in ten of his soldiers remaining un- wounded. In the spring of 53 B.C. the Romans concentrated their whole force against the Eburones, who had taken the most prominent part in the late insurrection. That unfortunate tribe was utterly destroyed ; and, by a refinement of cruelty, Caesar employed some Gaulish auxiliaries who had lately joined his army in the task of hunting down their hapless countrymen. The intrepid Ambiorix, seeing the cause of liberty lost for the present, thrcAV himself into the pathless recesses of the Ardennes, and, though tracked with much apparent zeal by the Gaulish scouts, made good his escape, no doubt with the connivance of his pursuers. A year later (b.c. 52) measures were concocted, with the ut- most secrecy and mystery, for a simultaneous rising throughout the country against the Roman power/ A young man of noble birth among the Arverni, possessed of pre-eminent influence, both personal and hereditary, with his countrymen, undertook the chief direction of this movement. His name, as given by Ciesar in a Latinized form, Avas Vercingetorix.* He summoned the Gauls to meet him at Gergovia, the capital of the Arverni (about four miles south of Clermont-Ferrand in Auvergne), and soon found himself surrounded by an immense army, of which he was chosen generalissimo by acclamation. Cgesar, who was in Italy at the time of this outbreak, returned to Gaul with a rapidity beyond example, and, surmounting all the obstacles of a rigorous winter, descended suddenly on the dismayed Arverni, and carried desola- tion and destruction through their country. The siege of Avari- cum (Bourges), which followed, was one of the most remarkable operations of the war. In spite of the utmost efforts of Vercin- getorix, this flourishing city was taken by assault in twenty-six days, and nearly its whole population of forty thousand fell by a fearful and indiscriminate carnage. Vercingetorix now retired upon Gergo\ia, which occupied a commanding site twelve hund- red feet above the surrounding plain. It was here that the Ro- man general, for the first time during his campaigns in Gaul, ex- perienced a decided reverse ; his troops were driven in confusion down the hill of Gergovia, and he was compelled to raise the siege, and retreat northward, to join his second in command, La- bienus, in the country of the Senones. Vercingetorix marched rapidly in pursuit, and came up with Ctesar a few mile? north of .* Signifying, in the Celtic langnnge. " tlie chief of a hundred cli'ofs '' A 2 10 C^ESAK'S CAMPAIGNS. Chav. I. Divio, or Dijon, where was fought one of the most obstinate and bloody battles of the war. Vercingetorix Avas beaten, and threw himself into the strongly-fortified town of Alesia, capital of the Mandubii,* which lay some distance in his rear. § 8. The siege of Alesia is the crowning event of the Gallic war. Such was the extraordinary strength of this position, that CjEsar deemed it unassailable by storm, and resolved to reduce it by blockade. To effect this, he executed works of circumvalla- tion at a prodigious cost of labor and on a gigantic -scale. Ver- cingetorix now dismissed his whole force of cavalry, with orders to urge an immediate rising of the entire Gaulish nation for the relief of their beleaguered army, the last hope of their country's independence. The appeal produced an enthusiastic response ; each tribe eagerly furnished its allotted contingent of warriors, and the entire levy numbered near two liundi-ed and fifty thou- sand horse and foot. But, in spite of all exertions, the heroic de- fenders of Alesia were reduced to the last extremity before the army of relief arrived. Three desperate attacks were made in conjunction by Vercingetorix and Vergasillaunus, the commander of the relieving army ; all entirely failed. Vergasillaunus was taken prisoner ; twenty-four standards were captured ; the mass of the Gaulish army was scattered in flight, never to be reunited ; and Vercingetorix, with the small garrison of Alesia, saw the ne- cessity of yielding to the stern fate of war, which had decreed their country's fall. On the next day this noble-hearted patriot, glittering in his brightest armor, and mounted on a richly-capari- soned charger, presented himself before Csesar in front of his camp, cast down his arms at the proconsul's feet, and with stoical calm- ness submitted to be bound by the lictors. He was kept in close confinement for several years, and at length, after having gi-aced the triumph of the Koman dictator by walking at his chariot- wheel, was executed in his dungeon. Although the freedom of Gaul may be said to have been crush- ed and extinguished under the walls of Alesia, some time elapsed before the country was reduced to the tranquillity of prostrate subjection. Plutarch tells us that in the course of this exti-aor- dinary contest, which lasted eight years, Cassar took by force more than eight hundred towns, subdued three hundred distinct tribes or states, and conquered three millions of fighting men, of whom one million perished on the field of battle, and another million were sold into slavery. Cassar employed the whole of the year 50 B.C. in endeavoring to soothe the people by promises of mild and beneficent treatment, and thus to reconcile them to the Koman domination. As far as * Alesia is at Alise, in the department of the Cote d'Or. Chap. I. SOCIAL STATE. H possible the natives were permitted to" retain the privileges of local government. The best of the Gaulish soldiers Avere encour- aged to enroll themselves under the banners of the republic, and a complete corps was formed of these Transalpine volunteers, which became celebrated as the legion of the " Alauda," from the fijTure of a lark which was borne on the front of the helmet. These troops were admitted to the Jus Latinum, and placed in all essential respects on a par with Roman citizens. The Eoman army was also largely recruited from among the Gauls of Belgium and Aquitania; and in the civil wars which soon followed the Gaulish cavalry became specially distinguished for its brilliant courage, and contributed not a little to the eleva- tion of CcEsar as supreme dictator. The lately conquered territories were now erected into an addi- tional province of the Eoman empire, and received the name of Gallia Comata from the long flowing hair worn by the inhabit- ants, being thus distinguished from the ancient province of Gallia Narbonensis. § 9. A few words n;iay here be added as to the constitution of society among the primitive inhabitants of Gaul ; as to their na- tional character, manners, and religion. The general type of government among the Celts of Gaul was that of aristocracy or oligarchy, of which the most prominent feature was the extraor- dinary power of the Druids. CiBsar states that in his time the whole political power was divided between the Druids and the knights or nobles (equites). The mass of the common people were scarcely better than serfs or slaves. Unable to bear up against debt, excessive taxation, and the tyranny of rank and Avealth, they had given themselves over altogether into the hands of the superior castes. They could not, however, be bought and sold, and ill treatment of them was punishable by fine. Their condition was also alleviated by the system of patronage, or client- ship ; each noble was surrounded by a number of retainers, who Avere entitled to his special protection, and were bound in return to support his interests and defend his person with absolute de- votion. These clients were maintained at the patron's cost, and incurred an equal share in all his dangers. If he fell in battle, or came to any violent end, it was their duty to sacrifice them- selves upon his tomb ; and no instance had occurred within the memory of man of their attempting to evade this obligation. The most remarkable of the Celtic institutions was that of the Druidical priesthood. The Druids Avere of three orders — the in- ferior priests — the bards, Avho were supposed to be divinely in- spired, and exercised, in consequence, immense influence over the minds and passions of the people — and the Druids properly so 12 HUMAN SACRIFICES. Chai-. i. called, who were the highest of all. These latter led a contem- plative life in the seclusion of the forests, and devoted themselves to theological and metaphysical study. They were exempt from military service, from the payment of taxes, and from all other public burdens. They appear to have taught the immortality of the soul, or rather the transmigration of souls, and a future state of rewards and punishments. " They lay special stress," says Cfesar, " upon the doctrine that souls do not perish, but pass after death into other bodies ; considering this as a most powerful stimulus to bravery and courage, since it tends to remove alto- gether the fear of death." A solemn convocation of the Druids was held every year at a consecrated spot in the country of the Carnutes, which was reputed to be the centre of all Gaul. In^ quiry was here instituted, and judgment pronounced, in causes of all kinds ; all parties were bound to submit implicitly to the decis- ions of this high tribunal ; if any one proved refractory, the Dru- ids had the power to interdict him from the sacrifices, a punish- ment of extreme severity, as it excluded the offender from socie- ty, and incapacitated him for any public function. Nor was the ascendency of the Druids simply the effect of relig- ious superstition. For they were much more than priests ; they were philosopherSj physicians, professors of the arts and sciences, interpreters of the laws, ministers of justice, poets, genealogists, historians. Tliey sang the praises of departed heroes, and by the memory of their deeds inflamed the ambition and martial ardor of the living. A hierarchy invested with such paramount and undisputed authority over all ranks and classes is probably with- out a parallel in history. § 10. Many of the religious rites among the Gauls were cruel and bloody. Human sacrifices were of frequent occurrence. It was believed that the life of man can not be purchased but by that of his fellow-man ; that the gods can not be propitiated but at this costly price. Accordingly, those who Avere attacked by dangerous sickness, and those who Avere about to expose them- selves to the Jiazards of war, prociu'ed, through the ministry of the Druids, the immolation of human victims on their behalf. Public sacrifices of the same kind were sometimes held. A co- lossal human figure was made of wicker-work, and its huge limbs filled with the bodies of living men, generally condemned crimi- nals, or captives taken in Avar. The image Avas then set on fire, and the Avretched sufferers perished in the flames. These human sacrifices Avere doubtless much encouraged by the prevalent contempt of deatli arising from the belief in the trans- migration and perpetual existence of the soul. The Gauls Re- garded the future life as, in the most literal sense, a continuation Chap. I. DEUIDICAL MONUMENTS. 13 and repetition of the present. Hence it was a common practice to contract debts with a stipulation that they should be payable in the next stage of existence. Hence letters were thrown upon the funeral pile, that the deceased might carry to his relatives and friends in Paradise information of the wishes and proceedings of those who remained on earth. And thus, upon the death of a chieftain, whatever he had most valued in this life — armor, orna- ments, horses, dogs, sometimes even his household servants — were either burned or interred with him, that he might resume his treasures at his entrance on a higher sphere. A very large number of Celtic or Druidical monuments still exist in France, especially in the western districts and along tlie southern shores of Brittany. They are of various descriptions. Tlie menhir, or poulvan, is a mass of rough-hewn stone fixed up- right in the ground like an obelisk, and frequently exceeding 30 feet in height. These occur either singly or arranged in vast lines or avenues, as in the well-known instance of Carnac, in the department Morbihan. This monument, the most extensive and celebrated in France, consisted originally of several thousands of these rude pillars of granite, and has been likened to " an army of petrified giants.''* The dolmen is composed of a large block or slab of stone supported horizontally upon tAvo or more stones in an upright position, so as to form a sort of table or altar. It was upon these, no doubt, that the sacrifices were offered. They are known in France by different names — pierre levee, pierre Druidic Dolmen, named Pierre Leree^ near Poitiers, 13 feet long and 3 thick (mentioned by Rabelai.-^). * H. Martin, i., 49. 14 NOTES AND ILLUSTEATIONS. Chap. I. couverte, pierre levade. Sometimes they are of considerable size, and form a stone chamber or grotto, through whicli a man may- pass upright : dolmens of this kind are called allees couvertes, or allees des fe'es. To these must be added the cromlech, or circle of stones, which is supposed to have some occult connection with the serpent- worship of the Druids ;* the pierre branlante, or rock- ing-stone, poised with such exquisite precision on a single point as to be easily movable by the hand, notwithstanding its stupen- dous bulk ; and the tumulus, or barrow, which was the usual place of sepulture. NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. A. AUTHORITIES. The most complete collection of the original documents from which the History of France is drawn is that entitled Recueil des Histori- enfi des Onules et de la France^ in 20 vols, folio, tlie first of wliich was published in 1 738, .ind dedicated to Louis XV. This noble work is the production of the Benedictines of the congregation of St. Maur, the principal editor being the celebrated Dom Martin Bouquet. It is not often to be met with in England. The Ordonnances des Rois., 21 vols, folio, is another most important and valuable pub- lication. It was commenced in 1T23, and con- tinued under various editors down to 1849. The Historia Francoruvi of Andre and Fransois Duchene is excellent, but incom- plete, extending only to the reign of Pliilippe le Bel. It was the earliest undertalcing of tlie kind, the fli"st volume having appeared in 1G3T. MezeraU sometimes called the Father of French history, published his work between lG4'i and 104 '. Writing at a time of great political excitement, during the regency of Anne of Austria and the wax's of the Fronde, Mezerai aimed chiefly at pleasing tlie multi- tude and pleading tlie cause of popular liberty. Hence he is not remarkable either for deptli of learning or for accuracy in the statement of facts. His remarks are often judicious and instructive, but he does not profess to have consulted the original sources of information. His work obtained an immense reputation, which it has preserved in great measure down to our own times; but it has much declined in credit since the scientific researches of the modem school of French historians. The History of France by the Perc Daiiiel, a Jesuit, publislied in 1713, is distinguished by far greater accuracy, and must always r.mk as a standard work. The earlier part, however, is the best : as he approaches mod- ern times Daniel becomes less trustworthy, and shows himself by no means free from the prejudices of his order and his age. The Abbe Vellij, ^yhose work appeared in 1755, is an author of some merit and of con- siderable celebrity ; but he writes throughout in the style and tone of a courtier, and he con- tinually gives a false view of facts by throw- ing over them a coloring of modern refine- ment and romance which is wholly incongru- ous and out of place. Velly's history was continued by Villaret and Garnier. A history was published by Louis IHcrre Anquetili under the consulate, and by the di- rection of Napoleon, which became widely popular in France. It is executed with intel- ligence and with gi-eat perspicuity of style, • but is little more than a compilation from Mezerai and Velly. Among tlie many distinguished recent au- thors must be named M. de Sismondi, whose work, however, in thirty volumes, is some- wliat cumbersome and tedious; there is an abridgment in three vols. Svo; M. Henri Martin^ perhaps the most valuable of all, who has been principally followed in the "Stu- dent's Histoiy of France;" M. Michelet; M. Theodore Lavallee ; and an excellent work by MM. Bordier and Ckarton^ "L'Histoire de France d'aprcs les documents originaux et les monuments de I'art de chaque epoque," the concluding parts of which have just issued from the press (Dec, 1800). The series edited by M. GuizoU under the title of " Memoires relatifs a rilistoire de France depuis la fondation de la Monarchie jusqu'au XIII' si^cle," is also of first-rate im- portance. Other works bearing on particular epochs will be specified in succeeding notes. B. THE CELTIC TRIBES OF GAUL. The Celts are divided into two great branch- es, the Gael and the Kymri ; and though these two languages are clearly of the same origin, yet they are unintelligible to one another, and the diiference between them is greater than between the ancient Scindinavian and tlie German languages. (Zauss, Grammatica Celtica., Prjefatio, p. v.) It is admitted by all * The serpent, from its property of changing; its skin every year, was the symbol of constantly renewed existence — of immortality : hence its appear- ance in the mystical system of the Druids. Chap. I. THE CELTIC TRIBES OF GAUL. 15 Celtic scholars that the Gaelic is more ancient tlian the Kymric, or, to speak more correctly, represents an older stage of the language. 'Iha Gaelic has a genitive and dative case, while the Kymric is destitute of cases alto- gether. The initial s in Gaelic has degener- ated into h in Kymric ; thus, saul^ the Gaelic word for sun, appears in Welsh in the form heol.* In the time of Caesar the Kymri had obtained possession of all Gaul west of the Rhine, with the exception of the southwestern corner, inhabited by the Aquitani or Basques. It has indeed been maintained by many schol- ars, from Ciesar's statement, that the Belgas were not Celts at all, but of Teutonic extrac- tion. In one passage Cassar says (B. &'., ii., 4) : "• Plerosqus Belgas esse ortos a Gennanis, Rhenumque antiquitus transductos propter loci fertUitatem ibi consedisse, Gallosque, qui ea loca incolerent, expulisse." In another passage (fi. G.,i.,l) he informs us that the BelgM differed from the Celts or Gauls in lan- guage, laws, and manners. But Amedee Thi- erry justly observes that throughout the Com- mentaries of Cpesar the BelgK are evidently a distinct people from the GeiToans, and he un- derstands the passage above quoted to mean that the Belgse came into Gaul from Ger- many^ i. e. , the Transrhenane district, which was inhabited by Germans in Cscsar'stime. (See A. Thierry, Hist, das Gaulois^ Introduc- tion, p. 35-4S ; H. Martin, Hist. France, i., p.- 22.) With regard to the difference of lan- ciimge between the Gauls and the Belgae, in all probability they spoke different dialects of the same language. This may be inferred from a passage of Strabo (iv., p. 176), who, aft- er mentioning the threefold division of Gaul * In like manner, the more ancient forms svar in Sanscrit and sol la Latlu appear aa hvari in Zend and 4iAios in Greek. among the Aquitaniang, Belgse, and Celts, says that the Aquitanians differed wholly from the two others in person as well as lan- guage, but that the Belgse and Celts resem- bled each other in general external appear- ance, and differed only a little in their lan- guage.* The testimony of Jerome is to the same effect. He had lived among the Treviri, a Belgic people, and he says that the Galatte in Asia Minor, who were unquestionably Celts, spoke almost the same language as the Treviri. t In addition to this, Priciiard has shown that the local names in Belgic Gaul so closely resemble those in Celtic Gaul as to af- ford a conclusive proof that these districts must have been inhabited by the same race.t The Belgfe were likewise among the earliest settlers in the British Isles. When Crosar invaded Britain he found the southern and southeastern coasts inhabited by tribes of Bel- gic origin, who had named the towns and dis. tricts after those from which they came on the other side of the Channel. (B. G., v., 12.) Their capital was Venta Belgarum (Winches- ter). It can hardly admit of doubt that these Britannic Belgse were Celts. On the Celtic origin of the Belgae, see, be- sides the authorities already quoted, Prich- ard, Physical Researches; Zeiiss, Die Deut- schen und die Nachbarstcimme, p. 1S6, seq. ; Brandos, Die Ethnographische V^erhdltniss der Kelten und Germanen., p. 83-92. * /tLHpov TrapaWaTTOvva^ raif yXwrroty, t Hieronym. Comment. Epist. ad Galataz, toI i p. 255, Paris. X Zeuss in like manner calls attention to Divitiacus king of the Belgic Suessiones (Csesar, B. G., ii. 4)' and Divitiacus the jEduan (ii., 5) ; Noviodunu'm, capl ital of the Suessiones (il., 12), and Noviodunum a town of the ^duans (vii., 55) ; Bibrax, a town of the Kemi (ii., 6), and Bibracte jEduorum (l., 23); Lug- dunum Batavorum, and Lugdunum on the Rhone. Temple of Pluto. Autun. CHAPTER II. GAUL UNDER THE ROMANS, TO THE GREAT BARBARIAN INVASION. B.C. 30— A.D. 407. § 1. Division of Gaul into Provinces under Augustus. § 2. Progress of Civ- ilization ; Roman Architecture in Gaul. § 3. Revolt of Civilis and Julius Sabinus. § 4. Foundation of Christianity in Gaul ; Pothinus; Irenreus; the Decian Persecution. § 5. St. Hilary ; St. Martin. § G. Anarchy in Gaul ; Revolt of the Bagaudes ; Constantius Chlorus ; first Appearance of the Franks ; the Emperor Julian. § 7. The Franks jNIellobrand and Arbogast ; Irruption of the Northern Barbarians ; their Invasion of Gaul. § 1. Upon the accession of Augustus to supreme power at Rome, the more important provinces of the empire were placed under the immediate government of the emperor, while the rest were left nominally in subjection to the senate and people. Gaul was in- cluded in the former class ; and, by a decree published at Nar- bonne, the country Avas partitioned into four great administrative districts : Gallia Narbonensis, the boundaries of Avhich were left unaltered ; Aquitania, which was considerably enlarged, and reached from the Loire to the Pyrenees and the Cevennes ; Gal- lia Lugdunensis, which extended from the Loire to the Rhone and the Saone, and northward, beyond the Seine, as far as the rivers Oise, Somme, and Marne ; and, lastly, Gallia Belgica, which comprised the northern districts up to the boundary of the Rlnne, and, following the course of that river, embraced, in addition, lJ|p territories of the Treviri, Sequani, and Hclvetii, so that ils eastern limits bordered closely on the Lake of Constance.* * Belgica also contained two subdivisions, callr-d (jcrmania S'ipci-ior and B.C. 28. DIVISION INTO PROVINCES. 17 The central seat of government was fixed at Lugdunum, or Lyons, a city which, founded by the consul Munatius Plancus in B.C. 42, became within fifteen years the flourishing metropolis of Gaul, and the favoi*ite residence of the Roman emperors. Here Augustus sojourned several years,, from B.C. 16 to B.C. 10. Four great roads radiated from the capital, leading respectively to the Mediterranean, to Narbonne and the Pyrenees, to the British Channel at Gessoriacum (Boulogne), and eastward to the Rhine. The Roman organization was gradually but steadily established throughout the country. Every effort was made both to attach the people to their new masters by liberal grants of civil and po- litical privileges, and to render rebellion impossible by effacing the old traditions, and totally changing the centres of authority and influence. Six cities — Lyons, Narbonne, Orange, Aries, Frejus, Beziers — were endowed by Augustus with all the rights and im- munities of Roman citizenship. Others, such as Aix, Toulouse, and Nismes, were colonies enjoying the Jus Latinum ; Avhile sev- eral others, again, obtained important municipal advantages with- out becoming Roman colonies. Many of tlie provincial capitals now changed their names, and adopted in difl:erent shapes the ti- tle of the emperor. Thus Bibracte, capital of the -ZEdui, became Augustodunum, whence the modern name Autun ; the chief town of the Lemovices Avas styled Augustoritum ; that of the Turones, Caesarodunum. Gergovia, the memorable scene of Csesar's fail- ure, forfeited its rank as capital of the Arverni, which was trans- ferred to a new city called Augustonemetum, now Clermont-Fer- rand. Csesaromagus in like manner became the capital of the Bellovaci, at the expense of the ancient Bratuspantium. A general census taken in b.Co 28, gave a total of 4,163,000 Roman citizens in Gaul. § 2. Intellectual civilization made rapid advances in Gaul un- der the Roman rule. Schools were founded in various cities — Bordeaux, Toulouse, Aries, Vienne, Autun, Rheims — in which every branch of literature and science Avas successfully cultivated. Some of these, particularly Aries and Autun, attained great emi- nence, so as to rival even the most celebrated academies of Greece and Italy. Gaul could ere long boast of her native orators, poets, historians, grammarians, linguists. The names of Cornelius Cal- lus the friend of Virgil, of Domitius Afer the master of Quintilian, Cermania Inferior, Avhich appear as separate provinces soon after the death of Augustus. They extended along the whole left bank of the Rhine, and formed a military frontier against Germany. Germania Superior in the south was divided from Germania Inferior in the north by the River Nahe. The capital of the latter pi'ovince was Colonia Agrip])inensis {Cologne), founded a.d. 51 in honor of Agrippina, wife of the Emperor Claudius. 18 PROGRESS OF CIVILIZATION. Chap. II. of Trogus Pompeius, author of the first universal history, of Va- lerius Cato, and later, of the poet Ausonius, are deservedly dis- tinguished, and would in any age do honor to their country. Na- tives of Gaul w^ere to be found in course of time in all departments of the public service, and occupying posts of high trust and dig- nity. Some, it appeal's, Avere even admitted as members of the Koman senate. Most of the cities founded by the Romans, especially in the south of Gaul, vv^ere lavishly adorned with public buildings of all kinds, in the best style of art. Nismes, Aries, Orange, St. Remy, Valence, Vienne, Autun, exhibit specimens of monumental taste and splendor which are hardly surpassed even in Italy. The magnificent aqueduct called the Pont du Gard, which conveyed the waters of the River Gard to the city of Nemausus — the tri- umphal arch of Orange, and the noble theatre at the same place — the amphitheatre at Nismes, and the exquisite Corinthian tem- ple commonly known as the " Maison Carree" — the elegant bridge of St. Chamas — the temple of Augusta and Livia at Vi- enne — are all, in their several kinds, masterpieces of artistic skill and beauty, and remain for the most part in good preservation. Many of these works were probably designed, and certainly exe- cuted, by native artists. The Druidical religion was not proscribed or persecuted by Augustus ; but he took care to discourage and undermine it by means less invidious, and more certain of success. He excluded from the honors of Roman citizenship all who should practice the ancient rites, and especially any one who took part in the human sacrifices. He likewise endeavored to supplant the mythology' of the Druids by linking together the names of Celtic deities Avith those of Rome, and erecting altars to them under a double title, 6.(7., Belenus- Apollo, Mars Camul, Diana- Arduinna. These ex- pedients proved widely successful. In the course of a few years Druidism Avas almost wholly abandoned by the nobility and influ- ential classes ; and, although it still retained its hold upon the loAver people, its authority as a dominant system was swept away forever. In the reign of Claudius, a.d. 43, severer measures AA^ere resorted to : an imperial edict prohibited, under pain of deatli, the exercise of the Druidical Avorship, and banished the priests from Gaul. They took refuge in Britain ; and, being pursued thither by the vindictive jealousy of the emperor, they were driv- en to conceal themselves among the mountains of Wales and Scotland. The Roman general Suetonius Paulinus attacked and discomfited them Avith terrible slaughter in their chief strong-hold in tlie Isle of Anglesey. In spite of this fierce persecution, tlie ancient superstition still lingered in the secluded districts of Gaul, A.D. 43-69. REVOLT OF CIVILIS AND SABINUS. I9 particularly in Brittany and Auvergne. Eelics of Druidical cer- emonies are said to have survived as late as the 9th century after Christ. § 3. Gaul vv^as thus reduced by degrees into a state of outward conformity with the laws, institutions, religion, and social man- ners of its conquerors ; its nationality disappeared, and became merged in the general- destinies and history of Kome ; and it seems to have subsided into one of the most tranquil and contented provinces of the empire. Some attempts were made, however, to rekindle the smouldering spark of Gallic independence. Among these the most remarkable was the insurrection of a Batavian named Claudius Civilis, a.d. 69, who, having roused to arms all the tribes of Belgic Gaul, proclaimed the establishment of the "Empire of the Gauls," and raised to the purple an officer called Julius Sabinus, who claimed descent from Julius Ccesar. The Roman legions were repeatedly defeated by the rebels, and the revolution seemed destined to prosper ; but at length a decisive battle was fought, in which the usurper was utterly worsted, and forced to escape into concealment. Civilis made his peace with the Emperor Vespasian, and, together with the tribes which still adhered to him, resumed his allegiance to Rome. The insurgents were permitted to return to their homes and possessions, with a complete amnesty for the past. Sabinus, after concealing him- self, with his devoted wife Eponina, for no less than nine years in a subterranean cavern, was at last discovered, and sent loaded with chains to Rome. Vespasian, resisting the passionate and pathetic entreaties of Eponina, consigned her husband to the exe- cutioners. Eponina demanded the privilege of sharing his fate, and suifered Avith unshaken fortitude and constancy. After this convulsive effort, the dream of a restored nationality seems to have vanished altogether from the Celtic mind. A long period of profound tranquillity succeeded, unmarked by any gi-eat historical transaction. The province of Gaul continued to ad- vance in civilization, refinement, and luxury ; and, during the reigns of Trajan, Hadrian, and the Antonines, enjoyed its full share in the grandeur and glory of the empire. But from this point the national character appears to have rapidly degenerated. The indolence and apathy of the Gauls call forth more than once the animadversions of the historian Tacitus. § 4. The precise date of the foundation of the Christian Church in Gaul has not been clearly ascertained. Some have maintained that St. Paul traveled through Gaul on his journey into Spain ; and that the first seeds of Christianity in both counti'ies Avere sown by him. . Another account names St. Luke and Crescens as hav- ing been sent by the same apostle to preach in Gaul ; and there 20 INTRODUCTION OF CHRISTIANITY. Chap. IL are vague traditions that Trophimns, the disciple of St. Peter, and even the Apostle Philip, labored there.* These are scarcely more than conjectures. Christian teachers may very probably have visited Gaul either in the apostolic age, or that immediately succeeding ; but it is not until the reign of Antoninus Pius, in the middle of the second century, that we have any certain information on the subject. About a.d. 155, a band of missionaries from Asia Minor an-ived in Gaul, headed by Po- thinus and Irenasus, disciples of St. Polycarp, bishop of Smyrna. They settled in and around Lyons ; and Pothinus became the first bishop of Lyons and Vienne. Twenty years passed ; numerous congregations had been gathered, and the Church had struck deep root ; but the fanatical passions of the heathen populace were now excited against the Christians ; they Avere insulted as guilty of " Thyestean feastings," and the most revolting impurities. Upon this, the Emperor Marcus Aurelius ordered a systematic persecu- tion of the new sect, and the command was obeyed with unsparing severity. One of the most precious records of the primitive Church is a letter from the distressed Christians at Lyons to their breth- ren in the East, giving an account of the cruel sufferings and mar- tyrdom of many faithful members of their body. Among these champions of the truth was the venerable Bishop Pothinus. Hav- ing endured, at the age of ninety, every species of indignity and torture, he was cast alive into prison, where he expired in three days. Great . numbers of his flock perished by a similar fate. The celebrated Irenreus, avIio succeeded Pothinus in the see of Lyons, was enabled in some measure to repair these calamities ; and, during the comparatively mild reign of Commodus, Chi'is- tianity in Gaul began again to raise its head. But an edict issued by Septimius Severus, in a.d. 202, renewed the cruelties against the converts, numbers of whom were capitally condemned for re- fusing to sacrifice to the gods of Pome, and sealed their testimony to the Gospel with their blood. IrensEus, so famous for his con- futation of the Gnostic heresy, is believed to have died a martyr under the persecution of Severus, a.d. 203. Toward the year a.d. 250 a numerous band of missionai'ies Avas dispatched to Gaul by Fabian, Bishop of Pome, imder the direc- tion of seven distinguished men whose names are preserved to us — Dionysius (St. Denis), Saturninus, Stremonius, Martialis, Trophi- mus, Gatian, and Paul. They became the founders of the sees of Paris, Toulouse, Clermont, Limoges, Aries, Tours, and Nar- bonne. From this date, in spite of the terrible jiersecution of Decius (a.d. 249-251), Gaul seems to have been gradually evan- gelized. Almost all the bishops above-named suffered for tlie faith * MoHheim, Hist., i., ]3G, no!es. A.D. 368. ST. HILARY— ST. MARTIN. 21 under the Emperors Valerian and Diocletian, a.d. 2G0 and 286;* but their disciples, and fresh missionaries who arrived from Rome, persevered undauntedly in the Avork, and by the beginning of the fourth century the Church was firmly planted in all the principal cities throughout the land. Thirteen episcopal sees ai'e known to have existed at this period. § 5. Two illustrious names adorned the Chiu'ch of the fourth century in Gaul — those of St. Hilary, bishop of Poitiers, and St. Martin, bishop of Tours. St. Hilary was consecrated to the see of Poitiers in the year 350, and distinguished himself as a stren- uous defender of the Catholic faith against the Arian heresy, which at that time was rampant in the Church. His reasonings were so powerful and unanswerable that the Arian party had no resource but to denounce him to the Emperor Constantius, by whom he was banished to Phrygia. Being recalled at the end of four years, Hilary attended the council of Seleuciain 359, where he once more manfully vindicated the Nicene faith against its advei-saries. In 360 he returned to France, and procured the assembling of an im- portant council at Paris, in which the bishops of Gaul unanimous- ly declared their adherence to the orthodox faith, excommunicated the maintainers of Arianism, and appealed to the judgment of the Eastern Church for the purity and faithfulness of their teaching. Other synods were held on the same subject ; and Hilary became the main instrument of arresting and driving back the tide of Arianism, Avhich had begun to set in steadily toward the West. This famous prelate and confessor died in peace in the year 368. The Fathers speak of him in the highest terms of admiration ; St. Jerome entitles him " Latince eloquentise Rhodanus," in allusion to his animated and fervent diction. St. Martin was a native of Pannonia. At a very early age he sought the teaching of the Church in opposition to the will of his heathen parents, and formed the purpose of renouncing the world for an ascetic life. But, yielding at length to the commands of his father, he enlisted as a soldier, and was sent to serve for five years in Gaul. It was during this time that the well-known in- cident took place of his sharing his military cloak with a poor beggar whom he met at the gates of Amiens. Deeply impi-essed with a remarkable dream which followed this occurrence, Martin quitted the army, and was baptized at the age of eighteen. He repaired to Pannonia, where he converted his mother to Chris- tianity, and was afterward wonderfully successful in combating the Arians in Illyricum. Returning to France, Martin settled in the diocese of Poitiers, and established there the monastic sys- tem, then recently introduced into Europe from the East. The * Montmartre, which overlooks P.ivis from the northwest, is the reputed scene of the martvrdom of St. Denis. 22 CONSTANTIUS CHLORUS. Chap. II. first monastery founded in France was that of Liguge, a few miles south of Poitiers ; the second Avas the celebrated Abbey of Mar- moutiers, also founded by St. Martm, near the city of Tours. Martin was soon elevated to the episcopal see of Tours. He de- voted himself thenceforwai'd to missionary labors; and so astonish- ing was his success, that it was universally attributed in that age to miraculous agency. The sanctity of St. Martin procured him extraordinary influence and veneration: kings and emperors vied with each other in doing him honor, and his place of sepulture, the cathedral called after his name at Tours, became the wealth- iest and most celebrated shrine in Gaul. St. Martin died at the age of eighty-one, about a.d. 400. § 6. During the period of the decline of the Roman Empire, Gaul fell into a deplorable state of disorganization and misery. A general revolt of the peasants, under the Emperors Maximian and Diocletian, is known in history as the Bagaudie.* It became of serious importance, and was not suppressed without consider- able difficulty. The leaders of the insurrection Avere two Chris- tians named ^lianus and Amandus. After suffering repeated defeats, they threw themselves, with a small body of partisans, into a strong-hold in the neighborhood of Paris. Here they made a desperate defense against the imperial legions, but were at length overwhelmed and destroyed to a man, bravely fighting to the last. The ruins of their fortress, at the confluence of the Seine and the Marne, retained, during several centuries, the name of the "Cha- teau des Bagaudes." In the rearrangement of the empire which took place a.d. 292, Gaul was divided afresh into seventeen provinces, and became part of a preetorian prEefecture, of which the supreme government was fixed at Treves. f The administration of Gaul was now confided to the Caesar Constantius Chlorus, Avho took up his residence at Aries in Provence. The reign of Constantius Chlorus was, on the whole, prosperous ; but his utmost efforts were unavailing to protect the frontier of the Rhine against the ever-advancing flood of Teutonic invasion. His son, the great Constantine, on suc- ceeding to the throne, was compelled to undertake a campaign against the Franks, a formidable horde of Germans who were ravaging the northeastern provinces. He gave them battle near Treves, in the year 310, where they were totally defeated, and left several of their chieftains in the hands of the victors. It is * The insurgents bore the name of Bagauda;, which in the signification of rebels continued till the fifth century. t These 17 provinces formed two great masses, one consisting of the 10 ProvincicE Gallicance in the north, and tlie other of the Septem Provincice in the south. It is probable that tlie Seven Provinces were governed by a vica- rius who resided at Ar!(';=, wliile the Ten were under ibc prirfectns prretoris at 'I' I eves. A.D. 352-3o0. THE FEANKS— J ULIAN. 23 on this occasion that we find the first mention of the kings oi* princes of the Franks. The tribe, however, was known to the lioinans as early as the year 242, when they were routed near Mayence by Aurelian, afterward emperor ; an exploit celebrated by his legionaries in a song which ran thus : " Mille Francos, mille Sarmatas, semel occiditnus, Mille, mille, mille, mille Persas qucerimus." As the decrepitude of the empire became more and more mani- fest, the barbai'ians redoubled their aggressions, and began to es- tablish themselves permanently ha Gaul as in a conquered coun- try. In the year 352, during the contest for the throne between Constantius and Magnentius, both disputants had recourse to the fatal expedient of soliciting the aid of the German tribes beyond the Rhine. The decisive defeat of Magnentius was achieved mainly by these German auxiliaries ; but when the war had thus been brought to a close, the barbarians pushed to the utmost their advantage over their weak allies, and refused to recross the Rhine. All the frontier provinces were now abandoned to the violence of the invader. The Salian Franks seized upon the In- sula Batavorum and the greater part of Brabant and Hainault. Wherever they appeared, the most ruthless devastation marked their path ; and no less than forty of the most stately cities of Gaul, including Treves, Cologne, Mayence, Worms, Spires, and Strasburg, were at this time sacked and burnt to the ground. Constantius saw that unless these Germans, whom his own fol- ly had invited into Gaul, could be finally forced back beyond the barrier of the Rhine, the fairest territories of the empire would be wrested from his grasp. In this emergency he dispatched into Gaul his cousin Julian, a young man of great ability and jjromise. The emperor had hitherto treated him with suspicion, and even with severity : he waS now proclaimed Caesar, married to the em- peror's sister, and sent across the Alps in the beginning of 356. Julian attacked the Germans Avith extraordinary vigor and bril- liant success. After repulsing them first at Cologne and again near Sens, he completely overthrew their combined hosts at Ar- gentoratum (Strasburg), spread consternation among their tribes, and compelled them to sue for terms of peace. Julian returned in triumph to Lutetia (Paris), which became his favorite resi- dence. He greatly enlarged and embellished this city, which now began to take a high rank among the provincial capitals of Gaul. The remains of Julian's palace are still to be seen on the left bank of the Seine, under the name of the "Palais des Thermes." It was here that he was proclaimed Augustus, or Emperoi', by the soldiery, in the year 360. § 7. The barbarians, Avhoni Julian had effectually overaAved, upon the first tidings of his death reappeared on tlic Pli-^-^i-'. 24 INVASION BY NOETHERN BARBARIANS. Chap, II. frontier. They put to flight a division of the Roman army, and afterward pushed their ravages as far as Chalons, where they were defeated in 365 by Jovinus, lieutenant of the Emperor Va- lentinian. But, if scattered at one point, the invaders, ever re- cruited in vast multitudes from Germany, instantly made head upon another. Gratian, with the aid of a Frankish tribe whom he had taken into pay, gained a splendid victory in 378, and once more the remnant of the vanquished host was driven across the lihine. The leader of the Frank auxiliaries, named Mellobrand, was advanced to the dignity of consul for the year, in recognition of his brilliant services. But the very victories of the empire had noAv become the signs of its approaching ruin. No success could be achieved but by the arms of barbarian mercenaries, who, after receiving the emperor's pay, proceeded to dismember his territories and usurp his power. During the next reign we find a Frank named Arbogast insulting Valentinian II. in his palace, assuming the command of the army, ;md directing the administration of affairs. A Gaulish rhetori- lian, Eugenius, afterward held the sovereign power for two years, and was defeated and killed by Theodosius in 395. The division of the empire under Arcadius and Plonorius soon consummated its destruction. Treves, the metropolis of the Gauls, was sur- prised, plundered, and razed to the ground by the Germans in 398. Stilicho, the celebrated general of Honorius, gained some partial advantages against them, and averted for a short time the final catastrophe. But the whole barbarian Avorld was now surg- ing with revolutionary agitation. Asia poured forth her savage myriads in a new and irresistible migi-ation westward ; and the nations of northern Europe, unable to bear up against the torrent, burst their ancient barriers, and precipitated themselves like an overwhelming deluge on the Roman empire^ The Germans, un- der the various designations of Suevi, Alani, Vandals, and Bur- gundians, marched upon the frontiers of Gaul ; and, having fought a successful battle with the Ripuarian Franks, who, faithful to the terms of their alliance with the Romans, valiantly defended tlie boundary of the Rhine, the invaders crossed that river during the night of the 31st of December, 406. From the territories of which they then took possession they were never afterward ex- pelled. Other tribes in succession crowded through the breach thus effected in the ancient defenses of the empire ; and the in- vading masses, becoming intermingled with the former population, bore down all opposition, and spread themselves through the land in permanent dominion. It is from this point, then, that we must trace the gradual for- mation of the existing French nation ; and here commences the modern History of Fi-ancc. Ruins of the Palace of Julian {Palais des Thermes) at Paris. BOOK II. G-ERMAK GAUL. A.i). 407-987. CHAPTER III. FROM THE GREAT BARBARIAN INVASION TO THE DEATH OF CLOVIS. A.I). 407-511. § 1. Eeign of Constantine in Gaul. § 2. The Visigoths, the Burgundians, the Franks. § 3. Aetins ; Gaul invaded by the Huns undei- Attila ; Ste. GeneVieve ; Battle of Chalons. § 4. ^gidius ; Syagrius ; Fall of the Western Empire. § 5. Clovis, King of the Franks ;. his Baptism. § G. Alliance between Clovis and the Church. His conquest of the Burgun- dians and Visigoths. § 7. His Crimes; he becomes sole Sovereign of the Franks. § 1. Upon the news of the irruption of the barbarians, the Ro- man legions stationed in Britain renounced the imbecile Honorius, and elected to the purple a private soldier bearing the auspicious name of Constantine. This adventurer collected a considerable army, and gained over to his cause the Burgundians and Franks by guaranteeing to them the lands of -which they had seized pos- session in the east and north of France. Thus powerfully re-en- forced, Constantine made himself master of the central and south- eastern provinces ; and, having routed and driven back across the B 26 VISIGOTHS— BURGUNDIANS. Chap. III. Alps a force sent against him by Honorius, he was left in full possession of the greater part of Gaul. The reign of Constantine lasted three years, during which he carried his victorious arms into Spain, and was even invested by Honorius with the honors of Augustus. In the year 411 his good fortune deserted him ; he was besieged in Aries, his capital, by the general of Honorius, and his means of defense being exhausted, was compelled to throw himself on the unconditional mercy of the emperor. His life was promised him, but Honorius, to whose court the fallen usurper: was sent captive, made no scruple in violating the engagement. Constantine was put to death by the executioners before he reach- ed Eavenna. § 2. Amid the indescribable anarchy which followed the fall of Constantine, three out of the crowd of struggling German nations gradually acquired the preponderance in Gaul — namely, the Visi- goths in the south, the Burgundians in the east, and the Franks in the north and west. The Visigoths, after the sack of Eome and the death of Alaric in 410, had made terms of alliance with Honorius, and their chief- tain Ataulphus had received in marriage Placidia, the sister of the emperor. Honorius was now easily persuaded to make a grant of the southern provinces of France to his powerful brother-in- law. The Visigoths, crossing the Alps, defeated Jovinus and Se- bastianus, two pretenders to the empire, took by storm the cities of Narbonne, Toulouse, and Bordeaux, and soon subdued the whole country from the Mediterranean to the Bay of Biscay. The king- dom thus founded was transmitted by Ataulphus to his successors, and its limits were more strictly defined by a new treaty Avitli Honorius in 418. Toulouse became the capital of the Visigoths, and their power extended from that city northward as far as Poitiers, and westward to the shores of the ocean, including the districts of Saintes and Bordeaux. In other words, it embraced the whole of the Eoman Aquitania. The Visigothic thi'one was occupied during more than thirty years by Theodoric, a prince of distinguished ability and renown, whose name will reappear in the events which follow. The Burgundians had appropriated, at the time of the grand invasion, the province called Germania Superior, or Alsace ; but having defeated and put to death the usurper Jovinus, they ob- tained from Honorius, in recompense, the Avhole province of Gallia Sequanensis, and their boundaries soon reached from the Lake of Geneva as far as Coblenz on the Ehine. Toward the south they were separated from the Visigoths by the Ehone, the Durance, and the AUicr. Their principal cities were Lyons, Geneva, Basle, Autun, and Langrcs. Such Avas the origin of the kingdom of A.D. 410-447. THE FRANKS— AETI US. 27 Burgundy, which lasted upward of a century, and was ultimately merged in the empire of the Franks. Both the Burgundians and the Visigoths were Christians, but had embraced the heresy of Arius, which at the time of their conversion was pi'ofessed and favored by the reigning emperor Valens. The Franks, a people destined eventually to become the found- ers of the most splendid monarchy of Europe, continued long the allies of Rome, and sustained in many a hai'd-fought field the sink- ing fortunes of the empire. Their earliest settlements Av^re be- tween the Rhine, the Scheldt, and. the Ardennes mountains — the country formerly inhabited by the Nervii and Menapii : it was now called Toxandria. By successive encroachments the Franks gained possession of the whole of Belgium, and at length advanced their boundaries to the banks of Somme. In 413 they captured and plundered, for the fourth time, the Roman metropolia of Treves, and subsequently occupied Cologne and the entire territory be- tween the Meuse and the Rhine. The Franks, it must be ob- served, were not a single nation, but a confederation consisting of various cognate tribes, of which the principal were the Salii, the Ripuarii, the Sicambri, the Bructeri, and the Chamavi. The coun- try subject to them became known from a very early date by the name of Francia.* § 3. Under the successor of Honoi-ius, Valentinian III., a child of six years old, the task of maintaining the imperial government in the west was undertaken by Aetius, a general who by his tal- ents and energy retarded for near thirty years the extinction of the Roman rule in Gaul, and acquired the title of the "last of the Romans." The army commanded by Aetius was composed al- most entirely of barbarian troops. His first successes were ob- tained over the Visigoths of southern Gaul ; next he attacked the Burgundians, expelled them from the districts of the Vosges and the Moselle, and drove them back into the mountains of Savoy. A more memorable exploit was his defeat of the Salian Franks under Clodion, who, in 447, had seized the cities of Tournay and Cambrai, and were ravaging the whole province of Belgica Se- cunda. They Avere overthrown with immense slaughter at a place called Helena, and chased back beyond the Scheldt. Aetius marched afterward against the revolted Bagaudse in the valley of the Loire, and inflicted on them three decisive defeats. In mem- ory of these victories we find him extolled by the contemporary poet Sidonius Apollinaris as the " Liberator of the Loire." While the triumphs of Aetius thus seemed to promise a revival of the supremacy of Rome, a fresh tide of barbarism was prepar- ing to launch itself upon western Europe. The ferocious Attila, * For farther particulars respecting the Franks, see Notes and Illustrations (A). 28 ATTILA'S INVASION. Chap." III. king of the Huns, marched upon Gaul with a motley multitude numbering, according to Jornandes, 500,000 warriors : he crossed the Khine in February, 451, and overran all the border provinces, marking his route with horrible cruelties and merciless devasta- tion. Metz was taken by storm and reduced to ashes ; Troyes was next assaulted, and owed its preservation, according to tradi- tion, to the courageous self-devotion of its bishop, Lupus, or St. Loup. Orleans, in like manner, is said to have been saved by the intervention of St. Aignan. The terrified citizens of Lutetia, on the point of abandoning their homes and property to the havoc of the spoiler, were reassured by a peasant maiden named Genoveva, who announced, in the name of Heaven, that the invaders would not be permitted to come within sight of the walls. The event verified her predictions : Attila, instead of advancing upon Paris, turned aside toward the Marne ; and Genoveva has been honored in all subsequent ages, under the name of St. Genevieve, as the tutelary saint of the metropolis of France. Aetius, having been joined by Theodoric the Visigoth, followed the track of the retreating Huns, and came up with them in the plains of Champagne, not far from Chalons-sur-Marne. Here Avas fought, in the last days of June, 451, one of the most sanguinary battles recoi'ded in history. The noble Theodoric fell pierced by an arrow at the commencement of the action, and was trampled to death by a charge of cavalry. His son Thorismund was severe- ly wounded, and narrowly escaped capture. When night fell, such had been the prodigious numbers engaged, and such the confusion Avhich reigned throughout the field, that it was impossible to de- termine which side remained victorious. The morning revealed the terrible extent of the destruction ; it is said to have reached the almost incredible number of 162,000 slain. Attila remained inactive in his camp, and was thus understood to confess himself vanquished ; but neither army was in a condition to renew hos- tilities. The Visigoths, and the Franks under Merovig, who had fought gallantly under the banners of Aetius, took their departure, and when Attila broke up his camp and retired, Aetius prudent- ly foi'bore to molest his retreat. Attila evacuated Gaul, and vin- dicated his title of the " Scourge of God" by wasting northern Italy, and carrying devastation to the gates of Rome. He died in 453, and with him fell the empire of the Huns, which at one time threatened to overwhelm the whole of western Europe. Soon after the great victory of Chalons, Aetius fell a victim to the jealousy of the dastai'dly Valentinian, Avho sent for him to Eome, and murdered him in liis own palace in the presence of his courtiers. In the course of the following year the emperor was himself assassinated, in revenge for a private outrage. A.D.447-47G. FALL OF THE WESTERlSf EMPIRE. 29 § 4. Under Avitus and Majorian, who succeeded, the shadow of imperial authority continued to linger in Gaul, and the gov- ei-nment was confided to the patrician ^gidius. His good qual- ities procured him such estimation among the J'rankish tribes that they deposed their king Hilderic or Childeric, and elected the Roman general to fill his place. Childeric retii'ed into Thu- ringia, but was recalled by his subjects eight years afterward, and war immediately followed between -ZEgidius and the Franks. The latter recovered all the territory of which they had been dis- possessed by Aetius ; they even expelled the Romans from Lute- tia, and forced them back upon the Loire. -ZEgidius was succeed- ed in 465 by his son Syagrius, Avho established himself at Sois- sons, and seems to have governed, under the title of Count, in the districts of the Oise, the Somme. the Marne, and the Aisne. It was during the administration of Syagrius that the crum- bling edifice of the Westei'n Empire at length fell prostrate, nev- er to rise again. In the year 476 the army broke out into re- volt, deposed the Emperor Romulus Augustulus, and placed the government in the hands of Odoacer, chieftain of the Heruli, one of the Gothic tribes. Odoacer proclaimed that the Empire of the West had ceased to exist, and took possession of Italy under the modest title of Patrician, pretending that he held it as a de- pendent province of the Byzantine crown. Syagrius, on the news of these events, sent an embassy to the Emperor Zeno, offering to rise in arms against Odoacer; but Zeno prudently declined the proposal, and, making a treaty with the usurper, confirmed him in the government of Italy, while he abandoned Gaul altogether to its own resources and destinies. It was impossible to foresee which of the several powers among which Gaul was then divided, or whether any of them, would ul- timately obtain the dominion of the country. At first sight the chances seemed in favor of the Visigoths, whose monarchy, now reaching to the banks of the Loire, comprised at least a third part of Gaul, Avhile toward the south it stretched beyond the Pyrenees into the heart of Spain. But there was one great obstacle to the complete establishment of the power of the Visigoths in Gaul ; they professed an hei-etical forrri of Christianity — they were Ari- ans, while the mass of the- Gallo-Roman population was firmly attached to the primitive Catholic faith. This difference of be- lief engendered among the orthodox bishops and clergy a deep aversion to the Visigothic rule ; and the influence of the priest- hood being then predominant, it was evident that the final arbi- tration lay mainly in their hands. Amid the general decomposi- tion of the ancient social system, the lower orders had learned to look up to the Church as their most powerful defender ; it waa 30 CLOVIS KING OF THE FEANKS. Chap. III. the bishop who administered justice, redressed grievances, ap- ])eased tumults, sheltered the fugitive in the asylum of his palace, and alleviated by his charity the miseries of war. An authority thus deeply rooted and universally respected was not likely to accept the dominion of a race of foreign heretics, who lost no opportunity of oppressing and persecuting, even to imprisonment and death, the professors of the true faith. The bishops looked round for some new element by means of which the wreck of so- ciety might be .reconstructed ; and they were led, by virtuous mo- tives, to fix their hopes upon the Franks, who, although still pa- gans, seemed open to any powerful influence, and offered a prom- ising field for missionary enterprise. The Franks were at that moment in the rudest state of barbarous ignorance, unskilled in military science, and to all appearance quite unfit to cope with such a vigorous empire as that of the Visigoths ; but, armed with the patronage and co-operation of the Church, their ultimate tri- umph was secure — for the Gallic nation, as distinguished from the extraneous races of the barbaric invasion, Avas thus engaged in their favor. Such, doubtless, was the secret of the great social revolution of the close of the fifth century in Gaul. " It was the Church," as M. Michelet observes, " that made the fortune of the Franks."* § 5. Chikleric, king of the Taiian Franks, died at Tournay, his capital, in the year 481. During his exile in Thuringia he had seduced, and afterward married, Basina, wife of the king of that country. The issue of this union was a son named Chlodowig, better known by his Latin designation of Olovis. When he suc- ceeded his father, Clovis was not more than fifteen years of age. This is the epoch usually, and on the whole correctly, assigned to the foundation of the French monarchy. It must, however, be observed that, at the time of his accession, Clovis did not pos- sess a foot of territory within the present boundaries of France, and was merely the chieftain of a petty tribe numbering no more than 5000 soldiers. In the fifth year of his reign, at the age of twenty, Clovis marched against Syagrius, the (so-called) Roman governor of the district around Soissons. The armies met near that city ; Syagrius was defeated; and, having no means of renew- i ng the contest, fled to the court of Alaric the Visigoth at Tou- louse. Clovis seized the territory which he had governed, and thus swept away the last remaining vestige of Eoman domination in Gaul. Syagrius Avas delivered up by the treacherous Goth into the hands of the conqueror, who, after detaining him in pris- on wliile he completed the reduction of his late dominions, put him secretly to death. * Michelet, Hist. F., i.. 195. A.D. 476-496. HIS BAPTISM.. gi An incident in this first campaign of Clovis deserves notice as illustrating the manners of the times, the rude form of govern- ment which prevailed among the Frankish tribes, and the person- al character of their leader. The soldiers had carried off from one of the churches of Reims a consecrated vase of considerable beauty and value. The Bishop of Eeims sent a messenger to Clovis to entreat that the vase might be restored. The kino- promised satisfaction ; and, at a general division of spoil which took place at Soissons, he requested, as a favor, that the precious vase might be placed at his disposal, in addition to the portion which fell to him by lot. All consented, with the exception of one soldier, who, raising his battle-axe, struck a violent blow at the vase, exclaiming, " Never shalt thou have more than thy allot- ted share." Clovis dissembled his resentment ; but a year after- ward, at a general review of his troops, he approached the soldier who had thus insulted him, and, taking his axe from his hands, threw it at his feet, Avith a reproof for not keeping his arms in better condition. The man stooped to pick up his weapon, when Clovis, seizing the moment, cleft his skull with a single blow of his own battle-axe. " It was thus," cried the stern chief, " that thou didst cleave the vase at Soissons." In the year 493 Clovis espoused Clotilda, a Burgundian prin- cess, who had been educated in the orthodox faith, although her nearest relatives wei-e Arians. Possibly Clovis was aware of and appi-eciated this fact ; at all events, his union with Clotilda was a politic and fortunate step, as it procured him the support of the Gallo-Eoman Church, and powerfully furthered his design of bringing the whole country under his dominion. Clotilda labored earnestly to effect the conversion of her hiisband ; but Clovis, though he permitted their eldest child to be baptized, refused for some years to make any farther concession to the entreaties of his consort. At length an emergency arose which brought about an event thus anxiously desired, and fraught with such important consequences. In 496 the powerful tribes of th'e Alemanni, hitherto on friend- ly terms with the Franks, crossed the Rhine and attacked the Ripuarian Franks, whose principal city was Cologne. The Ripu- arians besought the aid of Clovis ; the Salian chief marched to their support, and the combined army of the Franks gave battle to the Alemanni at a place called Tolbiac, near Cologne. The shock was rude, and the event for some time uncertain ; but, in the critical moment, Clovis raised his hands to heaven, and, in- voking the God of Clotilda, vowed that if victory should declare for his banners, he would at once accept the Christian faith and present himself for baptism. Then, rushing into the thickest of 32 CLOVIS. Chap. lil. the fight, he rallied his wavering troops by his example : after a desperate struggle, the Alemanni, having lost their king, gave way on all sides, and abandoned the field. The victorious Franks pursued them beyond the Rhine ; several of the defeated tribes became the vassals of the conquerors, and a large part of their territory was annexed to the Frankish dominion. On his return from the campaign Clovis did not forget his engagement contract- ed on the field of battle. Submitting himself to the instructions of St. Eemy, he soon announced himself prepared to receive the initiatory rite of our religion. It took place, with all possible pomp and splendor, in the basilica of Reims, on the feast of Christmas, 496. "Bow thy head, Sicambrian !" said St. Remy, who officiated ; " adore what thou hast hitherto burned — burn what thou hast hitherto adored !"* Upward of three thousand Franks, the flower of the nation, were baptized on the same day. § 6. It is impossible to oven-ate the importance of this event in the then condition of the Western world. Christianity, as em- braced by Clovis and his followers, became a principle of unity by which the various heterogeneous elements of society in Gaul were assimilated and harmonized. The whole strength of the Church was now enlisted on the side of the Franks, and the alliance was eminently serviceable to the interests of both parties. The Church found in the advancing power of Clovis an instrument which might humble the persecuting tyranny of the Visigoths and Burgundians, and unite the whole country in dutiful submission to the see of St. Peter ; while Clovis acquii'ed in the Church an ally possessing the full confidence of the people whose land he aimed to conquer, and ready to proclaim him as the chosen of Heaven, whose sceptre would prove the surest guaranty of a na- tion's prosperity and greatness. Either without the other must have failed, but together they were irresistible. One of the first results of the conversion of Clovis Avas the sub- mission of the Armorican states, which in 497 made a treaty of alliance with the Franks, and became, in fact, their tributaries. Clovis thus advanced his boundaries from the Seine to the Loire. Three years later Clovis declared war against the Burgundian king Gondebald, a sanguinary tyrant who had murdered his two elder brothers, one of them being the father of Queen Clotilda. The ai'my of the Franks gained an easy and complete victory over the Burgundians near Dijon ; Gondebald made his submis- sion to Clovis, and agreed to hold his dominions upon payment of an annual tribute. He was compelled to make ample conces- sions to the Catholics of his kingdom, who were now placed in all * "Mitis depone colla, Sicamber; adora quod incendisti, incende quod adorasti." — Gregor. Tuvon., ii., c. 31. A.D. 49G-507. HIS CONQUEST OF THE VISIGOTHS. 33 respects on an equal footing with his Arian subjects. It was on this occasion that Gondebald pubHshed the code of Burgundian law known as the "Loi Gombette," by which the condition of the conquered race in Gaul was greatly improved and elevated. By the extension of his frontier to the Loire Clovis was brought " into contact with the empire of the Visigoths, and his ambition soon prompted him to seek fresh conquests in this direction. It was easy to find a pretext for the undertaking. Haranguing his warriors at their annual gathering in the Champ de Mars — " It grieves me," said Clovis, "to see the- misbelieving Visigoths in possession of the fairest provinces of Gaul. Let us march ; with the aid of God we shall surely overcome them, and divide their lands among ourselves." Clovis crossed the Loire in the summer of 507, and found the Visigoths, under their king Alaric II., en- camped toward the centre of Poitou. Propitious omens and mi- raculous interpositions are said to have waited on the path of the Frankish hero. Victory was promised him by a verse of the Psalms which the choir were chanting when his envoy entered the church of St. Martin at Tours. A white hind, of supernatu- ral size and beauty, pointed out a fordable spot in the swollen river Vienne.* A brilliant meteor was seen to stream forth from the steeple of St. Hilary at Poitiers, and take its course in the di- rection of the camp of Clovis. t The hostile armies met in the plains of Vouille', a few miles west of Poitiers, if The contest was neither long nor doubful, for the Gallo-Roman subjects of Alaric longed for the success of the Franks, and made but a feeble resist- ance. Alaric was slain by Clovis with his own hand ; his army was irretrievably broken and dispersed. Clovis took possession of the province of Aquitania Prima, from the Loire to the Garonne, and passed the winter at Bordeaux. In the following spring he pursued his conquest southward, captured Toulouse, and laid siege to Carcassonne. But meanwhile the powerful Theodoric the Ostrogoth, seeing the imminent danger of the extinction of the Gothic rule north of the Pyrenees, dispatched an army to the succor of the Visigoths, and the Franks were decisively I'epulsed before Aries. Clovis retraced his steps, and the Visigoths were thus enabled to preserve a small portion of their territory, called Septimania, of which the capital was Narbonne. Their northern provinces were reduced permanently under the yoke of Clovis. On his return, the victor received at Tours a congratulatory em- bassy from Anastasius, emperor of the East, who invested him * This spot is still known by the name of the " Gue de la Biche" (hind's ford), neai- the town of Lussac. t Greg, of Tours, ii., 36. X The field of battle is placed by some at Voulon, ten miles south of Poi- tiers. H. Martin, i.. 449. B 2 34 CLOVIS : HIS CEIMES. Chap. III. "with the titles and insignia of Consul and Patrician. This was an additional sanction to his authority in Gaul, and tended much to the consolidation of his empire; for Clovis was now looked upon as having legitimately succeeded to all the rights and jurisdiction of the Roman Csesars. § 7. The latter years of Clovis were stained by savage and re- ' morseless crime. Up to this time the Franks were a confedera- tion of tribes, each governed by its independent chief: Clovis, though raised by his talents to the supreme command of the na- tion, was in his own right no more than King of the Salians, and there was no guaranty that the rank of commander in chief would descend to his posterity. He resolved, therefore, to change the federative constitution into a monarchy, and to make the kingly power hereditary in his own family. This he accomplished by a series of delibex-ate murders. He first instigated the son of Sige- bert, king of the Eipuarians, to take the life of his aged father ; the parricide was immediately afterward slain by his orders, and Clovis then easily persuaded the Ripuarians to accept him as their sovereign. The chieftain of Arras was next deposed, and, after having been compelled to receive the tonsure as a priest, was be- headed, together with his son. In the same. way Ragnachaire, who reigned at Cambrai, and his brother, were betrayed into the power of Clovis, and put to death with his own hand. And, lastly, a similar fate befell the^Frankish chieftain of Le Mans. All these princes belonged, like Clovis, to the royal house of the Merovingians, and some of them were his near relatives. It is remarkable that these fearful atrocities are related with the most perfect coolness, and without a word of censure, by the historian Gregory of Tours, a man of distinguished piety and excellence. Such were the means by which Clovis found himself, in the year 510, sole sovereign of the Franks. He did not long enjoy the success of his sanguinary enterprise. This extraordinary man died at Paris on the 27th of November, 511, at the age of forty-five, after a reign of thirty years. He was buried in the church of St. Peter and St. Paul, founded by himself and Clotilda, which became afterward the abbey church of Ste. Genevieve. Chap. III. ORIGIN OF THE FEANKS. 35 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. A. ON THE ORIGIN OF THE FRANKS. Tliis is an obscure subject, which has given rise to much controversy and various fanciful theories. According to the mediaeval chron- icles, the Franks were lineally descended from the ancient Trojans, and had for their pro- genitor a certain Francus, or Francion, a son of Hector. Escaping from the sack of Troy, they took refuge in Thrace, and there found- ed a city called Sicambria, from which tliey acquired the name of Sicambri. Driven thence in course of time by the Goths, the Franks traversed Germany, and established themselves at length on the Rhine. Such was the favorite popular belief up to the re- vival of letters in the IGth century. Another account was then put forth, which made the Franks an emigrant colony of the Celts of Gaul, who, after a lengthened expatriation in Germany, returned at the time of the great invasion to re-establish themselves in their native land. This view was much in vogue during the reign of Louis XIV., since it ex- plained away the conquest of Gaul by the barbarians in the 5th century. The Franks, on this hypothesis, entered Gaul for tlie pur- pose of delivering their fellow-countrymen from the foreign yoke of Rome ; the monarchy which they founded was a native and legit- imate monarchy ; and Gaul, under their rule, tecame once more an independent empire as of old. Tlie celebrated Leibnitz, again, con- jectured, from a passage in the anonymous Geographer of Ravenna, that the original set- tlement of the Franks was on the shores of the Northern Ocean, near tlie embouchure of the Elbe, in a territory called Maurungavia. And mucli discussion has arisen upon an an- cient tradition mentioned by Gregory of Tours (ii., 9) which would fix the birthplace of the Franks in Pannonia or Hungary. It was not till tlie year 1714 that the ex- planation now generally accepted as the true one was first published by Nicholas Freret, a member of the French Academie des Inscrip- tions et Belles Lettres. The Franks, accord- ing to this system, were never a single., dis- tinct people, and it is therefore idle to attempt to trace tlreir descent, or to determine pre- cisely their original place of residence. They were a confederation or league of Teutonic tribes, formed early in the 3d century, and seated in Lower Germany, between the We- ser, the Main, and the Rhine, adjoining on the south and on the east tlie similar confed- erations of the Sa.xons and the Alemanni. No mention is to be found of the Franks, un- der that name^i in any ancient classical au- thor ; they are not even noticed by Tacitus in his enumeration of the tribes of Germany. Tlie word Fkancia, however, appears in a map of the Roman empire dating from the reign of Theodosius the Great, in the locality just specified on the eastern bank of the Rhine ; and dispersed over the. same district we find the names of the Cherusci, Amsibarii, Chauci, and Chamavi. These, then, it is in- ferred, were the principal tribes of the Frank- ish confederation ; to which several others also belonged — the Bructeri, Sicambri, At- tuarii, Gatti, etc. Their collective designa- tion, Franks, has usually been taken to mean free meri: it appears, however, that the Ger- man word frek, frak, or frenk^ answers rath- er to the Latin ferox^ in its various significa- tions of bold, brave, haughty, fierce, and cruel. Although the Frankish tribes were nom- inally independent of each other, each pos- sessing its own chieftain, yet in process of time a certain predominance was acquired by one or two over the rest. The warlike Salians, who, toward the close of the 3d century, ob- tained a fixed settlement in the north of Gaul, became, in consequence of this success and other advantages, the dominant tribe ; and it was from one of their families, that of the Me7-oioings^ or children of Merowig, that the confederation chose its military leaders, as occasion arose. Such was the origin of what is commonly called the Merovingian line of kings. Pharamond, the son of Markomir, who is named by the chroniclers, and also by many modern writers, as the first in the series of Frankish monarchs, is now generally regard- ed as a legendary or fictitious, not a real per- sonage. " Qrtoique son nom soit bieu Germa- nique," says Aug. Thierry, ^^et son regno possible, il ne figure pas dans les histoires les plus dignes de foi." The earliest well au- thenticated king of the Salian Franks is Chlo- dion or Clodion, whose residence was at Uis- parguni, supposed to be Duisburg, between Brussels and Louvain. Clodion greatly ex- tended his territories, made himself master of Tournay and Cambrai, and penetrated as far south as the Somme. lie was defeated, however, by Aetius in 431 (as mentioned in the text), and after this concluded a treaty with the victor, in virtue of which the Salians became allies of the Romans, and furnished a contingent to their armies in Gaul. It was in this capacity that Meroveus or Merowig, who succeeded Clodion in 448, fought at the head of his tribe under the Roman banners in the great battle of Chalons. Merowig died in 458, and was succeeded by his son Childeric. The league between the Franks and the Ro- mans, which had lasted twenty j'ears, was now broken by the intrigues of jFgidius, the imperial magister militioe in Gaul ; and Chil- deric, as related in the text, was expelled from his dominions. In 463 he was triumph- antly restored, and maintained a gallant and successful contest with ^Fgidius until the death of the latter in 4C5. After this Chil- deric renewed the alliance with the Romans, and supported them in arms against the Visi- goths, the Saxons, and the Alemanni. In ac- knowledgment of his services, he received from the Emperor Zeno the appointment of magister militioB in Gaul, a dignity which gave him a decided pre-eminence over the 36 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Chap. III. rest of the barbarian tribes, and in virtue of which the Franks claimed for their monarchs the right of legitimate succession from the Roman (Jsesare. (Jhilderic passed his latter yeare in peace and prosperity; at his death in 4S1 his honoi-s -were inherited by his son Clovis, who became the real founder of tlie Franliish empire. The various questions connected with the origin of the Franks and the consequences of their establishment in Gaul are largely dis- cussed by the following writers, who may be consulted with advantage : Oomte de Boulain- villiers, Hist aire de VAncie7i Gouvernenient de la France; Abbe Dubos, Histoire Critique de V Etablissement de la Mormrchie FranQaise dans les Gaiiles; Montesquieu, Esprit des Lois, liv. sxx. ; Lehuerou, InstitiUions Me- rovingiennes ; Abbe de Mably, Observatio7is sur V Histoire de F'ranee; Augustin Thierry, Recits des Te'mx)s Merovingiens ; Guizot, Es- sais sur VHistoire de France. 'rhe relations between the Franks and the G-allo-Roman population in the Merovingian times form a fruitful topic of controversy among the above-cited authors. Boulainvil- liers, founding his system on the complete conquest and subjugation of Gaul by the Franks, maintains that the descendants of the latter, the haute noblesse of France, pos- sessed inalienably the position and rights of a dominant race, while the plebeian mass of the nation, the posteiity of tlie vanquished Celts, remained always and of necessity in a state of serf-like subjection. The learned Dubos, on the contrary, altogether ignores and repudiates the Frankish conquest, insist- ing that the Merovingian princes had been in- vested with the government of Gaul by the Roman emperors, and therefore exercised le- gitimately all the rights of sovereignty. The social and administrative condition of Gaul, according to him, remained under the Franks precisely what it had been under the Romans ; Franks and Gauls lived together on a perfect- ly equal footing, and were alike eligible to all public offices and liable to all public burdens. Montesquieu combats, and to a great extent overthrows, the theoiy of Dubos. The Abbe de Mably adopts certain portions of both sys- tems, and draws from them inferences tend- ing strongly to^'ard popular liberty and dem- ocratical government. The general conclu- sions of the modern philosophical school of historians may be seen in Guizot' s Essais, Nos. 2 and 4, and in the Becits Merovingiens of Thierry, vol. i., chaps. 2, 4, D. B. THE CONSULSHIP OF CLOVIS. The investiture of Clovis with the consular dignity by the Eastern emperor, altliough it added nothing to his real power, was a for- tunate circumstance of which the conqueror gladly took advantage to ratify and consoli- date liis already acquired sovereignty. It is plain, from the account given by Gregory of Tours, that botli Clovis himself and his sub- jects, barbarian and Roman, attached consid- erable importance to the fact. "• Igitur ah Anastasio Imperatore codicillos de consulatu accepit, et in basilica beati Martini tunica bla- te;\ indutus est et clilamyde, imponens verti- ci diadema. Tunc ascenso equite, aurum ar- gentumque .... prEesentihus populis manu propria spargens, voluntate benignissima ero- gavit, et ab ea die tanquam consul et Augus- tus est vocitatus." (Greg. Turon., il., 38.) Hincmar, in his life of S. Remy, says more precisely, "ab ea die consul et Augustus est appellatus." The Abbe Dubos asserts, but altogether without proof, that Clovis received from the emperor the appointment of jjrocon- sul as well as that of consul ; other writers imagine that the Frankish chieftain was form- ally designated as Associate in the Empire. This is adopted by Sir Francis Palgrave {Rise and Progress of the English Commomuealth., i., p. 36U), and substantially by Mr. Hallam (Middle Ages., i., note iii.). M. Lehuerou, in his able work, the Histoire des Institutions Merovingicnnes^ arrives at the following con- clusions : That the definitive establishment of the Franks in Roman Gaul resulted at the same time from the voluntary concessions of the emperors and from their own violent ag- gressions. That the Merovingians reigned partly by legitimate succession, and partly by right of conquest. That the earlier Frank- ish kings, Meroveus and Childeric, had en- gaged in the service of the emperors as foede- raii, and in that quality had received ter- ritories, which they distributed among their soldiers, after the example of the Visigoths and Burgundians. That Clovis, whose reign did not commence till after the fall of the em- pire, nevertheless recognized, like the Visi- goths of Spain, the Ostrogoths of Italy, the Burgundians of Gaul, the superiority, and up to a certain point the suzerainship, of the Emperors of the East. That the Gallo-Ro- man provincials coincided in this view, and that consequently their acquiescence in the government of Cluvis became more willing and more complete from the moment of his nomination as consul and patrician, acknowl- edged dignities of the ancient empire. Last- ly, that, long after Clovis and his posterity had become independent masters of Gaul, the Jlerovingian princes looked upon the Eastern emperors as their superioi-s., and addressed them, when occasion arose, in terms express- ive of this relationship. For instance, The- odebert, writing to the Emperor Justinian, commences thus ; " Domino illustri et prse- cellentissimo et patri, Justiniano Imperatori, Theodebertus rex." In speaking of tliem- selves, on the other hand, the Frankish mon- archs use the terms "vir illustris," "-potes- tas," "gloria," "celsitudo," titles of second- ary and subordinate honor, reserving that of niujestas for the emperor alone. Considerable stress has been laid upon an act of cession by Justinian to Theodebert, king of Austrasia, in 540, by which the Greek emperor abandoned to the Franks all his rights of sovereignty in Gaul. The historian Procopius states that from that time forward, and onlij from that date, the Frankish kings deemed themselves authorized to preside at the games in the circus at Aries, like the Pra^'- torian prefects of old, and to strike golden coins bearing their own effigy. But this was a mei'e piece of empty affectation on the part of the emperor, and the facts are probably ex- Chap. III. CONSULSHIP OF CLOVIS. 37 aggerated by the vanity and boastfulness of the Byzantine chronicler. The Emperor of Constantinople did not possess at this time a single rood of teri'ltory in Gaul, and had no rights of empire to give up but what were purely imaginary. The Franks had occupied the country for upward of fifty years ; their government was firmly established, their au- thority undisputed. Nevertheless, the cir- cumstance related by Procopius is curious find not without importance, as illustrating the traditional and ostensible relationship be- tween the barbarian conqueroi's of Gaul and their imperial predecessors. 38 GENEALOGY OF THE MEROVINGIANS. CUAP. IV. Genealogical Table of the Merovingian Dtnastt. Clodion (42T-44S). i Meroveus (448-458). I Childeric I. (458-481). 1 Clovis (4S1-511). Thierry I., k. of Metz. Chlodomir, k. of Orleans. Childebert I., k. of Paris. Clotaire I., k. of Soissous, sole king (558-551). Caribert, k. of Paris, (ob. 56T). Gontran, , of Burgundy. Theodebert, k. of Austrasia (ob. 612). Sigebert I., k. of Austrasia (ob. 575). I Childebert n., k. of Austrasia and Burgundy. Thierry IL, k. of Burgundy (ob. C13). Chilperic I., k. of Soissons (ob. 684). Clotaire II., sole king (613-628). Dagobert I. , sole king (628-638). Caribert, k. of Aquitaine. Sigebert II., k. of Austrasia. Dagobert II., k. of Austrasia. Clotaire IV., k. of Austrasia (ob. 719). Clovis II. (638-656). Clotaire III., k. of Neustria (656-6T0). I Clovis (CT3-674). d, of Aquitaine. I Eudes, d. of Aquitaine (68S-T35). Childeric II., k. of Austrasia. Chilperic II. Thierry III., k. of Burgundy. Clovis III. (691-695). Childeric III. (T42-752), deposed by Pepin le Bref. Childebert III (695-711). Dagobert III. (711-715). Thierry IV (720-737). m.ijiiWii['ance and its ruler at the head of the Western Empire. The Frank was evidently dazzled by the splendor of the prospect ; he dismissed the embassadors with a favorable answer, and appointed some of his most distinguished nobles to attend them on their return, and express his sentiments to Gregory. This was the first in a chain of transactions which brought about an important political change in the history of Europe. Had Charles lived longer, he would doubtless have made an armed descent upon Italy, and might have acquired the imperial diadem which fell to the lot of his grandson. But, whatever his visions of glory and distant do- minion, they were not destined to be realized : worn out prema- turely by the toils of a life spent in perpetual warfare, Charles Martel expired in 741, at Kiersy-sur-Oise, in the fifty-second year of his age. He divided his " principality" — that is, the Frank empire — between his sons Carloman and Pepin, assigning to the former Austrasia, with the territories beyond the Rhine ; while the latter received as his inheritance Neustria, Burgundy, and Provence. This arrangement was peaceably carried into effect. § 14. Charles Martel had left the Merovingian throne unoccu- pied ; his sons sought out the last descendant of the house of Clovis, and pi'oclairaed him king- by the name of Childeric III. Their next endeavor was to effect a reformation in the Church, which, during the whole of their father's government, had remain- ed in a wretched state of disorganization. In this undertaking they were vigorously seconded by the illustrious Anglo-Saxon Winifrid, or St. Boniface, who about this time M'as consecrated Archbishop of Mayence. An arrangement was made with the clergy, by which the present holders of the confiscated church-es- tates were to retain them during life, under the title of "preca- ria," on condition of paying the dispossessed proprietor a rent- charge assessed upon the land according to its value. As the es- tates fell in by death, the princes reserved to themselves the right of redistributing them according to their own discretion and the necessities of the public service. This great boon to the priest- hood doubtless had its effect in again attaching them to the fami- ly and interests of Pepin ; and Pepin well knew that the good- will and co-operation of the Church were essential to his success in the project which he meditated — the deposition of the Mero- vingians, and transfer of their crown to himself and his posterity. The course of events favored this result. In 747 Carloman an- nounced his resolution to renounce the cares of state, and spend the rest of his days in ascetic seclusion. Having resigned the 56 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Chap. IV. government of Austrasia and the guardianship of his children into the hands of Pepin, he proceeded to Rome, received the clerical habit, and took tlie vows in the Benedictine monastery of Monte Cassino. In 751, having fully matured his plans, Pepin sent embassadors to Rome to propound the following question to the sovereign pon- tiff: whether the throne of the Merovingians could be considered as rightfully belonging to them in their present state of useless insignificance ; whether it did not belong more legitimately to him who exercised all the power and sustained all the responsi- bility of government. Pope Zacharias, who had doubtless been prepared for this inquiry, decided without hesitation that he who wielded the authority and fulfilled the duties of the kingly ofiice ought also to enjoy its titles, honors, and prerogatives. Fortified by this high spiritual sanction, Pepin convoked an assembly of bishops and nobles in March, 752, and caused himself to be pro- claimed King of the Franks, with all accustomed solemnities. St. Boniface anointed the new sovereign with the holy oil — a rite which was considered to invest Pepin and his descendants with a quasi-ecclesiastical and sacred character. Childeric Avas now formally deposed, tonsured, and immured in a convent at St. Omer, where he died in peace and scarcely noticed three years afterward. Such was the inglorious extinction of the first race of Prankish sovereigns, who had reigned for a period of 270 years from the accession of Clovis. A new dynasty succeeded, founded upon diflferent principles, and fraught with new elements of social, re- ligious, and political development. This line of princes, taking their designation from their renowned founder, Charles Martel, is known as that of the Carlovingians.* NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. A. ON THE MAYORS OF THE PALACE. These officers existed from a very early date among the Franks. The Major Domus was originally, as the name implies, the king's pi-incipal domestic, the master or comptroller of the household ; he superintended the in- terior concerns of the palace, and exercised a certain authority over the leudes or antrus- tions, the confidential companions and vassals of the king. It was his duty to maintain or- der ivlthin the precincts of the court, to de- cide disputes among the nobles, and to direct the general economy of the royal establish- ment. The appointment was of course vest- ed in the king, and held during his pleasure. Gradually, howevei-, and in consequence of jealousy which arose between the crown and the aristocracy, the Mayor of the Palace be- came the leader of the aristocratical iivction, and usurped political power ; and by success- ive encroacliments the office was at length wrested from tlie king, and became elective in the hands of the nobles. It is necessary, tlierefore, as Jlontesquieu obsei"ves, to make a wide distinction between the earlier and the later Mayors of the Palace, between the mayors of the king and tlie mayora of the kingdom)). .Pepin of I.anden, Pepin of Hcri- stal, Ebroin, Cliarles Martel, had scarcely * From Carlingen, sons of Charles; the name is more correctly written Carolingiaiis. ClIAP. IV. MEROVINGIAN HISTORY, 57 any tiling in common, beyond the title, with tlie mayors of Clovis and liis immediate suc- ce.-irfor.-?. In 5T5, upon the death of Sigliebert and accession of Childebert, a child of five years old, the Austrasian leudes assembled at Metz, and chose a mayor to protect the young king's person, supeiintend his educa- tion, and administer tlie government in his name. This became a precedent which was engerly quoted and imitated on otlier occa- sions ; tlie leudes boldly claimed the nomin- ation of the mayors as their right ; and al- though this was resisted on the part of the crown, especially by Brunchaut in Austrasia, they ended by establishing their usurpation. In 61.3, after the overthrow and death of Brunehaut, Warnachaire, mayor of Burgun- dy, who had been one of the chief conspira- tor.j against the queen, extorted a pledge from (Jlotaire II. that he should retain the dignity for life, an important step toivard in- dependence and virtual sovereignty. A like stipulation was exacted by Radon for the may- oralty of Austrasia, and by Gondebald for that of Xeustria. (Fredegarius, cap. 4'2.) A rival power was thus constituted in the state, tlie inevitable' tendency of which was to sup- plant and overturn tlie Merovingian dynas- ty. Clotaire struggled to shake off the yoke, but in vain; Warnachaire enjoyed his of- fice tiU his death, and the king then in- quired of the leudes assembled at Troyes which of their number they desired to name as his successor. In Austrasia matters were carried still farther. Clotaire was compelled to make his son Dagobert nominally king in that part of the empire, with Fepin of Landen as Mayor of the Palace. That nobleman, like Warnachaire, had taken a conspicuous part in the revolution which ruined Brune- haut. Possessed of immense domains and wealth, Pepin attempted to perpetuate the office of mayor, in which the whole govern- ment now centered, in his own familj'. The scheme failed for the moment, but succeeded in the end; Pepin's descendants retained the supreme power in its fullest extent, and eventually removed the Rois faineants and took possession of their throna Ji. de Sismondi conceives that the Mayor of the Palace was not originally an officer of the royal household, but a civil magistrate, a sort of tribune of the people, answering very much to the famous Junticia in the ancient constitution of Aragon. According to him, the German appellation was mord-doui^ which signifies a judge of 'murder^ or dooms- m.an. This derivation, however, is entirely rejected by Guizot, Michelet, and H. Martin. B. MEROVINGIAN HISTORY. Mr. Hallam {Middle. Ages^ i., p. 117) has distributed the history of these kings into the six following divisions, which the student will find useful in recollecting this intricate period : I. The reign of Clovis. II. Partition among his four sons, and their reigns, till the death of Clotaire I., the sur- vivor, in 561. Aggrandizement of the mon- archy. Hi! a second partition among the four sons of Clotaire I. The four kingdoms of (1) Paris, (2) Orleans, (3) Soissons, (4) Metz. Re- duced to three by the death of Caribert of Paris. Formation of the kingdom of Neus- tn'a^ including those of Paris and Soissons, and of Austrasia or that of Metz, the Meuse and the forest of Ardennes being the bounda- ries between them. The third kingdom to the south was now called Bu-rgundy. Power of the two queens, Fredegonde of Neustria, and Brunehaut of Austrasia. Brunehaut put to death by Clotaire II., king of Neustria, who unites the three Frank kingdoms, 613. IV. Reigns of Clotaire II. and his son Da- gobert I., 613-G3S. Dagobert was one of the most powerful, but also the last of the Mero- vingian kings worthy of the name. The Mois faineants follow. V. From the accession of Clovis II., son of Dagobert, to Pepin's victoi-y over the Neus- trians at Testry, 63S-6ST. The kings became the ptippets of the Mayors of the Palace. Great Power of Pepin d'Heristal in Austra- sia. His defeat of the Neustrians assures the preponderance of Teutonic over Roman Gaul. VI. From the battle of Testry to the coro- nation of Pepin the Short, C3S-T51. During this period Pepin d'Heristal, his son Charles Martel, and his grandson Pepin the Short, are the real sovereigns, though kings of tha royal house are still placed upon the throne. Sceptre of Dagobert, C2 58 GENEALOGY OF THE CARLOVINGIANS. Chap. V. Genealogical Table of the Caelovingians. Pepin of Landen, mayor of the palace in Austrasia (ob. 639). Grimoald (Ob. 656). Arnulf, brotlier of Pepin. AnsegMs. Pepin of Heiistal, d. of the Franks (ob. T14). Drogo, d. of Champagne. Grimoald, mayor in Neustria. Charles Martel (ob. 741). Carloman, becomes a monk (T47). Lothaire, emperor (ob. 855). Louis II., emperor (ob. 875). I Lothaire, k. of Lorraine (ob. 869). Pepin le Bref, k. of the Fi'anks (752). 1 Chaklemagot! (768-814). I Louis le Debonnaire (814-840). Grfpho (ob. 753). Charles, k. of Burgundy and Provence (ob. 863). Pepin (ob. 838). Pepin II., k. of Aquitaine. Louis the German (ob. 876). Charles the Fat, k. and emperor (ob. SSS). \ Charles the Bald, k. of France (ob. 877). Louis le B^gue (ob. 879). Louis III. (ob. 882). Carloman (ob. 8S4). Charles the Simple (ob. 929). I Louis IV. (d'Outremer) (ob. 954). Lothaire (ob. 986). Louis V. (ob. 987). Charles, d. of Lorraine (ob. 992). \-i . fl ft )\^1 T Pi'isentatiou of a B'.ble to (Jhurks the Bald. CHAPTEE V. THE CARLOVINGIANS. FROM THE ACCESSION OF PEPIN LE BREF TO THE TREATY OF VERDUN. A.D. 752-843. § 1. Charactei" of the new Dynasty. § 2. Pepin succors Pope Stephen III. ; the "Donation of Pepin." § 3. Pepin's Wars in Septimania and Aqni- taine ; Death of Pepin le Bref. § 4. Charlemagne King of the Franks. § 5. Conquest of the Lombards. § 6. Wars against the Saxons. § 7. In- vasion of Spain. § 8. Conquest of the Bavarians and the Huns. § 9. Charlemagne crowned Emperor at liome. § 10. Internal Government of Charlemagne; School of the Palace ; Alcuin. §11. Death and Charac- ter of Charlemagne. § 12. Accession of Louis I., le De'bonnaire. § 13. Revolt and Death of Bernhard, King of Italy ; Marriage of the Emperor to Judith of Bavaria; his Penance at Attigny. § 14. Rebellion of the three Princes ; Surrender of the Emperor. §15. Second Coalition against Louis ; the Field of Falsehood ; Deposition of Louis ; his second Restora- 60 PEPIN LE BEEF. Chai-. V. tion. § 16. Distribution of the Empire; Death of Louis le Debonnaire. § 17. Struggle between the Sons of Louis; Battle of Fontenay. § 18. General Pacification ; Ti'eaty of Verdun. § 1. The elevation of Pepin to the throne was the result of a compact between himself and the Holy See, based on considera- tions of mutual interest. Pepin needed the sanction of the Pope to legitimatize his crown ; the pontiff needed the assistance of the Prankish arms, by which he was raised eventually to the position of a temporal and territorial sovereign. And this alliance be- tween the Carlo vingians and the papacy became a principle of re- generation and progress, not only for France, but for all Western Europe. The Austrasian mayors of the palace and the Eoman pontiffs, acting in concert at a propitious moment, brought about a revolution of vast importance to the cause of order, civilization, and social advancement. A strong monarchical government was now established, possessing the power to make itself universally respected ; while the papacy became at the same time a fixed pre- dominant authority for the regulation of the affairs of the Church. Two points are especially to be observed with regard to the character of 'the Carlovingian dynasty. First, that it was a Teu- toiiic power. Gallo-Roman France had sunk into decay; the fresh life-blood which was to resuscitate and restore it came from the banks of the Rhine. The Carlovingians were the heads of a victorious Trans-Khenane aristocracy ; it was only in this charac- ter that they were enabled to reconstruct the ruined monarchy, and effect ^n approach to territorial unity under a fixed central authority. "The Franks under Pepin and his successors," says M. Sismondi, " seemed to have conquered Gaul a second time ; it is a fresh invasion of the language, the military genius, and the manners of Germany, though represented by historians as simply the victory of the Austrasians over the Neustrians in a civil war."* Hence, under the second race of kings, France was effectually pro- tected from farther hostile irruptions from the side of Germany, . to which she had been constantly exposed ever since the barba- rians crossed the Rhine. The eastern frontier was henceforth secure; the flood of invasion was rolled back, and compelled to seek an outlet in a different direction. A second point to be noticed is the ecclesiastical character of this revolution. The elevation of Pepin Avas in great measure the work of the clergy ; and the monarch showed his gratitude by placing himself at the head of the national Church, and acting as its representative and champion. Pepin regarded himself as the "anointed of the Lord," after the pattern of the ancient kings of * Sismondi, Hist, des Fr., vol. ii., p. 170; Hallam, Middle Ages, vol. i., note viii. A.D. 752-755. HE SUCCORS THE POPE. 61 Israel ; and hence the support and advancement of the Church became in his view the foremost of his kingly duties. The bishops of France were now regulai'ly summoned twice every year to at- tend the great council of the nation ; and th-e records of these meetings show that the pinncipal matters discussed were such as would naturally fall under the cognizance and control of church- men. Even the wars of Pepin had a religious aspect. The ex- press object of his German expeditions was to reduce the barba- rians into submission to the See of St. Peter. When he invaded Lombardy, he announced that he had taken up arms in the cause of God, St. Peter, and the Church. The labors of the missionaries among the pagans of Germany were under his direct patronage. He heaped privileges and endowments upon the clergy, and their influence soon became paramount in the internal administration of the kingdom. § 2. Pepin was visited, two years after his accession, by Pope Stephen III., who came to claim the fidfillment of his promise to succor and defend the Roman See against its enemies. Astolpli, king of the Lombards, was thundering at the gates of Rome ; and the sole remaining hope for Italy lay in the nation of the Franks and its redoubted sovereign. Pepin pledged himself to cross the Alps Avith his army in the ensuing year ; he only asked in return that the Pope would renew his coronation with his own hands. The ceremony accordingly took place at St. Denis, Stephen invest- ing the king at the same time with the high-sounding title and undefined authority of Patrician of Rome. In the following year the army of the Franks scaled the Alps by the Mont Cenis, at- tacked and defeated the Lombards, besieged them in Pavia their capital, and compelled them to sue for peace. Pepin insisted on their giving up to the Pope the Exarchate of Ravenna and its- de- pendency the March of Ancona, and engaging never again to com- mit an act of hostility against the Apostolic See. But no sooner had the Franks withdrawn than the faithless Astolph violated the treaty, refused to resign the exarchate, and laid Avaste the country up to the gates of Rome. The terrified pontiff once more appeal- ed, in tones of impassioned agony, to his generous protector ; and Pepin, descending a second time into Italy in 755, finally dispos- sessed the Lombards of the whole teri'itory in dispute, which thus remained at the disposal of the conqueror. The Byzantine emperor demanded its restoration, as belonging to the Greek empire; but Pepin rejected the claim, and, sending one of his ministers to re- ceive the keys of the principal towns of the district, caused him to offer them at the altar of St. Peter and St. Paul at Rome, thus signifying that he surrendered his conquest to the holy apostles, and to the Roman pontift's, their lawful successors. 62 PEPIN LE BREF. Chap. V. Such was the famous "Donation of Pepin," which became the foundation of the temporal sovereignty of the popes. It has been disputed whether Pepin transferred to the Holy See the absolute territorial dominion in these provinces, or only the enjoyment of the revenues derived from them. In either case the popes obtain- ed an important boon ; they were released from all dependence on the Eastern Empire ; they acquired a free voice in the concerns of Europe ; and they were placed in secure possession of the govern- ment of Rome, the ancient metropolis and mistress of the world. § 3. Warlike enterprise in different directions filled up the en- tire reign of Pepin. For seven years he combated the Saracens in Septimania ; and after driving them in succession from all the great towns of the province, compelled them in 759 to surrender their capital, Narbonne. This brought the war to a close ; Sep- timania was evacuated by the Sai'acens, and this portion of the ancient kingdom of the Visigoths was finally annexed to the French crown. The reduction of Aquitaine, which followed, was a more arduous undertaking. Keen enmity had always prevailed between the Aquitanians and the Franks ; and the reigning Duke Guiafer, or Waifer, a descendant of the Merovingians, cherished a peculiar rancor against Pepin, whom he regarded as the oppressor and de- stroyer of his race. The war commenced in 760, and lasted eight years. The defense of Guiafer was obstinate, but at length he was forced to abandon all the northern part of his dominions, and re- tii'ed with a handful of devoted followers into the mountainous country south of the Dordogne. Here, deserted by his army, and hunted from covert to covert, he kept up a precarious resistance for some time longer ; but in 768 this unfortunate prince fell into an ambush laid for him by a party of his own treacherous sub- jects, who immediately put him to death. Guiafer was the last of his line ; and Aquitaine, which had more or less maintained its independence since its first occupation by the Visigoths in the reign of Honorius, was now incorporated into the Carlovingian empire. The population, however, retained in a great degree its ancient character; something of the genius and traditional impress of Rome lingered for centuries among the Aqui- tanians ; and they never lost their antipathy to the Franks, whom they despised as a race of barbarians. The career of Pepin le Bref closed with the conquest of Aqui- taine. On liis return from the south he was seized with a dan- gerous fever at Saintes ; after some time he was removed with difficulty to St. Denis ; and there, assembling his principal coun- selors, he divided his possessions, according to the immemorial usage of the Franks, between his sons Charles and Carloman. On A.D. 768-771. CHARLEMAGNE. 63 the 24th of September, 7-68, Pepin breathed his last, in the fifty- fourth year of his age, having governed France eleven years as mayor of the palace, and nearly sixteen years as king. The fame of this great sovereign has suffered from his historical position ; it is eclipsed both by the military glory of his father, and by the im- perial grandeur of his son. Yet in constructive political genius Pepin was superior to the one, and probably little inferior to the other. His personal qualities vv^ould have insured him distinction in any age, and his reign is of peculiar importance in the history of France. It w^as his mind that conceived, and his hand that in- augurated the system w^hich his successor was to expand into ma- turity — a system which produced as its results most of the great characteristic features of mediaeval and feudal Europe. § 4. The partition made by Pepin was not destined, fortunate- ly for the empire, to be of long duration. The elder brother, whom we shall henceforth call by his immortal name of Char- lemagne, had received as his portion Austrasia and the states beyond the Rhine ; Carloman had Alsace, Burgundy, and Pro- vence ; Neustria and the newly-conquered province of Aquitaine were divided nearly equally between them. The sovereigns were scarcely seated on their thrones when an occasion presented it- self which at once discovered the ascendency of the more power- ful over the feebler capacity. The Aquitanians broke out into re- volt ; Charlemagne and his brother marched toward the south, but before they reached the seat of war serious misunderstandings arose, and Carloman, stung with resentment, quitted the army and returned to his dominions. The King of Austrasia pursued his march, and in one vigorous campaign reduced the insurgents to submission. Not long afterward, in 771, Carloman died some- what suddenly at his palace near Laon. His Avidow, doubtless apprehensive of violence on the part of Charlemagne, left the country with her infant sons, and sought an asylum at the court of the King of Lombardy. Charlemagne forthwith repaired to Corbeny, on the confines of the two kingdoms, and there, in ac- cordance with the right claimed by the Germans of electing their own sovereign, he was raised by the suflfrage of the nobles and prelates to the throne of his deceased brother, thus happily unit- ing under his sole sceptre the whole of the immense empire of the Franks. § 5. Charlemagne had no sooner taken possession of the mon- archy than he found himself involved in hostilities with the Lom- bards of northern Italy. He had contracted a matrimonial al- liance with Hermengarde, a Lombard princess, but had repudiated her within a year after the marriage, apparently from mere ca- price, and sent her back dishonored to her father. Didier, exas- G4 CHARLEMAGNE. Chai-. V. perated by this gross outrage, appealed to the Pope, Adrian I., to recognize the two young sons of Carloman as their father's lawful successors ; and upon the pontiff's refusal the Lombard army in- vaded the papal territory, seized several cities, and threatened Rome itself. In the autumn of 773 Adinan sent messengers in urgent haste to the King of the Franks to apprise him of his dan- ger and implore immediate succor. Charlemagne assembled his forces at Geneva, and crossed the Alps in two grand divisions — the first by the Valais and Mont Joux, the second by Savoy and the Mont Cenis. Checked for a moment by the enemy in their descent from the mountains, the Franks overpowered all resist- ance when once they had reached the plain. Didier fled to Pa- via ; his son Adalghis, Avith whom were the Avidow and children of Carloman, threw himself into Verona. Both cities were in- vested by the Franks, and both, after some months, surrendered at discretion. The Lombard king, with his wife and daughter, the widowed queen of Carloman and the orphan princes, all fell into the hands of the conqueror. Didier Avas sent captive to France, and confined first at Liege, afterAvard in the abbey of Cor- bey. The fate of the young princes is more doubtful, but it seems probable that they were likewise compelled to buiy themselves for life in the obscurity of the cloistei'. The unfortunate Didier was the last in the succession of Lom- bard monarchs, and their kingdom noAV became subject to Char- lemagne. He did not, however, incorporate it Avith his Transal- pine empire, but preserA^ed its distinct political existence, and the nationality of its people. He assumed the iron crown of Italy, and thenceforth entitled himself King of the Franks and the Lom- bards. It was during the siege of Pavia, toAvard Easter, 774, that Char- lemagne took the opportunity of paying his first visit to the pon- tifical court and the shrine of the apostles. " He Avent to Rome," says Eginhard, "to pray there ;" but there were political as Avell as devotional reasons for the pilgrimage. Adrian received him with distinguished honor in the portico of the basilica of St. Pe- ter ; and during this stay at Rome the foundations Avere doubtless laid of the vast monarchical system Avhich Charlemagne Avas des- tined to create in Western Europe, and in tlie establishment of Avhich he Avas so successfully aided by his alliance Avith successive occupants of the apostolic chair. He confirmed to the Pope the splendid donation of his father Pepin ; and even enlarged it, ac- cording to some accounts, by the addition of Istria, Corsica, and the duchies of Spoleto and Beneventum. Charlemagne's purpose seems to have been to make the Roman pontiflf his confidential lieutenant in administering his Italian dominions, Avhile he retain- A.D. 771-779. WARS AGAINST THE SAXONS. 65 ed in his own hands the paramount authority. Although sin- cerely anxious to exalt the Church and the Holy See, he was not one to forego in the smallest degree that supreme domination to which his own ambition, talents, and success had raised him. The result was, that the temporal power of the popes became, under Charlemagne, greater in appearance than in reality. Os- tensibly, the Pope was the successor of the exarchs of Eavenna, the head of the Roman Commonwealth, and the ruler of the fair- est portion of Italy ; but in point of fact he was no more than one of the chief feudatories of the Prankish empire ; his relations to Chai'lemagne were rather those of a vassal to his suzerain than of an independent prince to his equal. § 6- Four years after his accession Chai'lemagne commenced his memorable war against the Saxons — a people who, as long as they remained independent, were always more or less formidable along the German frontier of the empire. Divided into the three confederacies of Westphalians, Ostphalians, and Angarians, the Saxons occupied at this time the greater part of Northern Ger- many, from Bohemia to the Baltic and the Northern Ocean. Both Franks and Saxons were originally of the same stock ; but in proportion as the former had abandoned the ancient traditions of their race by embracing Christianity and adopting Roman civili- zation, they had incurred the mortal hatred of the latter, who clung obstinately to idolatry and the rude institutions of barbar- ism. It was in 772 that Charlemagne resolved on undertaking their complete subjugation ; and this remarkable struggle, one of the most prominent features of his reign, was protracted, with short intermissions, for not less than thirty-three years. In the first campaign the Franks captured Ehresburg, the strongest fortress of the Saxons, and destroyed their national idol Irmensul, a column or monument supposed to commemorate the fatal defeat of the Roman legions under Varus by the Teutonic chieftain Arminius or Hermann. The Saxons made a feigned submission ; but no sooner was Charlemagne occupied at a dis- tance than they revolted afresh, surprised the castle of Ehresburg, and drove the Frankish garrison across the border. A second cam- paign ensued in 775, Avith the same result as before. Two years later the Saxons once more took the field, under the command of a redoubtable chief name Witikind, and ravaged the whole coun- try bordering on the Rhine, from Cologne to Coblentz. Witikind became the hero of the Saxon resistance ; no reverse quelled his ardor or shook his resolution ; after each defeat he retreated into the forests and wilds of Scandinavia, from which he reappeared, after a few months, at the head of fresh masses of combatants burninjj to renew the conflict. The Saxons were routed with gg CHARLEMAGNE. Chap. V fearful slaughter at Eokholt, on the Lippe, in 779, after which Charlemagne traversed their entire territory to its western ex- tremity, receiving the submission of the inhabitants, and causing them to be baptized by thousands by the army of priests who ac- companied his march. But these conversions, as one of the chron- iclers observes, being made at the point of the sword, were of ne- cessity insincere. In truth, the policy of Charlemagne toward the Saxons is singularly characteristic both of the individual and of his age. To overcome this savage race of pagan borderers was a necessity of his empire ; and in his view there were but two methods of accomplishing this — either to exterminate them by the sword, or to impose on them a compulsory system of civiliza- tion — he offered them the alternative of baptism or extermination. It was a line of treatment more in accordance with the Koran than the Gospel ; and, indeed, the Frankish monarch may very possibly have been led to adopt it by the influence of that aston- ishing phenomenon of his times, the conquest of the Eastern world by the mei'ciless disciples of the prophet of Mecca. For three years the Saxons remained tranquil ; but at the voi^e of the indomitable Witikind a general insurrection burst forth, with tenfold fury, in 782. The recent converts repudiated their faith ; the priests and missionaries were either murdered or driven from the country ; and a large body of Frank troops was over- powered and completely cut to pieces. Charlemagne hurried to the scene of action, but the battle was lost before his arrival ; and Witikind, with his usual promptitude, had escaped for shelter into Denmark. Incensed beyond all bounds, the monarch wreaked his vengeance by an atrocious massacre of the helpless Saxons, who, bereft of their leaders, could no longer resist : they were seized and beheaded, to the appalling number of 4500, at Verden, on the banks of the Aller — a spot recently consecrated, among others, to be the residence of a Christian bishop and the centre of peaceful civilization. This ruthless butchery must remain indelibly a foul blot on the memory of Charlemagne. The Saxons were now driven to des- peration ; the whole nation flew to arms ; and for three years the land was deluged, from one end to the other, with the blood of this internecine struggle. Wearied out at length with carnage and the protracted fatigues of the contest, Charlemagne judged it ex- pedient, in the spring of 785, to make conciliatory proposals to the heroic Witikind. Pie assured him of the royal clemency, and even promised him rewards and honors, if he would lay down his arms, forsake his idols, and embrace Christianity. The vanquished warrior signified his acceptance of these overtures ; he crossed the Rhine with a safe-conduct ; and in June, 785, was baptized at A.D. 779-781. INVASION OF SPAIN. 67 Attigny-sur-Aisne, in the presence of Charlemagne and his whole court. His example was followed by numbers of his companions in arips ; and the Saxons, submitting sullenly to necessity, remain- ed tranquil for the next eight years. § 7. The energetic character of Charlemagne, and successive emergencies which arose in other quarters, left him no repose even in the intervals of this stubborn conflict. The Saracen governor of Saragossa appealed to him in 777 for aid in his strife with the Emir of Cordova, in return for which he promised to become trib- utary to the Frank empire. The summons was not unwelcome to Charlemagne : independently of motives of personal ambition and religious zeal, it was not less important to him to roll back the tide of Islamism from his southern frontier than to crush the inroads of paganism on the north and the east. Two armies were assembled in 778, one of which, commanded by the king in per- son, crossed the Pyrenees by St. Jean Pied-de-Port and Ronces- valles, and, gaining the valley of the Baztan, appeared before Pam- peluna. That city capitulated immediately ; and Charles, contin- uing his march, joined the other division of his army before Sara- gossa. From this point the details of the expedition are extremely obscure. The Emir of Saragossa seems to have proved faithless to his engagements, and the Franks were denied entrance to the capital of Aragon ; the surrounding population rose against them ; and Charlemagne, receiving at this moment intelligence that fresh hostilities were imminent in Saxony, resolved to negotiate. The Frank army agreed to evacuate the country ; Charlemagne stip- ulated for the payment of an immense sum in gold ; and, having received hostages from Saragossa and other towns, commenced his retreat. The passes of Navarre were at this time strongly occupied by the Basques, who, under their Duke Lupus, the son of Guiafer of Aquitaine, had lost none of their ancient enmity against the Franks and the Carlovingians. These warlike moun- taineers now leagued with some of the treacherous emirs of the Spanish border to intercept the retreating array in the narrow de- files, where a comparatively small force might easily throw them into confusion. The main body of the Franks descended safely into the valley of the Nive ; the rear-guard, encumbered with bag- gage and treasure, was less fortunate. As they wound slowly round the flanks of the Altobiscar mountain, which overhangs the pass of Roncesvalles, they were suddenly assailed by an avalanche of broken rocks, uprooted trees, and missiles of all kinds, from the wooded heights above ; numbers of the soldiers were crushed to death or hurled down the precipices ; and, in the midst of the panic which ensued, the Basques rushed from their concealment, attacked the devoted band in front and rear at once, and com- 68 CHARLEMAGNE. Chap. V. pleted their overthrow ; they were cut off to a single man. Here perished, among many other chieftains of note, the Paladin Eo- land, briefly described by Eginhard as "prefect of the marclies of Brittany," but of whom we find no farther mention in the pages of authentic history. His popular fame rests on the traditional legends preserved by romance-writers and Troubadours, imitated and embellished by poets of more modern date. Charlemagne never returned to Spain after the catastrophe of Roncesvalles. Both Basques and Saracens continued during many years to harass his southern frontier ; and it was in order to consolidate his dominions in this quarter that he constituted, in 781, the kingdom of Aquitaine in favor of his infant son Louis, who afterward succeeded him as Louis le Debonnaire. The famous Count William " au Court-nez," who was named chief minister to the young prince, conducted several successful expe- ditions beyond the Pyrenees ; and by the close of the century the authority of the Franks was firmly established through nearly the whole of Catalonia and Aragon. The subject territory became a dependency of the crown of Aquitaine, under the title of the mai'ches of Spain. It comprised the march of Gothia and the march of Gascony, of which the capitals were respectively Barce- lona and Pampeluna. Both provinces extended to the Ebro. § 8. We should be widely transgressing our pi'oper limits were we to enter on a full account of the many conflicts of Charle- magne with the various independent races which bordered on his empire. A strong confederacy formed by the Bavarians, under their Duke Tassilo, was overthrown in 788 ; Tassilo threw him- self on the mercy of his conqueror, Avas tonsured, and confined for life in the monastery of Jumieges ; and the hereditary ducal line of Bavaria being thus extinguished, the sovereignty of that coun- try devolved on Charlemagne. Another extensive province was thus annexed, Avithout striking a blow, to his empire. This con- quest was almost immediately followed by the subjugation of the kingdom of the Avars, the descendants of those dreaded Huns Avho had desolated Europe in the fifth century. The Avars had taken part in the machinations of Tassilo, but had been forced back into their forests and morasses in Pannonia. They Avere now in dangerous proximity to the Bavarian frontier, and Chai'le- magne resolved upon their conquest. In 791 he invaded their country with an overwhelming force in three great divisions. In the first campaign the Franks carried by assault the outermost of a series of immense circular intrenchments called "rings," Avhich protected the royal residence of the Avars, and, after cap- turing a multitude of prisoners and a rich booty, made themselves masters of Avestern Pannonia. In 796, Pepin, king of Italy, at MAP OF THE EMPIRE OF CHARLEMAGNE. The double dotted line ::::::::::: marka the bouudaries of Charlemagne's empire. 70 CHAKLEMAGNE. Chap. V. the head of a vast combined force of Franks, Lombards, Bava- rians, and other Germans, stormed in succession all the remain- ing fortifications of the Huns, penetrated to the palace of their hhacan, pillaged and burnt it, and compelled the whole nation, thinned by terrible slaughter, to submit at discretion. In their last strong-hold the Huns had accumulated a prodigious treasure, acquired by their repeated plunder both of the Eastern and West- ern empires : the whole, fabulous in value, was now appropriated by the Franks. The Avar chieftain Thudan, and his principal followers, consented to embrace the Gospel, and were baptized at Aix-la-Chapelle. § 9. The sphere of Charlemagne's dominion, when it had reach- ed its widest development, comprehended at least half the Euro- pean continent, and all the richer and more important teiTitories of the ancient Eoman empire. His sceptre was obeyed from the shores of the Baltic to the Ebro — from the Atlantic to the Low- er Danube, the Theiss, and the mountains of Moravia — from the German Ocean to the Adriatic and the Garigliano in Central Italy. His authority was respected, his ascendency feared, his friendship highly prized, by those remoter states which maintain- ed their independence — by the Saracens of Spain, the Saxons of Britain, the Lombard dukes of Benevento, the Italians of Magna Grsecia, the Byzantine empire of the East, and even by the ca- liphs of Bagdad. No such concentration of power had been wit- nessed since the days of Theodosius the Great ; and it is not sur- prising that, in the pride of such transcendent success, the mind of Charlemagne recurred to the glorious empire which his bai'ba- rian fathers had subverted, and aspired to revive the majestic au- tocracy of the Ca3sars. This splendid vision once seriously enter- tained, the conqueror would easily perceive that the means of realizing it lay in his own hands. His father Pepin had acquired his throne in virtue of a solemn act of consecration by St. Peter's successor. The Holy See was not less deeply indebted to Char- lemagne than it had been to Pepin ; and the personal situation of Leo III., who then occupied the papal chair, was such as to ren- der him tamely subservient to the views and wishes of his royal patron. In an interview with Leo at Paderborn the arrange- ments were discussed and concluded which the interests of the pontiff and the ambitious policy of Charlemagne concurred to dic- tate. In November of the year a.d. 800 Charlemagne proceeded with a magnificent retinue to Rome, and on the feast of Christ- mas attended the service of the Church in St. Peter's. As he knelt in devotion befoi'e the high altar, the Pope advanced toward him and placed an imperial crown upon his head ; the whole ca- thedral resounded at tlie same instant with the acclamations of A.D. 800-802. CROWNED EMPEROR. 71 the multitude, " Long life and victory to Charles Augustus, crown- ed by God, the great, pious, and pacific Emperor of the Romans !" After this the Pope performed the ancient ceremony of adoration or homage, and anointed the emperor with the holy oil, together with his son Pepin, king of Italy. Eginhard affirms that this transaction was wholly unexpected by Charlemagne, and so contrary to his inclination, that, had he been aware of the Pope's intention, he would have carefully ab- sented himself from the church. It is not credible, however, that the Pope, in his dependent circumstances, would have ventured on such a proceeding without the full sanction, expressed or im- plied, of the potent monarch to whom he was bound by such weighty obligations. Although the elevation of Charlemagne to the imperial throne added nothing to his territorial dominion, it must be regarded as an event of vast significance and importance. It was the climax, the consummation of the conquest of Pome by the barbarians. The empire of the "West now passed visibly and formally into the hands of the Franks. They were in possession of all. the great centres of the by-gone Roman rule — Rome, Ravenna, Milan, Ly- ons, Treves ; and the assumption by the head of their dynasty of the imperial purple and the title of Augustus completed and rati- fied their triumph. Moreover, the coronation of a Teutonic- prince at Rome was an act of reconciliation and union between the victorious and the vanquished race. Rome and her conquer- ors were now incorporated into one great Christian monarchy 5 and although the new empire differed widely and essentially from that whose name it inherited, it acquired from that very name a vast accession of authority, and offered to Europe a guarantee of stability — political, social, and religious — such as had not been enjoyed for many centui'ies.* The only thing now wanting to the restoration of the Roman empire in its full integrity was the union of the throne of the Franks with that of Constantinople. We are told that a project w^as set on foot, soon after the coronation of Charlemagne, for ef- fecting this by a marriage between himself and the Empress Irene, who had obtained the Byzantine sceptre by the unnatural depo- sition of her son Constantine V. The scheme is variously attrib- uted to Charlemagne, to the empress, and to Pope Leo. It was for some time steadily pursued, and the preliminaries were actual- ly arranged ; but the negotiation was cut short by a sudden revo- lution at Constantinople, which in the year 802 precipitated Irene from the throne. Her successor, Nicephorus Logothetes, hasten- ed to conclude a treaty of peace Avith Chai'lemagne, by which the * See Notes and Illustrations. 72 CHARLEMAGNE. Chap. V. limits of the two empires, remaining distinct and independent, were finally determined. By this compact Nicephorus recognized Char- lemagne in due form as Emperor of the West. § 10. The fourteen years of Charlemagne's reign as emperor were not marked by any great warlike undertaking or external conquest. He was mainly occupied with the internal organiza- tion of the empire, a task of almost superhuman difficulty, consid- ering the number and dissimilarity of the races subject to his rale. Charlemagne's system of civil government will perpetuate his fame more surely than his most brilliant victories. It deserves to be closely examined, but a cursory sketch of its main features must here suffice. The government of Charlemagne was an absolute monarchy, disguised under aristocratical, and even, to some extent, popular forms and institutions. The initiative of all laws resided with the empei'or, but his propositions were submitted to the great council of the nation, Avhere they underwent full discussion, and were afterward promulgated in the joint names of the sovereign and the people under the title of Capitularies. These national as- semblies* met twice every year, in spring and autumn, and were composed of the great officers of the crown, the chief nobles, the bishops and abbots, the counts or provincial governors, together with their subordinate functionaries. Sixty-five of the capitula- ries of Charlemagne remain to us. They are of a most miscella- neous character, embracing every conceivable topic of legislation, from matters of the highest moral, ecclesiastical, and political im- portance, down to minute details of domestic economy, t They constitute, not a regular code of laws, but an unconnected mass of records exhibiting all the public acts of the emperor's adminis- tration in its manifold branches and departments. The executive power was lodged chiefly in the hands of the counts, who, with the assistance of their deputies (vicarii, centena- rii, scabini), dispensed justice in their several districts ; but, besides these, Charlemagne appointed an order of superior judges called 77i{ssi dominici, or royal envoys, whose duty it was to revise the proceedings of the local tribunals, and exercise a general jurisdic- tion in the last resort. These officers were in direct communica- tion with the emperor ; they kept him accurately informed of the condition and wants of the people, and formed one of the most ef- ficient organs of the central government. Two missi dominici, * An intei-esting account of these councils has come down to us in a treat- ise De Ordine Palatii, written by Adelbard, abbot of Corbey, one of Charle- magne's principal advisers, and preserved by Hincmar. It is largely quoted by Guizot, J^ssais, p. 276. t See the capitulary De \lflis, regulating the management of the imperial residences and domains. A.D. 802-814. SCHOOL OF THE PALACE— ALCUIN. 73 usually a bishop and a lay nobleman, were bound to make the cir- cuit of their provinces four times in every year, and to report the result to the sovereign. But perhaps the noblest monument of Charlemagne's genius is the revival of letters and extensive diffusion of knowledge which marked his reign, and which resulted mainly from his own enlight- ened and enthusiastic labors. Charlemagne was an indefatigable student ; and the impulse of his personal example, patronage, and superintendence produced effects which, considering the circum- stances of the times, are truly Avonderful, and redound to his eter- nal honor. History presents to us few more striking spectacles than that of the great monarch of the West, surrounded by the princes and princesses of his family and the chief personages of his brilliant court, all content to sit as learners at the feet of their Anglo-Saxon preceptor Alcuin in the " school of the palace" at Aix-la-Chapelle. The course of study pursued by these august academicians embraced the seven liberal arts, as they were called — the triviian and quadrivium — with a special attention to gram- mar, psalmody, and the theory of music ; and since Alcuin excel- led in the exposition of Scripture, Ave maybe sure that the myste- ries of theological science were not forgotten in his lectures. The " school of the palace" was designed to be the model of similar institutions throughout the empire. By a circular letter to the bishops in 789, the emperor required them to establish ele- mentary schools in their cathedral cities for the gratuitous instruc- tion of the children of fi'eemen and of the laboring classes, while schools of a superior grade were to be opened at the same time in the larger monasteries, for the study of the Iiigher bi'anches of learning. Accordingly, the next few years witnessed the founda- tion of numerous seminaries in different parts of France and Ger- many, which afterward produced important and lasting fruits. The most eminent were those of Tours, Metz, Fontenelle in Nor- mandy, Ferrieres near Montargis, Fulda near Wurtzburg, and Aniane in Languedoc. A sufficient supply of teachers for these schools was not to be obtained in France, where literature had declined to the lowest point, and Avas almost extinct : the emperor therefore spared no exertion to attract to his court men of intel- ligence, ability, and learned acquirements from every part of Eu- rope. The main instrument of this intellectual reformation was Al- cuin, by far the most commanding genius of his age. Alcuin was. a native of York, and a deacon. of the cathedral there. He was presented to Charlemagne at Parma in 781, on his return from a mission to Rome, and Avas persuaded by the emperor, in the fol- lowing year, to take up his permanent residence in France. He D 74 CHARLEMAGNE. Chap. V. was placed immediately at the head of the imperial academy, and for fourteen years led a life of unremitting labor as a public in- structor. In addition to his services in the schools, Alcuin ap- plied himself to the important work of revising and restoring the manuscripts of antiquity, both sacred and profane. He produced a corrected edition of all the inspired books of the Old and New Testaments, copies of which were multiplied by the monks under his directions, so that all the principal churches and abbeys were furnished with accurate transcripts of the sacred text. Alcuin was also much consulted upon points of controversial theology, and was one of the chief authorities at the famous council of Frankfort in 794, where the "Western Church pi'onounced its judgment on the much-vexed question of image-worship. His extant letters to Charlemagne show the vast variety of subjects discussed during their intercourse, and give evidence of extraor- dinary activity and vei'satility of mind. Alcuin at length obtain- ed permission from the emperor to retire to his abbey of St. Martin at Tours : he there spent the closing years of his life in peaceful yet profound study, and died at Tours at the age of seventy, in May, 804. § 11. In his declining years the great emperor withdrew him- self as much as possible frem the active labors and anxieties of government, in order to devote his time to literary study and de- votional exercises. By his first testamentary arrangements, made in 806, the empire was divided among his three sons. Charles, the eldest, was to reign over Neustria and Austrasia, Saxony, and the other provinces of Germany ; Pepin was confirmed in the kingdom of Italy ; Louis received Aquitaine, Burgundy, Provence, and the Spanish Marches. But within the next few years the hand of death was busy in the imperial family : the Princess Eo- truda, the Princes Pepin and Charles, were carried off in rapid succession, to the deep grief of their aged parent ; and it became necessary to settle the inheritance afresh. In 813 Charlemagne convoked a full assembly of prelates and nobles at Aix-la-Chapelle, and designated his surviving son, Louis of Aquitaine, as his asso- ciate in the empire, and the sole heir of his splendid throne. This was the last political act of the reign of Chai'lemagne. On his return, some months afterward, from a hunting expedition in the Ardennes, the emperor was attacked by acute pleurisy, which brought him to his end on the 28th of January, 814, in the seventy- second year of his age and forty-seventh of his reign. He was occupied, we are told, within a few days of his death, in correct- ing, with his own hand, the Latin version of the Gospels, which he collated with the Syriac translation and the original Greek. His last words were, " Into thy hands, O Lord, I commend my A.D. 814-816. LOUIS LE DEBOl!?NAIRE. , 75 spirit," His remains were interred in the cathedral which he had himself founded at Aix-la-Chapelle — his usual residence and the capital of his empire. In person Charlemagne was above the middle height, finely and powerfully formed, and of a majestic presence. He was remark- able for his easy and graceful elocution, which enabled him to dis- course with clearness and precision, and with peculiar exuberance of diction, upon all subjects. He spoke the Latin tongue with fluency and elegance, and perfectly understood the Greek. He was a considerable proficient in the sciences of logic, rhetoric, astronomy, and music ; and was well read in theology, especially in the writings of St. Augustine. He took an active part in the great religious controversies of his time, those on the heresy of the Adoptians and on the question of image-worship ; and the "Caroline Books" (an elaborate exposition of the doctrine and discipline of the Western Church upon the latter subject) were, if not composed by the emperor, at least drawn up under his im- mediate supervision. In estimating the general character and merits of Charlemagne, v/e must bear in mind the complexion of the times in which he lived. Judged by this standard, it is no exaggeration to say that in habitual elevation of aim and purpose, in steadfastness and con- sistency of policy, in enlarged views of his responsibilities as a ruler, in persevering exertions for the advancement and welfare of his subjects, and in the private virtues of generosity and charity, Charlemagne was fully equal to any of those sovereigns to whom history awards the name of Great, if he did not surpass them all. His two great faults were his religious intolerance, which carried him into the most sanguinar'y excesses of inhuman cruelty, and his laxity of personal morals. These, however, were precisely the failings which the gross and semi-barbarous society of that day either encouraged and applauded, or excused and ignored. § 12. Louis I., surnamed by his contemporaries the Pious, but by modern historians Le Debonnaire, or the Good-natured, ascend- ed the throne of the Franks in the thirty-sixth year of his age. He was a prince of an excellent natural disposition, had received a good education, and had administered the kingdom of Aquitaine with considerable credit to himself and advantage to his people. His piety was deep and sincere, but it was piety which fitted him rather for the cloister than for his position as a sovereign and for the active duties of life ; he was of a reserved, melancholy, super- stitious temper ; and his better qualities were obscured and neu-< ;y:alized by an incurable weakness of character. His first acts, howevei', were praiseworthy. He reformed Avith an unsparing hand the licentious manners of the court, which, through the in- 76 ' LOUIS LE DEBONNAIRE. Chap. V dulgence of his father, had grown into a public scandal. The princesses his sisters, whose conduct had been notoriously dis- creditable, were the first examples of his severity: they were re- moved from the palace, and immured in separate convents. Sever- al persons of high rank were at the same time disgraced and banish- ed : among them Adalhard, abbot of Corbey, and his brother the Count Wala, who was compelled to enter a monastery. The emperor next proceeded to a searching reform of abuses in the Church ; he insisted on the residence of the bishops in their dio- ceses ; and caused the condition of the monasteries to be fully in- vestigated by Benedict, abbot of Aniane, who re-established the ancient discipline in all its rigor. But these vigorous measures were soon succeeded by others which betrayed a feeble nature, ill calculated to command the submission and maintain the integrity of the gigantic empire created by the great Charles. Charlemagne had established the right of the Western emperoi'S to confirm the election of the popes, thus giving them virtually a veto on the nomination. Stephen IV., on succeeding Leo III. in 816, took possession of the apostolic chair without making any application for the imperial sanction ; and Louis, by allowing the omission to pass without remonstrance, tacitly abandoned his prerogative. The Pope, on the other hand, showed himself jealously and tena- ciously mindful of the privileges of his see. He proceeded to France ; and, with all the circumstances of a grand and solemn ceremonial, placed the crown upon the head of Louis at Eeims, proclaiming to the world by this act that the imperial dignity was only to be derived through the personal ministry of the Eoman pontiff, and could not be transmitted by hereditary descent. In the following year Louis Avas induced to take a step which, instead of confirming his power, as he intended, proved the source of all the troubles and humiliations of his reign. A general de- sire having been manifested for a settlement of the succession in case of his death, the emperor convoked a diet at Aix-la-Chapelle, and appointed his eldest son Lothaire his associate in the empire, with the reversion to the sovereignty of France and Italy ; Pepin, the second son, was named at the same time heir to the throne of Aquitaine ; and Louis, the youngest, to that of Germany. This Avas, in several points of view, a rash, ill-considered, and impolitic arrangement. The young princes, instead of combining to sup- port their father's authority, were excited to disaffection, jealousy, and discord ; they became the chiefs of rival factions ; and their contentions, fomented by the nobility for their own purposes, re- sulted in the destruction of the great work so ably commenced b^ Charlemagne, the dismemberment of his empire, and the introduc- tion of a new phase of society throughout Europe. A.D. 816-823. MARRIES JUDITH OF BAVARIA. 77 § 13. The first example of revolt was given by Bernliard, king of Italy, son and successor of Pepin, elder brother of the emperor. Bernhard had been confirmed in his throne, notwithstanding his illeoitimate birth, by Charlemagne himself; and he was now be- yond measure mortified and incensed to find himself altogether passed over in the partition of the empire, and even indirectly threatened with deposition, by the assignment of the crown of Italy to Lothaire. Assembling in arms the feudal lords of Lom- bai'dy with their forces, the King of Italy took the field in 818, and advanced toward the passes of the Alps. Louis marched against him ; and the inconstant Italians, on the first news of the approach of the imperial ai'my, were seized with panic, and aban- doned their unfortunate leader, whose enterprise thus fell sudden- ly to the ground. At the suggestion of the Empress Hermen- garde, who promised her mediation in his favor, Bernhard now threw himself upon his uncle's mercy, and came voluntarily to implore his pardon at Chalons-sur-Saone. He was nevertheless arraigned, together with his principal partisans, before the assem- bly of the Franks, and sentence of death was pronounced against ■ them all. Louis commuted the penalty, in the case of his nephew, into perpetual imprisonment, with the loss of sight — the latter punishment being added, it is said, through the treacherous ani- mosity of the empress. The unhappy youth struggled desperate- ly with the executioners, one of whom was killed before they could accomplish their cruel errand ; and whether from the extremity of torture, or from the effects of farther secret violence, the prince died on the third day after the infliction. His friends were either banished, imprisoned, or forced to become monks ; and, as a meas- ui'e of precaution against future disturbance, three younger broth- ers of the emperor, natural sons of Charlemagne, were at the same time compelled to accept the tonsure. The tragical fate of Bernhard plunged Louis into deep remorse ; and upon the death of Hermengarde in 819, he recurred seriously to a design which he seems to have entertained several times be- fore, of abdicating his throne, abandoning the world, and taking refuge, like his uncle Carloman, in monastic seclusion. His court- iers and ministers, alarmed at the possible consequences of such a step, labored to give a new direction to his thoughts, and urged him to contract a second marriage. The easy-tempered monarch allowed himself to be persuaded, and from among the crowd of high-born beauties who vied with each other for his preference he selected Judith, the daughter of Welph or Guelph, count of Bava- ria. This marriage took place in 820 ; and the new empress, who is described by writers of the time as distinguished not only by great personal attractions, but by her mental cultivation and vari- ous accomplishments, rapidly acquired an unbounded ase^dency 78 LOUIS LE DEBONNAIRE. Chap. V. over her feeble-minded husband. The wounded spirit of the em- peror, however, gave liim no rest ; and in the excess of his grief he was driven to seek relief by a public act of humiliation and atonement for his errors. Kneeling before the assembled bishops at Attigny, he accused himself, with bitter compunction, of the murder of his nephew, and submitted to canonical penance for the crime, as well as for his severities to Adalhard and Wala, and the three princes his brothers. The ecclesiastics professed to behold in this sti-ange scene a parallel to the famous penitence of the great Theodosius ; but it was viewed in a very different light by his subjects at large. They deemed it an ignominious degrada- tion of the imperial dignity ; an insult to the states of the realm, by whom the offenders had been tried and justly condemned; and a glaring proof of incapacity for his functions in the nominal ruler of such a mighty empire. Henceforth Louis was treated with scarcely disguised contempt: all parties and classes hastened to take advantage of his weakness ; and the remainder of his reign is little else than a record of ceaseless confusion, disgrace, and misery. § 14. Three years after her marriage (June 13, 823) the Em- press Judith gave birth to a son, who received the name of Charles, and is known in subsequent history as Charles the Bald. This infant became at once an object of suspicion and disquietude to the three elder princes, and their misgivings were fully justified by the event. Judith naturally exerted all her influence to pro- cure for her son a royal appanage, which could only be obtained by an open violation of the act of settlement of 817. Louis, un- able to resist her persuasions, created, in favor of Charles, a king- dom consisting of Allemannia, Transjurane Burgundy, Rhastia, and Alsace. These pi'ovinces formed part of the inheritance of Lo- thaire, who was Avon over by the blandishments of Judith to ac- quiesce in his own spoliation. Quickly repenting, however, of his weakness, Lothaii'e conspired with his brothers Pepin and Louis in opposition to their father's government ; and a struggle com- menced between the court and the princes which terminated only with the life of Louis. The chief adviser of the emperor at this time was Bernhard, duke of Septimania, the son of his former viceroy, William of Toulouse. Bernhard Avas a man of ambitious, overbearing, intriguing disj^osition ; he stood high in the confi- dence of the empress, with Avhom, indeed, he Avas supposed to be on terms of undue familiarity ; and through this imputation, add- ed to his oppressive administration, he had become an object of general hatred. The rebellion against Louis blazed forth in the spring of 830. The army had been summoned for an expedition into Brittany : instead of assembling at the time appointed under the imperial standard, the troops deserted in masses and joined the faction of the princes, Avho had established their camp at Ver- A.D. 823-833. COALITION AGAINST HIM. 79 berie. The insurrection spread with extraordinary rapidity, and the emperor soon found himself reduced to helpless isolation. He surrendered to his sons at Compiegne, and accepted all their de- mands. Bernhard was instantly banished into Septimania ; his relations and adherents were deprived of their offices, and punish- ed with more or less severity ; the empress was compelled to take the veil in the convent of Ste. Radegonde at Poitiers ; the boy- king Charles was stripped of his appanage and committed to strict confinement. As for the emperor, it was for some time seriously debated whether he should be deposed and imprisoned for life in .a monastery; but the princes could not as yet reconcile them- selves to such outrageous measures against their parent ; Louis was suffered to retain the imperial title, and nominally to direct the government, but the real sovereignty passed into the hands of the young Emperor Lothaire. § 15. The administration of such an empire, under such diffi- culties, was, however, a task beyond the powers of Lothaire ; and his triumph was of short duration. In the course of the next year (831) dissensions arose among the three brothers ; and Pepin and Louis, detaching themselves from the cause of Lothaire, com- bined with their father's friends to procure his restoration to au- thority. A sudden reaction followed in favor of Louis ; and at the diet held at Nimeguen, the German provinces expressed so strongly their feelings of loyalty to the rightful sovereign that the partisans of Lothaire at once gave way, and Louis was fully rein- stated on his throne. In order to calm the popular agitation, the emperor pardoned his rebellious son, and they appeared together on cordial terms in public. In other respects affairs now took the turn that might have been expected. The empress was re- leased from her cloister, and reappeared at court, under a dispen- sation from her vows granted by the Pope ; her own affirmation was admitted as a satisfactory guarantee of her innocence ; and Duke Bernhard, suddenly making his appearance before the na- tional council at Thionville, offered the wager of battle to any one who should dare repeat the calumnies which had assailed his character. No one responded to the challenge, and Bernhard was adjudged to be guiltless of the ^rime imputed to him. Lothaire forfeited the imperial title, and retained the crown of Italy only, to which he had succeeded on the death of his cousin ; the three brothers were dismissed to their respective dominions. Louis re- signed himself once more to the absolute government of his wife. Bernhard was replaced as confidential minister by the monk Gund- bald, who had been the principal instrument of the emperor's res- toration. The disgraced favorite now plotted eagerly for revenge ; he al- lied himself with Pepin of Aquitaine, and a fresh revolt was ar- 80 LOUIS LE DEBONNAIRlv Chap. V. ranged between them, with the concurrence of Louis the German, in 832. This project, however, entirely failed of success; Louis found himself unsupported, made his submission to the emperoi-, and obtained an easy pardon. Pepin was not treated with the same indulgence ; he was arrested and sent prisoner to Treves, to- gether with his wife and children ; his kingdom of Aquitaine was declared forfeited, and was bestowed upon the youthful Charles. Count Bernhard was deprived of his government of Septimania, and of all his other honors. But both the clemency and the se- verity of the feeble Louis were alike unfortunate and ineffectual. The national discontent with his government gained ground con- tinually ; and in 833 the princes once more coalesced against their father, and took the field with the avowed purpose of compelling him to abdicate the throne. The Pope of the day, Gregory IV., was induced to give his sanction to the rebellion ; he crossed the Alps, and appeared publicly in the camp of Lothaire, demanding from the emperor the fulfillment of the constitution of 817, which had been guaranteed by the Holy See. Louis advanced with his forces, and the two armies approached each other, on the 24th of June, in the plain called Rothfeld, between Colmar and Bale. An extraordinary scene now followed. All expected an immediate engagement ; but the Pope, resolving to make a last effort to pre- vent bloodshsd, sought an intev\ijw with the emperor, and labor- ed earnestly to bring about an accommodation. The negotiation was still pending, when, in the course of a single night, all the prin- cipal barons of Louis's party silently quitted liis camp with their troops, and deserted to the opposite lines. The defection became general ; in the space of two or three days the Empress Judith, with her son Charles, a few bishops and counts, with a mere handful of vassals, were all that adhered to the cause of the unfortunate monarch. From this shameful transaction the spot received, and retained for ages, the title of Liigenfeld, or the Field of Falsehood. Louis had now no alternative but to submit to necessity, as he had done three years before. Himself, his wife, and his child pro- ceeded as suppliants to the rebel encampment, and received from the three princes a cold assurance of personal protection. Jt was soon evident that this was the i^tmost extent of favor they had to expect. The empress was immediately dispatched, under strong guard, across the Alps, and imprisoned in the fortress of Tortona. Loiliaire proclaimed his father deposed from the throne, and him- self sole emperor, after which he committed the unhappy Louis to close custody in the convent of St. Me'dard at Soissons, and con- fined the boy Chai'les in the abbey of Priim in the Ardennes. It was now resolved to take measures by which the dethroned mon- arch should be forever precluded from resuming the reins of gov- ernment, or engaging in political affairs. The bishops, at the in- A.D. 833-838. SECOND RESTORATION OF LOUIS. 81 stigation of Lothaire, summoned Louis to appear before a solemn assembly in the cathedral of Soissons (Nov. 11, 833), and there, after rehearsing once more the exaggerated catalogue of his crimes and errors, they condemned him to the punishment of perpetual penance. Louis acknowledged, with many teai's and the most ab- ject self-abasement, the justice of the sentence; divested himself of his military belt ; and received from the hands of the prelates, in exchange for his secular dress, the sombre garb of a penitent ; after which he was reconducted to his cell. Lothaire, however, fearing a popular movement in his favor, removed him soon after- ward, for farther security, to Aix-la-Chapelle. Thus was Louis le Debonnaire a second time dispossessed of the empire, and that by the agency of the very episcopate which during his whole reign he had labored to exalt to the highest pitch of power and honor. But the unnatural proceedings of Lothaire defeated their own purpose ; the strange spectacle of the emperor's degradation excited among the people feelings of intense remorse, disgust, and indignation ; and within four months from the occui'- rence (March, 834) Lothaire found liimself compelled not only to set his father at liberty, but to save himself by a hasty flight into Burgundy. Pepin and Louis of Germany combined their forces, and, amid general demonstrations of jpy, proclaimed the emperor's second restoration to his throne. The empress, set free from her distant prison, returned without delay to France, where she at once recovered all her honors and all her influence. Lothaire attempted at first to maintain himself in arms against his father, but, meeting with little support, Avas soon reduced to submission ; and the emper- or, whom no experience could inspire with wisdom and firmness, instead of inflicting on his son a signal and richly-deserved chas- tisement on so fair an opportunity, granted him a full pardon, and left him in possession of his kingdom of Italy, on condition that he would not repass its boundary without the imperial permission. § 16. The fatigue and agitation of fifteen years of strife now began to tell seriously upon the emperor's health ; and Judith, perceiving that his life was not likely to be of long duration, urged him to make a new and final division of the empire for the bene- fit of the favorite Charlep. Louis yielded as usual ; and at Cre- raieux, near Lyons, in 835, a partition was declared by which the French and German territories were nearly equally distributed between Pepin, Louis, and Charles, the portion of Lothaire being restricted to the kingdom of Italy. Two years later a large addi- tion was made to the appanage of Charles, at the expense of Pepin and Louis; and upon the premature death of Pepin (Dec, 838) this arbitrary and unjust act was in its turn rescinded; Judith was reconciled to Lothaire, and they joined in imposing on the emperor a final arrangement satisfactory to both. Bv this treatv, ]:> 2 82 LOUIS LE DEBONNAIRE. Chap. V. concluded at Worms in 839, the whole empire, with the single ex- ception of Bavaria, was divided equally between Lothaire and Charles. Upon the news of this flagrant invasion of his rights, Louis the German once more raised the standard of revolt, and attacked the Rhenish provinces. The emperor though much broken in health, led his troops against him, and compelled him to retire within his own borders. But the effort exhausted the failing strength of Louis le Debonnaire ; at the close of the cam- paign he took up his abode, melancholy and heartbroken, on an islet of the Rhine, opposite Ingelheim ; and there, after lingering some weeks, he expired, with sentiments of fervent piety, on the 20th of June, 840, in the sixty-third year of his age. With his dying breath he bequeathed his forgiveness to his son Louis, ex- horting him, at the same time, to reflect on his sin against the Divine law of obedience to parents, a sin which had brought the gray hairs of his father with sorrow to the grave. § 17. The vmity of the Carlovingian empire disappeared with Louis le Dftbonnaire. For many years the elements of three dis- tinct nationalities had been gradually developing themselves in Western E'^rope ; and the struggle which now ensued between the sons of the late emperor terminated in the complete establish- ment of this new organization, which has lasted without any im- portant change down to our own days. It was to no purpose that Lothaire, immediately on receiving the news of his father's death, hurried from Italy toward the north, assumed the title of sole emperor, summoned the nobles to do him homage, and attempted to direct the administration. He was resolutely opposed by his brothers Louis and Charles ; and as each of the three princes was supported by the population of the provinces under his sway, it was soon manifest that an appeal to arms was inevitable. The inhabitants of France, of whatever origin, rallied round the stand- ard of Charles ; the Germans obeyed the orders of their sovereign i^ouis ; the Italians and Austrasians were unanimous for the rights of the Emperor Lothaire. Louis and Charles, reconciled by a common danger, combined their forces against Lothaire, who on his part formed an alliance with his nephew Pepin, son of the late King of Aquitaine. Much time Avas spent in fruitless negotiation ; at length the hostile armies approached each other on the great plain of Auxerre ; and at Fontenay, on the 25th of June, 841, a terrible battle took place, which ended in the total defeat of Lothaire. Forty thousand of tlie vanquished army are said to have perished on the field, and the loss of the victors was probably not much inferior. The brunt of the action was sustained by the Franks ; and the flower of the nation, tlie descendants of the Teutonic conquerors of Gaul, were exfevminated in this disastrous strife. Yictorv havina; declared A.D. 842-843. TREATY OF VERDUN. 83 for Charles, Bernhard of Septimania acknowledged him at once as his sovereign, and took the oath of homage for his duchy. Lothaire fled to Aix-la-Chapelle, and made great efforts to pro- long the contest, but without success. The coalition against him was much strengthened by a solemn meeting of his two brothers at the head of their armies, which took place at Sti-asburg in Feb- ruary, 842, when they formally renewed their engagements, and swore to maintain a close and inviolable alliance. It is on this occasion that we meet with the first mention of the Romance language — a corruption of the Latin, with an admixtui-e of Celtic — which had now grown into general use in France, and from which the French of modern days was gradually formed. The form of the oath pronounced in this tongue by Louis the German, in order to be understood by the mass of his brother's Neustrian and Aquitanian troops, has been preserved to us. Charles, on the other hand, harangued the soldiers of Louis in the Tudesque dialect, the vernacular of all the German nations, which they had preserved in the countries beyond the Rhine, where Roman col- onization had never made much progress. § 18. Finding that the league against him had received power- ful re-enforcements, and that from the distracted state of the empire he was in danger of losing several of the provinces which still ad- hered to him, Lothaire, in June, 842, made proposals to his broth- ers for a general pacification. Preliminaries were at once agreed to at a meeting near Macon ; and after an exact survey of the whole extent of the empire by one hundred and twenty commis- sioners, the great question in dispute was finally adjusted by a treaty signed at Verdun in August, 843. To Lothaire, with the title of emperor, was allotted his original kingdom of Italy, and, in addition, the territories comprised be- tween the Rhine, the Meuse, the Saone, and the Rhone, including the city of Lyons. The northern, part of Lothaire's dominions received from him the title of Lotharingia, which became in later times Lorraine, a name retained down to the eighteenth century. The portion assigned to Louis consisted of the Avhole of Ger- many, to which were annexed the cities of Mayence, Worms, and Spires, on the left bank of the Rhine. The whole country west of the Meuse, the Saone, and the Rhone was declared subject to the sceptre of Charles the Bald ; and it is therefore from this treaty of Verdun that historians date the erection of the kingdom of France, properly so called. Thus was completed, by the hands of the grandsons of Charle- magne, the dismemberment and dissolution of that magnificent empire which had been the work of his life. Three monarchies arose upon its ruins, henceforth to remain distinct in race, in lan- guage, in character, in interests ; and, in point of fact, the treaty 84 NOTES AND ILLUSTEATIONS. Chap. V^, of Yerdun only proclaimed a separation which the lapse of time and the progress of nations had already accomplished. The Empress Judith survived to witness the settlement which established her son upon the throne of France. She closed a life of restless intrigue and singular vicissitude in September, 843, and was buried in a monastery at Tours. NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. CHARLEMAGNE EMPEROR. The motive of Charlemagne in accepting the title of emperor has not been generally understood. Even Mr. Hallam remarks that Charlemagne's probable design in so doing " was not only to extend his power in Italy, but to invest it with a sort of sacredness and prescriptive dignity in the eyes of his bar- barian subjects. These had been accustomed to hear of emperors as something superior to kings ; they were themselves fond of pompous titles, and the chancery of the new Augustus soon borrowed the splendid ceremonial of the Byzantine court" {Middle Ages, i., p. 123). But the real motive has been more correctly appreciated by Mr. Maine in his work on Aii- cient Law. lie points out that the concep- tion of '•'■ territorial sovereignty" was at that time unknown, and that, when the descend- ants of Clovis aspired to be something more than kings of the Franks, the only precedent which suggested itself was the title of Em- perors of Kome. The passage deserves the careful attention of the student. " The world had lain for so many centuries under the shadow of imperial Rome as to have forgot- ten that distribution of the vast spaces com- prised in the empire which had once parceled them out into a number of independent com- mionwealths, claiming immunity from extrin- sic interference, and pretending to equality of national rights. After the subsidence of the barbarian irruptions, the notion of sov- ereignty that prevailed seems to have been twofold. On the one hand it assumed the form of what may be called '• tribe sovereign- ty.' The Franks, the Burgundians, the Yafi- dals, the Lombards, and Visigoths, were mas- ters, of course, of the territories which they occupied, and to which some of them have given a geographical appellation, but they based no claim of right upon the lact of ter- ritorial possession, and, indeed, attached no importance to it whatever. They appear to have retained tlie traditions which they brought with them from the forest and the steppe, and to have still been in their own view a patriarchal society, a nomad horde, merely encamped for the time upon the soil which afforded them su.stenance. Part of Transalpine Gaul, with part of German}', had now become the country de facto occupied by the Franks — it was France; but the Mero- vingian line of chieftains, the descendants of Clovis, were not kings of France, they were kings of the Franks. The alternative to this peculiar notion of sovereignty appears to have been — and this is the important point — the idea of universal dominion. The moment a monarch departed from the special relation of chief to clansmen, and became solicitous, for purposes of his own, to invest himself with a novel form of sovereignty, the only precedent which suggested itself for his adop- tion was the domination of the emperors of Rome. To parody a common quotation, he became 'a!tt Ccesar aut nuUus.' Either he pretended to the full prerogative of the By- zantine emperor, or he had no political status whatever. In our own age, when a new dy- nasty is desirous of obliterating the prescrip- tive title of a deposed line of sovereigns, it takes its designation from thc^jeop^e instead of the territorii. Thus we have emperors and kings of the French and a king of the Bel- gians. At the period of which we have been speaking, under similar circumstances, a dif- ferent alternative presented itself Tlie chief- tain who would no longer call himself king of the tribe must claim to be emperor of the world. Thus, when the hereditary Mayors of the Palace had ceased to compromise with the monarchs they had long since virtually dethroned, they soon became unwilling to call themselves kings of the Franks, a title which belonged to the displaced Merovings; but they could not style themselves kings of France, for such a designation, though ap- parently not imknown, was not a title of dig- nity. Accordingly, they came forward as as- pirants to universal empire. . . . These singularitie_s of view were not altered on the partition of the inheritance of Charlemagne among his three grandsons. Charles the Biild, Lewis, and Lothaire were still theoret- ically, if it be proper to tise the word, emper- ors of Rome. Just as the Cajsars of the East- ern and Western Empires had each been de jure emperor of the whole world, with de facto control over half of it, so the three Car- lovingians appear to have considered their power as limited, but their title as unquali- fied. The same speculative universality of sovereignty continued to be associated with the imperial throne .after the second division on the death of Charles the Fat, and, indeed, M'as never thoroughly dissociated from it so long as the empire of Germany lasted. Ter- ritorial sovereignty — the view which con- nects sovereignty with the possession of a limited portion of the earth's surface — wag distinctly an offshoot, though a tardy one, of feudalism." (Ancient Liur, p. 103-107.) Chapel of St. John, roitier?, an early Christian Church, probably of the tenth century. CHAPTER VI. THE LATER CAELOVINGIANS. FROM THE TREATY OP VERDUN TO THE AC- CESSION OF HUGH CAPET. A.D. 843-987. § 1. Charles the Bald, King of France; Eebellions. § 2. Incursions of the Normans. §3. Charles the Bald crowned Emperor; his Death. §4. Progress of Feudalism. § 5. John Scotus Erigena; Hincmar of Reims. § 6. Louis le Begue ; Louis III. and Carloman. § 7. The Emperor Charles the Fat. § 8. Siege of Paris by the Normans. § 9. Eudes, Count of Paris, King of France. § 10. Charles the Simple ; Rollo, Duke of Normandy. § 11. Deposition of Charles the Simple; Robert andRodolph Kings of France; Death of Charles the Simple. § 12. Louis d'Outre- mer; Hugh the Great, Duke of France. § 13. Lothaire King of France. § 14. Louis v., Le Faineant ; Accession of Hugh Capet. § 1. The cessation of strife between the royal brothers did not restore peace to the divided empire. The monarchical authority had received a fatal shock during the disorders of the late reign ; the great nobles, freed from the restraint of an iron will and n commanding genius, had grown more and more refractory, and now sought openly to shake off all central control, and set them- selves up, each in his own domain, as so many petty independent sovei'eigns. This tendency, which resulted in the feudal system, forms the chief feature of the period upon which we are now en- tering. Charles the Bald, a prince by no means devoid of intel- ligence, ability, or courage, struggled against it ineiFectually throughout his reign. Three extensive provinces had already assumed the attitude of 86 CHARLES THE BALD. Chap. VL separate states, and defied his authority ; Aquitaine, which was ruled by Pepin II. ; Septimania or Languedoc, under the energetic Duke Bernhard ; and Brittany, which obeyed the orders of its na- tive chief, Nomenoe. Charles had to make war successively, and often simultaneously, with all these stubborn opponents. The contest in Aquitaine was long and desperate ; but, though this country, as well as Languedoc, was at length ostensibly annexed to the dominions of Chai'les the Bald and his son, the real author- ity was divided between three great feudal potentates — the Duke of Guienne or Gascony, and the Counts of Poitiers and Toulouse. § 2, During the whole of this period of strife and anarchy France suffered fearfully from the incessant invasions and depre- dations of the fierce Scandinavian freebooters called Northmen, and in later times Normans. This coming danger had been dis- tinctly foreseen by the sagacity of Charlemagne; but during his vigorous rule the coasts of the empire remained secure from for- eign agression. His degenerate descendants left the sea-board without defense ; and in 841 the Norman vikings entered the mouth of the Seine with a flotilla of 120 galleys, and, sailing up to Rouen, pillaged and burnt that city. Every year their devas- tations were repeated, until in 845, under a famous chieftain named Regnor Lodbrog, they penetrated into the very heart of the kingdom, and appeared before the walls of Paris. Such was the helplessness of Charles, that the capital was abandoned with- out resistance to these ruthless invaders ; they rifled the rich ab- beys of Ste. Genevieve and St. Germain des Pres ; and having amassed an enormous booty, were at length persuaded to make terms with Charles, Avho purchased their retirement at the price of 7000 pounds of silver. Their ravages extended through Aqui- taine and the central districts. In 857 the city of Paris fell a second time into the hands of the brigands, who, after the wildest excesses, massacred in cold blood many thousands of the inhabit- ants — so that "the islets of the Seine," says a contemporary chronicler, " were whitened with the bones of their victims." It was not till 862 that the Normans were for the first time successfully opposed in PYance by the vigor and gallantry of Rob- ert the Strong, a noble of Saxon descent, whom Charles the Bald had created duke or governor of the provinces between the Seine and the Loire. For five years this able captain confronted the enemy on every point, and routed them in several serious engage- ments. Yet his valor could not avert the ignominy of a treaty to which Charles was reduced in 866. The payment of 4000 pounds of silver — the restoration or ransom of all French prison- ers who had effected their escape — a compensation for every Nor- man killed by the Franks — such were the shameful conditions im- A.D. 843-870. INCURSIONS OF THE NORMANS. 87 posed on the degraded successor of Charlemagne. The following year was marked by new misfortunes ; the valiant Count Robert attacked a band of Normans, under their leader Hasting, between Le Mans and Angers ; Hasting, hard pressed, took refuge in a vil- lage church, from which, toward nightfall, he made a desperate sor- tie ; and here Kobert was slain, with many of his followers, fighting heroically to the last. His army, having lost their chief, dispersed in confusion, and the pirates triumphantly regained their fleet. This Robert the Strong, count of Anjou, descended from Chil- debrand, the brother of Charles Martel, was the great-grandfather of Hugh Capet, and ancestor of the kings of France of the. third dynasty. His death was a heavy blow to the declining monarchy of the Carlovingians. He had acquired the title of the " Macca- beeus" of his time.* § 3. The course of events, by which Charles the Bald survived not only liis two brothers, but also several of their successors, p)-o- cured him in his later years a vast extension of territory, at the same time that those which originally belonged to him were ei- ther ravaged by strangers or wrested from him by rebellious vas^- sals. The death of the Emperor Lothaire took place in 855 ; his dominions were divided among his three sons, of whom the eldest, Louis, became Emperor and King of Italy ; the second, Lothaire, King of Lorraine ; while for Charles, the youngest, a new king- dom was erected consisting of Burgundy and Provence. All these princes died Avithin a few years of each other, leaving no direct heirs; Charles of Provence in 863, the King of Lorraine in 869, the Emperor Louis H. in 875. The dominions of Lo- thaire ought to have passed to the eldest of his brothers, the Em- peror Louis ; but Charles the Bald, in contempt of the treaties regulating the succession, instantly invaded Lorraine, where a con- siderable party declared in his favor, and he was crowned at Metz in September, 869. The emperor, engrossed by a war with the Saracens in the south of Italy, contented himself with gentle re- monstrances ; but Louis the German threatened in plain terms to march against his brother with the whole strength of Germany, and compel hira to retire at the point of the sword. Charles, upon this, suspended his warlike movements, and proposed to ne- gotiate ; and the brothers soon concluded an arrangement at Mer- sen, August 9, 870, by which the dominions of their nephew were divided nearly equally between them. The eastern part of Lor- raine, between the Meuse and the Rhine, with transjurane Bur- gundy, fell to the share of Louis the German ; Charles obtained the western districts, between the Meuse and the Scheldt — cisju- rane Burgundy — and the counties of Lyon and Vienne. * Annales Metenses. 88 DEATH OF CHARLES THE BALD. Chap. VL Fresh complications arose upon the death of the Emperor Louis, which occurred in August, 875. Both his uncles, between whom there now reigned a spirit of bitter and fierce rivalry, at once laid claim to the imperial crown. A council assembled at Pavia ad- judged it conjointly to both princes ; a strange award, proceeding either from fear, or from the hope of exciting a contest which might end in the deliverance of Italy from foreign dominion. Charles the Bald, with more energy than he had ever displayed in the defense of his just rights, immediately crossed the Alps to vindicate his doubtful and precarious claim. He reached Rome, gained over the Pope, John VIII., to his interests, and was crown- ed emperor in St. Peter's on the feast of Christmas, 875. But meanwhile Louis the German invaded the French territory ; and the new emperor was compelled to return northward in all haste. Louis, retreating on the approach of Charles, soon recrossed the Khine ; and after some farther hostile demonstrations on both sides, overtures were once more made for a pacific arrangement. The negotiations were suddenly suspended by the tidings of the death of Louis the German ; this prince, the ablest and most vir- tuous of the grandsons of Charlemagne, expired at Frankfort on the 28th of August, 876, leaving three sons to share his dominions. Charles attempted to seize them ; but he died shortly afterward, in a miserable cabin upon the Pass of the Mont Cenis. His end is said to have been hastened by a potion administered to him, under pretense of arresting the disease, by his Jewish physician Zedekias. Charles the Bald died October 6, 877, at the age of fifty-four, having reigned upward of thirty-seven years. § 4. The principle of feudalism made rapid progress during this distracted reign. Koyalty, enfeebled and decaying, was manifestly incapable of enforcing its authority or protecting the public inter- ests ; the nobles were thus compelled in self-defense to assume sovereign power ; and each baronial domain became by degrees a separate independent kingdom. The face of the country was soon covered with fortresses and walled towns, for the preservation of life and property from the ravages of the Norman bandits. Charles the Bald attempted in vain to check this movement on the part of the aristocracy, which tended directly to sap and over- throw the monarchy. He repeatedly forbade the erection of cas- tles and the fortification of towns without the royal permission ; but in the existing state of society the measure was of absolute necessity ; the king's edicts were disregarded, and in the end he was compelled to yield. The freemen and small proprietors, finding that the central gov- ernment was utterly unable to protect them, were naturally led to apply for succor to some powerful neighboring baron, to whom A.D. 870-877. PROGRESS OF FEUDALISM. 89 they recommended themselves, as the phrase went, by the promise of a yearly payment in money, or by undertaking personal military service as his vassals. This practice was formally sanctioned by a royal ordinance of 841, and a capitulary published some years later rendered it obligatory. The step, though suicidal on the part of the crown, was inevitable from the exigencies of the times. The allegiance which had hitherto been paid to the sovereign was thus transferred to the provincial counts and other feudal digni- taries ; and, as a necessary consequence, both lords and vassals be- came alienated from the throne and its interests ; and the territo- rial and administrative unity of the empire, so laboriously built up by Charlemagne, was ere long dissolved. . Gradually the allo- dial lands wei'e converted into feudal tenures, the freeholder glad- ly submitting to this sacrifice in return for the guaranty of pro- tection and security. And, to complete the revolution, every pos- sessor of a fief usurped within his own boundaries all the func- tions and prerogatives of sovereignty ; he declared war and made peace, dispensed justice, imposed taxes, coined money, enacted laws, conferred honors and rewai-ds. A capitulary, passed at the council of Kiersy-sur-Oise in 877, is especially to be noticed, as having granted to the nobles in express terms the hereditary transmission of their benefices. This privi- lege had long been tacitly conceded — it was now solemnly confirm- ed ; and the act referred to may therefore be taken to mark the formal establishment of the feudal constitution. It runs in the following terms: "If any one of our Jldeles has a son or other relative capable of serving the state, he shall be at liberty to trans- mit to him his benefices, honors, and employments, as he may think proper. Upon the death of a count, if his son should be with us,* our son shall name certain of the nearest relatives of the deceased, in concert with the local functionaries and the bishop of the diocese, to conduct the administration of the said county until we shall receive information of the vacancy, and shall be able to invest the son with' the dignities enjoyed by his late parent. If the count's son be of tender age, the same officers and the bishop shall form a council to assist the child in the government of the county, until, upon due announcement made to us, we shall confer upon the heir his paternal honors. The like regulations shall also be observed with regard to their vassals by the bishops and abbots, the counts, and all other our faithful subjects." The effect of this edict was that the counts and other ofhcers, instead of being, as hitherto, the delegates and lieutenants of the sovereign, became independent governors in their several territories. Tlieir * That is, serving with the French army in Ital_y. This capitular}^ was passed on the eve of the king's departure oil his last" Italian expedition. 90 ERIGENA— HINCMAR. Chai-. VI. authority henceforth descended by hereditary succession in their families ; and by the close of the century the whole country was parceled out among these confederate houses, the heads of which, while nominally recognizing a King of France, obeyed, in reality, no other law than that of their private Avill and interests. It fol- lowed, as an ulterior consequenee, that the occupant of the throne became virtually the dependent nominee of the great feudatories. § 5. The intellectual as well as the political and social condi- tion of France degenerated under the later Carlovingians. The revival of letters under Charlemagne was premature, and there- fore ephemeral, but the decline under his successors was gradual; and during the reign of Charles the Bald several eminently learn- ed and celebrated men adorned the various departments of litera- ture and science. The chief of them were John Scotus, surnamed Erigena (or the Irishman), and Hincmar, archbishop of Keims. The former was for many years at the head of the Palatial school, where he taught a system of philosophy founded upon Aristotle and Plato, and encouraged discussions upon the most abstruse metaphysical questions, such as predestination and free-will. Some of his works, especially the " De Divisione Naturfe," were vehemently attacked by the theologians of the time, and were con- demned by more than one council as savoring of heresy. He Avas accused of attempting to reconcile Christianity Avith the Pla- tonism of the Alexandrine school ; and his writings evince tenden- cies to Avhat was afterward termed Mysticism, and even l^anthe- ism. John Scotus took a distinguished part in the controversy on the subject of the Eucharist, raised by Paschasius Radbert, abbot of Corbey. He was commanded by Charles the Bald to write in reply to the treatise of Paschasius, who had broached, in terms more positive than Home had hitherto sanctioned, the doc- trine of transubstantiation. The work of Erigena is unfortunate- ly lost. He is understood to have opposed not only the doctrine of transubstantiation, but also that of the Eeal Presence. Two centuries later, in 1049, a council at Rome condemned his book to be committed to the flames by the hands of the famous Berenger, who had warmly advocated the same views. Erigena was a man of astonishing acquirements for the age in which he lived. He was an excellent scholar ; his Avritings testify an extensive and accurate acquaintance with the best authors of antiquity. At the court of Charles the Bald he was received on terms of confidential familiai'ity, and was constantly consulted by the king on all the great questions of the day, ecclesiastical and civil. He is supposed to have died in France about the year 880. Hincmar, archbishop of Reims, was perhaps the most conspic- uous and influential personage in France, both in Cliurch and A.D. 877-882. LOUIS LE BJ^GUE— LOUIS III.— CARLOMAN. gi State, during the latter half of the ninth century. Born in 806, of the noble family of the Counts of Toulouse, he was early in life favored and advanced by Louis le Debonnaire and Charles le Cliauve, and held the archi-episcopal see of Eeims for thirty-seven 3'^ears — from 845 to 882. The talents of Hincmar were of the highest order ; and he possessed a singularly courageous, lofty, in- dependent tone of mind. Throughout life.he was a strenuou's de- fender of the rights of the Galilean Church, and the legitimate jurisdiction of its bishops, against the usufpations and encroach- ments of the See of Rome. His prolonged contest with Nicholas I., one of the ablest and most ambitious of the popes, is especially memorable. Hincmar is also celebrated for his controversy with Gottschalk, a monk of the diocese of Soissons, who maintained the doctrine of absolute predestination and reprobation. Gotts- chalk was condemned by a council at Kiersy in 849, and seems to have been treated by the archbishop with extreme severity. This excited violent initation and opposition among the clergy, some of whom began to write in suj^port of Gottschalk's tenets ; and Hincmar continued involved in bitter polemical disputes for the rest of his days. Several of his works are extant, among which are epistles addressed to Charles the Bald, Louis le Begue, aad Charles the Fat, treating of political science in general, and full of excellent advice for the government of the kingdom. Hinc- mar died in exile from his cathedral citj, which had fallen into the hands of the Normans, in the year 882. § 6. Louis le Begue, or the Stammerer, the only surviving son of Charles the Bald, was a prince of sickly constitution and feeble character. He died, after a brief reign of a year and a half, in April, 879, leaving two sons, Louis HI. and Carloman, who were raised to the throne conjointly — the elder, Louis, reigning in the north of France, while Carloman governed Aquitaine and Bur- gundy. The only event of importance in their reign was the re- volt of Duke Boson, the brother-in-law of Charles the Bald, who in 880 usurped the independent sovereignty of the southeastern provinces, and established himself, with the general consent of the population, as King of Burgundy and Provence. This new king- dom, of which the capital was Aries, maintained its separate ex- istence for upward of a century and a half: it was ceded in 1033 to the Emperor Conrad H., and was thenceforth annexed to the German empire. The great vassals, however, continued to share among them the real power : the principal of them was the Dau- phin of Vienne. Louis III., after having signally defeated the Northmen at San- court, near Abbeville, and concluded a treaty with their leader Hasting, died suddenly in August, 882. He had scarcely com- 92 CHARLES THE FAT. Chap, VI. pleted his twentieth year. His brother survived him somewhat more than two years : his death was occasioned by a wound which he received in hunting the wild-boar, in December, 884. § 7. Neither Louis III. nor Carloraan left any issue male ; and the crown now devolved, according to the strict law of succession, upon an infant prince qf five years old, named Chai'les, a posthu- mous son of Louis le Begue by his second wife Adelaide ; but the imminent dangers which threatened the state were such as to re- quire a sovereign of nTature age, capable of exerting himself in its defense : and the nobles, deviating from the line of hereditary right, adjudged the throne to the Emperor Charles the Fat, young- est son of Louis the German. Charles possessed already the king- doms of Italy and Germany, so that, on adding France to his do- minions, he united under his sceptre nearly the whole of the im- mense empire founded by Charlemagne. Charles, however, was utterly unworthy of the lofty position to which fortune had raised him. He was devoid both of military and political talent ; his corpulence rendered him inactive ; he was cruel, treacherous, cow- ardly. A formidable league was formed agamst him in the year following his accession, by a Norman chieftain named Godefrid, who had obtained the lordship of Frisia, and Hugh (Hugues) of Lorraine, the illegitimate son of King Lothaire, and pretender to his father's throne. Under pretext of a conference to arrange their differences, Charles enticed Godefrid into his power in the island of Batavia, and there caused him to be assassinated in cold blood. Hugh was seized at the same moment, deprived of his eyesight, and sent prisoner to the convent of St. Gall, where he expired shortly afterward. Upon the news of this perfidious outrage, the fury of the Normans was excited beyond all bounds ; they flew to arms on all sides ; and pouring into France at once by sea and land, arrived for the third time before Paris, with an overwhehn- ing force commanded by the famous Rollo, in November, 885. § 8. The siege which ensued is one of the most memorable events of the ninth century. The capital Avas nobly defended by three great feudal lords, among whom Eudes, count of Paris, eld- est son of Count Robert the Sti'ong, was the most distinguished. They had fortified themselves with a chosen garrison on the island of the Seine, where for the space of eighteen months they success- fully defied the utmost efforts of the besieging army of 30,000 men. The citizens were encouraged to hold out by repeated as- surances that the emperor was on his march at the head of a vast army to their succor ; but Charles was far away in Germany, where he continued to linger, apparently indifferent to the fate of Paris, though messenger after messenger was dispatched to warn him of the extremity of the danger. Meanwhile the siege was A.D. S82-88S. EUDES. 93 pressed with extraordinary vigor ; the assailants exhausted all the resources of the art of war, but could never succeed in carrying the two bridges, each defended by a lofty tower, which united the island with the right bank of the Seine. The heroic, garrison be- held its numbers grievously thinned by daily losses ; but still there was no thought of surrender. A body of the imperial troops, which arrived at length under the Duke Henry, was seized with panic upon the death of their leader, and retreated in confusion. After a farther delay of three months, the indolent Charles arrived with the grand army of the empire, and crowned the heights of Montmartre. The besieged exulted in the prospect of long-delay- ed vengeance and triumph ; and it is more easy to conceive than to express their indignation when they learned suddenly that the emperor had entered into a disgraceful compromise with the half- defeated enemy, by which he agreed to pay 800 pounds of silver for the ransom of Paris, the Normans being permitted to retire unmolested into Burgundy. This indignity was deeply resented by the whole nation. The Parisians repudiated the ti'eaty with scorn, and fiercely attacked the Normans when they demanded a passage ^cross the Seine : they were obliged to drag their galleys by land for a distance of more than two miles from the city before they could embark in safety. The emperor retired from Paris to Soissons, overwhelmed with chagrin, and worn out by disease. It was with difficulty that he reached the frontier of Germany, where he found himself the ob- ject of general contempt and aversion. His intellect became im- paired ; and a diet of the empire, assembled at Tribur, near May- ence, gave utterance to the unanimous sentence passed against him by his incensed subjects, by decreeing his deposition from the throne. The wretched prince sought shelter in the monastery of Reichenau, near the Lake of Constance, where he ended his days in a pitiable condition both of body and mind, January 12, 888. § 9. The death of Charles the Fat was the signal for the final dismemberment and dissolution of the Carlo vingian empire. It broke up at once into its natural divisions of France, Germany, and Italy ; but these were again subdivided into no less than sev- en independent states, each of which elected as sovereign the most powerful and illustrious of its local aristocracy. The crown of France was offered, in grateful recognition of his gallant defense of Paris, to the Count Eudes, who had already been invested by the late emperor with the Duchy of France. He was proclaimed and crowned amid general demonstrations of satisfaction and joy; but he soon discovered that the throne to which he had succeeded Avas beset with perils ; and his reign of ten years was a continual struggle either with foreign invasion or with internal faction and 94 CHARLES THE SIMPLE. Chap. VL rebellion. The election of Eudes was not recognized in Aqui- taine ; he encountered obstinate resistance from the Counts of Poitiers and Auvergne ; and he was never able to establish more than a no^jajijal authority over the provinces south of the Loire. The example of Aquitaine was followed in Brittany, where Alan, count of Vannes, having obtained an important victory over the Normans in 890, declared himself independent, assumed the royal title, and reigned gloriously for seventeen years. Meanwhile a powerful party adhered to the dethroned dynasty of the Carlo- vingians, in the person of the youthful Charles, the sole surviving son of Louis le Begue. Taking advantage of the absence of Eu- des on a distant expedition, they conveyed the young prince se- cretly to Reims, where he was crowned King of France, Januaiy 28, 893, having just attained the age of fourteen. Eudes soon hastened northward in full force, upon which Charles and his par- tisans escaped to the court of Arnulf, king of Germany, who, as successor to Charles the Fat, was looked upon as the head of the family of Charlemagne, and the natural protector of its rights. After a desultory civil strife, the Carlovingian party sent a depu- tation to treat with Eudes for terms of peace. Eudes Jaehaved toward his young opponent with generous moderation ; ceded to him in full sovereignty the territory between the Seine and the Meuse, and guaranteed to him the succession to the crown of the whole kingdom. This arrangement had scarcely been ratified when Eudes fell dangerously ill at La Fere-sur-Oise, and expired on the 3d of January, 898, at the age of forty, having Avith his last breath enjoined the barons who surrounded him to transfer their allegiance faithfully to Charles. His brother Eobert suc- ceeded him as Duke of France. § 10. Charles IIL, surnamed the Simple, ascended the throne peaceably, and reigned for many years in undisturbed tranquillity. His character is sufficiently indicated by the epithet attached to his name ; his understanding was weak ; he was credulous and easily deceived ; and his affable, careless temper rendered him a mere puppet in the hands of the turbulent nobles, who profited by his imprudence for their own aggrandizement. The Northmen, after the example of their barbarous predeces- sors in the fifth century, had begun for some years past to show an inclination to settle permanently on the soil which they had so often desolated by their destructive ravages. They had form- ed several colonies in the basin of the Lower Seine, especially at Rouen ; they also occupied Bayeux, Evreux, Chartres, and other desirable positions in that fruitful district. Their leader at this time was the celebrated Rollo, the same who had commanded at the siege of Paris; a warrior of gigantic stature, active, enterpris- A.D, 888-911. ROLLO OF NORMANDY. 95 ing, indefatigable, and well qualified to become the founder of a powerful kingdom. In proportion as the feudal system developed itself in France, the country, covered with fortified towns and ba- ronial castles, ceased to be, as formei'ly, an easy, unresisting prey to the marauder ; and although Rollo and his followers still con- tinued their habits of brigandage, the results were by no means so successful, while occasionally they were met by obstinate re- sistance and total defeat. In August, 911, the Normans were routed with prodigious slaughter before Chartres by Richard of Burgundy and Eobert, duke of France. Exasperated by this dis- aster, Hollo vowed to take terrible and wholesale vengeance, and began to organize his forces for a war of pitiless extermination throughout France. It was now that Duke Robert tendered to Charles the Simple the politic advice to secure the future peace of his kingdom by making timely and valuable concessions to the Normans. Accordingly, the king dispatched the Archbishop of Rouen as his envoy to Rollo, proffering to him the hereditary lordship of the territory situate between the Epte and Brittany, together with the hand of the Princess Gisele in marriage, on con- dition that he would embrace Christianity, and consent to live in peace and amity with France. The Scandinavian chief received the royal proposition with a good grace, but represented that the district offered was so exhausted and uncultivated that it was im- possible to derive from it the means of peaceable subsistence. Upon this Charles granted in addition the province of Brittany, over which, in fact, he had no power, as it was then an independ- ent state under a native prince ; but Rollo was either ignorant of this, or deemed it of no consequence ; and after some farther de- liberation and delay, the arrangement was finally accepted. A meeting now took place between the contracting parties at the village of St. Clair-sur-Epte, near Gisors, toward the close of the year 911. Here Rollo took the oath of fealty to his new suzerain in the accustomed form ; but on being told that, in order to com- plete the ceremony, it was necessary that he should kneel and kiss the monarch's foot, he started back and disdainfully refused to comply. The point of etiquette being insisted on, Rollo at length deputed one of his attendants to perform the duty in his stead. The rude soldier, either intentionally or from awkward- ness, lifted the king's foot with so little circumspection, that Charles fell backward from his seat. His comrades could not re- press a shout of laughter, which the French were in no condition to resent ; the incident was allowed to pass without remark, and the important treaty was fully ratified. Rollo now fulfilled his engagements by seeking Christian baptism at the hands of the Archbishop of Rouen, and received the name of Robert from the 96 ROBERT— EODOLPH. Chap. VI. Duke of France, who answered for him at the font. He was shortly afterward united to the P"'rench princess. His territory, henceforth known as Normandy, was divided among his warlike companions, most of whom followed the example of their duke by embracing Christianity. Robert proved himself a wise, intelli- gent, and able ruler, and under his government Normandy rose rapidly to a high state of prosperity. The ruined churches were rebuilt, the towns walled and fortified, the land carefully cultiva- ted, justice impartially administered. The barbarian Northmen adopted with marvelous facility the language and manners of the nation among whom they had settled ; and Normandy became in the course of a few years celebrated throughout France for its ad- vancement in the arts of industry, commerce, and civilization. § 11. Meanwhile the incapacity of Charles became more and more apparent ; he abandoned himself blindly to the guidance of his minister Hagaaion, a man of low origin, but of considerable energy and talent, who assumed the whole authority of govern- ment, and irritated the nobles by his haughty manners and un- scrupulous conduct. For ten years Haganon stoutly maintained the royal prerogative against the overweening pretensions of the great vassals ; but in the year 920 their indignation and discon- tent became uncontrollable ; under the leadership of Robert, duke of France, whose family was now decidedly the most powerful and influential in the kingdom, they rose in revolt against Charles and his favorite, renounced their allegiance to the sovereign, and collected their forces for the avowed purpose of dethroning him. Charles was besieged by Robert of France at Laon, capital of the province to which the royal dominion was now limited ; the city soon fell into the hands of the insurgents ; and the ill-fated mon- arch fled, attended by the faithful Haganon, into Lorraine, which he had lately acquired by the death of Louis, son and successor of the Emperor Arnulf. Duke Robert, strengthened by two im- portant alliances which he had contracted with Herbert, count of Vermandois, and Rodolph, or Ralph, duke of Burgundy, was now proclaimed king, and crowned at Reims on the 29th of June, 922. Civil war foUoAved ; Haganon defended his master's cause with undiminished zeal, steadfastness, and courage ; and having obtain- ed the assistance of a body of Normans, attacked the army of the usurper at Soissons, in June, 923. The battle was bloody, ; Rob- ert of France was slain in the first onset ; but his forces were successfully rallied by his son, Hugh le Blanc, and the Count of Vermandois, and, after a desperate contest, the victory remained with the nobles. Charles escaped once more into Lorraine ; and it was now arranged between the three confederate princes that the crown sliould be conferred, not on the son of the deceased A.D. 911-936. LOUIS D'OUTREMER. 97 Robei't, but on his son-in-law, Rodolph of Burgundy, who was ac- cordingly crowned at Soissons in July. Herbert of Vermandois, a man of base and faithless character, was offended that the choice had not fallen on himself; he sent to assure Charles of his return to loyalty, and to oiFer him assistance and protection ; and having thus obtained possession of the king's person, he imprisoned him, by an act of odious treachery, in his strong-hold at Chateau Thi- erry. Upon the news of this catastrophe, Charles's queen Ogwi- na, a sister of Athelstan, king of the Anglo-Saxons, effected her escape to England, and took refuge at her mother's court ; she carried with her the heir of the Carlovingians, a child of three years old, who, from this circumstance of his early expatriation, received the name of Louis d'Outremer. The captive king was transferred from one dungeon to another, according to the caprice or fancied interest of his tyrannical jailer, who made use of him as a means of extorting whatever concessions he desii-ed from Ro- dolph. At one time he was set at liberty, and replaced upon the throne ; but within a few months he was again a prisoner, and died at length in the castle of Peronne, in October, 929. § 12. The death of Charles the Simple relieved Eodolph from gi'eat embarrassment ; he was thus enabled to employ his whole energies in combating Herbert of Vermandois, which he did with such success, that his opponent, after losing the cities of Laon, Amiens, and St. Quentin, was reduced to seek the protection of Henry the Fowler, king of Germany ; this prince interposed his mediation, and negotiations folloAved which brought about a treaty of peace between the disputants in 935. Rodolph, who had gov- erned with considerable vigor and resolution, died shortly after- ward in the prime of life, in January, 936, leaving no issue. Hugh le Blanc, or the Great, Duke of France and Count of Paris, unquestionably the most powerful personage in the king- dom, might now, as on a former occasion, have placed the crown without difficulty upon his own head. He preferred, however, to waive his claim for the present, and to exercise all the authority of government under the name of another ; and accordingly con- certed measures with Herbert of Vermandois and William Long- sword, duke of Normandy, for recalling from England the exiled son of Charles the Simple, Louis d'Outremer, who was welcomed with sincere joy by the nation, and immediately took possession of the throne of his ancestors. Hugh the Great demanded and obtained the duchy of Burgundy as a reward for the part he had taken in this restoration. The young king had been carefully educated at the court of his uncle Athelstan, and, being of a spirited temper, Avas by no means disposed to resign himself implicitly to the dictation of the Duke E 98 LOTHAIRE. Chap. VI. of France. No sooner did his real character appear than Hugh began-to grow lukewarm in his cause ; the estrangement increased, and it was not long before an open rupture ensued. Hugh form- ed an alliance with the most potent and ambitious sovereign of the time, Otho the Great, king of Germany ; and the rebellious feudatories, among whom was the Duke of Normandy, threw off their allegiance to Louis, and declared themselves vassals of the German crown. France was once more rent by civil strife ; Otho invaded the country, and advanced to Attigny, where he caused himself to be proclaimed king (940) ; the confederate lords took Reims, but were repulsed before Laon, which was gallantly de- fended by Louis ;. and after some farther hostilities Pope Stephen VHL interposed his mediation in the king's favor, and enjoined the French princes, under pain of excommunication, to return to their duty as loyal subjects. Peace was accordingly restored in 942, but it was unhappily of short duration, Louis, with a chival- rous courage worthy of better fortune, struggled manfully to stem the tide of insubordination and anarchy ; but it was too strong to be arrested ; he was thwarted at every turn by Hugh and his as- sociate barons ; and successive defeats left him with little more than the empty shadow of royal authority. The monarchy had fallen to the lowest ebb, and was evidently verging to extinction ; the royal domain comprised little more than the rock of Laon and the district immediately surrounding it. Louis died in 954, from the effects of a fall from his liorse while chasing a wolf in the forest between Laon and Reims. By his queen Gei-berga, a sister of Otho of Germany, he left two sons, Lothaire and Charles. § 13. The crown was now, for the third time, at the disposal of Hugh the Great, and for the third time he declined to assume it. Lothaire, a youth of fourteen, was pi'oclaimed king, and crowned at Reims. Two years afterward (956) Hugh died, and was buried at St. Denis, an abbey which belonged to him, together with sever- al other ecclesiastical preferments. This remarkable man, who must be regarded as the true founder of the Capetian dynasty, left five children by his third wife Edgiva, sister to the Emperor Otho. His eldest son Hugh, surnamed Capet, succeeded him as Count of Paris and Duke of France, and afterward became king. One of his daughters was married to Richard, duke of Normandy. The Emperor Otho died in 973, after a long and glorious reign ; and Lothaire now made an attempt, with the assistance of Hugh Capet and other feudatories, to possess himself of the province of Lorraine, and reannex it to France. This project was defeated by the adroitness of the young Emperor Otho II., who invested Prince Charles, younger brother of Lothaire, with the duchy of A.D. 936-987. LOUIS V.— HUGH CAPET. 99 Lower Lorraine, or Brabant, on condition that he should hold it as a fief of the empire, and engage to oppose to the utmost the ag- gressive movements of his brother. In 978 Otho invaded France at the head of 60,000 soldiers, and, without encountering any serious resistance, encamped at length upon Montmartre. Here Otho announced to Hugh Capet, who defended Paris, that he would salute him with a louder Alleluia than he had ever yet heard, and accordingly caused the Te Deum to be intoned by the priests, the responses being sustained by the united voices of his whole army, to the dismay of the astounded Parisians, whose ears were well-nigh deafened by this martial chorus. The imperial army remained thi-ee days before Paris, and then retired Avithout attacking the city. Lothaire and his barons followed in close pursuit, and at the passage of the Aisne, near Soissons, Otho had the mortification to see his rear-guard cut to pieces by the French cavalry ; all his baggage and stores fell likewise into the hands of the victors. Hostilities were now suspended, and a reconciliation was ar- ranged in 980 ; Lothaire renouncing his pretensions to Lorraine, contrary to the advice of Hugh Capet, and to the great discontent of the French nation. He died at Reims, at the age of forty-four, March 2, 986. § 14. The son of Lothaire, Louis V., surnamed Le Faineant, succeeded without opposition, and was crowned at Compiegne ; but the public indignation was violently excited against the queen- mother,, and the king's first act was to remove her from his court, and deprive her of all share of power. This involved him at once in discord and strife ; and during the intrigues which followed, and which were doubtless fomented secretly by Hugh Capet for his own purposes, the condition of the kingdom became daily more deplorable. Louis, however, had not long to struggle with the many difficulties and dangers which surrounded him ; he was car- ried off suddenly and mysteriously, after a reign of little more than a year, in May, 987. His death was generally attributed to poison administered by his wife, Blanche of Aquitaine. Such was the melancholy end of the last of the direct descendants of Charlemagne who sat on the throne of France. Louis V. died without issue ; and the crown now belonged, according to the rightful order of succession, to his uncle Chai'les, duke of Lower Lorraine. This prince, however, who had led a disorderly life among associates of the worst character, found but few to support his pretensions ; and at a grand assembly of the nobles held at Senlis, the Ai'chbishop of Eeims, in a remarkable discourse, strong- ly urged the election of the Count of Paris, Hugh Capet, as a per- sonage "illustrious alike by his deeds and by his power, in whom 100 ON THE DECLINE AND Chap. VL the nation would find a valiant defender, not only of the public welfai-e, but of the private rights and interests of individuals." His recommendation was accepted with general applause ; Hugh Avas declared king ; and by his coronation at Keims, on the 1st of July, 987, a new dynasty was inaugurated, which answered to the altered constitution and necessities of France, revolutionized as it was by feudalism — a dynasty destined to preside over the change- ful fortunes of the nation for a period of no less than eight cen- turies, and to be overthrown at last by a far mightier revolution than that which gave it birth. NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. A. AUTHORITIES. The chief authority for the reign of Charle- magne is liis biography by Eginhard, who was the emperor's confidential private secre- tary. This work, entitled "Vita et Conver- satio gloriosissimi Iniperatoris Karoli Regis Magni." is. published in M. Guizot's "Collec- tion of Memoires," and is pronounced by him to be "beyond comparison tlie most distin- guished piece of history from the 6th to the Sth century ; a true literary composition, con- ceived and executed by a reflecting and culti- vated mind." It is divided into two parts, the first relating to the wars and foreign pol- icy of the emperor, the second to his internal administration and the details of his domestic life. Another work by Eginhard, " Annales Regum Francoriim" (a.d. 741-829) is of infe- rior merit in a litei'ary point of view, but valuable as a contemporary chronicle. His " Epistolse" furnish many curious and inter- esting particulars of the social habits and manners of the time. Eginhard was an Austrasian, and was taken very early in life into the service of Charle- magne, wlio had him educated under his own eye in the School of the Palace. He is said to have married tlie Princess Emma, one of the daughters of the emperor. The singular account of their amours, derived from the chronicle of Lauresheim (see the Spectator, No. 181), is considered by M. Guizot as of doubtful credit. Eginhard became in later life Abbot of Seligenstadt, and died there in 839. The chronicle of the Monk of St. GciU, en- titled "Faites et Gestes de Charlemagne," was written in 8S4 by desire of the Emperor Charles tlie Eat, and is another authentic source of information for the histoiy of this pe- riod. The "Histoire de Charlemagne," by (raillardi is a modern French work of estab- lished reputation ; there is a similar biogra- phy in English by Mr. G. P. R. James. The student should not fail to consult carefully M Guizot's "History of Civilization," Lectures 20, 21, 22, 23, and the excellent " Lectures on the History of France," by Sir James Stephen, late Professor of Modern History at Cam- bridge, vol. i.. Lectures 4 and 5. B. ON THE DECLINE AND FALL OP THE CARLOVINGIAN EMPIRE. The strangely rapid dismemberment and dissolution of the mighty empire founded by Charlemagne is a problem for which various solutions have been offered. Some have at- tributed it to the unwieldy and unnatural ex- tent of the empire ; others to the frequent and vmwise territorial divisions among the chil- dren and grandchildren of Charlemagne ; oth- ers to the deplorable incapacity of Louis le Debonnaire, Charles tlie Bald, Charles tlia Fat, and Charles the Simple ; others, lastly, to the inconveniences of the feudal system, which, by distributing political power among a multitude of petty independent sovereigns, rendered all central government impractica- ble. There is no doubt a certain measure of truth in all these explanations ; and, indeed, all the above mentioned causes may very well have been in operation at the same period. But the essential principle which lay at the root of this great revolution is most probably that indicated by Augustin Thierry in his "Lettres sur I'Histoire de France," Lett. 11 and 12, namely, the antagonism of race be- tween the various heterogeneous nationalities composing the Frank empire. The iron grasp of the great emperor maintained political uni- ty among different populations which in real- ity were alien and hostile to each other; but from the moment when the contest com- menced between Louis le Debonnaire and his sons, the antipathy of I'ace became clearly manifest, and the wars which ensued were in. fact a struggle between two great opposing national interests. " From the beginning of the civil war," writes M. Thierry, "a great divergence of political opinion became appar- ent between the Franks residing in the midst of the Gaulish population and tliose who re- mained in the ancient German territory. The former, who, notwithstanding their de- scent, were united in interest with the people conquered by their ancestors, took part in general against the emperor, ?'. ' It is the will of God ! It is the will of God!" Ui'ban, interpreting this spontaneous cry as a manifest proof of Divine inspiration, decreed that it should be taken as the motto or rallying Avord of the Christian army in the arduous struggle about to commence. The whole assembly then • knelt in confession, and received tlie absolution of the holy father ; after which thousands of eager devotees bound themselves by oath to avenge the cause of Jesus Christ in Palestine, and received in token of their engagement a cross of red cloth affixed on the right shoulder. From this badge they were thenceforth distinguished as the croise's, and their enterprise as the Crusade. The first eccle- siastic who assumed the cross was Adhemar, bishop of Le Puy, whom the Pope appointed to accompany the expedition in the quality of legate ; the first temporal prince Avho followed his ex- ample was the powerful Kaymond de St. Gilles, count of Toulouse. The Church was lavish in its grant of privileges, and every spe- cies of encouragement, spiritual and temporal, to all Avho should enlist under the banner of the Ci'oss. The crusader Avas, ipso fac 120 PHILIP I. CiiAP.VIL to, absolved from his sins, and obtained plenary remission of all canonical penance.* He was placed under the special protection of the apostles Peter and Paul, and thereby shielded from all vio- lence or molestation, both in person and property ; any one who might presume to injure him incurred the sentence of excommuni- cation until he should make complete reparation. Death during the pilgrimage was announced to be a certain passport to a glori- ous inheritance in Paradise. Never had such a marvelous outburst of mingled military and religious frenzy been witnessed in the annals of the world. Ev- ery European nation engaged more or less deeply in the dangers, difficulties, and glories of the crusade ; it seemed as if the entire continent, upheaved from its foundations, and impelled by some resistless motive pi-inciple, was about to precipitate itself in one stupendous mass upon the shores of Asia. But the history of the movement is specially and inseparably identified with that of France. The undertaking was thoroughly congenial to the chiv- jilrous character of the French nation, and occasioned, in fact, the earliest development of its force and vigor. It was in the heart of France that the crusade was first resolved on and proclaimed. The missionary who preached it, the Pope who sanctioned and en- joined it, were natives of France. All the principal leaders of the expedition were without exception French ; and two thirds, at least, of the crusading army belonged to the same nation. It was a Frenchman who founded the Christian kingdom of Jerusa- lem ; Frenchmen were placed at the head of almost all the princi- palities established by the Crusaders in the East. The language, manners, and political system of France prevailed throughout Pal- estine dui'ing the period of the Christian occupation. It was ac- cordingly with perfect truth and justice that a contemporary his- torian, Guibert of Nogent, adopted for his chronicle the title of '"Gesta Dei per Fi-ancos." § 16. None of the sovereigns of Christendom took part in the first crusade. Philip of France was disabled from joining it both by constitutional habits of indolence and by his peculiar circum- stances, laboring as he did under the gravest censiu'es of the Church. The chief command of the expedition was intrusted to Godfrey de Bouillon, duke of Lower Lorraine, descended on his mother's side from Charlemagne ; an able, experienced, and suc- cessful soldier, and distinguished by the highest qualities of honor, vivtue, and piety. Plis principal lieutenants were Hugh, count of Vermandois, and Valois, brother of the King of France ; Robert * " Quicnnqiie pro sola devotione, non pro honoris vcl jjeciinia; adeptione, ad liberandam Ecclesiam Dei Jerusalem profectus faerit, iter ilhul pro omni pfcuitentia re])utetiir." — Cone. Clermont. A.D. 1095-1099. CAPTURE OF JERUSALEM. 121 Courthose, duke of Normandy, eldest son of the Conqueror ; Rob- ert, count of Flanders ; Stephen, count of Chartres and Blois, who had married the Princess Adela, daughter of William the Con- queror, and was father of Stephen, afterward King of England ; Baldwin, count of Hainault ; and Kaymond, marquis of Provence and count of Toulouse. Godfrey de Bouillon was accompanied by his two brothers, Eustace and Baldwin of Boulogne. The preparations of these great barons for so remote and peril- ous a warfare necessarily requii'ed considerable delay ; and long before they were in readiness to march, the agitation and impa- tience among pilgrims of the humbler classes rose to such a pitch that it was found impossible to restrain them. Early in March, 1096, an immense column of Crusaders, composed of needy adven- turers and ignorant fanatic peasants, chiefly from the north and east of France, crossed the Rhine, and took the route through Ger- many towai'd Constantinople. It was a rude, miscellaneous, un- disciplined multitude, numbering upward of 100,000, and divided into three bodies under the guidance of a Burgundian knight call- ed Walter Sansavoir, or the Penniless, Peter the Hermit, and a priest named Gottschalk. After traversing Hungary and Bulga- ria, this motley host arrived, not without heavy loss, under the walls of Constantinople. The Greek emperor, dismayed by the strange aspect and lawless behavior of the advanced guard of his western allies, lost no time in persuading them to pass the straits into Asia Minor. There they imprudently embroiled themselves with the Turks ; they were attacked near Nicsea by the Sultan Kilidge-Arslan, with overwhelming numbers, and nearly their whole force was exterminated, a remnant of only 3000 fugitives escaping from the field. The grand army of the Crusaders was put in motion toward the close of summer. The general point of rendezvous was Con- stantinople. That part of the army which passed through Apulia was powerfully re-enforced by a large body of the Normans of Southern Italy, raised and commanded by the crafty and ambi- tious Bohemond, prince of Tarentum, eldest son of Robert Guis- card. This prince was accompanied by his cousin, the generous and high-souled Tancred, afterward Prince of Galilee, so cele- brated by the muse of Tasso as the mirror 'and model of Christian chivalry.* § 17. We have not space for a detailed account of the compli- cated operations and events of this first and most successful of the crusades. In March, 1097, the entire army of the Franks was concentrated in the plains of Bithynia ; and at a general review it was found that the total force then present amounted to 100,000 * Gcrusalemnie Liberata, canto i., io. F 1 22 PHILIP I.— LOUIS VL Chap. VIL liorsemen or knights, and 600,000 on foot,* of the two sexes. These prodigious niimbers seem scarcely credible, yet there is no just ground for supposing them exaggerated. After taking Nicosa and Antioch, and fighting many desperate battles, the eyes of the Crusaders were at length gladdened by the first sight of Jerusalem (7th of June, 1099). Of the enormous multitude which had marched from Europe there now remained no more than 60,000 under arms ; the rest had fallen victims to famine, pestilence, fa- tigue, or the sword. Jerusalem was defended by a garrison of 40,000 Turks ; the siege was instantly commenced, and lasted thirty-seven days ; a first assault was repulsed ; the second was successful; and on Friday, the 15th of July, 1099, the ramparts were stormed amid deafening shouts of " Dieu le veut !" and with indescribable triumph the banner of the Cross Avas planted upon the battlements and towers of the Holy City. The slaughter Avas continued, long after resistance had ceased, in the streets, houses, and mosques ; and upward of 70,000 Turks are said to have been massacred. The victors rode in blood, says one account,| which reached to their horses' knees. After satiating their fury by this merciless carnage, Godfrey and his attendant nobles threw off their armor, and repaired in solemn procession to the church of the Holy Sepulchre, where they poured forth their souls in devout humiliation, adoration, and thanksgiving, and thus brought their vows to a final consummation. Such were the strange but char- acteristic inconsistencies of this frantic undertaking. The first fruits of this memorable conquest was the foundation of the Latin kingdom of Jerusalem. The croAvn is said to have been fii*st offered to the rash, but gallant and generotis Eobert of Normandy ; and on his declining it the election fell, by unanimous suffrage, upon Godfrey de Bouillon. That excellent prince ac- cepted the high honor conferred upon him, but refused, in his pious humility, to wear a diadem of gold and jewels where his Eedeemer's brows had been lacerated by a crown of thorns. He never assumed a higher title than that of Advocate and Baron of the Holy Sepulchre. The reign of Godfrey lasted no more than one year: he died in July, 1100, and was succeeded by his broth- er Baldwin, count of Edessa. The new kingdom *Avas organized carefully upon the feudal model: it was distributed into counties and baronies depending on the crown, like the great fiefs of France. The chief of them, in the order of their foundation, Avere the county of Edessa, the principality of Antioch, the principality of Tiberias or Galilee, created in favor of Tancred, and the county of Tripoli, conferred upon Raymond of Toulouse. There Avere also a Marquis of * William of Tyre, lib. ii. - f Robert le Moine. A.D. 1099-1108. MISGOVERNMENT OF PHILIP I. 123 Ptolemais (Tyre), a Marquis of Joppa, and Counts of Bethlehem and Nazareth. An important and admirable code of laws was drawn up in the French language for the government of the king- dom, and entitled the "Assises de Jerusalem." This system of jurisprudence became so celebrated that it exercised considerable influence upon the principal states of Europe. § 18. No events of public importance passed in France during the progress of the crusade. The eyes of the nation were fixed intently upon Palestine, and Philip slumbered on unheeded in his habitual luxury and sensuality. The latter years of his reign were spent in tardy remorse for the scandals and disorders of his life. In 1104 he underwent a public penance for his sins in the presence of the papal legate, and was absolved from the sentence of excommunication ; not- withstanding which, Bertrade was suffered to retain the position and honors of queen consort to the end of her days. A short time before his death the king assumed the habit of a Benedictine monk, and desired that he might be buried in the church of Fleuri-sur-Loire, not deeming himself worthy of a place in the se- pulchral vault of the French monarchs at St. Denis. He breathed his last at Melun, July 29, 1108, after a reign of more than forty- seven yeai's, one of the longest in the annals of France. § 19. Louis VI., surnamed Le Gros, 1108-1137.-7- At the death of Philip I. the demesne royal, or immediate dominions of the King of France, consisted of no more than the five cities of Paris, Melun, Etampes, Orleans, and Sens, \yith the counties or dis- tricts surrounding them, answering nearly to the modern depart- ments of the Seine, Seine et Oise, Seine et Mai'ne, and Loiret. The communication between one royal town and another was con- stantly intei'cepted by the lords of strong isolated fortresses, who carried on a regular system of brigandage, pillaging travelers on the highways, confining them in the dungeons of their castles, and compelling them to purchase their liberty by ruinous ransoms. They also shamefully plundei'ed the churches and monasteries, and destroyed all public oi'der and security by their lawless spoli- ation. Such was the result of the wretched misgovei-nment, or rather total neglect of all the duties of government, under the late sovereign. The first eight years of the reign of Louis VI. were occupied in successive contests with these feudal freebooters. In this harassing and protracted strife the king was vigorously sup- ported by two great -powers whose interests were vitally at stake — the Church and the people. In order to put down the oppres- sion' of these I'apacious and seditious barons, he appealed, says, a chronicler of the time,* to the bishops : they armed the serfs and * Ordericus Vitalis, Ub. ii., cap. 34. 1 24 LOUIS VI. Chap. VII. tenants of the ecclesiastical domains, and thus organized a popular association which supplied Louis with numbers of eager and de- termined soldiers, who flocked to his standards under the guidance of their parish priests. This coalition of the monarch, the hie- rai'chy, and the peasantry, against the tyranny of the petty nobles, is one of the most remarkable features of the reign of Louis. The middle and lower classes, thus uniting for mutual preservation from the daily peril of captivity, spoliation, and every species of outrage, took the first steps toward the great social revolution which is known in French history as the Affranchissement des Com- munes. In proportion as they exerted themselves, they acquired firmness and self-respect, and learned the secret of their own con- sequence and power ; and by degrees they were enabled to wrest from their oppressors not merely a bare security for personal free- dom, but great privileges of internal organization and self-govern- ment, by which the commons, or tiers etat, acquired the rank of one of the constitutional orders of the state, and became a perma- nent counterpoise against the high feudal nobility. § 20. The foundation of these popular liberties has been gener- ally ascribed to Louis VI., from the circumstance that several of the earliest municipal charters extant are dated in his reign. It does not appear, however, that Louis, properly speaking, granted any of these charters ; they were acquired by dint of successful contest with the local proprietors ; the king merely ratified them by affixing his royal seal. The praise to Avhich he is justly enti- tled is that of having been the first to encourage his subjects to league together in active exertion for the general weal, and thus to achieve their own independence. The foundation of the com- munes was the Avork, not of Louis VI. nor of any other sovereign, but of the citizens themselves, the result of a simultaneous insur- rectionary movement throughout France, for defense against op- pression, the maintenance of the rights of pi'operty, and the pro- tection and development of commerce. Louis did not originate this movement, but he greatly contributed to its success by mak- ing himself the champion of public order, by laboring earnestly to redress wrongs and refoi'm abuses, and by asserting the supremacy of the crown over all its vassals, most of whom had thrown off all idea of subordination. The constitution of the boroughs in the south, of France difiei'- ed considerably from that adopted in the north. Here the model was that of the ancient municipia, which had been numerous throughout Languedoc and Provence, the earliest and most flour- ishing seat of Roman power in Gaul. In this part of France the Roman system seems to have been maintained without essential change after tlic fall of the empire, so that most of the cities en- A.D. 1108-1135. CONSTITUTION OF BOKOUGHS. 125 joyed uninterruptedly the privileges of a free local government, under officers who bore the old traditional name of consuls. The consular form of corporation existed at Marseilles, Avignon, Ai-les, Narbonne, Toulouse, Perigueux, Bourges, and many other towns beyond the Loire ; and this, in most cases, without any grant of new charters, and without those violent revolutionary struggles which took place in the north. It was simply a revival and con- firmation of institutions whose origin dated from the earliest age of civilization. And besides these there was a thiud class of towns which were voluntarily enfranchised by their feudal lords, and ob- tained complete personal freedom and security of property, togeth- er with certain fiscal exemptions and commercial advantages, but without the right of choosing their own magistrates and conduct- ing their own government. Such was the state of all the towns in the domaine royal ; Paris obtained its liberties in this way from Louis VI. and his two successors ; Orleans was enfranchised in like manner by Louis VII. Such, too, was the origin of all those numerous towns throughout France which bear the name of Ville- franche and Villeneuve. The organization of the communes tended materially to increase the power of the crown. The sovereign, called on to mediate and decide between the nobles and the citizens, became recognized as the supreme authority ; besides which, most of the boroughs paid an annual contribution to the royal treasury, and were bound to furnish a certain force of civic militia on the king's demand. It was thus that the Capetian monarchs wei-e gradually enabled to extend their dominions beyond the narrow limits of the duchy of France, to check and curtail the independence of the great feu- datories, and to make themselves respected in the provinces of the south, which for so many agQS defied their jurisdiction. § 21. Louis VI. carried on for several years war with Henry I. of England. The unfortunate Robert of Normandy had been taken prisoner by his brother at the battle of Tinchebrai in 1106, and confined for life in Cardiff Castle ; his son, however, called William Cliton, escaped from the pursuit of Henry, and threw himself on the protection of the J'rench king, who at once determ- ined to espouse his cause and establish him in the possession of Normandy. It is unnecessary to nai'rate the details of this strug- gle, which was continued, with various intermissions, till the death of William, who was killed in battle beneath the walls of Alost in 1128. Though the death of William removed the chief source of discord between France and EnglantH, the crafty policy of Henry I. led him to seize every opportunity of strengthening him- self upon the rival territory. He contracted a second alliance Avith the house of Anjou, by marrying his only daughter, the Empi'C'ss 12Q LOUIS VI. Chap. VII. Matilda, to Geoffrey Plantagenet, eldest son of the reigning Count Foulques V. Foulques, being on the point of setting out for the Holy Land, abdicated his dominions in favor of his son in 13 29 ; and the influence of the English crown was thus extended over some of the richest and most populous provinces of France. The death of Henry I. (December, 1135) was followed by a sanguinary struggle in Normandy between the partisans of the house of Anjou and those of Stephen of Boulogne, who succeeded to the English- crown. One of the principal allies of Geoffrey Plantagenet was William X., duke of Aquitaine, a man of fierce temper and unbridled passions, who made himself notorious in Normandy by the cruelties and outrages which he committed during this desolating war. Suffering afterward from the ravages of disease, and touched with remorse for his crimes, the duke re- solved to go on pilgrimage to the shrine of St. James of Compo- stella in Spain ; and in order to provide for the contingency of his death before returning to France, he declared his only daughter Eleanora sole heiress of his dominions, and placed her under the guardianship of Louis VI., with the understanding that she should be bestowed in marriage upon Prince Louis, surnamed Le Jeune to distinguish him from his father. The king accepted with alac- rity this splendid offer, M'hich promised to extend the rule of his family over almost the whole of France south of the Loire. The prince proceeded without delay into Aquitaine, and Ids marriage Avith Eleanora was solemnized in the cathedral of Bordeaux on the 2d of August, 1137. Immediately after the ceremony Louis and his bride resumed their journey northward; but upon reach- ino- Poitiers they were met by tidings of the decease of Louis VI., who had been carried off by a violent attack of dysentery on the 1st of August. The Duke of Aquitaine had expired at Compo- stella in the preceding April ; and the dominions to which Louis VII. thus succeeded reached from the Elver Somme and the bor- ders of Flanders to the Adour and the roots of the Pyrenees. Louis VI., surnamed Le Gros from his corpulency, was un- questionably one of the ablest and best sovereigns who have filled the throne of France. The strongest testimony to his worth is the universal esteem and affection Avith which he was regarded by his subjects, Avho deeply lamented his loss. He found the crown, at his accession, depressed to the lowest point of weakness and in- significance ; he restored its dignity, asserted its prerogatives, en- forced its authority, and left the kingdom enlarged to something approaching its ancienf and natural extent of territory. It was highly to his credit to have discerned the merit and secured the services of such a man as Suger, abbot of St. Denis, Avhom he made his confidential friend and prime minister. At his suggestion the A.D. 1135-1142. KISE OF THE SCHOOLMEN. 127 king revived, w^ith signal advantage, the office of the missi domini- ci, charged to make judicial circuits throughout the kingdom, and give information of all that required reform, correction, or redress. The administration of Suger was eminently wise and efficient, and contributed much to the popularity and glory of his master. It was he who, as the head of the great abbey of St. Denis, took the lead in attaching the clergy to the cause of royalty, and organizing the peasantry for its defense against the oppressive insolence of the aristocracy — a movement which, as we have seen, resulted in the formation of the communes and the development of the tiers etat. § 22. France produced at this period some of her brightest lu- minaries in the region of theological and metaphysical science. The system of the schoolmen dates from the commencement of the twelfth century : it soon gave rise to the abstruse controversy be- tween the Nominalists and Realists — the former denying, the lat- ter maintaining, the independent and positive existence of abstract ideas, or universals. Koscelin, a priest of Compiegne, is consider- ed as the founder of the Nominalists. He was a subtle and pro- found dialectician ; but having advanced some heterodox specula- tions on the nature of the Trinity amounting in fact to Tritheism, he was opposed and triuinphantly refuted by St. Anselm, then Ab- bot of Le Bee in Normandy, and aftervi^ard Archbishop of Canter- bury. St. Anselm professed the Platonist or Realist doctrines ; he was the author of many admirable works, especially on the In- carnation and on free will ; and died in 1109. William de Cham- peaux followed in his footsteps, and rose to great celebrity as mas- ter of the school attached to the cathedral at Paris. Next ap- peared the famous Peter Abelard, borft in 1079 at the village of Le Pallet, near Nantes, who, having been successively a pupil of Roscelin ahd William de Champeaux, formed a theory partaking of both schools, which has been styled Conceptualism. He taught for some years at Melun, and afterward succeeded to the chair of William de Champeaux at Paris : here he established a splendid reputation, and many of the most eminent men of the age became his auditors and scholars. The romantic story which has associ- ated forever the names of Abelard and Heloise is too familiarly known to need repetition here. After their separation Abelard entered the monastery of St. Denis, where he devoted himself with redoubled ardor to the study of philosophy and divinity, and soon produced his deeply-learned " Introduction to Theology." Va- rious charges of heresy, founded upon this work, were brought against him: he was cited before a council at Soissons in 1121, and condemned to commit the treatise to the flames with his own hand. He now souglit an asylum in the territories of the Count 128 THE SCHOOLMEN. CuAi-.Tir. of Champagne, nnd founded the monastery of the " Paraclete," near the town of Nogent-sur-Seine ; but some years afterward he incurred the determined and fatal antagonism of St. Bernard, who accused liim at the council of Sens, in 1140, of reproducing the errors of Arius, Pelagius, and Nestorius. Atelard replied by ap- pealing to the Pope ; and Innocent II., who was completely under the control of St. Bernard, pronounced his condemnation, prohib- ited him from teaching, and ordered him to be confined for life. Through the kind intervention of Peter the Venerable, abbot of Cluny, Abelard found a retreat in that celebrated abbey, where he passed two years in study, humiliation, and exercises of devotion ; and having been removed for change of air to the priory of St. Marcel, near Chalon-sur-Saone, died there in the sixty-third year of his age, April 21, 1142. St. Bernard will soon appear in our narrative in connection with the Second Crusade. Born of a good family at Fontaine, near Dijon, he showed from his youth upward a strongly contem- plative, unworldly turn of mind, joined to great powers of intel- lect, and a warm, energetic, enthusiastic temper. At the age of twenty-two he resolved to embrace the monastic life, and took the vows in the monastery of Citeaux, then renowned for the severity of its discipline ; and such was his extraordinary gift of personal influence at this early age, that he persuaded his father, his uncle, his five brothers, and many friends of high position, to renounce the world and accompany him to his ascetic retreat. The order of Citeaux now rapidly increased in fame and numbers ; and in 1115 Bernard was placed by the abbot, St. Stephen Harding, at the head of a colony of monks who were to plant an offshoot of the community in a desolate district of the diocese of Langres, called the " Vallee d' Absinthe.'' Here Bernard founded the mon- astery of Clairvaux (Clara Yallis), of which he was the first abbot. The rule which he instituted surpassed in severity even that of Citeaux ; Clairvaux became a model of order, self-devotion, and saintliness ; and soon attracted universal admiration, not only in France, but throughout Europe. But it was impossible for a man like Bernard, however deep his passion for retirement, to live in isolation from secular concerns and interests. He was compelled, i;i spite of himself, to take a prominent part in all the great en- terpf-ises, controversies, and struggles of his time ; he became the coniidant of monarchs, the arbiter between rival popes, the con- ductor of the most delicate diplomatic negotiations, the champion of the orthodox faith, the instructor and guide of the clergy, the censor of public morals — in one Avord, the oracle of the age. Meanwhile he preserved an extreme simplicity of character and a rare disinterestedness of motive and conduct, declining in succes- CiiAi-. vir. THE FEUDAL SYSTEM. 129 sion the archbishoprics of Milan, Genoa, and Reims. In the year 1128 Bernard was employed to draw up the statutes of the newly- founded order of the Templars, which he submitted to the Coun- cil of Troyes. Next he found himself engaged in the schism oc- casioned by the double election of Innocent 11. and Anacletus ; and having pronounced at the Council of Etampes for the former, he proceeded to undertake missions to the courts of Normandy, Germany, and Italy, for the purpose of gaining over the sover- eigns to support that decision. In this he fully succeeded, and the schism was terminated in favor of Innocent in 1138. Besides his memorable controversy with Abclard, Bernard combated the heresy of Peter de Bruys, whose followers were named Petrobus- sians ; of Gilbert de la Poiree, bishop of Poitiers ; and of two sects called the Henricians and the Apostolici. In metaphysics he leaned to the opinions of the Realists ; in theology he followed the teaching of St. Ambrose and St. Augustine. Rejecting the dry dialectic method of the scholastic writers, he adhered to the ancient patristic models of Biblical exposition, and has thus acquired the honorable distinction of the "last of the Fathers." Worn out at length by his almost' superhuman laboi's, St. Bernard expired peace- fully at Clairvaux in August, 1153. He was canonized by Pope Alexander III. in 1174. NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. THE FEUDAL SYSTEM. This is a subject which can not be too care- fully examined by every one who desires to g:iin a just notion of the state of society in Fi-ance and in Europe during the earlier part of the Middle Ages. Among the vast mass of works which have been wi-itten to illustrate it, the following are some of those principally to be recommended to the student: Montes- quieu, Enprit des Loix, liv. xxx. and xxxi. ; Du (Jange, Glossar. v. Beneficiiim^ MUe.% Aloclis, Feuduni; Brussel, Usage general des Fiefs; Abbe de Mably, Observations sur I'Histoire de Francs; Guizot, Histoire de Civilisation en France, vol. iii., and Essais sur I Histoire de Prance, Ess. 4 ; Aug. Thier- ry, Lettres sur V Histoire de France ; Lehuij- roii. Institutions Merovingiennes, liv. 2, chap. 3, 4, G, T ; Gilbert Stuart, Vieiu of Society in Europe; Robertson, Introdxiction to History of Charles V., and Notes to do., 6, 7, 9 ; Hal- lam, Middle Ages, vol. i., chap. 2, and Notes. The elementary germ of feudalism is dis- cernible among the barbarous German tribes before they crossed the Rhine. Tacitus tells us (De Morib. German., c. 14, 15) that it was the distinction and pride of tlie chieftains to be surrounded by a numerous band of youth- ful warriors, who were closely attached to their peraou and fortunes. Tacitus calls these retainers cornites, Cajsar ambacti and rlientes. They attended their leader in all his expeditions, defended him in battle, and reckoned it disgraceful to survive a conflict in which their master had lost his life. It was by the numbers, the valor, and the exploits of their followers that the chieftains outvied each other, and acquired consideration and influ- ence among other tribes. The chiefs, on their part, repaid the zeal of their adherents by presents of horses and weapons of war, and by the exercise of bountiful, though rude hos- pitality. We can hardly avoid recognizing in this description the origin of the relation- ship between the feudal seigneur and his vas- sals. Such a system of voluntary and arbitrary association was suited to the roving migratory habits of the Teutonic tribes beyond the Rhine ; it was necessarily much altered as soon as they had formed permanent settle- ments in Gaul, and obtained fixed rights of territorial property. Upon the establishment of the Frankish monarchy there arose, from the circumstances of the conquest and the re- sults wliich naturally followed it, three dis- tinct tenures of land throughout the kingdom — the allodial, the beneficiary or feudal, and the tributary or servile. I. The woril allod or alod, in Latin alodis, in French nlku, U of uncertain etymology. It has usually been thought to be compoiuided F 2 130 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Chap. VIL of all and odh, and would thus signify full or entire property ; but MM. Guizot, LehuGrou, and otliev writers derive it from the Teutonic I'liis, sors^ a lot; the division of conquered lands having been originally decided by lot. Allodial lands were those which the barbarian I'l-anks appropriated to themselves at the time of the great invasion, or in subsequent predatory incui-sions. The property thus dis- tributed among the victorious soldiers was held in absolute dominion, independently of any superior, and was disposed of at the will and pleasure of the possessor. With regard to the extent of the territories thus acquired, the practice seems to have varied in dilferent parts of Gaul ; the Burgundians and Visi- goths usurped two thirds of the conquered do- mains, leaving the remaining third to the Gallo- Roman proprietor; but this is probably to be understood, not of the whole length and breadth of the country, but of the lands im- mediately surrounding the locality in which each of the conquerors fixed his abode. As to the Franks, there is no reason to suppose tluit they made any such systematic parti- tion ; no mention of this is to be found in their laws, a fact which M. de Sismondi ex- plains by the consideration that they had not, like tlie Goths or Burgundians, invaded Gaul as a nation, but rather as an army, having left their wives and families beyond the Rhine, and that they were therefore less careful and regular in the distribution of the lands. There is no doubt, however, that they left a certain portion in the hands of the original proprietors, and these estate's were in like manner allodial — held by an independent ten- ure. Allodial domains, according to the lan- guage of the most ancient charters, were held only of God and the sword ; or, as it was oth- ern'ise expressed, owed no duty but to the sun. The allodial proprietors of the conquering race (Franci mgenui) were entirely exempt from tribute and all public burdens, with the exception of the indispensable duty of taking part in the military defense of the country, and in national warlike e.xpeditions. And even tliis appears to have been at first rather a matter of tacit consent than of positive le- gal obligation. This liability to personal serv- ice in the field was doubtless the ground of that famous provision of the law of the Salian Franks which excluded females from inherit- ing .any part of tlie "terra Salica," i. e., the domains originally acquired by the tribe at the epoch of the conquest. " De terra vero SalicA, in mulieres nulla portio hajreditatis transit ; sed hoc virilis sexus acquirit ; lioc est filii in ipsa hfereditate succedunt." (Lex Salica^ tit. Ixii.) In process of time this re- striction was very generally relaxed ; but in order to preserve the obligation of military service, the feudal superior then obtained tlie right to dispose of the daughter of his vassal in marriage, upon whiclr the duties inherent in the fief at once devolved upon her husband. The duty of personally bearing arms in de- fense of the state was first formally imposed on free landed proprietors by Cliarlemagne, who exacted, in various capitularies, that the possessor of five, four, or even of three maiisi should be bound to march, whon called upon, against the enemy. The precise extent of the iiiannus is unknown, and seems to have va- ried in different localities. In the case of two proprietors possessing each two r?ia7is2, the one was to join the army, while the half of his expenses was to be defrayed by the otlier who remained at home. Poorer freeholders were to combine together so as to furnish a soldier in the proportion of one out of three, or one out of six. These enactments were enforced under severe penalties of fine, confiscation, servitude, and even banishment. So strin- gent was the law of military service, that even the holders of ecclesiastical property wei-e originally not exempt from it. Bishops and abbots were bound to appear in arms at the head of their retainers, until Charlemagne, in S03, relieved them from this incongruous duty ; but on the express condition that they should send their vassals fully equipped to the camp when required, under the command of officers named by the emperor himself. By degrees, however, numerous exemptions were established ; in the reign of Charles the Bald, the levy en masse of all free landholders was limited to the case of a foreign invasion, when the whole strength of the empire was required in order to repel the enemy from the frontier. AVhether the Gallo-Roman freeholders, as well as the Frankg, were exempt from all trib- ute and taxation on account of their lands, is a question which has been much controverted. Gibbon (chap, xxxviii.) maintains the affirm- ative ; Montesquieu (liv. xxx., chap. 13) takes a similar view, as does also the Abbe de Ma- bly. Augustin Thierry (Recits des Temps Merov., vol. i.,p. 20S) inclines to think that the land-tax imposed under the empire was not abolished, but exchanged for a municipal tax. The point is discussed with great judg- ment and research by M. Lehuerou, who con- cludes, upon very sufficient grounds, that the Roman proprietors remained subject to the land-tax (impot fonder)^ as before the con- quest, at least up to the later times of the Merovingian dynasty. Several causes concurred to diminish con- siderably, in course of time, the number of al- lodial holdings. The independent proprietor, surrounded by a warlike and rapacious popu- lation, found it difficult to preserve his prop- erty from violence and pillage; he was thus led to seek protection from those superior to himself in wealth and power ; and in order to obtain this, he exchanged his allodial for a feudal tenure, holding his lands thencefor- ward not in absolute property, hut as a vassal, on condition of certain specified duties and services. This became the principle of a great social revolution, and ended in the com- plete establishment of the feudal system. Al- lodial property was also alienated to an im- mense extent by the habit of making extrav- agant donations to churches, abbeys, and re- ligious houses of all kinds. In the south of France, however, and especially in Langue- doc, the allodial tenure continued to prevail far more generally tlian in tlie north; it seems indeed to have been common througli- out those provinces long after the introduction of feudalism. Chap. VII. THE FEUDAL SYSTEM. 331 II. A second form of pi'operty, coeval with the settlement of the Franks in Gaul, was that of the benejiciurn, or, to use the e-xpres- sion of later times, the fief. On taking pos- session of the conquered territory, the chief- tains, instead of rewarding their followers by gifts of war-horses and armor, or by festive entertainments, substituted grants of land detached from their own ample domains ; these were termed beneficia — a word to which a somewhat similar signification had been attached under the government of Imperial Eome. Hence there arose an important change in the mutual interests and relation- ship of the chiefs and their dependents. On the one hand the grantor of these lands, anx- ious to preserve and enlarge his own influ- ence, sought to abridge the periods for wliich the concessions were made — to resume tlxe benefices upon any favorable opportunity, and frequently upon unjust and frivolous pre- texts — and to multiply the feudal services and cliarges annexed to them. On tlie otli- er, the holders of benefices naturally aspired to shake oif the yoke of their superiors, and to become independent proprietors, exercising all the rights of separate sovereignty within their own boundaries. Bearing in mind tliese conflicting interests and tendencies, we shall not be surprised to find that from the earliest dates the benefices were held on various con- ditions, more or less advantageous either to tlie superior or to the vassal, as the case may be. Montesquieu, Eohertson, and other writers, consider that all benefices were at first revo- cable at the pleasure of the grantor; but this, as a matter of lerjal right., is clearly dis- proved by M. Guizot. Instances continually occur of the arbitrary resumption of benefices, but always on account of some delinquency, alleged or real, on the part of the holder. Breach of faith, failure to perform a stipulated service, treason, rebellion, or any injury done to the person, family, or interests of the su- perior, were accounted just grounds of for- feiture, and disputes and contests between l^rds and vassals upon accusations of this Icind were of constant recurrence. In the absence of any definite contract, it was im- plied and understood that the benefice would be enjoyed so long as the holder fulfilled the conditions attached to it ; but tliis engage- ment was often violated without scruple dur- ing the anarchy wliich prevailed in tlie ear- ly ages. Benefices, again, were sometimes granted for a specified term of years, in which case they were called 2^recaria. Such were those liestowed by Charles Martel and Pepin le Bref upon their vassals,- out of tlie ecclesi- astical domains ; these lands seem to have been seldom restored to the Cliurch, and be- came in course of time hereditaiy fiefs. A third form of benefice, and by far tlie most common in the early times of tlie Frank mon- archy, was that of si concession during tlie life of the tenant. This, as establishing tlie most direct personal relations between the lord and his vassal, is regarded by M. Leliuerou as the legitimate and normal tenure under the feudal system. These benefices were proba- bly conferred in consideration of some special service to be rendered to the grantor, and to be continued during tlie life of the holder; upon his death the contract became void, and the land accordingly reverted to the original jiossessor. In tliis case the yearly product or usufruct of the estate was all that was en- joyed by the feudal vassal. Such appears to have been the usual character of the benefices granted in the reign of Charlemagne— that of lifc-tena7icii. His successor, Louis \e IJo- bonnaire, endeavored to maintain tliem on the same footing, but the beneficiaries, hav- ing acquired this important extension of tlieir privileges, succeeded ere long in advancing a step farther ; charters were extorted from the feeble Louis, by which benefices became lie- reditarij, and the full proprietorship of lands was thus transferred from the lord to those who had hitherto been merely tenants. Tliis practice became moie frequent under Charles the Bald, and at length that monarch, at the Council of Kiersy-sur-Oise, A.D. 877, publish- ed an edict (already mentioned in the text, p. 89) by which the hereditary transmission of benefices was expressly sanctioned and legal- ized. Hereditary benefices had no doubt become the general rule before the appearance of this edict, but it may be regarded as marking the epoch of the first formal recognition of the feudal system in its mature state. Particular instances, however, of the hereditary grant of lands are to be found even under the ear- lier Merovingians ; M. Guizot cites a convey- ance of this kind from the Formularies of Marculf, who wrote about A.D. COO, and re- fers also to some expressions in the Treaty of Andeley (A.D. 587), to an edict of Clotaire II. (A.D. 615), and to a law of the Visigoths, which contains the words " Quod si is qui hoc promeruit intestatur decessens, debitis secundum legem lieredibus res ipsa succes- sionis, ordine pertinebit." But even after this final change had been accomplished, it seems that the traditional sense of depend- ence on the superior lord was still so strong that the feudatories thought it necessary, be- fore taking possession of their property, to seek the confirmation of their rights from the representative of the original donor. Such were the various steps and vicissi- tudes by which benefices arrived at their ful- ly developed, and, properly, speaking, feudal state. The term fief (feodum, feudimi) be- an to be applied to benefices when they be- came hereditary, and first occurs in a capitu- lary of the reign of the Emperor Charles the Fat, A.D. 884. Different etymologies are given of this word ; that which seems most probable, and is adopted by Guizot, Thierry, Robertson, and Hallam, derives it from feo, salary or pay, and odh, property — implying that it was land conferred as a reward or rec- ompense of services. Others refer it to the Latin fides; others again, among whom is Lehuerou, prefer the Teutonic root fOden, nutrire. Sir F. Palgi'ave deduces it, ingen- iously, but with slight probability, from the Koman law-term mnphyteiisis. III. Tributary lands (in French terres en roture, terres acce.neeeis) were those which were cultivated by persons not the owners, and for 132 NOTES AND ILLUSTEATIONS. Chap. VII. the use of which they paid a fixed annual rent {census, cens) to the feudal proprietor, or to the government if the lands belonged to the domaine royal. This class of persons oc- cupied an intermediate position between the free landowners or gentry (ingema) and the serfs, approaching sometimes more nearly to the one, sometimes to the other, according to tlie diflei'ent terms and sers'ices by which their tirms were held. We find them men- tioned m the ancient records by a variety of names — tributarii, coloni, accolce, lidi or liti, villani, inquilini, fiscalini, etc. They were all in a state of vitlenage, but many of them seem to have enjoyed substantially the rights and privilege of freedom, while others, again, were not far removed from the condition of prsedial servitude. Great numbers of them were originally petty freeholders, who, una- ble to defend themselves from the prevailing violence and rapine of the times, had sur- rendered their persons and property, by the usage of recommendation already described, to some powerful seigneur, in return for which they obtained the important boon of his pro- tection. Henceforth they became tributa- ries ; they continued in the occupation of their lands, but by a stipendiary tenure, which ren- dered them liable to certain corvi'S or serv- ices toward the lord, more or less onerous as tlie case might be. But in general these tributaries were dependents of tlie rich land- ed iDroprietors, to whom they had leased por- tions of their estates for the purposes of cul- tivation ; tliey formed part of the niundiuin, or domestic liousehold of their superioi', and lived under his immediate patronage, in the possession of all civil rights. They were " ad- xcripti (jlebce" i. e., could not remove at will from the lands which they cultivated, nor could they be removed at the arbitrary pleas- ure of another ; hence they actiuired in course of time a sort of recognized vested right to the occupation of the farms on which they had been lung settled. The coloni were not liable to be summonsd to serve in war, the distinction of bearing arms being reserved exclusively to the noble classes. (Lehuerou, Instit. Caroling., p. 453.) Their social esti- mation was very low, according to the stand- ard established by the loeregild, or pecuniaiy composition for homicide, perliaps the fairest criterion of the notions of those times. The life of a Roman eolonus is rated by the Salian ode oul}' at 45 solidi; this was afterward raised by two c ipitularies of Charlemagne to 100 solidi. On all tliese estates there were multitudes of serfs or slaves, occupying the lowest step of the social scale. During the early times of the Frank domination the condition of the slave was, as it had been under the Roman rule, one of the most abject degradation. They were the absolute property or chattels of their masters, and entirely destitute of personal, social, and political rights. '•'•The lord," says Beaumanoir (Coutunie de Btau- VMsis), "may take from them all they have, and may imprison them as often as he pleases, whether justly or wrongfully, liaviug no ac- count to render of his conduct to any but God." During the tenth and eleventh cen- turies, however, the system of slavery appears to have undergoue a gradual alteration, and was far more leniently administered. Tlie be- nign influence of the church was powerfully exerted in favor of the serfs, and on the ec- clesiastical domains their manumission be- came of very frequent occurrence. At length the ordinance of Louis llutin, in 1315, gave the signal for the complete abolition of do- mestic and prsedial servitude. Relics of this odious system sui-vived nevertheless through the whole period of the absolute monarchy, and many of the ancient servile corvees were only suppressed by the Revolution of 17S9. Tlie necessity of obtaining adequate de- fense for person and property in an age of weak government, political confusion, and scanty civilization, lies at the root of the en- tire system of feudalism. The feudal con- tract was a mutual guarantee of security both to lord and vassal, and tended manifestly to their common advantage. The I'apid exten- sion of the system during the ninth and tenth centuries proves that this was fully appreci- ated, and it is strikingly illustrated by the singular fact that even the independent allo- dial proprietors eventually found it desirable to excliange their freeholds for feudal tenures, in order to secure the superior advantages annexed to them. This was done by an ex- tension of the ancient practice of Commenda- tion so often referred to. The allodial pro- prietor presented himself before tlie king, or other powerful seigneur whose protection he wished to obtain, holding in his hand a clod of turf or the branch of a tree, and surren- dered his freehold, which v/as immediately restored to him to enjoy and dispose of as be- fore, but subject to the conditions and obliga- tions, and with all the attendant benefits, of a feudal tenure. When this remarkable change Jiad been accomplished, toward the close of the ninth century, tlie whole country, 'with the exceiition of certain districts in the south, be- came feudal. France presented a vast asso- ciation or hierarchy of fief-holders, descend- ing by a regularly graduated subordination from the king to the most inconsiderable vas- sal. For it must be observed that, whereas at first it was only the sovereign and the Avealthiest nobles who conferred fiefs, their example was soon imitated by their inferiors; smaller fiefs were created out of the larger, and granted on the same conditions, so that the same individual might be at once a suze- rain with regard to his vassals and a vassal witli reg.ird to his suzerain. This is the mean- ing of the French terms arrifre Ji"/ and ar- riere vas.-^al ; it is expressed in Fnglish by the ■Kord sub-in/eudalion. The King of France himself was one of the ^•assals of the Abbey of St. Denis, for the fief of the Vexin; it was in his quality of Count of Vexin that he pos- sessed the privilege of bearing the oriflamme, which was the sacred banner of that great monastic foundation. The Duke of Burgun- dy in like manner owed homage for a fief to the Bishop of Langres. Thirty-two knights bannerets were va-sals to the Count of Then- ars ; the count, in his turn, was under the obligations of fealty and military service to the Count of Anjou ; while the Count of Anjou Chap. VII. THE FEUDAL SYSTEM. 133 held his possessions as a vassal of the crown of France. Another important feature of the feudal system was tliat which M. Guizot describes as the '■'■fusion of novereignt.ij loith proj^erty ;" in otlier words, the political and administra- tive power possessed by the holders of fiefs within their own domains. The provincial governors, the counts and dukes, having ob- tained from the weakness of the later Carlo vingian monarchs tire hereditary transmission of their benefices, proceeded to usurp the per- petuity of their offices. Each district became a separate independent jurisdiction, an ini- jjeriuin in imperio, the nobles exercising in full sovereignty all those magisterial, judi- cial, and military functions which tlieir an- cestors had originally derived from the crown. As in the case of sub-infeudation, their ex- ample was followed by their inferiors, and the great proprietors throughout the country gradually established their claim to all the chief prerogatives of sovereignty within their several boundaries. At the accession of Hugh Capet there were no less than 150 seigneurs who possessed the right to coin money, to make private war, to impose taxes and laws, and to judge in the last resort in criminal causes of all kinds. The direct and inevita- ble consequence of such a state of things was to enfeeble, and almost to annihilate, all cen- tral dynastic authority. Under the last Car- lovingians the domaine royal consisted only of the city of Laon and a small surrounding district; Hugh Capet augmented it by the addition of the Duchy of France ; but even then he possessed little real power except as sovereign of liis own fief; of his immediate vassals, the so-called "great feudatories" of NoiTnand}', Burgundy, Champagne, Flanders, and Toulouse, there was not one who was not at least his equal in extent and importance of territor)', and their subordination to the crown, as history abundantly testifies, exist- ed I'ather in theory and name than in reality. Over the lesser feudatories, again, the sov- ereign could exercise no efficient control, be- cause they could only be reached through their immediate superiors. Hence it appears that, although the feudal system was an ad- mirable institution for self-protection against barbarous violence, and although its laws and usages acted as a social bond which in many respects proved higiily beneficial to Europe, yet it always contained within itself a princi- ple of weakness and decadence. The nomin- ally sovereign power was incapable of acting effectively through all the ranks and degrees of society, so as to insure the riglits and lib- ci'ties of all alike, both weak and strong. The tendency ( f each lord and of each fief was to be isolated from all others, and to ful- fill all the functions of government individu- ally and independently. In the absence of any central monarchical power, the relations of the feudal potentates to each other were seldom or never satisfactory; jealausie«^, en- croachments, oppression, fierce and bloody quarrels, were of continual occurrence. And from the moment when the crown at length became strong enough to assert its superiority and enforce obedience to its decrees through all gradations of tlie feudal hierarchy, from that moment we find that feudalism was shaken to its foundations, and soon began to verge toward its fall. The feudal relationship was constituted by the performance of certain prescribed cere- monies, namely, (1) homage, (2) fealty, and (3) investiture. In doing homage (homagi- um., honiinium) the vassal knelt, bare-head- ed, before the seigneur without belt, sword, or spurs, and, placing his hands in his, repeat- ed the words, " I become your man from this day forth, of life and limb, and will keep faith to you for the lands I claim to hold of you." Homage liege was distinguished from homage .swyjic, the latter from being less stringent than the former, and leaving the vassal at liberty to withdraw from his lord's obedience by renouncing his fief. Fealty (ydclitas) was an engagement by oath on the part of the ten- ant to perform duly the conditions and serv- ices by which the fief was held. Investiture consisted in the lord's delivering to the vas- sal a clod of turf, a branch of a tree, a hand- ful of earth, or some other such symbolical object, by which act the vassal was put in actual personal possession of his feudal prop- erty. Theuceforward cimmenced the recip- rocal obligations between the contracting par- ties. These obligations comprised both moral du- ties and material services. The m oral duties of a vassal were to counsel his lord to the best of his ability when required ; to keep his se- crets faithfully; neither to injure him, nor to suffer others to injure him, in his person, his honor, his family, or his property; to succor him in danger, to lend him his horse when dismounted in battle, and to take his place as a hostage if made prisoner. Of the material . obligations the most important was that of military service. The duration and other circumstances of this service varied accord- ing to the extent and importance of the fief. Ordinarily sixty da5's, but in many cases for- ty, thirty, and even less, was the period dur- ing which the vassal was bound to keep the field; on its expiration he was at liberty to return home, a right which he seldom failed to exercise, even though it might be on tho eve of a battle. Many fiefs also entailed the obligation of providing a certain number of men-at-arms, to be maintained at the expenso of the holder during the campaign. Tho rights of fiance (fid^icia) and of justice sig- nified the duty incumbent on the vassal of recognizing the jurisdiction of his superior, of attending in his court on demand, of assist- ing him in the administration of justice and in the execution of the sentence pronounced. The holders of fiefs were likewise subject 1 1 various and sometimes heavy contribution.] in money. Feudal aids (mixilia) were cer- tain sums payable to the seigneur on parties ular occasions, viz. : (1) Toward paying his ransom when he had been taken prisoner in battle; (2) Toward his equipment and ex- penses when he went in pilgrimage to the Holy Land ; (.'1) At the marriage of his elde-t daughter, and (-1) when his eldest son received the honor of knighthoorl. A relief (relcviuni, relevamentitm) was a sum of money payable 134 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Chap. VII. by the heir of ii fief vacated by death, before he could enter on the possession of his prop- erty. If a vassal sold his flef, a payment, generally equivalent to one year's revenue, was due to the superior lord from the pur- chaser before taking possession. Tlie practice of disposing of fiefs by sale was originally prohibited, but in later times was connived at or permitted as a measure of convenience, and was thus naturally used by the suzerain as an opportunity of extorting additional pe- cuniary advantage. Feudal estates were also liable tp forfeiture (forisfaclura) in the event of non-fultiUment of the specified obligations of the tenure, or in case of treason or other gross misbehavior on the part of the tenant, or in case of the death of the vassal n'ithout heirs male. Besides these there were two other feudal "•incidents," namely, ivardship or garde noble, which gave the suzerain all the rights of a guardian during the minority of his vassal, including the management of his domains and the disposal of the revenue ; and marriage (inaritagium), or the light of pre- senting to the heiress of a fief three men of suitable birtli and condition, of whom she was compelled to select one for her husband. 'Tlie only alternative by which the heiress could escape this was by paying to the lord a fee equal in amount to that which he would have received from the successful suitor for her hand; for it was the custom to jnirchase of the suzerain an alliance which involved the possession of a fief^ Having once fulfilled these obligations, the feudal vassal became almost absolute master within his own domains, giving laws to his dependents, administering justice, and exer- cising all tlie functions of an independent sovereign. So long as he committed no posi- tive breach of tlie feudal contract, he was re- sponsible to none ; in case of such an infrac- tion, appeal might be made against him to the court of the superior lord. The suzerain, on his part, was bound to protect and defend his vassal in the enjoy- ment of liis fief, with all tlie rights, privileges, and emoluments attached to it. All com- plaints and disputes between vassals were brought before the feudal court of the seign- eur. The jurisdiction belonging to these courts were of different degrees of import- ance, which were distinguished as haute, inojieniie, and 6as.se justice. The first alone conferred the right of passing sentences of capital punishment ; many of the smaller seigneurial courts possessed only the second and third. All the vassals holding of the f-ame suzerain sat in tliese courts as assess- ors; the right of trial by jjecrs (jmres) be- ing one of the most essential principles of feudalism. In the case of a contest between a vassal and his seigneur, the process took place, not in the local court, but in the court ■ of the superior lord, wliicli had appellate ju- risdiction in such cases. But the justice dis- pensed by these feudal tribunals was for many reasons very imperfect and unsatisfactory; and in order to remedy this defect, the rude manners of the times permitted the expedient of the judicial combat, or appeal to the judg- ment of God, and the still more barbarous practice o{ private roar. (See on these points Dr. Kobertson's Notes to the History of Charles V., Notes 21 and 22.) These cus- toms, which in course of time produced abuses of the most serious and dangerous kind, were gradually restrained and suppressed by the wise legislation of Philip Augustus, Saint Lou- is, and Philip the Fair. The principal causes which led eventually to the decjy and extinction of feudalism were, (I.) The extension of the domaine royal, and consequently of the direct authority and ju- risdiction of the crown. In proportion as royalty revived under the auspices of Louis VL, Philip Augustus, and their successors, it exercised a power distinct from and inde- pendent of the feudal potentates, an authori- ty which they could not ignore or disallow, an appellate jurisdiction to which they found themselves compelled to submit. The pro- ceedings of Philip Augustus against John of England are a memorable proof of the strength and unity which the central gov- ernment had already acquired in his hands. The legislative and judicial powers of the crown increased considerably during the reign of Saint Louis, and the change became still more remarkable under Philip the Fair, who instituted a regular judicial order — th^ " legistes" — a class of magistrates specially trained for the administration of justice. From this date the royal courts, or parlia- ments as they began to be called, took cogni- zance of all causes, and enforced their judg- ments throughout tlie whole extent of the kingdom, superseding, and by degrees annul- ling the jurisdiction of the feudal seigneurs. (II.) The enfranchisement of the communes. This, by conferring on the towns charters of incorporation conveying extensive privileges and exemptions, greatly improved and ele- vated the condition of the bourgeoisie, which by degrees became an effectual coimterpoise to the overbearing tyranny of the feudal no- bles. Personal liberty and mutual protection were thus guaranteed independently of the feudal confederation. "Until then," says Sir J. Steplien, 'Hhe population of France had been composed of two great antagonist pow- ers — the uobles and the roturiers; the one enjoying all the privileges of freedom, the other sustaining all the burdens-of servitude. But when at length the bourgeois were inter- posed between the tfl'o as a mediating body, combining in tlieir own persons the rights and the obligations of each, they at once miti- gated the sternness of the dominant authority and the sufferings of the subject multitude. Each boui'g formed a species of independent commonwealth within the kingdom ; and such commonwealths, when extended throughout the whole compass of it, acted every where as germs from which the national government was to derive its growth, or as moulds by which it was to receive its future form and cliaracter." (III.) The Crusades. These memorable expeditions tended in many ways to circum- scribe the power of the territorial aristocracy. They contributed to augment the importance of the municipal communes, whicli were al- ways iii antagonism to the feudal nobility. Chap. VII. THE FEUDAL SYSTEM. 135 Wealth and capital were in the hands of the industrious and enterprising citizen, and it vas to him that the knightly crusader was obliged to apply to obtain the means of his equipment for the Holy Land. Possessed of the all-important power of the purse, the bourgeois improved their advantage without scruple. Immunities of all kinds were pur- chased at an easy rate from the needy bar- ons ; feudal estates were disposed of at prices far below their real value, property of eveiy description changed hands to an enormous extent throughout France, and invariably to the damage of the great feudal landholder. " The estates of the barons were dissipated,'' says Gibbon, "and their race was often ex- tinguished, in these costly and perilous expe- ditions. Their poverty extorted from their pride those cliarters of freedom which un- locked the fetters of the slave, secured the farm of the peasant and the shop of the arti- ficer, and gradually restored a substance and a soul to the most numerous and useful part of the community. The conflagration which destroyed the tall and barren trees of the forest gave air and scope to the vegetation of the emaller and nutritive plants of the soil." Decline and Fall^ vol. vii., p. 349, edit. Smith. (IV.) The practice of emi^loying large bod- ies of mercenary soldiers, generally foreign- ers, in substitution for the feudal militaiy tenants, and, eventually, the institution of a regular utanding army paid by the state. These innovations, so contrary to the genius and fundamental principle of feudalism, com- pleted the overthrow of the system. He who could command a powerful force of well-dis- ciplined mercenaries was more than a match for the greatest of the feudal seigneurs. It was thus that Philip Augustus overcame his vassal John of Normandy. The practice was greatly extended in succeeding reigns, and in proportion to its increase the feudal military tenure fell into general discredit, and was felt to be meaningless, burdensome, and useless. At length, after the creation of the "conipag- nies d'ordonnance" by Charles VII., in 1444, the military service attached to the liefs was, almost of necessity, superseded and abolished by the new organization ; and with the dis- appearance of this its main origin.al princi- ple, the other institutions of feudalism quick- ly lost their efficacy and became obsolete. / / / 'It^^' Chtiteau Gaillard, built by Richard Cceur de Lion— on the Seine. CHAPTER VIII. FROM THE ACCESSION OF LOUIS VII. TO THE DEATH OF LOUIS VIH. A.-D. 1137-1226. § 1 . Accession of Louis VII. ; Suger, Abbot of St. Denis ; Hostilities in Champagne and Normand}'. § 2- Louis departs on the second Crusade; Faihire of the Crusade. § 3. Retirement and Death of the Abbot Suger; Divorce of Queen Eleanora. § 4. Rivalry between Louis VII. and Hen- ry II. of England; Birth of Philip Augustus. § 5. Archbishop Becket in France. § 6. Louis supports the Rebellion of the English Princes ; Death of Louis VII. § 7. Accession of Philip Augustus ; his Marriage with Isabella of Hainault. § 8. Disputes with England ; Capture of Je- rusalem by the Saracens ; Philip assumes the Cross. § 9. The third Cru- sade ; Rivalry between Philip and Richard Cceur de Lion ; Siege of St. Jean d'Acre ; Return of Philip to France. § 10. Philip leagues with John against King Richard; Death of Richard. § 11. Philip supports Arthur of Brittany against John ; Agnes de Me'ran ; France laid under an Interdict by Innocent III. ; Philip invades Normandy ; Murder of Arthur of Brittany. § 12. Philip dispossesses John of Normandy, Poitou, and Touraine ; he acquires Vermandois, Artois, and Auvergne. § 13. The Albigensian War; Simon cle Montfort. § 14. Philip Augustus in- vades Flanders ; Victory of Bouvines. § 15. Expedition of Prince Louis to England; its Failure; Renewal of War in Languedoc. § 16. Admin- istration of Philip Augustus; his Death; the fourth Crusade ; Latin Con- quest of Constantinople. § 17. Reign of Louis VIII. ; War with En- gland ; Expedition against Raymond of Toulouse ; Death of the King. § 1. Louis VII., surnamed Le Jkune, 1137-1180. — Few sov- ereigns have ascended the throne under fjiirer auspices than Louis VII. ; but, unfortunately, he was not a prince of great capacity A.D. 1141-1144. STEUGGLES FOR POWER. I37 or strong good sense ; his character was feeble, capricious, and pas- sionate. His chief counselors Avere the Abbot Suger, and Gosse- lin, bishop of Soissons : the former, one of the ablest statesmen that France has produced, was of invaluable service during the earlier part of his reign. Nothing remarkable is recorded of the first few years after his accession, but in 1141 the king became involved in a serious quai- rel with the See of Rome. The archbishopric of Bourges being then vacant, Pope Innocent II. thought fit to nominate to the see Peter de la Chatre, a relative of one of the great officers of the pontifical court. Louis, who had presented another candidate to the chapter, indignantly declared that while he lived the Pope's nominee should never be archbishop, and gave orders for a fresh election. Louis was now excommunicated by the Pope, and an interdict laid upon every place where he might sojourn. This sentence remained in force for the space of three years, the royal presence in any town being instantly followed by the suspension of all offices of Divine service. The Pope being supported in this affair by Thibald, count of Champagne, hostilities broke out in 1142 between the count and Louis; the Frencli ravaged the ter- ritory of Champagne ; the fortified town of Vitry was taken by assault and set on fire, and no less than 1300 of the helpless in- habitants, who had taken refuge in the principal church, perished in the flames. This catastrophe inspired Louis with poignant re- morse ; he hastened to treat with Thibald, and obtained absolu- tion in 1144 from Celestine II., the successor of Innocent, upon condition of establishing Pierre de la Chatre in peaceable posses- sion of his see. The war continued in Normandy between the rival houses of Anjou and Blois. Louis declared in favor of Geoffrey Plantage- net, and thus turned the scale against Stephen, whose utmost ef- forts scarcely sufficed to maintain his hold upon England. In 1144 Geoffrey entered Rouen in triumph, and received from Louis the investiture of the duchy of Normandy. The strife after this was confined to England, where the land was desolated with bloody contests between the partisans of the Empress Maude and the ar- mies of King Stephen. In the end a compromise was effected : Stephen retained tlie crown of England for his life ; Geofii-ey was recognized as Duke of Normandy, Count of Anjou, Maine, and Touraine. The succession to the English throne was settled upon the eldest son of Maude and Geoffrey ; the second sou was to in- herit the Continental possessions. § 2. Still suffering from the reproaches of conscience on account of the disaster of Vitry, Louis began to think seriously of adopting the grand remedy prescribed by the usage of the time? — a pilgrim- 138 LOUIS VII. Chap. VIII. age to the Holy Land. Circumstances occurred to favor the de- sign. The city of Edessa had lately been captured and sacked by the Sultan of Aleppo (Dec, 25, 1144); and the Christians, after suffering tremendous loss, had been expelled from this part of their dominions in the East. This calamity spread dismay throughout the European settlements in Palestine ; great fears were enter- tained for the safety of the kingdom of Jerusalem ; and embassa- dors wei-e dispatched in haste to the various states of the West, especially to France, to represent the importance of the emergency, and make urgent demands for assistance. The appeal reawaken- ed the religious sympathies of Christendom ; Pope Eugenius III. addressed an eloquent letter to the King of France, exhorting him and his people to take up arms immediately for the defense of the Holy Sepulchre and the relief of their brethren — a summons which Louis, already more than half resolved upon the step, received with the utmost satisfaction. The Pope delegated his authority to one Avhose influence both in Church and State was at that time para- mount in France, if not in Europe — to Bernai'd of Clairvaux. Bernard became the apostle of the Second Crusade, and fulfilled the mission with zeal and enthusiasm not inferior to that of his predecessor, the hermit of Picardy, Avhile in genius, intellectual gifts, and learned acquirements he was infinitely superior. At his suggestion a great national council was convoked at Vezelai, in Burgundy, for the feast of Easter, 1146. Such was the concourse of people of all ranks and classes who thronged to the rendezvous, that it was impossible to hold the proceedings within the Avails of the town. A platform was erected at the foot of the lofty hill on Avhich Vezelai stands ; here Louis, wearing the rcj'al robes, made his appearance, Avith the holy Bernard at his side ; and the latter, after reading the brief by which he Avas appointed to act as the Pope's representative, addressed the assembled multitude in a vehement and impassioned harangue, the conclusion of Avhich Avas drowned in resounding cries of " The cross! the cross!" The king, deeply moved, knelt at the feet of the Pope's legate, and re- ceived the cross from his hand ; Queen Eleanora Avas the next to assume the sacred emblem ; and the example of the sovereigns Avas eagerly folloAved by a brilliant throng of nobles. The crowd of volunteers of lower degree Avas prodigious. Beniard and his assistant monks, after distributing among them a vast quantity of crosses prepared beforehand, Avere obliged to tear their garments to supply the demand. The exertions of Bernard Avere not confined to France : he pro- ceeded to Germany, Avhere his overpoAvei'ing eloquence prevailed upon the Emperor Conrad to join the ranks of tlie Crusaders, to- gether Avith his nephew Frederick (afterward emperor), Guelf, A.D. 1147, SECOND CEUSADE. " I39 count of Bavaria, and other distinguished princes of the empire, lieturning to France, Bernard attended the Council of Etampes . in February, 1147 : here the last arrangements were made for the approaching expedition, and a council of regency was appointed for the administration of the kingdom, consisting of the Abbot Suger, the Count of Vermandois, and the Archbishop of Reims. Pope Eugenius visited Paris at Easter ; from his hands the king received the pilgrim's staff and wallet in the abbey of St. Denis, together with the apostolic benediction ; and shortly afterward proceeded to Metz, where he put himself at the head of the cru- sading army, numbering upward of 100,000 barons, knights, and fighting men, besides a vast multitude of non-combatant pilgrims. The march commenced immediately ; Louis crossed the Ehine at Worms, and the Danube at Katisbon ; traversed the plains of Hungarj^, and entered the territories of the Eastern Empire. Here the Crusaders, instead of meeting with cordial sympathy and support, were treated with insolence, treachery, and violence. The Emperor Manuel Comnenus, like most of his family, enter- tained a profound distrust and hatred of the Franks ; and under the mask of great outward respect and friendship, labored in every ^ way to cripple, embarrass, and ruin the enterprise which had brought them to his shores. The whole expedition was one series of disasters. After suffering a severe defeat from the Turks in the defiles of Phrygia, not far from Laodicea, the Crusaders gain- ed the sea-port of Satalia, or Attalia, in Pamphylia. Here Louis, with his queen and the principal barons, embarked for Syria, leav- in« the bulk of his forces under the command of the Counts of Flanders and Bourbon. He landed in safety at the mouth of the Orontes, and was there received by Raymond of Poitiers, prince of Antioch, who conducted him to his capital. The fate of the main body of the Crusaders was most deplora- ble : they never reached the shores of Palestine ; abandoned by their leaders, they found themselves cooped up between the town of Satalia (the gates of which were closed against them by the Greek governor), the Turkish army, and the sea. Attacked in this desperate position, thousands perished beneath the sabres of the Turks ; a large division sought safety in flight, but were ovei-- taken at a short distance and totally exterminated ; upward of 3000 embraced the Mdssulman faith ; great numbers were sold into slavery. The farther details of this expedition are in every way discred- itable and inglorious. Louis made a lengthened sojourn at An- tioch, but quitted it abruptly on discovering (as is alleged) an in- timacy between Queen Eleanora and Prince Raymond altogether unbecoming their relationship as uncle and niece. He reached 140 LOUIS Vn. CiiAP.VIIL Jerusalem in the spring of 1148, and accomplished the vow of his pilgrimage in the church of the Holy Sepulchre. The Emperor Conrad had arrived from Constantinople some time befox-e, and the two monarchs mingled their tears of condolence over their common misfortunes. After being repulsed before the walls of Damascus, no farther warlike operations were attempted. Louis lingered in the Holy Land for a whole year, ashamed and afraid to reappear in his kingdom. At length, overcome by the pressing remonstrances and solicitations of the wise and faithful Suger, he returned to France in 1149, and disembarked in Provence, attend- ed by a scanty escort of 200 or 300 knights, the wreck of that mighty and magnificent host with which, somewhat more than two years before, he had mai'ched from Italy. § 3. The disastrous issue of this crusade was a heavy blow to the reputation of St. Bernard, who had so confidently predicted its success, and was even said to have wrought miracles in attes- tation of his mission. The complaints against him were loud, bitter, and universal; and he himself acknowledged his confusion at this inexplicable visitation of Divine Providence. He attribu- ted it to the scandalous vices of the Crusaders, comparing them to the Jews of old, to whom God's prophet had solemnly promised the enjoyment of the land of Canaan, but who were nevertheless " overthrown in the wilderness" on account of their sins and un- belief On the other hand, the patriotic Avisdom of the Abbot Suger was now fully appreciated. He had always been strongly opposed to the project of the crusade, and did his utmost to dissuade 4iis master from embarking in it. During the king's absence he de- voted himself, with admirable zeal and fidelity, to the duties of his administration ; his firmness overawed the turbulent and lawless, and repressed all attempts to disturb the public order ; he great- ly improved the royal castles and domains, exercised a judicious financial economy, and restored the kingdom to the hands of Louis in a condition of increasing strength and prosperity. Suger retired contentedly to his monastery of St. Denis, bearing with him the glorious title of the " Father of his Country." It is singular that he should have been occupied at the close of his life in organizing a new expedition for the relief of the sufifering Christians in the East : he raised vast sums of money for this purpose, and designed to undertake in person the leadership of the crusade, but died in the midst of his preparations, January 13, 1152. The loss of this excellent minister was soon followed by the great political mistake of Louis VII. — his divorce of Queen Elea- noi'a. Suger, to Avhom the king confided his grounds of complaint against his wife, had entreated him, if possible, to conceal and over- A.D. 1152-1158. RIVALRY BETWEEN LOUIS VII. AND HENRY II. 14 1 look her misconduct ; but after their return from Palestine the disunion between the royal pair became more and more marked and serious, until at length it pi'oceeded to an open rupture. The high-spirited. Eleanora stigmatized her feeble husband as " a monk rather than a monarch;" and at the Council of Beaugency, in March, 1152, both parties agreed to demand a separation, the con- venient plea of affinity being put forward to cover their real mo- tives. The council pronounced the marriage null and void ; Elea- nora resumed her hereditary possessions as Duchess of Aquitaine ; and the crown of France was thus dismembered at one stroke of more than half its territories. Nor was this the full extent of the damage : before six weeks had elapsed, the divorced queen bestowed her hand upon Henry Plantagenet, duke of Normandy and count of Anjou ; and Louis had the mortification to see the broad domains he had just lost pass into the hands of a rival and iiostile family, already possessed of two of the most important provinces of France. Two years later (Oct. 25, 1154), Henry suc- ceeded, by the death of Stephen, to the throne of England, and became at once the most powerful sovereign of Europe. § 4. These ciraumstances laid the foundation of a mutual en- mity between the two princes, which filled up the remainder of their lives. Almost immediately after the marriage Louis made an attack upon Normandy. Henry, hoAvever, was on his guard, and defended himself with resolution and success ; a truce Avas soon arranged, and the politic Henry gratified the weak vanity of Louis by doing homage to him for his new acquisitions in Aqui- taine. In 1156 the ceremony of homage was repeated at Rouen ; and Louis was now induced to abandon the cause of Llenry's younger brother Geoffrey, who, by the terms of their father's will, ought to have succeeded to the counties of Anjou and Maine. By the same system of hypocritical deference to his suzerain, Henry obtained possession, in 1158, of the county of Nantes, and established his right of feudal lordship over the duchy of Brittany ; and shortly afterward he arranged with Louis a scheme of alliance between their houses, by betrothing his son Henry, a child of four years old, to the infant Princess Margaret, daughter of Louis by his second wife, Constance of Castile. Louis was no match for such an accomplished intriguer ; and the result of all their dis- putes was the same ; Henry, without driving matters to extremity against his rival, always contrived to secure to himself some decid- ed and solid advantage. Louis VH. Avas still destitute of male issue ; and having been again left a AvidoAver, he espoused about the same time his third Avife, Alice, sister of the Count of Champagne. This princess, to the unfeigned joy of the king and the nation, gave birth, on the 142 LOUIS VII. Chap. VIII, 22cl of August, 1165, to a prince, who received the name of Philip : he was welcomed as the " Dieu-donne," and became afterward the renowned Philip Augustus. § 5. The conflict between Henry and Archbishop Becket be- came a fresh source of discord and hostility between France and England. When the archbishop fled to France, the king wrote to request that Louis would not countenance or harbor him. Louis, well pleased with so fair an opportunity of annoying his rival, re- turned for answer that he considered Becket illegally deposed, and would never abandon him. He received him at Soissons with distinguished honor, and assigned him for his residence the abbey of Pontigny, near Auxerre. A petty war ensued, with disadvan- tage to Louis ; and although the Counts of Poitou, Marche, and Angouleme combined with him against Henry, they found them- selves worsted in every encounter. Terms of peace were at length agreed upon in 1169, and the two monarchs had an interview at Montmirail, whither Becket also repaired, and, under certain res- ervations, offered to make submission to his sovereign. Such, however, was his arrogance and stubbornness of demeanor that it was not till 1170 that a definite arrangement .was concluded, in consequence of which Becket took his departure for England to resume possession of his see. Within a month afterward this in- flexible prelate was barbarously murdered before the altar of Can- terbury cathedral. The tidings of the fearful tragedy w^ere received in France with universal consternation and horror. Louis, in the height of his indignation, wrote to demand of the Pope that the sword of St. Peter should be unsheathed to avenge the martyr of Canterbury. An interdict was immediately laid on all the Continental posses- sions of the King of England ; and it was only with extreme diffi- culty, and at the expense of abject humiliation, that Henry was enabled to appease the storm, § 6. The animosity of Louis against Henry now became more and more bitter and unscrupulous ; and there can be no doubt that he culpably fomented, if he did not originate, the unnatural rebellion soon afterward raised against him by Queen Eleanora and the three young princes, Henry, Geoffrey, and Eicliard. But, when hostilities commenced, the feeble nature of Louis soon quail- ed, as usual, before the genius, firmness, and vigor of his great an- tagonist, and in little more than a year he was glad to conclude peace with the English king. Shortly before his death Louis undertook a journey to England, and visited, as a pilgrim, the shrine of St. Thomas of Canterbury. He died on the 18th of September, 1180. The contemporary his- torians represent Louis as a religious gentle-tempered prince, full A.D. 1180-1223. ACCESSION OF PHILIP AUGUSTUS. I43 of kindly feelings toward his subjects, but of a character too sim- ple, easy, and credulous for his position. The communal move- ment continued to make progress during his reign, and many char- ters are signed with his name. He gave great encouragement to commerce by incorporating the "hanse" of Paris — a company of merchants who conducted the traffic on the Seine between the capital and Mantes. Louis VII. also took an important step to- ward improving the lower classes by instituting the " villes neuves," for the reception of serfs who might escape from tlie yoke of the smaller proprietors. In these towns they enjoyed freedom, to- gether Avith certain civil privileges, and a small grant of land. §*7. Philip II. Augustus, 1180-1223. — Philip, the only son of Louis, now succeeded to the throne, having just completed the fif- teenth year of his age. The title of Augustus', by Avhich he is commonly distinguished, was derived, according to some writers, from the circumstance of his having been born in the month of August ; others consider the epithet as synonymous Avith " the Great" or "the Imperial." Almost immediately after his acces- sion he contracted a marriage with Isabella, daughter of Baldwin, count of Hainault, and niece of Philip of Flanders. This pi-incess was directly descended in the female line from the unfortunate Charles of Lorraine, the last heir of the Carlovingians ; a fact which, in the popular view, was of auspicious omen for the new reign and the interest of the monarchy. The young bride Avas forthwith crowned at St. Denis, and Philip received as her doAvry t^e town of Amiens, together with the promise of part of her un- cle's dominions at his death. Philip early announced what was to be the characteristic policy of his reign — the systematic augmentation of the power of the crown at the expense of the great feudatories. He proceeded to call to account the powerful Duke of Burgundy, who was accused of violating the rights and Avasting the property of the Church in his dominions. The duke returned a haughty ansAver, and forti- fied himself in his castle of Chatillon-sur-Seine. The king, Avith- out a moment's hesitation, dispatched a considerable force into Burgundy, invested and reduced the fortress of Chatillon, took prisoner the duke's eldest son, who commanded the garrison, and forced the dismayed vassal to lower his tone and sue for terms of accommodation. These Avere granted immediately ; the Duke of Burgundy bound himself to make ample reparation to the Church for Avhatever injuries he had committed, and gave up three of his castles in pledge to Philip until the satisfaction should be complete. After infiicting this severe chastisement, the king exercised a Avise forbearance, restored the duke's castles, and endeavored, by marks of confidence and favor, to attach him firmly to the interests of the crown. 144 PHILIP AUGUSTUS. Chap. VIII. The same decisive energy showed itself soon afterward in the shape of religious intolerance and persecution. A royal edict of April, 1182, commanded all the Jews to leave the kingdom within three months. Their property was confiscated, and their syna- gogues converted into Christian temples. Heavy penalties were denounced against profane swearers and blasphemers, gamesters and buffoons ; and a third and more rigorous edict was directed against the heretical sect called Faterini, numbers of whom, con- demned upon charges more or less trivial and unjust, perished on the scaiFold. § 8. The causes of dissension between the rival crowns of France and England were too deep to be easily uprooted. • In 1187 Philip convoked his barons at Bourges, and, taking the field before Henry had time to advance, attacked and carried in rapid succession several of the towns held by the English in Berry. Henry at length arrived ; but a battle was avoided, and Henry obtained a truce for two years. It was arranged to hold a " par- lement" for the conclusion of a definitive peace, at a spot near Gisors, where an ancient and magnificent elm marked the bound- ary between Normandy and the French dominions ; but before the time appointed, tidings arrived from the East which gave an un- expected character to the proposed meeting, and took precedence of all other subjects of discussion. The Latin kingdom of Pales- tine, after a troubled and precarious existence of eighty-eight years, had fallen beneath the conquering arms of Saladin ; the Christians were defeated in a tremendous battle at Tiberias, in July, 1187; and on the 2d of October in the same year the holy city Jerusalem was assaulted and captured by the Saracens. The kings of France and England met according to appointment in January, 1188, each attended by a multitude of knights and nobles. They had scarcely commenced a discussion of the points in dispute, when the venerable Archbishop of Tyre presented him- self before the assembly, and in a pathetic speech implored the sovereigns to forget all matters of personal complaint, and unite in arming for the vindication of the Christian cause in Palestine, and the recovery of Jerusalem from the infidel dominion. It was a chord wliich in those days was never struck in vain. Henry of England instantly proffered his services in the sacred warfare, and assumed the cross. Philip followed with eager emulation ; and after him a crowd of gallant warriors — Richard Coeur de Lion, Philip of Flanders, the Duke of Burgundy, the Counts of Cham- pagne, Chartres, and Nevers — enrolled themselves as leaders of the new crusade. A delay of two years was allowed to complete the necessary preparations ; and a tax of a tenth — called the " dime Saladine" — was imposed on the property of all Avho were unable to take personal share in tho expedition. A.D. 1189-1191. THE THIED CRUSADE. 145 Notwithstanding the solemn engagement thus recently contract- ed, the ensuing summer found Philip and Heniy again at deadly strife. Philip, in a fit of passion, hewed down the famous " Orme des conferences," vowing by all the saints of France that no more pacific meetings should be held on the spot. Richard now broke out into open revolt against his father, and formally did homage to the King of France for his Continental possessions. Deeply wounded by this defection, Henry seems to have felt that fortune was finally deserting him. He was no longer able to make war with his accustomed vigor and ability ; and he found himself re- duced to the humiliating necessity of petitioning Philip for terms of peace. The conditions imposed on him were harsh and galling : he Avas compelled to make a declaration of unqualified submission to his rival ; to renounce all claim to the sovereignty of Berry ; to pay tAventy thousand marks of silver for the restoration of the towns captured by the French ; and to consent that all the barons Avho had taken arms in favor of Richard should continue vassals of that prince. Having subscribed this ignominious treaty, Henry retired to the castle of Chinon, and there expired, overwhelmed by grief and despondency, on the 6th of July, 1189. § 9. The third crusade commenced in the year 1190. Richard, who had succeeded his father on the English throne, joined Philip at Vezelai, and the two monarchs marched in company as far as Lyons, Here they separated ; Richard continued his route to Marseilles, Philip crossed the Alps and embarked at Genoa. The Sicilian port of Messina was named as rendezvous ; here the Cru- saders passed the winter ; and here it was that the first seeds of jealousy and discord were sown between Richard and Philip, whose characters — on the one side impetuous and overbearing, on the other suspicious and revengeful — were such as to forbid the hope that they could long remain cordially united. The King of France set sail from Messina on the 30th of March,, (1191), and in fourteen days arrived off Ptolemais, or St. Jean d'Acre, where' a prodigious Christian army was assembled, num- bering several hundred thousand men. The siege of this impor- tant fortress had already lasted more than a year ; but the jeal- ousies, intrigues, and dissensions which reigned among the Cru- saders retarded their success even more than the valor and skill of their opponents. The operations of the siege were mainly di- rected by Coeur de Lion, who became the hero of the crusade. The commanding ascendency which he assumed from the outset, and the renown acquired by his splendid feats of personal prowess, were keenly offensive to his brother monarch, himself rather a pol- itician than a soldier. The proud spirit of Philip ill brooked the secondai-y place which he occupied in the Christian host ; and aft- G 140 PHILIP AUGUSTUS. Chap-VIII. er the surrender of Acre lie determined to take leave of the army without farther delay. Having rei\ewed the engagement which bound him to respect the territories, rights, and interests of Rich- ard of England, the king sailed from Acre on the 1st of August, and, landing at Otranto, repaired to the pontifical court at Rome. Here he is said to have solicited from Celestine IH. a dispensation from the oath of friendship he had so lately sworn to Richard, against whom he had long meditated deep designs of malice and revenge. The Pope positively refused to gratify him ; and Philip, in sullen discontent, pursued his way to France, where his precip- itate return exposed him to much censure, and general imputa- tions of unfaithfulness to his crusading vow. § 10. Whether with or without the papal permission, Philip scrupled not to break his pacific engagement with his English rival. He lost no time in allying himself intimately with Prince John, who was busily plotting to supplant his brother on the throne, and received his homage, not only for Normandy and the Conti- nental states, but also for the crown of England. In virtue of this compact, Philip proceeded to overrun the dominions of Richard in France, and easily made himself master of the Vexin, of the city of Evreux, and several other towns and castles. Meanwhile the rash and imperious King of England had fallen into the hands of his enemy, the Duke of Austria, as he traversed Germany on his return from Palestine, and was languishing in the dungeons of Trifels. Summoned before the Diet at Haguenau in March, 1193, Richard triumphantly cleared himself from the malicious charges brought against him ; notwithstanding which, through the intrigues of Philip with the Emperor Henry VI., to whose custody he had been transferred by Leopold of Austria, his release from confine- ment was still delayed for some months longer. After a deten- tion of more than a year, he recovered his liberty in February, 1194 ; and the emperor \vrote in haste to the confederates Philip and John, to bid them " look to themselves, for the devil was un- chained." The terrible Richard soon made his appearance in Normandy at the head of his barons, breathing wrath and venge- ance. John, ever base and perfidious, endeavored to propitiate his brother by treacherously assassinating no less than three hund- red French men-at-arms, whom he had assembled under pretext of a great banquet at Evreux. Richard soon regained possession of all the places which had surrendered to Philip, and inflicted upon him a severe defeat at Fretteval, near Vendome (July 15, 11 94). Hostilities continued, with various and indecisive fortune, for five years longer. Innocent III., immediately on his accession to the papal throne, interposed his authority to put an end to this exhausting and fruitless contest. He dispatched a legate to A.D. 1199, 1200. FKANCE UNDER PAPAL INTERDICT. 147 France, and a truce for five years was concluded between the bel- ligerents, each party retaining his actual possessions (January 13, 1199). It is most probable that this treaty, like so many others, would have been abruptly violated on the first opportunity ; but tlie death of Richard, which occurred before the castle of Chalus, in the Limousin, in April, 1199, delivered Philip from this restless adversary, and removed the main obstacle to the accomplishment of his ambitious schemes. § 11. Philip now skillfully and boldly availed himself of the disputed succession between John and his youthful nephew, Ar- thur, duke of Brittany, to enfeeble and dismember the Anglo- Norman monarchy. Arthur placed himself under the Fi-ench king's protection, and offered to pay him homage for the posses- sions of the English crown in France. Philip promised to support him, and gave him a brilliant reception at his court, Avhere the young duke took up his abode. But Philip was in no position at this moment to carry matters to extremity in vindication of the rights of Arthur ; he was engaged .in a violent struggle with that most haughty and inflexible of pontiffs. Innocent III. After the death of his first wife, Isabella of Hainault, Philip had married Ingelberga, daughter of the King of Denmark ; but for this princess, although she is described as amiable, virtuous, and beautiful, he almost instantly conceived a strange and insurmount- able aversion ; and assembling a council at Compiegne, he com- pelled the servile prelates to pronounce the dissolution of the mar- riage. Upon appeal to Rome, however, the sentence of the French council was reversed ; in spite of which, Philip proceeded, in 1196, to espouse the beautiful Agnes de Meran, daughter of a Tyrolese count calling himself Marquis of Istria. This step caused general scandal. Pope Celestine III. addressed the king in repeated but ineffectual remonstrances and entreaties. His successor. Innocent III., a man of a very different stamp, adopted an uncompromising tone and decisive measures ; after admonishing Philip by letter to return to his duty and recall his lawful wife, he sent a cardinal legate into France, with orders, in default of immediate satisfac- tion, to inflict the extreme penalty of an interdict. Philip contin- ued obstinate ; and the interdict, not confined, as in former in- stances, to particular places or persons, but embracing the entire kingdom and nation, was published in a council at Dijon, in Jan- uary, 1200. During the space of eight months the churches re- mained closed, and all offices of religion were suspended through- out the land, with the exception of the baptism of new-born in- fants, and of extreme unction for the dying ; even the corpses of the faithful were refused a resting-place in consecrated earth. Philip held out for a time with stubborn fortitude ; imprisoned 148 • PHILIP AUGUSTUS. Chap. VIII. the unhappy Ingelberga at Etampes, and deprived of their sees all the bishops Avho observed the interdict. But in the end the moral force of public feeling was too strong for him ; he wisely resigned the contest, separated from Agnes de Me'ran, and reinstated Ingel- berga in her outward position, although he still continued to treat her in private with unmanly severity. Agnes, who seems to have been tenderly attached to Philip, died within a few weeks in giv- ing birth to a son, who survived but a short time. She had pre- viously borne two daughters, whom the Pope, with singular incon- sistency, pronounced legitimate. During the pressure of the interdict, Philip was glad to avoid the difficulties he would have had to encounter in raising and maintaining an army by entering into a compromise with John of England. It was agreed that a marriage should take place be- tween Prince Louis, eldest son of Philip, and the Infanta Blanche of Castile, niece of King John ; the English king engaging to give his niece a dowry of thirty thousand marks of silver, together with the city and county of Evreux, and to declai'e her sole heiress of all his Continental territories in the event of his dying without direct issue. Philip, on his part, promised to give no farther sup- port to the pretensions of Arthur of Brittany, and undertook that the young prince should renounce all claim to Normandy and the other French fiefs, and should take the oath of homage to his un- cle for the duchy of Brittany. Upon these conditions, the mar- riage between the youthful pair was solemnized near Vernon, in Normandy, on the 23d of May, 1200.*" Notwithstanding this amicable settlement, Philip only waited for a favorable opportunity to commence a contest Math John, for the purpose of dispossessing him altogether of his dominions on the soil of France. A plausible pretext soon occurred. John had become violently enamored of Isabella of Angouleme, the af- fianced bride of Hugh de Lusignan, count de la Marche. Giving the reins to his lawless passion, he repudiated his own consort, Hawise of Gloucester, carried off the promised Avife of his vassal, and married her. At the voice of the outraged count the stout barons of Poitou and Limousin flew to arms, and indignantly de- manded of Philip, as lord paramount, justice against the insolent ravisher. Philip lent a willing ear to the appeal, and cited John to appear at his court at Paris, in May, 1202, there to answer whatever charges might be brought against him. John disregard- ed the summons, and Philip, prepared beforehand for the refusal, instantly invaded Normandy at the head of his forces, and in a short time reduced several of the principal towns. Arthur of Brittany, whom Philip had purposely retained near his person, * See Shaksp.K. .John, Act iii., sc. 1 — "Gone to be mavriecl/'ctc. A.D. 1202-1205. PHILIP DISPOSSESSES JOHN OF NOPvMANDY. 149 was now dispatched into Poitou to place himself at the head of tlie insurrectionary movement against his uncle. The young duke, in conjunction with the Count de la Mai'che, laid siege to the cas- tle of Mirebeau, a few miles north of Poitiers, where his grand- mother Queen Eleanora had taken refuge. John hastily marched to the relief of his mother, surprised the besieging army, and gain- ed a complete victory, taking prisoner Arthur and his sister Elea- nor, the Count de la Marche, and all the chief barons of their party (August 1, 1202). John confined his nephew first in the castle of Falaise, from which he was transferred to that of Rouen. The exact particulars of his subsequent fate were never ascertained ; but the belief seems to have been almost universal at the time that John, upon Arthur's positively refusing to renounce his title to the English .^jrown, stabbed the unfortunate prince with his own hand, and, fastening a heavy stone to the body, cast it into the dark waters of the Seine (April 3, 1203). § 12. This barbarous crime excited universal horror and dis- gust ; the Bretons, who had been loyally attached to the murdered Arthur, rose turaultuously, and with clamorous outcries appealed to the King of France for vengeance on the royal assassin. Philip, eagerly seizing the advantage thrown into his hands, cited John to appear before the tribunal of his peers, the great vassals of the crown, and submit himself to their awai'd. John returned no an- swer to this summons, and Philip forthwith crossed the frontier of his fief of Poitou, where the whole population indignantly shook off the hated yoke of John, and ranged themselves under the French banners. Favored by the unaccountable apathy and slug- gishness of his adversary, Philip next invaded Normandy, and aft- er a siege of five months made himself master of the three great fortresses of Andelys (one of them being the celebrated Chateau Gaillard), regarded as the keys of the province. This signal suc- cess was rapidly followed by the conquest of numerous other towns, after which Philip laid siege to Rouen. The ancient and flourishing capital of Normandy surrendered at the end of thirty days, after making a fruitless appeal to John, who had retired to England, for help against the invader ; and thus, within the short space of three months, Philip completed the conquest of the prov- ince, which was at once annexed to the French crown. The greater part of the county of Poitou submitted before the close of the same summer, and in the spring of 1205 Philip reduced almost the whole district of Saintonge and Angouleme. Queen Eleanora, who had strenuously supported the fallen fortunes of her fixvorite son John, could not survive this extraordinary series of disasters to the house of Plantagenet ; she died early in 1205, at a very ad- vanced age, at the abbey of Beaulieu, near Loches. 150 PHILIP AUGUSTUS. Chap. VIII. Thus despoiled of some of the fairest and most extensive posses- sions of his crown, John at lengtli signified his willingness to ap- pear and plead before the court of his suzerain, provided Philip w^ould grant him the protection of a safe-conduct. Philip replied that he might come to France in all confidence and security ; but upon being asked to give the same guarantee for his safe return to England, he declared, with his customary adjuration "by all the saints of France," that John's liberty to recross the Channel must depend upon the sentence of his peers. John naturally de- clined to incur the hazard thus implied ; the court of peers pro- ceeded to hear the cause in his absence ; he was found guilty of "murder by treachery, the most aggravated form of homicide,'' and condemned to the penalty of death, together with the forfei- ture of all his fiefs held of the crown of France. This transaction offers a remarkable proof of the ascendency acquired by the crown over the great feudatories since the acces- sion of Philip Augustus, and enables us to estimate the general vigor, efficiency, and success of his government. Something, how- ever, must doubtless be attributed to the general detestation and contempt in which John was held, and to ±he eagerness of the French to humble the Anglo-Norman dynasty by destroying its power on the Continent. The Court of Peers, thus recognized, apparently for the first time, as the supreme judicial tribunal of the kingdom, was com- posed of twelve members, six of whom were temporal and six ec- clesiastical peers. The former were the Dukes of Normandy, Burgundy, and Aquitaine, the Counts of Flanders, Champagne, and Toulouse. The prelates were the Archbishop of Eeims, the Bishops of Laon, Noyon, Beauvais, Chalons, and Langres. Though habitually sunk in sloth and self-indulgence, John would not suffer the rich heritage of his Norman ancestors to pass from him without striking one blow in its defense. He landed at La Kochelle in July, 1206, and met with an encouraging reception from the fickle-minded Poitevins, who hastened to join his army in great numbers. Marching northward, he crossed the Loire, carried by assault the important town of Angers, and penetrated into Brittany, where he reduced several fortresses ; but, on the approach of Philip with a superior force, he retreated to Poitou, and endeavored to make the best terms he could by negotiation. Through the mediation of the Pope's legates, a truce for two years was signed on the 26th of October, by the terms of Avhich John renounced all claim to the sovereignty of Normandy, Brittany, Maine, and so much of Anjou and Touraine as lies north of the Loire, ceding also to Philip the city of Poitiers and the surround- ing district. The war between the two monarchs, if war it could A. D. 1203. THE ALBIGENSIAN WAR. 151 be called in which not a single pitched battle had been fought, had lasted scarcely three years, and in that brief space Philip had add- ed territories to his kingdom which had almost doubled its extent. He had previously acquired the provinces of Vermandois and Ar- tois, and not long afterward he obtained possession of Auvergne. Thus France became once more, next to the German empire, the most populous and powerful of the commonwealths of Europe. § 13. While the monarchy thus triumphed at the expense of England in the north, events were preparing in a distant quarter which in their results tended greatly to the farther extension and consolidation of the royal authority in the hands of Philip. The spirit of free inquiry in religion had always been prevalent in Languedoc and throughout the south of France. It was fostered in these provinces by the superior intelligence and education of the people, by the general cultivation of the arts and sciences, and by the liberal or almost republican form of the civil institutions. The twelfth century had been fruitful in controversial agitation, and had given birth to numerous heterodox sects, which had grad- ually taken deep root, to the serious disparagement and injury of the Church of Home. These sectaries were variously known as Catharini, Paterini, Pauvres de Lyons, Vaudois, and Albigenses, which last name they derived from being specially numerous and influential in the town and neighborhood of Alby. Our knowl- edge of their tenets is partial and obscure. Many of them cer- tainly held the doctrines of the Paulicians or Manicheans, the same heresy which was persecuted at Orleans and elsewhere in the reign of Henry I. ; but the views of the great majority seem to have differed little from those of the Keformers of Germany and Switzerland in the sixteenth century. They denounced the ambition, cupidity, and corruptions of the court of Rome ; they exposed and ridiculed the vices of the priesthood; they abjured the supremacy of the Pope, the sacrifice of the mass, purgatory, and image-worship ; they professed primitive simplicity and ascetic chastity. It was an organized rebellion against the ecclesiastical system of the day. Innocent III. was fully alive to the magnitude of the danger, and had resolved from the first moment of his accession to take effective measures to arrest its progress. His efforts were for some time abortive ; but in 1203 he appointed as his legates two Cister- cian monks, named Peter de Castelnau and Ralph, and armed them with an extraordinary commission to investigate, punish, and root out the rampant heresy which afflicted the four dioceses of Languedoc. The legates found an able and enthusiastic coad- jutor in tlie person of a priest of the diocese of Osma in Spain, Dominic de Guzman, afterward so celebrated as tlie founder of 152 PHILIP AUGUSTUS. Chap. VIII. the order which bears his name, and the first director of the tre- mendous Inquisition. Kaymond VI., count of Toulouse, was known to regard the heretics with tolerant indulgence, if not to share their opinions, and the papal envoys made every effort to in- timidate and reclaim him. Finding him immovable, they launch- ed against him a sentence of excommunication ; and the count having retaliated v/ith angry and menacing language, one of the gentlemen of his household attacked and murdered the unfortu- nate Peter de Castelnau near St. Gilles, as he was preparing to cross the Rhone (January 15, 1208). Furious at this outrage, Innocent not only anathematized the count afresh, but published a decree by which he absolved his sub- jects from their oath of allegiance, deprived him of his dominions, and bestowed them upon all good Catholics who were willing to take possession of them by force of arms. A new crusade was proclaimed — a crusade, not against 'the blaspheming infidel, but against a Christian sovereign ; the enterprise being described as all the more meritorious, inasmuch as the heretic Raymond was in a ivorse spiritual condition than the benighted heathen. The same privileges were offered as inducements to serve against the Albigenses that belonged to those who encountered all the hard- ships and dangers of the pilgrimage to the Holy Land ; and so strong was the temptation thus held out, so insatiable the passion of the age for religious warfare, that the Pope's summons was an- swered by vast multitudes of eager warriors, who were marshaled at Lyons about midsummer, 1209. The crusading army, under the guidance of the Pope's legate, Amaury, abbot of Citeaux, and Simon, count de Montfort, marched into Languedoc, and besieged the town of Beziers, Avhicli was stormed on the 22d of July. A horrible massacre ensued ; the whole population was indiscrimin- ately put to the sword. One of the superior officers inquired of the Abbot of Citeaux how they were to distinguish the heretics from the faithful: "Slay them all!" returned the savage church- man, " for the Loi'd knoweth those that are his !" Not a living soul was spai'ed, and the city was afterward pillaged and reduced to ashes. The victors next assaulted Carcassonne, the capital of Raymond- l?oger, vicomte de Beziers. Here the papal legate, availing him- self of the convenient maxim that "no faith is to be kept with heretics," obtained possession, by a deliberate act of treachery and perjury, of the person of the young vicomte, and thus compelled the garrison to sui'render the city. Raymond-Roger Avas detained a close prisoner, and his dominions were offered by the legate to Simon de Montfort, who, after much solicitation, accepted them. Bold^ unscrupulous, superstitious, cruel, and altogether devoted to A.D. 1209-1215. SIMON DE MONTFORT. 153 the Holy See, no more apt instrument could have been selected for the purposes of Innocent than this haughty baron. His cap- tive rival died suddenly, after a short confinement, in November, 1209 — of dysentery, as was publicly reported, but more probably of poison. The i-emaining towns of the district were quickly re- duced ; the county of Foix submitted without resistance ; the whole of Languedoc, with the exception of the county of Toulouse, lay at the feet of the conqueror. JRaymond of Toulouse, bending before the storm, had made his peace with Innocent by a degrading penance, and had been per- mitted, on condition of joining the so-called crusade against his own subjects, to retain his possessions. But, not displaying suffi- cient zeal in the cause, he w^as once more excommunicated by the legate, and an interdict was laid upon Toulouse. The count now repaired in person to Rome, and strove by abject humiliation to recommend himself to the favor of the Pope; he was referred to a council about to be held at Aries ; but the terms of reconcilia- tion there offered were so utterly preposterous, that he at once re- jected them with indignant disdain. Raymond was immediately and furiously assailed by the fanatic Simon de Montfort ; he was defeated in the summer of 1211 ; and the greater part of his ter- ritories fell into the hands of the enemy. The count's sole remain- ing hope now lay in his brother-in-law, the chivalrous Pedro II., king of Aragon. Pedro hastened to his succor at the head of a powerful army ; and the two princes, combining their forces, at- tacked the Crusaders under De Montfort at Muret, on the 12th of September, 1213. A desperate battle followed, in which the al- lies suffered a disastrous rout, and the heroic Pedro fell dead un- der a shower of arrows. Fifteen thousand are said to have per- ished on the side of the vanquished, numbers of whom Avere drown- ed in the Garonne. This victory opened to De Montfort the gates of Toulouse, Narbonne, and Montauban, and, in fact, established his supremacy over the entire province against which the crusade had been undertaken. The fourth Lateran council, held in No- vember, 1215, confirmed him in the sovereignty of all the conquer- ed territories, with the exception of the counties of Foix and Com- minges, which were restored to their rightful OAvners. Count Raymond submitted Avith calm fortitude to the sentence of the council, and took up his residence at Toulouse in a private sta- tion. The Albigensian Avar Avas noAV formally declared to be at an end. But in its course a deadly blow had been dealt to the ancient soA'creign houses of southern France, and to the national- ity of its inhabitants ; and the ultimate advantage of this revolu- tion, as Ave shall see in the sequel, Avas reaped by the Capetian dynasty. G2 154 PHILIP AUGUSTUS. Chap. VIII. § 14. In tliis ferocious and desolating strife Philip Augustus took no personal share. Pie was fully occupied at home, Avhere the power and greatness of the French monarchy advanced daily under his wise, vigilant, and politic government. In 1213 he Avas invited by Innocent III. to undertake the conquest of England, upon which the Pope, in a moment of irritation against John, had just inflicted a sentence of interdict. Philip collected a large army at immense expense, and was preparing to descend upon the English coast, when he was suddenly informed that John had made terms with the arrogant pontiff, and that, as his kingdom had now become a fief of the Holy See, the proposed expedition could not be proceeded with without offense and insult to the Church. Highly incensed at having been thus trifled with, Philip never- theless at once desisted from his enterprise, and turned his arras against Ferrand, count of Flanders, who had refused to join his standard for the invasion of England, and had allied himself with the Emperor Otho IV., John's nephew ; Philip, in the true spirit of rivalry, taking the side of his antagonist, Frederick of Hohen- stauflfen. The Fi'ench fleet sailed from the mouth of the Seine, and captured Gravelines and Dam, the port of Bruges. At this latter place, however, the invaders were suddenly attacked by a powerful squadron of English ships, and, after a severe action, were defeated with immense loss, those of the French vessels which escaped capture being so seriously damaged that they were burnt by Philip's own orders. Meanwhile the king in pei'son led his array across the Flemish border, and gained possession, with slight resistance, of Cassel, Ypres, Courtrai, and Ghent ; Lille at first sub- mitted, but afterward revolted, and imprisoned the French garri- son ; upon which Philip attacked and carried the city by escalade, and, after much slaughter among the inhabitants, burnt it to the ground. Exasperated by these losses, the Count of Flanders ex- erted himself to form a strong coalition against the French mon- arch ; and it was concerted that the emperor should invade France from the frontier of Flanders and Hainault, while, at the same moment, John of England should make an attack upon Poitou for the recovery of that portion of his ancient territory. John dis- embarked at La Eochelle in February, 1214, and, before the French troops could arrive to oppose him, possessed himself of several of the chief towns of Poitou, and even entered Angers in triumph ; but no sooner did he hear of the approach of Prince Louis, Philip's eldest son, though with a force inferior to his own, than he hastily rccrossed the Loire, abandoned all his advantages, sacrificed his stores and munitions of war, and retreated to the farthest limits of Poitou. The campaign did not open in the north till hostilities were A.D. 1214. BATTLE OF BOUVINES. 155 nearly terminated in the west. Otho assembled his army at Va- lenciennes ; his camp was thronged by the princes and nobles of northern Germany and the Low Countries, the most conspicuous of whom were the Dukes of Lorraine and Brabant, the Counts of Flanders, Holland, and Boulogne ; he was also supported by a con- siderable body of English archers, commanded by William Long- sword, earl of Salisbury, the bastard brother of King John. The united numbers of the confedei'ate host are said to have exceeded 150,000 men. Philip did not wait to be attacked ; he marched into Flanders toward the end of July, and for several weeks laid Avaste the country without opposition. At length the hostile ar- mies met at the bridge of Bouvines, between Lille and Tournay ; and here, on the 27th of August, 1214, was fought one of the best contested and most memorable battles of the Middle Ages. After a sanguinary conflict of three hours, during which the sovereigns on both sides braved .the most desperate personal peril, and were both nearly taken prisoners, a brilliant victory remained with the French ; the emperor escaped from the field with the utmost dif- ficulty, leaving behind him his imperial eagle and the car upon which it was borne ; five counts, among whom were Ferrand of Flanders and William of Salisbury, were taken prisoners, together with twenty-five knights bannerets. Sixteen of the municipal bor- oughs of France are mentioned as having furnished their contin- gents of men-at-arms, or milices communales ; and these contributed mainly to the glorious success of the day. The results of the battle of Bouvines were immense. It was fatal to the personal fortunes of Otho, w^lio retired to Brunswick, resigned his crown, and ended his days in obscurity. John of England obtained a truce for five years by the payment of 60,000 marks ; the Counts of Flanders and Boulogne forfeited their fiefs, and the former was imprisoned for life at Paris. But the most important consequence was the moral prestige acquired by the crown and monarchy of France, which, resting for support upon the nation, and not merely on the feudal aristocracy, assumed henceforth new and solid proportions of strength and grandeur. The popular joy throughout the kingdom was unbounded. Philip founded, in grateful memory of his triumph, the abbey "de la "Vic- toire," near Senlis, the interesting ruins of which still remain. § 15. John, on his return to England, found his subjects in a state of turbulent disaffection. Disgusted by his exactions and cruelties, his meanness, cowardice, and utter incapacity for govern- ment, the great barons leagued together to extort from him by force a redi'ess of grievances, and the restoration of their constitu- tional rights. John was compelled to yield to their demands ; and on the 15th of June, 1214, signed, at liunnymead, the ever- 156 PHILIP AUGUSTUS. Chap. VIII. memorable Magna Charta, the foundation and bulwark of English liberty. But the ink Avas scarcely dry when the tyrant complain- ed bitterly to the Pope of the violence to which he had been sub- jected, and besought his interfei-ence. Innocent, in llis capacity of suzerain of England, issued a bull, declaring the charter illegal, null and void, and forbade the king to permit and the barons to demand the observance of its provisions, under pain of excommu- nication. The bai'ons sturdily refused compliance; John levied against them an army of foreign mercenaries, and a civil war en- sued. The insurgent nobles, thus driven to extremities, now sent an embassy to Paris, and offered the crown of England to Prince Louis, on condition of his armed assistance in overthrowing and dethroning John. It was not without difficulty that the prince obtained his fother's consent to this tempting proposition ; the cautious Philip was by no means disposed to embark in a second contest with Pope Innocent ; and, in reply to remonstrances and threats from Rome, he declared that, while he would give no act- ive support to his son's enterprise, he could not restrain him from maintaining his own just pretensions. Louis, who affected to lay claim to England in right of his wife Blanche, a granddaughter pf Henry II., accordingly set sail from Calais in May, 1216, and, landing at Sandwich, was joyfully welcomed by the confederate barons, who conducted him to London. John, with his usual pu- sillanimity, fled on the approach of danger, and retreated to the northern counties ; the invader took possession of the capital, re- ceived the homage of the principal nobility, and Avas solemnly pro- claimed King of England. His bold undertaking seemed upon the point of being crowned with complete success; but the sudden death of John (October 19, 1216) in a moment changed the pos- ture of affairs. From the hands of the detested tyrant the sceptre now passed into those of his son, an unoffending child often years old ; the barons would not desert, under such circumstances, the legitimate heir of the Plantagenets ; most of them withdrew from Louis, and declared their adherence to their rightful sovereign. The situation of the French prince noAV became extremely critical. He was excommunicated, Avith all his supporters, by the Pope ; his father declined to succor him ; and though he obtained, under- hand, some small re-enforcements from France, it Avas evident that, as the cause of Henry increased in strength daily, an over- poAvering force would shortly be arrayed against him. After suf- fering successive defeats by land and sea, Louis found himself blockaded in London ; and his resources being entirely exhausted, he had no alternatiA'e but to apply to the English leaders for terms of capitulation. By a treaty signed on the 11th of September, 1217, he renounced all title to the croAvn of Britain, engaged to A.D. 1216-1222. RENEWAL OF WAR IN LANGUEDOC. 157 repass the Channel immediately, and never more to return as an enemy; and farther promised to persuade his father to make res- titution of all the pi'ovinces on the Continent Avhich had been wrested from John. Upon these conditions, together with a stip- ulation of amnesty for all who had taken arms in his favor, Louis quitted England with his ci'estfallen followers, and reached the shores of France in safety. While these events were passing, a singular reaction had taken place in Languedoc, where Simon de Montfort had never com- pletely succeeded in establishing his authority. Raymond of Tou- louse, accompanied by his son, a chivalrous youth of eighteen, had raisedhis standard in Provence in the spring of 1216, and was received with transport by the population. The two counts be- sieged the usurper in Beaucaire, and forced him to surrender the place ; then marching straight upon Toulouse, Raymond entered his ancient capital in triumph, amid the joyous acclamations of the people, on the 13th of September, 1217. The city was imme- diately besieged by Simon de Montfort, and for nine months re- sisted the most desperate efforts of his army. During the prog- ress of the siege, the Count de Montfort was struck down by a huge stone, hurled by a machine from the ramparts, and expired upon the spot, on the 25th of June, 1218. His death was follow- ed by a general rising throughout Languedoc in defense of Ray- mond and his family against the northern invaders ; and Amaury, the son of Simon de Montfort, who was proclaimed by his party as his successor, was compelled to raise the siege of Toulouse and retire to Carcassonne. Honorius IIL, who had mounted the pa- pal throne upon the death of Innocent in 121G, now announced a renewal of the crusade, and urgently exhorted the King of France to take arms for the extirpation of the pestilent heresy of the south. Philip declined to march in person, but dispatched Prince Louis, attended by the Duke of Brittany and no less than thirty counts, with ten thousand archers, to prosecute the sacred war. La 1219 tlie prince joined Amaury de Montfort at the siege of Marmande, which surrendered, and became the scene of a pitiless massacre like that of Beziers. Toulouse was again invested, and again re- pulsed the besiegers ; after which inglorious faiku'e Prince Louis abandoned the crusade. The party of Raymond was everywhere triumphant. Amaury de Montfort retained his sovereignty in name, though he had lost its substance ; and a desultory and lan- guishing warfare Avas kept up for some years longer in the south- ern provinces. Count Raymond died at Toulouse in 1222. As he had never been aV)Solved from the ban of papal excommunica- tion, the rites of Christian sepulture were, by the almost incredi- ble rancor of sectarian hatred, denied to his remains. He was succeeded in his estates by his son, Raymond YIL 158 PHILIP AUGUSTUS. Chap. VIII, § 16. The career of Philip Augustus was indeed drawing to a close ; and instead of engaging in distant enterprise, he devoted his last years to the task of consolidating his former conquests, and developing the resources and improving the internal organiza- tion of his kingdom. This monarch was a generous benefactor to the city of Paris ; he greatly enlarged its extent, caused the prin- cipal streets to be paved, and embellished it by erecting numerous churches, hospitals, market-halls, and other public edifices. Philip also laid the foundations of the castle or palace of the Louvre. "■ His intelligent patronage fostered the rising University of Paris, the first statutes of which were drawn up under his direction ; he instituted, in addition to the customary course of study — the triv- ium and quadriviura — three new faculties or professorships, of medicine, Koman law, and canon law. The king also bestowed much pains on the administration of public justice, and the estab- lishment of a regular fiscal system. The ordinary judges, in num- ber sixty-eight, were called prevots ; above them was a superior class, entitled baillis, who formed a court of appeal in important causes, and answered nearly to the missi dominici of Charlemagne. In the midst of these useful and enlightened occupations, Philip was seized, in the autumn of 1222, with a quartan fever, which gradually undermined his constitution. He lingered through the winter and spring, but in the course of a journey from Normandy to Paris, the violence of the disease suddenly increased, and com- pelled him to halt at Mantes, in which town he breathed his last, on the 14th of July, 1223. He had attained the fifty-eighth year of his age and the forty-third of his reign. /' Philip Augustus was the first sovereign of what may be called the national ra.orL&XQ\\j of France, who acquired a popular, brilliant, and lasting reputation. In general political ability — in the quali- ties of sagacity, prudence, firmness, #nergy, and perseverance — he was infinitely superior to his predecessors since the time of Char- lemagne ; and it may be questioned whether, in these essential qualifications of a ruler, he has been surpassed by any of his suc- cessors in the line of the Capetians. Among the many remarkable events of this period, the Fourth Crusade demands a brief notice, from its intimate connection with the history of France. This crusade originated with Pope Inno- cent in., and was preached in France, under his dii-ection, by Foulques, the parish priest of Neuilly-sur-Marne, near Paris, al- ready much distinguished by his zeal and eloquence. This enthu- siastic missionary attended a splendid tournament in Champagne, and induced all the nobles and knights there assembled to assume the cross. The chief of them were Thibald, count of Champagne, J and his cousin the Count of Chai'trcs and lilois; Baldwin IX., / A.D. 1202-1226. LATIN CONQUEST OF CONSTANTINOPLE. 159 count of Flanders ; Boniface, marquis of Montferrat ; Simon de Montfort, afterwai'd the leader of the crusade in Languedoc ; and Geoffi-ey de Villehardouin, marshal of Champagne, who became the historian of the expedition. The adventurers, numbering thirty thousand knights and foot soldiers, for the most part of the French nation, proceeded to Venice, where they embarked in ship- ping furnished by that gi-eat maritime republic, on the 8th of Oc- tober, 1202. Being joined by the Doge Enrico Dandolo, they laid siege to Zara in Dalmatia, which had revolted from the Venetians ; and having soon reduced it to submission, passed the winter in that city. • Here they formed an alliance with Alexius Angelus, son and heir of the deposed Greek emperor, and engaged to assist him in recovering his throne. The result was that, instead of sail- ing for Palestine in pursuance of their vow, the Crusaders turned aside to Constantinople, where, by an extraordinary chain of oc- currences, one of their number, Baldwin of Flanders, found him- self, in the spring of 1204, seated on the imperial throne of the East. The territories of the empire Avere distributed among the French, Flemish, and Venetian nobles. The emperor retained a fourth part of the whole ; out of the remainder were formed a kingdom of Thessalonica or Macedonia, a principality of Achaia, a marquisate of Romania, a duchy of Niccea, besides several minor appanages. The original object of the expedition was totally for- gotten and abandoned ; and Innocent expressed himself at first in terms of unbounded indignation at this breach of faith. But he soon became reconciled to it by the triumph thus achieved over the schismatic Greek communion, and the apparent restoration of East and West to the obedience of the lloman See. The Latins maintained possession of Constantinople for a period of nearly sixty years ; but such were the dissensions and misfortunes that marked their rule, that it was no source of advantage, but rather of weakness and perplexity, to France. § 17. Louis VIIL, 1223-1226— Louis VIIL brought with him to the throne one important personal recommendation, Avhich se- cured him universal popularity — his descent, on the side of his mother, Isabella of Hainault, from Charlemagne. His accession was regarded on this account as a restoration of the dynasty known by that glorious name, and the circumstance added fresh strength and lustre to the line of the Capetians. Having been crowned at Reims, with his consort Blanche, Louis was almost immediately engaged in hostilities with Henry III. of England ; but after two campaigns a truce for three years was concluded, and Louis turned his attention to another and more pi*essing object, the war in Lan- guedoc. In 1225 the King of France was solemnly charged by the coun- 160 LOUIS VIII. Chap. VIII. cil of Bourges with the task of purging out from the land the wick- edness of the southern heretics. By the same council Count Ray- mond VII. was excommunicated, together with all his subjects and adherents, and the ancient possessions of his family were granted in sovereignty to the King of France and his heirs forever. The royal army, which assembled at Bourges early in the summer of 1226, is said to have numbered fifty thousand knights and horsemen, besides an immense multitude of combatants on foot. They descended the valley of the Rhone, and, being denied a pas- sage through Avignon, were compelled to besiege that city, then an important fortress of the county of Provence. Avignon was gallantly defended during three months ; the assailants were con- tinually harassed by Count Raymond, who cut off' their supplies, and their ranks were fearfully thinned by famine and epidemic disease ; nevertheless, the resources of the besieged failed at last, and Avignon capitulated on the 12th of September. A heavy contribution Avas exacted from the city ; its fortifications were de- molished, and the French and Flemish mercenaries in the service of Raymond were put to death. After this dear-bought victory most of the principal towns in the province submitted almost with- out resistance to the arms of the Crusaders ; and Raymond hav- ing thrown himself with a strong force into Toulouse,.Louis ad- vanced as if to besiege that capital. But the month of October had now arrived, and it was judged unadvisable to commence far- ther operations. The campaign was brought to a close, and the king, leaving a lieutenant in command of the conquered district, set out on his journey northward, intending to return in the spring. On the road he was attacked by the fever or dysentery which had proved so fatal to his army ; his feeble frame, exhausted already by the fatigues of war, was unable to sustain the shock ; and on reaching Montpensier, in Auvergne, he became conscious that his hours were numbered. Assembling round him the prelates and barons, the king caused them to swear allegiance to his eldest son, Prince Louis, a child of twelve years old, and committed him to tlie guardianship of Queen Blanche, his mother. Louis VIII. ex- [)ired on the 8th of November, 1226, in the thirty-ninth year of Ills age. He left four sons : Louis, who succeeded to the throne ; Robert, count of Artois ; Alphonso, count of Poitou ; and Charles, count of Anjou and Maine. Matthew Paris reports, but Avithout sufficient foundation, that the king died, not of natural disease, but of poison administei-ed by Thibald, count of Champagne, whom he had offended at the siege of Avignon, and who was, besides, re- puted to be the lover of Queen Blanche. Chap. VIII. FOKMATION OF THE FRENCH LANGUAGE. 161 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. ON THE FORMATION OF THE FRENCH LANGUAGE. The language spoken in France haa varied at different periods, according to the different races wliicli have occupied tlie country. The primitive Celtic population used the tongue of which certain traces, more or less distinct, are to be discovered at this day in "la Bre- tagne Bretonnante," in Wales, and in Ireland. The Iberians of the south had a peculiar idiom of unknown antiquity, which is said to be preserved among the Basques of the Pyrenees and northern Spain. The Itomans, after their conquest of Gaul, introduced tlieir language as a part of their civilization, and in a won- derfully short space of time imposed it gener- ally on the conquered race. During the four centuries of the Koman dominion the lan- guage used by the Church, by the courts of law, in public assemblies, by the army, and in polite society, was Latin, as spoken by the Komans themselves. There is no doubt, how- ever, that the iwovincial and rural popula- tion of Gaul preserved a certain admixture of their original Celtic, and a considerable corruption of the Latin was the natural result. The dialect formed by an amalgamation of tl;ese two distinct elements obtained in course of time a vast extension, and acquired the name of lingua vulgaris, lingua lioniana rus- fica-i or langue Romane. BI. Raynouard, in his Granimaire de la Langua Romane, has described very minutely and clearly the proc- ess by which this change was effected. Tlie first step was to suppress the declensions of the Latin nouns, forming the genitive and dative ca?es by means of prepositions. Thus such words as majestatem, amantem, ardent- era, etc., when their final syllable had been cut off, became majestat., amant, ardent, etc. ; and the accusatives ending in ionem, as sta- tioneni, religionem, became station, religion, in like manner. The loss of the inflexions was supplied by the use of prepositions; de serving for the sign of the genitive case, and d for that of the dative. Afterward followed the substitution of the definite and indefinite articles for the pronouns hie, ille, and ipse, and the introduction of the auxiliary verb in the place of the Latin moods and tenses. I'pon the Frankish conquest a farther modi- fication was made in tlie popular language of Gaul, by certain additions from the Tu- desque or German irliom. The barbarian in- vaders, being utterly inferior in civilization to the nation tliey had conquered, accepted sub- stantially the tongue which tliey found pre- dominant in the country ; incorporating into it, however, many teiTus from their own rude and homely, yet forcible and expressive vo- cabulary. Tlie German is said to have con- tributed greatly to the phraseology connected with war, navigation, jurisprndence, agricul- ture, and field sports. (See M. de Chevallet, Origine et Formation de la Langue Fraii- Caise, 1S53.) Compounded then of these three ingredients — the Latin as its essential basis, the Celtic and German as accessories — the new language of Gaul seems to have been adopted almost universally by the middle of the eighth century. Many local variations e.xisted, nevertheless, as to form and pronun- ciation, in the different provinces, and espe- cially between the dialects of the north and the south. At a council held at Tours in the last year of the reign of Charlemagne a canon was passed enjoining all priests to procure a copy of certain Homilies of the Fathers translated into the lingua Romana rustica, which must therefore, at this date, have been the recog- nized language of the people. The earliest specimen that we possess of the Romance tongue, the parent of the modem French, ia the oath taken by Louis the German at the famous meeting at Strasburg in 843. It is here subjoined, as preserved by the historian Nithard, in the Recueil des Historians de France : " Pro Deo amur, et pro Christian poblo et nostre commun salvament, d'ist di en avant, in quant Deus saver et poder me donet, si salvarai eo cist meon fradre Karlo, et in adjuda et in caduna cosa, si cum om per dreit son fradra salvar dist, in o cjuid il mi altresi fayet ; et ab Lodher nul plaid numque prin- drai qui, moon vol, cist meon fradre Karle in damno sit." In the French of our day this would run as follows: "Pour I'amour de Dieu et pour le commun salut du peuple Chre- tien et le notre, de ce jour en avant, en tant que Dieu me donnera de savoir et de pouvoir, je soutiendrai mon frere Charles ioi present, et par aide et en toute chose comme par droit Ton doit soutenir son frere, tant qu'il fera de mtrae pour moi. Et avec Lotha ire jamais je ne ferai nuUe paix qui, de ma volonto, soit au prejudice de mon frere Charles." A hymn in honor of St. Eulalia, composed in the 10th century, illustrates the progress of the language. It commences thus : " Buona puloella I'ut Eulahn, Bel avret corps, bellezour uninia; Voldrent la vemtre II Deo inimi, Voldrent la faire diavle servir, Elle n'out eskoltet les luals ct>nseil]ers,"etc. Next in antiquity come the "Chanson de Roland," and the laws drawn up by William, duke of Normandy, after Iiis conquest of En- gland, both belonging to the 11 th century. The latter document begins thus : " Ces sount les lees et les custumes que le rei Willams grantat a tut le puple de Kngleterre aprte le conquest de la terre, iceles mesmes quo li reis Edward sun cosin tint devant lui. ^'o est a savier; I. Pais a sainte yglise. De quel for- fait que home out fait en eel tems, e il pout venir a sainte yglise, out pais de vie et de membre." Raynouard considers that in the ninth cen- tury the same language was spoken by all the inhabitants of France, both in the northern and southern provinces. But there can^e no doubt that by the beginning of the 13th cen- 162 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Chap, VIII. tury, if not earlier, this national language had acquired two distinctly marked foi-ms or characters, which were Icnown as the Lanrjue (Voc and the Langue d'oil. These names ex- pressed the different pronunciation of the af- firmative particle: oc, in the south, being equivalent to the oU^ or oui, of the country north of the Loire. The Langue d'oc was the more refined, harmonious, and elegant of the two, and for a long time the more popular and widely diffused. It gave its name to the great and powerful province of Languedoc ; it was the language of the Troubadours ; and from it were derived three sister dialects, which became, in coui-se of time, tlie Italian, Spanish, and Portuguese languages. Yet eventually it yielded the palm to its northern competitor, the Langue d'oil, which bore strong marks of the manly, enterprising, en- ergetic genius both of the Franks and of the Normans. It was also known as the Roman Wallon, the southern dialect being called in distinction Roman Proveii.<;al. The ultimate predominance of the Langue d'oil, or, as it may be called distinctively, the French, arose from very obvious causes. It was the lan- guage used by the Capetian princes and their court ; and in proportion as the royal power advanced, the French made corresponding encroachments on the dialect of the southern provinces. Tlie success of the crown in the long and desolating Albigensian war destroy- ed the independence of Languedoc, and at the same time dealt a mortal blow to tlie graceful literature of the Troubadours. Their lan- guage necessarily suffered in their fixll ; from that date it rapidly declined in popularity and importance, until at last It became con- fined to the lower classes, and sank into an obscure and irregular patois. Thus the po- litical unity of the French kingdom produced as its natural consequence the unity of lan- guage and of national literature. The Langue d'oc attained its utmost perfec- tion in the lyric effusions of the Tioubadoui:% who flourished througliout southern France from the 11th to the 13th century. Their name comes from the Provenjal troubar, trouver, to invent. They were a race of itin- erant poets, who, wandering from chateau to chateau, recounted in stirring verse the ro- mantic legends of the worthies of antiquity — the knights of the Round Table, Charlemagne and his twelve paladins. Their favorite themes were war and love; the compositions relating to the former subject were called sir- ventes ; the tensons and ca^izones were con- cerned with the latter. " Courts of love" were frequently held at the castles of the principal barons or at the court of Toulouse, in which the Troubadours contended for a crown or other prize of the gaie science, to be bestowed by the hand of the Queen of Beaut ii. Considerable fragments of. their poetry have been collected by the researches of MM. Mil- lot, VUlemain, Raynouard, and Fauriel. The Trouveurs, or Trouveres, in nortliern France — the land of the Langue d'oil — an- swered to the Trouhadoui's of the south. Castle of Anger,?, begun by Philip Augustus, and completed by Louis IX. CHAPTEE IX. fROM THE ACCESSION OF (SAINT) LOUIS IX. TO THAT OF THE LINE OF VALOIS. A.D. 1226-1328. f \. Accession of Louis IX. ; Coalition of the Barons against the Eegent Blanche. § 2. Conclusion of the Albigensian War ; Cession of Langue- doc to the French Crown ; Establishment of the Inquisition at Toulouse. § 3. Marriage of Louis to Marguerite of Provence ; Eevolt of the Barons of Poitou ; War with Henry III. of England ; Battles of Taillebourg and Saintes. § 4. Dangerous Illness of Louis ; his Vow to undertake a Cru- sade ; Marriage of Charles of Anjou with Beatrice of Provence ; first Cru- sade of St. Louis ; Battle of Mansourah. §5. Moderation and Justice of Louis; Invasion of Naples by Charles of Anjou; Battles of Grandella and Tagliacozzo. § 6. Second Crusade of St. Louis ; his Death and Charac- ter. § 7. Termination of the Crusades. § 8. Accession of Philip III. ; County of Toulouse and Kingdom of Navarre united to the Crown. § 9. Pierre de la Brosse. § 10. War between the Houses of Anjou and Ara- goninSicily; the " Sicilian Vespers ;" Death of Charles of Anjou. §11. Philip III. invades Aragon ; his Death at Perpignan. § 12. Accession of Philip IV. (le Bel) ; Continuation of War with Aragon ; Treaty of Tarascon. § 13. War between Philip and Edward I. of England ; Battle of Furnes ; Treaty of Montreuil. § 14. Flanders annexed to the French Crown. §15. Eevolt of the Flemings; Battle of Courtrai ; Battle of Mons-la-Puelle; Peace with Flanders. § 16. Philip IV. and Pope Bon- iface VIII. § 17. Seizure of Boniface at Anagni; his Death. § 18. 2(54 LOUIS IX. Chap. IX. Election of Pope Clement V. § 19. Prosectition of the Knights Tem- plars ; Executions at Paris. § 20. Council of Vienne ; Abolition of the Order of the Templars ; Execution of Jacques de Molay ; Death of Cle- ment V. and of Philip IV. § 21. The three Sons of Philip the Pair; Reign of Louis X. (le Hutin). § 23. Eeign of Philip V. (le Long) ; the Salic Law. § 23. The Pastoureaux ; the Lepers ; Death of Philip V. § 24. Eeign of Charles IV. ; Troubles in England ; Queen Isabella ; Death of Charles IV. § 1. LomsIX., 1226-1270. — The principles of hereditary roy- alty had not yet taken such deep root in France as to induce the proud feudal lords to acquiesce contentedly in the rule of a help- less child, under the tutelage of a woman, and that woman a for- eigner and a Spaniard. A strong coalition was formed against the government of Blanche ; but she was a woman of superior undei'standing, dauntless courage, and remarkable force of char- acter; firm and resolute of purpose, she possessed at the same time all the tact and fascinating graces of her sex, and was thor- oughly versed in the arts of conciliation and persuasion. Gather- ing round her the vassals on Avhom she could depend, she first sol- emnized the coronation of her son at Reims ; and having thus se- cured to herself the authority of a consecrated sovereign, she next attacked the disaffected nobles. It was not, however, till 1231 that this anxious and wearisome struggle was brought to a close, entirely to the advantage of the regent. By the treaty of St. Au- bin du Cormier, all the insurgent barons were reconciled to the crown. § 2. The regency of Queen Blanche is also memorable for the termination of the Albigensian war, and the definitive submission of Languedoc to the crown of France. By a treaty signed at Paris in April, 1229, between the king. Count Kaymond, and the papal legate, a final pacification was effected. A small portion of his dominions was granted in fief to Raymond for his life ; after his death these tei-ritories were to pass to one of the French king's brothers, who should be united in marriage to the count's only daughter, Jeanne. The young princess was immediately affianced to Alphonso, count of Poitiers, the third son of Louis VIII.; but the marriage Avas not solemnized till 1241. With a view to consolidate the conquest, the Inquisition was formally established at Toulouse by a council held there in No- vember, 1229 ; the office of inquisitors being intrusted to the or- der of the Dominicans, or Friars Preachers. This tribunal be- came, as is Avell known, the most formidable engine of religious tyranny and domestic persecution that the world has ever seen. Its proceedings took place in secret ; no advocates were permitted to plead, no witnesses were produced. The object was to extort A.D. 1234-li>41. INQUISITION ESTABLISHED AT TOULOUSE. 155 the confession of crime through the moral and physical prostra- tion of the miserable victim ; and to this end the most iniquitous and revolting means were employed without scruple ; the most subtle trickery, the most unblushing deceit, the most ruthless tor- ture. On certain occasions, which soon became frequent, the Holy Office published its sentences and inflicted its punishments. Of the latter there were three degrees — those who had made absolute submission, and were deemed the least criminal, were admitted to penance ; those who had not given complete satisfaction (the most numerous class) were immured for life in prison ; those who stub- bornly refused to confess, or who relapsed after confession, were committed to the flames. § 3. As Louis advanced toward manhood, his mother became anxious to pi'ocure for him a suitable alliance in marriage, and de- manded on his behalf the hand of Marguerite, the eldest daughter of Eaymond Berenger IV., count of Provence. The nuptials were celebrated at Sens on the 27th of May, 1234-, Louis having then attained the age of nineteen, while the bride was in her thirteenth year. Two years later Louis completed his majority, and became legally independent of his mother's control. But this produced no I'eal change in the direction of affairs. Blanche exacted and obtained from her son the same implicit submission as before, and continued to the end of her life to exercise over him a predomin- ant influence, extending not only to concerns of state, but even to the details of his domestic habits. While we may smile at the over- watchful solicitude which regulated the intercourse of the monarch with his youthful consort, there can be no doubt that, in all graver matters, this ascendency of the queen-moth-er, the natu- ral result of her great powers of mind and sterling excellence, proved of the utmost advantage to the interests of France. The marriage and majority of Louis were succeeded by a few years of tranquillity, during which little occurred deserving of notice. In the summer of 1241 the king solemnly invested his brother Alphonso with the government of Poitou and Auvergne, according to the provisions of his father's will. The young prince convoked his feudatories at Poitiers, and demanded of them the oath of homage ; few responded to the summons ; and it soon ap- peared that an extensive opposition had been organized to the sovereign claims of Louis and his family, based on the ancient con- nection of Poitou with the royal house of England. At the head of this confederacy was Hugh de Lusignan, count de la Marche — the same powerful baron from whom John of England had carried off his betrothed bride, and upon whom Queen Isabella had be- stowed her hand within a few months after the death of her hus- band. The haughty countess, disdaining to exchange her former 166 LOUIS IX. ■ Chap. IX, regal state for the condition of a vassal, labored to form a league which should reinstate her son, Henry III. of England, in the pos- sessions of his ancestors ; and with such success, that Louis found himself suddenly in open hostility with the Kings of England, Ara- gon, Castile, and Navarre, tlie Counts of Toulouse and La Marche, and most of the great lords of Poitou and Gascony. Hugh de Lusignan repaired to Poitiers, and accused Alphonso to his face of usurping the domains of Kichard, earl of Cornwall ; then vow- ing, in terms of insolent defiance, that he would never become "his liegeman, he set fire to the house in which he had passed the night, and rode at full speed out of the city. Henry IIL crossed over to the assistance of his allies, but at the bridge of Taillebourg, on the Charente, he found himself sud- denly confronted by the French army, far superior in numbers to his own ; and he would have been compelled either to surrender or to fight with the certainty of total defeat, had not Richard of Cornwall obtained, by personal mediation with Louis, a truce for twenty-four hours, which enabled the English to extricate them- selves from their perilous position. A battle was fought two days afterward (July 22, 1242) beneath the walls of Saintes, in which the English and their allies Avere worsted, and driven back into the town with severe loss. This engagement decided the fate of the campaign. The insurgent barons laid down their arms and returned to their allegiance, and Heniy of England accepted the offer of a truce for five years, which was signed in March, 1243. By this treaty the French acquired possession of all the north of Aquitaine as far as the Gironde. This war had an important and lasting effect in breaking up the independence of the feudal nobility, and establishing the su- premacy of the crown over its vassals. The work begun by Philip Augustus was thus pursued and completed by his grandson ; the privileges of feudalism began from this period to decline, and the entire system was visibly shaken. § 4. In 1244, Louis, Avhose bodily constitution was by no means strong, suffered severely from an illness brought on by the fatigues and exposure of his late campaign ; and toward the close of the year the malady gained ground so rapidly that the king was re- duced to the borders of the grave. While lying in this desperate condition at the chateau of Pontoise, and expecting each moment to be his last, he demanded of his attendants a crucifix, which he placed upon his breast, and sunk immediately into a state of death- like lethargy. This was the crisis of the disease. To the aston- ishment and joy of all, the danger passed, and from that hour Louis began to recover. It soon transpired that in his extremity he had solemnly vowed that, should his life be spared, he would proceed A.D. 1241-1248. FIRST CRUSADE OF ST. LOUIS. 167 on a crusade to the Holy Land. Nor was this the result of mere momentary impulse ; Louis had long cherished the design. To his exalted piety, bordering on fanatical superstition, no enterprise appeared so honorable or so meritorious as those which had for their object the liberation or preservation of the Holy Sepulchre ; and neither the remonstrances of his mother, the tears of his wife, nor the sober reasonings of his prelates and councilors, availed to shake his determination. The fulfillment of his project was, how- ever, delayed for upward of three years, through the king's tardy convalescence, and the necessity of taking deliberate measures of preparation for so dangerous a warfare. During this interval a fresh opportunity occurred of enlarging the possessions of the royal house of France. Raymond Berenger, count of Provence, was destitute of male heirs ; of his four daugh- ters, the three elder were married respectively to the King of France, the King of England, and Richard, earl of Cornwall ; the youngest, Beatrice, was declared by her father's will his sole heir- ess and successor. She was now married to Charles, count of Anjou and Maine, the youngest brother of the King of France, on the 31st of January, 1246. Louis now devoted his whole attention to the ai'rangements for his expedition to the East. The state of Palestine at this period was indeed such as to excite the utmost anxiety for the prospects of the Christian cause. In 1244 Jerusalem had been taken and sacked with savage cruelty by the Kharismians, a people from the shores of the Caspian, who had been driven from their territory by the victorious arms of the Mongol Tartars. In a subsequent battle at Gaza the Christians were defeated with tremendous car- nage ; thirty thousand are said to have fallen on this disastrous field, and the three military Orders were almost annihilated. Not long afterward the Kharismians were expelled from Syria by the Saracens of Egypt, and the Holy Land was once more subjected to the tyrannical rule of the Egyptian sultan. The power and in- fluence of the Latins sank to the lowest point of depression ; noth- ing now remained of all their former possessions in the East but the fortresses of Acre and Tyre, together with Tripoli and Antioch. Louis received the oriflamme at St. Denis in June, 1248, and having confided the government of France to his mother, whom he was not destined to meet again in this world, he embarked on the 25th of August at Aigues Mortes, a city which he had found- ed at great expense on the MediteiTanean, accompanied by Queen Marguerite, and by his brothers Charles of Anjou and Robert of Artois, with their countesses. The mariners sung in chorus the " Veni Creator," and the fleet of the Crusaders, consisting of thir- ty-eight large vessels besides transports, stood out to sea and steer- ed for Cyprus. 168 LOUIS IX. Chap. IX. The island of Cyprus was then ruled by Henri de Lusignan, grandson of the prince of that fainily to whom the kingdom had been adjudged at the time of the third Crusade. Here Louis land- ed on the 17th of September, and made a prolonged stay of eight months in the island, which he had assigned as a general rendez- vous to the princes and nobles engaged in the expedition. It was now resolved, instead of proceeding direct to Palestine, to make an attack upon the Sultan of Egypt, as a decisive success obtained over this potentate would at once insure the possession of the Holy Land. The plan was well conceived, and, had it been im- mediately executed, might have produced a fortunate result ; but the ill-advised delay at Cyprus gave ample time to the Saracens for preparation and resistance. When the armament at length sailed from Limisso in May, 1249, it numbered sixteen hundred vessels of all sizes, conveying at least two thousand eight hundred knights, with a proportionate force of infantry, variously estimated at from forty to one hundred thou- sand. Arriving before the Egyptian port of Damietta on the 4th of June, the Crusaders effected their disembarkation in spite of a stout opposition from the Saracens, among whom the Mameluke horsemen distinguished themselves by their brilliant bravery. Such was the terror inspired by the assailants, that the infidels abandoned Damietta the next day, and on the 7th of June the Kings of France and Cyprus, at the head of the crusading army, made their triumphal entry into the city. So far success had crowned their arms ; but, instead of pressing forward without pause to overwhelm the disheartened enemy, the Christian leaders committed the fatal error of lingering at Damietta until after the annual inundation of the Nile. Five months were thus consumed in inactivity, and during this interval the soldiers of the Cross gave themselves up to every kind of vicious excess, so that dis- order and demoralization reigned throughout the army. On the 20th of November the army at last advanced, and directed its march upon Mansourah. A broad and deep canal, communicat- ing Avith the Nile, soon arrested the progress of the invaders ; on the farther side was the town of Mansourah and the camp of the Mussulmans. An attempt was made to construct a causeway across the current, in the course of which the enemy carried havoc into the Christian ranks by incessant discharges of arrows and stones, and, above all, by the terrible and mysterious "Greek fire." A ford was at last discovered ; and at daylight on the 8th of Feb- ruary, 1250, the Count of Artois and the Earl of Salisbury, with the Knights Templars and tlie vanguard of the army, impetuously dashed into the stream, overthrew the Saracens who lined the op- posite bank, and chased them with great slaugliter into INIansou- A.D. 1248-1250. BATTLE OF MANSOURAH. ]G9 rah. They rallied, however, and, barrhig the gates of the town, cut off the retreat of the Christian troops ; the latter fought hero- ically, but were overpowered and destroyed almost to a man in the narrow streets of Mansourah. The Count of Artois and the Earl of Salisbury, with five hundred knights and two hundred Tem- plars, lost their lives in this disaster. In a second battle fought on the following day the advantage remained with the Crusaders ; but they were now attacked by a pestilential miasma arising from the vast heaps of putrefying corpses which covered the plain and choked the canal ; and after a fruitless attempt to negotiate with the enemy, Louis commenced a forced and calamitous retreat. The infidels hung on the rear of the devoted army, hai-assing them at every step, and mowing them down by hundreds, almost unre- sistingly, whenever they chose to attack. On the 6th of April the king, sinking under disease and exhaustion, surrendered uncondi- tionally to the Saracens, and was carried back in chains to Man- sourah. The greater part of his unfortunate troops were massa- cred in cold blood ; some were spared on condition of embracing Mohammedanism ; others, of the richer class, purchased life and liberty at the price of enormous ransoms. Louis displayed in his adversity an unshaken firmness, dignity, and magnanimity, which extorted the admiration even of his sav- age captors. The Saracen sultan soon showed himself disposed to treat for the king's liberation, and demanded as his ransom the restitution of Damietta, and the payment of a million bezants of gold.* These terms were accepted without hesitation by Louis; and his noble chai'acter made such an impression upon the sultan, that he voluntarily remitted two hundred thousand bezants of the stipulated sum. A truce for ten years Avas now concluded be- tween the Christian powers, represented by the King of France, and the Mussulman princes of Egypt and Syria. The regent Blanche, as soon as she heard of her son's release, pressed him with urgent entreaties to return to France ; but a keen sense of his recent humiliation, and the obligation of his yet unaccomplished vow, determined the good king to make a pro- longed sojourn in the Holy Land, where he hoped that his presence might beneficially serve the cause of Christendom. He remained, therefore, four years in Palestine, and occupied himself in repair- ing the fortifications of the maritime cities — Acre, Ceesarea, Jaffli, and Sidon — and in improving the relations of the Christians with the neighboring native princes. From all warlike operations he was restrained by his truce with the Egyptian sultan ; and he de- nied himself, for various reasons of policy, the consolation of visit- ing Jerusalem and worshiping at the sepulchre of Christ. * About £aSO,00(>. 170 LOUIS IX. Chap. IX. During the prolonged absence of Louis from his kingdom the queen-mother continued to watch over every department of the government with imceasing vigilance and wisdom. In 1251 great apprehension and agitation were excited in France by the strange and unexplained rising of the "Pastoui'eaux." Vast multitudes of ignorant, deluded peasants, under the guidance of a mysterious adventurer styled "le Maitre de Hongrie," overran the provinces, venting clamorous outcries against the Church, the bishops, and the monastic orders, and spreading universal terror by their violent excesses. Blanche, imagining that this movement might be turn- ed to advantage for the succor of the king and his army, then in captivity, regarded it at first with favor ; but soon discerning its alai'ming character, she interposed with a strong arm to suppress it. Despei'ate tumults marked the progress of this furious rabble, occasioning a deplorable sacrifice of life. At Orleans the whole populace rose upon the defenseless priests, twenty-five of whom were massacred. The regent now issued orders to her ofiicers to put down the insurrection by force ; and the ringleader, being overtaken near Bourges, was attacked and slain on the spot, with several of his followers. Other executions succeeded, and these wholesome severities produced a decisive effect ; the main body of the insurgents rapidly dispersed, and the danger was at an end. Thjs was one of the last events of importance in the adminis- tration of the regent Blanche. That admirable princess died to- ward the close of the year 1253 ; and no sooner did the melan- choly tidings reach the king in Palestine than he determined to return without delay to France. He made his public entry into Pai'is on the 7tli of September, 1254, having been absent upward of six years. It was observed that his countenance bore the traces of profound and settled grief — arising, says the chronicler,* from the consciousness that his ill success had brought disgrace and confusion upon Christendom. § 5. Resuming the labors of his ordinary government, Louis ex- emplified more and more his characteristic virtues of moderation, forbearance, and scrupulous love of justice. We are told that he was troubled in conscience on account of the acquisitions made by his grandfather from the crown of England, of which he doubt- ed the legality. He had already made more than one offer of restitution to Henry III. ; and in 1259 a treaty was signed, con- trary to the advice of the French barons, by which the districts of Limousin, Perigord, Quercy. and Saintonge were ceded to the English monai'ch, who on his part abandoned his claims upon Normandy, Anjou, Maine, Touraine, and Poitou. It is a remark- able testimony to the high qualities thus manifested by Louis, that * Matthew Paris. A.D. 1250-1269. MODERATION OF LOUIS. 171 the King of England and his revolted barons, after years of san- guinaiy strife, agreed to submit their differences to the arbitration of the King of France. Another instance of the conscientious and disinterested policy of Louis was his refusal of the cx'own of Sicily, which was tender- ed to him in 1262 by Pope Urban IV. It was true that Manfred, the actual occupant of the throne, was a usurper ; but Louis would not, on that account, do aught in prejudice of the rights of the youthful Conradine, the legitimate heir after the death of his fa- ther Conrad. He returned a decided negative to the papal ap- peal, both on his own behalf and on that of his son Robert. The court of Rome now addressed the same overtures to Charles of Anjou, and met with a prompt and joyful response from that am- bitious pi'ince. Louis was probably not sorry that his uncongen- ial brother should be removed from France, and, though he would not actively encoui'age, at all events did nothing to oppose his views. Charles was accordingly invested with the kingdom of the Two Sicilies as a fief of the Holy See, and embarked at Mar- seilles in May, 1265, to measure himself against Manfred and fight his way to the throne. The chivalry of France enlisted eagerly in the crusade which was preached against the usurper by order of Clement IV. ; 5000 knights crowded to the standard of Charles; and it was French valor that triumphed on the bloody field of GranAslla near Benevento — fought February 27, 1266 — in which Manfred perished, and the sceptre of Naples was transferred from the house of HohenstanfFen to that of Anjou. Two years of sys- tematic tyranny followed ; and several of the Italian cities, dis- gusted with the rule of Charles, ui'ged the young Prince Conrad- ine to undertake a campaign for the recovery of the throne of his ancestoue. The gallant youth was defeated and made prisoner at the battle of Tagliacozzo, in August, 1268; languished in con- finement for' upward of a' year, and, having at length undergone the solemn mockery of a trial, was beheaded, to the eternal infamy of Charles, in the public square at Naples, on the 26th of October, 1269. This inhuman deed laid the foundation of the lengthened and sanguinary contest for the possession of Southern Italy and Sicily between the line of Anjou and the princes of the house of Aragon, who succeeded to the rights, and became the avengers of the murdered Conradine. § 6. While Louis thus showed himself proof against all tempta- tions of personal and worldly ambition, he was meditating with calm resolution a second expedition to the East under the banner of the Cross. Ever since his first crusade he had continued to wear the sacred synibol on his shoulder, in token that he deemed his vow still unfulfilled. The tidings which reached liim from year 172 LOUIS IX. Chap. IX, to year of fresh discomfitures and calamities in Palestine served only to raise his ardor to a higher pitch ; and although discour- aged even by the Pope himself, the king held firm to his purpose, and pressed forward the necessary preparations. The crusading mania had by this time greatly subsided throughout Europe ; but a partial reaction was occasioned by the startling successes of the Mameluke Emir Bibars, who rapidly reduced the principal Latin fortresses, and on the 29th of May, 1268, planted his standards on the walls of Antioch. The fall of this capital was fatal to the Christian power; 17,000 of the inhabitants were massacred, and upward of 100,000 sold into slavery. Acre and Tripoli were tlie only places that held out against the conquerors. The devout enthusiasm of Louis attracted round him a numer- ous body of princes and nobles from all quarters, notwithstanding what was felt to be the desperate nature of the enterprise. Thi-ee of his sons assumed the cross, the youngest of whom, Jean Tristan, duke of Nevers, had been born at Damietta amid the disasters of the preceding crusade ; he was also joined by his bi'others Charles of Anjou and Alphonse of Toulouse, his nephew Kobert, count of Artois, and Thibald of Champagne and Navarre. Sailing from Aigues-Mortes on the 1st of July, 1270, Louis touched first at Cagliari in Sardinia, and here formed the singular resolution of proceeding to the coast of Tunis, his motive being, as is affirmed, that the king of that country had intimated a disposition io em- brace Christianity. This scheme was warmly seconded by Charles of Anjou, not on religious grounds, but from secret covetous de- signs upon the territory of Tunis, which, lying opposite to Sicily, he hoped to annex as a valuable appendage to his own crown. The fleet arrived in sight of Tunis on the 17th of July ; the dis- embarkation was effected the next day, and on the 24th the an- cient Moorish fort of Carthage was taken by assault, and the gar- rison put to the sword. The King of Tunis naturally met these hostilities by immediate preparations to march against the invad- ers ; and meanwhile Louis, who had not yet been joined by Charles of Anjou and his Sicilian forces, lay inactive for a whole month at Carthage, exposing his army to the scorching sun and malignant climate of Africa. The pestilence soon broke out in the camp, and within the space of a few days committed fearful ravages. Among the earliest Avho sank under it was the king's son, Jean Tristan ; he was followed by the Pope's legate and many of the principal barons and knights. At length King Louis was himself attacked by the fatal epidemic, and, being already in an enfeebled state of health, seems to have perceived at once that his end was approaching. He lingered for twenty-two days, engaged in devo- tion, giving wise and admirable counsel to his son, consoling his A.D. 12G9, 1270. HIS SECOND CEUSADE AI^D DEATH. 173 distressed attendants, and exhibiting a perfect model of Christian resignation and equanimity. In his last moments he caused him- .self to be laid upon a bed of ashes, and in this situation peaceful- ly expired on the 25th of August, 1270, with the words of the Psalmist on his lips: "I will enter into thy house, O Lord; I will worship in thy holy tabernacle." He had attained the age of fifty-six years, of which his reign had lasted forty-four. Louis IX. stands forth in history an ever-memorable instance of the inherent power of high moral and religious principle, when faithfully and consistently carried out through a whole life. This prince Avas not endowed with shining talents ; his acquirements in knowledge were not remarkable ; he was not a great military com- mander; he frequently forbore to make use of advantages which fairly belonged to him, through an over-scrupulous and excessive moderation. Yet such was his weight of character, that no sover- eign ever exercised a more wide-spread influence over his age, and none ever promoted more effectually the advancement, happiness, and true greatness of his kingdom. Voltaire, no partial panegyrist in such a case, has said of him that " it is not given to man to car- ry virtue to a higher point." Louis was canonized on the 11th of August, 1297, by Pope Bonifece VIIL § 7. Charles of Anjovx landed at Carthage almost at the very mo- ment of his brother's decease, and is said to have been profoundly affected by his loss. He conducted with ability the subsequent op- erations of the crusade, and, having defeated the King of Tunis in two bloody engagements, forced him to make peace upon terms hon- orable and advantageous to France and the Christian cause. The French, who had suffered tremendous losses, now became anxious to regain their country; but Prince Edward of England, arriving with -re-enforcements toward the end of October, resolved to fulfill liis vow by proceeding to attack the Mamelukes in Palestine, with however small an armament. Accordingly, having wintered in Sicily, he sailed in the spring for Syria, with a force of about 1200 lances ; here he signalized himself by the capture of Nazareth, and other daring exploits, but was unable to effect any thing of perma- nent or decisive importance. Having concluded a truce for ten years with the Sultan Bibars, Edward returned to England in Au- gust, 1272. Such were the expiring efforts of that wild yet noble enthusiasm which for the space of two centuries impelled Europe to expend so lavishly her blood and treasure for the conquest of the Holy Land. The sacred flame lingered in the socket for several years before its final extinction, but no farther expeditions to the I^ast were un- dertaken by the Christian world at large. The cries of their dis- tressed brethren were heard without response, and almost Avithout 174 PHILIP III. ^ Chap. IX. inteKSt, by the Western nations ; and the fall of Acre, in 1291, at length destroyed the last solitary remnant of the Latin dominion in Palestine. The era of the Crusades Avas past. § 8. Philip III. (le Hardi), 1270-1285.— The throne of France was now inherited by Philip III., afterward surnamed le Hardi, or the Bold, the eldest of the four sons of St. Louis. He was twenty- five years old at the time of his accession; unhappily, his educa- tion had been grievously neglected, and, as a natural consequence, his character was feeble, superstitious, and destitute of lofty qual- ities. Philip's reign opened under melancholy circumstances ; Ins fleet was shattered by a violent tempest on the passage from Tunis to Trapani in Sicily ; this disaster was soon followed by the death of Thibald, king of Navarre, and of his queen Isabella, sister to Philip ; and at an interval of a few weeks, his own wife, Isabella of Ar agon, having injured hei'self by a fall when far advanced in pregnancy, died at Cosenza after delivery of a still-born child. To add to the list of the victims of the late fatal crusade, Alphonso, count of Poitou and Toulouse, and his wife Jeanne, the heiress of Eaymond VII. , both expired at Savona on their homeward journey. Bearing Avitli him in mournful procession the remains of no less than five members of the royal family, Philip entered Paris on the 21st of May, 1721, and performed Avith great solemnity the obsequies of his father at St. Denis. The French monarchy now made several large territorial ac- quisitions. Alphonso and Jeanne of Toulouse having died with- out heirs, the whole of their vast possessions were, according to the terms of the treaty Avith Eaymond VII., united to the royal do- main. The small county of Venaissin, forming part of this terri- tory, was ceded by Philip to the Pope, in virtue of an agreement to that eifect Avith Eaymond. It consisted of the city of Avignon and the district surrounding it ; and this part of Provence re- mained subject to the See of Eome down to the period of the great Eevolution of 1789. The king's brothers, Jean Tristan and Pierre, died likeAvise Avithout heirs, and their appanages, the counties of Valois and Alen- (;on, reverted to the crown. Lastly, upon the death of Henry, king of Navarre, in 1274, his AvidoAV, a French princess, iled for protection, Avith her infant daughter, to the court of Philip. The king gave a cordial reception to the fugitives, and caused the young heiress to be carefully educated in France. On reaching a mar- riageable age she bestoAved her hand on the king's second son, Philip, who eventually succeeded his father, and thus became the first king of France and Navarre. By the same alliance the croAvn also gained possession of the important territory of Champagne. § 9. Tlie contemporary chronicles of tliis period of P>ench liisto- A.D. 1270-1278. PIEKRE DE LA BROSSE. I75 ry are few and obscure, and give us but scanty information either as to the personal character of the monarch or the transactions of his reign. The person who possessed the greatest influence at court and in the kingdom was Pierre de la Brosse, the son of a poor gentleman in Touraine ; he is said to have been surgeon to Louis IX., who distinguished him by his highest confidence. Upon the accession of Philip, Pierre de la Brosse acquired at once the chief post of power, and became the sole channel of royal favor. It is not surprising that in this invidious position he should have excited the jealousy and enmity of Philip's second wife, Maiy, sis- ter of the Duke of Brabant, to whom he was married in 1274. The queen, young, talented, and fascinating, exercised a great as- cendency over her husband, and gi'adually insinuated suspicions against the haughty minister ; the favorite, on his part, made no scruple to fill the royal ear Avith doubts, complaints, and preju- dices against the character and designs of the queen. It happened that the king's eldest son by his first marriage died suddenly in 1276, and, as was commonly imagined, by poison; Pierre de la Brosse clandestinely spread a report that the author of the crime v/as none other than the queen herself, who had an evident inter- est in attempting to secure the succession to the crown to her own offspring. Philip seems to have listened too easily to the accusa- tion ; but, in order to discover the truth, he was prevailed on to consult a Beguine, or reputed prophetess, of Nivelles, and by her answers the queen was completely cleared of all participation in the deed imputed to her. The Duke of Brabant and other connec- tions of the queen now vowed vengeance, and a packet of letters, either genuine or forged, was conveyed secretly to Philip, and es- tablished in his mind the guilt of the favorite. Pierre de la Brosse Avas tried at Paris by a commission composed of his declared ene- mies, and, being as a matter of coui'se condemned, was hanged on a gibbet at Montfaucon on the 30th of June, 1278. The contents of the dispatches Avhich sealed his fate were never allowed to transpire, and no information was given to the public as to the nature of the crime for which he suffei'ed. The whole affair is involved in obscurity, and there is reason to believe that the par- venu minister was the victim of certain envious and disappointed nobles Avhom he had excluded from political power. § 10. The chief interest of this reign is connected with the do- minion of the French, under Charles of Anjou, in Naples and Sicily. Chai'les had made himself virtually master of all Italy ; but his tyrannical and cruel yoke soon rendered him odious throughout his new kingdom, and an extensive conspiracy was organized against him by John of Procida, a Neapolitan nobleman who had enjoyed high favor under the Holienstauffen dynasty, and whom Charles 17G PHILIP III. Chap. IX. had on tliat account proscribed and driven inio exile. With great energy and perseverance, John of Procida succeeded in engaging in the plot Pedro II., king of Aragon, Pope Nicholas III., and the Greek Emperor Palteologus ; and the first of these monarchs was preparing to descend with a powerful armament upon the coast of Sicily, when an accident anticipated the plans of the confederates, and suddenly lit up the flame of revolution throughout that island. As the citizens of Palermo flocked to vespers on one of the fes- tivals of Easter week, March 30, 1282, a French soldier grossly in- sulted a young and beautiful Sicilian maiden in the presence of her betrothed husband ; the latter instantly drew his dagger and stab- bed the offender to the heart. This was the signal for a violent explosion of popular fury; cries of "Death to the French !" re- sounded on all sides ; upward of two hundred were cut down on the spot, and the massacre was continued in the streets of Paler- mo through the whole night. From the capital the insurrection spread to Messina, from Messina to the other towns of the island ; every where the French were ruthlessly butchered, without dis- tinction of age, sex, or condition ; the total number of the slain is said to have exceeded eight thousand. Such was the terrible ca- tastrophe of the " Sicilian Vespers." Charles, in deep indignation, now hastened to Sicily, and laid siege to Messina, which made a gallant and obstinate resistance for two months. Meanwhile Pedro of Aragon, to whom, as husband of Constance, the only daughter of Manfred, had descended the an- cient claims of the house of Hohenstauffen, landed at Trapani, and was crowned King of Sicily at Montreale. His fleet, under the command of the celebi'ated admiral Roger de Loria, encountered that of Charles in the Straits of Messina and gained a brilliant victory, almost all the Neapolitan ships being captured and burnt. Charles beheld this disaster from the heights of the opposite coast of Calabria. Pope Martin IV. forthwith excommunicated Pedro for levying war upon a fief of the Holy See, and absolved his subjects from their oath of allegiance. In August, 1283, a bull was issued by which the dominions of the King of Aragon were conferred upon Charles, count of Valois, second son of Philip HI., on condition that the young prince should acknowledge himself a vassal of the See of Rome, and that the crown of Aragon should never be united to that of France. A ci'usade was preached against the Aragon- ese and the rebellious Sicilians, with the accustomed indulgences and privileges to all who should engage in it ; and the French, thirsting to avenge the slaughter of their countrymen, thronged early around the standards of Philip and Charles. Fortune, however, declared itself speedily and decisively in fa- A.D. 1278-1285. PHILIP III. INVADES AEAGON. I77 vor of Pedro and his new subjects, and against the two branches of the royal house of France. Roger de Loria, the most skillful admiral of his time, defeated the fleets of Chai'les in two successi\e engagements off Malta and the Bay of Naples ; on the latter occa- sion the Prince of Salerno, Charles's eldest son, fell into the hands of the enemy, and was sent prisoner to Spain. On hearing of this fresh humiliation, Charles of Anjou gave Avay to the wildest trans- ports of rage and despair. Unable to bear up under such ac- cumulated misfortunes, he fell ill and died at Foggia (some say by his own hand) on the 7tli of January, 1285. The death of Pope Martin IV. occurred within three months afterward. § 11. Philip III., accompanied by his sons Philip and Charles, joined his army in Languedoc soon after Easter in the same year, and marched into lioussillon at the head of 20,000 knights and 80,000 foot soldiers. Advancing toward the passes of the eastern Pyrenees, the French possessed themselves of the small town and fortress of Elne, the inhabitants of which were put to the sword. The army now descended into Aragon, and sat down before Gerona. This place made a vigorous resistance, and capitulated on the 7th of September, after a siege of nearly three months. But meanwhile the troops of Philip had suffered severely from the heat of the cli- mate and from contagious disease, and his fleet had twice been roughly handled in the Bay of Rosas l6y the invincible Roger de Lo- ria. The king became disheartened, abandoned his projects of con- quest, and thought only of making good his retreat into his own dominions. But the rains of autumn now set in, and the retro- grade movementlthrough the mountains, in the distressed condition of the army, was one of no small difficulty and danger. The march commenced, and the French, though constantly harassed in their rear by the Aragonese, and exposed at every step to serious losses, attained at length the borders of their own territory, beyond which they were pursued no farther. The king, however, was sinking imder an attack of malignant fever, the effects of which were doubt- less aggravated by his state of bodily exhaustion and mental cha- grin. On reaching Perpignan it was evident that he had but a few days to live; he expired in that city on. the 5lh of October, 1285, at the age of forty. His antagonist, Pedro of Aragon, sur- vived him scarcely more than a month ; he fell a victim to the same fatal malady on the 11th of November following. § 12. Piiiup IV. (le Bel), 1 285-1314.— The reign of Philip IV., surnamed le Bel, or the Fair, who now succeeded to the throne, is in many respects one of the most important in the annals of France. Tlie roji\\ authority was extended in his hands more rapidly than under any of liis predecessors, and reached a point closely approach- ing simple despotism. Philip systematically repressed and hum- H2 178 PHILIP IV. Chap. IX. bled the power of the great vassals, and almost totally destroyed their independence. At the same time he encouraged and ele- vated the bourgeoisie, or middle classes, and by skillfully opposing them to the nobility, made them the subservient instruments of establishing his own absolute rule. Civil institutions now began to pi-edominate over the military forms of feudalism. The Parlia- ment of Paris became the recognized organ of the supreme central administration — judicial, fiscal, and executive; the minor feudal courts were superseded, and all causes throughout the kingdom be- came directly subject to the royal jurisdiction. It is in this reign, again, that we find the States-General, or great council of the na- tion, convoked under its modern constitutional form, in three or- ders — the Tiers Etat, or representatives of the people, sitting and voting on an equal footing with the Nobles and Clergy. Lastly, this epoch is memorable for a fierce and deadly struggle between the temporal and the ecclesiastical powers — the Regale and the Pontificate. It was Philip the Fair who struck the first success- ful blow against the towering fabric of the papal dominion ; it was he who overthrew the mighty system founded by Hildebrand. From this date the popes may be said to have ceased to be foi*- midable to the social state of Europe. Philip found himself burdened and embarrassed, on his acces- sion, by the war with Aragon, which had proved fatal to his fa- ther. It was brought to a conclusion in 1291, when a treaty was signed at Tarascon, by which Charles of Valois absolutely re- nounced all pretensions to the Aragonese crown, and received by way of compensation the hand of the Princess Marguerite of An- jou, with the counties of Anjou and Maine for her dowiy. The King of Aragon, on his part, engaged that his brother James should restore Sicily to the house of Anjou. Although peace was thus established, Charles IT. never succeeded in reconciling the Sicilians to the rule of his family. He and his posterity reigned at Naples, while Sicily became a separate independent state under a younger branch of the rival house of Aragon. § 13. Philip owed the removal of his difficulties with the house of Aragon chiefly to the good offices of his kinsman Edward I. of England ; notwithstanding which, while the latter prince was oc- cupied with his ambitious enterprises against Scotland, the French king took advantage of the favorable moment to embroil him in a quarrel, with a view to dispossess him of his duchy of Guienne or Aquitaine. A pretext occurred in 1292, in an accidental collision between some English and Norman mariners in the port of Bay- onne. One of the Normans lost his life in the scuffle, and his comrades, in revenge, seized the first vessel that they chanced to meet, and bnng the cnptain or pilot at tlic masthoad, with a dog A. D. 1285-1297. AVAR WITH ENGLAND. 179 tied to liis feet. Hostile passion was now violently excited on both sides, and a savage war ensued between the stout seamen of the Cinque Ports and the merchant navy of France — unsanction- ed, hmvever, at first by the authorities of either government. In April, 1293, the Normans were defeated in a desperate pitched battle near St. Malo, on the coast of Brittany, their entire fleet be- ing captured or destroyed by the English ; and the victors after- ward surprised La Rochelle, where they committed great havoc, murdering many of the inhabitants. The officers of the King of France now summoned the delinquents to answer for these out- rages before the royal courts ; the English retorted by strictly prohibiting all subjects of Edward from pleading at any other tri- bunal than that of their own sovereign, on pain of being proceeded against as traitors. At this point Philip interposed in person, and cited Edward himself, as Duke of Aquitaine, to appear before the Parliament of Pains within twenty days after Christmas, 1293, to answer charges then to be preferred against him by his suze- rain. Edward, who well knew that Philip's court was one of the most servile instruments of his despotic power, declined to obey, but sent as his representative his brother Edmund, earl of Lan- caster, who, inexperienced and unsuspicious, allowed himself to be completely outwitted by the crafty Philip. Having demanded, as a matter of mere form, that Guienne should be given up to his lieutenants until the details of a definitive arrangement should be settled, Philip was no sooner put in possession of the principal towns than he threw off the mask, declared Edward contumacious by reason of his non-appearance, and pronounced the forfeiture of all his fi^ held of the crown of France. Edward, exasperated by this gross deception, instantly renounced his fealty to his liege lord, and prepared for war. He was support- ed in this contest by the Duke of Brittany, by Guy de Dampierre, count of Flanders, and by Adolphus of Nassau, king of the Ro- mans — a threatening coalition against Philip. Hostilities com- menced in Gascony in December, 1294, and were continued for two years with changeful fortune, the advantage on the whole be- ing on the side of the French ; Edwai'd was indeed unable to press the operations with vigor, his best troops being engaged in Scot- land and in repressing the frequent insurrections of the "Welsh. Pope Boniface "VIII. attempted, but ineffectually, to mediate a truce ; and his officious intei'ference in this quai'rel seems to have ficiven rise to the bitter and persevering enmity borne to him by I'hilip for the rest of his days. "While the war thus languished in the south, the King of France assembled a large force at Compiegne for an expedition against Gu}' of Flanders, the most powerful and stcadfost of the allies of / 180 PHILIP IV. Chap. IX. England. Two years previously the count had been treacherous- ly entrapped by Philip to Paris, where he was imprisoned in the tower of the Louvre ; he was released only on condition that his daughter Philippa, who was betrothed to the eldest son of Edward, should be surrendered as a captive in his place. Smarting under this insult, the count now threw off his allegiance to France, and made other hostile demonstrations. The French army advanced in two great divisions into Flanders in June, 1297 ; the king, in person, laid siege to Lille, while Kobert of Artois invaded the western and maritime districts. In a general engagement near the tpwn of Furnes the Flemish were routed with a loss of three thousand men, and the submission of the whole of West Flanders was the immediate consequence of the defeat. The king was no less successful; he gained a battle near Comines, forced Lille and Courtrai to open their gates, and pressed on against the count and his ally the King of England, who were posted at Bruges. They retired, on his approach, to Ghent, and demanded a suspension of arms, which was at once granted ; and the mediation of the Pope being now tendered a second time, it was agreed on both sides to accept it — with the distinct understanding, however, that Boniface should arbitrate not in his spiritual, but in his private and indi- vidual capacity. A year elapsed before Boniface announced the conditions of definitive peace. He decided that each monarch should retain that part of Gascony of which he was possessed at the moment of the treaty ; all ships, merchandise, and property of whatsoever kind, seized during the war, Avere to be mutually re- stored ; and the two royal houses were recommended to connect themselves by a double marriage. These terms being fjftented to, the treaty of peace between France and England was signed at Montreuil-sur-Mer, June 19th, 1299. In the following September the English king espoused the Princess Marguerite, Philip's eldest sister ; and Edward, prince of Wales, was at the same time affi- anced to Philip's daughter Isabella, then not moie than six years old. The two kings mutually sacrificed their allies, who were not included in the treaty: Edwai'd abandoned the cause of the Count of Flanders ; Philip covenanted to give no farther support to the revolted Scots. § 14. Thus relieved from solicitude on the side of England, Philip was enabled to give free scope to his ambitious projects against Flanders, which was left almost entirely at his mercy. Early in the year 1300 a French army M-as poured into the coun- try under the command of Charles of Valois, and took possession without resistance of Douai, Bethune, and Damme. The Count Guy, with the remnant of his forces, was at Ghent, where he stood on his defense ; but he soon perceived that his position was hope- A.D. 1297-1302. WAR WITH THE FLEMINGS. 1.31 less ; and yielding to the advice of Charles of Valois, who assured him most positively of the clemency and good-will of Philip, he caused the gates of the city to be thrown open to the French, and surrendei-ed himself to their leader, together with his two sons and his principal barons. Charles dispatched his prisoners with- out delay to Paris, and here they experienced that treatment which they might have expected from the known character of Philip. The count and his sons were closely confined in the Chatelet, and the nobles in other fortresses near the capital. The county of Flanders was declared forfeited, and annexed to the crown of France. A few months later, Philip and his consort, attended by a brilliant court, made a sumptuous progress through the chief cities of the conquered province. The Flemings, among whom the deprived count had never been popular, welcomed their new sov- ereign with lively demonstrations of joy ; the towns vied with each other in the splendor of their festivities, and in the ostentatious display of that wealth, luxury, and magnificence for which Flan- ders was at that time pre-eminent in Europe. An entertainment given at Bruges was especially distinguished by the radiant beauty and rich attire of the female nobility : " I thought I was the only queen here," exclaimed the envious Jeanne of Navarre ; " but I find myself surrounded on all sides by queens." The king return- ed to Paris exulting in an acquisition which enabled him to replen- ish at will his exhausted exchequer, and thus furnish himself with the means of future enterprises. He left as viceroy in Flanders Jacques de Chatillon, brother of the Count de St. Pol, who soon proved that he had fully imbibed the spirit of his master, § 15. The Flemings quickly discovered that by their union with F'rance they had exchanged their ancient liberties for a grinding and insupportable tyranny. The insolence, avarice, and exactions of Chritillon knew no bounds ; at Bruges, especially, he exasper- ated the burghers by a haughty contempt of their rights and im- munities, and by the vexatious restraints and burdens which he imposed upon their commerce. With a free and high-spirited race revolt was the inevitable consequence ; it burst forth at Bru- ges in March, 1302 ; the tocsin sounded at dead of night in all quarters of the town, and the enraged citizens, under the guidance of Peter Koning, syndic of the weavers, massacred the helpless and panic-struck French to the number of upward of three thousand. Chatillon barely escaped with life, and fled precipitately to Paris. Burning with indignation, Philip once more ordered his forces into Flanders, under the command of the impetuous Robert of Artois, to inflict summary chastisement upon the rebels. Tlie Heraings, numbering about twenty thousand, steadily awaited the royal army under the walls of Courti'ai, their line being protected in 182 PHILIP IV. Chap. IX. front by a canal, which, flowing between high embankments, was concealed from the view of the advancing enemy. The French rushed on with foolhardy confidence, not even taking the precau- tion to reconnoitre the ground ; the consequence was, that all the leading files of their horsemen, blindly charging at full gallop, plunged headlong into the canal ; the column of infantry behind staggered, became confused, and at length fell into irretrievable disorder. The Flemings now crossed the canal at two points si- multaneously, and, assaiUng on both flanks the disorganized masses of the enemy, slaughtered them almost at pleasure with their long pikes, and inflicted a tremendous loss, estimated at seven thousand men. All the elite of the French nobility and chivalry perished in this fatal disaster, which occurred on the 11th of July, 1302. Kobert, count of Artois, Pierre de Flotte (Chancellor of France), the Constable Raoul de Nesle, and Jacques de Chatillon, whose misgovernment had occasioned the revolt, were among the slain. So terrible had been the carnage among the knights and superior officers, that their gilt spurs were collected by bushels upon the field of battle. Philip, although at that time in the midst of his struggle with Boniface and the See of Rome, was by no means dismayed or dis- heartened by this great reverse. He exerted himself energetically to repair the calamity. The urgency of his need impelled him to various despotic measures ; he forced the nobles to send their plate to the mint, and paid them in debased coin ; he ordered that for every' hundred livres of income the possessor should furnish a horseman completely armed and equipped, and that every com- moner enjoying twenty-five livres annually should be called into active service in the army. A truce for a year had been made with the Flemings ; on its expiration in August, 1304, the king took the field in person at the head of 70,000 men, and marched to Tournay, while at the same time a fleet of Genoese galleys, which he had taken into pay, attacked the northern coast of Flan- ders. The Flemish were defeated in a naval fight off" Zericksee, and Philip himself obtained a more important and complete vic- tory at Mons-en-Puelle, near Lille, on the 18th of August, where the host of the insurgents, commanded by the two sons of the ex- iled Count Guy de Dampierre, was uttei'ly discomfited, with the loss of six thousand men. Such, however, was the energy and de- termination of the stout-hearted burghers of Flandei's, that within three weeks they were enabled to advance against the king with a fresh army of sixty thousand men ; and Philip, struck with ad- miration of their patriotism and dauntless bravery, resolved to abandon the contest and conclude a peace, A treaty was signed on the .5th of June, 1305, by which Philip engaged to respect and A.D. 1302. DISPUTES WITH BONIFACE VIII. 183 preserve all the ancient franchises of Flanders, and recognized as count the eldest son of the late Guy de Danipierre, receiving at the same time the homage of the young prince for the fief. The Flemings, on their part, agreed to pay the King of France two hundred thousand livres for the expenses of the war, and placed him in possession of the towns of Lille, Douai, Achies, and Be- thune, with the whole district of French Flanders. It seems, how- ever, that they designed this cession to be not permanent, but tem- porary, as a guarantee for the due payment of the indemnity. Such was the result of the Flemish war — a memorable struggle, as proving for the first time that it was possible for a small feudal state, if well organized and animated by a fervent love of liberty, to resist successfully the will of a despotic suzerain, and to hum- ble the pride of a great militaiy kingdom. And it is important to remark that the generous spirit of independence thus displayed by the inhabitants of the Loav Countries has distinguished thcni throughout their history, and has never since been quelled ; every subsequent conflict (and they have been numerous) has terminal', d in the emphatic vindication of the same great principles. § 16. For the sake of perspicuity, we have hitherto omitted all notice of the contest between Philip the Fair and Pope Boniface VIII., which is so prominent a feature of his reign, and forms, in- deed, one of the turning-points in modern history. Boniface was a man of haughty, overbearing, inflexible temper, and brought with him to the throne the most exti'avagant notions of the authority of the Roman See. He accordingly shaped his policy upon the model of Gregory VII. and Innocent III. ; but he encountered in Philip IV. an antagonist equally daring and determined with him- self, and one who understood far better the spirit and tendency of the times; Boniface maintained the contest with heroic courage, but it ended in his ruin. The king, to meet the growing necessities of his government, had instituted a tax called the maltvte ; it was levied originally on the merchants, but afterward extended to all classes, including the clergy, and amounted to a fiftieth part of their whole revenue. This was the opportunity seized by Boniface for commencing the strife. He issued, in August, 1296, his famous bull " Clericis lai- cos," by which the clergy were forbidden to furnish princes with subsidies or any kind of pecuniary contribution without the per- mission of the Holy See, and any layman of whatever rank, de- manding or accepting such payment, was ipso facto excommunica- ted. Philip replied, in terms no less peremptory, by a decree pro- hibiting his sulbjects of all classes to send out of the kingdom any gold or silver coined or uncoined, plate or jewels, arms, horses, or military stores, without the royal sanction. The effect of this was J 84 ' PHILIP IV. CiiAi'. IX. to deprive the Pope of the large annual income which he derived from the French clergy; he tlierefore hastened to put forth a sec- ond bull, styled " Ineffabilis," explaining and softening the first, which Avas not meant, he observed, to preclude the payment of feu- dal imposts, or voluntary donations, or tribute levied with the pa- pal consent. Boniface, however, still insisted that no temporal power can lawfully control the Church or her ministers, and that by attempting this Philip had incurred excommunication. The king rejoined, with conclusive force of reasoning, that the defense of the realm was both a duty and a right devolving on the sover- eign ; that all orders of his subjects were alike interested in the safety and prosperity of tlie state ; that taxes and subsidies, raised and assessed with the advice of Parliament, were the legitimate means for that purpose ; and that therefore the clergy, no less than any other class, were obviously bound to contribute to them. The Pope now made certain farther concessions, and an apparent rec- onciliation followed. But on the occasion of the Jubilee, in the year 1300, Boniface, whose heart swelled with pride on beholding thousands of pilgrims from all parts of the world prostrating them- selves in humble devotion at his feet, renewed his outrageous pre- tensions, and proceeded most unwisely to enforce them. Philip, ever jealous and encroaching, had demanded homage from the Vi- comte of Narbonne and the Bishop of Maguelonne, whose fiefs were held of the Church. The Pope forbade the prelates to obey, and sent as legate to the king, in order to arrange the affair, Ber- nard de Saisset, bishop of Pamiers, a tui'bvdent and insolent man, and particularly obnoxious to Philip, who suspected him of trea- sonable views against the royal authority in Languedoc. The bishop addressed the king in unmeasured and offensive language, l^hilip caused him to be suddenly arrested, examined before the Pai'liament at Senlis, and committed to the custody of his metro- politan, the Archbishop of Narbonne. The Pope's bull, " Auscul- ta, fili," which immediately followed the seizure of the legate, was couched in a style of arrogant menace, and summoned the bishops and superior clergy of France to meet him in council at Rome, and deliberate on measures for reforming the disorders of the state. This bull Philip caused to be publicly burnt at Paris in the pres- ence of the nobles of his court and a vast multitude of people ; and immediately afterward, on the lOtli of April, 1302, he con- voked for the first time the States-General, and consulted this great body as to the course to be pursued. The fiery Robert of Artois rose and declared that the nobility of France Avould never endure the insolent usurpations of the Pope ; the whole Parlia- ment bound themselves to uphold the honoi' of the crown and the liberties of the kingdom against all opponents; and a manifesto A.D. 1303, DISPUTES WITH BONIFACE VIII. 185 containing stern remonstrances was drawn up vnider tlie direction of the tihancellor, and transmitted to Kome. § 17. A few months afterward Boniface issued the celebrated bull "Unam Sanctam," in which the claims of the papacy were asserted with more audacity than ever, and carried to their farthest extreme. On the 13th of April, 1303, a formal sentence of ex- communication was published against Philip, upon which the king held a second council at the Louvre, when he produced an act of indictment against the Pope, charging him with a series of scan- dalous crimes, and demanded that he should be judged by a gen- eral council of the Church. Philip now seems to have formed the design of gaining forcible possession of the person of the Pope, in order, if not to commit farther violence, at least to impose on him such conditions as would make him comparatively harmless for the future. Both sides prepared for extremities. Boniface gave out that, on the 8th of September, a bull would be published at Anagni announcing the deposition of the King of France from the throne, and prohibiting his subjects from paying him any farther allegiance or obedience. William de Nogaret, a distinguished professor of civil law, and Sciarra Colonna, a younger son of the noble Roman family so named, whom the Pope had cruelly persecuted, now re- solved, apparently Avithout Philip's express orders, to execute his known wishes and purpose. They passed secretly and rapidly into Italy, entered Anagni at the head of a few hundred men, and, forcing the gates of the palace, burst rudely into the presence of the aged pontiff, who awaited them Avith intrepid dignity, seated on his throne, with the tiara on his head, and arrayed in the stole of St. Peter. Nogaret overwhelmed him with furious rej^roaches, and it is said that the brutal Colonna struck the old man on the face Avith his gauntlet, and was Avith difficulty withlield from dis- patching him on the spot. This Avas on the 7th of September, the day before the threatened promulgation of the sentence of de- position. T\A"0 days afterward the people of Anagni, recovering from their panic, rose indignantly in arms, drove the conspirators from the city Avith the loss of many of their number, and restoi-ed the Pope to liberty. Boniface hurried to Rome, breathing wrath and vengeance ; but the shock he had sustained from the outrage at Anagni, added to the natural violence of his passions, and the. infirmities of his great age, produced an attack of fever, Avhich re- sulted in delirium and frenzy; in this melancholy condition he ex- pired at the age of eighty-six, on the 11th of October, 1303. § 18. Philip, although thus released from his most inveterate enemy, pursued his memory Avith unrelenting malice, and demand- ed of the new Pope, Benedict XI., his formal condemnation by a council for heresy and other crimes. Benedict replied by de- 186 PHILIP IV. Chap. IX. nouncing sentence of excommunication upon Nogai'et and Co- lonna, together with all others who might in any way have en- couraged or aided them in the attempt upon the person of the late pontitt' — an expression in which he evidently intended to include the King of Fi'ance himself. This act of boldness proved fatal to Benedict ; he died suddenly a month afterward, with every ap- pearance of having been carried off by poison, and public rumor instantly inculpated the officers and agents of the King of France, acting, as was of course presumed, by his orders. Philip now in- trigued to procure the nomination of a Pope who should become his own dependent and devoted creature ; and such was the ad- dress of his partisans in the conclave, that at the end of nine months he found that the election rested absolutely in his hands. The person chosen by the king as the object of his patronage was Bertrand de Goth, archbishop of Bordeaux, a man in every way Avell fitted for the part he was to play. Philip held a secret in- terview with him, and offered to raise him to the papal throne on six conditions, Avhich were at once accepted. The archbishop en- gaged to revoke all ecclesiastical censures passed upon the king, his allies, minister's, and officers ; to grant him a tenth of the whole revenue of the Church throughout France for five years ; to pro- nounce a solemn condemnation on the memory of Pope Boniface ; to restore the Colonna family to all their honors ; and to bestow the cardinal's hat on several nominees of Philip. The sixth and last condition the king reserved to be hereafter specified in proper time and place, exacting an oath from Bertrand to fulfill it on the first demand. Having closed this disgraceful bargain, the arch- bishop was advanced to the chair of St. Peter on the 5th of June, 1305, and took the name of Clement V. The new Pope, instead of proceeding to Pome, was crowned at Lyons, and fixed his resi- dence at Avignon, in which place six of his successors, all French- men like himself, continued to sojourn during seventy years. This period is compared by Italian writers to the Babylonish captivity of the rebellious Israelites. It Avas indeed plain that the popes had abdicated their freedom by forsaking the Eternal City for a strange land. So long as they remained in France they could never be more than the complaisant and servile instruments of the French monarch. Clement fulfilled punctually the compact by which he had gain- ed his elevation ; but the king prepared to extort from the en- slaved pontiff a still farther sacrifice, of equally portentous mag- nitude, and no less deeply affecting the interests and honor of the Holy See : this was the condemnation and suppression of the Or- der of the Knights Templars. § 19. Since the abandonment of the Crusades, the Templars, A. D. 1303-1 30'J. PROSECUTION OF THE tEMPLARS. 137 who for near two centuries had so nobly fought the battles of Christendom, had fallen under very general odium. Their enor- mous wealth, their overweening pride, their sordid covetousness, were proverbial, and it was commonly believed that both in faith and manners the Order had become fearfully degenerate and cor- rupt. Their great power and haughty independence sufficiently account for the deadly enmity borne to the Templars by Philip the Fair, even apart from the motive of grasping avarice to which it is usually attributed. They formed a body of fifteen thousand veteran warriors, exempt from the royal jurisdiction, and govern- ed by their own peculiar laws and officers. They were thus the most formidable class of the remaining feudal aristocracy, and Philip had frequently encountered their bold resistance to his ty- rannical exactions and encroachments. He resolved on their de- struction ; and it is thought probable, though it can never be cer- tainly known, that the sixth article of the treaty with Clement — that reserved by Philip to be claimed hereafter at his pleasure — had reference to this dark design. The Grand Master of the Templars, Jacques du Molay, had been invited into France by Pope Clement, acting doubtless in concert with the king, under pretense of taking measures for a new cru- sade. He came without suspicion, attended by other chief officers of the Order, and bringing with him an immense treasure of gold and silver. Philip received him honoi'ably, and distinguished him by marks of special favor; but sviddenly, on the 13th of October, 1307, not only du Molay, but all the Knights Templars through- out the realm of France, were arrested and thrown into prison ; and Philip proceeded in person to the vast fortress of the Temple at Paris, of which he took forcible possession. Certain secret rev- elations had been made to the king by two renegade members of the Order, who had been condemned for gross misconduct and imprisoned for life ; and the Templars wei'e charged upon their testimony Avitli the most monstrous crimes, including systematic blasphemy and impiety, shameless immorality, and deliberate apos- tasy from the Christian faith. One hundred and forty of the prisoners were immediately examined before the Grand Inquisitor at Paris ; and the severest tortures having been employed to ex- tract confession, admissions were obtained which seemed to a great extent to establish their guilt. The same measures were folloAved throughout the provinces, with the same result ; in some cases the charges were positively denied, in others partially and indistinctly confessed ; but the agony of the torture prostrated even the bravest spirits, and the great majority of the wretched victims avowed all that their relentless enemies desired. Having thus collected a vast mass of evidence which could hardly be disci-edited, Philip, 188 PHILIP IV. Chap. IX. in May, 1308, held a meeting of the States-General at Tours, and laid the Avhole affair before them. The decision of the obsequious assembly Avas soon taken : they pronounced the Templars to be guilty, and worthy of death. With the Pope Philip had more ditficulty. Notwithstanding his state of abject bondage to the king, Clement could not tamely permit the destruction of an Or- der specially protected and honored by the Holy See, and the in- sulting invasion by the civil power of rights which belonged solely to his own jurisdiction. Pie indignantly proclaimed that the af- fair of the Templars could be judged only by himself; he suspend- ed from their functions the inquisitors, prelates, and other digni- taries who had presumed to meddle with it without his sanction, and sent two legates to the king to demand that the persons and property of the accused should be immediately surrendered into his hands. But Philip was not to be thus balked of his prey. At a conference Avhich he held with the Pope at Poitiers, Clement consented to sacrifice the Templars. It was now announced that the Pope had reluctantly become convinced of their criminality ; that the entire case was reserved for the hearing and decision of the General Council summoned for October, 1310 ; and that mean- while a papal commission would be opened at Paris, by which all the prisoners Avould be re-examined, and an impartial report drawn up to be laid before the council. The commission met accordingly in August, 1309. No less than five hundred and forty-six Templars appeared before it from dif- ferent parts of the kingdom, all of whom agreed in declaring that the accusations against them were utterly false and calumnious ; that the faith of the Order was, and had always been, immaculate ; that its original rule had been faithfully and strictly observed ; that all testimonies to the contrary were base and infamous perjuries. Philip began to be alarmed for the result, and proceeded to take summary measures to secure his ends. He caused the Archbish- op of Sens, one of hie creatures, to assemble a provincial council, which hastily condemned fifty-four of the Templars to be burnt at the stake as relapsed heretics, they having retracted their former confessions obtained under the torture. The sentence was carried into effect on the 10th ofTVIay, 1310, in the Faubourg St. Antoine at Paris. The unhappy sufferers died with the utmost constancy, and protested with their last breath their entire innocence. § 20. The Council of Vienne at length opened on the 16th of October, 1311. On the 22d of March, 1312, Clement pronounced a decree annulling and abolishing the Order of theTemplars through- out Europe, in the presence of the King of France, his brother Charles of Valois, and his three sons. The immense landed es- tates of the Order, with all its privileges, Avere bestowed by the A.D. 13U-13iG. PROSECUTION OF THE TEMPLARS. 189 same decree upon the Knights Hospitallers of St. John of Jerusa- lem. Two thirds of their movable property was claimed by the French crown by way of compensation for the expenses of this iniquitous prosecution. The Grand Master, Jacques de Molay, and his three brethren the preceptors of Normandy, Aquitaine, and Poitou, remained still to be disposed of. They were kept two years longer in confine- ment at Paris, and on the 11th of March, 1314, were brought forth before a commission named by the Pope to hear their final sen- tence, which condemned them to perpetual imprisonment. The presiding cardinal had no sooner ceased than the Grand Master and the Preceptor of Normandy suddenly stood up, and in ener- getic language totally recanted the confessions formerly extorted from them, and called Heaven to witness that they were wholly guiltless. The commissioners, struck with astonishment, adjourn- ed till the next day ; but Philip, upon being informed of what had passed, took counsel with some of his most trusty confidants, and caused the two prisoners to be conveyed the same night to a small island of the Seine, close to his palace, where they were burnt to death. They persisted to the last in asserting their innocence, and suffered with a constancy which moved the admiration of all beholders. The incident mentioned by one historian,* that Jacques de Molay, while expiring in the flames, summoned both the Pope and the king to appear and answer before the tribunal of God, the one in forty days, the other within the space of a year, is of doubt- ful credit, and was probably suggested by the event. Both Clem- ent and Philip died in point of fact within the period thus assign^ ed to each — the former on the 20th of April, the latter on the 29th of November, 1314. Despotic power has seldom been exercised with more general suc- cess than by Philip the Fair. He accomplished all his schemes and objects. He humbled the Church in the persons of Boniface and Clement, and the feudal nobility by the extinction of the Tem- plars ; he established the legistes, or civilians, as the devoted instru- ments of his will in all the courts of his kingdom ; he restored the supremacy of the ancient Koman imperial law. Yet his acknowl- edged talents were so obscured and perverted by his great vices of ra- pacity, vindictiveness, and cruelty, that the permanent results of his reign were neither honorable to himself nor beneficial to the nation. § 21. Louis X. (le Hutin), 1314-1316.— Philip IV. left three sons, who were all successively kings of France. The eldest of them, Louis X., surnamed le Hutin, now mounted the throne. His brief reign of two years is marked by a violent reaction against the odious despotism of his father. The nobles, the clergy, the com- * Ferretti of Vicenza. 190 LOUIS X. Chap. IX. monalty, all protested with equal vigor against the encroachments of the crown ; and the young king, finding himself obliged to yield, sacrificed as victims of the movement the chief ministers and civil functionaries of the late reign. The nobles proceeded to claim the restoration of their suppressed privileges ; and the feudal rights of private war, of coining" money, and of the judicial duel, were thus recovered. Many of the great civil offices created by Philip, as well as most of his burdensome imposts, were abolished ; the appeal to the Parliament of Paris as the supreme court, and even that to the royal judges, was withdrawn. At the same time, Louis issued an ordonnance enfranchising the serfs throughout the royal do- mains : a measure adopted apparently not from views of liberal policy, but for the sake of raising money. The serfs, not compre- hending the value of the proffered boon, were compelled to purchase their freedom for various sums, and the practice was imitated on the estates of the nobility. But, whatever may have been the mo- tive of this celebrated edict, it marks the commencement of a great change in the social state, and was soon followed by important con- sequences. Had the opportunity been fully understood and skill- fully turned to account, the result might have been the establish- ment in France of a free constitution like that of England. But, unfortunately, the movement was merely taken advantage of by one class to exalt itself against another, and the nation, thus internally divided, never attained that earnest unity of sentiment and purpose which alone could insure its success in a struggle with despotic roy- alty. Louis X. was twice married. His first wife. Marguerite, sister of the Duke of Burgundy, was convicted in 1314 of the crime of adultery, and imprisoned in the Chateau Gaillard, where she was strangled. Shortly afterward, in August, 1315, Louis espoused the Princess Clemence, a niece of Robert II., king of Naples, and sister of the King of Hungary. Before a year had passed the king ex- pired at Vincennes, of a disorder occasioned by drinking Avine im- moderately when overheated by a game at ball. His death occur- red on the 5th of June, 1316, in the twenty-seventh year of his age. § 22. Louis X. left by his first wife a daughter named Jeanne, and his second queen was far advanced in pregnancy. Philip, the brother of the late king, was appointed regent. A grave question now arose concerning the succession. In the event of a failure of direct heirs male, could the crown of France be inherited by a fe- male ? The Capetians had hitherto transmitted it from father to son, without interruption, through ten generations ; and the law had made no provision for circumstances which had never yet oc- curred. About four months later — on the 15th of November, 131G — the queen was delivered of a son, who received the name A.D. 1316-1322. THE SALIC LAW.— THE PASTOUKEAUX. jgi of John ; but the infont survived only six days, and is not usually reckoned among the sovereigns of France. Upon this, the regent caused himself to be solemnly crowned King of France, at Reims, on the 9th of January, 1317. The Duke of Burgundy attempted to cLiim the kingdom for his niece, the Princess Jeanne; but the new king immediately assembled the States-General, and a formal decree was published by that body, declaring that females are in- capable of inheriting the crown of France. This was decisive, and the opposition at once fell to the ground. In order to give color to the usurpation (for it was nothing better), the lawyers cited an obscure article* from the code of the barbarous Salians, which, as they pretended, had always been the acknowledged law of the Frank monarchy. However slight and doubtful its foun- dation, this adroit justification met with general acceptance; and ever since that time, the Salic Law, as it is called, has been re- garded as an essential constitutional principle in France. The advantages of such an enactment are great and obvious. It se- cured the consolidation of the royal authority in the hands of a line of native princes; it tended to exclude foreign influence from the highest functions and affairs of state ; and, by making it im- possible that the crown of France should ever be acquired by mar- riage, it cut off a dangerous temptation, which, in other coun||[ies, has produced destructive consequences. § 23. Philip V. (le Long), 1316-1322.— The reign of Philip v., surnamed the Long, is barren of important events. He Avas a prince of mild and generous disposition, and many useful measui'es of legislation are due to him, especially one by which he declared the royal domain inalienable. The appanages granted to the princes of the blood thus became resumable by the crown on de- fault of male heirs. But the condition of the great mass of the people was at this time most deplorable. Under the influence of Pope John XXII., a man of narrow and weak mind, the king was induced to lend himself to several cruel and bldody persecutions. The Franciscan mendicants, who, under the title of Spirituals, had vigorously at- tacked the corruptions of the papacy, were denounced as heretics, and pursued with extreme severity. Great numbers of them were burnt at the stake in Languedoc and Provence in 1318 and 1319. The renewal of the project of a crusade in 1320 produced a second insurrection of the Pastoureaux,t who, under the pre- tense of arming for the defense of the Holy Land, roamed tumult- uously through the country, committing the most frightful depre- '^ It provided that Salic land (i. e., the allodial property of the tribe) should not descend to females. On the Salian Code, see Guizot, "Hist, of Civiliza- teon," vol. i., lecture ix. t See p. 170. 192 CHARLES IV. Chap. IX. datioiis and excesses. A multitude of helpless Jews were murder- ed by these wretched fanatics in the southern provinces ; and they became at last so formidable that the Pope declared them excom- municate, and appealed to the civil power to suppress them by force. A vast body of them was overtaken and surrounded by the Seneschal of Carcassonne in the marshy plains near Aigues Mortes ; here they were massacred by hundreds and thousands, and, the fugitives who escaped the sword liaving dispersed in tei-- ror, the insurrection was speedily at an end. The following year was marked by a savage outburst of indig- nation against a still more unhappy class — the Lepers, who were popularly accused of having poisoned all the wells and fountains in Poitou and Guienne. The grounds of this horrible charge are not distinctly known ; the Lepers were reported to be under the influence of sorcery and magic, the belief in which was then uni- versal ; another account represented them as hii-ed agents of the Moorish King of Granada ; a third, as accomplices of the Jews. The Lepers were arrested in all parts of France, and barbarously tortured ; every petty official in the kingdom was authorized to deal with them at his sole discretion ; and great multitudes, thus condemned in defiance of all forms of justice, perished in the flames. "l^e popular fury was now once more directed against the un- fortunate Jews, who never failed to suffer in every fresh outbreak of persecution. They were hurried indiscriminately to the stake, without the semblance of any judicial procedure ; at Chinon, in Touraine, an enormous pit was dug near the castle, a fire lighted at the bottom, and 160 wretched victims of both sexes hurled, pell-mell, into the flames. The richer class were kept in prison until an account had been obtained of their property, and of the amount of their claims acquired by lending money ; these the king ^ transferred to his own credit ; and a sum of 150,000 livres is said r to have been thus added to the royal treasury. Philip expired, after a languishing illness of five months, at Longchamps, near Paris, on the 3d of January, 1322. He had scarcely attained the thirtieth year of his age. § 24. Charles IV. (le Bel), 1322-1328.— Philip the Long left no male issue; "Shd his daughter being excluded from the throne by virtue of the Salic Law, which he himself had called into ac- tion, the third and youngest son of Philip the Fair was unani- mously recognized as king, under the name of Charles IV., sur~ named le Bel, or the Fair. His reign is even more obscurely known to us than that of his predecessor, from the extreme pauci- ty of contemporary chronicles. He took advantage of the strug- gle between Edward II. and his indignant subjects to make ag- gressions on the English territories in Guienne, and upon a slight A.D. 1325-1328. EARLY FRENCH HISTORIANS. 193 pretext an army was sent to invade that province. The Frencli troops forced the Earl of Kent, brother of the King of England, to sign a capitulation at La Reole. Queen Isabella, sister of Chax'les le Bel, was now dispatched by her husband to Paris (May, 1325) to negotiate for peace ; but she no sooner found herself upon the Continent than she began to weave a conspiracy, in conjunction with her paramour Roger Mortimer, for the deposition and ruin of Edward, and in this disgraceful project she was encouraged by her brother, who secretly supplied her both with men and money. She embarked for England in September, 1326, and, being quickly joined by a considerable body of partisans, accomplished within the next two months the revolution Avhich ended in the capture, dethronement, and cruel murder of her unfortunate husband. Upon the succession of Edward III. a definitive treaty Avas made between France and England, by which the duchy of Guienne was restored to Edward upon payment of an indemnity of 50,000 marks sterling. Charles IV. died at Vincennes on the 31st of January, 1328, at the age of thirty-four, and, although he had been three times mar- vied, left no male heir to succeed him. This rapid extinction of a line which, for upward of three centuries, had given sovereigns to France in unbroken descent, was popularly regarded as a Divine retribution upon the crimes of Philip the Fair. Like his brother Louis Hutin, Charles IV. left his queen, Jeanne d'Evreux, enceinte. He gave directions, on his death-bed, that if the expected issue should prove a prince, he should at once be pro- claimed king ; if a princess should be born, then the Council of Peers was to assemble, and adjudge the crown to him whom, in their wisdom, they should pronounce the legitimate heir. NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS EARLY FRENCH HISTORIANS. The historical literature of France, as dis- tingiiislied from the dryness and barrenness of mere chroniclers, may be said to com- mence with Geoff roi de Ville-Hardouiii, Jlar- slial of Champagne, wlio took part in the fourth crusade, and composed an interesting History of the Conquest of Constantinople. This -work, is the first in that lengthened se- ries of historical inemoirs for which France is so specially celebrated. Ville-Hardouin is an unpretending, but faithful and graphic narrator of events which passed under his own eyes. His desciiptions of contemporary manners, both among his own countrymen and in tlie East, are particularly valuable. The Hire de Joinvillf., Seneschal of Cham- pagne CA.D. 1'223-131T), was the confidential I friend of St. Louis, whom he accompanied to Egypt on his iirst crusade in 124S. In his MevLoirca he has left an admirable biography of that monarch, characterized by great orig- inality and vivacity of style, shrewdness of observation, and variety of detail. M. Ville- main classes tliis work as "le premier mouve- ment de genie en langue Franraise." Joinville was followed at the distance of some years by Jean Froissart (a.d. 1333- 1400), a native of Valenciennes, and by pro- fession an ecclesiastic. His Chrojiiqiws treat (according to their title) of the Merveil- leuses Emprises, Nobles Avenlxires, et Fails d'' Amies advenvs en son temps en. France, Angleterrc, Bretaigne, Eourqogne, Fscosse, Espaigne, et is arUres parties. They fo'in one of the most important and authentic ources of the history of tliat day, but, at tho 194 NOTES AND ILLUSTKATIONS. Chap. IX. same time, are by no means free from mis- takes and inaccuracies. The best edition of Froissart h- that of M. J. A. Berchon, Paris, 1840. Philippe de Comi7ies, Seigneur d'Argenton, was born in the year 1445, of a noble family in Flanders. His early life was passed at the court of Burgundy under Charles le Teme- raire, but in 1472 he transferred his services to Louis XI. of France. That prince loaded him with favors, employed him on missions of the highest importance, and made him Seneschal of Poitou. In the following reign De Comines joined the party of the Duke of Orleans in opposition to Anne of Beaujeu, and was in consequence tried and condemn- ed to exile by the Parliament ; the sentence, however, was not executed. He accompa- nied Charles VIII. to Italy, and was one of his most useful advisers. During the reign of Louis XII. he lived in retirement at Ar- genton, and died there in the year 1509. The Memoires of De Comines embrace almost the entire reigns of Louis XI. and Charles VIII., A.D. 1464^1498. In his account of this period he displays a remarkable acquaintance with mankind, and gi'eat sagacity and soundness of judgment on political affairs. His work has always been held in the highest estima- tion. The Life of Charles V. by Christine de Pisan^ the Chroniqiies of Enguen-and de Monstrelet, and the Histori/ of Charles VI. by Juvenal des Ursins., afford useful materials of contemporary history, but in point of liter- ary merit are far inferior to the authors above mentioned. One of the best •modern works of reference for the period commencing with the reigu of Charles V. is the Histoire des Dues de Bour- gogne de la Maison de Fatois, by M. de Ba~ rante, 7 vols, 8vo, Paris, 1842. Chap. X. HOUSES OF VALOIS AND BURGUNDY. 195 Gknealogical Table of the House of Valois of France. Charles, count ofValois, younger son of King Philip III. PniLip VI., king, 132S-1350. John (le Bon), king, 1350-1364. Charles v. (le Sage), Louis, duke of Anjoii, John, duke Philip, duke of Burgundy, king, 1364-13S0. founder of the 2d royal of Berry. ob. 1404 1 house of Naples. (see below). Cdables VI. (le Bien-aimo), king, 13S0-1422 = Isabella of Bavaria. Louis, duke of Orleans, assassinated 1407, founder of the line of Valois-Orleans. Louis, ob. 1415. John, ClIAELES VII. ob. 141G. (le Victorieux), king, 1422-1461. Isabella : 1. Richard II. of England. 2. Duke of Orleans. Catharine = Henry V. of England. Louis XL, king, 1461-14S3. Charles, duke of BeiTy. Four daughters. CuAKLEs VIII. , king, 14S3-149S. Anne^: Sire de Beaujeu. Jeanne = Duke of Orleans, afterward Louis XII. Genealogical Table of the second Ducal House of Burgundy. Jdlm, king of France, inherits the duchy as nearest heir male of the late Duke Philippe de Rouvre, li361. I Philip, fourth son of King John, created Duke of Burgundy, 1304. Jean sans Peur, killed at Montereau, 1419. I Philip (le Bon), ob. 146T. I Charles (le Temeraire), ob. 14TT. I Mary, duchess of Burgundy = Maximilian, archduke of Austria. I Philip, archduke of Austria, = Juana, heiress of Castile and Aragon. and sovereign of the Netherlands, I ob. 1500. Charles V., king of Spain, sovereign of the Netherlands, and emperor, 1519. Airest of Chailes thd Kul, King of ^avaue, by King Johii,m the chateau of Kouen, BOOK IV. FALL OF FEUDALISM. FROM THE ACCESSION OF PHIUP VI. TO THE DEATH OF CHARLES VIII. A.D. 1328-1498. CHAPTER X. FIRST PERIOD OP THE WARS WITH ENGLAND. PHILIP VI., JOHN, AND CHARLES V. A.D. 1328-1380. § 1. Accession (f the House of Valois ; Philip VI. § 2. Expedition of Philip to Flanders; Battle of Cassel. § 3. Homage of Edward HI. to Philip at Amiens; Robert of Artois; he is condemned and banished, and flies to England. § 4. War breaks out with England; Edward invades A.D. 1328-1350. ACCESSION OF THE HOUSE OF VALOIS. 197 France, but without result. § 5. The French defeated in a naA^al Action off Helvoetsluys ; Truce between France and England. § G. Disputed Succession in Brittan3^ § 7. Edward lands in Normand)^ ; Battle of Crc- cy. § 8. Siege of Calais ; Truce with England ; Death of Philip VI. § 9. Accession of King John. § 10. Charles the Bad, King of Navarre ; As- . sassination of the Constable de la Cerda ; Arrest and Imprisonment of Charles of Navarre. § 11. War breaks out in Aquitaine; Battle of Poi- tiers; Captivity of John. § 12. The Dauphin Charles assumes the Re- gency ; Insurrection at Paris under Etienne Marcel and Lecoq ; Meeting of the States-General. § 13. The Jacquerie; Suppression of the Insur- rection in Paris. § 14. Edward invades France; Peace of Bretigny; John released from Captivity. § 15. Foundation of the second Ducal House of Burgundy ; John returns as a Prisoner to England ; his Death. § 16. Accession of Charles V. ; War with Pedro the Cruel of Castile. § 17. Renewal of the War with England. § 18. Successes of the French. § 19. Successes against Chai-les of Navarre. § 20. War in Brittany and Languedoc ; Death of Du Guesclin and Charles V. § 1. The late king's nearest relatives were his nephew, Edward III. of England, son of his sister the Princess Isabella ; his niece, the Princess Jeanne, daughter of King Louis X., and married to the Count of Evreux, by whom she had a son ; and his first cous- in, Philip, count of Valois, grandson of King Philip III. The cir- cumstances which now ensued are differently related by historians ; but it would appear that, immediately on receiving the news of Charles's death, the King of England asserted his claim, not to the crown, but to the regency ; and that the peers of France were thus compelled to meet and decide to whom the government of the realm should be intrusted during the interval before the queen's accouchement. And the grounds upon which they settled the re- gency were those Avhich, it was sufficiently clear, would also determ- ine the succession to the throne, supposing that question to arise. It was argued that since, by the fundamental laws of France, Queen Isabella was excluded from inheriting the crown in her own person, she could not transmit to another a right which she did not herself possess. And further, that, even supposing the principle of representation (as it was called) to be admitted, there was an- other person (the son of the Countess of Evreux) whose claim, through his mother, was manifestly prior .to that of Edward. In consequence, it was unanimously declared by the court that the regency of the kingdom belonged of just right to Philip, count of Valois. Philip VI., 1328-1350.— On the 1st of April, 1328, two months after the death of her husband, the queen Avas delivered of a prin- cess. Upon this, the peers and barons treated the question of the succession as one already decided ; refusing to reopen the discus- 198 PHILIP VI. Chap. X. sion, they acted promptly on their foregone conclusion, and caused Philip to be proclaimed at Paris, and throughout the kingdom, as sovereign of France and Navarre. It was thus that the royal dignity passed from the direct descendants of Hugh Capet, who had transmitted it from father to son through a period of 3-10 years, to the collateral line of the house of Valois. The new king lost no time in proceeding to the ceremony of his coronation, which was solemnized at Reims on the 29th of May, with unusual magnificence. Philip VI., at the time of his accession, was in the thirty-sixth year of his age. He was possessed of considerable tact and talent, and was not devoid of good qualities; was brave, generous, and affable ; but his ruling passion was the love of display and pomp. He formed a gorgeous and luxurious court, at which figured, as habitual residents, the Kings of Bohemia,* Navarre,f and Major- ca, each with his brilliant retinue, preferring the sumptuous hos- pitality of Philip to the dullness of their own remote dominions. They were entertained with a perpetual succession of fetes, tour- naments, hunting parties, banquets, balls, and pageantry of all kinds. All this was well calculated to conciliate and attach the great nobles, who had been much estranged from the court dui'ing the last few reigns. They had now found a king after their own heart ; and, amid the fascination of pleasure, they became careless of their liberties, and unconscious of the rapid advance made by the crown toward arbitrary and absolute power. § 2. Among the brilliant personages who thronged to Philip's coronation was Louis, count of Flanders. He came not merely to pay his homage to the sovereign, but also to invoke his assistance against his own revolted subjects, the citizens of Cassel, Bruges, Ypres, and other Flemish towns. This request — one strictly in conformity with the feudal system — was willingly listened to by Philip, who longed for an opportunity of signalizing his name and strengthening his throne by the renown of military achievement. He gave immediate orders for assembling a large army, Avhich was appointed to meet at Arras. The rebel burghers had intrenched themselves upon the hill of Cassel — an eminence remarkable for the immense panoramic view which it commands, and offering a strong defensive position. In front of their camp they set up con- * The chivah'ous and eccentric John of Luxemburg, father of the Emperor Charles IV. t Philip entered into a treaty with the Count and Countess of Evreux, by which he established them on the throne of Navarre, receiving in return a formal renunciation of their jjretensions to the French crown, and tlie restora- tion of the counties of Champagne and Brie. We shall see that this was un- scrupulously violated hy their son, Charles le Mauvais. A.D. 1328, 1329. ROBERT OF ARTOIS. I99 spicuously a banner bearing the device of a cock, and inscribed with the derisive legend, " Quand ce coq ici chantera Le roi trouve ci entrera." This expression "le roi trouve" was meant as a jest upon the king's questionable title. Undismayed by the imposing array of the French host, the Flemings, descending from their strong-hold, made a daring at- tempt to surprise Philip in his quarters at the hour of supper. Their first onset threw the camp into some disorder; but the king, soon rallying round him his brave knights, fell upon them before they could recover from their own impetuosity, surrounded them, and, after an obstinate struggle, finally routed them with terrible slaughter, August 23d, 1328. It is said that no less than 13,000 of the insurgents Avere left dead on the field of battle, including their leader, Colin Lannekin. The victory was complete and its results decisive. The town of Cassel was immediately stormed, taken, and pillaged ; Bruges and Ypres submitted unconditional- ly ; the whole of Flanders lay at the feet of the victor. Philip re- established the authority of the count throughout his dominions ; and having addressed to him some words of wise and grave coun- sel as to his future administration, he returned in triumph to Paris. § 3. Flushed by the success of this expedition, the King of France now felt himself strong enough to venture upon the bold measure of summoning Edward of England to appear at his court and do feudal homage for his duchy of Guienne. Edward thought it more prudent to comply with this demand, and did homage to Philip at Amiens in 1329. But, at the same time, he made a secret reservation, in concert with his Council of State, not to abandon his rights, but to vindicate them on the first favorable opportunity. He seems to have been content to let his claim lie dormant for the next six years; and during this interval Philip had the misfortune to raise up against himself a formidable enemy in his own family, who became the main cause of his subsequent reverses. llobert of Artois, count de Beaumont-Roger, was a prince of the blood-royal of France, being the great-grandson of that Count of Artois, brother of Saint Louis, who perished at the battle of Man- sourah, and grandson of the count who fell at Courtrai in 1302. He was nearly connected with Philip of Valois, having mai'ried his half-sister Jeanne, the daughter of Charles of Valois by Catha- rine de Courtenay, titular Empress of Constantinople. The two princes were on terms of intimate friendship ; and the Count of Artois was the person of all others in France, says Froissart, to whom Philip was indebted for his elevation to the throne. It was 200 PHILIP VI. CiiAp. X. he who in the Court of Peers had urged with such convincing cogency the necessity of continuing the succession in the male line, and the futility of the claims of Edward, as representing a female only. No doubt, in these exertions for the election of his brother- in-law, the count had' personal as well as public interests in view. By two adverse decisions of the courts of law in previous reigns he had been dispossessed of his paternal inheritance ; and the county of Artois was enjoyed at this time by his father's sister, Matilda, countess of Burgundy. Upon the accession of Philip the Count of Artois became one of the most influential and powerful persons in the kingdom, and he determined to make a third at- tempt to recover the possessions of his ancestors. It was not likely, however, that the Court of Peers would be induced to re- verse its former judgments, except upon the strength of fresh and conclusive evidence ; and the count accordingly gave out that cer- tain missing documents had lately come to light which would es- tablish his claim beyond dispute. The inquiry commenced in June, 1329, and the Countess of Burgundy hastened to St. Ger- mains, where the court sat, to defend her interests. Pending the proceedings she was seized Avith a sudden and mysterious malady, and died in the month of October the same year. Suspicion was aroused, and Robert of Artois was freely accused of having pro- cured the removal of his aunt by poison. Her eldest daughter Jeanne, who succeeded to her mother's rights, fell a victim to the same strange fate within three months afterward, January 21, 1330. Meanwhile the trial proceeded, and Robert's principal witness, a young lady of Bethune, named Jeanne de Divion, at length produced a packet of papers, which had hitherto been se- creted, she said, by the late Bishop of Arras, the friend and min- ister of the last Count of Artois, and placed in her hands by the deceased prelate on his death-bed.* Among these papers was a deed by which the county of Artois was formally bequeathed to Philip, son of Robert II., and father of the present claimant, who would of course have succeeded as the natural heir. The evidence, however, upon this critical point being severely sifted, the wit- nesses began to hesitate, grew confused, prevaricated, contradicted each other, and the Demoiselle de Divion, struck with remorse, at length confessed that she had been guilty of a wholesale forgery ; denouncing at the same time Jeanne of Valois, Robert's wife, as her accomplice in the fraud. . The storm of popular resentment against the conspirators now rose to its height, and was not to be resisted. Jeanne de Divion was at once condemned, and paid the forfeit of her crime by being burnt at the stake, together witli others of the perjured witnesses. Robert of Artois, burning with * The "Demoiselle de Divion" appears to have been the bishop"s mistress. A.D. 1332-1337. KOBERT OF AKTOIS. 201 rage, shame, and terror (for it seems his life was in danger), es- caped secretly from France, and took refuge at the court of the Duke of Brabant. Philip's peers arraigned him in his absence, convicted him, and pronounced against him a sentence of confisca- tion and perpetual banishment from France, May 19, 1332. The countess his wife, and his two children, were arrested and im- prisoned. How far Kobert of Artois was himself the original author of this base imposture, or how far he was the victim of the arts and passions of others, it is now impossible to ascertain. But, what- ever may have been the amount of his guilt, he appears to have abandoned himself henceforth to all the deadly animosity and un- scrupulous vengeance of a ruined man. During his sojourn at Brussels he is said to have practiced upon the life of Philip of Valois by the arts of sorcery and magic. The king, either really alarmed or feigning apprehension, remonstrated with the duke in a tone so menacing that he found himself obliged to expel the un- fortunate count from his dominions. He fled to Namur, and was followed thither by the same relentless persecution. Then it was that he took a resolution which was to prove the turning-point of such mighty destinies ; vowing deep revenge upon his oppressor, he threw himself into the arms of Philip's jealous and watchful rival, Edward of England. Crossing the Channel in disguise, to- ward the close of the year 1333, Kobert proceeded to the court of the English king, where he found himself at once received with distinguished favor. Henceforth he was to plot the ruin of his brother-in-law by spells more potent than those of witchcraft. § 4. Early in the year 1336 the King of France published a proclamation at Paris, in which Robert of Artois was stigmatized as an enemy of the state, and guilty of high treason ; the king for- bade all his vassals, of whatever rank, whether within or beyond the French territory, to harbor or assist him on pain of confisca- tion of their fiefs. Philip was, no doubt, perfectly well aware of the restless intrigues of the exiled prince at Edward's court, and of the extraordinary influence and ascendency that he enjoyed there. This manifesto, tlien, was an insulting defiance to the King of England, and virtually a declaration of war. It was so accept- ed by Edward, who began to make preparations with the utmost diligence by sea and land. His cause was greatly strengthened by the adhesion of the Flemish, under the leadership of James van Artevelde, the celebrated brewer of Ghent. By the advice of this powerful demagogue, Edward proceeded, in the course of the year 1337, to make a formal assumption of the title of King of France ; upon which the Flemings acknowledged him as their feudal lord, took the oath of allegiance, and ranged themselves under his ban- 12 202 PHILIP VI. Chap. X. ners. In the following year (1339) Edward crossed over to Flan- ders and invaded France, advancing from Valenciennes toward Cambrai. The French king, concentrating his army at St. Quen- tin, marched promptly to confront the invaders, and came up with their main body near the town of La Capelle. Both sides expect- ed instant battle ; but Philip is said to have been discouraged at the critical moment by an astrological prediction of Robert, king of Naples, who warned him never to attack the English when commanded by their king in person. Philip was strongly tinc- tured with the superstition of the day, and it appears that he suf- fered this vague presage to decide his counsels. It was resolved to avoid an action. The ai-mies separated ; Edward retired by Avesnes, and recrossed the frontier into Hainault. § 5. The result of this first campaign was unfavorable to Ed- ward. He was, however, by no means disheartened ; he returned to England at the opening of the new year (1340), and, assembling his Parliament, obtained a considei'able supply of troops and mon- ey, of which he stood urgently in need, and again sailed for Flan- ders with a pow^erful fleet on the 2 2d of June. Meanwhile Philip had procured from the obsequious Pope a bull by which the whole of Flanders was placed under an interdict for having entered into alliance with the Church's enemies, Edward of England and the excommunicated emperor, Louis of Bavaria.* A French army was dispatched in the month of April to invade Hainault, and the fleet was ordered round to the coast of Holland to oppose the dis- embarkation of the English. Philip's naval force now numbered upward of 400 ships, well manned and equipped, and took up a position at the embouchure of the Scheldt, near Helvoetsluys. The English fleet came in sight toward evening on the 23d of June, and early the next morning Edwai'd bore down in order of battle, when a general action ensued, which was kept up with the great- est fury till late in the afternoon. The fleet of Philip was un- skillfully arranged, the ships being moored so close together, and so near in-shore, that they had no room to manoeuvre. There seems also to have been a want of concert and good understanding among the commanders. The battle was commenced by Sir "Wal- ter Manny, who gallantly boarded and carried the " Christopher," a ship of the largest size, which had been captured from the En- glish in the Channel some months before. This brilliant success mainly decided the fortune of the day. The prowess of Manny kindled a flame of emulation among his brethren in arms ; each * The emperor had appointed the King of England imperial vicar for the provinces comprised between the lihine and the sea, investing him with su- preme military command throughout those countries, and with all the rights and prerogatives of sovereignty. A.D. 1341, 1342. DISPUTED SUCCESSION IN BRITTANY. 203 good knight exerted himself to the utmost, and performed prodi- gies of valor. The English ships were lashed firmly to those of the enemy, and a close and murderous conflict followed. After a gallant resistance, the French were compelled to give way on all sides, and almost the entire fleet fell into the hands of the triumph- ant English. Thirty thousand men are said to have perished on tlie side of France. The French navy was totally destroyed, and the maritime supremacy of England was from that time forth in- contestably established. Edward exposed himself throughout the day in the thickest of the fight, and was slightly wounded in the thigh. Immediately afterward he repaired to Ghent, where his queen Philippa was residing,* and allowed himself a few weeks' repose. Toward the end of July he advanced with a mighty host, including 60,000 Flemings under Van Artevelde, and formed the siege of Tournay. But again, as in the previous campaign, he gained no advantage upon land. A truce was concluded in the course of the year. It was continued beyond the period originally named, up to midsummer, 1342 ; and it might very probably have been converted into a durable peace, had not other and unexpect- ed events supervened, which reanimated Edward's hopes, and en- couraged him to embark once more upon the turbulent tide of war. § 6. The circumstances which rekindled the smouldering embers of Avar between France and England arose out of a disputed suc- cession to the ducal throne of Brittany. John III., duke of Brit- tany, died without children on the 30th of April, 1341. His niece, Jeanne, countess of Penthievre, had been married some years pre- viously to Charles of Blois, a nephew of the King of France ; and, upon contracting this alliance, Charles had been publicly declared heir to the dukedom. But his claim was now contested by John, count of Montfort, a half-brother of the late duke, who insisted that, according to the immemorial custom of Bi'ittany, a female was incapable of inheriting except in absolute default of male pos- terity. The Count de Montfort, on hearing of the death of his brother, instantly seized ISTantes, the capital of the duchy, and es- tablished himself there Avith his countess, the heroic Marguerite of Flanders, one of the most remarkable characters of the time, whom Froissart describes as possessing "the courage of a man and the heart of a lion."' The French peers naturally gave their award in favor of the nephew of Philip ; Avhereupon Montfort threw him- self into the arms of Edward, who zealously espoused his cause, received his homage as Duke of Brittany, and created him Earl of Richmond. The first trial of strength between the rivals took place at * It was during her stay at Ghent that the queen gave hirth to her fourth son, John, afterward the famous John of Gaunt (or Ghent), duke of Lancaster. 204 PHILIP VI. Chap. X. Nantes, where Montfort was besieged by Cliarles of Blois in Au- gust, 1341, Either by treachery or by capitulation, Nantes was surrendered to the assailants after some resistance ; and Montfort, being taken prisoner, was conducted to Paris, and closely confined in the Louvre. The Countess of Montfort, however, was still at liberty, and she now displayed the most extraordinary energy, res- olution, judgment, and skill, in defending the cause of her husband. She fixed herself at length in the town of Plennebon, Avhence she opened communications with England, and i-eceived from Edward assurances of speedy succor. She maintained the defense of this place with dauntless bravery, until, just as the garrison was begin- ning to despair, a large force arrived from England under the com- mand of Sir Walter de Manny, when the siege was immediately raised (1342). The French and English thus found themselves once more brought into collision, as auxiliaries of the two conflict- ing factions in Brittany. In the autumn of the same year the English monarch appeared in person on the French coast, but ef- fected nothing of importance. His troops beginning to suffer se- verely from the failure of provisions, a suspension of hostilities was arranged with Philip, and by the treaty of Malestroit, signed January 19, 1343, peace was established between the two sover- eigns, including all their allies and partisans on both sides, for three years from the Michaelmas following. § 7. The quarrel, however, had by this time assumed a charac- ter of such bitter and profound animosity, that no engagement of this kind was likely to be faithfully observed. Before the close of the same year, an act of treacherous cruelty perpetrated by Philip betrayed too plainly his real views and feelings, and proved that the recommencement of hostilities could not be long delayed. Fif- teen of the most powerful barons of Brittany, whom the king had invited to a grand tournament, were suddenly arrested and thi'own into the Chatelet, upon a vague charge of intriguing with the En- glish ; and after a brief detention they were brought out and be- headed, without any form of trial, on the 29th of November, 1343.- Early in the next year three barons of Normandy were in like manner seized and put to death, in utter violation of all rules of justice. These deeds of bloody tyranny excited universal horror, and justified the King of England in asserting that the terras of the treaty had been notoriously broken on the part of the French. Edward declared war in a violent manifesto against Philip in 1345, and in the following year he invaded France with an army of about 30,000 infantry. He landed at Cape La Hogue, in Nor- mandy, on the 12th of July, 1346, and advanced almost up to the gates of Paris, pillaging and burning the country. He then re- treated toward Flanders, followed by Philip with an army now aug- A.D. 1340. BATTLE OF CRECY. 205 niented to near 100,000 men. The French king moved in a par- allel line, in oixler, if possible, to force his rival to give battle be- fore he could accomplish the difficult passage of the Somme. On the 24th of August Edward received intelligence of a ford between Abbeville and St. Valery, called la Blanche-tache, and, hastening to the spot before Philip and his forces could arrive, he transport- ed his whole army to the opposite bank in safety. The returning tide rendered Blanche-tache impassable to Philip, who fell back and crossed the Somme at Abbeville ; after which he marched rapidly toward the English, who halted on his approach, and form- ed in order of battle in an excellent position upon the edge of the forest of Crecy, about twelve miles from Abbeville. The memorable battle of Creoy was fought on the 26th of Au- gust, 1346. Philip, finding his troops fatigued and in some disor- der from their hasty march, had designed to defer the attack till the day following; but his orders were either misunderstood or willfully disregarded ; a desultory skirmish commenced ; and Phil- ip, seeing the combat inevitable, impetuously commanded the Gen- oese mercenaries to advance and charge the enemy. The Geno- ese obeyed, but at great disadvantage ; they were exhausted by the march, they were dazzled by the sun in their faces, and their bowstrings had been soaked by a heavy shower of rain. They rushed on, however, with a shout, and discharged their arrows ; but a close and well-aimed volley from the English archers in- stantly assailed them like a snow-storm, and carried terror and de- struction through their ranks. They turned, and would have fled, but were stopped by the dense masses of the French horsemen be- hind ; the latter rode furiously against them, and both were at once involved in inextricable confusion. The Counts of Alen^on and Flanders at length disengaged themselves, and, wheeling round, made a desperate onset on the first division of the English, com- manded by the young Prince of Wales. The prince fought hero- ically, but, finding himself hardly pressed, sent to entreat his father to support him with the reserve. The king, who watched the battle from a wind-mill, first satisfied himself that his son was nei- ther dead nor disabled, and then declined to move to his assistance. "Let the boy win his spurs," said he; "for, if God will, I desire that this day be his, and that all the honor of it shall remain Avith him, and those to whom I have given him in charge." Thus en- couraged and excited, the English stood as immovable as a rock, and a tremendous carnage ensued ; the Counts of Alengon and Flanders were slain ; the French, bereft of their leaders, wavered and gave way, and flic flight became general and irremediable. The veteran John of Bohemia, nearly blind with age, resolved to strike at least one good stroke before he surrendered, and, order- 206 PHILIP VI. Chap. X. ing his attendants to fasten the reins of his chargei' to their own, dashed into the thickest of the enemy's ranks, when they all per- ished together. No quarter Avas granted by the victors in this fa- tal field, and the French loss was accordingly enormous ; twelve hundred knights, eighty bannerets, and thirty thousand common soldiers are said to have fallen, besides a multitude of princes, counts, and superior officers. Philip, who had conducted himself with tlie utmost .gallantry, fled with a scanty escort, and found himself by daybreak safe within the walls of Amiens. § 8. Edward, immediately after this great victory, marched upon Calais, and invested that fortress, while the port was at the same time blockaded by a powerful fleet. Calais was defended with determined constancy and courage for upward of eleven months, during which time Philip made several vain efforts to relieve the place. The brave garrison, having en- dured the extremities of hunger and privation, was at length re- duced to the necessity of capitulating on the 4th of August, 134T. The circumstances which followed — the barbarous demands of Ed- ward, the magnanimous self-devotion of Eustache de Saint Pierre and his five companions, the generous and successful intercession of Queen Philippa — are familiarly known to every reader of his- tory.* Edward established in the conquered tov/n a numerous colony of his own subjects ; and Calais continued for more than two centuries a valuable appendage to the English crown. This campaign, so humiliating and disastrous to France, so glo- rious for the arms of England, was now brought to a close ; a truce for ten months was proclaimed on the 28tli of September, and Edward immediately returned to his dominions. The truce between France and England was not disturbed dur- ing the short remainder of the reign of Philip VI. The angry pas- sions of both nations were for a time checked and silenced by a dreadful visitation called the Black Pestilence, which ravaged al- most the whole of Europe during the years 1348 and 1349. Not less than fifty thousand persons were carried off by it in Paris alone. Among the victims were the queen of Philip (Jeanne of Burgundy), the Duchess of Normandy, the Duke of Burgundy, and the Queen of Navarre, daughter of King Louis X. The latter princess left a son, who succeeded to her crown, and has acquired an unenviable celebrity in history under the name of Charles the Bad. Philip, now a widower, espoused, on the 19th of January, 1350, the beautiful Blanche of Navai're, a princess of eighteen ; but some months after lie fell into a languishing sickness, of which he expired on the 22d of August, 1350. He had reigned twenty-two years. Philip was the first who imposed the tax called the gabelle, a * Sec St/idP7it's H/niie,]). 180-182. A.D. 1350-1364. ACCESSION OF JOHN. 207 govei'nment monopoly of salt,* -which afterward proved so lucra- tive to the treasury, and became so oppressive and odious. In the last year of this reign the Dauphin of Vienne, Humbert II., who had no children, and was about to I'etire into a monastery, ceded his estates to Philip on behalf of his grandson Prince Charles, for the consideration of two hundred thousand florins. Other con- ditions were added, one of which provided that the province of Dauphine' should never be united to the crown of France. On this account, and to mark the importance of the acquisition, the young prince, on succeeding to the throne as Charles V., ordered that the title of Dauphin should be borne thenceforward by the eldest son of the reigning sovereign, the heir-apparent to the monarchy. § 9. John, 1350-1364. — John, surnamed " le Bon," or "the Good," son of Philip VL, ascended the throne in the thirty-second year of his age. His character much resembled that of his father ; like him, he was proud, obstinate, presumptuous, cruel, and greatly addicted to luxury, display, and pleasure ; he possessed also the same personal bravery, the same love of military fame and glorj-, and the same anxiety to excel in all the virtues, graces, and exer- cises of chivalry. He found the kingdom in a state of extreme em- barrassment and depression ; but his was not the hand qualified to remedy its disorders and restore it to prosperity and greatness. The new king began his reign with an act of arbitrary sever- ity. The Constable of France, Eaoul de Nesle, a trusted and fa- vorite servant of Philip VI., had been taken prisoner by the En- glish in the late invasion ; he now obtained leave to proceed to France for the purpose of raising money for his ransom ; but no sooner had he reached Paris than John caused him to be arrested and forthwith put to death, without trial or hearing of any kind. His supposed offense Avas that of having entertained a design to surrender his castle of Guines into the hands of the English king ; but no sort of proof was ever adduced to support the charge. The Constable's sword was bestowed on the king's chosen companion and bosom counselor, Charles de la Cerda, brother of Prince Louis, who had commanded under Charles of Blois in Brittany ; and, not content Avith this, John farther gratified his favorite with the county of Angouleme, recently ceded by Charles of Navarre upon the prom- ise of other territories in exchange. These promised fiefs, however, were withheld ; and John had thus the misfortune to incur the dead- ly resentment of a prince who seemed born to be the evil genius of France. § 10. Charles the Bad, king of Navarre, was a singular instance of the combination of great mental endowments with the Avorst dis- * This occasioned a bon-mot of Edward III., who called Philip the author of the Sa/ic law. 208 JOHN. Chap.X. positions, by which all his gifts were perverted into instruments of evil. He had received from Nature talents of a high order ; he pos- sessed a remax'kable power of eloquence, keen penetration, popular insinuating manners ; but beneath this attractive exterior he con- cealed a malicious, treacherous, revengeful heart, capable of the most atrocious crimes ; nor was he ever known to hesitate at any sacrifice to his ambition, hatred, or other dominant passion. Sucli a man was not to be affronted with impunity. Moreover, inde- pendently of his personal character, his birth gave him a position of high political importance ; for as the grandson, by his mother's side, of Louis X., his pretensions to the throne of France were su- perior to those of Edward of England, and were in fact indisput- able, but for the law of female exclusion. He likewise held large feudal possessions, inherited from his father the Count of Evreux ; and John had lately bestowed on him in marriage the hand of his daughter the Princess Jeanne. This dangerous personage vowed vengeance against the Con- stable de la Cerda, Avho, on his part, took no pains to hide his ha- tred and contempt for Charles. Dissembling his purpose for some time, the King of Navarre Avatched his opportunity, and on the 19th of January, 1354, he surprised the Constable at the town of I'Aigle, and caused him to be assassinated in his bed. Charles boldly avowed the deed, and defied the indignation of the king. John, in his first outbreak of fury, gave orders for an attack upon Evreux and an invasion of Navarre ; but, on reflection, he judged it wiser not to provoke to extremity one who possessed such for- midable means of retaliation ; negotiations took place ; and a com- promise was effected through the good offices of the two queens- dowager, the widows of Charles IV. and Philip VI., both near rel- atives of Charles of Navarre. The reconciliation, however, was hollow ; on both sides there reigned profound hypocrisy and a total want of confidence. The King of Navarre instigated the Dauphin Charles to place himself at the head of a party opposed to his father. John, on discovering this new offense, was exasperated beyond all bounds, and availed liimself of the familar intimacy between his son and the King of Navarre as a means of executing his projects of vengeance. Pro- ceeding suddenly to Rouen, where the dauphin, as Duke of Nor- mandy, held his court, the king entered the castle Avith a chosen escort, and strode into the banqueting-hall, where the young prince Avas at table Avith the King of Navarre, the Count of Harcourt, and other distinguished guests. John assailed his enemy Avith fiu-ious menaces, and even so far forgot his dignity as f o oft'er him personal outrage ; the Count of Harcourt and tAvo other noblemen Avcro hurried into the castle-yard and beheaded in the monarch's A.D. 135G. BATTLE OF POITIERS. 209 presence ; Charles of Navarre was spared at the earnest interces- sion of the dauphin, but was consigned to a dungeon in the Chat- elet, wliere he was treated with extreme rigor, and teri^ified day- after day by his keepers with threats of 'approaching death. § 11. This occurred in April, 1356. In the summer of the same yeai', Philip of Navarre, brother of the captive Charles, supported by Godfrey of Harcourt and other powerful lords, effected a junc- tion with the Duke of Lancaster and the English, and levied war upon John in Normandy. John assembled his forces, and, after driving back the enemy into the Cotentin, laid siege to Breteuil, a fortress belonging to the King of Navarre. Here he received the alarming intelligence that the war with the English had burst forth with destructive fury in Aquitaine. Edward the Black Prince of Wales had marched from Bordeaux in July with a small army of eight thousand men, and had penetrated to the gates of Bourges. Eaising the siege of Breteuil, the French king now rapidly ad- vanced into Poitou, with the purpose of intercepting the Prince of Wales and cutting off his reti'eat into Guienne. Proceeding by forced marches, John found himself, on reaching Chauvigny on the 16tli of September, a day in advance of the English commander. Edward saw at once that he must either fight or surrender ; and, not dismayed by the result of a reconnaissance which showed him the immense numerical superiority of his opponents, he determined to abide the issue of battle. On the 17th he drew up his troops, with great judgment, on an elevated plateau called Maupertuis, about two leagues north of Poiiiees, and there awaited the attack of the French. His position was intersected by hedges, inclosures, and vineyards, and was approached from the side of Poitiers by a narrow hollow causeAvay running between steep banks, so that it was almost unassailable by cavalry, while it offered great advant- ages to marksmen and small detached bodies of light troops. On the next day, at the moment when the French king was prepar- ing to engage, two papal legates made their appearance in his camp, and endeavored to mediate between the rival leaders and prevent the effusion of blood. King John granted a delay • of twenty-four hours for the purpose of negotiation ; and the Cardi- nal Talleyrand de Perigord proceeded to urge upon the Prince of Wales the necessity of coming to terms, if he would avoid utter destruction. Edward offered to restoi-e all prisonei'S taken in the campaign, to abandon his conquests, and to bind himself by oath not to take arms against the King of France for the space of seven years. But John, confident of victory, demanded that the prince and one hundred of his knights should give themselves up as pris- oners into his hands ; and Edwaixl, deeming such conditions incon- sistent with his honor, returned a prompt refusal, and committed 210 JOHN. Chap, X. himself to the fate of arms, saying that " God would defend the right." Early on the morning of the 19th of September, 1356, the French gave the signal of attack, and the two marshals Audenham and Claremont, with a body of chosen knights, charged gallantly up the hollow way ; but in so doing they were exposed to the mur- derous shafts of the English bowmen who lined the hedges, and their ranks were terribly thinned and thrown into confusion long before they gained the brow of the ascent. Those Avho reached the prince's position were fiercely encountered by his men-at-arms, and forced down the hill upon the broken mass below, now still more disordered by the advancing " battle" of the Duke of Nor- mandy. One of the marshals was slain, the other taken prisoner ; and the Captal de Buch, who had been stationed in ambush with six hundred horsemen, now rushed from his concealment and bore down furiously upon the dauphin's troops. Thus unexpectedly assailed in flank, while their path was blocked up in front by their defeated comrades, the second division of the French were unable to sustain the shock ; they gave Avay, and the narrow lane instant- ly became a scene of indescribable confusion and fearful carnage. At this critical moment, the Prince of Wales, acting upon the ad- vice of the celebrated English knight John Chandos, ordered his whole line to descend the hill and charge the enemy in front ; and, the French being already disheartened and panic-struck, this attack Avas decisive of the fortunes of the day. The Dauphin Charles and his brothers Louis and John turned their horses and took flight towaird Chauvigny, followed by more than eight hundred cavaliers who had not drawn sword that day ; and the corps commanded by the Duke of Orleans, sixteen thousand strong, carried away by the fatal example, fled ignominiously from the field, leaving their king, with the sole division of his army that remained unbroken, to en- counter the impetuous advance of the English. The final struggle was nobly, but fruitlessly maintained by the chivalrous John and his rear guard. The king defended himself on foot with a heavy battle-axe ; his youngest son, Philip, after- ward Duke of Burgundy, a youth of fourteen, fought like a hero by his side ; but at length, having seen numbers of his most dis- tinguished knights and nobles perish around him, and being hard pressed by the English, who made desperate eftbrts to reach liis person, the unfortunate monarch surrendered to an outlawed knight of Artois, Denis de Morbecque by name, who had taken service under Edward of England. He was conducted to the Prince of Wales, who received his illustrious captive with every mark of profound respect and generous sympathy; giving him precedence as King of P^rance, attending upon liim wliile he sat at table, and A. D. 1357. THE DAUPHIN ASSUMES THE REGENCY. 211 striving to soothe him by admiring praises of his warlike prowess, and assurances of honorable treatment on the part of his royal father. The bloody battle of Poitiers cost France no less than two thou- sand five hundred of her nobility and chivalry, and between seven and eight thousand common soldiers, out of a total force of nearly sixty thousand. The prisoners alone amounted to more than *double the numbers of the victorious army. King John was carried to Bordeaux, and in the spring of 1357 was removed to England, where he experienced a most courteous reception from Edward, who assigned as his residence the ancient palace of the Savoy in London. ElForts to conclude a peace were made, but failed ; a truce, however, was signed for two years from Easter, 1357. § 12. Meanwhile the state of things in France was one of gen- eral consternation and confusion. The Dauphin Charles reached Paris ten days after the battle, and assumed the government un- der the title of lieutenant general of the kingdom. The States- General were assembled without delay at Paris ; and it soon ap- peared that a determined struggle was about to be made, at this alarming crisis, to obtain for the people, through their representa- tives, an acknowledged share in the conduct of public affairs. The popular leaders were two men of superior talent, fearless resolu- tion, and sincere patriotism — Etienne Marcel, "Prevot des Mar- chands," or head of the municipality of Paris, and Kobert Lecoq, bishop of Laon. Under their influence the assembly named a committee of eighty members to deliberate upon measures to be taken for the defense and administration of the kingdom in the absence of the sovereign. This committee presented to the dauphin various startling demands, which he evaded for the time ; and, hav- ing promised to convoke the States again early in the next year, he proceeded to raise money in the interval by depreciating the current coin of the realm. When the States-General of Paris again met, in February, 1357, they not only insisted on their former demands, but stipulated in addition that the adulterated coin should be withdrawn and a new currency issued ; that the management of the taxes, and the ex- ecution of all great measui'es of reform requii-ed by the present emergency, should be intrusted to a committee of thirty-six per- sons nominated by themselves ; and also that farther meetings of the States should be held, when they should see fit, in the course of the year. Upon these conditions the States engaged to raise and maintain a force of thirty thousand men, to be paid by a tax of fifteen per cent, levied on the revenues of the three orders. Charles found it absolutely necessary to yield, and published an 212 JOHN. Chap.X. edict by which he adopted, without reserve, all the prescribed con- ditions. At the same time, however, he secretly procured from his father a refusal to ratify the compact ; and orders ai-rived from John peremptorily annulling all the acts of the States-General, and forbidding his subjects to pay the subsidy which they had voted. A furious struggle ensued. The agitators released the King of Navarre from his prison near Cambrai, and brought him in triumph to Paris, where he was welcomed with enthusiasm by the populace, and urged to assert his right to the throne against the usurping house of Valois. Paris now became a scene of frightful disorder ; Marcel, exasperated and vindictive, placed him- self at the head of the multitude, and distinguished his fi-iends by a parti-colored hood (chaperon) of red and blue, the civic colors of Paris. They arrayed themselves in open and violent insurrec- tion against the court; and on the 22d of February, 1358, a par- ty of the rioters, headed by Marcel himself, forced their Avay into the palace, and cruelly murdered, in the very presence of the help- less dauphin, two of his confidential advisers, the Marshals of Champagne and Normandy. The prince was compelled by Mar- cel to signify to the people his approval of this atrocious deed, and to associate himself with the cause of the insurgents by adopt- ing their rallying sign of the parti-colored hood. Mai-cel was at this moment virtually master of France ; but, instead of using his power to secure for his country some solid guaranty of constitutional freedom, he allowed the dauphin to leave Paris and retire to Compiegne, where he assembled the States- General. The nobility flocked to support him, a strong reaction commenced in favor of the royal cause, and civil war was the de- plorable result. § 13. At this juncture burst forth the frightful insurrection call- ed the Jacquerie — a general rising of the enslaved peasants of the provinces against the nobles, prompted not so much by the love of liberty as by the desperation of utter and hopeless misery, and a ferocious thirst of vengeance upon their tyrants. The revolt of the Jacques, as they were called (from the familiar nickname of Jacques Bonhorame applied to the French peasantry) commenced in the neighborhood of Clermont and Beauvais, in May, 1358, and quickly overspread the northern and western districts. It was a war of wholesale extermination ; the feudal chateaux were assail- ed, sacked, burnt, and razed to the ground, and their inmates, doAvn to the youngest infant, put to the sword, with every circumstance of almost incredible barbarity. The daring demagogue Marcel naturally attempted to direct the Jacquerie so as to serve liis own purposes ; he negotiated Avith the leaders of the revolted serft, and furnished them with a powerful body of auxiliaries ; and, by his A.D. 1358. SUPPRESSION OF THE INSURRECTION IN PARIS. 213 advice, an immense multitude of the insurgents proceeded to be- siege the town of Meaux, whei-e the wife of the dauphin, the Duch- ess of Orleans, and near three hundred other ladies of high rank, had taken refuge under the protection of the Duke of Orleans and a scanty garrison. The population of Meaux took part with the assailants, and a horrible catastrophe might have ensued but for the gallantry of two illustrious knights, G"aston Phoebus, count of Foix, and the Captal de Buch, who, on hearing of the danger, hastened to the relief of the beleaguered city. Aided by their valor, the defenders executed a successful sally, and the peasants were totally routed, seven thousand of their number being slain on the spot. This single defeat sufficed to decide the fate of the Jacquerie. The nobles, recovering from their panic, exerted themselves reso- lutely to suppress the rebellion, and the unhappy serfs Avere hunt- ed down on all sides like wild beasts. 1'housands were massacred, and within a few weeks the silence of ghastly desolation reigned throughout the rural districts. The dauphin now encamped with a large army under the walls of Paris, and effected a secret understanding with Charles of Na- varre, who, ever fickle and perfidious, sold his support by turns to the popular party and the court, without a thought for any thing but his own selfish interest. His falsehood was suspected by Mar- cel and the popular chiefs ; but without his aid it was now evi- dent that the dauphin must shortly become master of Paris, in which case there was no hope of mercy for the murderers of the two marshals. It was therefore necessaiy to gain over Charles at any price ; and Marcel accordingly made an engagement with him, by which Paris was to be given up into the hands of the King of Navarre, the principal adherents of the dauphin were to be as- sassinated, and Charles was then to be proclaimed King of France. This treacherous plot was discovered by Jean Maillart, one of the sheriffs of Paris, who determined to defeat it. Collecting a strong party of the dauphin's friends, Maillart surprised the traitor at the very moment when he was about to introduce Charles and his sol- diers into the city by the Porte St. Antoine, and with one blow of a hatchet stretched him dead at his feet. (July 31, 1358.) Two days afterward the dauphin re-entered Paris, and proceed- ed to signalize his triumph by several examples of extreme, but perhaps, under the circumstances, not unnecessary severity. Many of the principal men of Marcel's party were put to death on the scaffold ; others were punished with exile and confiscation ; all who had taken part in the rebellion suffered more or less from the prince's vengeance. All the measures of reform advised by the States-General were annulled ; the former ministers wei-e rein- 214 JOHN. Chap. X. stated ; and the royal authority became, in fact, more absolute than ever. Thus terminated this memorable attempt to impose some constitutional check upon the arbitrary and irresponsible power of the French monarchs. Various causes contributed to its fail- ure — the extravagance and sanguinary violence of Marcel, and his alliance with a confederate in every way so u:nworthy as the King of Navarre ; but chiefly, it would seem, the want of intelligent and determined co-operation on the part of the States-General, and their neglect to retain in their own hands the all-important power of taxation. The movement was crude and premature ; still it was not devoid of some valuable results, which may be traced in several measures of wise reformation adopted by Charles V. and some of his successors. § 14. While the regent thus triumphed in Paris, Charles of Na- varre renewed the Avar in the provinces ; his bands of adventurers — English, French, and Navarrese — ravaged the country far and wide, and for more than a year longer France groaned under the miseries of civil strife. In August, 1359, a treaty, disadvanta- geous to the dauphin, was signed with Charles at Pontoise, and a prospect opened of some respite from this desolating warfare. But at the same moment news reached Paris that the captive John had entered into a shameful and inexcusable convention with the King of England, by which he ceded to Edward in absolute sover- eignty not only Aquitaine, but also Normandy, Touraine, Poitou, Saintonge, the Limousin — in short, at least one half of his domin- ions. The dauphin nobly determined to resist these terms of crushing humiliation ; he assembled the States-General, and the treaty was at once repudiated with universal scorn, the deputies declaring that they preferred enduring any amount of internal ca- lamity to giving their sanction to such a ruinous dismemberment of France. This spirited and patriotic step produced a second in- vasion of France by Edward in October, 1359. The English king, with an immense and admirably appointed force, proceeded through Picardy to Reims, which he besieged ineffectually ; thence, finding it impossible to subsist his army in the exhausted condition of the country, he marched'into Burgundy, which was compelled to pur- chase its neutrality for an enormous sum ; finally, descending the Yonne, Edward appeared before the capital, and defied Charles to a pitched battle. This, however, the regent declined ; and, either from want of provisions, or from inability to undertake a formida- ble and protracted siege, Edward withdrew from Paris, and took the road to Chartres. Here the sight of the pi'ivations endured in liis camp, and the effects of a terrific tempest, which caused an awful sacrifice of life among his soldiers, are said to have determ- ined him to open negotiations for peace. By the treaty of Bretig- A.D. 1360, 1361. JOHN EELEASED FROM CAPTIVITY. 215 ny, subscribed by the commissioners of both monarchs on the 8th of" May, 1360, France obtained terms which, although far more moderate than those so rashly accepted by John, were still suffi- ciently galling to her national pride. The whole province of Aquitaine, including Pe'rigord, Quercy, and Bigorre — and, in addi- tion, the counties of Poitou, Angoumois, Limousin, and Saintonge — were ceded to Edward in full sovereignty, independently of all homage to the crown of France. Edward, on his part, renounced for himself and for the Prince of Wales all pretensions to the French throne, as well as to Normandy and other ancient pos- sessions of the Plantagenets north of the Loire. The ransom of the King of France was fixed at three millions of crowns, payable in six years ; the king was to be set at liberty upon the payment of the first instalment, and a certain number of hostages, chosen from the first men in the kingdom, were to remain in the hands of Edward until it was acquitted in full. It was not without considerable difficulty that the regent pro- cured the stipulated sum for his father's liberation ; but it was at length raised, and on the 25th of October the king found himself free, after four years of captivity. He made his entry into Paris on the 13th of December, and was welcomed with universal trans- ports of joy and gratitude. The satisfaction with which the dear- bought peace of Bretigny was every where hailed is the plainest proof of the extreme depression and misery into which France had sunk during this melancholy period. § -15. The remainder of John's reign presents few transactions of importance. The terrible "Black Pestilence" reappeared in the autumn of 1361, and among its victims were the Queen of France, and her son by her first marriage, the youthful Philip de Kouvre, duke of Burgundy. The direct line of this ancient house being now extinct. King John asserted his right to the succession as the nearest male relative of the late duke ; and disregarding the equal, if not superior claim of the King of Navarre, he pro- ceeded to Dijon, took possession of the duchy, and annexed it to the royal domain. The king's second son, Louis of Anjou, had"been delivered up as one of the hostages under the treaty of Bretigny. Wearying of his confinement at Calais, the young prince broke his parole, ef- fected his escape, and hastened to Paris. John, who, as a " preux chevalier," was keenly sensitive upon the point of honor, now re- solved to atone for his son's breach of faith by returning in person to England, and surrendering himself again a prisoner. Before his departure he bestowed the duchy of Burgundy in appanage upon his youngest and favorite son Philip, afterward called the Bold, expressly stating in the charter that the grant was made in 216 CHARLES V. - Chap.X. recompense of the prince's courage and devotion in defending his father at the risk of his own life on the field of Poitiers. This was an act of shortsighted and mistaken policy, as tending to weaken the monarchy by perpetuating the system of feudal divi- sion. Philip the Bold thus became the founder of the second du- cal house of Burgundy, which in the following century was to as- sume a position of no mean rivalry Avith the throne itself. John sailed for England in January, 1364, and was received in London with the most friendly courtesy and magnificent rejoicings. In the midst of these festivities he was taken ill at the Savoy Palace, and after a few weeks' sviffering expired there on the 8tli of April, at the age of forty-five. § 16. Charles V., 1364-1380. — Charles V., upon whom the crown now devolved, was a prince of very different disposition and character from his father. Of a feeble bodily constitution, he had no taste for chivalry and war; he was studious, sedentary, re- served ; and his habitual prudence and caution, joined to a certain acquaintance with science, especially with astrology, procured him the surname of le Sage, or the Wise, by which he is generally known. Charles's personal infirmities were abundantly redeemed by the possession of that inestimable talent for the ruler of a great kingdom, the faculty of discerning and choosing aright the instru- ments for eifecting his purposes ; the art of carrying out his own counsels and projects by a successful use of the agency of others. His chief general was the far-famed hero Bertrand du Guesclin, the son of a poor gentleman in Lower Brittany, who had already given proof of great military genius in the war between Montfort and Charles of Blois. The flames of civil war were raging at this time in Spain be- tween Pedro the Cruel, king of Castile, and his natural brother, Henry of Trastamara. The latter prince, driven across the bor- der into France, implored the succor of Charles against the blood- thirsty tyrant, who, in addition to other atrocities, was accused of having poisoned his wife, Blanche of Bourbon, sister of the Queen of France. Henry of Trastamara received a favorable answer ; •and Du Guesclin engaged to levy an army among the free com- panies, and conduct them across the Pyrenees, to assist in conquer- ing the Castilian throne for the young pi'etender. Upon the entry of the French into Catalonia in December, 1365, an almost uni- versal insurrection against the detested Pedro ensued ; he escaped with difficulty from the country, and sought shelter at the court of tlie Black Prince at Bordeaux ; and his brother took possession of his vacant seat without striking a blow. Pedro now prevailed upon the English prince to employ his forces in re-establishing Lim upon llic tlirojie. Li FebruMvy, 1307, tlie Prince of Wales A.D. 13(38. WAR AVITH PEDKO THE CRUEL. 217 and his army, including 10,000 English troops of the free com- panies, descended into Spain, and marched in quest of Henry of Trastamara and Du Guesclin. The armies met on the 3d of April between the villages of Najara and Navarrete, on the con- fines of Castile and Navarre, and, after an obstinate and gallant con- test, a brilliant victory remained with the English. Du Guesclin was captured, the free companies were cut down by thousands, and the survivors dispersed in utter dismay through the country. Don Henry effected his escape from the field, passed the frontier in dis- guise, and reached in safety the papal court at Avignon. Events now took a singular and unexpected turn, which pro- duced consequences in the highest degree important to the for- tunes of the French monarchy. Pedro of Castile failed to fulfill his engagements Math the Black Prince, and the latter found himself unable to pay the mercenaries of the free companies on their return from Spain. Discontented and indignant, the}^ began to commit depredations upon Edward's vassals in Aquitaine ; and being thereupon desired by the prince to evacuate his territories, they bui'St into the neighboring provinces of France, which once more became a prey to their destructive excesses. This raised among the suffering population a furious outcry of hostility and vengeance against England ; and the rule of the Black Prince became at the same moment extremely odious in Gascony, on account of the heavy taxes he was compelled to impose to defray the cost of the late campaign. The rich nobles remonstrated, threatened, and refused to pay the required sub- sidies ; and in June, 1368, three of the most powerful lords of Guienne took the bold step of carrying their complaint before the King of France as lord paramount, and invoking his interference for the redress of their grievances. That Charles himself had secretly encouraged this outbreak of disaffection against Edward tliere can be no reasonable doubt. Many favorable circumstances concurred to determine him to precipitate a ruptui'e of the peace of Bretigny. Edward HI. was growing old and infirm ; the Black Prince was languishing vmder a sei-ious malady contracted in his Spanish campaign ; the national pride of the inhabitants of the lately ceded provinces revolted against the English yoke. Ee- solved to avail himself to the utmost of this propitious moment, Charles concluded a treaty, offensive and defensive, with Henry of Trastamara, and dispatched Du Guesclin, at the head of the free companies, to aid him in a second attempt to seat himself upon the throne of his ancestors. The tyrant Pedro was defeated and captured at the battle of Montiel, and shortly afterward lost his wretched life in a personal encounter with his brotlier. Henry was now immediately recognized as King of Castile, and Charles K 218 CHARLES V. Chai-. X. V. threw off the mask. The final ratifications of the treaty of Bretigny had not yet been exchanged ; and upon this pretext Charles declared that he had never renounced the suzerainty over Aquitaine and the other English fiefs, which belonged to him as King of France. Accordingly, in January, 1369, he addressed a formal summons to the hero of Poitiers and Navarrete, citing him to appear before him in the court of peers, and answer the com- plaints and accusations of his Gascon vassals. " We will not fail," replied Edward, " to obey the order of the King of France ; we will proceed to Paris, but it shall be with bassinet on our head, and sixty thousand men to bear us company." § 17. War now commenced simultaneously in the north and the south of France. Charles gave the command of his forces to his three brothers, the Dukes of Burgundy, Anjou, and Berry ; but, profiting by the lessons of past disasters, he expressly enjoined them to avoid the hazard of pitched battles, and trust to a system of harassing guerilla warfare and separate sieges. The Avhole county of Ponthieu was reconquered in a single week; the dis- tricts of Quercy, Rouergue, and Agenois submitted before the end of June ; and the death of Sir John Chandos, seneschal of PoitoUj opened an easy road to the reduction of that country. In the fol- lowing year (1370) the Prince of Wales, though sinking rapidly under the inroads of disease, achieved a brilliant success in the assault and capture of Limoges, but stained his victory by giving up the town to pillage, and ordering the massacre of more than three thousand unoffending and helpless citizens. This was the last warlike exploit of the illustrious prince ; a few months after- ward the declining state of his health compelled him to quit France, to which he never again returned. Reverses now befell the English arms in quick succession and on all points. Du Guesclin, whom Charles had appointed Con- stable of France, advanced into Poitou (1372), and commenced a series of successful enterprises, which ended in the complete recov- ery of the whole territory between the Loire and the Gironde. In the spring of 1373 the Constable was dispatched with an army into Brittany, where the people had shown a disposition to rise against their duke and declare for France. Du Guesclin was accompanied in this expedition by the famous Olivier de Clisson, afterward Constable, a stern warrior, who, in his fierce enmity to the English, had sworn never to grant quarter to one of that de- tested race, and had acquired in consequence the surname of the Butcher. Most of the Breton fortresses surrendered to the French commanders, and De Montfort was forced to fly for succor to the court of his father-in-law, Edward of England. Edward was in consternation at the successes of Charles, who A.D. 1373-1378. SUCCESSES OF THE FRENCH. 219 while he never made his appearance in the field, gave him more trouble, he declared, than any one he had ever encountered. Ee- solving to make a final and desperate effort, the English king once more raised an army for the invasion of France, which landed at Calais, under the orders of John of Gaunt, duke of Lancaster, in July, 1373. Charles strictly charged his generals to adhere to the plan of cautious defensive warfare, and never to accept a great battle. "Let the storm rage," said he; "retire before it; it will soon exhaust itself." The English traversed the country, and to- ward autumn reached the mountains of Auvergne, where they be- gan to suffer greatly from stormy weather, difficult roads, and want of provisions ; the French hung on their flanks, harassing them at every turn, and cutting off frequent bands of stragglers. Before he arrived at Bordeaux the duke had lost at least a third of his army, and out of thirty thousand horses had scarcely preserved six thousand. A multitude of English, among whom were many dis- tinguished knights and nobles, perished during the winter from the privations, fatigues, and hardships to which they had been exposed ; and, in a word, the expedition was completely ruined. Numbers of towns and fortresses in Gascony now declared for the King of France, and the rule of the English in the south became visibly more precarious day by day. The only places of importance which remained in their hands by the close of the year were Bordeaux, Bayonne, and Calais. By the interposition of the Pope a truce for two years was pro- claimed in June, 1375; and before its expiration the two hiost in- veterate and formidable enemies of France, Edward III. and his son the Black Prince, had been removed by the hand of death. § 18. Charles V., fully appreciating the advantages offered by the prospect of a long minority in England, refused to renew the truce ; and Edward was scarcely cold in his coffin before the com- bined fleets of France and Castile made a descent upon the oppo- site coast near Rye, which town they reduced to ashes ; then pro- ceeding Avestward, they ravaged the shores of Sussex, the Isle of Wight, Dartmouth, and Plymouth, and in returning insulted Southampton and Dover. Meanwhile the Duke of Burgundy pursued the war in Artois ; Olivier de Clisson reduced the few fortified places in Brittany which still held out for Jean de Mont- fort ; Du Guesclin and the Duke of Anjou completed the subjec- tion of the English possessions on the Dordogne, the Garonne, and the Gironde. Every where the French arms were triumphant, and the population returned Avith eager satisfaction to the domin- ion of their natural rulers. § 19. Leaving the conduct of the war to his generals, Charles addressed himself in 1378 to a more delicate and difficult t-ask — 220 CHARLES V. Chap. X. the unraveling and frustrating a new plot hatched against him by the infamous Charles of Navai're. A Navari-ese noble named De Rue, who had come to Paris in the suite of the Count de Beau- mont, eldest son of the King of Navarre, w^as suddenly arrested and tried by a royal commission ; his confession is said to have implicated his master in a design not only to support the English in a new invasion, but also to destroy the King of France by pois- on. The young Count de Beaumont, upon being informed of these grave revelations, renounced his fealty to his father, and ordered the governors of Charles's fortresses in Normandy to surrender them to the officers of the French king. Charles thus obtained possession of all the strong-holds belonging to his enemy, with the sole exception of Cherbourg. The unfortunate De Rue, and an- other emissary of the King of Navarre, named Du Tertre, Avere now declared guilty of high treason, and executed accordingly, in the barbarous fashion of the times. Whether this scheme was really meditated by Charles of Navarre, or how far it was fabric- ated or exaggerated by Charles V. as a pretext for crushing his ancient foe, we have no means of ascertaining. In either case it turned greatly to the advantage of France. Besides losing his towns in Normandy, Charles the Bad was besieged in Pampeluna by the Castilian allies of the King of France, and compelled to purchase peace by the cession of several of the strongest castles of Navarre. § 20. The last enterprise of Charles V. was the least successful of his reign. Relying on the eager zeal wijth which the Bretons had embraced the cause of France in her struggle with England, the king proceeded to summon the expelled duke, Jean de Mont- fort, to appear before the court of peers; and a certain period hav- ing elapsed without reply, a royal decree declared the duchy for- feited, and annexed it to the crown. Charles departed in this in- stance from his usual prudence : he had not calculated on the deep and fervent attachment of the Bretons to their national in- dependence. A violent insurrection was the consequence. The chief nobles leagued together to resist the offensive decree, and re- called the banished Jean de Montfort, who landed at St. Malo in August, 1379, and was received with transports of enthusiasm. The duke soon found himself surrounded by a powerful army, and, what was of far more serious omen for the interests of Charles, all the Breton generals abandoned the French standard, and de- clared with one voice for the national cause. Even the faithful and highminded Du Guesclin renounced his office as constable and retired from court. Charles saw his error, and condescended to entreat the veteran warrior to resume his post ; to this, it seems, he consented, but at the same time steadily refused to draw his A.D. 1380. DEATH OF DU GUESCLIN AND CHARLES V. 221 sword against his patriot countrymen. Charles still persisted, with tfnaccountable obstinacy, in his designs upon Brittany ; and the entire population of the province, upon whom he might other- wise have counted as stanch and powerful allies against England, was now hopelessly alienated from his crown. Meanwhile serious disturbances had broken out in Languedoc through the maladministration and oppression of the Duke of Anjou. The revolt was put down with difficulty, and the duke proceeded to such measures of cruel and intolerable vengeance, that the king suddenly recalled him, and placed the government of the province in the hands of the Count ofFoix. The English free companies took advantage of this moment of confusion to seize several towns and castles along the frontier of Languedoc. The inhabitants threw themselves upon the king's protection, and entreated help, and Charles charged the Constable Du Guesclin with an expedition for this purpose. In July, 1380, Du Guesclin laid siege to Chateauneuf de Kandan, a small town and fortress between Mende and Le Puy ; here he was attacked by illness, which, before the place capitulated, reduced him to the borders of the grave. The governor had sworn to surrender to none but the great Constable ; and on the day after his death (July 13th, 1380) the keys of the castle were brought into his tent, and deposited in silence upon the body of the departed hero. The loss of this il- lustrious soldier filled France with mourners. The king caused the corpse to be transported to Paris, where it Avas interred, with marks of almost regal honor, among the tombs of the French monarchs at St. Denis. The death of the Constable was followed, two months later, by that of Charles V. himself. According to common report, a dead- ly poison had been administered to him in his early youth through the unnatural machinations of the King of Navarre. A German physician arrested the progress of the venom by opening an issue in his arm ; forewarning him that, if at any time the issue should close, his death was inevitable within fifteen days. Charles rec- ognized the fatal symptom with firmness and serenity. He sum- moned round him his three brothers and his brother-in-law, the Duke of Bourbon, and having earnestly commended his son Charles to their care and protection, and addressed to them much wise and able counsel on the condition and government of the king- dom, he expired at the chateau of Beaute-sur-Mai'ne, on the 16th of September, 1380, at the age of forty-four. The extraordinary success of Charles V. in winning back so many provinces of his dismembered and desolated empire entitles him to rank among the great sovereigns of Fi'ance. His internal administrntion was tliat of a despotic prince, sincerely desiring the 222 CHARLES V. Chap. X. welfare of his coimtiy, but seeking it solely in the unchecked ex- ercise of his own arbitrary prerogative. Dreading a renewal of his early troubles, Charles convoked the States-General only once during his reign. He adopted, as a substitute, the practice of holding beds of justice — assemblies composed chiefly of the minis- ters and officers of state, who were compelled to register whatever measures the king thought proper to present to them, these edicts acquiring thenceforward all the force of law. The monarch thus assumed the power of legislation, and also that of levying taxes; usurpations which necessarily effaced every semblance of consti- tutional liberty. It must be mentioned, however, to the honor of Charles, that he never resorted to the habit of adulterating the coin of the realm, so common among his predecessors. His finan- cial system was conducted upon fixed and wise principles, every branch of the public expenditure being under the jurisdiction of the "court of aides," a tribunal created for the purpose, which lasted down to the Revolution of 1789. This prince gave great encouragement to the arts, especially to architecture. He built the vast and imposing Hotel St. Pol, at Paris, which became his favorite residence, and adorned the neigh- borhood of the capital with several royal chateaux. He also laid the foundations of the ill-omened fortress of the Bastile.* His acquaintance with literature was considerable, and he was an en- lightened and generous patron of men of letters. The royal libra- ry of Paris may be said to owe its origin to Charles V. It con- sisted at his death of something more than nine hundred volumes • — an extensive and valuable collection for that age. * Commenced 1369, terminated 1383. Chateau de (Jliinon— place of meeting between Charles VII. and the Maid of Orleans (see p. 247). CHAPTER XI. SECOND PERIOD OF THE -WARS WITH ENGLAND. CHARLES VI. AND CHARLES VII. A.D. 1380-14G1. § 1. Accession of Charles VI. ; Contentions for the Regency; Tumults in Paris. § 2. Philip, Duke of Burgundy ; Defeat of the Flemish at Rose- becque. § 3. Preparations against the English. § 4. Charles assumes the Government. § 5. His Illness and Insanity; Duke of Burgundy at the Head of Affairs. § 6. Animosity between the Houses of Burgundy and Orleans ; Peace concluded with England ; Deposition of the Pope Bene- dict XIII. § 7. Death of Philip, Duke of Burgundy; War between John, Duke of Burgundy, and the Duke of Orleans; their pretended Reconcil- iation; Miu-der of the Duke of Orleans. § 8. Duke of Burgundy at the Head of Affairs. § 9. Count d'Armagnac becomes the Head of the Or- leanist Party. § 10. Civil War. § II. Henry V. invades France ; Bat- tle of Agincourt. § 12. Coalition of the Queen and the Duke of Burgun- dy ; Massacre of the Armagnacs. § 13. Murder of John, Duke of Bur- gundy, at Montereau. § 1 4. Treaty of Troves ; Marriage of Henry V. with the Princess Catharine ; Death of Henry V. and of Charles VI. § 15. Regency of the Duke of Bedford ; Accession of Charles VII. § 16. Jacqueline, Countess of Holland ; the Constable do Richemont. § 17. Siege of Orleans ; " Journee des Harengs." § 18. Jeanne Dare, the Maid of Orleans ; her Success at Orleans. § 19. Charles VII. crowned at Reims ; Conspiracy against Jeanne Dare ; her Capture. § 20. Trial, Condemna- tion, and Execution of Jeanne Dare. § 21. Reverses of the English in France ; Treaty of Arras ; Reconciliation of Charles VII. and the Duke of Burgundy. § 22. The "]^corcheurs;" States-General at Orleans; 224 CHARLES VI. Chap. XI. Creation of Standing Army. § 23. The "Praguerie;" wise and success- ful Policy of Charles VII. § 24. Organization of the Army. § 25. The English driven from Normandy and Gascony. § 26. Factious Behavior of the Dauphin ; last Illness and Death of Charles VII. § 1. Charles VI., surnamed "le Bien-aime" or "Well-beloved," 1380-1422. — The troubled reign of Charles VI. opened with a sharp contention between four princes of the blood, his uncles, for the regency of the kingdom. The young king was not yet twelve years old, and his majority had been fixed, by a recent ordinance of his father, at the age of fourteen. The royal dukes, or "Sires des Fleurs-de-lys," as they were called, at length agreed to a com- promise ; the Duke of Anjou was declared regent, while the cus- tody of the royal person and the direction of the household were intrusted to the Dukes of Burgundy and Bourbon ; the Duke of Berry was appointed governor of Languedoc and Aquitaine ; the sword of Constable was delivered, according to the dying injunc- tion of Charles V., to Olivier de Clisson. These arrangements were scarcely completed when a violent popular commotion broke out at Paris. The Duke of Anjou, a man of notorious and rapacious avarice, had seized the whole of the vast treasure amassed by the late king, as well as the contents of the public exchequer ; notwithstanding which he withheld the pay due to the troops, upon the pretense that the taxes could not be obtained from the people. The discontented soldiers flocked in crowds to Paris, where they committed every kind of excess ; the angry populace rose against them, and furious broils took place. Soon the excitement turned against the regent, and the citizens, headed by the prevot des marchands, proceeded tumultuously to tlie palace, and demanded the abolition of the gabelle, the tax on sales, and other obnoxious imposts. The terrified duke dared not resist; he promised immediate satisfaction; and on the 16th of November an edict was published by wliich all the extraordinary taxes and duties, of whatever description, levied since the reign of Philip the Fair, were absolutely suppressed, and all popular rights and liberties anterior to tliat reign were declared to he uncondi- tionally re-established. It was evident that such sweeping con- cessions could neither be sincere nor lasting. No less than seven fruitless attempts to obtain supplies Avere made in the course of the year 1381 ; and as the irritation rapidly spread throughout the country, civil strife became every day more imminent. A bloody riot took place at Eouen, in consequence of the proposal of a new duty upon cloth; the burghers rushed to arms, and, having pro- claimed a wealthy clothier King of Rouen, insisted on his issuing an edict repealing the tax, and holding up the officers of the rev- enue to public execration. Tho unfortunate collectors were plun- A.D. 1382-1384. ANTI-TAX TUMULTS IN PARIS. 225 dered, insulted, and violently driven from the city ; an attack was next made upon the castle, in which the governor was killed ; the clergy were also assaulted and maltreated. In February, 1382, the young king and his uncles, at the head of an armed body of nobles, proceeded to Rouen, and, the gates being opened to them without resistance, unsparing vengeance was wreaked upon the in- surgent citizens. The chief authors of the revolt were executed, and the duty upon cloth was levied by threats and force. Emboldened by this success, the court attempted to enforce at Paris an excise-duty upon produce exposed for sale in the mar- kets. The step was energetically resisted ; the popular wrath exploded at once, and the capital was in full insurrection. The multitude burst into the Hotel de Yille, and armed themselves with a quantity of leaden maces (maillets) and other weapons which were there in store : with these they attacked and murder- ed all the agents of the government upon whom they could lay hands, and afterward, breaking open the prison of the Chatelet, released all who were confined there, whether for debt or other crimes. The Maillotins, as they were called, not finding an effi- , cient leader, dispersed, on an assurance from the court that the obnoxious tax should be abandoned, and an amnesty was pro- claimed ; but no sooner had the ferment subsided than arrests were made in every part of Paris, and the wretched prisoners, Avithout any public condemnation, were dispatched by a secret and odious mode of execution — they were inclosed in sacks, and thrown at dead of night into the Seine. The States-General were now assembled at Compiegne ; but the deputies proved refracto- ry, and flatly refused to sanction even the smallest subsidy. Full of suspicion and disaffection, the Parisians closed their gates, bar- ricaded the streets, and denied the king entrance to his capital. At length an accommodation Avas effected through the skillful management of the advocate-general, Jean Desmarets ; and, in consideration of 100,000 francs paid to the insatiable Duke of Anjou, it was agreed that no farther proceedings should be taken on account of the late insurrection. Peace was thus restored, and in May, 1382, the king, attended by his uncles, re-entered Paris. § 2. Immediately after this pacification Louis of Anjou, who had been adopted by his cousin Joanna, queen of Naples, as suc- cessor to her throne, quitted Paris, and proceeded, Avith a brilliant train and an army of thirty thousand men, toAA'ard his ncAv do- minions. In Italy he was vigorously opposed by his competitor Charles of Durazzo, heir of a collateral branch of the house of Anjou ; and after obtaining some successes the duke died sudden- ly in 1384. The chief direction of affairs in France noAV devolved upon K2 22G CHARLES VI. Chap. XL Philip, duke of Burgundy, the ablest of the three royal brothers; and his first exercise of power was to engage in the civil contest which had been waged for two years past in Flanders. The duke had married the heiress of that great province, and was naturally interested in quelling this dangerous sedition, which threatened to end in revolution. Count Louis of Flanders was at this time be- sieging the revolted city of Ghent ; the burghers, headed by the famous Philip van Artevelde, attacked and totally defeated him at Beverhout, and the count, flying in disguise to Bruges, seemed on the point of being dispossessed of his dominions. He implored his son-in-law the Duke of Burgundy to march to his relief; the duke proposed the expedition to the young king ; and Charles, joy- ously welcoming the opportunity of making his first essay in arms, hurried on the military pi'cparations, and entered Flanders at the head of his forces in November, 1382. The real commander of the royal army was the Constable Olivier de Clisson. Philip van Artevelde mai'ched against them with fifty thousand Flemings, and a terrible battle was fought on the 28th of November at the village of Koosebeke or liosebecque, in which the French were completely victorious. The struggle lasted only half an houi-, but in that brief space the carnage was immense ; twenty-five thou- sand Flemingsjjerished in the field ; Artevelde himself was among the slain, surrounded by the whole division foi^med by the citizens of Ghent, eight thousand strong, which was cut off to a man. The victory of Kosebecque was in reality a triumph of royal and feudal power over the cause of popular liberty, and its conse- quences were not less sensibly felt at Paris than in Flanders. Charles re-entered France with purposes of mei'ciless severity against his rebellious capital. The gates, chains, and bai'ricades were thrown down at his approach, and the burgesses were re- quired to surrender their arms ; the Constable and his officers then occupied all the military posts, and the bloody work of the execu- tioner began. No less than three hundred of the principal inhab- itants died upon the scafibld ; among them Nicholas le Flamand, formerly a distinguished partisan of Etienne Marcel, and the Ad- vocate General Jean Desmarets, a long-tried, able, and faithful servant of the crown. At the same time, the municipal liberties of the city were summarily withdrawn, its magistrates were re- placed by officers named by the prevot royal, and the detested ga- belle, the duty on the sale of wine and other commodities, and the rest of the lately abolished taxes, were reimposed in all their force. After this exhibition of unmeasured tyranny the king consented, at the intercession of his uncles, to extend his royal pardon to his terror-stricken subjects upon payment of the exorbitant fine of 900,000 francs. Similar scenes were enacted at Reims, Troyes, Chalons, Oi'leans, and throughout the north of France. A.D. 138-2-138G. PREPARATIONS AGAINST THE ENGLISH. 227 Thus was democracy once more crushed in France beneath the iron heel of despotism. The people, destitute of intelligent lead- ers, wavered and succumbed in the moment of danger, and became forthwith the prey of an implacable court and a rapacious and brutal aristocracy. The degradation and misery in which the low- er classes were now plunged bore their natural fruit in the savage and calamitous civil wars of the latter part of this distracted reign. § 3. Louis, count of Flanders, expired in January, 1384. His only daughter Marguei'ite was married to Philip the Bold, duke of 13urgundy, who now succeeded to the ample possessions of that house, including Flanders, Artois, the counties of Rhetel and Nev- ers, and other territories in Champagne. To these were soon add- ed the duchy of Brabant ; and, with the great fief of Burgundy, the duke thus owned an extent of dominion which made him one of the most powerful of European sovereigns. The new count forth- with concluded a pacification with the people of Ghent, and was recognized throughout the province. Having married his eldest son to the daughter of Duke Albert of Bavaria, the Duke of Burgundy was induced to propose to his royal nephew an alliance with another princess of the same family, Isabella, daughter of Duke Stephen of Bavaria. Isabella was brought to France upon pretense of a pilgrimage tto Amiens in the summer of 1385 ; here she was presented to the young king, who was greatly struck by her attractions. The marriage was celebrated in the Cathedral of Amiens on the 17tli of July, only four days after their first interview. Charles V. had expressed a desire that his son should connect himself by marriage Avith Ger- many, in order to secure for France a valuable ally against the English. Little did he foresee the train of disaster and calamity which would be entailed on his kingdom by means of this ill-starred union. In the following year, 1386, preparations were made on a gi- gantic scale for the invasion of England. Ships were equipped, forming an almost endless flotilla, in all the sea-ports from Cadiz to the shores of Prussia : Froissart states that near fourteen hund- red vessels were now assembled in the harbor of Sluys in the month of September. A prodigious land-force was collected at the same place ; every thing announced an expedition destined ut- terly to overwhelm the hated English, and reduce the island to a state of vassalage to France. But, by a strange series of fatalities, this mighty movement passed away without result. The king loitered on his journey, and did not join his army till the close of September ; the Constable de Clisson, sailing from Brittany, was driven by a tempest upon the coast of England, and, having lost many of his ships, at last reached Sluys with difficulty, deeply 228 CHARLES VI. CilAl'. Xi". Isabella of Bavaria, wife of Cbiu'les VI. mortified by his disaster ; the Duke of Berry, who from the be- ginning had shown a disinclination to the project, purposely de- layed his arrival at the rendezvous until the season was so far ad- vanced as to render it unwise to put to sea. The scheme was abandoned for this year; and the soldiers, dismissed without pay- ment, harassed and pillaged the whole country on their road home- ward. The English, watching their opportunity, now bore down upon the Flemish coast, attacked the French fleet, burned and captured a groat part of it, and set sail for their own shores laden with a rich spoil. Tiie descent upon England was again agitated in the spring of 1387, but was frustrated by the personal enmity of the Duke of iJrittany and the Constable. When the armament was on the point of sailing, the duke treacherously decoyed De Clisson into one of his castles near Vannes, from which he Avas liberated only at the price of an extortionate ransom. The Constable hastened to make his comiilnint to the king, and the duke was compelled A.D. 1388. CHARLES ASSUMES THE GOVERNMENT. 229 eventually to give ample satisfaction ; but tins second miscarriage caused the design upon England to be finally laid aside. The year 1388 was wasted in an ill-planned and unsuccessful expedition against the Duke of Gueldres, who had sent Charles an insolent defiance. The king forced his vassal to make a verbal submission, but the French army suffered severely in returning liome, and regained Champagne in a state of miserable disorder and distress. § 4. The Avhole blame of this disgraceful failure, as well as of other public misfortunes, was popularly attributed to' the malad- ministration of the royal dukes ; and Charles had no sooner enter- ed Eeims than he found himself besieged by entreaties that they might be dismissed from power. The cardinal-bishop of Laon urged at the council-board that the king, who had now attained iiis one-and-twenlieth year, ought to take into his own hands the reins of government, independently of all control. Charles acted on this advice ; and having graciously thanked his micles of Bur- gundy and Berry for their care of his person, and their laborious services to the state, intimated that henceforth he should not re- quire their aid in the direction of affairs. The princes did not venture to resist, and immediately withdrew from court, leaving, however, behind them a terrible example of the revenge of disap- pointed ambition. The Bishop of Laon, the same day on which they quitted Reims, was found dead, with manifest marks of hav- ing been carried off by poison. The chief offices of government were now bestowed on several able ministers of the preceding reign — the Constable de Clisson, Bureau de la Riviere, Jean de Nogent, Arnaud de Corbie. They pursued a very different policy; many useful and important re- forms were published, oppressive taxes were reduced and repealed, and a truce was concluded with England for three years. The king, however, displayed no taste or capacity for affairs of state. He became more and more absorbed in frivolous amusements, os- tentatious festivities, and sensual pleasures. Three years passed in comparative tranquillity, during which the king's uncles re- mained entirely excluded from power. They lost no opportunity of ridiculing and vilifying the ministers, whom they styled the viar- ■mousets or monkeys ; and at length, wearied and exasperated, they leagued with the Duke of Brittany, the avowed and inveterate enemy of De Clisson, for the purpose of effecting the disgrace of the Constable and their own reinstatement in authority. It so happened that a young relation of the Duke of Brittany, Pierre de Craon, had been lately banished from court for his in- discretion in revealing to the young Duchess of Orleans, Valentine Visconti, an intrigue carried on by her husband, the king's brother. 230 CHARLES VI. CiiAr. X. This nobleman now willingly listened to proposals of revenge upon De Clisson, whom he regarded as the author of his dismissal ; and one night in June, 1392, he waylaid the Constable with a band of bravos, on his return from an entertainment at the palace, and, assaulting him furiously, left him for dead in the street. The wounded man, however, had fallen against the door of a baker's shop, Avhich was hastily opened from within by the owner, and the assassins were thus unable to dispatch their victim. De Craon escaped to the court of his confederate the Duke of Brittany. The king' was irritated beyond measure by this daring outrage upon one of the highest functionaries of the state, and swore that it should be signally avenged. The Duke of Brittany was re- quired to ai-rest the traitor Pierre de Craon, and send him forth- with to Paris. The duke had the impudence to reply that he knew nothing either of the oifender or of his offense, and therefore begged to be held excused from obeying the royal command. Still more indignant at this monstrous falsehood, Charles gave orders for assembling an army, and, although at the time in an enfeebled state of health, set out from Paris, accompanied by liis brother the Duke of Orleans, the Duke of Bourbon, and his chief nobles and counselors, and took the road to Brittany. § 5. The king was detained three weeks by illness at Le Mans. On the 5th of August he mounted his horse, contrary to the ad- vice of his physicians, and proceeded through the forest of Le Mans, in the direction of Angers. The day was intensely sultry, and the king, already weakened by disease, suffered much from the scorching rays of an almost vertical sun. Suddenly a man of wild and ferocious aspect, bare-headed and bare-legged, started from be- hind a tree, seized the king's bridle, and exclaimed, in a terrible voice, " Ride on no farther, oh king ! return ; thou art betrayed !" The attendants came up and drove off the intruder, but he contin- ued to follow Charles at some distance, shouting with redoubled energy and fury, "Thou art betrayed, thou art betrayed!" The king, astounded and bewildered, nevertheless pursued his route. Soon afterward one of his pages, who had fallen asleep in his sad- dle, dropped his lance, which struck upon the steel helmet of his companion. Startled by the sound, which seemed to his morbid fancy to confirm the threatening warning he had just heard, the unhappy Charles now lost all self-control, drew his sword, attack- ed the pages, whom he no longer recognized, and, after severely wounding several persons of his escort, spurred his horse against the Duke of Orleans. The duke fled in terror ; and the Duke of ]^urgundy, perceiving that the king was bereft of his senses, or- dered him to be secured, which, when the paroxysm had exhaust- ed his strength, was at length effected. Charles was disarmed, and carried back to Le Mans in a state of unconscious lotharcv. A.D. 1388-139G. KING'S ILLNESS AND INSANITY. 231 The physicians were at first of opinion that the king's seizure was mortal and his end approaching ; but a favorable change took place on the third day. Charles recovered his senses, and to a certain extent the use of his reason, but never so as to be capable of sustained effort or close application. For the rest of his life his condition was one of chronic imbecility, varied by occasional fits of passionate frenzy, and sometimes, but more rarely, by lucid rational intervals. This calamity naturally caused an immediate change of political administi'ation. The Duke of Burgundy was replaced at the head of affairs ; the Duke of Oiieans, who alone could have contested the post, being set aside for want of age and experience. Two of • the late ministers were thrown into the Bastile. Olivier de Clis- son was tried before the Parliament for malversation and embez- zlement, condemned to a severe fine, deprived of his office as Con- stable, and exiled into Brittany. § 6. The king's health, which had continued gradually to im- prove, suffered a serious relapse in January, 1393. On the occa- sion of the marriage of one of the ladies of the queen's household a grand masked ball was given at court, in which Charles, with five of his nobles, disguised themselves as savages, in close-fitting dresses covered with pitch and tow to resemble hair. The young Duke of Orleans, excited no doubt by wine, approached these gro- tesque figures with a lighted torch, and, either accidentally or from wanton love of mischief, set their combustible costume in a blaze. The king was fortunately standing apart, and the Duchess of Berry hurried him out of the hall. Four of the unlucky maskers were burnt to death ; one saved his life by throwing himself into a large tub of water which happened to be at hand. The shock occasioned by this accident produced a violent return of the king's malady. The royal sufferer totally lost his memory and all consciousness of his position. He conceived a strong aversion against the queen ; he ceased to recognize his children ; and the only person Avho retained any influence or control over him was his sister-in-law, the Duchess of Orleans. That princess was distinguished by her amiable temper, and the charm of her graceful manners ; these exercised their natural ascendency over the diseased mind of Charles ; but the jealousy of the rival fac- tion, and the narrow superstition of the times, ascribed the result to sorcery and magic, and the Duke of Burgundy took advantage of the popular clamor to banish the accomplished Valentine from court. This step greatly inflamed the growing animosity between the houses of Burgundy and Orleans. During a temporary restoration to reason Charles concluded, in 1396, a definite treaty of peace Avitli England. Richard II. de- 232 CHARLES VI. Chap. XI. manded the hand of the Princess Isabella, a child scarcely more than seven years old, and the espousals were celebrated at an in- terview which took place between the two monarchs near Calais. The term of this pacification was fixed at twenty-eight years ; it lasted, in reality, little more than six. About the same time Charles made a laudable attempt to heal the scandalous schism which for near twenty years had afflicted tlie Church. A council was held at the Hotel Saint Pol, which pronounced, in accordance with the decision of the University of Paris, that the peace of the Church Avould be best secured by the resignation of both the rival popes, Boniface IX. and Benedict XIII. A splendid embassy, composed of the three royal Dukes of Orleans, Berry, and Burgundy, with several prelates, doctors, and officers of state, now proceeded to Avignon to notify to Benedict XIII. — the stern and inflexible Pedro de Luna — the determina- tion of the council. Benedict entertained them at first with fair promises, which were soon exchanged for excuses and evasions, and at last he plainly announced to the commissioners his refusal to resign. Two years later a second council of the French Church met at Paris, when it was resolved to withdraw the kingdom from the obedience of Benedict ; and as he still refused to submit, and asserted his exclusive claims in the most resolute terms, a military force was sent to Avignon under Marshal Boucicaut, which block- aded the Pope in his own palace. He remained there a close prisoner for upward of four years. § 7. The opening of the fifteenth century found France pros- trate under a complication of evils which threatened to destroy all settled government and to sap the very foundations of society. Notwithstanding the king's incapacity, no regency had been legal- ly appointed ; and the struggles of the rival factions — those of the queen, the Duke of Burgundy, and the Duke of Orleans — engen- dered general anai'chy and confusion. The Duke of Orleans dis- played, as he grew up to manhood, a turbulent, reckless, and dis- solute character ; and fresh grounds of discord continually arose to aggravate his feud with the Duke of Burgundy, which became mortal and irreconcilable. During the absence of his antagonist in Flanders the Duke of Orleans came to Paris surrounded by a numerous body of knights and armed retainers, who took up their quarters round his hotel. The Duke of Burgundy soon arrived at the head of an equally threatening force. The capital was in consternation. Every moment a collision was expected, which might usher in a desolating civil war. After a lengthened sus- pense, the two princes were induced, by the earnest intercession of the queen, to consent to a formal reconciliation in January, 1402; but no sooner had the Duke of Burgundy quitted Paris A.D. 1393-1405. RIVALRY OF ORLEANS AND BURGUNDY. 233 than the Duke of Orleans, profiting by one of the king's intervals of reason, procured an edict by Avhich he was placed at the head of the financial administration, and for two months the whole power of the state was in his hands. The return of the Duke of Burgundy at once re-established his authority; but within two years he Avas suddenly attacked by a contagious disease at Brus- sels, and, having been conveyed to his chateau of Halle in Hai- nault, expired there in April, 1404, in the seventy-third year of his age. Philip of Burgundy possessed many admirable qualities, and his loss was deeply and _generally lamented. His great fault was a boundless prodigality. His pompous and extravagant lux- ury caused him continual embarrassment, and he died overwhelm- ed with debt. The administration of aflPairs was now once more seized by Louis of Orleans. He made a coalition with the queen and her party, and this union of interests gave them a decided preponderance in the state. But an opponent* quickly appeared who was destined to bring to a fatal crisis the deadly enmity which had so long reigned between the rival houses ; this Avas John, surnamed sans Feur, Avho had just succeeded his father as Duke of Burgundy. Inheriting all the ambition and courage of Philip le Hardi, Jean sans Peur Avas possessed of an unscrupulous audacity, which hesi- tated at no act of violence, cruelty, or revenge ; and, apart from other grievances, he had sustained at the hands of the libertine Duke of Orleans a private injury which Avas not likely to be for- giA^en. Their quarrel burst forth at the beginning of 1405, on the occasion of a ncAV tax or subsidy levied by the Duke of Orleans. The Duke of Burgundy declared that, whether authorized or not by the rest of the council, he Avould take care that the impost should be paid by none of his own subjects, and abruptly quitted Paris. This conduct procured him credit with the loAver classes, Avho regarded him henceforth as their protector and champion. The misgovernment of the party in poAver became in the course of a fcAV months so notorious and insupportable, that the duke re- ceived an urgent summons from the king to return and resume his place in the council. Pie marched to Paris escorted by eight hund- red lances, and learned on his arrival thei-e that the queen and the Duke of Orleans had taken flight to Melun, leaving orders that the dauphin, a child of nine years old, should follow them. Jean sans Peur possessed himself of the person of the young prince, and, en- tering Paris, took up his residence at the Louvre, thus remaining undisputed master of the capital. Upon an appeal to an assembly of notables, the duke's acts Avere fully ratified ; and he was placed, by unanimous consent, at the head of the government. His first care A\''as to put Paris in a state of defense, by repairing the city 234 CIIAKLES VI. Chap. XI. gates and suspending lieavy chains across the streets. Many of the civic privileges were restored ; and the burghers were encouraged to arm, hostilities being now deemed inevitable. The Duke of Orleans assembled his troops, crossed the Seine, and took post at Charenton. The Duke of Burgundy arrayed his forces at Argenteuil. The Orleanist banner bore the device of a knotted club, with the motto "Je I'envie ;" the Burgundian em- blem was a carpenter's plane, with the legend " Je le tiens." The leaders, however, shrunk at the last moment from the desperate is- sue of a battle. The Duke of Berry interposed, and after eight days of negotiation an arrangement was effected at Vincennes ; the two dukes agreed to dismiss their hired bands, and to divide the government between them. The queen now made her entry into Paris with great pomp, surrounded by the princes and a bril- liant court. The rival dukes gave every outward token of re- stored confidence and amity, even sharing the same couch at night ; but the extreme care which each bestowed in fortifying his hotel, and guarding against surprise, betrayed the deep distrust conceal- ed beneath the mask of reconciliation. Events were hastening to a catastrophe. It was evident that the contest had long passed the bounds of possible adjustment, and that one or other of the combatants must finally succumb. Their disputes at the council-board became every day more fierce and rancorous ; but an illness of the Duke of Orleans in the course of the autumn occasioned once more a renewal of amicable profes- sions. On the 20tli of November, 1407, the two cousins heard mass and partook of the holy saci'ament together at the church of the Augustins. Never was there a blacker instance of sacrilegious hypocrisy. At the very moment when he thus profaned the most solemn rite of Christianity, Jean sans Peur had deliberately doom- ed his enemy to a bloody and violent death. The Duke of Orleans went every evening to visit the queen, then recovering from her confinement. On the 23d of November a false message was sent to him at the queen's residence, requiring his immediate attendance on the king at the Hotel Saint Pol. The duke set out, followed by two servants; and, when near the Porte Barbette, was suddenly attacked by a band of assassins, whose leader, shouting "a raort, a mort !" struck him so furiously with an axe that one of his hands was severed at the wrist. A second blow laid open his skull and dashed him to the ground, where the rufiians soon dispatched him with horrible mutilation. § 8. The authorship of this portentous crime remained for a short time doubtful. The Duke of Burgundy appeared not less profoundly shocked than others. He attended the funeral of his victim, and even held the pall in company with the other princes. A.D. 1405-1408. MURDER OF THE DUKE OF ORLEANS. 235 Blood is said to have flowed from the coi'pse on his approach. Suspicion fell at first upon a gentleman of the deceased duke's household, whose wife he had corrupted ; but justice soon discov- ered the right track, and the provost of Paris announced to tlie council that he had no doubt of being able to arrest the murdei-- ers, provided he were authorized to search the Hotel d'Artois, the residence of the Duke of Burgundy. The conscience-stricken duke changed color and became much agitated. On being questioned by the King of Sicily, he plainly avowed that, yielding to the in- stigation of the Evil One, he had caused the deed to be committed. Recovering, however, his natui'al audacity, he presented himself the next day at the council-chamber ; but the Duke of Berry reso- lutely opposed his entrance. Jean sans Feur instantly took horse, and, in spite of a brisk pursuit, gained the frontier fortress of Ba- paume, whence he continued his flight to Lille. It is a painful illustration both of the character of the Duke of Orleans and of the depraved morals of the age, that this atrocious murder not only roused no popular indignation, but was generally applauded and even justified. After some futile demonstrations, the assassins were allowed to go unpunished. The widowed Duchess Valentine came, with her children, to throw herself at the feet of Charles, and demand vengeance for her husband's blood ; but the monarch could do no more than assure her of his sympa- thy, and repeat vain promises of satisfaction. The Duke of Bur- gundy soon reappeared at Paris, escorted by eight hundi'ed gentle- men and a considerable armed force, and reached his hotel amid the acclamations and congratulations of the people. The next day, March 8, 1408, at a great assembly of princes, nobles, clergy, and burgesses, held at the Hotel Saint Pol, Jean Petit, a Francis- can monk and celebrated doctor of the Sorbonne, appeared as the duke's advocate, and offered an elaborate vindication of his con- duct. The orator maintained, wkh much pedantic display of logic and learning, that the Duke of Orleans was a tyrant, a traitor, and a heretic ; that on all these grounds he deserved death ; and that, whether as regarded God, the king, or the nation, it was not only a lawful, but a laudable deed to rid the Avorld of such a vile offender. The assembly listened in silence. No one ventured to gainsay this extraordinary line of defense. The duke became a second time dictator ; and his first act was to force the unhappy Charles to issue a public declaration that he retained no displeas- ure against his dear cousin of Burgundy for having caused the as- sassination of his brother. Shortly afterAvard Jean sans Peur was summoned to the Low Countries to suppress a sudden revolt of the people of Liege ; and his opponents at Paris profited by his absence to attempt a reac- 236 CHARLES VI. Chap. XL tion. The queen, who had retired with the dauphin to Melun, entered the capital on the 26th of August, attended by the Dukes of Berry, Bourbon, and Brittany, with three thousand men-at- arms. In an assembly held by the dauphin, the Abbe de Serisy pronounced a solemn refutation of the discourse of Jean Petit ; and the Duchess of Orleans was assured that the Parliament would execute speedy and ample justice in her behalf. The duke's letters of pardon were revoked, and he was summoned to appear and make answer before the Parliament to all charges brought against him. But meanwhile the duke was victor in the sanguinary battle of Hasbain (Sept. 23, 1408), and his enemies, on the first tidings of this decisive success, renounced all thoughts of prosecuting their designs of vengeance. In November he returned triumphantly to Paris, and found that the adverse party had fled on his appi'oach. The queen and the princes, carrying with them the imbecile king and the dauphin, had retired to Tours. Valentine of Orleans fell ill at Blois, and died there within a few Aveeks of disappointment and a broken heart. § 9. The parties now found it mutually advisable to negotiate ; and at an interview held in the Cathedral of Chartres in March, 1409, the Duke of Burgundy received from Charles a full pardon for the bloody deed which had been committed, as he maintained, "for the welfare of the king and the kingdom;" after which the young princes of Orleans were constrained to go through the farce of reconciliation with their father's murderer. This transaction, aptly designated " la paix fourree" (hasty or patched-up peace), caused general demonstrations of joy ; but no one believed that the dissensions of the state were eifectually heal- ed. The immediate I'esult was to throw the government still more absolutely into the hands of the Duke of Burgundy. The duke had also the addi'ess to conclude^a secret alliance with the sensual and despicable Queen Isabella, and by this means secured the guardianship and dii'ection of the young dauphin, as well as com- plete power over the person of the king. The opposite party were not behindhand in taking measures of self-defense. In 1410 a league was organized at Gien betA\'een the young Dukes Charles of Orleans and his brother, the Dukes of Bei'ry, Bourbon, and Brit- tany, the Count Bernard d'Armagnac, and the Constable d'Albret, with the avowed object of overthrowing the Duke of Burgundy ; and from this time must be dated the undisguised outbreak of civil war. The Count d'Armagnac, a distinguished nobleman of Languedoc, whose daughter had just been married to the Duke of Orleans, became the acknowledged chief of the new confederacy; and the partisans of the liouse of Orleans Avere hcncefortli known. A.D. 1408-1412. TEMPORARY DEFEAT OF THE ARMAGNACS. 237 by his name. He was a man of eminent ability, brilliant courage, and mature experience, in every way qualified for such a post. He collected a large force in Gascony, where he enjoyed vast in- fluence ; auxiliary bands were raised in Poitou, Auvergne, Tou- raine, and Brittany ; and the army of the Armagnacs marched to- ward Paris. No engagement, however, took place this year. The Armagnacs cruelly ravaged the whole country up to the gates of Paris ; but the Duke of Burgundy, though his force was superior, hesitated to attack them, and a second illusory treaty was made in November, 1410, at the chateava of Bicetre. Next year hostil- ities were renewed. The allied princes sent a violent letter of de- fiance to the Duke of Burgundy, and took the road to the capital, resolved to strike a vigorous blow for its possession. Meanwhile the Parisians had risen in terror, and organized for their defense a sort of civic guard called the milice royale, composed of the very dregs of the populace, and commanded by the butcher Legoix, a surgeon named Jean de Troyes, the skinner Caboche, and the exe- cutioner Capeluche.* The Cabochiens (so they were styled) were soon masters of Paris, and their reign was marked by the most hideous atrocities. Every one who chanced to offend them was stigmatized as an Armagnac, and plundered, persecuted, and mur- dered without remorse. The army of the princes, however, over- powered this horde of brigands, and, occupying St. Denis and St. Cloud, poured into the city, which became a frightful scene of li- cense, havoc, and confusion. A royal proclamation now declared the princes guilty of high ti'eason, and banished them from the kingdom ; but the Duke of Burgundy, at length making his ap- pearance before the capital with a strong auxiliary force of En- glish lances, successfully attacked the Armagnac position at St. Cloud, cut to pieces twelve hundred knights or gentlemen of their party, and forced them to retreat precipitately to Orleans. The most merciless vengeance followed this triumph of the Burgun- dians. The streets of Paris ran in torrents with the blood of the Armagnacs. Numbers died in the prisons by torture, starvation, or disease ; their property was confiscated ; their corpses were abandoned to the dogs and swine in the common ditches and sewers. . § 10. The Orleanist party, thus driven to desperation, naturally began to turn their eyes and hopes toward England. Negotia- tions were entered into with Henry IV., and in May, 1412, it was arranged that the princes and their adherents should assist the En- glish king to recover all the ancient possessions of his predeces- * They were members of the ancient corporation of butchers, which pos- sessed at that time great credit and power. The tower St. Jacques la Boucherie marks the site of their chief establishment at Paris. 238 CHARLES VI. Chap. XI. sors in the south of France ; in return for which Ilenry engaged to place at their disposal a force consisting of a thousand men-at- arms, and three thousand bowmen, paid in advance. The dispatch containing this ti-eaty Avas intercepted in Nor- mandy, and publicly read before the council of state at the Hotel Saint Pol. It excited extreme indignation, and the king, just then in a somewhat improved state of health, announced his determina- tion to march instantly against the rebellious traitors who Avould thus sell France to her invetei'ate foes. The war which followed was marked by the same scenes of cruelty and bloodshed. *The Cabochiens again rose in Pai'is, and perpetrated dreadful crimes. At length, in 1414, the dauphin, to the great discontent of the other princes, made proposals of accommodation to the Duke of Burgundy. His overtures were accepted, and, upon the nominal condition of asking the king's pardon, the duke was permitted to retain all his possessions. He was prohibited, however, from com- ing to Paris without the royal command ; and the Armagnacs remained completely masters of the government. § 11. Both parties in the strife had made applications in turn to England. Henry V., a young, talented, and ambitious mon- arch, could not resist the temptation to renew against France the ancient pretensions of his family at this melancholy crisis of her fortunes. During the negotiations at Arras, Henry sent embas- sadors to assert formally his claim to the French crown, and to demand the hand of the Princess Catharine in mai'riage, together with the restitution of all the provinces ceded by the treaty of Bretigny, and of Normandy in addition. AVar was the alterna- tive. Such was the degraded state of France, that the dauphin dared not answer this insolent message by a bold defiance ; he of- fered Henry the hand of the princess, with a handsome dowry in money, and the Avhole of Aquitaine and Limousin ; but this prop- osition was peremptorily rejected, and the English king prepared to prosecute his claim in arms. Landing at the mouth of the Seine on the 14th of August, 1415, Henry invested Harfleur, which surrendei-ed after a month's siege. But the invader was prevented from following up his success; dysentery broke out in the English camp, and Henry, finding his forces lamentably reduced, resolved to abandon farther operations for this year ; he then directed his march northward through Pon- thieu and Picardy, intending to take up winter quarters at Calais. The royal army of France Avas composed almost entirely of the partisans of the house of Orleans ; the Duke of Burgundy preserv- ing, either from spite or by the king's command, a sullen neutrali- ty. Constable d'Albret had collected about sixty thousand men, commanded, under him, by the Dukes of Orleans, Anjou, Alengon, A.D. 1412-1415. BATTLE OF AGINCOURT. 239 and Bourbon, and the veteran Marshal Boucicaut. It was re- solved to intercept the retreat of the English, and give them bat- tle on the line of the Somme. For this purpose the Constable raai'ched to Abbeville, and gave orders that every point v^here the river could be crossed should be strongly occupied. After vainly attempting to pass at Blanchetache and at Pont Remy, Henry as- cended the Somme, and at length discovered an unguai'ded ford at Bethencourt, near Ham; here, on the 19th of October, he trans- ferred his whole array to the right bank of the river. Such was the want of vigilance among the French, that the Constable re- ceived no notice of the passage of the enemy until the difficult operation had been safely completed. Nothing remained but to select a position for a general engagement ; and the Constable again shoAved his incapacity by drawing up his army on a narrow plain between the villages of Agincourt and Tramecourt, flanked on either side by a thick wood, which prevented him from deploy- ing his forces and making full use of his cavalry. The English reached the ground on the evening of the 24th of October, and spent the night, which was cold and rainy, in devotional exercises. On the 25th, after a fruitless endeavor to negotiate, the battle be- gan by a tremendous discharge of arrows from the English arch- ers, who were protected by a strong palisade of sharp stakes. The French knights attempted to charge, but their horses sunk at every step above the fetlock in the mire of some newly-plowed fields, and not one in ten reached the enemy's lines. They fell back in disorder ; the English archers, throwing down their bows, rushed forward with their swords, battle-axes, and pikes, and, fall- ing upon the confused masses of the French Avith irresistible fury, slaughtered them in heaps almost Avithout resistance. The rear guard, which had remained unbroken, instead of making a determ- ined effort to retrieve the fortunes of the day, shamefully turned and fled, leaving the English undisputed masters of the field. A false report was made to Henry, in the moment of victory, that a fresh division of the enemy had attacked his rear and was plundering the baggage. Upon this the king inhumanly ordered a general massacre of the prisoners, and vast numbers of lives Avere thus sacrificed to a mistake. The disaster of Agincourt was even more fatal to the French nobility than those of Cre'cy and Poitiers; out of a total loss of ten thousand men, eight thou- sand Avere of gentle blood; among them Avere the Dukes of Alen- 9on and Brabant, and the Constable d'Albret, to Avhose inefficiency the defeat Avas chiefly due. Charles of Orleans, the Duke of Bour- bon, and Marshal Boucicaut, Avith fifteen hundred otlier knights and gentlemen, remained prisoners in the hands of the victors. The loss on the side of the English Avas about sixteen hundred 240 CHARLES VI. Chap. XI. men. Henry, however, was in no condition to pursue his victory ; he immediately resumed his march to Calais, and on the I7th of November landed at Dover with his royal and noble prisoners. § 12. The Count d'Armagnac was now created Constable of France, and assumed the direction of affairs. The Dauphin Louis died, a victim to his vicious excesses, in December, 1415, and was succeeded by his brother John, duke of Touraine., This young man was attached to the Burgundian party ; but within little more than a year he also breathed his last, so opportunely for the inter- ests of the Count d'Armagnac as to excite a general suspicion of foul play. The title of dauphin now devolved on the king's youn- gest son, Charles, a boy of fourteen, who had been educated among the Orleanist faction, and Avas deeply imbued with ail their preju- dices and passions. The queen was the only remaining personage in the state who might cause embarrassment to the overbearing Constable, and he at once resolved on her removal from all oppor- tunity of power or influence. In concert with the young dauphin, whom he completely governed, Armagnac represented to the king the scandalous scenes which disgraced the court of Isabella at Vin- cennes ; and by Charles's order, the Sire Boisbourdon, who passed for the queen's .paramour, was suddenly arrested, tortured, and thrown into the Seine, inclosed in a leathern sack, which bore the inscription, " Laissez passer la justice du Roi." Isabella herself was exiled to the castle of Tours, where she remained under strict surveillance. Her jewels and treasure were seized by the dauphin ; and his unnatural mother thenceforth regarded him with a vindic- tive hatred which lasted throughout her life. The queen and the Duke of Burgundy had hitherto been de- clared enemies ; but under present circumstances it was evidently their interest to bury their diffei-ences and combine for their mu- tual restoration to power. Accordingly, Isabella had not been many months in confinement before she found means to communi- cate secretly with Jean sans Peur, and the duke, in consequence, proceeded with a sufiicient force to Tours, and by a stratagem ef- fected the queen's deliverance from captivity. The measures of the new allies Avere bold and decisive. The queen declared her- self regent of the kingdom ; a council of state was established at Amiens in opposition to that of the " usurpers and traitors" who ruled at Paris ; and letters were dispatched throughout the prov- inces requiring the people to pay no regard to the orders of the king and the dauphin, and acknowledge no other government than that of the queen and the duke. The struggle thus became more desperate than ever ; and although in the course of this year (Au- gust, 1417) Henry of England landed a second time in Normandy, and captured Caen, Bayeux, and other towns, this foreign iiggrcs- A.D. 1415-1418. MASSACRE OF THE ARMAGNACS. 241 pion seems to have been scarcely noticed amid the deadly fury of intestine strife. Another sudden change of scene took place in May, 1418. The Constable Armagnac, and his chief supporter Tanneguy Duchatel, provost of Paris, had fallen in popularity from liaving broken off a promising negotiation for peace. A young citizen named Perrinet Leclerc contrived to introduce into the cap- ital a strong party of armed Burgundians ; the populace rose and joitied them with enthusiastic shouts ; and their commander, hav- ing forced the gates of the palace, took possession of the person of the helpless king, so as to justify the revolt by the appearance of royal authority. Tanneguy Duchatel succeeded in carrying off the dauphin to the Bastile, and thence to Melun. A dreadful mas- sacre followed in the streets of Paris on the night of the 12th of June ; the Constable d' Armagnac, several prelates, and numbers of the nobility, were cruelly murdered ; and the mob, breaking open the prisons, butchered indiscriminately all that they contained. The cut-throat Cabochiens reappeared, and for three days Paris was given up to atrocities too revolting to bear recital. The ruffians cut strips of flesh from the bleeding bodies of the Armagnacs, in brutal derision of the scarf or band which symbolized their party. The numbers of the slain were estimated at near three thousand. A few weeks afterward the queen and the Duke of Burgundy re-entered Paris, and were received with joyous acclamations, but they found it impossible to restore order. The massacres were renewed ; and although the duke labored to restrain the popular fury, and even submitted to shake hands with the butcher Cape- luche in order to gain his confidence, Paris still remained in a state of lawless insurrection. At last Capeluche arid others of the ringleaders were condemned and executed, and some degree of tranquillity was restored. § 13. Henry of England, meanwhile, had subdued Lower Nor- mandy, and laid siege to Rouen. That ancient capital was de- fended with heroic courage for seven months ; a capitulation took place in January, 1419, and Henry spared the city in considera- tion of a ransom of 300,000 golden crowns. The fall of Rouen led to the submission of the whole pi'ovince ; and Henry, Avho had received pressing overtures both from the queen's party and from the dauphin, now haughtily declined to negotiate, marched to Pontoise, and threatened the approaches to Paris. The presence of a foreign potentate, as a conqueror, in the very heart of the kingdom, brought about a momentary reconciliation between the i'actions which distracted France. The dauphin and the Duke of Burgundy, at an amicable inter- view near Melun, engaged to use their utmost efforts in conjunc- tion to expel the foreigner from France. But Tanneguy Duchatel I. 242 CHARLES VI. Chap. XI. and other counselors of the dauphin — the survivors of the butch- ered Arniagnacs — knew well that no reliance could be placed on the professions of their sworn enemy ; and there is little doubt that they were already deliberately meditating, with or without the cognizance of Charles, a deed of relentless vengeance which should rid them forever of his rivalry. The duke was invited to a second conference on the bridge of Montereau ;' an inclosure of woodwork was formed in the centre of the bridge, into which the two princes entered, each with ten attendants. What followed is differently related by the two parties, but their discrepancies are of no great importance. The duke doffed his plumed cap and bent the knee before the dauphin ; as he rose, Tanneguy Duchatel struck him violently on the back of the head with a hatchet ; he fell again to his knees ; the Vicomte of Narbonne and other followers of the dauphin then rushed upon him and dispatched him with their swords. All the nobles who accompanied the duke, except one, were either slain or taken prisoners. Thus perished, on the 10th of iSeptembe-r, 1419, the celebrated Jean sans Peur, duke of Burgundy. It was a terrible retribution, not only for his assassination of the Duke of Orleans twelve years before, but for the reck- less ambition, tyranny, and cruelty of his subsequent government. § 14. The consequences of this crime to France were calamitous in- dii d. The young Duke Philip of jiurgundy, who now succeeded his fa- ther, postponing all other considera- li )us to his thirst of vengeance on the dauphin, threw himself at once into the arms of the English. He was eagerly supported by the queen, who regarded her son as the author of all the injuries and indignities she had endured, and preferred any thing to the chance of again falling into the power of the Armagnacs. The pop- ulation of Paris, furious at the loss of their great patron, pronounced strong- ly for the same policy. Negotiations riniip the Goo<], duke of Bursnndy, in accordingly commenced at Arras with the Kobes of the Golden 1 leece Order. ° "^r. ^ i r. i the King of England ; and on the 2d of December it was agreed that Henry should espouse the Prin- cess Catharine, and should thereupon be forthwith invested with A. 0.1419-1422. MAERfAGE OF HENEY V. AND CATHAEIME. 243 the regency and administration of the kingdom ; and farther, that he should be declared heir to the crown of France after the death of the present sovereign. In April, 1420, this extraordinary treaty was signed by Chai-les VI., under the dictation of the queen and the duke, and was immediately afterward accepted and ratified by the States-General, the Parliament, and the constituted bodies of the capital. In addition to the articles above mentioned, it was stipulated that the crowns of France and England should hence- forth remain forever united in one and the same person ; and the parties to the treaty bound themselves to enter into no engage- ment or transaction whatever with Charles, " calling himself Dau- phin of Vienne," except by mutual and unanimous consent, and with the sanction of the estates of the realm both in France and England. These terms being finally settled, the mai-riage of Hen- ry V. with the fair Princess Catharine was solemnized with great magnificence in the church of St. Jean at Troyes, on the 2d of June, 1420. Such were the general terror and disgust excited by the civil war and the foul crimes to which it had given birth, that the treaty of Troyes seems to have been I'eceived in France with lively satisfaction. Few comparatively regarded it in its true light, as the most deplorable act of national humiliation to be found in the annals of their country. The Dauphin Cliarles and his party now retired to the provinces beyond the Loire, which were generally favorable to their cause. Notwithstanding his personal demerits — for he was indolent, licen- tious, without military talent, and branded with the disgrace of a heinous crime — Chaiies possessed one immense advantage ; his side was that of national independence in opposition to foreign dominion. When once the Burgundians had allied themselves with the hated English, the prestige of right and justice passed evidently to those who fought for the emancipation of France from a strange yoke. It was this single fact, rather than any superi- ority of valor, energy, or talent, that caused the arms of the pro- scribed dauphin eventually to prevail, and replaced him on his legitimate throne. By an utterly unexpected turn of fortune, the most formidable antagonist of the national cause was soon removed by death. Henry V. expired at Vincennes on the 31st of August, 1422. His son was an infant nine months old ; and the prospect of a long and stormy minority could not fail to act favorably to the interests of the i-ightful claimant of the crown. While still de- bating the measures to be taken, the dauphin received tidings of the decease of the king his father, which took place at the Hotel St. Pol on the 21st of October. The unhappy Charles VI., though for thirty years in a state of hopeless idiotcy, had never ceased to 24:4 CHARLES VII. • Chap. XI. be regarded by the nation with the same feelings of attachment which had procured for him in his early days the epithet of " lo Bien-aime." He was borne to his grave amid general and sin- cere lamentations. Henry VI. was proclaimed his successor, with regal pomp, at Paris ; a similar claim was made at the same mo- ment for Charles VH. in the modest chapel of the castle of Mehun, near Bourges. § 15. An English prince of the blood, John, duke of Bedford, now assumed the government of France in the name of his infant nephew ; and his firm and vigorous regency was acknowledged at Paris and throughout the provinces north of the Loire. Bedford's main strength lay in his alliance with the Duke of Burgundy ; various attempts were made to detach Philip from the English in- terest, but without success. In 1423 the union was drawn still closer by the marriage of the regent to one of the duke's sisters. Charles VII., surnamed " Victorieux," or "the Victorious," 1422-1461. — Charles VII., having caused himself to be crowned at Poitiers, fixed his government at Bourges, and was styled in derision by the English " the King of Bourges." His party, how- ever, was by no means contemptible ; he was supported by the princes of the house of Anjou, whose sister he had mari'iecl ; by the Counts of Alengon and Clermont ; and by all the most pow- erful baronial families of Languedoc His troops were drawn chiefly from foreign states : fifteen hundred men were furnished by the Duke of Milan ; six thousand joined him from Scotland under the Earl of Douglas, whom Charles created Duke of Touraine ; commands and honors in abundance were distributed among the Scottish officers ; the Earl of Buchan Avas named Constable of France. At first his arms were unsuccessful. He sustained the loss of two great battles in successive years (1423, 1424); but a singular ti'ain of circumstances caused a diversion in his favor, by separating for a time the Duke of Burgundy from his English al- lies, who were thus prevented from following up their successes. § 16. The beautiful and high-spirited Jacqueline, countess of Hainault and Holland, had contracted a distasteful union with the Duke of Brabant, a cousin of the Duke of Burgundy, who was his nearest relative and heir. Chafing under the yoke, the countess in the year 1421 fled from Hainault, obtained from the deposed Pope, Pedro de Luna, a deci'ee annulling her marriage, and shortly afterward bestowed her hand upon Humphrey, duke of Gloucester, a younger brother of the Eegent Bedford. Philip of Burgundy now promptly interfered ; encouraged the repudiated husband to resist; defied the Duke of Gloucester to mortal combat; gained possession of Mons, where Jacqueline was residing, and placed her in confinement at Client until the case should be decided by the A.D. 1422-1429. SIEGE OF ORLEANS. 245 legitimate Pope, Martin V. A breach was thus made bfctween the Duke of Burgundy and the English princes ; and Bedford seems to have dreaded from this moment that he would ultimately reconcile himself to the true heir of the monarchy. The Countess Jacqueline escaped from the duke's custody ; and fierce hostilities ensued, which terminated in favor of Philip. The Pope pro- nounced a decree dissolving Jacqueline's marriage with Humphrey of Gloucestei', who thereupon submitted and returned to England ; the proud countess was cpmpelled to recognize her cousin of Bur- gundy as lawful heir to all her possessions, and bound herself not to marry again without his permission. The course of events thus suspended for some years the active prosecution of the con- test for the crown of France. The advantage, however, was ill improved by the indolent Charles, who neglected the affairs of state, and trifled away his time among intriguing favorites and mis- tresses. Yet his cause was strengthened during this interval by at least one wise step, the appointment of the brave and able Count de Richemont, brother of the Duke of Brittany, as Constable of France. Richemont induced his powerful brother to acknowledge Chai-les's claims, and place at his disposal the whole forces of his duchy. The stern Constable, however, soon made enemies among the royal favorites ; two of them, De Giac and Beaulieu, were assassinated by his orders ; a third. La Tremouille, succeeded in forming a strong coalition against the count, who was banished from Charles's presence, and retired into Brittany. The king now rapidly lost all the ground that he had gained ; and through the weakness of his own character and the jealous cabals of his adherents, his situation became every day more embarrassing and critical. § 17. Freed at length from the apprehension excited by the movements of the Duke of Burgundy, the Regent Bedford re- solved to commence a decisive campaign ; and on the 12th of Oc- tober, 1428, the English army, commanded by the Earl of Salis- bury, formed the siege of Orleans. This city, the key of the prov- inces beyond the Loire, was defended by a brave garrison of two thousand men, headed by Dunois, called the Bastard of Orleans, and other brave captains, among whom it was fully understood that the final fate of Charles and his kingdom was to be contested and determined under the walls of Orleans. The gallant Salisbury was kiUed by a cannon shot early in the siege, and was succeeded by the Earl of Suffolk. In February, 1429, the besieged, receiving intelligence of a large convoy dispatch- ed by the regent from Paris, resolved to sally in force with the hope of intercepting it ; a column of six thousand men advanced to Rouvray, where, they encountered the English under Sir John 246 CHARLES VII. Chap. XI. Fastolfe. The French attacked hastily and Avithout judgment, and were easily thrown into confusion and dispersed. Dunois es- caped with a severe wound ; the Scottish Constable Stewart, his brother, and many other valiant knights, perished on the spot. This disaster, known as the " Journee des Harengs," from the salt fish of which the convoy chiefly consisted, for the use of the army during Lent, spread consternation among the Royalists ; it seem- ed doubtful whether it would be possible to prolong the struggle in the north, and many advised that the king should at once re- treat, while he was able, into Languedoc. The Count of Clermont, taking with him two thousand soldiers, abandoned Orleans in de- spair ; and the inhabitants, thus left without resource or hope, communicated with the Duke of Burgundy, and offered to surren- der the city into his hands, provided the regent would consent upon these tei-ms to withdraw from the siege. The duke accepted the proposal, but the regent refused to entertain it ; Philip retired to Flanders in great iri-itation, and ordered all his vassals to quit the English army. The cause of Charles seemed desperate, and with it that of French nationality. Orleans was more and more hardly pressed, and became day by day less capable of defense ; the king remained in helpless perplexity at Chinon, debating projects of escape from France to seek an obscure asylum in Spain or Scotland. But at this juncture a revolution declared itself on behalf of the suffering nation, which, if not to be ascribed, as it was in that age, to direct mii-acle, was at least of so marvelous a character as to lead us to look beyond the second causes and visible instruments by which it was effected. § 18. In the village of Domremy, on the Meuse, on the frontiers of Burgundy and Lorraine, there lived at this time a peasant maid- en named Jeanne Dare,* the daughter of respectable parents, whom she assisted in the humble occupations of husbandry and tending cattle. Nurtured from childhood in loyal attachment to the throne, Jeanne had learned to identify the cause of her sovereign Avith that of Pleaven. France w^as "the realm of Jesus;" the earthly monarch was the visible lieutenant of the King of kings. Her soul burned within her on witnessing the misery and degradation of her country under the English yoke ; its deliverance became the cen- tre of her most ardent hopes — the cherished day-dream of her life. Fastening with the eager tenacity of a romantic imagination upon a current tradition derived from the prophecies of Merlin, to the effect that France should be saved by a virgin from the borders of Lorraine, Jeanne conceived from an early age a devout conviction * Such appears to be the correct orthography. Sec H. Martin, Hist, de F.jvol.vi., p. 134. A.D. 1429. JEANNE DARC. 247 that she herself was this predestined instrument of Providence ; and the idea, thus interwoven with her religion, soon took the form of a direct and irresistible inspiration from above. Shortly before the commencement of the siege of Orleans the enthusiastic Jeanne souglit an interview with Robert de Baudri- court, governor of the neighboring town of Vaucouleurs, and re- lated to him a strange tale of ecstatic visions and supernatural "•voices" — communications from the Archangel Michael, St. Cath- arine, St. Marguerite — by whom she was charged to rescue the distressed monarch from his enemies, and conduct him in triumph to be crowned at Reims. Baudricourt at first treated her with ridicule as an impostor, but at length became so impressed by her simple earnestness, modesty, and importunity, that, after applying to the king for instructions, he dispatched the Maid with a suffi- cient escort to Chinon. Supporting manfully the hardships and fatigues of the long journey, Jeanne reached the court early in March, 1429, and on the fourth day after her arrival was admitted to the presence of Charles. By way of testing her, the monarch placed himself among a crowd of nobles, in a dress in no way dis- tinguished from theirs ; the young visionai'y advanced straight to- ward him, and, bending the knee, addressed him in terms befitting his rank, and with unaffected dignity announced her errand. Charles now took her apart ; and in the conversation which fol- lowed Jeanne is said to have given him satisfactory proof of her commission by mentioning to him a fact which he believed to be known to none but God and himself. The king- no longer doubt- ed ; but, in order to dispel all suspicion from the public mind, the personal character of Jeanne, both as to religious faith and moral purity, was subjected to strict investigation, and pronounced on all points unimpeachable. Her fame spread rapidly through the country, and she became the object of universal reverence, admi- ration, and confidence, as an inspired messenger from above. It was resolved to dispatch her, according to her urgent entreaties, to the relief of Orleans. She was furnished with a complete suit of armor, mounted on a war-horse, and girt with a mysterious sword brought by her desire from the church of St. Catharine de Fierbois ; a page bore her banner, a white field " fleur-de-lise," blazoned with a figure of the Savior, and the motto "Jesus Ma- ria." On the 27th of April the Maid, after sending a formal sum- mons to the Duke of Bedford, requiring him and his lieutenants to surrender all their fortresses and retire from France, advanced from Blois toward Orleans, attended by several officers". On the 29th she crossed the Loire and entered the city without opposition from the enemy ; and such was the magic effect of her presence both on l)epieetuitii a taille nominally amounting to twelve hundred thousand li- vres, to be applied to the maintenance of a staniling ai-my. This precedent gradually enabled the French nionarchs to raise the revenue by their own prerogative, without re- course to the national representatives. The- oretically it continued to be maintained that no tax could be lawfully imposed but by the three orders assembled in the States-General; hut this was totally disregarded in practice. The sovereign summoned the States-General only when it happened to suit his pleasure or convenience ; and when they were permitted to meet, their deliberations were seldom at- tended by any practical advantage to the state. In 101-1 the deputies of the Tiers Etat assumed a bolder and loftier tone than on any former occasion ; they presented a long list of searching refomis required in all branches of the administration — .jinancial, judicial, mili- tary, and commercial; butfrom this date, 1614, their meetings were discontinued. Richelieu had recourse to a different kind of council, called the Assemblji of jS'otable.--', consisting of noblemen, prelates, judges, magistrates, and a small number of the principal citizens, all named by the king himself. The constitu- tional Legislature remained in abeyance for mijre than a century and a half, until it once more met at the memorable crisis of 1TS9. After this brief sketch of the history of the States-General, something must be said as to the mode of electing the deputies, and the c induct of their proceedings. The right of siuumoning tlie States belonged, as already stated, to the king alone, in .spite of all efforts that had been made to establish regular meet- ings at fixed intervals. Letters patent were addressed for this purpose to the royal bailtis and governors of provinces, specifyiug the cause, time, and place of the proposed meet- ing. The baillis and governors gave notice to the nobility and clergy, who thereupon at once elected their representatives by a direct nomination. The deputies of the commons., however, were chosen in a different manner. The peasants, assembled in their villages un- der the presidency of the privots .and other g.ivernment officials, named the electors, to whom they intrusted their cahiers, or lists of grievances. The electors met afterward at the chief town of eacli hailliagc, examined the cahiers of the pprsantry, and drew up from them one general cahier for the ivhole elec- toral district. They then proceeded to name the deputies who were to form the Tiers Etat in the States-Gener.al. Their ?iMJ7(bcr varied from time to time, and was of little import- ance, inasmuch as in all cases of a division the votes of the assembly were taken hy or- ders, and not individually. Besides the mem- bers thus elected, the ministers of tlie crown had seats in the States-General by virtue of their office ; the same privilege was also cUiim- ed by the municipality (coinirui.'e) of I'aris, the University of faris, and the judges of the Parlianient. When the king held a lit dc junticL\ the princes nf the blond, the peers of France, and all the grand functionaries of the court were likewise entitled to be present. At the first sitting of the assembled States the sovereign generally appeared in person, and opened the proceedings with a few formal words, after which the Chancellor of France made a harangue setting forth at length the piu-poses of the meeting. The president of each order replied, the nobles and clergy re- maining seated and covered during his speech, while the commons stood up and bared their heads. The three orders then retired to their separate chambers, and commenced the com- position of their cahiers de doleanccs. The memorials forwarded bj- the bailliages were reduced to twelve, being the number of the great governments of the kingdom, viz., the Isle of France, Normandy, Picardy, Cham- pagne, Brittany, Burgundy, Lyonnais, Dau- pliine, Provence, Auvergne, Languedoc, and Guienne ; and out of these twelve one caliier was ultimately formed by each of the estates, to convey to the king the joint expression of their wishes, complaints, and counsels. A second royal sitting was next held for the presentation of these cahiers; after which the assembly separated, without waiting for any replytfrom the crown to its demands. A pecuniary vote was usually obtained from the deputies before their dismissal. Hence it ap- pears that the States-General never exercised in any i-eal sense the functions of a delibera- tive and legislative body ; they simply otfercd suggestions to the monarch, which he accept- ed or rejected as he thought proper. Legisla- tion proceeded from the crown alone ; if any regard was paid to the voice of popular opin- ion, this was a matter of condesceyision., or of expediency and policy, on the part of the su- preme power. It is thought probable that in primitive times each separate ^JTOvince of France pos- sessed its local states, which were held reg- ularly every year, and voted the taxes and subsidies recjuired for the public service. In process of time the greater part of these pro- vincial assemblies were superseded by the States-General ; some of them, however, con- tinued to subsist, and were not aboli -hed till the outbreak of the Revolution. The prov- inces which preserved their states were those of Languedoc, Brittany, Burgundy, Provence, Dauphine, Artois, Flanders, and Bjarn. 'J'liese were styled, in consequence, 2W//s d'e'n!^■^, the other parts of the kingdom being called, in contradistinction, jiays u'e'ectioil. One of the best works of reference on the subject of the States-General is that of M. Rathery, Histoire dcs Elats Generaux., Paris, 1S45. Chap. XIII. GENEALOGICAL TABLE OF VALOIS-OELEANS. 281 w O S3 S w c o A-:, ° a. -^ c -t^ — t.; ■~S o"^"^ a o '^^i'^ ^ a S'Sd g^„^s . 1498-1589. CHAPTEE XIII. LOUIS XII. 3498-1515. § 1. Louis XII. ; his Character; his Marriage with Anne of Brittany. § 2. Louis invades and conqnevs the Milanese ; Battle of Novara ; Captivity and Death of Ludovico Sforza. § 3. Treaty of Louis and Ferdinand the Catholic for the Partition of Naples ; Conquest of Naples ; Rupture be- tween Louis and Ferdinand ; Defeat of the French. § 4. Marriage of the Princess Claude with Francis of Angouleme ; Reconciliation of Louis with Ferdinand of Spain. § 5. League of Cambrai ; Battle of Agnadel. § 6. War between Louis and Pope Julius II.; the "Holy League." § 7. Gas- ton de Foix; Battle of Ravenna; the French evacuate Italy; Death of Julius II. § 8. Treaty between France and Venice ; Battle of La Riotta ; the English invade Picardy; Battle of the Spurs. § 9. Peace with Spain and the Empire ; Marriage of Louis to the Princess jNIary of England ; his Death. § 1. The Diikc of Orleans, who succeeclec! Cliarles YIII. iindei- the title of Louis XII., was grandson of the duke assas^^inated by A.D. 1498, 1499. MARRIAGE OF LOUIS AND ANNE. Jean sans Peur in 1407, and great-grandson of King Charles , . The new king possessed considerable talent and energy of charac- ter ; he ascended the throne in the prime *of life, and soon render- ed himself popular among all classes by his singular moderation, tact, and judgment. His former rival, Anne of Bourbon, yvas at once distinguished by special marks of his favor and regard ; La Tremouille, the general by whom Louis had been taken prisoner (see p. 272), was confirmed in all his dignities, and preferred to commands of the highest trust and importance. The magistrates of Orleans, who sent a deputation to ask pardon of the king for indignities Avhich he had suffered while a prisoner in that city, were dismissed Avith the generous and celebrated answer that '' it did not become the King of France to resent the injui'ies of the Duke of Orleans." Louis appointed as his principal minister, im- mediately on his accession, George d'Amboise, cardinal archbfshop of Rouen, who had been the attached friend of his early years ; the other chief officers of the crown were retained in their posts. The widowed Queen Anne, who had always shown herself proudly jealous of her ancestral inheritance as Duchess of Brit- tany, retired to Nantes soon after the death of her husband, and resumed the independent government of the duchy. By the terms of her marriage-contract she was bound to espouse the successor of Charles, supposing his hand to be free ; but Louis was in no condition to demand the fulfillment of the promise. Jeanne, his Avife, to Avhom he had been united by the crafty policy of Louis XL,Avas still alive, and, though unfortunately deformed in person, was a princess of great merit and stainless reputation. Tliey were without children ; and it therefore became absolutely necessary, if Brittany was to be preserved to the French crown, to procure a dissolution of the marriage. Application was made to the Pope for a divorce; and Alexander, avIio was not a man to hesitate at any infamy, provided he obtained his price, readily agreed to pro- nourwce the desired sentence in return for certain honors and re- wards to be conferred upon his son Caesar Borgia. That young prince, who had just renounced his place in the college of cardi- nals, Avas immediately created Duke of Valentinois in Dauphine, Avith a munificent pension ; and after a scandalous trial before three papal commissioners, the decree annulling the king's mar- riage Avas published on the 17th of December. On the 6th of January, 1499, Louis wedded Anne of Brittany in the chapel of the castle at Nantes. Anne, ever firmly tenacious of her heredit- ary rights, stipulated on this occasion that the second child of the marriage, Avhetlier male or female, should succeed to the duchy of Brittany ; that, in case of the queen's dying Avithout heirs before the king, Louis .should retain the duchy during his life, but that 284 LOUIS Xir. Chap. XIII. afterward it slioukl revert to the descendants of its ancient line of native princes. The whole patronage and administration of tho duchy "were to remain exclusively in the hands of the queen. § 2. No sooner was this important affair concluded than Louis began ,to make preparations for prosecuting the supposed rights of his house in Italy, bequeathed to him by his predecessor. He laid claim not only to the throne of Naples, but also to the duchy of Milan, as the representative of his grandmother ValentinaViscon- ti, only daughter of the last duke of that family — a title more than questionable, since Milan had been originally granted to the Vis- -conti with an express provision excluding the succession througli females. Admonished by the example of Chai"le§ VIII., Louis took his preliminary measures with great circumspection and prudence. He had already purchased the concurrence of the Pope ; and by successive negotiations, skillfully conducted, he secured either the co-operation or the neutrality of the Emperor Maximilian, of Fer- dinand of Spain, of Venice, Florence, and Savoy. Matters being in this promising train, the French army, led by Stuart d'Aubigny and Trivulzio, crossed the Alps in August, 1499, and descended on the plains of Lombai'dy without opposition. Ludovico Sforza, isolated and defenseless, was totally unable to arrest their prog- ress ; and finding himself hemmed in between the Venetians and the French, had no resource but flight. He retreated precipitate- ly to the Tyrol, and claimed the protection of Maximilian, with whom he was connected by marriage. The French generals en- tered Milan in triumph on the 14th of September, without having fired a hostile shot. Louis, charmed with this brilliant success, made his appearance in Milan on the 6th of October, and remained there severat weeks, exercising all the rights of sovereignty, and doing all in his power to consolidate his conquest. But he had scarcely returned to France when symptoms of irritation appeared among the Milanese, occasioned by the injudicious and oppressive conduct of Trivulzio, whom the king had appointed viceroy of the duchy. A revolt was quickly organized : the population of Milan rose in a body on the 25th of January, 1500, and expelled Trivulzio from the city. Lu- dovico Sforza, at the head of a large force of Swiss mercenaries, reappeared in the field at the same nT,oment, and recovered his capital. Louis displayed remarkable vigor and prompatude in this emergency. The Cardinal d'Amboiso and La Tscmouille were dispatched instantly to Lombardy Avith strong re-enforce- ments, including a body of 10,000 Swiss, and Ludovico and his troops were blockaded in Novara. The Swiss, at this time at the height of their military reputation, and accounted tlie best toot-sol- diers in Europe, composed more than the half of both the Hostile A.D. loOd, 1501. TREATY FOR THE PARTITION OF NAPLES. 285 armies. On finding themselves ai-rayecl against each other, they showed great reluctance to engage ; and the leaders of the contin- gent in the service of Ludovico, gained over by bribes from the French generals, at length consented, to their deep dishonor, to betray the unfortunate Ludovico to his enemies, and then retire under a safe-conduct to their own country. Ludovico v^^as arrest- ed and sent into France, where Louis had the cruelty to immure him in one of the dismal cachots in the castle of Loches. He lan- guished fourteen years in captivity ; and on being informed of his restoration to freedom at the end of that time, expired from the effects of the sudden shock on his worn and shattered frame. Mi- lan was now tranquillized under the rule of a more prudent vice- roy, and became a province of the P^rench empire. § 3. But the ambitious views of Louis we're directed to a far- ther object of more difficult achievement — the annexation of Na- ples to his crown. The main obstacles to this enterprise were the power, ability, and strong counter-pretensions of Ferdinand the Catholic, by whom this splendid acquisition had already been torn from the feeble grasp of Charles VIII. Fearing to place himself in open antagonism to this formidable potentate, Louis conceived the design of securing his friendship and co-operation by arrang- ing with him an equal partition of the contemplated spoil. By a singular coincidence, the same idea had suggested itself at the same moment to the mind of Ferdinand. The two monarchs were not long in coming to an understanding ; and by the treaty of Gi-anada (signed November 11, 1500) it was covenanted that Na- ples should be invaded simultaneously by the armies of France and Spain, and that the kingdom, when subdued, should be divided between the conquerors — Louis taking possession of the northern provinces, with the title of King of Naples and Jerusalem, while the southern part of the peninsula, Apulia and Calabria, Avas to fall to the lot of Ferdinand. In pursuance of this compact — one of the worst instances of deliberate barefaced treachery to be found in history — the French army, under Stuart d'Aubigny, marched from Lombardy in the end of May, 1501, and, without encounter- ing any obstacle, reached Kome on the 25th of June. Here the Pope, whom the two monarchs had induced to become an accom- plice in their iniquitous scheme, announced by a bull the depriva- tion of Frederick of Naples, and transferred his dominions, as a fief of the Holy See, to the sovereigns of France and Spain. Gon- salvo of Cordova, who commanded the Spanish forces, threw off the mask at the same moment, and acqwainted the unhappy prince, who had received him unsuspectingly as an ally, with the real ob- ject of his presence in Ital3\ Fi-ederick saw at once that resist- ance was useless, and resigned himself magnanimously to his fate. 286 LOUIS XII. Chap. XIII. Preferring to surrender to an openly-declared foe than to a per- jured kinsman and perfidious ally, he opened communications with d'Aubigny, and made an arrangement by which he ceded all his sovereign rights at Naples to the royal house of France. Fred- erick, having delivered up his capital and the chief fortresses of the kingdom, was permitted to embark with his family for France, Avhere Louis conferred upon him the county of jSIaine, with a year- ly pension of 30,000 livres. Here he resided in obscurity for nearly three years, and died at Tours in 1504. The kingdom of Naples now lay at the feet of the confederates ; but, as might have been foreseen, it was not easy to settle the de- tails of the partition-treaty, and disputes soon arose about the di- vision of the spoil. Tliese disputes led to open hostilities in the summer of 1502 ; and in the following year Gonsalvo gained two decisive victories over the P^rench. He followed np his success ly marching at once upon Naples, and, after a brief resistance, took possession of that capital on the 14th of May. The fortresses of Venosa and Gaeta, together with a few other towns of less im- portance, were all that now remained in the hands of the French. Louis, though astounded and highly irritated by these sudden reverses, was by no means disheartened, and used every exertion to provide the means of renewing the contest. He raised, Avithin a few months, no less than three new armies, one of which was destined to invade Spain by Fuenterabia, the second attacked Koussillon, while the third, commanded by the veteran La Tre- mouille, was dispatched aci'oss the Alps to efi^ect a junction with the broken remnant of the army of Naples. At this crisis occur- red the death of Pope Alexander VI., by a sudden and well-merit- ed catastrophe, befitting the enormous crimes and scandals of his life. La Tremouille and his forces were now detained for several weeks in th.e Roman States by the ambitious intrigues of the Car- dinal d'Amboise, Avho strove by intimidation and bribery to obtain his elevation to tlie pontifical chair. This delay proved fatal to the French expedition. La Tremouille was attacked by malaria, and resigned his command ; the Marquis of Mantua, who succeed- ed him, though a brave soldier, was of inferior talent as a general. He relieved the garrison of Gaeta, but, having lost much time aft- erward through hesitation and the setting in of the rainy season, was attacked at a disadvantage by Gonsalvo on the banks of the Garigliano on the 27th of December, 1503 — a day memorable for one of the most terrible disasters that ever befell the French arms. The fugitives were pursued? to Gaeta, which place surrendered on the 1st of January, 1504, on condition that all the French remain- ing in the Neapolitan states, including the prisoners, should be al- lowed to return freely to France witli their arms and baggage. A.D. 1504-laOG. MARRIAGE OF THE PRINCESS CLAUDE. 287 Few, however, of these gallant soldiers regained their native land ; the greater part, including many superior officers, perished eitlier of their wounds, or from the effects of fatigue, privation, and cha- grin. A truce with Spain was immediately arranged ; but the inglorious discomfiture of his pi-ojects upon Naples was so acutely felt by Louis that it brought on an alarming illness, and at one time his life was despaired of. § 4. Still liankering after his lost ascendency in Italy, Louis concluded at Blois, in September, 1504, a triple treaty with the emperor and the Archduke Philip, the provisions of which, though designed to remain secret, shortly afterward transpired. By its first article the contracting parties formed a coalition against Ven- ice, which was to be stripped of large territories in Northern Italy and the Koraagna ; by tlie second, the emperor granted to Louis, for a payment of 200,000 francs, the investiture of the duchy of Milan, to descend, in default of male heirs, to the Princess Claude, already affianced to the young Prince Charles ; lastly, it was cov- enanted that the dowry of the French princess should consist of Brittany, Genoa, Asti, the county of Blois, and, in case of the death of Louis without heirs male, of the duchy of Burgundy in addition. The only explanation to be offered of a compact so manifestly prejudicial to the interests of France is the impaired state of health imder which Louis labored at this time. The queen, whose mind was set upon marrying her daughter to one evidently destined to become the most powerful monarch of his age, availed herself of her husband's feeble condition to urge, with extreme earnestness, the conclusion of the Austrian match ; but the popular voice, strongly opposed to that arrangement, made itself heard effectual- ly on this occasion ; and Louis, believing himself in extremity,, was prevailed on by the Cardinal d'Amboise to execute a will, direct- ing that, in accordance with the wishes of the nation, his daughter should be united to Francis of Angouleme, the heir presumptive to the throne. Upon the king's recovery from his illness this act "\¥as publicly proclaimed and renewed. The States-General (as- sembled at Tours in May, loOC) petitioned the king, whom they saluted by the enviable title of the "Father of his People," to give effect to a policy so cordially approved by the nation ; and, in spite of the queen's importunate remonsti-ances, the betrothal of the youthful pair was immediately celebrated at the chateau of Plessis. By thus breaking with Austria, Louis paved the way to- recon- ciliation with his successful opponent, Ferdinand of Spain, who cherished a mean jealousy of his son-in-law Philip, the heir of his dominions. Ferdinand, now a widower, proposed a marriage be- tween himself and a niece of the King of France, Germaine de Foix ; the offer was accepted, and Louis agreed to cede in favor 288 LOUIS .XII. Chap. XI fl. of the young princess all his claims to the sovereignty of Naples, which crown was to descend to the children of the marriage. Thus, by a singular revolution of policy, France and Spain found themselves united in a strict alliance, while the Emperor Maximil- ian, indignant at the offensive rupture of the treaties of Blois, ifi- trigued Avith eager animosity against Louis whenever an opportu- nity occurred of injuring his interests. § 5. Maximilian convoked a diet at Constance, and demanded subsidies for the purpose of expelling the French from Milan and re-establishing the dynasty of the Sforzas ; he labored to inflame the Venetians against Louis by revealing to the senate the terms of the treaty concluded against them at Blois ; and although that body steadily refused to join him in attacking a monarch with whom they were on terms of strict amity, they were induced to conclude, in June, 1508, a general truce, to Avhich the King of France was not invited to become a party. This slight irritated Louis, and is said to have been his motive for engaging in the series of obscure negotiations which followed, and which produced, towai-d the close of the same year, the cele- brated League of Cambeat. But it is evident that Louis had long before conceived hostile projects against Venice, since a com- bination for the purpose of humbling that proud republic had form- ed one of the principal stipulations of the treaty of Blois ; and there is no doubt that the real feeling which actuated all the par- ties to the league of Cambrai was an envious jealousy of the extra- ordinary wealth, power, and grandeur enjoyed by the " Queen of the Adriatic," and a determination to arrest her progress toward a more extended and predominant authority in Italy. The policy of Louis in this instance, as in so many othei'S, was most mistaken and unwise. ^ I'he power of Venice, to the possessor of the Milan- ese, was so far from being obnoxious or injurious, that it was high- ly advantageous, as proving a barrier against the ambition and en- croachments of Austria ; and, moreover, the Venetians had on va- rious occasions furnished Louis with valuable and effective sup- port in his wars in Lombardy. But his shortsighted eagerness to enlarge Italian territories by the acquisition of Brescia, Bergamo, and Cremona blinded the French monarch to these larger views of his true interest. The league against Venice was signed by the Cardinal d'Amboise and the Archduchess Marguerite, on behalf of Louis and Maximilian, on the 10th of December, 1508, and was joined immediately by the Fope, by Ferdinand the Catholic, and by the minor Italian states. In the beginning of April, 1509, Louis once more descended upon Lombardy at the head of a for- midable army, led by his ablest captains, among whom the mosl conspicuous was the heroic Bayard, tlie " chevalier sans peur et sans reproclie." Tlio Venetians were cumplcicly defeated on the A.D. 1510-1512, WAR BETWEEN LOUIS AND POPE JULIUS IL 289 14tli of May at the village of Agnadel, leaving 6000 men slain on the field. This single battle decided the campaign ; lii-escia, Ber- gamo, Crema, Cremona, siu'rendered in succession ; Peschiera, which otFered some resistance, was taken by assault, and all the garrison put to the sword. Before the end of May Louis had recon- quered all the ancient dependencies of the duchy of Milan, and even enlarged its limits ; he immediately afterward reci'ossed the Alps. Meanwhile the Imperialists gained considerable advantages in the eastern part of the Venetian territory ; the Pope recovered the towns he coveted in the Romagna, and all the confederates attain- ed the objects for which they had taken up arms. The Republic, bending before the storm, now recalled her garrisons from the Con- tinent, negotiated with the conquerors, and fortified herself on her inaccessible lagunes, awaiting the turn of events. § 6. The current of afiairs soon changed. Pope Julius IT., hav- ing gained all that he desired and expected from the league of Cambrai, gradually drew off from the French alliance, removed the interdict Avhich he had laid upon Venice, and recurred to his long-cherished project of driving the barbarians, as he termed the inhabitants of the countries beyond the Alps, from Italy. In- triguing, with restless activity, with Ferdinand of Spain, with Maximilian, with Henry VII I. of England, with the Venetians and the Swiss, the Pope succeeded at length in arraying all these pow- ers in combined hostility to France, and in the summer of 1510 informed Louis of his danger by suddenly dismissing his embassa- dors from Rome. The military operations of Julius, however, were of no great importance ; and the French commander. Mar- shal Trivulzio, attacked the papal forces under the Duke of Ur- bino near Bologna, and obtained a brilliant victory. Julius fled in consternation to Rome ; but Louis, instead of vigorously follow- ing up his advantage, forbade his generals to enter the Roman ter- ritory, and contented himself with referring his gi-ievanccs against the Pope to an irregular council chiefly composed of French bish- ops, Avhich met at Pisa, and was afterward transferred to Milan. Julius replied to these feeble proceedings by announcing the " Holy League" (October 9, 1511) between himself, Ferdinand the Cath- olic, and the Venetian Republic — a movement made ostensibly in order to maintain the supremacy of the See of Rome against the schismatical council of Pisa, but in reality for the purpose of recov- ering Bologna, and expelling the French definitively from Italy. § 7. Louis confronted this new danger Avith firmness and vigor, and gave the command of his forces to his nephew Gaston de Foix, duke of Nemours, a young otficer of distinguished promise and ability, then only in the twenty-third year of his age. The new general opened the campaign in Februai'y, 1512, by a sudden and N 200 LOUIS XII. CiiAi-.XIII. brilliant march to the relief of Bologna, which v\'as invested by the Spaniards. After surmounting extraoi'dinary difficulties, Gas- ton effected his entrance into the city ; the besiegers forthwith broke up their camp and retired. The French next made a suc- cessful attack upon the Venetians at Brescia ; the city Avas taken by storm on the 19th of February, and, after a fearful massacre of the inhabitants, was given up to wholesale pillage for seven days: the plunder is said to have been valued at three millions of crowns. The rapidity and importance of these exploits spread the fame of the youthful commander throughout Italy. The princes of the league, now strengthened by the adhesion of Henry VIII. of En- gland, redoubled their efforts, and labored, not without effect, to draw over the Emperor Maximilian from the French alliance to their own. Louis, perceiving that it was necessary to strike a great and decisive blow, instructed his nephew to invade the Ko- magna, a step which must inevitably bring on a general engage- ment. The army, hovvever, had become demoralized by the ex- cesses consequent upon the sack of Brescia, and several weeks elapsed before it was again in a condition to take the field. Early in April the impetuous Gaston advanced upon Eavenna at the head of 1600 lances and 18,000 infantry. The Spanish viceroy, Don Ramon de Cardona, hastened to the succor of that important city ; and the French general, finding himself hemmed in between the fortress and the camp of the enemy, resolved to abandon the siege, and challenged the allies to a pitched battle in the great plains surrounding Ravenna. Here, on Easter Sunday, April 11, 1512, was fought a desperate and memorable action, Avhich, al- though it shed additional lustre on the arms of France, failed to secure to Louis any permanent advantage in his struggle for Ital- ian dominion. The battle commenced with a murderous cannon- ade, sustained with equal vigor on both sides ; the Spanish and Italian cavalry then made a gallant charge against the P^rench in- fantry, but were repulsed and overthrown with tremendous slaugh- ter; many prisoners of rank, including the celebrated Pedro Na- varro, the Marquis of Peseara, and the Cardinal de' Medici, aft- erward Pope Leo X., remained in the hands of the French. The allies, having lost 12,000 of their number, at length commenced a retreat ; and a large body of Spanish infantry retired in perfect order along the road to Ravenna. The heroic Gaston de P'oix, carried away by the inconsiderate ardor of youth, resolved, if pos- sible, to intercept their escape, and i-ode furiously against them with a slender escort. He was instantly surrounded, hurled from his horse, and, having received no less than twenty wounds from sword and lance, met his death gloriously in the very arms of victory. " With him," says Guicciardini, " disappeared all the vigor of the PVench army;" and, in truth, it soon appeared that victory, A.D. 1512, 1513. TREATY BETWP:EN FKANCE AND VENICE. 291 purchased at such a price, was equivalent in its results to a de- feat. The brave La Falisse, who succeeded to the command, was altogether unable to make head against the leaguers, who were now- openly joined by the vacillating Maximilian. 20,000 Swiss, hired by the emperor, descended suddenly upon the Milanese, and Maximilian Sforza, son of the unfortunate Ludovico il Moro, was immediately proclaimed as sovereign of the duchy. La Falisse evacuated the Romagna in all haste, and fell back to defend the invaded province ; but he found himself pursued by misfortune ; his ranks were lamentably thinned by disaffection and desertion ; and after fighting a sanguinary action in the streets of Pavia, he placed garrisons in the fortresses of Milan, Cremona, and Novara, and with the remainder of his troops made the best of his way through Savoy into France. Italy was now once more wrested from the hands of her Trans- alpine spoilers. The papal troops easily reconquered the Romag- na; the dynasty of the Medici was re-established at France by the Spaniards under Cardona ; Genoa recovered her independ- ence ; Maximilian Sforza was recognized as Duke of Milan. The "Holy League" had achieved a complete and signal triumph ; and the intrepid Julius had the rare gratification of witnessing before his death the realization of the one supreme object to which he had devoted his reign. The Pope expired on the 24th of Febru- ary, 1513. § 8^. Notwithstanding these humiliating reverses, the obstinate pride and infatuated ambition of Louis impelled him to renewed efforts for the recovery of his ascendency in Northern Italy. In order to this, he reconciled himself with the Venetians, Jigainst whom he had formed the ill-advised and calamitous league of Cambrai four years before ; a treaty, offensive and defensive, be- tween France and the Republic, was signed on the 24th of March, 1513 ; the duchy of Milan was guaranteed to Louis ; and an aux- iliary force of 14,000 Venetians was to join his army as soon as it appeared in Italy. No sooner did the marshals Trivulzio and La Tremouillc approach Milan than the whole city declared by acclamation for tlie French, and expelled Maximilian Sforza, whcr, protected by a body of Swiss mercenaries, took refuge at Novara. The Venetians advanced from Verona, the towns in their line of march submitted in succession on the first summons, and the whole of the revolted duchy was momentai-ily recovered without firing a shot. La Tremouille, greatly elated, pressed forward to besiege the Swiss at Novara, and wrote boastfully to Louis that he would send Maximilian Sforza in chains to France, as he had sent his father Ludovico thirteen years before ; but the sturdy mountain- eers, actuated on this occasion either by sentiments of national 292 LOUIS XII. Chap. XIII. honor or by resentment against the French, made an obstinate and successful defense. Having been strongly re-enfbrced, they sur- prised the enemy's camp at La liiotta before daybreak on the 6th of June, 1513, and, though unprovided either with cavalry or ar- tillery, gained a brilliant victory. The redoubtable French gen- darmerie was for the first time completely broken, and fled from the field in iri'etrievable disorder. The discomfited marshals forth- with abandoned Lombardy, with the loss of their cannon and more than half their army ; and the duchy of Milan, with the exception of two or three fortresses, was again lost to France in a shorter space than it had taken to regain it. These disastrous events emboldened the enemies of France to make simultaneous demonstrations against her from various quar- ters. The treacherous Ferdinand assumed a menacing attitude on the frontier of Aragon ; Henry VHI. landed with 20,000 men at Calais ; the Swiss, flushed Avith their recent triumphs, invaded Fi'anche-Comte. The English army advanced in August, 1513, and sat down before the walls of Terouanne. They were here join- ed by the eccentric Emperor Maximilian, who, after contracting to serve in the ranks as a volunteer at the rate of 100 crowns a day, soon contrived to gratify his vanity by assuming the direction of the operations of the siege. A French force was dispatclaed to relieve Terouanne, under the orders of the Duke of Longueville, grandson of the gallant Dunois, and the illustrious Bayard. The two armies met on the 16th of August, betAveen Terouanne and Blangis, when, after a brief encounter, the French gendafmeric consulted their safety by a flight so precipitate that the day has become known in history as the " Battle of the Spurs." Longue- ville, Bayard, La Palisse, and other superior officers, after vainly striving to arrest the panic-struck fugitives, were compelled to surrender 'themselves prisoners of war. The capitulation of Te'- i'ouanne followed, after Avhicli the allied sovereigns proceeded to Tournay, and obtained easy possession of that city ; but a dispute with the vainglorious Maximilian now determined Henry to re- turn to England, and the campaign abruptly terminated. It was in the course of this same summer that the ftuthful and almost tlie only ally of Louis, James IV. of Scotland, Avas totally defeated and slain on the fatal field of Flodden. § 9. The king was now thoroughly weaiied of the protracted and harassing wars Avhich had filled up his whole reign. Early in the year 1514., upon the death of his consort Anne of Bi'ittany, to whom he was sincerely attached, he became anxious for a gen- eral pacification ; and, as a first step, reconciled himself with the new Pope, JjQO X., upon condition of repudiating the irregular council of Pisa, and acknowledging the title of Maximilian Sforza A.D. 1515. MARRIAGE AND DEATH OL' J.OUIS. 293 at Milan. This was soon followed by a treaty of peace with Spain and with the empire. Henry of England, who had at first declined to be a party to the treaty, yielded to the personal solici- tations of the Pope ; a treaty of alliance, offensive and defensive, between the two sovereigns, was signed on the 7th of August. The young Princess Mary, the sister of the English king, was mar- ried to the widowed Louis. But this hasty match was followed by unforeseen and melancholy consequences. The king, whose health was declining, had for some time restricted liimself to the simplest and most regular habits of life, dining early, and retiring to rest at sunset. In the society of his beautiful and light-hearted bride, he was now induced to engage in a round of exciting festiv- ities, ill suited to his years and infirmities ; his strength rapidly failed during the autumn, and he expired at the palace of theTour- nelles, in the fifty-fourth year of his age, on the 1st of January, 1515. In spite of his ill-advised wars and unsuccessful foreign policy, Louis XII. enjoyed great popularity among his subjects, and his loss was universally regretted. His internal administration enti- tles him to the praise of justice, clemency, a wise economy, and enlightened generosity in the patronage of the arts. His collec- tion of the judicial customs of France (" Code Coutumier") is one of the most important legislative monuments of the ancient mon- archy. Notwithstanding so many costly wars, the taille was di- minished during this reign by nearly one third ; and the strictest integrity and regularity were enforced in every department of the public revenue. Agriculture and commerce received at the same time a great and remarkable impulse ; and the general increase of the wealth of the nation became apparent in the superior elegance and luxury of domestic architecture, furniture, and dress. This was the period of the so-called Renaissance of the arts, es- pecially of architecture. Both Louis himself and his minister the Cardinal d'Amboise had become acquainted in Italy with the mas- terpieces of Leonardo da Vinci, Brunelleschi, and Bramante ; and encouraged to the utmost the spread of artistic taste, and the prac- tical imitation of these admirable models throughout France. Many of the most beautiful public edifices in the kingdom date from this epoch. Among them may be specified the Hotels dc Ville of Com piegne. Arras, and St. Quentin; the Hotel de Cluni at Paris ; and, above all, the Chateau de Gaillon in Normandy, and the exquisite Palais de Justice at Eouen, both the work of Fra Giocondo, an architect of Verona, who, at the invitation of the Cardinal d'Amboise, resided several years in France. The sumpt- uous monument of the cardinal, still to be seen in the Cathedral of Rouen, was executed by Roullant le Roux, a pupil of Giocondo. Francis I. (From medal in the Britisli Jluseum.) CHAPTER XIV. FKAKCIS I. A.D. 1515-1547. § 1. Accession of Francis I. § 2. Invades the Milanese; Battle of Marig- nano. § 3. Treaty with the Swiss; "Paix Perpetuelle ;" Concordat with Leo X. § 4. Accession of Chai'les V. to the Spanish Throne ; Treaty of Noyon ; Francis and Charles candidates for the Empire ; Election of Charles. § 5 Interview between Francis and Henry VIII. of England; "Field of the Cloth of Gold?" War with Spain; Invasion of Navarre by the French ; the French driven out of the Milanese. § G. Revolt of the Constable Bourbon. § 7. He defeats the French in Italy; Death of Bay- ard ; Invasion of France by the Constable ; his Repulse. § 8. Francis in- vades Italy ; his Defeat and Capture at the Battle of Pavia. § 9. Treaty of Madrid; Release of Francis. § 10. He evades the execution of the Treaty ; Renewal of the War ; Capture of Rome by the Constable Bour- bon ; Death of the Constable ; Disasters of the French in Italy. §11. Peace of Cambrai between Francis and Charles. § 12. Refoi'mation in France; Persecution of the Reformers. § 13. Rupture of the Peace of Cambrai; Charles invades Provence ; his Retreat; Death of the Dauphin ; Conclusion of Peace. § 14. Visit of Charles to France. § 15. Alliance between Francis and the Turks ; Success of the French in Piedmont ; In- vasion of Franceby Henry VIII. of England and Charles; Treaty of Peace. § IG. Persecution of the Protestants of Provence; Death cf Francis. § 1. As Louis XII. left no male issue, he was succeeded on the (hrone by Francis of Angouleme, duke of Valois, a prince de- scended, like himself, but collaterally, from the house of Valois- Orloans. The father of Francis, Charles, count of Angouleme, was first-cousin to the late king, and grandson of Louis of Orleans, assassinated by Jean sans Peur, Duke of Burgundy. (Sec Genea- A.D. 1515. INVASION OF THE MILANESE. 295 logical Table, p. 281.) His mother was the celebrated Princess Louisa, daughter of Philip, duke of Savoy. His hei-editary claims Avere strengthened by his union with the Princess Claude, eldest daughter of Louis XII. and Anne of Brittany ; and his personal qualities and accomplishments — his noble stature, his bravery, his proficiency in all chivalrous exercises, his affable manners and joy- ous temper — were precisely such as dazzle and captivate the pop- ular mind. His accession was in consequence not only undis- puted, but hailed with satisfaction and enthusiasm by all. Although the new king had reached his twenty-first year, he was still in complete subjection to his mother, a woman of decided talent, but of licentious conduct, and imperious, ungovernable tem- per. She was immediately created Duchess of Angouleme and Anjou, and the first appointments of the new reign wei'e made by her direction. Charles, duke of Bourbon, received the Constable's sword ; Antoine Duprat, Louisa's confidential friend and counsel- or, was made chancellor of the realm ; LaPalisse was advanced to the dignity of marshal; the management of the finances was given to Gouffier Boisy, formerly the king's preceptor. Marshal Lau- trec, of a younger branch of the house of Foix, was named govern- or of Guienne ; and his sister, the talented and fascinating Count- ess de Chateaubriand, became the mistress of the young monai'ch. § 2. The first thoughts of the high-spirited Francis were turn- ed, not unnaturally, to the reconquest of the duchy of Milan — the ancient claim of the Orleans family to that territory foi'ming a convenient handle for warlike enterprise beyond the Alps. Hav- ing renewed his amicable relations with Henry of England and the Venetian Kepnblic, Francis named his mother regent of the kingdom during his absence ; and in July, 1515, concentrated his army in Daupliine for the invasion of Lombardy. Sixty thousand men, with an immense train of artillery, Avere soon assembled un- der the ablest commanders of the day — the Constable Bourbon, Marshals Trivulzio and Lautrec, La Tremouille, and the immortal Bayard. The cause of Maximilian Sforza was defended by twenty thousand Swiss under the orders of the Roman general Prosper Colonna, who occupied the defiles of Mont Cenis and Mont Go- nevre, then considered the only approaches to that part of Italy practicable for an army. Eut the Fi-ench, with equal skill, cour- age, and perseverance, forced a new passage by Barcelonette and tlie rugged gorges of the Monte Viso, and thence descended on the friendly territories of the IMarquis of Saluces, having completely turned the left of the enemy's position. Prosper Colonna, with a considerable body of cavalry, Avas surprised and taken jirisoner on the 15th of August ; the Swiss, in utter consternation, fell back upon Novai'a ; and the invaders pressed forward Avilhout opposi- 29G FRANCIS I. Chap. XIV. tion to Turin. Negotiations were now opened with the Swiss, who engaged, in consideration of a large indemnity to themselves and the grant of favorable terms to Sforza, to evacuate Piedmont and sign a treaty of alliance with France. But the arrangement was scarcely concluded when suddenly a second Swiss army made its appearance from the side of Bellinzona ; the convention was unscrupulously broken off; and the Swiss commanders, uniting their forces, took possession of Milan. Marching from that city on the 13th of September, they encountered the French army at the village of Marignano, ten miles from the capital, and a desper- ate battle ensued, which raged from four in the afternoon till near Biittle of JIarigaano. (From bas-relief on the tomb of Francis I. at St. Denis.) midnight without decisive result. The conflict was renewed at break of day, when, after repeated efforts, the right wing of the Swiss was at lengtli broken through and put to the rout by the Constable and Pedro Navarro, in consequence of Avhich their whole line was compelled to retreat. At this moment the Venetian con- tingent came up, and began to take part in the fray ; upon which the Swiss gave up the contest, and precipitately abandoned the field, which was heaped with 10,000 of their dead. The victors lost GOOO men, among Avhom were several members of the noblest A.D. 1515, 1516. CONCOKDAT WITH LEO X. 297 families of France. The veteran Trivulzio, who had fought in eighteen pitched battles, declared that all the rest were child's play in comparison with Marignano, which he called " a combat of giants."' The young king, who had displayed the utmost gal- lantry, received knighthood on the field of battle from the honored hands of Bayard. The fidl of Milan was the immediate result of this great vic- tory. The city surrendered on the 4th of October. Maximilian Sforza renounced his claims to the dukedom ; and having accept- ed from Francis the offer of a liberal pension, retired peaceably into the French dominions, where he had stipulated for permission to reside. He died in obscurity at Paris fifteen years afterward. § 3. Other important consequences followed. Francis, who dur- ing the recent operations had leai-ned to appreciate and respect the martial prowess of the Swiss, resolved to spare no pains to secure their alliance, and offered them the same reasonable terms as be- fore his victory. The Swiss, smarting under their losses, and struck by the brilliant qualities and extraordinary success of the young conqueror, gladly responded to his overtures ; and by the treaties of Geneva (Nov. 7, 1515) and of Fribourg (Nov. 29, 1516), the Helvetian republic, hitherto one of the most formidable opponents of France, was converted into her faithful ally and powerful bul- wark. The latter treaty, known by the name of the " Paix per- petuelle," has verified its title better than most similar engage- ments of which history makes mention, having lasted without in- terruption from that day forward down to the overthrow of the French monarchy at the Revolution. Pope Leo X. showed himself no less anxious to conciliate the friendship of the sovereign of France. Conditions of peace were soon agreed upon. Leo guaranteed to Francis the possession of the Milanese, and surrendered Parma and Placentia, after which he invited the king to a personal interview at Bologna. LTere they fidly discussed the delicate topic of the relations between the Gal- lican Church and the Papal See — relations which had remained ill an unsettled and unsatisfactory state ever since the commence- ment of the reign of Louis XI. Francis left the details of the ar- rangement to be adjusted between the Pope and the Chancellor D 11 prat ; and the result was, that in the course of the year 15 IG the celebrated " Concordat" was signed between the courts of France and Rome. By this treaty the Pragmatic Sanction was formally abolished, and the king acquired the right of presentation to all bishoprics and other ecclesiastical dignities, including even the papal reserves and reversions ; the Pope, however, retaining a veto upon any nominee who might be disqualified according to the canons. On the other hand, Francis surrendei'ed to Leo and his N2 Wf 298 FRANCIS I. Chap. XIV. successors the "annates," or first-fruits, being one year's revenue of every benefice to which he presented. He also made some im- portant concessions as to the authority and convocation of nation- al and provincial councils. This singular compact — by which, as Mezeray remarks, the Pope abandoned to the civil power a purely spiritual privilege, and re- ceived in retui'n a temporal advantage — was a serious abridgment of the popular liberties in France, and an immense step toward the absolute despotism of the crown. As such, it was received by the PVench people with general indignation ; the Parliament of Paris, though commanded to register it by the king in pei'son, refused compliance, and appealed to a future council of the Church, to which alone the cognizance of such matters belonged ; nor was it till after lengthened delays that the decree was at length ac- cepted (Mai'ch 22, 1518), and then only under stringent protest, and with a distinct statement that it was done by the positive command of the king. Notwithstanding this forced submission, the operation of the concordat was for many years successfully eluded; chapters and convents continued to fill up vacant sees and abbeys by free election ; and on appeal to the courts of law, their nominees were confirmed in opposition to those of the sov- ereign. At length, in 1527, a royal edict appeared, by which the cognizance of all ecclesiastical causes was summarily withdrawn from the Parliament and transferred to the Council of State. This produced a sullen acquiescence in the new law ; but it remained none the less distasteful to the mass of the nation, and was the object of repeated protests and remonstrances during several suc- cessive reigns. § 4. On his return to France the king received intelligence of the death of Ferdinand the Catholic (January 23, 151C), and the accession of Charles of Austria to the Spanish throne. Charles assumed the reins of government at a moment of much embar- rassment and agitation, and his quicksighted tact pointed out at once the importance of cultivating the good-will of the French monarch. Hence it so happened that the first transaction be- tween these two princes, whose fierce rivalry Avas destined to en- tail upon Europe one of the most desolating struggles it had ever known, was a treaty of peace and alliance. The articles were signed at Noyon, August 13, 1516. This treaty was quickly fol- lowed by pacific arrangements with the emperor and the King of England, and a final period was thus put to the destructive wars engendered by the nefarious League of Cambrai. The Venetian Kepublic issued from this bloody strife with diminished jjower but with untai-nished honor. The close of the year 1516 presented the rare spectacle of pro- A.D. 151G-1520. ELECTIOX OF CHARLES. 299 found tranquillity throughout the western states of Europe. For something more tlian two years no event occurred to disturb the general repose ; but the death of the Emperor Maximilian, in January, 1519, stirred up afresh the elements of discord; for the ambitious Francis, who had cherished for some time the proud vision of a restoration of the empire of Charlemagne, now an- nounced himself a candidate for the imperial diadem, in opposi- tion to Charles of Spain. Francis made unscrupulous use of every means of influencing the electors : " I will spend three mil- lions of crowns," he wrote to his embassador at the Diet, " to gain my object." At first his pi-ospects seemed extremely favorable ; he received the absolute promise of four votes, a majority of the college. But on the day of election different views and interests prevailed. The crown was first tendered to the Elector Frederick of Saxony; that prudent prince, however, declined the dangerous honor, and gave his vote, accompanied by a speech of warm rec- ommendation, to Charles of Austria. The rival of Francis was ac- cordingly declared successor to the empire, and was styled thence- forward Charles the Fifth (July 5, 1519.) Previously to the election Francis had expi^essed himself in the most courteous terms to the embassadors of Charles, observins that their master and himself were two lovers contending for the hand of the same mistress, and that, as only one candidate could be successful, the loser must by no means bear malice against his fortunate competitor. Yet it is certain that, as soon, as the event was known, the French king, forgetting his own lessons of moder- ation and equanimity, assumed from that day forward a menacing and hostile attitude toward the new emperor and the house of Austria. Indeed, apart from his recent personal mortification, the enoi'mous power thus suddenly concentrated in the hands of a single foreign potentate was a legitimate ground of jealousy and apprehension to one in the position held by Francis. He could not but see that France must sooner or later enter the lists against this gigantic adversary, and either successfully hold her own in the contest, or sink, in her humiliation, to a very secondary place among the nations of Europe. § 5. The two rivals, for such they soon became undisguisedly, courted at the same moment the friendship and alliance of the King of England. Here Francis was forestalled by the superior promptitude of Charles ; the emperor landed at Dover, without invitation, on the 26th of May, 1520, and held confidential inter- views both with Henry and with his minister Wolsey, then in the plenitude of his favor and authority. The cardinal had hitherto inclined toward the cause of France ; but the wily Charles con- trived, during this brief visit, to win him over to his own. Wolsey 300 FKANCIS I. Chap. XIV. aspired to the chair of St. Peter ; the emperor promised to assist him by exerting all his vast influence and resources toward the gratification of liis ambition. He also treated him with flattering distinction, and loaded him Avith magnificent presents. Immedi- ately after the emperor's departure Henry and his favorite pro- ceeded to hold a conference with Francis at an appointed spot between the towns of Ardres and Guines, which has received, from the gorgeous scene there enacted, the title of the " Field of the Cloth of Gold." The series of fetes which ensued, extending over eighteen days, were on a scale of unprecedented and fabulous splendor ; but the English monarch, although Francis exhausted every art to captivate him, seems rather to have been piqued and offended by a display of wealth, elegance, and luxury which eclipsed that of his own court; and, in spite of much exhibition of jovial good-fellowship, and profession of fraternal regard and confidence, the interview proved abortive as a means of political advantage. Before he recrossed the Channel Plenry a second time met the emperor at Gravelines ; and with such address did Charles im- prove the opportunity, that he won from the English king a promise to conclude no public engagement hostile to the imperial interests, while, at the same time, he flattered him by proposing that, in case of a rupture between himself and Francis, the points in dispute should be referred to the decision of England, thus placing Henry in the proud position of arbiter of the peace of Europe. The storm so clearly foreseen on both sides burst forth in the spring of 1521, when a French army passed the Pyrenees and in- vaded Navarre for the purpose of aiding Henry d'Albret to recov- er the throne of that kingdom, of which he had been deprived some years before by Ferdinand the Catholic. It was during the siege of Pampeluna by the French in this campaign that a young offi- cer of Guipuzcoa, actively engaged in conducting the defense, re- ceived a severe wound which confined him for many weeks to his bed, an occurrence which proved the turning-point of his subse- quent extraordinary career. This gallant soldier, soon to reappear upon the scene in a very different and far more influential character, was none other than Ignatius Loyola, founder of the Order of Jesus. Hostilities had broken out in the course of the same year in the Milanese, the most valuable and precarious of the possessions of Francis. Marshal Lautrec, the French governor, had made him- self odious to the inhabitants by his exactions and severities; he was, moreover, without the means of paying his Swiss mercenaries, the only force upon which he could rely for defense. The remit- tances destined for this purpose were seized by tlie vindictive Lou- isa of Savoy, who had conceived a spite against Lautrec, and were A.D. 1521-1523. REVOLT OF THE CONSTABLE BOURBON. 301 appropriated to her own use. Meanwhile a secret compact had been entered into by the Pope and the emperor for the purpose of once more expelling the French from the soil of Italy. Their combined forces took the field in October, 1521, and obtained pos- session of Milan ; but the death of Leo X. on the 1st of Decem- ber disconcerted for a time the movements of the confederates. The campaign of the following year was disastrous to the French. Lautrec was defeated with great loss, and the French obliged to surrender all their places in the Milanese except Novara and Cre- mona. Thus the long-contested duchy of Milan was, for the third time within twenty years, violently severed from the crown of France. Henry of England, swayed by the counsels of Wolsey, now open- ly espoused the cause of the emperor, and declared war against France in May, 1522. § 6. Affairs were in this position when an unfortunate event occurred, which proved in its consequences more injurious to the cause of Francis than any defeats hitherto inflicted on him by the united efforts of his enemies. The Constable, Charles, duke of Bourbon, at this time the most powerful subject in France, had acquired his vast possessions and exalted rank by his mai-riage with Susanna, the heiress of the elder branch of the house of Bour- bon. His great talents, distinguished ceui^age, and many brilliant qualities, made him an object of admiration to the unprincipled Louisa of Savoy ; and upon the death of the Duchess Susanna, the former princess, although considerably older than the Consta' ble, made him a proposal of marriage. Her overtures were re- pelled with haughty and insolent disdain ; and Louisa, giving the reins to all the passionate vengeance of an offended woman, vow- ed from that moment to effect his ruin. In concert Avith her crea- ture the Chancellor Duprat, she laid claim, in June, 1523, to the entire patrimony of the house of Bourbon, as being the nearest surviving relative of the late duke: she was, in fact, the daughter of his sister, Margaret, duchess of Savoy. The king at the samo time demanded certain appanages which had reverted to the crown by the death of the late Duchess Susanna ; and a royal edict stripped the. Constable of all the revenues belonging to his office. .Jiourbon, thus driven to extremity, suddenly executed a desperate design which he seems for some time to have meditated in secret; he renounced his allegiance to his lawful prince, abandoned his service, and made common cause with the enemies of France. By a treaty concluded with the agents of the emperor, it was agreed tliat the Constable should take the command of an army destined to invade France from the side of Germany, while at the same moment a Spanish force was to cross the Pyrenean frontier, and 302 FRANCIS I. CiiAi'. XIV. the King of England, to whom the scheme had been communica- ted, was to make a descent upon Normandy and Picardy. Farther stipulations assured to the recreant Bourbon an independent sov- ereignty formed out of Dauphine and Provence, together with the hand of the emperor's sister Eleanora in marriage. § 7. The defection of the Constable, and the advance of the English under the Duke of Suffolk to St. Omer (August, 1523), determined Francis not to quit his kingdom; he would not, how- ever, relinquish his designs upon the Milanese, and intrusted the army of invasion to the Admiral Bonnivet, a man of little merit and no talent, who owed his favor with the king to his graceful person and insinuating manners. Bonnivet trifled away the au- tumn in false manoeuvres, and his army suffered dreadfully from cold and hunger during an unusually severe winter. With the re- tui-n of spring he found himself opposed to the redoubtable Charles of Bourbon, who had made his escape from France, and was now lieutenant general of the emperor in Italy. Crossing the Ticino Avith a superior force, Bourbon forced the French to fall back upon Novara ; Bonnivet continued his retreat toward Gattinara, and in a combat on the Sesia received a severe wound, which compelled him to resign the command to the Chevalier Bayard and the Count de St. Pol. A desperate struggle followed, in the course of which the noble Bayard, having I'esisted for some time the whole strength of the enemy, and thus secured the retreat of the French army, was mortally Avounded by a musket-shot in the loins. He caused himself to be placed at the foot of a tree, with his face still turned toward the enemy, and in this position calmly prepared himself for death. The Constable }5ourbon rode up soon afterward, in hot pursuit of his flying countrymen, and addressed the expiring hero in words of respectful sympathy. " I am no object of compassion," returned Bayard ; " I die as becomes a soldier and a man of hon- or ; it is yourself who are to be pitied — you who have the misfor- tune to be flghting against your king, your country, and your oath." Three hours afterward he breathed his last, honored and deeply la- mented alike by friend and foe (April 30, 1524). The French now hastily abandoned Lombardy, and regained their own territory by the pass of Mont Genevre. The Constable liourbon, whose implacable vengeance made him ■ the soul of the coalition against Francis, obtained permission of the emperor, in the course of the same summer, to attack France on the frontier of Provence. His army crossed the Var early in July, and having reduced Frejus, Toulon, Aix, and other towns, on the 19th of August commenced the siege of Marseilles. This attempt pi-oved signally unsuccessful ; the place Avas obstinately defended, and amply sup])lied with pj-ovisions by the fleet. Fran- A.D. 1524, 1525. I'KANCIS INVADES ITALY. 303 cis assembled a powerful armyjigt Avignon ; and an assault having been repulsed with severe loss, the Imperialists raised the siege of Marseilles on the 28th of September, and made a hurried retreat across the border, closely pursued by the t'rench. § 8. Francis, instead of following the enemy along the coast, now resolved, with excellent judgment, to attempt by forced march- es to gain Milan by the route of Piedmont before Bourbon could arrive to relieve it. So rapid were his movements, that he appear- ed before Milan on the 2(3th of October, and entered the city at one gate while the Spanish garrison marched out at the opposite side. But, unfortunately, instead of vigorously following up his advantage, the French monarch was induced to form the siege of Pavia, which Avas defended by the famous Spanish general Anto- nio de Leyva. Three months were fruitlessly consumed before this fortress — an interval which the imperial commanders employ- ed in rallying and reorganizing their army. Bourbon obtained re- enforcements from Germany, with which he joined De Lannoy ar.d Pescara at Lodi ; and their concentrated forces, marching from that place on the 25tli of January, 1525, advanced toward li:c French camp at Pavia. La Tremouille, La Palisse, and other vet- eran captains, now counseled Francis to raise the siege, and take up a strong position so as to give battle with advantage in the open plain; but this advice was overruled by the king's favorite, Bon - nivet, and it Avas resolved to await the enemy's onset' in front of Payia. For three weeks the two armies remained in presence without movement on either side. At length, on the 24th of February, 1525, the imperial leaders, having ascertained that the French had been considerably weakened by the desertion of a corps of Swiss mercenaries, made an attack upon the line of Francis. The battle which ensued was hotly contested, but ended in the to- tal defeat of the PVench. Francis himself, when he saw that all was lost, turned to tly ; but four Spanish musketeers threw them- selves upon him, and, his horse having fallen under him, the king •lay at their mercy. He was now recognized by one of the follow- ers of the Duke of Bourbon, and compelled to surrender his sword to the Viceroy Lannoy, who presented him with his own in ex- change, and treated him with the utmost respect and delicacy. Upward of 8000 Frenchmen perished on this disastrous day. All the most distinguished generals — the Marshals La Tremouille, La Palisse, and Lescun, Louis d'Ars, the Duke of Longueville, Ad- miral Bonnivet, and Richard de la Pole, the last descendant of the royal house of York — were slain on the spot. Henry d'Albret, king of Navarre, the Marshal INIontmorency, Fleuranges, and the Count St. Pol, remained prisoners with the king. The loss of the victors is said not to have exceeded 700. 304 FRANCIS I. Chap. XIV. The captive monarch Avas conducted to the castle of Pizzighit- tone, near Milan, and thence wrote a letter to his mother describ- ing his misfortunes, though not, as it would appear, in those la- conic terms which have* become so widely celebrated through the narrative of the Pere Daniel.* § 9* The news of the defeat at Pavia was received in France with indescribable alarm and dismay. The Kegent Louisa displayed in this emergency remarkable intelligence, resolution, and activity. She opened communications v/ith Henry of England, with the Pope, with Venice, with Florence, and even witli the Turkish sultan ; and such were the apprehensions excited in Europe by the colos- sal power and recent triumph of the emperor, that these diplo- matic exertions were not made in vain. Henry signed, in August, 1525, a treaty of neutrality and defensive alliance Avith France, engaging to use every effort to obtain the liberation of the king, but exacting of the regent that the boon should never be purchased at the price of any territorial dismemberment of France. This example Avas quickly followed by a secret league between England, the Pope, Venice, and Francesco Sforza, having for its object the complete deliverance of Italy from the imperial yoke. Charles, on hearing of his victory, affected at first great modesty and forbearance, and expressed the kindest sentiments toward his fallen rival. But this Avas mere pretense. The terms which he proposed, Avhen at length induced to treat for peace, AA'ere beyond measure harsh and exorbitant : he demanded the restitution of Ikirgundy and all other possessions of Charles the Bold ; the erec- tion of a separate kingdom for Charles of Bourbon ; the restora- tion to Henry VIII. of all territories in France rightfully enjoyed by his ancestors ; and, lastly, that Francis should unite Avith the empire in an expedition against the Tui'ks, furnishing an army of 20,000 men. Francis indignantly declared that he Avould rather die in prison than accept conditions Avhich Avould leave him King of France only in name. At the same time, conceiving that Charles Avould be more likely to listen to reason if he could confer Avith liim in person, he expressed a desire to be transferred to Madrid. This Avas at once assented to, and Francis, embarking at Genoa, reached Valencia toward the end of June, and proceeded to the capital, Avhere he Avas lodged in a gloomy tOAver of the Alcazar. Charles maintained an ominous reserve ; he came not to visit his royal prisoner ; and Francis, chafing with impatience and disap- pointment, began to yield to despondency, and was soon attacked by serious illness. The emperor noAv seemed to relent, and re- vived the hopes of the sufferer by granting him a personal inter- * See Captivity du Roi Francois 1«"', by M. Champollion, p. 129. The king's letter is of considemble lc'ni;th. A.D. 152G. FRANCIS EVADES EXECUTING THE TREATY. 305 view; but lie continued to insist without abatement on the condi- tions already signified ; and the result was, that Francis, driven to despair, resolved on the extreme step of abdicating his throne in favor of his son the dauphin, and actually drew up and signed an instrument for this purpose. But his spirit becoming broken by the rigors of his lengthened confinement, he was unable to per- severe in this design; and on the 14th of January, 1526, he sign- ed, under a secret protest which permitted him to violate it at pleasure, the humiliating treaty of Madrid, by which he ceded to Charles Burgundy, Flanders, and Artois, renounced all claim to Milan and Naples, restored to the Constable all his forfeited do- mains, and engaged to attend the emperor with a fleet and army when he Avent to be crowned at Home, or marched against the in- fidels. The two elder sons of Francis were to be given up as hos- tages for the fulfillment of the treaty ; and in case Burgundy should not be transferred to Charles within four months, the king bound himself to return in person to captivity. On the 18th of March, 1526, Francis crossed the Bidassoa, and once more set foot on the shores of his own kingdom. Springing on horseback, he exclaimed triumphantly, "I am again a king!" Then starting at full speed, he scarcely drew bridle till he reached Bayonne. § 10. The king's first impulse and endeavor was to evade the execution of the recent treaty, Avhich, in virtue of the circumstances under which it was signed, he professed to regard as null and void. Being pressed by the Viceroy Lannoy to fulfill his engagements with respect to Burgundy, Francis replied by summoning at Cognac a meeting of deputies from that duchy, who declared, in the presence of the Spanish envoys, that the king had no right to alienate the province from his crown ; that his coronation oath made such a step impossible ; and that nothing should ever induce them to re- nounce their integral union Avith the kingdom of France. The king, however, announced himself ready to give efi^ect to all the other stipulations, and, in lieu of the cession of Burgundy, offered the emperor an indemnity of two millions of croAvns. Charles, thus finding himself duped, broke out into violent reproaches, up- braided Francis Avith a flagrant breach of faith and honor, and re- quired him, if he had any value for his pledged Avord as a knight and a sovereign, to surrender himself once more a prisoner. Fran- cis treated the summons Avith total unconcern ; he hastened his al- liance Avith the Pope, the Duke of Milan, and the Venetians, Avhich was soon published under the title of the " Holy League ;" and obtained from Clement VIL, as one of its provisions, a formal ab- solution from all oaths and engagements entered into with the em- peror during his personal constraint at Madrid. 306 FRANCIS I. Chap. XIV. Thus it became evident that all the questions in dispute were once more to be submitted to the arbitration of the sword. Bour- bon, to Avhom Charles had promised the investiture of the duchy of Milan, took the command of the imperial troops in Lombardy in July, 1526 ; and being feebly opposed by the incapable Duke of Urbino, the general of the league, soon drove Francesco Sforza out of Milan. The French king exhibited none of his wonted en- ergy and daring ; it seemed as if his nerves had been paralyzed by the shock of his recent humiliation. He abandoned himself to pleasure, and to the fascinations of a new mistress, the'Duchess of Etampes. Bourbon failed not to profit by this inaction to strength- en his position in Lombardy. His army was paid by the most cru- el exactions from the inhabitants of Milan ; and having obtained a re-enforcement of 14,000 German lansquenets, he found himself far superior to any force that could be brought against him in It- aly. He pushed his advantage to the utmost. His German sol- diery, inflamed by the novel doctrines of Luther, clamored to be led against the Pope ; Bourbon either could not, or would not restrain their fanaticism ; and Europe now beheld the strange and scandalous spectacle of a direct attack upon the head of the Church made in the name and by the armies of the chief among the prin- ces of Christendom. Marching from Milan in January, 1527, in the depth of a rigorous winter, the imperial general took the road to Florence ; the Duke of Urbino concentrated his troops to de- fend that city; and Bourbon, making a detour toward Bologna, crossed the Apennines and invaded the States of the Church, al- though Clement had already concluded a truce with the Viceroy of Naples, and disbanded the greater part of his forces. Swelled by a multitude of adventurers and bandits scarcely less barbarous than the hordes of Alaric and Attila, the army of the emperor ar- rived under the walls of Kome on the 5th of May, and the next morning at daybreak advanced to the assault. Bourbon insisted on planting the first ladder with his own hands ; but scarcely had he set his foot on it when he was struck by a musket-shot. in tlie side, and fell back into the fosse mortally wounded. • His infuri- ated followers terribly avenged his fall ; they stormed the ram- parts, slaughtered the feeble garrison, and the Eternal City Avas thus abandoned to the lawless will of the bloodthirsty victors, and became for the space of seven months a scene of merciless vio- lence, pillage, and destruction. The helpless Pope was treated Avith gross indignity, and closely imprisoned in the Castle of St. Angelo. Charles, Avith grotesque hypocrisy, professed the deep- est distress at the misfortunes of the holy fother, and ordered pub- lic prayers in all the churches of Spain for his deliverance. Upon the news of tlie sack of Rome, Avhich excited universal A.D. 1528. DISASTERS OF THE FRENCH IN ITALY. 397 horror, the kings of France and England renewed their friendly- engagements, and agreed upon a joint expedition to effect the lib- eration of the Pope. Lautrec was dispatched into Lombardy at the head of 900 lances and 20,000 infantry, and rapidly gained possession of Alessandria, Pavia, and Genoa, after which he march- ed southward, and on the 29th of April, 1528, made his appear- ance before Naples. Charles, alarmed by these energetic move- ments, restored the Pope to liberty upon payment of a ransom of 250,000 ducats, together with a promise to do nothing contrary to the imperial interests in Italy. The French army now formed the blockade of Naples, while a Genoese fleet, commanded by a nephew of the famous Doria, engaged the Spaniards off Salerno, and inflicted on them a serious defeat. Every thing promised fa- vorably for the cause of Francis ; but a fatal act of indiscretion, on this as on so many other occasions, soon stripped him of all his advantage. The great Genoese admiral, Andrea Doria, who had already, in many a severe encounter, proved himself the able and faithful ally of France, petitioned Francis to restore to his native city certain franchises and commercial privileges deeply affecting its prosperity. The king, misled by his ignorant and corrupt fa- vorites, not only negatived his request, but even sent out a French officer to supersede him in his command, and place hini under ar- rest. Doria, justly indignant, forthwith passed over to the service of the emperor with his whole squadron. The French were now outnumbered by the Spanish naval force, and found themselves un- able to maintain the blockade of Naples. Provisions were con- veyed to the garrison by sea, while at the same time a terrible ep- idemic disease broke out in the camp of Lautrec, and that brave general himself fell a victim to its fury. The Marquis de Saluces, succeeding to the command of an army already half destroyed by pestilence, threw himself into Aversa, where he was soon com- pelled to capitulate, and he and all his officers surrendered them- selves prisoners of war. Scarcely 5000 soldiers, out of 30,000 whom Lautrec had led to Naples, survived to re-enter France. To make the disaster more complete, Doria, returning to Genoa with his victorious fleet, excited a revolutionary movement in that city, expelled the French, and restored the republican form of gov- ernment, of which he himself became the head, under the protec- tion of the emperor. French influence was never re-established at Genoa from that time till the era of the great Revolution. § 1 L The war had now lasted with scarcely any intermission for upward of eight years. France was exhausted by her immense losses and sacrifices; and even the king himself, reluctantly ad- mitting the superiority of his great rival, began to feel that lie had small chance of making good his pretensions on the Italian side of 308 FRANCIS I. CiiAP. XIV. the Alps. Charles, on his part, threatened on one side with the outbreak of an insurrectionary war among the German Protest- ants, and harassed on the other by the bold aggressions of* the Turks under their Sultan Solyman, was by no means indisposed to a termination of hostilities in the West, especially since his recent successes. Under these circumstances, a meeting was arranged in July, 1529, at the imperial city of Cambrai, between Marguerite of Austria, regent of the Netherlands, the emperor's aunt, and the Duchess of Angouleme, mother of the King of France ; and with- out the intervention of any other agents, these fair diplomatists signed, after a month's deliberation, the conditions of a definitive peace, Avhicli has become celebrated as the "Paix des Dames." The treaty of Madrid Avas taken as the basis of the new arrange- ment, but with one important modification : Charles forbore to in- sist on the cession of Burgundy, and accepted from Francis the in- demnity formerly offered of two millions of crowns. In all other jDoints the terms remained unaltered ; and Francis consequently made an absolute surrender of all his rights in Italy, yielded up Flanders and Artois,' bound himself to engage in no projects hos- tile to" the emperor, Avhether in Italy or elsewhere, and to assist Charles, when called upon, Avith a fleet and a subsidy of 200,000 crowns. The young French princes, Avho had been kept as hos- tages in Spain, Avere to be immediately restored ; and Francis Avas to celebrate at once his marriage Avith Eleanora, queen doAvager of Portugal, sister of the emperor. These two latter articles Avere not carried into effect till July, 1530. The peace of Cambrai Avas a severe humiliation to a prince so ambitious, so proud, and so sensitive on the point of honor as Francis I. Italy, the rich prize for which France had been so pertinaciously struggling during three successive reigns, Avas thus finally abandoned to the rival house of Austria, and remained from that day to the time of Napoleon I. either subject to the dominion or to the predominant influence of the German emper- ors. Francis, by consenting to this treaty, entailed on himself a fatal loss of prestige and reputation, not only from the severe terms imposed on him, but because he meanly sacrificed all his allies to the necessity of obtaining peace. § 12. It Avas during the interval of tranquillity procured by the treaty of Cambrai that the attention of Francis Avas first seriously called to that extraordinary movement of the human mind Avhich resulted in the ever-memorable Keformation. The novel doctrines first broached in Germany had spread Avith rapidity into the neigh- boring countries, and so early as tlie year 1521 the heresy of Lu- ther had been condemned by a solemn sentence of tlie Faculty of Theology at Paris. The innovators took refuge at INIeaux, Avhere A.D. 1534, 1535. PERSECUTION Oi' THE EEFORMEES. 309 they "were protected by Bri9onnet, bishop of that see, a prelate full of the reforming spirit ; and under his influence, the king's sister Marguerite, afterward Queen of Navarre, conceived a strong at- tachment to the party. They also found a pow^erful patron in the king's favorite mistress, the Duchess of Etampes. The authorities, both lay and clerical, soon took the alarm, and resorted to extreme measures of persecution. Francis himself was by his natural dis- position inclined to tolerance ; but the representations and coun- sels of Duprat, who had entered into holy orders and had been lately named a cardinal, led him to change his policy ; and taking- advantage of a popular commotion at Paris, caused by the prof- anation of an image of the Virgin, the king ordered several exe- cutions both in the capital and the provinces. Louis de Berquin, a man of station and considerable learning, who had translated some important treatises of Luther and Erasmus, Avas condemned at this time by tlie Parliament of Paris, and burnt as a heretic on the Place de Greve. But, in spite of these severities, the ferment still continued to increase. In 1534, the fanatics, inflamed by the example of the Anabaptist insurrection at Miinster, proceeded to great lengths of audacity and insolence ; they covered the walls of Paris with violent tirades against the mass and transubstantia- tion, and one of these placards was even found posted up in the bedchamber of Francis in the castle of Blois. This insult pro- duced a fresh and still more ruthless persecution. Li January, 1535, the king presided at a solemn ceremonial of expiation at Paris, after which six wretched victims were committed to the flumes Avith horrible refinements of torture; a machine had been invented by which they Avere alternately loAvered into the fire and AvithdraAvn again, so as to prolong their sufferings to the utmost. These cruelties Avere continued during several months; until at length Francis, finding it advisable to cultivate the friendship of the Lutheran princes of Germany in the prospect of a renewed conflict with the Emperor Charles, Avas induced to relent, and ad- dress a manifesto to the sovereigns of the Reformed states full of professions of moderation and clemency. In truth, the intense hatred borne by Francis to the emperor and his dynasty — the great master-spring of his conduct — involved him in continual in- • consistencies and contradictions. We find him, under the impulse of this motive, alternately negotiating Avith the Protestant leaguers of Smalcalde, courting the alliance of the Pope, cultivating inti- mate relations with Henry of England, and CA-en concluding friend- ly treaties Avith the infidel Sultan of Constantinople. These anom- alous proceedings Avere all prompted by the same principle — that of endeavoring to Aveaken and isolate his adA^ersary, Avhile he strengthened himself for a recommencement of their deadly strife. 310 FKANCIS I. Chap. XIV. By way of propitiating the favor of the Pope, Francis proposed a marriage between his second son, Henry, duke of Orleans, and Catharine de' Medici, daughter of the late Duke of Urbino, and a relative of Clement. The Pope, flattered by the oifer of so splendid a family connection, testified his satisfaction by proceeding in per- son to France to celebrate the nuptials ; and this union, fraught with such memorable consequences, took place at Marseilles on the 28th of October, 1533. The advantages, however, which Francis had expected from this alliance with the sovereign pontiff were not destined to be realized ; Clement VII. died in the following year, and Paul III., his successor, was by no means disposed to join the cause of France in opposition to the emperor. The Protestant leaders, meanwhile, had learned with indignant liorror the atrocities pi'acticed by the king's orders against their brethren at Paris. From that moment they showed themselves des^irous to effect an accommodation with the emperor; and sev- eral treaties follovi^ed, by which Charles conceded their principal demands, and the cause of the Reformation was greatly advanced in Germany. Francis perceived his error, but it was too late to repair it. lie hastened to Avrite to the German princes in appro- bation of the Confession of Augsburg; he invited Melancthon to take up his residence in France ; he even published an edict re- storing to liberty all persons imprisoned for holding the Keformed doctrines ; but Avas never able to regain the confidence he had for- feited by his fluctuating policy and savage intolerance. § 13. The first act tending to a rupture of the peace of Cam- brai was committed, or at least instigated, by the emperor. The Duke of Milan, Francesco Sforza, having shown a desire to culti- vate the good-will of the King of France, Francis had sent a con- fidential agent, named Maraviglia, to reside at Milan. The em- peror, on discovering this, remonstrated angrily with Sforza, and insisted on the dismissal of the envoy. The duke dared not dis- obey; Maraviglia was suddenly arrested on an unjust and frivo- lous pretense, thrown into a dungeon, and beheaded without trial (July 6, 1533). Francis, beyond measure indignant, appealed to the powers of Europe against the outrage, and determined to avenge it by force of arms. War was not immediately declared ; but in the summer of 1535 Francis suddenly advanced a claim, without a shadow of justice, to the duchy of Savoy, and poured his forces into that country, as a prelude to an invasion of the Milanese. At this moment Francesco Sforza died, leaving no lieirs, and the duchy of Milan reverted to Charles as an imperial fief. Francis forthwith sent to demand the investiture for his second son, the Duke of Orleans ; the emperor replied by offering to grant the duch}' to the Duke of Angouleme, third son of A.D. 1535. • CHARLES INVADES PROVENCE. 3II Francis, but upon condition that the French troops, which liad al- ready overrun the whole of Savoy and Piedmont, should at once evacuate those territories. These terms were rejected, and both parties prepared for the inevitable prosecution of hostilities. Charles, whose recent triumphs had inspired him with unbound- ed self-confidence, expressed the utmost disdain for the military resources and tactics of his adversary, and, vowing that he would bring the King of France as low as the poorest gentleman in his dominions, he crossed the Var and invaded Provence, at the head of 50,000 men, on the 25th of July. The French army, led by the Constable Montmorency, took post at Avignon, which com- mands both the Rhone and the Durance. The population was ordered to retire into the fortified towns ; property and provisions of all kinds were hastily withdrawn, and the entire district in the route of the advancing enemy was then mercilessly laid waste by the French themselves, so that Provence presented in the course of a few days the most deplorable spectacle of desolation. Flour- ishing towns — G-rasse,'^Digne, Draguignan, Antibes, Toulon — were set'on fii-e and reduced to ashes ; the inhabitants fled to the mount- ains, where thousands perished from exposure, privation, and hun- ger. The march of the invaders was unopposed ; but it became every day more and more diiRcult to subsist the troops, and on reaching Aix, the capital, where he had intended to take tri- umphant possession of the kingdom of Provence, Charles found it, to his great dismay, totally depopulated and abandoned ; every thing had been removed or destroyed that could be of the slightest use or value to a conqueror. Famine, and its never-failing con- sequence, contagious disease, soon made fearful havoc in the im- perial ranks. It was attempted to besiege Aries and Marseilles ; but in each case the assailants were beaten off with severe loss ; and the emperor, hearing at this moment of the arrival of Francis in his intrenched camp before Avignon, and apprehending an at- tack with overwhelming numbers, reluctantly gave orders to com- mence a retreat. Such a movement, under such circumstances, must needs be disastrous ; the army, already miserably wasted by the pestilence, became disorganized ; and before Charles reached the frontier on the 25th of September he had lost at least half his entire force. From Genoa he set sail for Spain, with feelings con- siderably lowered from that tone of contemptuous and reckless arrogance with which he had entered the French territory only two short months before. It was during this campaign that Francis had the misfortune to lose his eldest son, the dauphin. The young prince expired somewhat suddenly at Tournon on the lOtli of August; and his father, in the bitterness of his grief, accused the emperor, without 312 FRANCIS I. 'Chap. XIV. the smallest proof or probability, of having procured his removal by poison. The Irapei-ialists, in their turn, charged the crime, no less absurdly, on the young Duchess of Orleans, Catharine de' Medici. The dauphin's death was in fact occasioned by drinking immoderately of iced v^^ater after heating himself at the game of tennis. One of the officers of his household, the Count Montecu- culi, fell a victim to the king's groundless suspicions and vindictive rage : the rack forced from him an avowal that he had been sub- orned by the emperor, and he was executed with cruel tortures as a traitor. The Duke of Orleans now succeeded his brother as dauphin and heir-apparent to the throne. Hostilities were carried on during this and the following year in a desultory manner, and Avithout results of any great import- ance. The humane exertions of Pope Paul III. at length suc- ceeded in bringing about an accommodation. He repaired in per- son to Nice, and became the medium of communication betAveen the two belligerents, who declined to meet each other even in his presence. Such were the pride and obstinacy on both sides, that a definitive peace was found impracticable ; but a truce for ten years was signed on the 18tli of June, 1538, in virtue of which each sovereign was to retain all of which he was actually in pos- session. This arrangement left the emperor master of the Milan- ese, Avhile Savoy and the greater part of Piedmont remained in the hands of the French. Shortly after this pacification the two mon- archs held an interview, upon the invitation of the emperor, at Aigues Mortes in Provence, where, in strange and sudden contrast to so many years of bitter personal animosity and sanguinary Avar- fare, they lavished on each other every mark of friendship, es- teem, and confidence. § 14. The result of the good understanding thus established soon appeared in a change in the policy of Francis. He withdrew his countenance from the Protestants, broke oiF his relations with Henry Vin., and ceased to cultivate the alliance of the Ottoman Porte. Pertinaciously bent on his favorite object, the acquisition of the duchy of Milan, he sought in every Avay to conciliate and gratify the emperor ; and the revolt of Ghent, in 1539, presented an opportunity of conferring an obligation on his ancient rival which he was not slow to embrace. The rebellious burghers sent a deputation to the king, promising, in retui-n for his support, to restore the sovereignty of France in Ghent and other cities of Flanders. Francis not only rejected the temptation, but imme- diately informed the emperor of the transaction, and offered him an honorable passage through France, in case he should desire to take that route in proceeding to the Netherlands. The proposal was gladly accepted. The emperor crossed the liidassoa ; and A. D. 1540-1544. ALLIANCE WITH THE TURKS. 3I3 Francis sent the dauphin and the Duke of Orleans, together with the Constable Montmorency, to meet him at Bayonne. Through- out his journey, wliich was made by slow stages, he was welcomed with acclamations and entertained with splendid festivities. Fran- cis himself received him at Loches, and they entered Paris in com- pany on the 1st of January, 1540. It was on this occasion that the court fool of Francis inscribed the emperor's name at the head of the members of his own fraternity — a distinction which he said that Charles had merited by his rashness in venturing into France. " And how if I should allow him to depart freely ?" inquired Fran- cis. "In that case," returned the jester, "I shall erase the em- peror's name, and put yours in its place." The king was indeed urged by several confidential advisers, among others by the Duch- ess of Etampes, to detain his rival, now that he had him in his power, and insist upon full satisfaction for all his demands. Fran- cis, however, acted on this occasion as became a man of honor and generous feeling. He trusted his imperial guest, and exacted no security beyond his word ; and Charles, accompanied by the king as far as St. Quentin, pursued his journey in safety to the frontier, and reached Ghent on the 6th of February. But when the em- bassadors of Francis requested his imperial majesty to give effect to the engagements so lately entered into Avith their master, he protested that he had promised nothing, and Francis found him- self an object of ridicule for his blind credulity. Deeply morti- fied and incensed, he seems to have resolved from that moment on I'enewing the war at the first opportunity. § 15. A few months later, Charles, on his side, took a decisive step toward a rupture by conferring on his son Philip the investi- ture of the duchy of Milan. Francis now formed an alliance with the Turkish Sultan Solyman, and in 1542 declared war against the emperor. The celebrated Algerine corsair Barbarossa, with 110 ships of war, joined the Fi-ench fleet, under the Count d'Enghien, at Marseilles, in May, 1543 ; and Christian Europe beheld with amazement this strange association of the lilies of France with the ensigns of the infidel. The confederates advanced in August to besiege Nice, the only remaining fortress of the Duke of Sa- voy. Nice surrendered, and was sacked and burnt in spite of the capitulation ; and Barbarossa, after wintering at Toulon, set sail for Constantinople, carrying with him no less than 14,000 Christian slaves Avhom he had captured by piracy on the Italian coasts. In Piedmont the arms of France were at length crowned with something of her ancient glory. The Count d'Enghien attacked the Imperialists at Cerisolles on the 14tli of April, 1544, and gain- ed a brilliant and complete victory. The enemy lost upward of O 314 FRANCIS I. CiiAi'.XIV. 12,000 men, and tlieir artillery, standards, stores, and baggage re- mained in the hands of the victors. Unfortunately, the state of affairs in other quarters was such as to prevent Francis from following up this advantage. The King of England, who had been for some time vacillating in policy, de- clared for the emperor, and signed a treaty with him in February, 1543, by which it Avas agreed that the two sovereigns should march simultaneously upon Paris, and, after taking possession of that capital, make a partition of the kingdom of France between them. Henry VIII. landed at Calais in July, 1544, with 30,000 men, and laid siege to Montreuil and Boulogne ; while the emperor, invad- ing at the same moment the frontier of Champagne, attacked the town of St. Dizier-sur-Marne. This small town nobly resisted for six weeks the efforts of the whole imperial army, and hence gave Francis time to concentrate a powerful army, with which he cov- ered the approaches to the capital ; and although the Imperialists, after the fall of St. Dizier, advanced on the road to Paris as far as Meaux, they did not venture to hazard an attack on the greatly superior forces which opposed them. They now abandoned their forward movement, turned northward, and encamped at Crespy, near Compiegne. Here Chai'les opened negotiations with Fi'ancis, and the terms of a definitive peace were arranged between them on the 18th of September. It was agreed to make mutual resti- tution of whatever had been taken since the truce of Nice ; and the King of France renounced once more his rights to Naples and his sovereignty in Flanders. The emperor, on his side, engaged to bestow in marriage on the Duke of Orleans either his own daugh- ter Mary, with the Netherlands for dowry, or a daughter of his brother Ferdinand, with the investiture of the duchy of Milan ; the choice to be determined by the emperor within four months. Savoy was to be surrendered by France at the same time that the treaty of marriage should be cai-ried into effect. Lastly, the two sovereigns bound themselves to make strenuous and combined ex- ertions for the welfare of the Church, and the re-establishment and propagation of the one true faith. This latter article contains probably the explanation of the emperor's policy in granting terms so advantageous to France. The Eeformation was advancing Avith rapid strides ; and Charles felt that, if the torrent of innovation was ever to be effectually arrested, it could only be by strict union and vigorous co-operation among the powers which remained faithful to the ancient system. He had already arranged with the Pope the project of convoking a general council for the restora- tion of peace to the Church, and, now that the main obstacle to its meeting was removed by the reconciliation between himself and Francis, it was summoned to assemble at Trent in tlie follow- ing year (1545). A.D. 15^6, 1547. PERSECUTION OF THE PEOTESTANTS. 315 By a singular fatality, the Duke of Orleans was carried off by a contagious malady within a year after the peace was concluded, and thus the questions in debate between France and the empire, which had already cost Europe so many years of bloody and dis- astrous conflict, were once more reopened in all their extent. Henry VIII., who, after a lengthened siege, had succeeded in re- dncing Boulogne, refused to be included in the ti'eaty of Crespy, and hostilities therefore continued between England and P^rance. The dauphin attempted unsuccessfully to recover Boulogne ; and in 1545 Francis equipped a numerous fleet at Havre de Grace, with which he made a descent upon the Isle of Wight. Several naval combats took place, with indecisive result ; neither energy nor skill were displayed on either side ; and after another year of fruitless warfare Henry signified his willingness to treat for peace. By tho terms, signed on the 7th of June, 1546, the King of England en- gaged to restore Boulogne within eight years, for a payment of two millions of crowns. Henry, however, did not live to execute this treaty. Pie expired a few months later, in January, 1547. § 16. Francis disgraced the concluding years of his reign by measures of the most barbarous severity towai-d the unfortunate Protestants of Provence. The Vaudois, as they were called, a simple, inoffensive, and loyal population, inhabited a few obscure towns and villages in the vicinity of Avignon and Aix. Orders were suddenly sent down to the Parliament of Provence, in Janu- ary, 1545, to exterminate these helpless peasants, who were de- nounced as dangerous heretics ; and the sentence was at once ex- ecuted with a ferocious cruelty unparalleled in history. Three towns and twenty-two hamlets were totally destroyed ; three thou- sand of their inhabitants, among whom were numbers of women and children, unresistingly butchered in cold blood ; seven hund- red condemned for life to the galleys. Similar horrors were re- newed in the following year at Meaux, where sixty of the Reform- ed Church, all mechanics or peasants, were sentenced to various degrees of rigorous punishment, and fourteen were burnt together at the stake. Such wex'e the first fruits of the late compact be- tween the French king and the emperor, which inaugurated a great and vigorous reaction toward Catholicism, to be maintained at whatever price and by the most odious means. The only excuse for P>ancis, if excuse it can be deemed, is the fact that his temper had now become soured and morose, and his intellect overclouded and debased, by a painful malady, the result of his licentious hab- its, under which he had labored for several years. This distemper gradually undermined his constitution, and at length brought him to his grave. P^ancis breathed his last at the chateau of Kambouillet on the 31st of March, 1547, in the fifty^r 316 FRANCIS I. Chap. XIV. third year of his age and the thirty-third of his reign. In his parting counsels to his successor he enjoined him to exclude Mont- morency from all posts of authority, and, above all, to curb with a strong hand the rising power and ambition of the Guises. " Thi-ee of this monarch's deeds," says Marshal Tavannes, "have justly procured for him the title of Great : the victory of Marig- nano, the restoration of letters, and his single-handed resistance to the combined powers of Europe." The besetting fault of the administration of Francis I., and that which led to his most serious revei'ses, was that of allowing him- self to be controlled, even in the most important affairs, by female influence, and by shallow-minded and incapable favorites. His mother, Louisa of Savoy, in the earlier part of the reign, ruled the state at her pleasure ; and to her must be attributed the treason of Bourbon and the loss of the Milanese. Madame de Chateau- briand established a shameful traffic in appointments of all kinds — military, political, and civil — by which the public service became miserably corrupt. The Duchess of Etampes leagued with the Duke of Orleans against his father and the dauphin, and was base enough to reveal the king's secrets to the emperor at the most critical period of the war. The elevation of such men as Bonni- vet and Montmorency to posts for which they were manifestly mi- fit betrayed a similar weakness, and produced equally pernicious results. With regard, however, to the great leading feature of his reign, the war with the house of Austria, it must be allowed that Fran- cis displayed a sagacious conception of the real interests of France, and well deserves the reputation generally accorded to him as one of her greatest monarchs. The enormous power and formidable pi'ojects of the empei-or threatened the independence not only of France, but of all Europe. Francis struggled for near thirty years to vindicate and preserve that independence ; and to have main- tained a contest so severe and so protracted, leaving France at the close of it not only undiminished, but even augmented in territory, resources, and renown, is no ordinary praise. The title of " the Father of Letters and the Arts," by which this prince is popular- ly known in history, points to another and a nobler sphere of ac- tion, in which he undoubtedly merited the admiration and grati- tude of France and of the civilized world. Francis was an ener- getic and munificent promoter of that great intellectual revival which was one of the most memorable characteristics of his age. He was the friend, protector, and patron of the learned Bude, or Buda3us, the first Greek scholar of his day ; of Scaliger, and of the famous printer Robert Stephens ; of the satirist Rabelais, and the Calvinist poet Clement Marot ; of the painters Leonardo da Vinci, A.D. 1547. LIBERALITY OF FRANCIS. 317 Andrea del Sarto, Salviati, and Primaticcio ; of the sculptors Ben- venuto Cellini and Jean Goujon. The public edifices of the reign are so many splendid monuments of the glories of the Renaissance. MVe owe to the liberality of Francis, and the skill and taste of his artists, the sumptuous palaces of Fontainebleau, St. Germain, and Chambord ; and the smaller but exquisitely elegant chateaux of Chenonceaux, Azay-le-Eideau, Villers-Cotterets, and Anet. Francis was also the founder of the Royal College of France, or Trilingual College, for gratuitous instruction in languages, mathe- matics, philosophy, and the physical sciences. The king edeavor- ed, but without success, to induce the celebrated Erasmus to ac- cept the presidency of this institution. 318 HOUSES OF LORRAINE AND GUISE. Chap. XV. O O 3 o .S ^ p-> rjo 'd S "-"^ H q5 fl rH rt -fl — ^■i ^'3 « .- ^ QJ _Q) o ^3 50 'K hJ IS ■a- cu ^'O .!- ° f-' ^5 t: g 'S.-S o ■.= .;;:; f Fort de la Tournelle, Paris. CHAPTER XV. HENRY II. A.D. 1547-1559. § 1 . Influence of the Guises ; their History. § 2. Betrothment of Mary, Queen of Scots, to the Dauphin ; Renewal of the War with Charles V. ; Alliance with the Protestants of Germany. § 3. Metz, Toul, and Verdun conquered and annexed to France. §4. Treaty of Passau; Siege of Metz; Repulse of Charles. § 5. Abdication of Charles V. ; Expedition of the Duke of Guise into Italy ; its Failure ; Defeat of the French by the Duke of Savoy. § 6. Capture of Calais by the French. § 7. Peace of Cateau- Cambresis ; Death of Henry. §8. Progress of the Reformation in France. § 1. Henky II., who ascended the throne in the twenty-ninth year of his age, possessed several of the defects, together with few of the excellent redeeming qualities, of his father. He was a prince of dull understanding and feeble character; his sole ac- complishment consisted in a remarkable expertness in bodily ex- ercises. Disregarding the death-bed admonitions of his father, he abruptly dismissed the ministers of the late reign, and gave his entire confidence to the Constable Montmorency and to Francis, count of Aumale, afterward Duke of Guise. Their influence, however, was equaled, if not overbalanced, by that of Henry's mistress, Diana of Poitiers. This lady, the widow of the Count de Breze, grand seneschal of Normandy, had preserved her dis- tinguished beauty at the mature age of forty-eight, and exercised an almost absolute ascendant over her lover. The young queen, Catharine de' Medici, remained throughout the reign neglected and without autlioritv. 320 HENRY II. Chap. XV. The family of Guise, which now began to occupy so prominent a position in the state, was a younger branch of the sovereign house of Lorraine, and had for its founder Claude, first Duke of Guise, the fifth son of Kene II., duke of Lorraine. This prince, who married a daughter of the house of Bourbon, and served with high distinction in the wars of Francis I., left seven sons, the eld- est of whom, Francis, succeeded him as Duke of Guise, while Charles, the second, became Archbishop of Reims, and afterward Cardinal of Lorraine. His eldest daughter, Mary of Lorraine, married James V. of Scotland, and at the time of the accession of Henry II. possessed a large share in the government of that king- dom during the minority of her daughter, Mary Stuart. Being descended, through females, from the princes of Anjou, the Guises maintained vague pretensions to the inheritance of their ancestors, including even the throne of the Two Sicilies and Jerusalem. In addition to these -advantages of illustrious lineage and lofty con- nections, both Francis of Guise and his bi'other the cardinal were men of remarkable capacity, though of very different dispositions. The duke was an able military commander, a bold and sagacious politician, and of a frank, candid, magnanimous character; the churchman was slu'ewd and subtle, learned, eloquent, and insinua- ting, and possessed consummate powers of dissimulation. Every thing concurred to place them among the foremost statesmen of the age. § 2. The policy of the Guises, conceived with boldness and abil- ity, tended strongly toward a renewal of the contest with the em- peror ; and although Charles had now reached the summit of his prosperous fortunes, and had recently gained the decisive victory of Muhlberg over the Protestant princes, the ministers of Henry actively intrigued against him in various quarters, and made prep- arations which showed that they were fully detei'mined upon war. Some time elapsed, however, before hostilities were declared ; and during this interval the Guises skillfully profited by their family connection with the royal house of Scotland to establish the com- plete ascendency of the French alliance in that country. The young queen, Mary Stuart, was already promised in mar- riage to Edward VI. of England ; but when summoned to fulfill the treaty, the queen dowager and the Regent Arran, Avho, as Cath- olics, were strongly opposed to the Protestant connection, returned an absolute denial. The Protector Somerset enforced his demand by marching an army into Scotland, and the Scots w^ere totally de- feated at* the sanguinary battle of Pinkie. But this victory, in- stead of furthei'ing the views of the English court, only determined the regent and his council to throw themselves on the protection and demand the armed assistance of France. ]Mary of Lorraine negotiated with her brotlier, and, as both parties had at heart the A.D. loi7-1551. HISTORY AND POLICY OF THE GUISES. 321 game object, it was soon arranged that the Queen of Scots should be affianced to the Dauphin Francis, eldest son of Henry, and should be sent to reside and be educated in France until the pe- riod of her marriage. A French squadron entered the Frith of Forth in June, 1548, and, having landed a body of troops, sailed round the northern coasts of Scotland, and took on board the young queen and her suite at Dumbarton Castle. The flotilla then ti^av- ersed St. George's Channel, and arrived in safety at Brest. This proceeding, which opened a direct prospect of the annexation of the crown of Scotland at some futui*e day to that of France, was immediately followed by a rupture between Henry and the En- glish ; and the French king, invading the territory of Boulogne, made himself master of several fortresses along the sea-coast dur- ing the summer of 1549. Boulogne was threatened, and the En- glish, feeling themselves too weak to sustain a siege, at length agreed to surrender the place for the sum of 400,000 crowns, in- stead of the two millions stipulated by the former treaty of 1546. Other articles having been ai-ranged, peace was proclaimed between England, France, and Scotland on the 24th of March, 1550, and Henry made his public entry into Boulogne amid universal joy and congratulations. Thus strengthened by an advantageous peace with England, and successful in their project with regard to the Scottish crown, the advisers of Henry j udged that the moment had arrived for open and decided measures against the emperor. Charles, as we have said, was at this time at the zenith of absolute power; but, in or- der to perpetuate this mighty despotism, he was anxious to secure the succession to the empire for his son Philip. This scheme ex- cited fresh alarm and agitation throughout Germany, and led to the most formidable combination against the emperor that he had yet encountered during his long career. In 1551 a powerful champion of the cause of civil and religious independence appear- ed unexpectedly in the person of the celebrated Maurice, elector of Saxony. This remarkable personage had hitherto been one of Charles's warmest supporters and most trusted lieutenants ; but at length, disgusted by a tyranny which became more and more in- tolerable, and impelled likewise by strong motives of personal am- bition, he resolved to place himself at the head of the great Prot- estant confederacy, and embark in a desperate attempt to achieve the liberation of Germany. Maurice was at this time in command of the imperial forces which Avere besieging Magdeburg; and so complete were the duplicity and secrecy of his proceedings, that liis fidelity to the emperor does not seem to have been in the slight- est degree suspected when he signed a treaty of alliance with the King of France, on the 5th of October, 1551. In this engagement O 2 322 HENRY II. Chap. XV. no mention was made of the great question of religious reform ; since Henry, as the "eldest son of the Church,"' could not with decency avow that he was about to take arms in defense of here- tics. The professed object of the contracting parties (among whom were several other princes of the empire besides Maurice) was to resist the dangerous attempts made by the emperor to "reduce Germany to a state of insupportable and perpetual slavery, as he had already succeeded in doing in Spain and other countries." Henry promised to furnish immense subsidies to his new allies, who on their part bound themselves to conclude neither truce nor peace with the emperor without the consent of the King of France. It was farther agreed that Henry should make a diversion in their favor by invading Lorraine ; he was to take possession of the dis- trict called the " Trois Eveches," comprising the towns of Metz, Toul, and Verdun, which had from ancient times formed part of the empire, though in language and geographical position belong- ing to France. Henry had long coveted this acquisition, and now stipulated that he should retain it under the somewhat inconsist- ent title of " Vicar of the Holy Empire." § 3. The confederates took the field early in the spring of 1552. The Elector Maurice, having published a manifesto in vindication of his conduct, marched against the emperor, who at this time lay confined to his bed by illness at Innsbruck ; and such was the i-a- pidity of his movements, that Charles had barely time to save him- self from being taken prisoner by a precipitate flight across the mountains into Carinthia. In the mean time, Henry, having as- sumed the high-sounding appellation of "Protector of the Liber- ties of Germany," joined his army at Chalons-sur-Marne, and took the road to Metz. The regency Avas intrusted to Queen Catha- rine ; and various executions of persons condemned for heresy were ordei'ed to take place immediately before the king's departure, as a practical proof that -he by no means designed to favor the new religion by associating himself with its chief propagators in other countries. Toul opened its gates Avithout resistance ; Metz and Verdun Avere gained by surprise ; and these three places, forming an important line of defense on the German frontier, became per- manently annexed to France. Flushed with success, Henry con- tinued his march upon Alsace, and made an attempt upon Stras- burg, Avhich, hoAvever, Avas decisively repulsed. Having " watered their horses in the Khine," the French retraced their steps into Lorraine, and thence proceeded to attack the imperial province of Luxemburg. Here their arms Avere successful, and several towns submitted after slight resistance. § 4. The firm attitude and able generalship of Maurice, seconded by the bold demonstration of the French upon the Rhine, induced A.D. 1551-1553. CONFEDERACY AGAINST THE EMPEROR. 323 the emperor, however reluctantly, to seek terms of accommodation with his revolted subjects. Negotiations commenced, and the re- sult was the famous treaty of Fassau, signed August 2, 1552, by which Charles conceded to the Protestants freedom of religious worship, and complete equality between the two forms of faith until the deiinitive sentence of a general council. Henry refused to be included in this pacification ; and the emperor, now left at liberty to concentrate his resources for a grand attack on his inveterate foe, prepared to call him to a severe account for his recent aggres- sion. The imperial army, 60,000 strong, with an immense train of artillery, crossed the Rhine in September, and toward the mid- dle of October laid siege to Metz, the recovery of which frontier fortress was Charles's main object. But meanwhile Henry had intrusted the command of Metz to the gallant Francis, duke of Guise, who was thirsting to signalize his name by some brilliant exploit of patriotic enterprise and military skill. Under his di- rections the old fortifications were thoroughly repaired ; the mag- azines were filled with immense quantities of provisions and stores; the garrison was largely re-enforced, and joined by all the best officers in France, including many noblemen of the highest rank, and even several princes of the blood royal ; in short, every pos- sible preparation was made for an obstinate defense. The siege of Metz is one of the most memorable episodes in the struggle be- tween the rival houses of France and Austria. For two months the Imperialists, led by their most renowned generals, the Duke of Alva and the Marquis of Marignano, battered the walls with a ceaseless cannonade, and exhausted all other resources of the art of war, with a total want of success. The defenders repaired by night the breaches effected by the enemy during the day ; they destroyed their mines, and harassed them by repeated and de- structive sorties. Thousands were slain by the Avell-directed fire from the ramparts ; and as the winter advanced, the besiegers suffered still greater losses from the pitiless severity of the weather, from sickness, hardship, and famine. The siege became at length evidently hopeless ; and Charles, bitterly observing that " For- tune, like the rest of her sex, favored the young and neglected those advanced in years," gave orders to abandon it. His army decamped from before Metz on the 11th of January, 1553. § 5. The war continued during the two following years ; but both parties were now growing weary of a contest in which neither achieved any decisive superiority. The emperor's fortunate star seemed to have deserted him ; his bodily strength failed under the weight of years, anxiety, disappointment, and chronic disease ; and at length he determined to execute a design which he had been for some time maturing in his own mind, of abdicating his vast 324 HENEY II, Chap. XV. dominions in favoi' of his son Philip and his brother Ferdinand. In October, 1555, Philip was declared sovereign of the Nether- lands and Franche-Comte ; in January, 1556, his father transfer- red to him the splendid crown of Spain and the Indies. Meantime Pope Paul IV., who detested the Spaniards and longed for the complete subversion of their power in the Peninsula, en- tered into a league with the French king against Philip ; Francis of Guise was encouraged in his favorite project of effecting a resto- ration of the crown of Naples to his own family, as the descend- ants of Rene of Anjou ; and in December, 1556, an army of 16,000 men, commanded by the Duke of Guise, crossed the Alps, and, marching direct to Rome, prepared to attack the Spanish viceroy of Naples, the celebrated Duke of Alva. In April, 1557, Guise advanced into the Abruzzi, and besieged Civitella ; but here he encountered a determined resistance, and, after sacrificing a great part of his troops, found it necessary to abandon the attempt. Pie retreated toward Rome, closely pursued by the Duke of Alva ; and the result was that the expedition totally failed. Before his army could recover from the fatigues and losses of their fruitless cam- paign, the French general was suddenly recalled by a dispatch containing tidings of urgent importance from the north of Fi'ance. The Spanish army in the Netherlands, commanded by the Duke of Savoy, having been joined by a body of English auxiliaries un- der the Earl of Pembroke, had invaded France and laid siege to St. Quentin. This place was badly fortified, and defended by a feeble garrison under the Admii-al de Coligny. Montmorency advanced with the main army to re-enforce it, and on the lOtli of August rashly attacked the Spaniards, who outnumbered his own troops in the proportion of more than two to one, and inflicted on him a fatal and irretrievable defeat. The loss of the French amounted, ac- cording to most accounts, to 4000 slain in the field, while at least an equal number I'emained prisoners, including the Constable himself The road to Paris lay open to the victors ; and the Em- peror Charles, on receiving in his retirement the news of the event, impatiently demanded of the messengers whether his son had yet reached that capital. The Duke of Savoy Avas eager to advance ; but the cautious Philip, happily for France, rejected his advice, and ordered him to press the siege of St. Quentin. That town made a desperate resistance for more than a fortnight longer, and was captured by storm on the 27th of August, the gallant De Co- ligny being taken prisoner while fighting sword in hand in the breach. Philip took possession of a few other neighboring for- tresses, but attempted no serious movement in prosecution of his victory; and France, thus once more saved in a moment of ex- treme peril, was enabled to concentrate her vast resources, and or- ganize new means of self-defense. A.D. 1554-1558. FAILURE OF EXPEDITION INTO ITALY. 325 § 6. The Duke of Guise arrived from Italy early in October, to the great joy of the king and the nation, and was immediately created lieutenant-general of the kingdom, Avith powers of almost unlimited extent. He applied himself, with his utmost ability and perseverance, to repair the late disasters ; and with such suc- cess, that in less than two months he was enabled to assemble a fresh and well-appointed army at Compiegne. Kesolving to strike a vigorous blow before the enemy could reappear in the field, he detached a division of his army to make a feint in the direction of Luxemburg ; and rapidly marching westward with the remain- der, presented himself, on the 1st of January, 1558, before the walls of Calais. The English garrison had been recently dimin- ished, as the place was considered almost unassailable in winter by reason of the neighboring morasses. The French attack was a complete surprise ; the two advanced forts commanding the ap- proaches to the town were bombarded, and surrendered on the 3d of January ; three days later the castle was carried by assault ; and on the 8th, the governor. Lord Wentworth, was forced to capitulate, and yielded himself prisoner of war, together with fifty of the officers and principal inhabitants. The rest of the garrison and population were permitted to retire to England, but with the loss of their property, and the arms, stores, and artillery of the fortress, which Avere seized by the victors. Guines, no longer ten- able after the fall of Calais, shared the same fate on the 21st of January ; and thus, Avithin the short space of three Aveeks, were the last remnants of her ancient dominion on the Continent snatch- ed from the grasp of England — possessions Avhich she had held for upward of tAvo hundred years, and from Avhich she had so often l^oured forth her gallant hosts to dispute the supremacy of her rival. This remarkable exploit, so flattering to the national pride, cre- ated universal enthusiasm in France, and carried to the highest pitch the reputation and popularity of Guise. From this moment his influence became paramount ; and the marriage of the dauphin to the Queen of Scots, which AA^as solemnized on the 24th of April, 1558, seemed to exalt the hou:?e of Lorraine to a still more tow- ering pinnacle of greatness. It Avas stipulated by a secret article of the marriage-contract that the sovei'eignty of Scotland should be transferred to France, and that the two croAvns should remain united forever, in case of the decease of Mary Avithout issue. § 7. ToAvard the end of the year negotiations Avere opened Avith a view to peace. The main obstacle to the arrangement Avas the peremptory demand made by England, and supported by Philip, for the restitution of Calais and its dependencies. At this junc- ture, hoAA'ever, an event occurred, the results of Avliich produced a solution of the difliculty. Queen Mary of England expired on 326 HENRY n. Chap. XV. the 17th of November, 1558; the conferences were immediately- suspended for some months ; and during this interval Philip saw enough of the policy and tendencies of Mary's successor, Elizabeth, to convince him that no cordial alliance was henceforth probable between Spain and England. The consequence was, that when the congi'ess reassembled at Le Cateau-Cambresis, in February, 1559, the Spanish ministers no longer maintained the interests of England ; and Elizabeth, thus abandoned, agreed to an arrange- ment which virtually ceded Calais to France, though with such nominal qualifications as satisfied the sensitiveness of the national honor. Calais was to be restored to the English at the end of eight years, with a penalty, in case of failure, of 5OO,OO0 crowns. At the same time, if any hostile proceedings should take place on the part of England against France within the period specified, the queen was to forego all claim to the fulfillment of the article. Upon such vague and illusory terms peace was concluded between France and England on the 2d of April, 1559. The treaty be- tween Henry and Philip was signed on the following day. The conditions w^ere considered hard for France, and would probably not have been consented to but for the jealous intrigues of Mont- morency against the predominant influence of the house of Guise. The two monarchs mutually restored their conquests in Luxem- burg, the Netherlands, Picardy, and Artois ; France abandoned Savoy and Piedmont, with the exception of Turin and four other fortresses ; she evacuated Tuscany, Corsica, and Montferrat, and yielded up no less than 189 towns or fortresses in various parts of Europe. By way of compensation, Henry preserved the dis- trict of the " Trois Eveches" — Toul, Metz, and Verdun — and made the all-important acquisition of Calais. This pacification was sealed, according to custom, by marriages. Henry's daughter Elizabeth, who had formerly been affianced to Don Carlos, prince of Asturias, was now united to his father, Philip of Spain ; while the Princess Marguerite, sister to the French king, was given to Philibert Emanuel, duke of Savoy, to whose military talents Spain had been so largely indebted during the late war. Magnificent rejoicings took place at Paris during the summer of 1559, in celebration of these royal nuptials. Lists were ei'ected in front of the palace of the Tournelles; and a splen- did tournament w^as held, at which, on the 27th of June, the king himself, supported by the Duke of Guise and two other princes,^ maintained the field against all antagonists. Henry, Avho was an admirable cavalier, triumphantly carried off'the honors of the day; but toward the close of it, having unfortunately chosen to run a course Avith Montgomery, captain of his Scottish guards, the lance of tlie stout kniirht sliivered in the encounter, and the broken A. D. 1558-1559. PROGRESS OF THE REFORMATION IN FRANCE. 327 truncheon, entering the king's eye, penetrated to the brain. Hen- ry languished eleven days in great suffering, and expired on the 10th of July, 1559, in the forty-first year of his age. § 8. The Reformation made extraordinary progress in France during the latter years of the reign of Henry H. The first Prot- estant Church was established in Paris in 1555 ; others were founded successively at Rouen, Blois, Tours, Angers, Bourges, and La Rochelle ; and we are assured that in 1558 there were no less than 2000 places dedicated to the Reformed worship, and attend- ed by congregations numbering upward of 400,000.* The new sect acquired extensive influence and patronage among the higher orders of society. Its acknowledged chief Avas no less a personage than the first prince of the blood, Antoine de Bourbon, duke of Vendome, who had become King of Navarre by his marriage with Jeanne d'Albret, the heiress of that crown. His wife, who had been carefully educated in the Reformed doctrines by her mother, Marguerite of Valois, induced him to embrace her faith ; and his younger brother, Louis, prince of Conde, being in like manner con- verted by the example and persuasions of his wife, declared him- self a zealous member of the party. With these princes were as- sociated two nephews of the Constable Montmorency, the Admiral Gaspard de Coligny, and his brother Francois de Chatillon, better known as the Sire d'Andelot. A third brother, the Cardinal de Chatillon, although a prince of the Roman Church, inclined strong- ly toward the views of the Reformers, and encouraged them to the full extent allowed by his position. Growing bolder as they in- creased in numbers and credit, the Protestants began to hold tu- multuous meetings, and paradied the streets of the capital in bands of several hundreds and even thousands, chanting the metrical Psalms of Clement Marot. These and similar demonstrations, combined with the marvelous success of the Lutheran cause in Gei-many, inspired the French court with extreme disquietude and alarm ; and it would seem that the fear of religious revolution, more than any merely political consideration, determined Henry and Philip to accommodate their personal differences, and conclude the peace of Cateau-Cambresis. A secret compact on this occa- sion, between Cardinal Granvelle and the Cardinal of Lorraine, pledged the two sovereigns to adopt a system of unsparing rigor for the complete extirpation of heresy fi-om their dominions. A bull had already been dispatched from Rome, And sanctioned by the king, establishing in France a special tribunal, composed of three prelates, for the cognizance of offenses against religion ; but the Parliaments, both of Paris and the provinces, and the ordinary courts of justice, steadily resisted its execution. Henry was greatly * Theod. B?za, Hist. Eccks., vol, i., p. 79. 328 HENEY II. Chap. XV. exasperated by this daring opposition to his will, and determined to put it down with a high hand. The Protestants, undismayed, organized a regular system of combined action, and appealed for protection to the princes of Germany. An alarming agitation spread rapidly throughout the kingdom ; and it began to be clearly foreseen that the religious feud must ere long break out into a des- perate and bloody struggle. The great battle between the Church of Rome and her revolted children — between traditional authority and free inquiry — was about to be fought out upon the soil of France. Henry II., however, did not live to witness the com- mencement of this momentous strife, which he had had so large a share in provoking. It was destined to entail misery and shame on his posterity during three reigns, and at last to produce, as if in just retribution, the extinction of his royal line. The three Brotliers Coligny. LxLcutioa It tlie L i tie ot Amtiui l, 15b0 (1 lom an ancient engi i\iu^ ) (A. La Renaudie. B. Conspnatoi» decapitated C \iUemongi , liaMog dipped lub hands in the hlood of his companions. D. Seven conspirators hanged. E. Three heads placed as a memorial, F. Conspirators led to punishment. G. Castle of Amboise.) CHAPTER XVI. FKANCIS II. CHARLES IX. A.D. 1559-1574:. § 1 . Accession of Francis II. ; Power of the Guises ; Persecution of the Huguenots. § 2. Conspiracy against the Guises ; its Failure ; Massacre of Amboise. § 3. Reaction in favor of the Huguenots ; Summoning of tlie States-General; Death of Francis. § 4. Accession of Charles IX. ; Regency of Catharine de' Medici ; Reforms of the States-General ; Strug- gles between the Catholics and the Huguenots. § 5. Commencement of tlie Civil War. § 6. Capture of "Rouen by the Catholics; Assassination of the Duke of Guise ; Edict of Amboise. § 7. Outbreak of the second Civil War; Battle of St. Denis. § 8. Battle of Jarnac ; Death of Con- de'; Henry of Navarre, general-in-chief of the Huguenots. § 9. Battle of Moncontour; Defeat of the Huguenots; their Successes; Treaty with them. § 10. Welcome of the Huguenots at Court. § 11. Marriage of Heni-y of Navarre with Marguerite of Valois ; Massacre of St. Bartholo- mew. § 12. Siege of Rochelle; Treaty with the Huguenots; Death of Charles IX. § 1. Francis II., 1 559-1 5G0. — Henry II. left seven cliiklren, of whom tlie eldest, Francis, Avho succeeded to the throne, was scarcely sixteen years of age. The others were Charles, and Hen- ry, duke of Anjou (who both wore the crown in succession), the Duke of Alen<}on (afterward Duke of Anjou), and three daugh- ters, of whom the eldest was Queen of Spain, the second Duchess of Lorraine, while the youngest, the too famous Marguerite, be- came in the sequel Queen of Navarre. 330 FRANCIS II. Chap. XVI. The new king, a youth of sickly constitution and weak intellect, was completely enslaved by his wife, the fascinating Mary of Scot- land, while she, in her turn, was altogether under the control of her uncles the Guises. The government of the kingdom accordingly now rested wholly with the Duke of Guise and his brother the cardinal ; Montmorency was deprived of power, and retired from court ; and the King of Navarre, lying under the stigma of heresy, and being personally unacceptable to the king, made no attempt to gain a share in the direction of affairs. The queen-mother, Catha- rine de' Medici, had hitherto been kept in the background, and had carefully dissembled her real chai'acter. But circumstances were now changed ; and with her superior powers, resolute will, talent for intrigue, and unscrupulous ambition, she was evidently des- tined to play a conspicuous part in the state. For the present she allied herself with the all-powerful Guises, and watched for the opportunity which might place her in a more direct position of authority. The government proceeded vigorously with the work of sup- pressing heresy by relentless measures of persecution. The Hu- guenots,* as they now began to be called, were every day de- nounced to the authorities, imprisoned, fined, or banished the realm. The aspect of affairs now became every day more gloomy and threatening. The arrogant temper and tyrannical administration of the Guises, besides exasperating the Calvinists, excited deep an- imosity among the inferior nobility, bourgeoisie, and commercial classes. The malcontents saw in the prevailing religious agitation a convenient means of organizing a formidable resistance to the government ; they opened communications for this purpose with the leaders of the Reformation ; and within a short time Calvin- ism assumed the form not only of religious, but of political disaf- fection and rebellion. From that moment the entire strength of the government was necessarily arrayed against it ; and as both parties were equally resolute and prepared for extremities, civil war was the inevitable consequence. § 2. A wide-spx-ead conspiracy was now formed among the dis- affected of all classes and views, having for its object the liberation of the young king from the control of the Guises, and the total overthrow of their power. The real leader of the revolt was Lou- is, prince of Conde, brother of the King of Navarre ; but his con- nection with it was kept a profound secret ; and the enterprise was ostensibly conducted by a gentleman of Perigord named Godfrey de la Renaudie, who traversed the country in all directions, excit- * This word is n corruption of the German Eidgenossen, i. c, confederates. It was first transferred into the French language under the form Eguenots, which subsequently became Huguenots. A.D. 1559, 1500. PERSECUTION OF THE HUGUENOTS. 331 ing the people to take arms for Conde under the sobriquet of the " dumb captain." A numerous meeting of tlie party was held at Nantes on the 1st of February, 1560, when it was agreed that an attempt should be made to seize the king's person, arrest and im- prison the princes of Lorraine, summon the States-General, and place the government in the hands of the Boui'bons. The plot was well concocted, but failed, like other schemes of the same kind, by the treachery of one of the confederates. The Guises, warned of their danger, removed the court to the castle of Amboise ; the royal guards strongly occupied every post in the vi- cinity ; and when the first detachment of the insurgents came in sight, they were surrounded, disarmed, and led prisoners to Am- boise. A second party, which had seized the castle of Noyse, was captured by the Duke of Nemoux'S. La Eenaudie nevertheless ad- vanced on the 18th of March toward Amboise, and was slain in a skirmish near Chateau Renault. Next day his followers made a final and desperate attempt to carry the town by assault ; it was repulsed, and the insurrection was at once at an end. Guise was now appointed lieutenant general of the kingdom, and proceeded to execute a terrible and merciless vengeance on all who were taken with arms in their hands. The butchery of the wretched victims continued during a whole month ; they were cruelly tor- tured, and then hung, beheaded, or drowned in the Loire ; the streets of Amboise ran with blood ; the river was covered with floating corpses. A nobleman named Villenrongis, when brought to the scaffold, dipped his hands in the blood of his slaughtered comrades, and, raising them to heaven, exclaimed, '' Lord, behold the blood of thy children; thou Avilt take vengeance for them!" Upward of 1200 persons are said to have been executed. The young king and his brothers, with their attendants, including even the ladies of the court, were daily spectators of these barbarous scenes. The gentle -tempered Chancellor Olivier died literally from horror at the revolting exhibition. § 3. The atrocious cruelties perpetrated by the Guises in their hour of triumph produced a speedy reaction in favor of the perse- cuted sectai'ies. The nation regarded the massacre of Amboise with disgust ; and the Calvinists, instead of being intimidated and crushed, continued to gain ground, and loudly demanded venge- ance for the blood of their martyred brethren. The queen-mother Catharine now came forward as the advocate of milder counsels ; and her first act of political influence was to procure the post of chancellor for the famous Michel de I'Hopital, a man of known moderation and exemplary virtue, some of whose nearest relatives belonged to the LTuguenot party. The edict of Romorantin, pub- lished at the same time, committed the prosecution of all offenses 332 FRANCIS 11. Chai VI. against religion exclusively to the bishops and clergy : a measure which, though in appearance unfavorable to the Protestants, had in reality the effect of pi-eventing the establishment in France of the detestable tribunal of the Inquisition. It was resolved, as a farther concession, to convoke the States-General, which had been in abeyance for no less than seventy-six years. The Huguenots, greatly encouraged and elated by these pro- ceedings, now recommenced their agitation, especially in the south- ern provinces ; and the Bourbon princes, yielding to the solicita- tions of the powerful nobles and gallant soldiers who surrounded them, engaged to take the lead in a fresh attempt to dispossess the Guises of supreme power, aud establish civil and religious inde- pendence by force of arms. The Guises, on their part, displayed at least equal activity. Being now in possession of ample proofs of the complicity of Conde in the late insurrection, they resolved to take advantage of the approaching meeting of the States to strike a terrible blow which should annihilate forever the opposi- tion to their sway. They prepared a confession of the Catholic faith, which was to be tendered to every deputy on taking his seat ; a refusal to accept this test was to be eq uivalent to condemnation to death. When their preparations wet-e complete, the king com- manded the attendance of the King of i>I^avarre and his brother at Orleans, where he held his court. TLe princes, although repeat- edly informed of the designs of their ct^emies, obeyed, and reached Orleans on the 31st of October. Ftancis received them coldly, and the queen-mother manifested much emotion. Conde was im- mediately arrested and placed in close confinement ; the King of Navarre Avas separated from his suite, and strictly watched. A commission was appointed to proceed to the trial of Conde for high treason ; his condemnation was decreed beforehand, and the very day fixed for his execution. But at this crisis the king fell dangerously ill from an abscess which had formed in his head ; and the Chancellor I'Hopital, who had secretly ascertained from the royal physicians that his recovery was hopeless, employed ev- ery expedient and pretext to postpone the sentence of the court, and thus save the prince's life. The Guises, desperate in their thirst of vengeance, implored the queen-mother to consent to the imme- diate assassination of both the Bourbon pinnces, and pledged them- selves in that case to support her as regent Avith the entire strength of the Catholic interest. Catharine, however, fortified by the wise and humane counsels of the chancellor, rejected this temptation ; she sent for the King of Navarre, and required him to renounce all claim to the regency of the kingdom, even though it should be of- fered to him by the States-General ; she promised him, on this condition, the second place in the government, and intimated that A.D. 1560, 1561. ACCESSION OF CHARLES IX. 333 his life depended on compliance. He accepted the terms at once ; and within a few days afterward Fi-ancis breathed his last, on the 5th of December, 1560. Ilis reign of scarcely eighteen months, the shortest in the French annals, was pregnant with results of incalculable moment to the future destinies of the nation. § 4. Chakles IX., 1560-1574. — Francis II. died without issue, and the crown devolved on his next brother, a boy of ten years and a half old, who was immediately proclaimed king under the title of Charles IX. The King of Navarre, faithful to his engagement, advanced no pretensions to the regency ; and the queen-mother at once assumed, as of right, and without opposition, the exercise of sovereign power in the name of her son. Her object was to effect a fusion of parties, or rather to hold the balance evenly between them, and, by allowing neither to preponderate, to preserve the paramount authority in her own hands. In accordance with this principle, which Catharine had imbibed from her celebrated coun- tryman Machiavelli, the King of Navarre was appointed lieutenant general of the kingdom ; but, on the other hand, the princes of Lorraine were not deprived of their places in the council, and the Duke of Guise retained his post of master of the royal household. The Prince of Conde, who had so narrowly escaped the scaffold, was released from confinement, and became a member of the coun- cil. The Constable Montmorency resumed the command of the army. The chief friend of the queen regent, and her most influ- ential adviser, was the excellent Chancellor de I'Hopital. Tlie session of the States-General, which was opened at Orleans on the IStli of December, 1560, and closed on the 31st of Janu- ary, 1561, passed off peaceably, and was followed by several im- portant edicts. The concordat was revoked, and freedom of ec- clesiastical election re-established ; sound reforms Avere introduced in the administration of justice; and, lastly, the Parliament was enjoined to forbear all farther prosecutions in matters of religion, and all who had been imprisoned or sentenced to banishment for offenses of this nature were forthwith liberated and recalled. But these and other well-intentioned efforts of the government were soon frustrated by the reckless violence of party spirit, selfish ambition, and fanatical enthusiasm. The Catholic section of the council indignantly resented every concession made to their op- ponents ; while the Huguenots, on their part, growing insolent at the prospect of so decided a change in their favor, began to com- mit outrages against the established worship, profaned the altars, destroyed the images, and took forcible possession of the churches wherever they found themselves in the majority. The Catholic leaders,bitterly complaining of the queen's "apostasy,*' soon leagued together afresh for the defense of their faith ; and Montmorency, 334 CHARLES IX. CiiAi', XVI. separating from his nephews Coligny and Dandelot, allied himself with the^Duke of Guise and the Marshal St. Andre'. Fearful dis- turbances broke out in ditierent parts of the country, and numbers of helpless victims were sacrificed to the furious fanaticism both of Catholics and Protestants. The queen, supported strongly by Conde, the Chatillons, and the chancellor, at length resolved, as a last I'esource against revolution, to tiy the expedient of granting complete tolerance, under certain safeguards, to the professors of the new religion ; and an edict was accordingly published at St. Germains in January, 15-62, by which permission was given to the Huguenots throughout the kingdom to hold meetings for religious worship outside the walls of towns, and all penalties enacted against them were abolished. They were required, on the other hand, to restore to the dominant communion all churches of which they had wrongfully taken possession ; to abstain from preaching against the Catholic faith ; and to leave the clergy in peaceable enjoy- ment of their tithes and other endowments. This was the first official recognition of the principle of religious toleration in France. The Parliament for a long time strenuously resisted the registra- tion of the decree, and only yielded at last from dread of popular commotion, which had already commenced. § 5. Matters, however, had now reached such a point that even this important step toward liberty of conscience and equality of religious rights failed to do more than postpone for a short time the actual outbreak of hostilities. The Guises had quitted the court and I'etired into Lorraine, where, foreseeing the speedy approach of civil war, they were secretly collecting troops, and endeavoring to conciliate the Lutheran princes of Germany, so as to deprive the adverse party of their powerful support. During their absence Montmorency and St. Andi-e succeeded in inducing the King of Navarre to abjure the Protestant doctrines, and reconcile himself to the Church of Rome. This feeble-minded prince was won over, it is said, by a promise from Philip of Spain to restore his domin- ions in Navarre, with the addition of the island of Sardinia. ■ This occurrence, together with the violent irritation excited among the Catholics by the edict of January, determined the Duke of Guise to return to the capital, where he was impatiently expected by the Constable. Leaving his chateau of Joinville with a retinue of 200 well-armed gentlemen, the duke halted, on the Ist of March, 1562, at the little town of Vassy in Champagne, where, the day being Sunday, the Protestants were assembled for divine service. The duke's attendants, by his orders, interrupted and tried to stop the heretical worship; the sectaries resisted, and a fierce brawl ensued. The duke, followed by his officers, hurried to the spot, and was as- sailed by a shower of stones, one of which struck him on the cheek. His enraged soldiers now fired upon the unarmed multitude; the A.D. 15G2. COMMENCEMENT OF CIVIL AVAR. 335 carnage was fearful ; 60 persons were slain outright, and upward of 200 more grievously wounded. Such was the " massacre of Vassy," which, whether premeditated or accidental, was the first act of the civil and religious wars of France. It was an object of primaiy importance to both parties, at this moment, to gain possession of the persons of the king and the queen regent. The Prince of Conde made a movement for this purpose, . but was anticipated by the Catholic leaders, who transported the royal family in triumph from Fontainebleau to the Louvre on the 6th of April. The Huguenots now rushed to arms on all sides; and, as the capital was no longer tenable, Conde', accompanied by Coligny and Dandelot, at the head of 5000 men, marched to Or- leans, and made himself master of that city. Here a formal "act of association" was drawn up, and signed by all the chiefs of the party, among whom were the representatives of the most ancient and illustrious families of France. They swore obedience to Conde as the head of the Protestant league, and declared them- selves in arms "for the defense of the king's honor and liberty, the maintenance of the pure worship of God, and the due observ- ance of the edicts." Both parties made immediate application to their natural sup- porters in foreign countries. Philip of Spain dispatched 6000 Spanish veterans, together with a large subsidy, to re-enforce the army of the Catholics ; Elizabeth of England, on the demand of Conde, furnished an equal number of troops under the Earl of Warwick and Sir Edward Poynings, who garrisoned the towns of Havre, Rouen, and Dieppe. § 6. The principal theati-e of the eai'lier part of the war was the rich and populous province of Normandy. In October, 1562, the King of Navarre and the Duke of Guise, with 18,000 men, laid !-iege to Rouen, which was commanded by the Count of Montgom- ery, the same who had innocently caused the death of Henry II. Rouen made a gallant and memorable defense. Three assaults were given in succession, in one of which the King of Navarre was mortally wounded by a musket-shot in the arm. The third attempt succeeded ; the city was taken by storm on the 26th of October, and sacked and pillaged during eight days with implaca. ble fury. Montgomery made good his retreat with most of his garrison ; but the loss of Rouen entailed that of the greater part of Normandy. The King of Navarre expired of his wound shortly afterward. It is said that, capricious and inconstant to the last, he renounced the Romish faith on his death-bed, and died in the Calvinistic communion. His widow, Jeanne d'Albret, had re- mained in Beam, where she carefully trained up her son, the fu- ture Henry IV., together Vv'ith his sister Catharine, in the Prot- estant religion. 336 CHARLES IX. Chap. XVI. Conde and Coligny, hoping to avenge the catastrophe of Kouen, now made a bold movement from Orleans toward Paris. They received a severe check at Corbeil, and, having made a useless demonstration before the capital, retreated rapidly in the direction of Normandy. On the 19th of December the Huguenot leaders found themselves confronted by the royal army near the tOAvn of Dreux. Here was fought the first pitched battle of the war ; it terminated, after an arduous struggle, during which fortune seem- ed to change sides several times, in a hard-won victory for the Catholics. The loss on either side was about equal ; 8000 corpses strewed the plain ; Montmorency remained prisoner in the hands of the Protestants ; Conde was a captive to the Royalists ; the Marshal St. Andre was among the slain. The Duke of Guise now became, by the death of the King of Navarre and St. Andre, and the captivity of the Constable, the sole and undisputed head of the Catholic party, and was immedi- ately appointed commander-in-chief of the royal armies. Early in February, 1563, he led his forces to the siege of Orleans. That city was vigorously defended by Dandelot ; but the assailants gain- ed ground rapidly, and it was evident that resistance could not be long protracted. On the evening of the day before that fixed for the general assault, as the Duke of Guise was returning from his outposts, accompanied only by two gentlemen, he Avas waylaid by a fanatical Huguenot named Poltrot de Blere, who mortally wound- ed him with a pistol loaded with poisoned balls. The duke sur- vived six days, and expired on the 24th of February, 1563, in his forty^fifth year, having with his dying breath recommended the queen regent to make peace Avith her revolted subjects. The assassin Poltrot, interrogated before the council, is said to have charged Coligny with having instigated, or at least approved, his crime. The admiral, though without doubt innocent, defended himself in terms which were considered ambiguous; and the Cath- olics, especially the family of Guise, persisted in asserting and be- lieving the truth of the accusation. The death of Guise facilitated the conclusion of a pacific ar- rangement, which Catharine and the chancellor saw to be urgently necessary for the preservation of the royal authority, so seriously menaced throughout the kingdom. The terms were soon agreed upon, notwithstanding much opposition from Coligny and his two brothers; and by the edict of Amboise, published March 19, 1563, the Huguenots obtained permission freely to celebrate their wor- ship in all the houses of the nobility and gentry, and throughout their domains ; the same license was granted in one town in every bailliage. It was a hollow and superficial peace, evidently not destined to be of long duration. §7. The younji king, meanwhile, liaving entered on his four- AD. 15G2-1567. SECOND CIVIL WAR. 337 teenth year, was declared to have attained his majority, and as- sumed, at least in name, the reins of government. In 1564 Cath- arine and her son, attended by a brilliant court, made a progress through the greater part of the kingdom, which occupied the whole year. At Bayonne, Catharine received, according to arrangement, a visit from her daughter Elizabeth, the wife of Philip of Spain. The young queen was attended by the Duke of Alva, the confiden- tial and congenial minister of the gloomy and bigoted Philip ; and between this personage and the queen-mother there ensued a se- ries of mysterious nocturnal conferences, which have become cele- brated from the direct bearing they are supposed to have had upon the subsequent train of events. That the chief Subject discussed in these interviews was that of the extermination of lieresy, both in France and in the Netherlands, there can not be the slightest doubt ; and it is also certain that Alva used his best endeavors to persuade Catharine to abandon her temporizing hesitating policy, and imitate his master Philip in the decisive and ruthless meas- ures he was about to adopt in the Low Countries ; but the con- temporary documents do not warrant the belief that the terrible crime afterward perpetrated was propounded by either party in the interviews at Bayonne, much less that it was definitively ar- ranged.* Vague rumors, however, circulated among the Protest- ants that some mischief was in agitation : they took the alarm, and from this moment began to prepare for a renewed appeal to arras. The accounts which arrived in 1567 of the fierce persecution commenced by the Duke of Alva against their brethren in the Netherlands greatly augmented the excitement and exasperation of the French Reformers. They believed that their own fate was already determined in the councils of the court ; and after several seci'et meetings of their chief partisans, it was resolved, as the best- means of defeating tlieir enemies' scheme, to make a second and bolder attempt to seize the persons of the king and the royal fam- ily, with a view to a complete change of govei-nment. This at- tempt, however, failed ; and the Huguenots, who had thus com- menced a second civil war, now moved upon Paris, and encamped with about 4000 men at St. Denis. The army of the Catholics, commanded by the Constable, issued from Paris on the 10th of November, and gave them battle in the plain of St. Denis. The combat lasted scarcely an hour, and the victory remained undecid- ed ; but the Catholics sustained a severe loss in the death of the veteran Constable Montmorency, who, after defending himself des- perately in the midst of an overwhelming charge, fell mortally wounded by a pistol-shot fired by a Scottish officer named Robert * See H. Martin, vol. ix., 192 ; Prescott, Hist, of Philij) II., vol. i., p. 459, note ; Michclet, Gverres dc Religion. P 338 CHARLES IX. ■ CiiAi>. XVI. Stuart. He Avas in the seven ty-fifth year of his age, and had held the post of Constable under four successive reigns. No successor was appointed to this high office ; but Catharine named her favor- ite son, the Duke of Anjou, lieutenant general of the royal armies, and thus confirmed the chief authority in her own hands. § 8. In the following year a hollow ti-eaty v/as patched up ; but in 1569 the war was renewed with more fury than ever. On the 13th of March, Coligny, with the rear guard only of his army, was surprised by the Duke of Anjou near Jaknac, on the Charente. Conde', summoned to the rescue, galloped to the scene of action with 300 cavalry, but found the admiral's troops already overpow- ered and in disorder. The gallant prince, though he had been wounded in the arm the evening before, instantly headed an im- petuous charge, and at the moment of engaging received a kick from a vicious horse which fractured one of his legs. "Nobles of France !" he exclaimed, "behold in what a condition Louis of Bourbon goes to battle for Christ and his country !" His horse was soon killed under him, and the prince fell helpless in the midst of the enemy. A despei'ate conflict took place around his body ; but his defenders were borne down by numbers, and slain almost to a man. Conde at length surrendered his sword. At this moment one of the captains of the Duke of Anjou's Swiss guard came up, and treacherously shot the prince in the back with his pistol. The battle was lost for the Huguenots ; but Coligny, rallying the remainder of the army, retreated in good order. The news of- the death of the heroic Conde was received with ungenerous and indecent rejoicings by the Catholics. Te Deum was sung on the occasion in all the churches of France, and the example was imitated at Kome, Madrid, and Brussels. The Hu- guenots were at first greatly discouraged by their misfortune ; but their confidence was soon rekindled by the spirited Jeanne of Na- varre, who repaired to the army with her son Henry and the youth- ful Prince of Conde, eldest son of the fallen hero, and presented the two princes to the soldiers as the future champions of the cause of liberty. The troops answered with enthusiasm ; and Henry of Navarre was instantly proclaimed their general-in-chief under the experienced guidance of the. veteran Coligny. § 9* In the autumn of the same year (3d of October) another battle was fought not far from Moncontour, on the small river Dive. The Huguenots were inferior in number, and were drawn up in a bad position ; they nevertheless maintained the contest with undaunted valor, but in the end suffered a total overthrow, with the loss of at least 6000 men slain, together with their artil- lery, standards, and baggage. This brilliant victory Avas regarded by the Catholics as a certain augury of the final ruin of the Prot- estant fjinsp. ;)nd excited their liveliest ; of jov. A.D. 15G8-1570. TREATY WITH THE HUGUENOTS. 339 But the advantage was ill improved, and by no means produced the decisive results that were expected. The campaign of the fol- lowing year (1570) was successful for the Huguenots. Discon- certed and alarmed at this unexpected prolongation of the contest, Catharine now once more expressed herself willing to negotiate, and made propositions far more favorable than at any former time during the war. By the treaty signed at St. Germains on the 8tli of August, 1570, the Reformers obtained the free exercise of their religion throughout the kingdom, with the single exception of the capital ; they were admitted on equal terms with Catholics to all professions and public employments ; restitution was granted of all forfeited offices and confiscated property, and a general amnesty was proclaimed for the past ; and lastly, as a guarantee for the due fulfillment of these articles, four specified towns — namely. La Eo- chelle, Cognac, Montauban, and La Charite — were placed in the hands of the Huguenot leaders, to be gai'risoned by their troops for the space of two years. These terms were so strangely advantageous to the party whiclr had been so often vanquished in the field, that they called forth the strong remonstrances of the Pope and Philip II., and were generally condemned as derogatory to the crown and ignominious to the Catholic Church. There is no sufficient ground, however, for supposing, with some historians, that Catharine de' Medici acted on this occasion with deliberate hypocrisy and perfidy. It seems more probable that at this moment she had no distinct purpose except that of obtaining a respite from the anxieties and miseries of war, and re-establish- ing the authority of the crown, so seriously endangered and im- paired by the long continuance of civil strife. Extraordinary ef- forts were now made by the court to mitigate the bitterness and animosity of parties, and to conciliate the confidence of the Hu- guenots, but for some time entirely in vain. Coligny, accompa- nied by the Queen of Navarre and the two young princes, retired to La Rochelle, the great stronghold of Calvinism, which was Avell garrisoned and vigilantly guarded. The king, either from natural caprice or from resentful opposition to the yoke of his mother and the Guises, seemed to seize every opportunity of sliowing that he had altogether changed his line of policy. Pie espoused, in Au- gust, 1570, the Archduchess Elizabeth, daughter of the Emperor Maximilian II., a prince known to be well inclined toward the Protestants. He supported the pretensions of his brother the Duke of Anjou, who aspired to the hand of the Protestant Elizabeth of England. He dispatched embassies to establish amicable relations with the Protestant courts of Germany. He even evinced a dis- position to interfere in behalf of the persecuted defenders of the Reformation in the Netherlands. Meanwhile the excesses of the 340 CHARLES IX. Chap. XVI. Catholics in France were restrained and punished with impartial severity ; the treaty of St. Gerraains was scrupulously executed ; and in the spring of 1571 a general synod of the Reformed Church was held, by the king's express permission, at La Kochelle, under the presidency of Theodore Beza. A still more important step in the same direction was taken in July, 1571, when Biron, the future mai'shal, arrived at La Rochellc with proposals from thQ king for a matrimonial alliance between his sister the Princess Marguerite and the young Frince Henry of Navarre. Such an overture could not but be gratifying to Jeanne d'Albret, although her strict Protestantism was somewhat scandalized by the idea of her son's union with a member of the idolatrous Church of Rome. She returned a gracious answer, and the negotiations for the marriage Avere immediately put in train. § 10. The Admiral Coligny, at length overcoming his deep-seat- ed feelings of mistrust, repaired to Blois in September, on the ur- gent invitation of the king, and was received by Charles and his mother with the utmost distinction, and pi'ofuse assurances of ven- eration and affection. "My father,"' said the monarch, caressingly, in tones afterward attributed to consummate dissimulation, "we hold you now, and you shall never escape us again." He was loaded with honors and rewards ; and the king appeared to resign himself to his influence and direction, especially with regard to the projected expedition to the Netherlands, Avhich the admiral warmly advocated, from motives both religious and patriotic. A few months later the Queen of Navarre, in spite of her mis- givings and prejudices, was induced to follow Coligny's example and proceed to court, where she experienced an equally cordial wel- come ; and was assured by the king that, whether with or without the dispensation which had been demanded from the Pope, he was resolved to conclude his sister's marriage with the Prince of Btarn. At Paris, meanwhile, the extraordinary favtjr and ascendency thus acquired by the Huguenots had excited general discontent and alarm, and the popular agitation increased daily. The pul- pits resounded with angiy denunciations against the union of a daughter of France with a declared enemy of Holy Church ; the military preparations in support of the rebels in Flanders were highly unpopular ; and the Guises were indefatigable in inflaming the passions of their faction against their rivals, who now, after twelve years of destructive warfare, confronted them at every turn in the thoroughfares of the capital. / The crisis approached. The sudden death of the Queen of Na- varre, on the 9th of July, 1572, first awakened the suspicions of the Huguenots, who imagined, probably without reason, that she had fallen a victim to the treachery and vengeance of the queen- A.D. 1570-1572. HUGUENOTS WELCOMED AT COURT. g41 mother. This event was taken by many as a warning, and they immediately escaped from Paris ; but Coligny still maintained his confidence, and, though urgently entreated by his friends to pro- vide for his safety before it was too late, refused to quit the capi- tal. Under his direction the expedition to the Netherlands took place early in the summer, and the French made themselves mas- ters of Valenciennes, Mons, and other towns ; but a reverse occur- ring soon afterward, the council became divided as to the course to be pursued ; Coligny and his adherents demanded an immediate declaration of war with Spain ; the queen-mother ranged herself on the opposite side ; Charles IX. showed an evident leaning to- ward the counsels of the admiral. It was now that Catharine, finding herself in direct collision with the admiral, whose paramount credit with the king threatened her with a total loss of power, finally resolved on his destruction. No doubt the idea of this crime had often been suggested to her mind before ; it had now become a necessity ; and she executed it with a cool determination, combined with Machiavelian subtlety, which will transmit her name to posterity branded with peculiar and in- delible infamy. Her chief confidants were her son the Duke of Anjou (afterward Henry III.), the Duke of Guise, the Marshal de Tavannes, the Count de Eetz, and the Duke of Nevers. It was arranged that the admiral should be assassinated by some known retainer of the Guises ; this would almost certainly produce an in- surrection of the Huguenots to avenge the death of their leader ; the populace of Paris was then to be instigated to rise in defense of the Guises ; and the weaker party was to be crushed and ex- terminated by a wholesale massacre. Such was the scheme of these diabolical conspirators. § 11. The marriage of Henry of Navarre with Marguerite of Va- lois was celebrated on the 18th of August by the Cardinal of Bour- bon, on a platform erected in front of the great entrance to Notre Dame. This event excited the popular indignation and commotion to the highest pitch ; and strange and fearful rumors of an impend- ing catastrophe gained ground hourly in the capital. Three days after the nuptials, as the Admiral Coligny was returning home from the Louvre on foot, he was fired at from behind a window by an agent of the Duke of Guise, named Maurevert, and severely wound- ed in the hand and the left arm. He calmly pointed out to his attendants the house from which the shot had issued, and sent to inform the king of the occurrence. Charles was playing at tennis with the Duke of Guise. " Am I never to be left in peace ?" he exclaimed passionately on hearing the news, and then retired in extreme agitation. He proceeded without delay to visit his Avound- ed friend, consoled him with warm expressions of sympathy and 342 CHARLES IX. Chap. XVT. affection, and swore that he would exact a signal and terrible vengeance for the outrage. In a private conversation which fol- lowed, Coligny complained bitterly of the misgovernment and per- nicious influence of the queen-mother, implored the king to deprive her of power, and offered him the services of the whole Huguenot party to effect this object. Catharine and her accomplices Avere now struck with consternation : their first blow had failed (for the admiral's wounds were not dangerous), and they were menaced with exposure and ruin. After an agitated consultation, they pro- ceeded in a body to the king, and, conjuring up before him dreadful visions of renewed civil war, revolution, foreign aggression, and per- sonal violence, urged him to consent, as a measure of necessary self- preservation, to the death of the admiral and other principal mem- bers of the Huguenot faction. The wretched monarch yielded, though not without a long and painful struggle. Starting up sud- denly in one of those transports of delirious fury to which he was subject, he ordered, with fearful execrations, that, since it was nec- essary to shed the blood of the admiral, not a single Huguenot should be left alive in his dominions to reproach him with the mur- derous deed. On the feast of St. Bartholomew, August 24, 1572, the great bell of St. Germain I'Auxerrois rung out at the unwonted hour of two in the morning. This was the appointed signal: it was instantly repeated from all the steeples of the capital. Lights were sudden- ly shown in every window ; the assassins, armed to the teeth, and distinguished by white crosses in their hats, swarmed forth from their lurking-places in every quarter of Paris, and the work of death began. The first victim was the illustrious Coligny. Henry of Guise proceeded in person to his house, and remained in the court below, while one of his myrmidons, a German named Besme, went up, burst open the door of the old man's chamber, and bru- tally plunged his sword into his heart. Guise demanded to be satisfied with his own eyes of the completion of his vengeance ; and the bleeding corpse of the admiral was flung down from the win- dow at the feet of his heartless and triumphant enemy. To this hideous commencement succeeded an indiscriminate slaughter through the whole extent of the city, Avhich was continued with- out intermission until nightfall. "Bleed, bleed!"' cried the fero- cious Tavannes ; " the doctors say that bleeding does as much good in August as in May !" Neither age, sex, nor rank was spared. All the houses inhabited by Huguenots had been marked before- liand ; and the unhappy inmates, taken completely by surprise, were (ither butchered helplessly in their beds, or overpowered and dis- ] latched after a brief and hopeless resistance. The queen and her attendants were spectators of the appalling scene from the windows A.D. 1572. MASSACRE OF ST. BARTHOLOMEW. 343 of the Louvre ; and it is said that Charles himself, in his blood- tliirsty frenzy, repeatedly fired his arquebus upon the miserable fugitives as they attempted to escape along the quays of the Seine. Toward evening the king gave orders to put a stop to the mas- sacre ; but it was found that the demons w^hom he had unchained were not to be so easily appeased, and the carnage continued with scarcely diminished fury during several days. Similar enormities were committed in all the more important provincial towns — at Orleans, Troyes, Bourges, Lyons, Toulouse, Bordeaux, Rouen. The total number of the victims was never correctly ascertained, Da- vila estimates it at 10,000 slain in Paris alone ; 30,000, according to De Thou, were immolated in different parts of the kingdom. While the massacre was at its height, the king summoned Henry of Navarre and the Prince of Conde into his cabinet, and sternly commanded them to make their choice between death and the mass. The two princes replied at first with admirable firmness, and refused to renounce their faith ; but a few Aveeks afterward, overcome either by menaces, persuasions, or controversial argu- ment, they changed their tone, and consented to at least an out- ward semblance of conformity to the Komish Church. § 12. On the 26th of August, while the streets of Paris were still deluged with blood, Charles held a bed of justice in the Par- liament, and had the audacity to avow and justify the recent hor- rible events as having taken place by his orders, for the suppres- sion and punishment of a conspiracy by the Huguenots to murder liimself and the royal family, and overturn the government. No other means were left him, he said, for the preservation of the safety of the state. The Parliament was base enough to congrat- ulate the king on his wisdom, energy, and zeal for the public wel- fare ; they ordered the memory of Coligny and his accomplices to be branded with perpetual infamy by a judicial process ; condemn- ed to death two of the rebel leaders who had escaped the massacre ; Medal of Tope Gregory XIII. commemorating the Mas.-sacre of St. Bartholomev,-. Obv. : Gkegorivs . xiii . pont . ma.x . an . i : bust to left. Hev. : VG0>-OTTor.vM eteaqes : 15T2 : an angel slaying tlie Huguenots. ^44: CHARLES IX. CiiAi-. XVI. and instituted a solemn annual procession at Paris in commemora- tion of" the glorious day of St. Bartholomew. At Rome the news of this great blow for the extermination of heresy was hailed with extravagant manifestations of joy; the Pope and cardinals went in state to return thanks to Heaven for this signal mercy, and medals were struck in its honor. Philip II. extolled it as one of the most memorable triumphs of Christianity, compared it to the splendid victory of Lepanto, and boasted that the total ruin of Protestantism was now finally assured. Nevertheless, this great wickedness, like all state crimes, was quite ineffectual for the purpose toward which it was directed. The Huguenots had lost their ablest leaders ; they were stunned, confounded, scattered, weakened, but they were by no means whol- ly crushed. As soon as they recovered from their consternation they once more rushed to arms. La Rochelle, steadily faithful to the Reformed cause, broke out into open revolt ; and the court, after vain efforts of accommodation, was compelled to besiege the place with a powerful army, under the Duke of Anjou, in March, 1573. Every attempt of the assailants was repelled and defeated by the courage of the citizens and the fanatical zeal of the Cal- vinist preachers, numbers of whom had taken refuge in the town ; re-enforcements arrived by sea from England ; the Duke of Anjou, who during the siege received suddenly the announcement of his elevation to the throne of Poland, became impatient to terminate the struggle ; and in July negotiations were opened with the brave defenders of La Rochelle, which resulted in a treaty of peace. The Reformed worship was licensed in the towns of La Rochelle, Ni?mep, and Montauban, liberty of conscience was acknowledged, and the Protestants recovered their sequestered estates, offices, and honors. Thus the persecuted party once more raised their heads, and within a year from the date of the great massacre were in a posi- tion to address the king in bolder and more importunate language than at any former period of the contest. A third party now arose in the state, formed by a coalition of the Huguenots with the more moderate Catholics, the principal of whom were the three sons of the late Constable Montmorency, and the gallant La Noue. The Duke of Alen(jon, youngest brother of Charles IX., was placed at the head of this new confederacy, which was also joined by Henry of Navarre, the Prince of Conde, and Prince Louis of Nassau. The intention was to secure the throne to Alengon in the event of the death of Charles, to remove the queen-mother from power, and to establish complete freedom and equality in matters of religion ; but the scheme was ruined by the pusillanimous Aveakness of Alcn- 9on himself, who revealed the whole to his enraged mother. Catli- aiine acted on the occasion with her usual courage, vigor, and A.D. 1572-1574. RFJIORSE AND DEATH OF CHARLES. 345 presence of mind. Tlie Duke of Alen^on and the King of Nivvane were arrested and confined at Vincennes, and the Marshal Mont- morency was sent to the Bastile. The Prince of Condc succeeded in making his escape to Strasburg. It is believed that Charles was urged by his mother to proceed to extremities against Henry of Navarre, if not against Alengon also ; but the unhappy mon- arch, whose health was now rapidly declining, refused to take the life of his brother-in-law. The king had been laboring for some time under a dangerous aflPection of the lungs ; this was agf^ra- \ ated by an excessive nervous agitation, which had never left him since the fatal day of St. Bartholomew ; under this complication of maladies his strength wasted daily, and it was evident that his end was approaching. On his death-bed he suffered fearfully from the agonies of remorse in looking back on the atrocities which had disgraced his reign, and which, if not their original author, he had at least culpably sanctioned. His couch was frequently bathed in blood, a natural consequence of his disease ; and this was inter- preted by many into a sort of judicial retribution on his crimes. Having intrusted the regency to his mother, in the absence of his next brother the King of Poland, Charles IX. expired on the 30th of May, 1574. He had scarcely completed the twenty-fourth year of his age. / if C:'.thr.r'.ne ilc' Medici. P 2 Hemy III. CHAPTER XVII. HENRY III. A.D. 1574-1589. § 1. Character of Heuvy III. § 2. Confederacy of the Huguenots; joined by the Duke of Alenc^on and Henry of Navarre ; Treaty made with the Huguenots. § 3. Formation of the " Holy League," directed by the Duke of Guise. § i. Vices of the King. § 5. Expedition of the Duke of An- jou to the Netherlands; his Death. § G. Alliance between the Duke of Guise and Philip of Spain. § 7. War against the League; Treaty of Ne- mours; the "Seize." § 8. Battle of Coutras; Rebellious Intrigues of th-^ Leaguers; Guise enters Paris. § 9. Day of the Barricades; Flight of the King. § 10. Guise master of Paris; Edict of Union ; the States of Blois. § 11. Assassination of the Duke of Guise and the Cardinal of Lorraine ; A.D. 1574. CHARACTER OF HENRY III. 347 Death of Catharine de' Medici. § 12. Insurrection against the King ; the Duke of Mayence Head of the League. § 13. Reconciliation of the King witii Henry of Navarre ; they besiege Paris. § 14. Assassination of Hen- ry III. ; Extinction of tlie House of Valois. § 1. The new king, Henry III. (formerly Duke of Anjou), was in Poland at the time of his brother's death, and some months elapsed before he was able to take possession of his throne. Such was his feverish impatience to return to France, that, Avithout making any provision for the government of Poland, he quitted the palace at Cracow secretly at midnight ; and although pursued to the frontier by his indignant subjects, made his escape into Mo- ravia, and thence continued his journey into Italy. Having pass- ed some time in festivities and dissipation at Venice, Henry pro- ceeded to Turin, where he was induced by the Duke of Savoy to surrender Pignerol and other fortresses in Piedmont, the only rel- ics which France had preserved of the conquests of Francis I. He at length entered his own dominions on the 5th of September, and was conducted by the queen-regent to Lyons, attended by the King of Navarre and the Duke of Alen9on, who were now restored, to liberty. The king at once announced his determination to make no con- cessions to the Iluguenots. They were ordered either to conform to the dominant religion, and live as peaceable and loyal subjects, or to leave the kingdom. But this peremptory notification was not followed up by any vigorous acts of coercion ; and the Prot- estants, instead of submitting, began with redoubled ai*dor to or- ganize a fresh insurrection. Nothing, indeed, could be better cal- culated to serve the cause of disaffection and rebellion than the accession to power of a sovereign like Henry. He quickly lost whatever reputation he had acquired by the victories of Jarnac and Moncontour, and became an object of universal odium, disgust, and contempt. His character was frivolous, effeminate, and shame- lessly depraved. Totally without principle, he was at the same time slavishly superstitious, and even rigid in all the externals of religion. Though by no means destitute of talent, he was soon found utterly incapable of conducting the affairs of state; he neg- lected all serious business, and secluded himself for days together in the company of a band of debauched parasites, whose infamous orgies were such as to shock society even in that age of general laxity and corruption. The king married, immediately after his coronation, Lonise de Vaudemont, daughter of the count of that name, who represented a younger brancli of the house of Lorraine. This was an impru- dent match, and only served to augment the power of the GuisoF. The Catholics now found a leader in tlie celebrated Henry, diihc 348 HENKY III. Chap. XVII. of Guise, a young man who, though on the whole inferior to his father, possessed the advantages of brilliant courage, considerable ])olitical talent, and general popularity. Such Avas the course of events in tliis miserable reign, that Guise found himself ere long in the strange and hazardous position of being at the same time tlie chief antagonist of the turbulent Huguenots, and the declared opponent and rival of the throne itself. § 2. In February, 1575, a league was signed between the Hugue- nots, under the leadership of the Prince of Conde, and the party of the Politiques, as they were called, or liberal Catholics, repre- sented hy the Marshal de Damville, one of the three brothers Montmorency. The factious Duke of Alencon had soon recom- menced his intrigues ; and finding himself suspected by his brother, who is even said to have attempted to remove him by violence, he escaped from court and joined the insurgents in the south, who immediately proclaimed him the supreme head of their confedera- cy. In the following year, Henry of Navarre, who, though nom- inally at liberty, had remained under the jealous surveillance of Catharine ever since the day of St. Bartholomew, suddenly de- termined to shake off his voluptuous indolence and declare for the cause of the confederates. He escaped under pretext of a hunting- party, crossed the Loire at Saumur with a band of faithful adher- ents, and threw himself actively into the struggle. "They have put my mother to death at Paris," he exclaimed ; " they have slain the admiral there, and all my best friends; I will never return thither unless I am dragged by force." It is curious to compare this speech with the remarkable course of subsequent events. When Henry next entei-ed the capital it was as King of Fi-ance. The strength of the confederacy was now so great as completely to intimidate both the king and Catharine, who saw that they had no resource but in negotiation. In order to obtain peace, they were compelled to make the most humiliating concessions and sac- rifices. The Duke of Alencon required the cession of Anjou, Tou- raine, and Berri, in perpetual appanage for himself and his heirs ; the government of Guienne for Henry of Navarre, that of Picardy for the Prince of Conde. The full and public exercise of the Be- formed religion was authorized thi-oughout the kingdom ; the Par- liaments Avere to consist of an equal number of Protestant and Catholic judges ; all sentences passed against the Huguenots Avere annulled, and the insurgents Avere pronounced to have acted for the good' of the king and kingdom; eight toAvns were placed in their hands for an unlimited period ; and the States-General were to be convoked Avithin six months. Such AA^ere the conditions of the " Peace of Monsieur," as it Avas termed, Avhich AA'as signed on the Gth of May, 1576 — less than four years after that frightful A. D. 1574-1576. THE LEAGUE. ' .319 massacre by which it Avas hoped that the Huguenot faction avouIcI be finally extirpated from France. § 3. This treaty, Avliich conceded all the demands of the heretics to their fullest extent, was regarded by the zealous Catholics as a 2;ross insult to their religion, and a disgrace to their countiy. The king, they saw, had betrayed and abandoned their cause, and was utterly unworthy of their confidence ; it was therefore necessary to devise new means of self-defense ; and the situation of affairs naturally suggested the idea of a genei-al league among the Catho- lics, of the same character as that by means of which the Protest- ants had achieved such unexpected and extraordinary success. The machinery for such a movement already existed in the associ- ations or confreries which had been formed, through the agency of the clei'gy and the Jesuits, in most of the towns and rural districts, for the protection and advancement of Catholic interests ; and it was not difficult for the Duke of Guise, taking advantage of the daily increasing popular ferment, to combine these brotherhoods into one vast confederacy under his own direction, and thus re- commence the contest with overpowering numbers and every pros- pect of success. A document dispatched into the provinces speci- fied the following as the objects of the League: " 1. To re-estab- lish and maintain the service of God according to the rites of the Holy Catholic and Apostolic Church. 2. To preserve the royal authority of King Henry and his successors, and the due submis- sion and obedience of their subjects, according to the tenor of the coronation oath and the constitutions of the States-General. 3. In case of armed opposition or rebellion, the members engaged to employ every means in their power to resist, punish, and destroy it, even to the sacrifice of property and life itself 4. Any one who, afteu having taken the oath, should abandon the League, was to be treated as a public enemy, and punished with death. And, lastly, each member swore to honor and implicitly obey the su- preme head of the confederation, who, though not named, was uni- versally understood to be the Duke of Guise. The organization of the League spread Avith incredible rapidity tliroughout the country, and within a feAV months it counted up- Avard of 30,000 enrolled members. .When the States-General met at Blois in December, 1576, it became manifest at once that the ncAV combination had exercised a decisive influence on the elections, and that the League Avas all- powerful. The king opened the session Avith a speech full of dig- nity, good sense, and moderation ; but so completely had his scan- dalous life deprived him of all national respect, that his words wore received Avith utter indifliirence. The deputies, almost Avith- out exception determined Catholics, proceeded to make demands 350 HENRY III. Chap. XVII. directed not only against liberty in matters of religion, but against the authority and independence of the crown. Henry, with con- siderable address and skill, endeavored to parry this attack by sud- denly declaring himself head of the League, and commanding all his courtiers and officers to take the oath of federation : he hoped tlius to disarm the rivalry of the Duke of Guise, and sap his pow- er by leaving him no excuse for his meditated disloyalty. This step drove the Huguenots once more to arms ; but the States, un- der the influence of the Duke of Guise, obstinately refused to grant any supplies to the crown; and Henry, whose scanty re- sources were soon exhausted, gladly accepted overtures for a paci- fication, which was accordingly signed at Bergerac in September, 1577. The new treaty accorded to the Protestants a somewhat more restricted exercise of their religion, but confirmed them in all civil privileges, and in the possession of the eight cautionary towns. It also contained a clause suppressing and prohibiting for the future all political confederations whatsoever — an article which proved the king's utter insincerity in embracing the Catholic League. This arrangement, however, like all its predecessors, proved altogether fruitless : the violent partisans on each side re- mained no less irreconcilably hostile than before. § 4. During the interval of I'epose which followed, Henry aban- doned himself without restraint to those disgraceful vices and out- rageous buifooneries which wei-e the bane of his character and his reign, and which inflicted a deep and lasting injury on the social condition of France. The court became alternately the scene of unbridled sensuality and of fierce brawls, bloody duels, and licensed assassination. On one occasion three of the king's minions, who were not deficient in personal valor, fought publicly with thi'ec creatures of the Duke of Guise. Four of the combatants were killed on the spot, among whom were two of Henry's favorites. Over their dead bodies the monarch made a most preposterous and degrading exhibition of efieminate sorrow and fondness, and erect- ed for them a sumptuous mausoleum in the chui'ch of St. Paul at Paris. § 5. In 1581 the Duke of Anjou (formerly Duke of Alen^on) collected, with his brother's consent, a considerable French army in support of the Flemish patriots. Plenry excused himself to Philip for sanctioning this step by alleging the perplexities of his position, and his inability to restrain the eagerness of his Hugue- not subjects to support their co-religionists in the Low Countries ; but in reality he rejoiced in the prospect of thus ridding himself of a brother whom he both detested and feared, and of some thou- pniids of soldiers who had long since disowned his authority. The I''rcnch prince crossed the frontier in August, 1581, and success- A.D. 157G-1584. DEATH OF THE DUKE OF ANJOU. 351 fully besieged Cambrai, wliich was defended by the celebrated Alex- ander Farnese, prince of Parma. The negotiations, which had long been pending, for the marriage of the duke with Queen Eliza- betli of England, seemed destined at this moment to be finally suc- cessful ; the queen even proceeded so far as to go through the ceremony of betrothal. The people of the Netherlands, highly elated by this brilliant prospect, every where welcomed Anjou with the utmost enthusiasm ; and he was proclaimed Duke of Brabant and Count of Flanders with great pomp at Antwerp, in February, 1582. But Elizabeth, whose sincerity in the whole affair seems more than questionable, retracted at the last moment, on the plea that the marriage would not be acceptable to the English nation. The match was broken off; the vision of the English alliance, so vitally important to the cause of independence in the Netherlands, suddenly vanished ; and the Duke of Anjou and his adherents weie greatly discouraged by the reverse. The ill-advised young prince committed soon afterwai'd an unpardonable offense against his new subjects by seizing Antwerp, Bruges, and other fortresses, from which he forcibly expeljed the Flemish garrisons, and replaced them by his French troops, with a view of making himself an ab- solute sovereign. The populace rose indignantly against him, and the attempted treachery signally failed ; Anjou was driven from Flanders ; and the Spaniards, led by the victorious Prince of Par- ma, recovered fo? the moment their superiority. The discomfited duke returned to France, where, after languishing for about a year, he died at Chateau-Thierry, prematurely worn out by disease and chagrin, on the 10th of June, 1584. § 6. This event produced an important alteration in the posture of affairs. Henry III. had latterly become more and more incap- able of any vigorous and manly exertion, and had abandoned the whole administration to two newly-promoted favorites, the Dukes of Joyeuse and Epe^jon. The monarchy was rapidly tending to- Avard disorganization and ruin ; and in proportion as the reigning family sank into contempt, the cabals of the Guises became more and more audacious, and they made little seci'et of their determin- ation to erect the fortunes of their own house upon the crumbling throne of the Valois. Henry had no reasonable hope of posteri- ty, and was not likely to be long-lived ; the Duke of Anjou, his only remaining brother, was now dead, and had left no issue ; and it became an urgent question, to Avhom would the crown of France rightfully descend on the decease of the present possessor? Henry of Navarre traced his lineage by direct succession from Kobert of Clermont, a son of St. Louis ; but, although thus the first prince of the blood, his relationship to the reigning monarch was ex- tremely remote, reaching only to tlie ^wenty-second degree; and, 352 HENRY III. CiiAi-. XVII. what was far more fatal to his claims, Henry was a Huguenot, an excommunicated and relapsed heretic, the leader of a faction des- perately bent on religious and civil revolution. That an apostate from the Catholic faith should wear the diadem of France was forbidden alike by the fundamental laws of the monarchy and by the consecrated traditions of a thousand yeai'S. On the other hand, it was contended that the genealogy of the house of Lor- raine proved those princes to be the true heirs of Charles of Lor- raine, the last of the Carlovingian dynasty, so that the Guises, in taking possession of the throne on the extinction of the line of Valois, Avould only be resuming their usurped inheritance.* The League accordingly began to reorganize its forces, and commenced a fresh agitation, based on the imperative duty of combating the succession of a heretic prince, and maintaining the essential union of the crown with the ancient faith. Guise, however, judged that things were not yet ripe for the public assertion of his personal pretensions. For the present he put forward, as the legitimate successor in case of the king's death, the Cardinal of Bourbon, uncle of Henry of Navarre, an ignorant, feeble-minded man, who might easily be shaken off at the decisive moment. In January, 1585, a secret treaty was signed at the chateau of Joinville between the chiefs of the League and the envoys of Philip of Spain, by which the contracting parties engaged to extirpate all heresy both in France and in the Netherlands, and to exclude from the French throne any prince who should either profess, favor, or tolerate the pernicious doctrines of the so-called Keformers. Philip bound himself to furnish a subsidy of 50,000 crowns every month for the prosecution of the war. This compact having received the approval of the Pope, the League published a solemn manifesto in the name of the Cardinal of Bourbon, setting forth the national grievances and subjects of alarm, declaring that as Catholics they had taken up arms in defense of the true religion, and expressing tiieir resolution never to lay them down until the perils by which the nation was now encompassed should have disappeared. The explosion followed almost immediately. The Dukes of Guise and Mayenne mai'shaled their troops in their governments of Champagne and Burgundy ; Normandy and Brittany rose un- der the Dukes of Elboeuf and Mercojur; the Duke of Au male headed the revolt in Picardy. All the principal cities of the north, east, and southeast of France — Orleans, Bourges, Reims, Dijon, Lyons, Caen, Soissons, Amiens — declared enthusiastically ill favor of the League. * Supposing, however, this claim to be admissible, the Duke of Loi-rainc would evidently have taken precedence of the Duke of Guise, who represent- c I a youn.i:;er brancli of the family. A.D. 1584-1587. TREATY OF NEMOURS. 353 § 7. This new danger found the king in a pitiable state of im- potent vacillation. A few months previously William, prince of Orange, had fallen beneath the blow of an assassin, hired, it is more than suspected, by the King of Spain, and directed by the Jesuits. The United Provinces of the Netherlands now turned to France for support, and unanimously offered to Plenry the sover- eignty Avhich had been possessed by his brother of Anjou. The king hesitated ; he ardently desired to make this splendid acquisi- tion ; but, on the other hand, he shrunk from incurring the hazard of a war with Spain, and he feared to reawaken the dormant ani- mosity of the League. He answered the Dutch embassadors fa- vorably, but made no positive promise. The Leaguers discovered the negotiation, and it became one of the chief motives which im- pelled them into fresh hostilities against the crown. The king, though taken by surprise, was still not without the means of defense against this alarming confederacy. Many of the great provincial cities, including Bordeaux, remained faithful to the crown ; and even Henry of Navarre, although he refused to relinquish his connection with the Huguenots, assured the king of his steadfast loyalty, and offered to prove it by joining his standard with the whole body of his adherents. A vigorous, de- termined, and popular sovereign might have successfully confronted and crushed the League ; but Henry, conscious of his. real weak- ness, and prostrated by his excesses, thought only of purchasing repose at any pi'ice ; and no sooner did Guise make a demonstra- tion of advancing on the capital, than the king yielded uncondi- tionally, and signed the treaty of Nemours, by which he engaged to revoke all edicts in favor of the Protestants, to enforce the uni- versal profession of Catholicism, and, in short, to adopt without reservation the principles and policy of the League. All the chief posts of authority in the kingdom were now bestowed upon the Duke of Guise and the great Catholic leaders; and this recon- ciliation between Henry and the traitorous confederacy which so lately menaced his throne was hailed with loud and general ac- clamations by the citizens of Paris. On the other hand, the news spread consternation among the outraged Huguenots, and once more lighted up the flames of civil war throughout France. Hen- ry of Navarre, who was now formally excommunicated by I'opc Sixtus v., displayed extraordinary activity, brilliant courage, and great ability as a party leader. The " war of the Henries," as it was styled, presented at its commencement no combined opera- tions on an important scale, but was none the less lamentable and ruinous to the country, which became a scene of general anarchy and sanguinary violence. A new phase of this complicated struggle opened in the begin- 354 HENRY III. Chap. XVII. ning of 1587, when the astounding tidings reached France that the Queen of England, in consequence of a detected conspiracy of the Catholics against her crown and life, had sent her unfortunate rival, Mary Stuart, to perish on the scaffold. Paris was at this time completely dominated by the League, who had established there a secret council entitled the "Seize," from its consisting of representatives from the sixteen sections into which the city was divided. These demagogues were the absolute creatures of the Duke of Guise, and were perpetually hatching revolutionary plots for the aggrandizement and triumph of their patron. The horror and commotion caused by the execution of the Queen of Scots was seized by them as a means of exciting popular indignation and violence against the king, whom they accused, without the slightest proof or probability, of having counseled and abetted the crime. The sections were soon engaged in a conspiracy to sur- prise the Bastile and other military posts of Paris, to blockade the Louvre, put to death the principal officers of the court, and com- pel the king to abdicate the throne, as the sole means of preserv- ing his life. The plot was revealed to Henry on the eve of its execution ; and measures being taken to insure the defense of the points indicated, the conspirators abandoned their scheme. The agitation, however, continued to increase, and was extended, through the instrumentality of the League, throughout the coun- try ; and the king, finding more and more reason to distrust the intrigues and designs of Guise, resolved to prosecute the war with vigor, and bring it to a close, if possible, by a solid and durable peace. § 8. The royal army took the field in June, 1587, in three great divisions ; one of which, under the Duke of Joyeuse, advanced into Poitou against Henry of Navarre ; the second, commanded by the Duke of Guise, was opposed to the German auxiliaries in Lor- raine; while the king himself and the Duke of Montpensier took up a position with the reserve on the Loire. The king's secret hope and object was, that both the Huguenots and the Leaguers might, in the course of this campaign, be decisively defeated and crushed, in which case he would himself remain master of the sit- uation, and the way would be open for a complete re-establish- ment of the supremacy of the crown. But his calculations Avere destined to a signal disappointment. The King of Navarre, after attempting in vain to efifect a junc- tion with the Germans, fell back toward Guienne, closely followed by Joyeuse, who hoped to hem in the Huguenots between himself and Marshal Matignon. The armies engaged on the 20th of Oc- tober at Coutras in the Perigord ; the Catholics numbered about ein:ht thousand, the Protestants considerably less. "My cousins," A.D. 1587, 1588. GUISE ENTERS PARIS. 355 cried Heniy to the Prince of Conde and the Count of Soissons, " I have only to remind you that you belong to the blood of the Bourbons, and by the help of God I will show you to-day that mine is the elder branch ! " He gained a memorable victory at the cost of only forty men slain. The Koyalists lost their general, the Duke of Joyeuse, who was shot by a Huguenot after yielding himself prisoner ; five hundred gentlemen and upward of two thou- sand soldiers were left dead on the field. This great success, how- ever, had no proportionate result ; for Henry, like a knight-errant of the Dark Ages, hurried away into Beam immediately aftei the battle, to lay his trophies at the feet of his mistress, the fair Corisande, countess of Grammont. This act of weakness left the German auxiliaries exposed to the combined attack of the royal armies in the north. They were beaten in two successive actions, and, after suffering tremendous losses in a disastrous retreat into Burgundy, at length entered into a convention Avith Henry, and were permitted to evacuate the kingdom. The king returned to Paris, where he made his triumphal entry on the 23d of December, but found, to his extreme mortification, that the entire credit and glory of the campaign was assigned by the Parisians to their idol, the Duke of Guise. " Saul has slain his thousands," cried the multitude, "but David his ten thousands." The Sorbonne passed a decree announcing that it was lawful to depose from power rulers who misconducted themselves, as a guardian might be removed if suspected- of betraying his trust. Henry, exasperated and alarmed, interdicted Guise from coming to Paris ; but the duke knew his power, and this arbitrary measure only drove him to extremities. After an anxious interval of four months, during which the Seize and other chief agents of the League intrigued incessantly to mature matters for a general in- surrection in his favor. Guise entered Paris, escorted by a formi- dable train of nobles and gentry, and amid the tumultuous rejoic- ings and plaudits of the populace, on the 8th of May, 1588. He proceeded boldly to the Louvre, and was introduced by the queen- mother into the royal cabinet, where Henry and his intimate con- fidants wei*e debating at that moment the question of his life or death. The king, pale with rage and terror, I'ebuked him for hav- ing come to Paris in defiance of his express prohibition. Guise replied that he had come to defend himself from the calumnies of his enemies, and to invoke the king's justice against them. Hen- ry sternly rejoined that his innocence would be apparent if no popular riots or revolutionary movements should follow his arriv- al. The duke retired unharmed ; and on the following day had two audiences of the king, in which he urged him, in terms of in- solent dictation, to prosecute with vigor the war against the Hu- 356 HENRY III. Chap. XVIL gueiiots, and to take effectual measures to prevent the succession of a heretic prince to the throne. Heniy answered that he could not make war without money, and had no means of procuring it ; and after much bitter recrimination the parties separated, each convinced that the struggle between them could only be decided by force. § 9. During the night of the 11th the royal troops, consisting of the regiment of French guards and a body of four thousand Swiss, entered the city. But the League was on the alert; the alarm was given immediately in the sections, and at daylight the whole population of Paris was under arms. The Seize had fore- seen and provided for the emergency ; under their direction, strong barricades, formed of paving-stones, rafters, carts, and barrels, Avere hastily thrown up in the chief thoroughfares ; heavy chains were drawn across the entrance of each street ; every house was con- verted into a fortress ; each barricade was defended by a band of well-armed and well-commanded citizens. The king's troops ad- vanced to occupy the Place St. Antoine and Place Maubue ; they were furiously attacked by the insurgents, and after a brief contest were overpowered and surrendered. The exulting victors rushed on with wild cries toward the Louvre, and established a barricade Avithin a few yards of the palace. The terrified monarch found himself absolutely at the mercy of the League ; lie ordered his sol- diers to retreat, and sent Biron to beseech the Duke of Guise to put a stop to the effusion of blood. The duke, anxious to gain credit for moderation, made his appearance unarmed in the streets, appeased as if by magic the raging multitude, liberated the Swiss who were blockaded in the Cimetiere des Innocens, restored their arms, and caused them, together Avith the rest of their comrades, to be reconducted in safety to the Louvre. After such a mani- festation of his strength Guise could afford to be generous ; he Avell knew that the court could no longer refuse to grant his de- mands, however exorbitant and humiliating. He had scarcely re-, turned to his hotel when the queen-mother arrived to propose ne- gotiations on the part of Henry. The conditions dictated by Guise were those of a conqueror to the vanquished ; he required his own appointment as lieutenant general of the kingdom, with the entire direction of the war against the Huguenots ; all the great provin- cial governments for his relatives and chief friends; the dismissal of Epernon and other royal favorites ; an edict declaring Henry of Navarre and his family incapable of succeeding to the throne ; and the convocation of the States-General. These concessions would have amounted to a virtual abdication of the throne. Cath- arine, after consulting with the king, returned to the duke next day, and debated his propositions one by one at considerable length, A.D. 1588. THE BARRICADES.— EDICT OF UNIOX. 357 employing all her powers of eloquence and persuasion to obtain easier terms, but in vain. Poinding Guise inflexible, she secretly dispatched a message to tliat effect to the palace, upon which Hen- ry, who had made his preparations, instantly took horse with his immediate attendants, escaped a few shots wliich were aimed at him from one of the city gates, reached Rambouillet that night, and continued his flight next day to Chartres. § 10. Although the victor of the Barricades had thus let slip a . great opportunity in neglecting to secure the person of the sover- eign, he was nevertheless left master of the capital, and therefore, in fact, of the government. Great democratic changes followed ; the city magistrates were deposed, and replaced by the most de- voted members of the League ; the new municipal council took possession of the Bastile, the Chatelet, the Arsenal, Vincennes, and all the posts of importance in the neighborhood of Paris ; they published a rigorous proscription of the Huguenots and the Poli- tiques ; they sent circulars to all the chief towns of France, ex- plaining and justifying the late movement, and urging the prov- inces to support the good cause by sending approved delegates to consult with the leaders in Paris, and adopting general measures of co-operation. The Duke of Guise, however, while thus boldly seizing the re- ality of power, by no means designed, at all events for the present, to raise openly the standard of armed rebellion. He entered into communication witli the fugitive monarch, and sent him a respect- ful deputation of the municipality of Paris, with renewed proposals of accommodation, which varied very little from those oiFered after the day of the Barricades. Henry, after some hesitation, gave his assent to these conditions ; and on the 19th of July the treaty be- tween the coui't and the League, called the Edict of Union, was puMished at Eouen and Paris. The king named the Duke of Guise lieutenant general of the kingdom, pledged himself to use his utmost exertions for the suppression of heresy, dismissed Eper- non from his councils, restored the towns promised to the League by the treaty of Nemours, exacted a test of Catholicism from all holders of public emploj^ments, and convoked the States-General at Blois. Other honors and preferments were bestowed on the chief partisans of the League. But this reconciliation, extorted from Henry by the stern exigencies of the moment, was on his part profoundly insincere, and concealed purposes of implacable and deadly vengeance. The king, accompanied by the Duke of Guise, took up his resi- dence in the chateau of Blois in September, and the session of the States was opened at that place on the 16th of October. The deputies were exclusively Catholics, and for the most part strongly 358 HENRY III. Chap. XVII. in the interest of the League. The assembly soon displayed its violent, factious, intractable spirit ; the king was forced to take an oath to observe and enforce the Edict of Union, and to renew the sentence of exclusion from the throne against the Bourbons. The States next demanded that all new taxes imposed since the year 1576 should be suppressed, and all offices created within the same period abolished ; at the same time they obstinately refused to grant any fresh supplies, and voted the establishment of a judicial chamber — in which three fourths of the members were to be named by themselves — to investigate and control the financial administration. Henry, whose coifers were so completely ex- hausted that he was unable to defray the current expenses of his household, yielded as a matter of necessity, but only obtained in return for his compliance a reluctant and niggardly subsidy, quite inadequate to his requirements. § 11. All these accumulated insults and humiliations were im- puted by Henry to the Duke of Guise, whom he knew to be om- nipotent with the States. The duke's demeanor had become in- tolerably haughty and overbearing; his friends were in a constant state of revolutionary ferment, watching their opportunity to su- persede the king altogether, and usurp the supreme authority for their leader. The Duchess of Montpensier, sister of Guise, Avas in the habit of wearing a pair of golden scissors at her girdle, and openly proclaimed her purpose to perform the operation of tonsure on the last of the Yalois, who was thereupon to be consigned for life to a dungeon, after the fashion of the effete Merovingians. The king savk^ that matters had arrived at such a pass that either himself or his too powei-ful subject must succumb and perish. He knew that it was useless to attempt the expedient of a trial by law, since no court existed in the kingdom that would venture to convict the Duke of Guise. Extreme measures, he argued, "\ifcre justified by extreme emergencies ; an evident and imminent dan- ger is to be met by necessary acts of self-defense. After a severe conflict with himself, Henry resolved to employ assassination as tlie surest means of ridding himself forever of this arch-disturber of his peace. The execution of it was intrusted to Loignac, first gentleman of the royal chamber, with eight associates. Guise, meanwhile, received .repeated secret intimations of the fate in preparation for him, but treated them with lofty disdain. "They dare not!" he exclaimed; and added, that circumstances had brought him to such a pitch of desperation that, even if he saw death coming in at one of the windows, he would not take the trouble to leave the room to escape him. The king, intending to keep the festival of Christmas at Notre Dame de Clt'ry, had appointed a council to be held before liis dc-< A.D. 1588, 1589. ASSA'SSINATION OF THE GUISES. 359 parture on the 23cl of December, at an early hour in the morning. Having posted the assassins in his antechamber, and distributed daggers to them with his own hands, Henry sent an officer to summon the duke into his private cabinet, as if to confer with him apart before the council assembled. Guise, with strange infatua- tion, and maintaining .unmoved confidence, immediately obeyed. As he Avas in the act of raising the tapestry which covered the door of the king's chamber, one of the murderers seized his arm and struck him a violent blow on the breast ; a second stabbed him in the back ; the rest threw themselves upon him, and pre- vented him from drawing his weapon. Such, however, was the vigor of his powerful frame, that he dragged his assailants across the room, disengaged himself from them, and, collecting all his strength, rushed desperately toward Loignac, the chief of the band. Loignac pushed him slightly with his scabbard, and the duke, I'eel- ing backward, fell headlong to the ground, and expired at the foot of the king's bed. Henry now issued from an adjoining closet into which he had retired, satisfied himself that his enemy could no longer harm him, and was brutal enough to spurn the palpitat- ing corpse with his foot, uttering words of indecent triumph. Then descending to the apartments of the queen-mother, " Madam," he cried, "congratulate me ; I am once more King of France, for this morning I have put to death the King of Paris !" The Cardinal of Lorraine Avas arrested the same day, and pri- vately dispatched in prison. The Archbishop of Lyons, Brissac, La Chapelle-Marteau, the Dukes of Nemours and Elboeuf, and oth- er notabilities of the League, Avere also apprehended and detained in close custody. The death of the queen -mother, Avhich occurred Avithin a few days afterwai'd, January 5, 1589, though at any other moment an event of no coihmon importance, was scarcely noticed in the midst of the consternation excited by the murder of the Guises. This extraordinary personage, after presiding for near thirty years over the desiinies of France, had outlived her politic- al influence, and died an object of general aversion and contempt. § 12. The news of the catastrophe at Blois produced a terrible explosion of popular fury at Paris and among the Leaguers through- out the kingdom. The capital revolted forthwith ; the Sorbonne passed a decree releasing all Frenchmen from their oath of alle- giance to Henry III., and authorizing them to rise in arms against him ; a provisional government Avas appointed, and the Duke of Aumale, younger brother of Henry of Guise, was named to the chief command of Paris. The Parliament, after having been purged of sixty refractory members headed by the President De Harlai, confirmed the decision of the Sorbonne, pronounced the king deposed from tlic throne, and- udliercd to the revolutionary 360 HENRY III. Chap. XVII. government. Henry was at the same time excommunicated by the Pope for having murdered one of the princes of the Church. The insurrection spread rapidly into the provinces. The Duke of Mayenne, next brother of the murdered Guise, entered Paris on the 12th of February, 1589, and was saluted with enthusiastic ac- clamations as supreme chief of the Catholic confederacy ; the new government was now definitely constituted under his presidency at a vast assembly of nobles and military and civil authorities held at the Hotel de Ville. § 13. The king was dismayed and confounded by this formidable outburst of the tempest which his crime had provoked. Gradu- ally recovering his courage, he removed from Blois to Tours, where, after some delay, the Royalist nobility rallied round him, and he was joined by two thousand men under the Duke of Epernon. A renewal of civil war was unavoidable and imminent. Henry's means of defense were miserably scanty ; the Leaguers rudely re- pulsed all his proposals of accommodation ; and the only resource remaining to him Avas to effect a coalition with the opposite par- ty, and throw himself into the arms of Henry of Navarre and the Huguenots. This singular alliance was concluded in April, 1589 ; Henry of Navarre had an interview with the king, and engaged to unite his forces with the Royalists for the defense of the mon- archy against the rebel League. An admirable manifesto, drawn up in his name by Duplessis-Mornay, was immediately issued, in which Henry assumed the tone of a mediator between the king, the States-General, and the League, and made an earnest and pow- erful appeal to the moderate members of all parties to bury their differences, and associate for the safety of the state and the redress of national evils. This junction between the court and the Protestants materially changed the situation of parties and the aspect of affairs. It wr.s now the Catholic League that represented the cause of democracy and revolution, while the Huguenots gathered round the standard of legitimate authority, loyalty, and order. The king was thus enabled to open the campaign in great force, and with fair pros- pect of success. The two kings made a combined movement to- ward the capital, driving the Leaguers before them. Crossing the Seine on the 30th of July, Henry IlL established his head-quai- ters at St. Cloud, while the King of Navarre and the Huguenots encamped at Meudon. § 14. Paris was in a state of trepidation ; for the Duke of May- enne had but eight thousand men to oppose to these overpowering numbers. It was Avell known that, if the city were taken, the king would avenge himself without mei'cy upon those who had so ignominiously expelled him from his palace the year before, and A.D. 1589. ASSASSINATION OF THE KING. 3G1 wlio had since openly rebelled against his crown. The Duchess of Montpensier, a woman of masculine energy and resolution, spared no pains to inflame to the utmost the angry passions of the multitude against the tyrant who had shed her brother's blood ; and among other expedients, strong appeals were made to the fa- naticism of the priesthood and religious orders, to whom Henry was now specially odious, as an outcast from the Church and the confederate of heretics. A young and ignorant Dominican monk, named Jacques Clement, was artfully prevailed upon to regard the inui'der of the king under such circumstances as not only a law- ful, but a highly meritorious enterprise. He resolved to accom- plish it, and prepared himself for the deed by fasting, the sacra- ments, and prayer. Paris was to be assaulted by the combined armies on the 2d of August. On the 31st of July, Jacques. Clem- ent, having procured a pass from a Royalist prisoner, and a forged letter of recommendation to the king, proceeded to the outposts of the royal army at St. Cloud, and next morning Avas conducted by an officer to the king's quarters. On entering Henry's pres- ence he stated that he was charged with a communication of grave importance, which could only be made to his majesty in private. The king, without suspicion, directed the attendants to retire | and while he was engaged in reading the paper presented to him, the monk suddenly drew a knife from his sleeve and plunged it into his abdomen. The king drew the weapon from the Avound and struck Clement on the face, crying out, " Oh the wicked monk, he has slain me !" upon which the guards rushed in and dispatch- ed the wretched assassin on the spot with their halberds. The king's Avound was not at first considered mortal ; nevertheless, he summoned Henry of Navarre, acknowledged him as the laAvful successor to the throne, and caused the nobles to take the oath of homage in his presence. Toward midnight fatal symptoms pre- sented themselves, and the king, having pardoned the authors of his death and recei\'ed the viaticum, breathed his last between two and three o'clock in the morning of the 2d of August, 1589. Such Avas the tragic and miserable termination of the royal dy- nasty of Valois, which had given thirteen sovereigns to France, and had filled the throne during a period of tAvo hundred and six- ty-one years. Q 362 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Chap. XVIL NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. AUTHORITIES. The great original authority for the latter half of tlie 16th century and the commence- ment of the 17th is the Historia sui Temporis of Jacques August e de Thou, or Thuamis, one of the presidents a mortier of the Parlia- ment of Paris. The original is in Latin, 6 vols, folio ; there is a French translation, 8 vols, quarto. This work commences with the year 1545, and is carried down to 160T. Tlie first book consists of an admirable review of the previous history of France and of Europe. On account of certain passages the tendency of which was con'sidered injurious to the Church of l^ome, this noble work was in 1609 inserted in the Index E.rjyurgatoriu-". The author died at Paris in 1617. Another contemporary work of authority for this period is that of Davila, the Italian secretary of Queen Catharine de' Medici. His HUtorii of the Civil Wars in France, composed in Italian, extends from the death of Heniy II. in 155D to the Peace of Vervins in 1598. Davila shows an evident bias of partialitj' toward the French court ; but his great care and exactness in appreciating the character and motives of the various leaders and factions of the time render his work one of indispensable value and interest. The contemporary Memoires are very nu- merous ; among them may be mentioned those of Viellevllle. Marguerite de Valois, MarsHal Tavannes, and Duplessis-Momay. The History of his oion 'I'iwc, by tli? Hu- guenot Theodore A gn'ppa d'Aubigm' , also de- serves to be mentioned. Chap. XVIII. HOUSE OF BOUKBON. Genealogical Table of the House of Boukbon. Robert, count of Clermont := Beatrice, heiress of Bourbon, 12T3. younger son of St. Louis. | Louis, duke of Bourbon, ob. 1341. I 363 Peter, duke of Bourbon, James, count de la Marche. anctsto)' of the Cout^table | Charles, duke of Bourbon. John, count de la Marclie = Catharine, heiress of Vendume. I .. Louis, count of Vendome, ob. 1441. John, count of Vendume, ob. 14T7. Francis, count of ^'end6me. Louis, prince of La Roche-sur- Von I = Loui.-'M. countess of Jlontp^nsier. I ' This branch became e.xtinct IGOS. Charles, first duke of Vendome. I Antoine, duke of Vendome = Jeanne d'Albret, queen of Navarre, ob. 1572. I IIenky IV., king of France and Navarre, 15SD-1C10. =: 1 . Marguerite de Valois, d. of Henry II. 2. Mary de' Medici. . \ I \ \ \ I Louis XI IL, king, Gaston, duke of Flizabeth Christiana Henrietta Maria 1010-1043 = Anne Orleans, =PiiilipIV. = duke of = Charles L of Austria, d. of ob. IGGO. of i^pain, Savoy, of England, Philip 111. of Spain. ob. 1004. ob. 1GG3. ob. 1009. I- 1 Louis XIV., king, 1G43-1T15 Philip, duke of Orleans = M a I'ia Theresa, d. of (founder of the branch of Bourbon-Orleans), Ihilip IV. of Spain. ob. ITOl. ! Louis, the dauphin, ob. 1711 = Mary Anne Christine Victoire of Bavaria. Louis, duke of Burgundy, Philip V. of Spain. Charles, duke of BeiTy, ob. 1712 = JIary AdcUii;.c ob. 1714. of Savoy. Louis XV., king, 1715-1 741 = Mary Leczynska of Poland. Louis, the dauphin, ob. 1705. Six daughters. I-' i ^ 1 Loris XVI., Louis Stanislas Xaviev, Charles Pliilip, Three king, 1774-1793 count of Provence, count of Artois, daughters. = Marie Antoinette afterward Louis XVIII., afterward Cii.\ele8 X., ofAustria. king, 1S14-1S24. king, 1S24-1 830. ob.lSSO. I I ' I I J' ari.^ Theresa Louis XVII. Louis, duke of Charles Ferdinand, duke of =: I^ouis, duke never re:gned. Angouleme Berry, assassinated, Feb. 1S20, of AngouKnie. ob. 1795. = Maria Theresa, daughter of Louis XVI. Henry, duke of Bordeaux, Iv u'sa, comte de Cluuiibord—" Henry V." du'h ss of I'anna. Chateau of 1 au befoie IbSO, 'buthplaca of Henry IV. BOOK VI. THE ABSOLUTE MONAECHY. FROM THE ACCESSION OF HENRY IV. TO THE REVOLUTION. A.D. 1589-1789. CHAPTER XVIII. THE HOUSE OF BOURBON. HENRY IV. A.D. 1589-1 BIO. § 1. Henry of Navarre recognized as King by the Nobles. § 2. Henry in Normandy; Battle of Arques ; Attack upon Paris by the Royalists. § 3. Battle of Ivry ; Blockade of Paris ; Paris relieved by the Duke of Parma. § 4. Suppression of the Seize: Combat of Aumale; the Duke of Parma in Normandy. § 5. Meeting of the States-General ; Conference at Sn- resnes. § 6. Recantation of Henry IV. ; the King enters Paris. § 7. War with Spain ; Battle of Fontaine-Fran^aise ; Treaty of Folembray ; Dissolution of the League. § 8. The Spaniards seize Amiens ; it is re- captured by the King. § 9. Peace of Vervins ; Edict of Nantes. § 10. Internal State of France; Financial Administration of Sully. § 11. Ga- brielle d'Estre'es ; Divorce of the King ; his Marriage with Mary de' Med- ici ; Henriette d'Entragues. § 12. Intrigues of the Duke of Savoy ; Trea- son and Execution of Marshal Biron. § 13. Henry's Project of a Con- federacy of European States. § H. Succession of the Duchy of Ckves : Treaty of Halle; Henry prepares for War with Austria; the Princess of Conde. § 15. Coronation of Mary do' Medici; Assassination of Jlenry IV. ; his Character. A.D. 1589. HENRY OF NAVARRE RECOGNIZED AS KING. 3G5 § 1. Thje news of the assassination was received with an extrav- agant burst of rejoicing in the besieged capital. The Duchesses of Nemours and Montpensier paraded the streets in triumph ; Jacques Clement was celebrated as a martyr and invoked as a saint ; the Leaguers exulted and congratulated each other, as if the final success of their cause were already achieved. The Guises, however, although the course of events seemed now to have placed the crown Avithin their reach, hesitated to take ad- vantage of the opportunity. The Duke of Mayenne was much inferior in genius and daring to his elder brother, and shrunk from causing a division of his party. He proclaimed the Cardinal of Bourbon (then a prisoner at Tours) king, by the title of Charles X., and contented himself with the appointment of " Lieutenant General of the State and Crown of France." In the camp of St. Cloud the confusion and perplexity were at first extreme. The Catholic nobles, notwithstanding their recent engagement, showed a strong disinclination to accept the succes- sion of the Huguenot Henry of Bourbon ; they held a meeting, and placed before him in plain terms the alternative of remaining simply King of Navarre if he persisted in his heresy, or of em- bracing Catholicism and becoming King of France. Plenry re- monstrated with dignity against this rude treatment, and pointed out that such a sudden cluinge of profession could only be expect- ed from a man with no fiixed belief at all. At the same time he declared himself ready to submit to the instruction of a national council, and to give all necessary guai-antees for the security of the Catholic religion. After some farther discussion, it was agreed to recognize hint on these terms ; and on the 4th of August Henry signed, as King of France and Navarre, a solemn declaration, by which he bound himself to maintain the Catholic faith and the property and rights of the Church, to summon within six months a lawful national council and abide by its decisions, and to place in the hands of the Catholics all towns and fortresses, except those which had been assigned to the Protestants by the last treaty. This document was subscribed by the chief personages of the late court, including the Dukes of Conti,Longueville, and Montpensier, and Marshals Biron and D'Anmont. There were, however, some important exceptions. The arrogant Epernon refused his concur- rence, and retired, with seven thousand men, to his government of Saintonge. The stern Huguenots of Poitou and Gascony, headed by La Tri'mouille, duke of Thouars, also took their depart- ure from St. Cloud, announcing that they could no longer serve a prince who had entered into an engagement to protect idolatry. In the course of a few days the Koyalist army had dwindled to half its former numbers. Henry had neither money nor military 366 HENRY IV. Chap. XVIII. Stores, and it was evidently impossible for him to prosecute the siege of Paris Avith any reasonable hope of success. Under these circumstances, he had thoughts of returning into the south, or, at all events, of retreating beyond the Loire. One of his most faith- ful friends, the historian D'Aubigne, firmly opposed this project ; and Henry, fortunately for his interests, yielded to his representa- tions, and decided on remaining in the north. It was this de- termination, in all probability, that placed him eventually in se- cure possession of his throne. § 2. Breaking up from St. Cloud on the 8th of August, Henry directed his march upon Normandy. The first omen in his favor was the spontaneous adhesion of the governor of Dieppe, who placed the town in his hands ; tliis was an important acquisition, as Queen Elizabeth had promised to succor him with men and money, and the possession of Dieppe enabled him to secure his communication with England. Caen next declared for the Bour- bon cause ; and Henry, having formed a camp near Rouen, was prepai'ing to besiege that city, when he received intelligence that Mayenne had taken the field against him with the main army of the League, which had been largely re-enfo>x;ed, and amounted to near thirty thousand men. The general of the League was in the highest confidence, and had publicly boasted that he would soon bring back the " Btarnois" a prisoner to Paris. Plenry, on his approach, retreated from Rouen toward the coast, and fortified himself in a strong position at the village of Arques, about five miles from Dieppe. Here the Royalist army sustained and re- Ca-tle of Arques A.D. 1580, 1590. ATTACK IJI'ON PAKLS BY TIJK KOVALISTS. 3(j7 pulsed, between the loth and 28th of September, a series of vig- orous attacks from the immensely superior force of Mayenne, who, greatly discouraged by the defeat, judged it prudent to retire. In his present critical situation, this first and brilliant success was of considerable advantage to the king. Such was the confi- dence it inspired in his good fortune, that within a month he found himself at the head of more than twenty thousand men. He now executed a bold 'and rapid movement upon Paris, gained three marches on his opponent Mayenne, and on the 31st of October suddenly attacked and carried all the suburbs of the capital on the left bank of the Seine, his soldiers shouting '' Eemember St. Bartholomew !" as they cut down the affrighted citizens by hund- reds in the streets. Mayenne, however, arrived soon afterward with his army ; the Parisians recovered confidence, and put them- selves in a posture of resolute defense. Henry therefore, having gratified his troops by three days of pillage, retreated southward, and took up his quarters at Tours, which city, as the seat of the Royalist Parliament, became for the time his capital. The spirit, vigor, and ability displayed by the king in this cam- paign contributed greatly to advance him in popular opinion and general esteem. His title was now recognized in the greater part of Normandy, Brittany, Touraine, Poitou, Saintonge, and Gascony ; he had powei-ful adherents in Dauphine, Provence, and Languedoc ; he was In regular diplomatic communication with all the Prot- estant courts, and even with some of the Italian states ; the Pope himself, Sixtus V., expressed himself favorable to his claim. He profited, too, by the dissensions which soon biroke out among his adversaries. Philip II. advanced pretensions to the throne on be- half of his daughter, the Infanta Clara Eugenia, as niece and nearest relative of the late king ; the Dukes of Lorraine and Savoy made similar claims — the former in right of his wife, a sister of Henry III. ; the latter as son of the Princess Marguerite, daughter of Francis I. The embarrassments of Mayenne were greatly aug- mented by the factious cabals of the Seize and the Council of the Union, whose views were anti-monarchical and republican. § 3. In January, 1590, Henry was again in the field, and, hav- ing reduced several places in Maine and Lower Normandy, ad- vanced toward P^ris ; in the last days of February he laid siege to the town of Dreux. Mayenne, who had just received a strong re-enforcement from the Duke of Parma, marched hastily from Paris to relieve it ; on his approach the Poyalists made a move- ment a few miles northward, and on the 10th of March took up an excellent position on the plain of St. Andre, between Nonan- court and Ivry. Henry disposed his army, Avhich numbered eight thousand infantry and three thousand cavalry, in seven battal- 308 HENRY IV. Chap. XVIII. ions, commanded by himself, D'Aumont, Montpensier, and oth- er able officers ; one corps was in reserve under Marshal Biron. "My friends," cried the monarch joyously, as he fastened on his helmet, " yonder is the enemy, here is your king ; and God is on our side. If you should lose your standards, rally round my white plume ; you will always find it in the path of honor and victory!" The Leaguers, whose force amounted to sixteen thousand men, ad- vanced to the attack at ten in the morning on the 14th of March. The combat was terrible, but brief; in less than two hours the whole army of Mayenne was in utter disorder, and flying in all directions. The Count of Egmont, who commanded the Spanish auxiliaries, was slain ; the German reiters were overthrown and cut to pieces, the Eoyalists refusing them quarter ; five pieces of cannon, and no less than a hundred standards, were the trophies of the victors. The fugitives were pui-sued as far as Mantes, which town, opening its gates, saved the general of the League from being taken prisoner. The victory of Ivry, one of the most complete and glorious on record, raised the fame of Henry of Bourbon to the highest pitch, and he was celebrated on all sides as a hero. The road to Paris now lay open to him; and it is highly probable that, had he march- ed at once upon the capital, the League, under the pressure of the recent disaster, would have been forced to surrender at a single blow. But Henry's advance was delayed by various obstacles. He spent a fortnight in reducing the towns of Vernon and Man- tes ; several weeks more were occupied in gaining possession of Corbeil, Melun,Lagny, and other plp,ces commanding the approach- es to Paris ; and meanwhile the Leaguers recovered from their panic, and thirty thousand volunteers enrolled themselves under the Duke of Nemours for the defense of the city. On the 7th of May, the Royalists at length drew up in order of battle between the faubourgs St. Martin and St. Antoine, and a rigorous blockade was established, Avhich, after a time, reduced the Parisians to the last extremity of privation and suffering. The death of the King- cardinal of Bourbon, which occurred at this moment, made little change in the situation of affairs, except to enhance, if possible, the enthusiastic courage and devotion of the Leaguers in the de- fense of Paris. On the 24th of July, the royal army, which now numbered at least twenty-five thousand men, made a general as- sault on the suburbs on both banks of the Seine ; it was success- ful on all points ; and since both the garrison and the population were in a deplorable condition of distress from the ravages of fam- ine, the fall of the capital now seemed almost inevitable. But in these desperate circumstances the Parisians were at length succor- ed by the Spaniards under the Duke of Parma, who, by the urgent A.D. 1591. SUPPRESSION OF THE SEIZE. 369 commands of Philip, marched from the Netherlands to their relief. The duke reached Meaux with fourteen thousand men on the 2od of August ; and Henry, not venturing to await the attack of so dis- tinguished a commander in his lines before Paris, raised the siege on the 30th, and took post with his whole force in the plain of Chelles, intending there to give battle. The Duke of Parma, how- ever, Avas too consummate a tactician to be forced to fight against his will. Pie took up his position in front of Lagny, and on the Gth of September, by an admirable stratagem, carried that place by storm under the very eyes of the Royalists, thereby securing the command of the River Marne, and the means of sending sup- plies to the famished capital. A numerous flotilla of boats was instantly dispatched thither, conveying soldiers and abundant pro- visions. The king, completely foiled by the superior skill and science of his adversary, was now under the necessity of abandon- ing the field ; he distributed his troops iii various garrisons, and retired, humbled and discouraged, to Compiegne, with only a small corps for his personal protection. The Dukes of Mayenne and Parma entered Paris on the 18th of September. § 4. Thus the great results which might have been expected from the victory of Ivry were wrested from the hands of Henry ; the struggle was prolonged, and its final issue became more and more uncertain. Universal confusion and anarchy prevailed through- out the country. Violent discord broke out between the faction of the Seize and the Duke of Mayenne. The Seize arrested Bris- son, first president of the Parliament, together with two other magistrates, and had them executed at the Chatelet ; they nomin- ated a council of ten persons to take measures necessary for the safety of the state, and negotiated with Philip of Spain, with the view of settling the crown on the Infanta, who was to be united in marriage with the young Duke of Guise. INIayenne behaved with firmness and vigor, and succeeded in quelling the sedition ; he put to death, without trial, four of the most dangerous mem- bers of the Seize, and thus destroyed the power of that tyrannical body, which never afterward recovered its influence at Paris. Mayenne replaced them by functionaries sworn to respect his own authority until the legitimate election of a king, and outward or- der was at length re-established in the capital ; but the mass of the people, thus violently deprived of their favorite leaders, began to murmur at the continuance of civil war, chafed under the yoke of the League, and showed themselves disposed to a compromise which might be the means of restoring peace to their distracted country. In the mean time the Royalists, with the assistance of seven thousand English troops under the Earl of Essex, maintained the Q2 370 HENKY IV. Chai'. XVIII. war with unabated spmt, and in November, 1591, invested the city of Kouen. The Duke of Parma once more led a Spanish army to the succor of the Leaguers ; on his approach Henry left Biron to press the siege of Kouen, and marched to meet him in Picardy. A sharp skirmish took place at Aumale on the 5th of February, 1592, in which the king, rashly charging a column of the enemy, was surrounded, wounded, and ran imminent risk of being captured or slain. Kouen was ably defended by the govern- or, Villars, who successfully assailed Biron in his lines, inflicting immense loss; the Spaniards came up on the 21st of April, upon which the siege was immediately raised, Henry, having with marvelous activity rallied his forces to the amount of twenty thou- sand, advanced on the 25th and offered battle to Parma ; but the latter, who was suffering from a severe Avound, resolved to elude an engagement. During the night of the 9th of May he contrived with extraordinary skifl to pass his Avhole army across the Seine, with scarcely the loss of a man, and without sacrificing a single cannon. Henry, much irritated at being thus a second time out- generaled, followed hotly in pursuit; but the duke effected his re- treat in safety along the left bank of the river, reached St. Cloud in four days, and regained the ft-ontier of the Netherlands at Ar- ras. Here this illustrious general soon afterward died, either of his wounds, or, as it was freely asserted, from poison. § 5. The various contending parties were now growing alike weary of this calamitous, and, at the same time, indecisive strife, and anxious desires were expressed on all sides for the meeting of the States-General, as the most hopeful expedient for solving the questions at issue, and devising a remedy for the intestine mala- dies which were destroying France. The States were accordingly convoked by Mayenne, and met at the Louvre on the 26th of Jan- uary, 1593. Had the Leaguers been unanimous in their views, there is no doubt that they might at this juncture have placed upon the throne a sovereign of their own choice, and that Henry of Bourbon would have been finally excluded. But their councils Avere divided and distracted by conflicting intrigues. Mayenne, whose influence had been preponderant in the elections, fully hoped that the choice of the assembly would fall upon himself; a strong section favored the nomination of the young Duke of Guise ; while Philip of Spain employed all his energy and skill, backed by the vast means of persuasion at his command, to procure a majority of votes for his daughter the Infanta. The violent rivalry of these parties opened the way for a conference between the Royalists and the moderate Leaguers at Suresnes, in which, though nothing de- cisive was ai'ranged, Henry allowed it clearly to appear that he was prepared to make the sacrifice of his religion to the necessities of the state mid tlic miseries of hjs countr}'. A.D. 1593. RECANTATION OF HENHY IV. • 371 § 6. Henry had now fully made up his mind to the important measure — the " perilous leap," as he expressed it to his mistress, Gabrielle d'Estrees — which lie saw to be indispensably necessary to the peaceable recognition of his rights. A confei'ence took place at Mantes on the 23d of July, and after a deliberation of five hours the king declared himself perfectly satisfied of the truth of the Cath- olic religion. Two days later he proceeded to St. Denis, where he was met at the door of the church by the Archbishop of Bour- ges, with seven other prelates. Falling on his knees, Henry sol- emnly abjured his Calvinistic errors, and made profession of the Catholic, Koman, and Apostolic faith, upon which the archbishop absolved him provisionally, and restored him to the communion of the Church. Tiie procession then entered the minster, where high mass and Te Deum were celebrated in the presence of the court, the Royalist magistrates and officers, and an immense con- course of citizens, who testified their joy by loud and repeated ac- clamations. The reconciliation of Henry IV. with the Church of Rome, what- ever may be thought of it in a moral and religious point of view, was unquestionably an act of the highest political wisdom, and de- livered France from a state of domestic anarchy which threatened it with the loss of independence and utter ruin. It was a mortal blow to the League, which now became disorganized, and rapidly lost its influence throughout the kingdom. The chief provincial towns and the great mass of the population at once declared their adhesion to Henry ; a truce was proclaimed, and the civil war was generally considered at an end. Great numbers even of the Hu- guenots approved, on patriotic grounds, the step which the king had taken. Some, however, of tliose who had hitherto been most zealously attached to him now disappeared from court and retired into private life ; among these was the able and excellent Duples- sis-Mornay. It was not witliout considerable difficulty that Plenry obtained possession of the capital The Duke of Mayenne clung to power with stubborn tenacity ; he labored, for merely selfish ends, to pre- vent the conclusion of peace ; and by means of the Spanish garri- son under the Duke of Feria, and a few violent and impracticable members of the League, he still maintained the chief authority in Paris. The Count de Brissac — the same who had £io ably second- ed the Duke of Guise on the day of the Bai-ricades — was now ap- pointed governor of the city, and Mayenne took his departure for Soissons, where he hoped to find some auxiliary troops from the Low Countries. Meanwhile the king, having celebrated his coro- nation in the cathedral of Chartres, once more advanced toward Paris ; and Brissac, gained over by the promise of various high 372 • HENRY IV. Chap. XVIII. prefei'ments and a splendid pension, entered into an engagement by which the capital was to be surrendei-ed into the hands of the Royalists. The governor dismissed, under different pretexts, cei- tain regiments which were devoted to the League ; and at four in the morning of the 22d of March, 1594, Henry entered Paris by the Porte Neuve at the head of five thousand chosen troops, wlio rapidly and silently took possession of all the posts commanding the city, without encountering any serious opposition. The king repaired to Noti'e Dame, where he was received by the clergy ; the bells of the cathedral pealed forth a joyous welcome ; and the pop- ulace, who at first had looked on in mute surprise, at length yield- ed to the impulse of generous emotion, and filled the air with pro- longed shouts of " Vive le Eoi !" The Spanish garrison laid down their arms, and were permitted to evacuate the city with the hon- ors of war. Henry established himself in all security at the Lou- vre ; and being now master of Paris, felt himself in reality, what he had so long been only in name. King of Fi-ance. The forbeai'- ance, generosity, and magnanimity of his behavior in this hour of triumph exhibit his character in extremely favorable and engaging colors. The submission of Paris was soon followed by that of the prov- inces. A few months later the young Duke of Guise, urged by the advice of his mother, and even of his aunt the Duchess of Montpensier, accepted the king's overtures of reconciliation, and ceded to him various towns which belonged to his domains, and received in return the government of Provence, with a pension of 24,000 livres. The Duke of Lorraine Avas gained over in like manner by a grant of the towns of Toul and Verdun, and a pay- ment of nine hundred thousand crowns. Henry is said to have expended no less than tliirty millions in thus pui'chasing the al- legiance of the great nobles, and recovering the scattered portions of his royal heritage. ^ § 7. The king, in proportion as he became firmly seated on the throne, felt the necessity of bringing to a decisive issue his quarrel with Philip of Spain, Avhom he justly regarded as the main author of all his difficulties and troubles, and of the war which for near thirty years had devastated France. The feelings of personal re- sentment which urged Henry to this measure were heightened at this .moment by a daring attempt made upon his life by a young Jesuit named Chastel, who wounded him on the mouth with a dagger as he re-entered Paris from Amiens. This crime was im- puted, with or without reason, to the instigation of the King of Spain ; it furnished ground for an exemplary chastisement of the order of the Jesuits, who were sentenced to banishment from the kingdom within fifteen days by a decree of the Parliament of A.D. 1595-1597. BATTLE OF FONTAINE-FEANCAISE. 273 Paris. Henry published his formal declaration of war against Spain on the 17th of January, 1595, and his troops proceeded to invade Franche-Comte, part of the territories of Philip. The Eoyalists were here once more opposed by Mayenne, the obstinate lieutenant general of the League, who was soon joined by Velasco, constable of Castile, with ten thousand men. An encounter took place at Fontaine-Fran^aise on the 5th of June, 1595, in which the king, with his characteristic impetuosity and rashness, attack- ed three thousand of the enemy with a mere handful of cavalry, repulsing and routing them. This success enabled Henry to over- run the whole of Franche-Comte, and led to negotiations with Mayenne, who agreed to acknowledge the king's title as soon as he should receive absolution from the Pope. The Spaniards, however, compensated for their reverses in Burgundy by several brilliant exploits in Picardy. Henry hurried from Lyons to the north, but Carabrai had already fallen before he arrived. At this moment, when his affairs seemed again to' be taking an unfavor- able turn, the king most opportunely received intelligence that Pope Clement VIH. had pronounced the long-delayed absolution, and acknowledged him in due form as sovereign of France. The immediate consequence of this event was the submission and rec- onciliation of the Duke of Mayenne, and the final dissolution of the League. By a treaty signed at Folembray in January, 1596, the king made over to Mayenne three cautionary towns to be held for six years, granted a complete amnesty for the past, paid all his debts contracted during the war, and conferred on himself and his son offices of the highest trust. The Duke of Joyeuse was in- cluded in this treaty, and was named Marshal and Governor of Languedoc. Almost at the same moment the city of Marseilles surrendered to the Duke of Guise ; this produced the pacification of Provence; and the haughty Epernon, who had commanded in those parts for the League, now made his submission to the royal authority. § 8. The war with Spain meanwhile continued, and taxed to the utmost the energies and resources of the king. The Archduke Albert, governor of the Netherlands, marched rapidly to Calais, invested that fortress, which was feebly garrisoned and ill-provis- ioned, and compelled it to capitulate on the 24th of April, 1596. This disaster was followed by the fall of Ardres, which was treacherously surrendered to the Spaniards by the governor ; and the archduke then retreated unmolested to the Low Countries, for Henry's army was exhausted, and his finances reduced to the lowest ebb. Early in the next year the enemy inflicted a still more serious blow by the sudden capture of the important city of Amiens. Some Spanish soldiers, disguised as peasants, entered 374 ilENKY IV. CuAF. XVIil. one of the gates while the inhabitants were at mass, overpowered the guard, and admitted four thousand of their comrades under Portocarrero, the governor of Doullens. Henry was in conster- nation ; but, quickly recovering liimself, exclaimed, " My friends, I have long enough played the King of France, it is high time for me to play the King of Navarre!" He instantly set out with Biron and five thousand men for Amiens, having committed the task of collecting and equipping the main army to Maximilian dt Bethune, baron of Rosny, afterwai'd the illustrious Duke of Sully. Kosny, by dint of extraordinary exertion, tact, and perseverance, assembled twenty-eight thousand men, including a contingent fur^ nished by England ; and the siege of Amiens commenced. The garrison held out gallantly for five months, during which time the archduke made several imsuccessful attempts to succor them ; the city was completely blockaded by the French lines ; and the Spaniards, despairing of relief, at length capitulated on the 25th of September. § 9. The recapture of Amiens was the last operation of the war. Philip H. was now sinking under the weight of years and disease. He had expended enormous revenues in maintaining a lengthened struggle from which he had reaped little or no permanent advant- age, and he was anxious to effect a pacification before his domin- ions should pass into the hands of his inexperienced successor. Henry, whose state of embarrassment was extreme, longed equal- ly for an accommodation ; the Pope proffered his mediation to the two monarchs, and a congress met at Vervins, in the beginning of the year 1598, to arrange the conditions of peace. The only parties adverse to an agreement were the United Provinces of Holland and the Queen of England. Henry, it seems, had bound himself never to make peace with Philip without Elizabeth's con- sent ; this engagement he now violated, alleging that repose was absolutely required for the interests and security of France. The negotiations accordingly proceeded between France and Spain, the other powers refusing to take part. Philip sui-rendered Calais, Ardres, Doullens, Le Catelet, and all his conquests except the cit- adel of Cambrai. Henry restored the county of Charolais ; and upon all other points the arrangement conformed to the provisions of the treaty of Cateau-Cambresis in 1559. Such Avere the terms of the definitive peace of Vervins, signed on the 2d of May, 1598. A few days earlier (April 15, .1598) Henry IV. had subscribed a document even more memorable and important — the Edict of Nantes. Since the king's conversion the Huguenots had had considerable reason to complain of being treated with injustice, ingratitude, and neglect. Appointments and rewards had been lavished on their opponents, while they themselves had not only A.D. ]599. THE EDICT OF NA^ITES. . 375 declined greatly in political influence, but had repeatedly suffered by tlie partial and rigorous administration of the laws. The de- cree now promulgated established, Avith few restrictions, universal liberty and equality as to religious profession and worship. All towns were permanently secured to the IVotestants which they had obtained by the edict of 1577 ;* they wei'e admitted on equal terms to all public employments and dignities, military and civil ; a separate Chamber to protect their interests, called the "Chara- bre tie I'Edit," was instituted in the Parliament of Paris, together with similar courts in the provinces ; a complete amnesty was ac- corded for the events of the whole course of the war. Lastly, the Keformers received license to hold a general representative assem- bly once in three years, to deliberate on their affairs, and present to the crown reports on their condition and petitions for the re- dress of grievances. The Edict of Nantes was bitterly denounced and resisted by the clergy and all zealous Catholics, but was ulti- mately registered by the Parliament of Paris on the 25th of Feb- ruary, 1599. These transactions mark an epoch of truly critical interest i.i the history of France. The termination of those fearful religious wars which had convulsed and desolated the nation during nearly forty years — the peaceful establishment of the house of Bourbon on the throne — the full recognition of the rights of conscience, guar- anteed by legislative enactment and judicial institutions — such are the striking events which close the sixteenth century, that period of universal agitation and transition. The intelligent student will not fail to remark certain salient facts which resulted from this great struggle, and which illustrate the peculiar character and genius of France. They are such as these : That the religion of Kome, notwithstanding all the zeal, ability, and, to a certain ex- tent, the success of tlie Keformers, remained the predominant faith of the great mass of the people. That the crown survived a re- bellion which had menaced it with total ruin, and acquired in- creased power and strength by its victory. And, lastly, that after such an unprecedented contest, France made little or no progress toward the establishment of a free and well-balanced constitution. Nothing was done to limit and control permanently the excesses of arbitrary power. Tlie States-General, the national i-epresent- ative assembly, remained practically useless, and served only to display the incapacity of the people for the great duties of self- government. § 10. Having thus reconciled himself with his enemies both at * These were about seventy-five in number, and included some important cities, such as La Kochelle, Montpellicr, Nismcs, Grenoble, Niort, Lectoure, Chatellerault, and Castres. 37G HENRY IV. Chap. XVIII. home and abroad, Henry was enabled to devote Lis attention to the interior administration of the kingdom. The social state of France was at this period one of deplorable confusion, and, witli regard especially to the finances, approached nearly to national bankruptcy. The public debt was estimated at upward of three hundred millions of francs, equivalent, according to the relative value of money, to about thirty-two millions sterling. The gross amount of taxes paid by the people was two hundred million francs ; but such were the inveterate and monstrous abuses in the sys- tem of collection, that not more than thirty millions found tlieir way annually into the treasury. The diiferent branches of the revenue were leased out to officers called fermiers-genei'aux, who thought of nothing but of enriching themselves and their under- lings by shameless extortion and malversation. The governors of provinces levied arbitrary taxes for their own individual profit, an example which was followed by numbers of the great territo- rial nobles. Nearly the whole of the royal domain was alienated ; and the creditors of the state were sulFered to pay themselves at their own pleasure, with no efficient control or investigation of ^-he correctness of their claims. Henry was eminently fortunate in being able to nominate, for the redress of these gigantic evils, a minister so admirably qualified as the great Sully. Sully was appointed "surintendant des finances" in 1598 ; and by the stern, inflexible probity of his character, combined with remarkable gifts :.Iedal of the Duke of Sully. of perspicuity, accuracy, and regularity, he succeeded in the course of a few yeai'S in effiscting a searching reform in every department of the public revenue. He commenced by dismissing the inferior farmers of the taxes, and compelling the fermiers-generaux to take out new leases; he ascertained in each case the real value of the impost, and then renewed the leases at a very considerable ad- A.D. 1599. FINANCIAL ADMINISTRATION OF SULLY. 377 vance upon the former rents, thus nearly doubling at once the in- come derived from them. He next issued a decree prohibiting all levying of taxes without a royal ordonnance registered by the Parliament, a measure which suppressed the entire system of private pillage pi-acticed by provincial governors and grandees. The Duke of Epernon, who was tlius shorn of a yearly revenue of 60,000 livres, attempted to resist ; but Sully was not to be in- timidated ; he answered the proud noble with haughtiness equal to his own, and Epernon was compelled to submit. A rigorous examination was made of all claims and charges on the royal do- main, which produced an immense resumption of alienated prop- erty, to the amount of near two millions yearly. Numbers of useless offices, fictitious titles of nobility, and illegal privileges of exemption, were abolished, and the value of the taxes was thus augmented to a vast extent. Another of Sully's expedients was the imposition of a tax called the jjau/eWe,* by payment of which all officers in the departments of justice and finance were enabled to secure the hereditary transmission of their appointments. To these various methods of increasing the resources of the state this gi'eat financier added a strict and persevering economy in the pub- lic expenditure. During his administration the debts of the crown were paid to the extent of 140 millions of francs, while at the same time the amount of taxation was reduced to twenty-six millions, with a net produce to the treasury of twenty millions. Besides this, Sully accumulated a reserve fund amounting to upward of twenty millions of livres. Plenry and his minister also gave a vast impulse to the produc- tive powers of the country by the encouragement of agriculture and every branch of industry and commerce. Vast enterprises were undertaken fo** the draining of marshes, the preservation of forests, the cultivation of the mulberry, the rearing of cattle, the construction of roads, bridges, and navigable canals. The manu- factures of silk, cloth, tapestry, and linen were specially protected, and carried to a high degree of perfection. Commercial treaties were negotiated with England, Holland, Spain, and Turkey. Com- munications were also opened with North America, and French colonies were now first established in Canada, where Champlain, a gentleman of Saintonge, founded in 1608 the city of Quebec. § 11. The king's domestic relations wei'e a source of great dis- satisfaction and anxiety. He had been separated for many years from his wife, the licentious Marguerite of Valois, whom he had never loved, and whose notorious gallantries had caused universal scandal. Having no legitimate heir, Henry began to think seri- ously of procuring a divorce, and uniting himself in a second mar- * From the name of the contractor, Paulet, who first suggested it to Sully. 378 HENRY IV. Chap. XYIII. riage with his mistress, the fascinating Gabi'ielle d'Estrees, by whom he had several children. He had created her Duchess of Beaufort, and had already taken measures to legitimate one of her sons, the Duke of Vendome. Many of the leading nobles of the court were said to support strongly the pretensions of Gabriellc as the future partner of Henry's throne; she was, however, reso- lutely opposed by Sully, and his superior influence with the king proved fatal to her. The impatient duchess, finding the minister impracticable, was unwise enough to seek to prejudice her lover against him, and boldly demanded his disgrace. Meeting with a denial, she broke out into passionate reproaches and lamentations, and in her rage applied the epithet of " valet" to the illustrious Sully. "Madam," said Henry, with great calmness, "let me tell you that, were I compelled to choose between you and the duke, I could more easily part with ten mistresses like you than with one faithful servant like him." This decisive blow to her hopes produced a profound and melancholy effect on Gabrielle. She was taken dangerously ill in April, 1599, Avas delivered of a still- born child, and expired the next day, after many hours of agoniz- ing convulsions. The circumstances of her death, and its occur- rence at this precise moment, gave rise to suspicions of poison, Avhich, however, w^ere never in the slightest degree substantiated. jNIarguerite of Valois, who had refused to consent to a divorce in order to pave tlie w'ay for tlie advancement of her husband's niis- tress, now ceased to combat the king's views ; and tlie court of Kome pronounced tlie dissolution of the marriage, tmder the pre- text of spiritual affinity, in December, 1599. Meanwhile the amorous Henry had conceived a new passion for the beautiful Plenriette d'Entragues, who soon succeeded to the position occu- pied by the Duchess of Beaufort. She received the title of Mar- chioness of Verneuil, together with a written promise of marriage in case she should give birth to a son within the year. Sully, to whom Henry showed this document, had the courage to tear it in pieces ; notwithstanding which, the infatuated monarch immedi- ately renewed the engagement. The marchioness, however, in con- sequence of a sudden fright, was prematurely confined of a dead son, and tlie king's contract became happily void. The king now concluded a treaty of marriage with Mary de' Medici, daughter of the late Grand-duke of Tuscany, and niece of the reigning sover- eign. The marriage was celebrated by proxy on the 5th of Oc- tober, ICOO ; the Florentine princess, attended by a splendid train, landed at Marseilles in November, and was met by Henry at L)-- ons. Their union Avas not happy, the new queen being of a liaughty, jealous temper, and little disposed to suffer patiently the habitual infidelities of her consort ; but several children were tlia A. D. 1600. INTRIGUES OF THE DUKE OF SAVOY. 379 .Aim];;l of lle-Jiy IV. r.n'.l Mary cle' ^.ledici fruit of the marriage, the eldest of whom, born 27th of September, 1601, became in the sequel Louis XIII. § 12. It was in the course of the year 1600 that, through the intrigues of Charles Emmanuel, duke of Savoy, an extensive and alarming conspiracy was formed against the king, having for its object nothing less than the dismemberment of France into inde- pendent feudal states, under the protection, or rather the sover- eignty, of the King of Spain. A dispute existed between Henry and the Duke of Savoy on account of the retention by the latter of the marquisate of Saluces, the cession of which to France had been stipulated by the treaty of Vervins. The duke proceeded to Paris to negotiate in person with the king, and while there con- trived to corrupt the fidelity of many of the superior officers and nobles, chiefly former members of the League, whose state of sul- len discontent made them ready listeners to his insidious propo- sals. The principal of these was the Marshal de Biron, one of the most valued of Henry's companions in arms — who had fought gallantly by his side at Arques, at Ivry, at Aumale, at Fontaine- Fran^aise — but who, altliough loaded with honors and rewards, never ceased to make bitter complaints of the ingratitude of his royal master. Biron was a man of intolerable presumption, vani- ty, and pride ; his self-love had been deeply wounded by a dis- paraging speech of Ilenry's, which was maliciously repeated to him by the Duke of Savoy ; and on being offered the dukedom of Burgundy, together Avith a princess of Savoy in marriage, he was easily overcome by the temptation, and became a traitor to his prince. The Duke of Savoy, though he had agreed to give Henry satis- faction, refused at the last moment to surrender the contested ter- ritory ; the consequence was a declaration of war ; and the king, putting himself at the head of his army, which was commanded 380 HENRY IV. Chap. XVIII. under him by Bii'on and Lesdiguieres, rapidly overran tlie prov- ince, and on tlie 21st of August, 1600, entered Cliambery, the cap- ital, in triumph. Charles Emmanuel now sued for peace, which was granted on his surrendering to France the district of La Bresse, between Geneva and Lyons, in exchange for Saluces. On return- ing from this campaign in January, ICO 1, the king, who had re- ceived some intimation of the disloyal schemes of Biron, question- ed him on his relations with the Duke of Savoy, induced him to avow his fault, frankly pardoned him, and sent him as embassador to England. Here Biron is said to have received a significant ad- monition from Queen Elizabeth, who, pointing out to the embas- sador the heads of Essex and other traitors on the gateway of the Tower, observed'that her brother of France might find similar acts of severity necessary to the safety of his throne, and that she trust- ed he would not have cause to repent of his present clemency. Biron was nevertheless prevailed on to renew his cabals with the enemies of France ; and Henry received fi'om a treacherous confi- dant of Biron's, named Lafin, ample and convincing proofs of the marshal's guilt. Biron now received an invitation, couched in the most generous and friendly terms, to repair to the court of Fon- tainebleau ; as he could not refuse without openly breaking with Henry, he obeyed, and arrived at the palace on the 12th of June. The king, who was much attached to him, was fully prepared to pardon him a second time, if he would only make a candid and complete confession. Biron, however, stood proudly on the de- fensive, and said he had come to demand justice against the calum- nies of his accusci'S. Irritated by his perverse obstinacy, Henry abandoned him to his fate. " Monsieur de Biron," said he, " I see that you are resolved to tell me nothing ; perhaps I shall be able to obtain farther information from the Count of Auvergne. Adieu, Baron de Biron !" The marshal was arrested as he passed into the antechamber ; the Count of Auvergne an hour afterward, as he Avas attempting to escape. They Avere conducted to the Bastile, and the trial of Biron commenced immediately before the Parliament of Paris. His correspondence with Lafin being pro- duced in evidence, Avhich revealed the entire plot, it was impossi- ble for him any longer to maintain his innocence. He attempted to shelter himself under the royal pardon accorded to him the year before, but the plea was disallowed, and on the 29tli of July the ill-fated Biron was unanimously condemned to death. Pie. ad- dressed himself in humble and pathetic terms to Henry, recount- ing his past services, and entreating mercy by the memory of no less than thirty-two woupds received in combating the king's ene- mies. The appeal was fruitless? and on the 31st of July, 1G02, Biron underwent the execution of his sentence in the court of the A.D. 1G09, 1610. PROJECT OF A p:UROPEAN CONFEDERACY. 381 Bastile, being thus spared the public ignominy of suffering, like common criminals, on the Place de Greve. § 13. This terrible example was widely felt both in France and in foreign countries. Other plots of the aristocracy against Henry were as promptly suppressed, and the internal tranquillity of his kingdom was henceforth secure. Three years of universal peace succeeded, during which the act- ive spii'it of Henry was earnestly engaged in a grand project which he had conceived for the humiliation of the house of Austria in both its bi'anches, and the rearrangement of the family of European states. This scheme consisted in the formation of a confederacy or commonwealth of nations, embracing within itself, on a perfect- ly equal footing, the three prevailing forms of Christianity — the Catholic, the Lutheran, and the Reformed — and guaranteeing the free enjoyment of those political institutions which each member might prefer. The association was to comprise six hereditary mon- archies — France, Spain, Great Britain, Denmark, SvA'cden, and Sa- voy, or Northern Italy; six elective monarchies — the empire, Po- land, Hungary, Venice, Bohemia, and the Papal States ; and three republics — the Netherlands, Switzerland, and the Italian Repub- lic, containing Genoa, Lucca, and other small provinces. This programme would have inflicted an immense loss of territory upon Spain by the severance of Lombardy, the Netherlands, and Franche-Comte ; while the Austrian Empire would have been at least equally curtailed by the surrender of Hungary, Bohemia, and the Tyrol. The equilibrium thus established was to be maintain- ed by a federal council or diet, the decisions of which were to be final in all cases of dispute between the associated states. The main drift and aim of Henry's policy Avas the establishment of a sufficient counterpoise against tlie overgrown empire of Spain ; and it was in the pursuance of this object that Henry found him- self, in the last years of his life, on the verge of engaging in a gen- eral European war. § 14. The Duke of Cleves, Juliers, and Berg died without heirs on the 25th of March, 1609. Llis dominions, though not extens- ive, were of importance, as lying between the Netherlands, the Rhine, and Germany ; and a host of competitors appeared to dis- pute the succession. The emperor contended that, as a male fief of the empire, the duchy reverted to him by default ; the Elector of Brandenburg and the Count Palatine of Neuburg laid claim to it in right of the late duke's sisters ; other pretensions were ad- vanced by the royal house of Saxony. Henry IV. supported the rights of the princes of Brandenburg and Neuburg ; and by a treaty signed at Halle in January, 1610, he engaged to fui-nish them with a contingent of ten thousand men. He thus placed 382 HENRY IV. Chap. XVUI. himself in direct antagonism to the house of Austria ; and the war, if it had broken out in earnest, must have assumed the shape of a struggle for predominance between France and the empire. Henry's military preparations were on a vast scale. One army, of thirty thousand men, was ready to march under his own orders against Jnliers ; a second, fourteen thousand strong, was to com- bine with the Duke of Savoy in an attack on the Milanese ; while a third, of twenty-five thousand, was marshaled on the Pyrentean frontier, and was destined to invade Spain. At this moment, while Europe was intently watching his mighty armaments, and await- ing in breathless suspense the outbreak of the tempest, Henry, whose advancing years had by no means taught him to bridle his licentious passions, became desperately enamored of Charlotte de Montmorency, daugliter of the Constable, a young lady of exqui- site beauty, who had just been married to Henry, prince of Conde. This new caprice led the king into the most outrageous and ridic- ulous extravagances. His unprincipled pursuit of the youthful ])rincess awakened the jealousy of her husband, who carried her (>!f first to Chantilly, then to a chateau in Picardy ; and at last, as Henry still persevered, Condy his A.D. 1G21- REVOLT IN BEARN. 39X agency an arrangement was concluded, by which the queen-moth- er was set at liberty, and permitted to select at pleasure her future place of residence ; her revenues were restored, and she received the government of Anjou. An amnesty was proclaimed in favor of Epernon and his folloAvers, and an interview took place shortly afterward between Louis and his mother at Tours, which to all appearance sealed their reconciliation. This event was followed by the liberation of the Prince of Conde, who had been a prison- ei'j first ill the Bastile, afterward at Vincennes, for upward of three years. The prince joined himself to the party of the minister, who hoped, by means of his influence and reputation, to hold in check the adherents of the queen-mother. § 4. The little Protestant province of Beam was at this time in a state of turbulent agitation in consequence of a royal edict an- nouncing its annexation to the crown, together with the complete re-establishment of the Catholic religion. This decree was stout- ly resisted, and Louis, having now a powerful army in the field, determined to take extreme measures for enforcing it. He march- ed in person to Pau, caused the churches and ecclesiastical prop- erty to be restored to the Catholic bishops and clergy, strongly garrisoned the fortresses, and reduced the province to apparent obedience. But the outraged Huguenots soon recovered from their surprise, and early in 1621 held a general assembly of their party at La Rochelle, at which it was resolved, in the midst of in- tense excitement, once more to appeal to arms in defense of their cause against the crown. Every thing betokened a renewal of the calamitous civil strife of the preceding reigns. Louis took the field in April, 1621, having first, to the astonishment and disgust of tlie whole kingdom, delivered the Constable's sword to the fa- vorite De Luynes, who was totally ignorant of* the art of war. The royal army, after receiving the submission of the towns of Poitou, laid siege in August to the town of Montauban, the prin- cipal strong-hold of the Huguenots in Languedoc ; but such was the incapacity betrayed by the Constable in conducting the opera- tions, that by the beginning of November no progress whatever liad been made toward reducing the fortress. The Duke of Rohan advanced to its relief, and after three months of fruitless labor, during which he had sacrificed no less than eight thousand men, Louis was. compelled ignominiously to raise the siege. This dis- graceful failure called forth a general outcry of indignation against tlie favorite. The king himself began to weary of him, and symp- toms soon occurred of his declining favor. He was cari'ied off by a malignant fever, which raged in the camp, on the 14th of De- cember, 1G21. The king was little aflfected by his loss, and he was regTcttcd by none. His death, however, Mas an event of con- 392 LOUIS XIII. Chap. XIX. siderable importance, as Louis was too feeble a character to govern independently, and it was difficult to conjecture, among the per- sonages who were at that time conspicuous at court, upon whom his next choice of a confidential minister would fall. § 5. The question remained for some time undecided, and vari- ous intrigues were set on foot among the eager competitors for power, the main contest lying between the Prince of Conde and the queen-mother, supported by her faithful ally Richelieu. Mean- while the war with the Huguenots continued to cause great anx- iety. Hostilities continued in 1622 uniformly to the advantage of the royal arms. The Huguenots suffered a severe loss in the defection of the veteran Marshal Lesdiguieres, who, on his conver- sion to Catholicism, was rewarded by the king with the appoint- ment of Constable of France. The revolt was almost entirely put down in Guienne and Languedoc, and the campaign concluded with the successful siege of Montpellier, where peace was signed on the 19tli of October. By the peace of Montpellier the Hugue- nots were deprived of all the fortified towns guaranteed to them by former treaties, with the exception of La Rochelle and Mont- auban. Notwithstanding these military successes the government of Louis had now fallen into a lamentable state of weakness and disorder. The main object of his chief advisers, all men of in- ferior talent, was to exclude from the council the ambitious Riche- lieu, of whose commanding genius they stood in jealous awe. The king himself regarded him with personal dislike, and from this cause, as' well as from perverse opposition to his mother, long re- fused to readmit him to any share of power. The queen-mother, however, compelled Louis to fulfill the promise which he made to Richelieu of procuring for him a cardinal's hat ; and Richelieu was accordingly elevated to the conclave on the 5 th of Septem- ber, 1622. The ambition of the house of Austria, both in the Imperial and Spanish branch, was again causing disquietude in France. Fre- quent changes were made in the ministry, but the situation of af- fairs continued to grow more and more unsatisfactory until, through the urgent importunity of the queen-mother, the king was reluct- antly prevailed upon to summon the Cardinal de Richelieu to his councils. This memorable event, so propitious to the fortunes of France, took place on the 26th of April, 1624. § 6. Although it was by no means intended to bestow on Riche- lieu the first place in the administration, he had not been six months in office before his supremacy Avas fully understood and recognized by the king, the Council, the court, and the whole nation, livery department of the public service soon felt the irresistible energy A.D. 1624,1625. WAR WITH SPAIN AND THE EMPIRE. 393 of his character, and his extraordinary capacity for the great task of government. He had long formed and matured his convictions as to the true policy and interests of France ; and having propounded them to the king with admirable distinctness, he prepared to carry them out with that immovable steadiness of purpose which ever marks a genius of the first order. " I may say with truth," such are his own words to Louis in his "Testament Politique," "that at the time of my entrance upon office the Huguenots divided the power of the state with your majesty; that the great nobles conducted themselves as if they were not your subjects, and the governors of provinces as if they were independent sovereigns in their own dominions. Foreign alliances were depreciated and misunder- stood ; private interests preferred to those of the state ; and, in a word, the majesty of the crown was degraded to such a depth of abasement that it was scarcely to be recognized at all." Accord- ingly, the main objects proposed by this great statesman — objects which he pursued with undeviating perseverance throughout his public life — were the annihilation of the Huguenots as a political party, the complete subjugation of the aristocracy to the royal authority, and the restoration of France to her predominant in- fluence in Europe by the systematic humiliation of the house of Austria. The first measures of Richelieu were directed against Spain and the empire. In oi'der to repress their encroachments, he projected a grand alliance between France and the Protestant powers of the north ; and with this view he negotiated a treaty of marriage be- tween Charles, prince of Wales, the heir to the throne of England, and the Princess Henrietta Maria, one of the sisters of Louis XIH. A match previously arranged between Charles and a Spanish in- fanta was abruptly broken off, and in May, 1625, the Duke' of Buckingham arrived at Paris for the purpose of conducting the affianced Queen of England to London. About the same time the cardinal opened friendly communications with the courts of Sweden, Denmark, and the United States of Holland ; and the celebi'ated Count Mansfeld was permitted to collect auxiliary troops in France, and raised an ample subsidy toward the ex- penses of the war. The cardinal sent an army into the Valteline, which the Spaniards and Austrians had wrested from the Grisons, and which was important as forming a communication between the Tyrol and Northern Italy. The French commander in the course of a few weeks expelled the Austrian garrisons and took complete possession of all the fortresses. The Pope, to whose ar- bitration the dispute had been referred, remonstrated with useless vehemence. Eichelieu gave him plainly to understand that, al- R 2 394 LOUIS XIII. GiiAF.XIX. though a prince of the Church, his first object was to maintain the dignity and advance the interests of France. The plans of Richelieu were suddenly disarranged by a fresh rising of the Huguenots, under the Dukes of Rohan and Soubise, during the summer of 1625. The projected operations against Austria were now postponed ; and the royal fleet, commanded by the Duke of Montmorency, and assisted by squadrons furnished by England and the Dutch republic, was dispatched against the re- bellious Rochellois. A great naval battle was fought oflt" the coast on the 15th of September, resulting in the decisive defeat of the insurgents. Soubise with difficulty made his escape to England with the shattered remains of his fleet. La Rochelle lay at the king's mercy; but it was not the purpose of Richelieu at this time to push the Huguenots to extremities. In the midst of these vigorous enterprises at home and abroad, he had discovered the existence of a formidable conspiracy against his administra- tion and his life ; and in order that h^ might devote himself to its suppression, it was necessary that hostilities should cease or be adjourned for a time. Richelieu made peace with the Rochellois in February, 1626 ; and a month later a treaty was signed with Spain upon the single stipulation that the Valteline should be re- placed under the sovereignty of the Grisons. The cardinal's leni- ency to the heretics on this occasion, together with the recent Prot- estant alliances, exposed him to the bitter raillery and invective of the Catholic world. § 7. The first plot formed against Richelieu was extremely com- plicated and widely ramified. Gaston, duke of Anjou, the king's only brother and presumptive heir, entered into a design for assas- sinating the cardinal at his country house. The plot was joined by many of the highest nobles, and the young queen was privy to it. Richelieu, however, suppressed it with terrible and fatal ener- gy. Several of the leading conspirators were seized. The Duke of Anjou, whose character was a despicable compound of weak- ness, cowardice, and baseness, hastened to make a full confession of his guilt, beti-ayed his accomplices, and threw himself upon the king's mercy. His treachery was rewarded with the rich appan- age of the duchy of Orleans, together with an enormous revenue. Richelieu wreaked his vengeance by the execution or banishment of the other conspirators. The young queen was summoned be- fore the council of state, reprimanded for her connection Avith the late treasonable project, and openly reproached by the king for having, in the prospect of his own death, contemplated a marriage with his brother. The queen indignantly replied that she would not have been sufficiently a gainer by the exchange. Anne con- tinued for many years an object of suspicion to her husband, while A.D. 1627. SIEGE OF LA ROCHELLE. 395 between her and the cardinal there reigned from this moment a bitter and irreconcilable animosity. The triumph of Richelieu over this conspiracy established his supremacy as minister. In the following year he gave another severe lesson to the haughty nobles by causing the Counts de Bouteville and Des Chapelles to be publicly executed for having fought a desperate duel on the Place Royale at Paris. § 8. A misunderstanding arose in 1627 between the courts of France and England, chiefly from, the personal antipathy of the Duke of Buckingham to Richelieu, who had exposed and thwart- ed his ridiculous passion for the young queen, Anne of Austria. Buckingham promised the support of England to the rebellious Huguenots of La Rochelle, and formed an alliance with the Dukes of Savoy and Lorraine, who were arming against France. An English fleet of a hundred sail, conveying a large army under Buckingham, appeared off La Rochelle in July. The troops dis- embarked on the Isle de Rhe and besieged the fortress of St. Mar- tin. Richelieu displayed on this occasion an almost superhuman activity and vigor. He made prodigious preparations, both mil- itary and naval, and then repaired to La Rochelle in company with the king in the month of October. The garrison of St. Mar- tin was now successfully re-enforced by a body of 6000 men, and Buckingham, decisively repulsed in his final assault on the 6th of November, abandoned the siege and set sail for England. The siege of La Rochelle — which was thus left to defend itself single-handed against the entire strength of the French crown — was one of the most extraordinary and brilliant achievements of Cardinal Richelieu. The Huguenot capital contained at this time about 30,000 inhabitants, every man of whom was fully de- termined to resist to the last extremity. The mayor, Guiton, a man of iron resolution and courage, had threatened to poniard the first citizen who should venture to speak of surrender. It was evident to Richelieu that La Rochelle was impregnable so long as it could be revictualed and re-enforced from England by sea. He therefore constructed, at a sufficient distance from the town to be beyond the reach of its cannon, a gigantic dike of stone, more than half a mile in length, across the mouth of the harbor, so as to cut off all possibility of relief by a foreign fleet. The city was strict- ly blockaded on the land side by lines of clrcumvallation and an army of 25,000 men ; and it was plain that its ultimate reduction was simply a question of time. The cardinal, notwithstanding his exalted rank and ecclesias- tical character, undertook personally the direction of the opera- tions of the siege, and displayed in the course of it all the essen- tial qualities of a great military commander. Two powerful fleets 396 LOUIS XIII. Chap. XIX arrived in succession from England to succor the beleaguered city, and each in turn desperately attacked the dike, but without mak- ing any impi'ession upon that stupendous barrier. The English, baffled and discouraged, retreated to their own shores ; and the fate of La Rochelle was sealed. Its heroic defense was protract- ed for fifteen months, and it was not till half the population had perished from hunger, and scarcely a hundred and fifty soldiers of the garrison remained alive, that the survivors consented to capit- ulate on the 28th of October, 1628. The only terms they could obtain were an amnesty for past offenses, and the exercise of their religion in places to be hereafter specified. The king and his min- ister entered the city in triumph on the first of November, and from this moment may be dated the final ruin of the Huguenot cause in France. La Rochelle forfeited its municipal franchises, its mayoralty was suppressed, its fortifications razed, the Catholic religion re-established. The town has never since recovered its importance. This memorable siege is said to have cost the state no less a sum than forty millions of francs. The Duke of Rohan, meanwhile, maintained an obstinate con- flict with the royal forces in Languedoc. Early in the following year (1629) the king entered that province at the head of 50,000 men, and after a series of severe encounters at length compelled the insurgents to lay down their arms. Llostilities concluded with the capture of Frivas and Alais ; after which a peace was signed (June 27, 1629), which left the Frotestants in a state of abject prostration, and quite incapable of any farther organized and sustained opposition to the crown. § 9. While this struggle with the Huguenots was at its height, the inveterate malice of the court of Spain endeavored to embar- rass France by an artful diversion on the side of Italy. A French prince, the Duke of Nevers, had just succeeded to the duchy of Mantua and the marquisate of Montferrat. The Spaniards insti- gated the Duke of Guastalla to contest his rights ; the emperor interfered and sequestered the disputed territory, and a Spanish army invaded Montferrat and besieged Casale, the capital. Such was the paramount importance attached by Richelieu to his prin- ciple of opposition to the house of Austria, that he induced Louis to cross the Alps in person with 36,000 men, in order to estab- lish the Duke of Nevers in his new possessions. The king and the cardinal forced the pass of Susa in March, 1629, in spite of the Duke of Savoy, who was another competitor for Montferrat, and so decisive was the superiority of the Frenfli arms that the duke immediately afterward signed a treaty of peace and alliance with Louis, by which he undertook to procure the abandonment of the siege of Casale and the retreat of the Spaniards into their own A.D. 1630,1631. INTRIGUES AGAINST RICHELIEU. 397 territory. This engagement was fulfilled, and the Duke of Nevers took possession of his dominions without farther contest. But the triumph was too rapid and easy to be durable. No sooner had the French army recrossed the mountains than the Empei-or Fer- dinand, acting in concert with Philip of Spain, poured his troops into the Grisons, while at the same moment two other strong di- visions invaded the duchy of Mantua and Montferrat. Kichelieu was now invested with extraordinary powers under the title of " lieutenant general representing the kin^s person." He assumed the supreme command of the army, having as his lieutenants the Marshals Bassompierre and Schomberg ; and, once more travers- ing the Alps, attacked the faithless Duke of Savoy, who had en- tered into a secret understanding with the enemy. On the 20th of March, 1630, the French besieged the town of Pignerol, which surrendered in three days. Several other fortresses were reduced in succession, and Richelieu soon found himself master of all the principal passes commanding the approach to Italy from the side of Dauphine. This great success was followed by the reduction of Savoy and the conquest of the marquisate of Saluces. By the treaty of Cherasco, concluded in April, 1631, the Imperialists evacuated Mantua, the Duke of Nevers received the investitui-e of that duchy from the emperor, and Pignerol and two other for- tresses were ceded by Savoy to France. The negotiator on this occasion was Giulio Mazarini (Mazarin), afterward the famous cai'dinal, at that time a diplomatic agent of the court of Rome at Turin. § 10. Fresh difficulties and perils awaited Richelieu on his re- turn from this Italian expedition, arising from the determined and violent enmity of Mary de' Medici. Having been the means of raising him to power, the queen-mother imagined that she should find in the minister a creature absolutely devoted to her will ; instead of which, Richelieu had governed by the independ- ent resources of his own genius, and the consequence was, that ever since his elevation Mary had rapidly declined in political import- ance. The king, on his way to the army dui'ing the late cam- paign, fell dangerously ill at Lyons ; and Mary, while attending his sick-bed, earnestly importuned her son to dismiss the dreaded Richelieu from his councils forever. Louis was weak enough to Mcquiesce, only stipulating that no step should be taken against llie minister until the conclusion of the war. On his recovery Jjouis was again beset by his mother, his Avife, and a crowd of en- vious courtiers, all clamoring for the fulfillment of his promise ; but restored health had now inspired him with a more just appre- ciation of the cardinal's services. He hesitated, expostulated, and showed the utmost repugnance to a measure so evidently injuria 398 LOUIS XIII. Chap. XIX. ous to the state. An outrageous scene took place in the king's presence between the queen-mother and Richelieu, at the close of which Louis quitted the palace without sa}dng a word, and took his departure for Yersailles. Every one thought the fall of the minister irrevocably certain. The courtiers flocked to the resi- dence of Mary at the Luxembourg ; the good news was transmit- ted with precipitate joy to Madrid, Vienna, Brussels, and Turin. But the sound judgment of Louis, supported by the arguments of his first equerry Saint Simon, had conducted him meanwhile to a very different conclusion. A message from the king was dispatch- ed to Richelieu, who had already begun to resign himself to his disgrace. He hurried to Versailles, was welcomed with every mark of confidence and favor, and received an assurance fi'om Louis that he would steadily uphold him against all his adversa- ries, Avould listen to no insinuation to his prejudice, and would re- move from court all who had it in their power to thwart or in- jure liim. These curious occurrences took place on the 11th of No%'ember, 1630, which has remained famous in French history as the " Day of Dupes." It was now the cardinal's turn to triumph, and his vengeance fell fatally upon those who had conspired his ruin. The first vic- tims were the two brothers Marillac. The one, who was keeper of the seals, was dismissed from ofiice and exiled to Cliuteaudun ; the other, a marshal of France and commander of the army in Italy, was arrested, tried by an extraordinary commission, which sat in the cardinal's own house at Rueil, convicted of the crime of peculation, and beheaded. A more difficult measure, but one upon which Richelieu was equally determined, was to effect a complete and final rupture between the king and his mother. It required all his eloquence to convince Louis that the cabals of which Mary was the centre were perilous to the state and the main obstacle to the glory of his reign. A fresh outbreak of Gas- ton, duke of Orleans, instigated by the queen-mother, at length roused the king to a decisive act of vigor. In February, 1631, Mary de' Medici M^as placed under a sort of honorable restraint at Compiegne, and Louis informed her by letter that he found it necessary, for reasons of state, to request her to retire to Moulins. Her rage was beyond bounds, but she had no alternative but to submit. Refusing, however, to go to Moulins, she escaped secret- ly from Compiegne on Jie 18th of July, gained the frontier of the Netherlands, and took refuge at the Spanish court at Brussels. This was a proceeding which Louis could not pardon. He ad- dressed to his mother a letter of cold and dignified reproof, and they never met again. Mary de' Medici, after manifold vicissi- tudes and humiliations, died in exile at Coloano in 1642. A.D. 1632. EXECUTION OF MONTMORENCY. 399 The attitude of Gaston of Orleans was so seriously threatening that the king now marched a body of troops against him at Or- leans. Upon this the prince took flight into LoiTaine. The king confiscated the revenJre of his duchy, declai-ed his adlierents guilty of high treason, and compelled the Duke of Lorrainfe, by a military demonstration, to refuse him an asylum in his dominions. Gaston then retired to Brussels. Other acts of severity followed. Marshal Bassompierre was sent to the Bastile ; the Duke of Guise banished ; the Princess of Conti, with several others of the female aristocracy, were exiled from court. § 11. The incorrigible Gaston, nevertheless, persisted in his turbulent opposition to the government. He intrigued with Spain, with Lorraine, and with all the nobles of France whom he knew to be ill affected toward Richelieu. Among others, he open- ed a correspondence with the Marshal Duke of Montmorency, governor of Languedoc — a nobleman who, for chivalrous valor, elegance of manners, and generosity of character, had no superior in the kingdom. Montmorency was unhappily prevailed upon to join the prince in an insurrectionary movement in the summer of 1632. Gaston, with a force of 2000 men, traversed Burgundy and Auvergne, and entered Languedoc, where the States of the province declared in his favor, and most of the principal towns broke out into open rebellion. On taking the field, however, the confederates found themselves totally unable to cope with the roy- al army under Marshal Schomberg ; and Montmorency avowed that he had no expectation whatever of success in such a fool- hardy enterprise. A fierce encounter took place under the walls of Castelnaudary on the 1st of September, when the rebels were completely routed and dispersed. Montmorency, as if seeking death, charged with desperate hai'dihood into the thickest of the enemy's ranks, and was taken prisoner, covered with wounds. The cowardly Gaston fled, and endeavored in vain to make terms Avith the king, one of his demands being the life of Montmorency. Finding himself utterly helpless, the prince at length made an ab- ject submission, abandoned his friends to the king's vengeance, and took his departure for Tours. Louis, attended by the cardinal, now proceeded to Toulouse, where the trial of Montmorency immediately commenced before the local Parliament. The crime of the illustrious prisoner Avas clear, and he himself frankly confessed it, though without any un- manly self-abasement. He was capitally convicted on the 30th of October. The king was besieged by intercessions for mercy from every quarter of the kingdom ; but even the passionate en- treaties of the Princess of Conde, Montmorency's sister, failed to move him, and the sentence was carried into execution on the 400 LOUIS XIII. Chap. XrX. same day that it was passed, in the inner court of the Capitol at Toulouse. Montmorency met death with fearless courage, and with the most touching and noble resignation. He was the son and grandson of two Constables of Fran'^, and the last direct de- scendant of that great ducal house. § 12. The intervention of France in the Thirty Years' War had first commenced in 1631, when Richelieu contracted an alliance with the heroic Gustavus Adolphus, king of Sweden, to whom he promised an annual subsidy of 400,000 crowns, thus openly espous- ing the cause of tHe Protestant confederation against the empei'or and the Catholic league, Gustavus closed his glorious career on the field of Lutzen in November, 1632. The French alliance was renewed under the auspices of the Chancellor Oxenstiern ; but the advantage in the contest was now on the side of the Imperialists, and the battle of Nordlingen, in September, 1634, seemed decisive of their ultimate success. At this critical moment Richelieu re- solved to enter energetically into the strife with all the immense resources at his command ; and treaties were concluded with the States of Holland, with Sweden, with the German princes, with Switzerland, and with the Duke of Savoy, by which France en- gaged to raise four separate armies, amounting together to 120,000 men. The share which France now took in this great struggle forms a constituent part of the history of the Thirty Years' War, and can not be related with advantage without giving a detailed account of the campaigns, which is impossible in the present work. The events of the first three years in which France was engaged (1635-1637) were unpropitious to her arms. In 1636 the Im- perialists penetrated into Picardy, and advanced within three days' march of the capital, ravaging the country and spreading universal panic. The danger was imminent ; the fidelity of the Count de Soissons, whose army covered Paris, was doubtful ; public alarm and indignation were violently excited ; and Richelieu is said for a moment to have lost his usual confident self-possession. Re- assured, however, by his trusty counselor. Father Joseph, he soon showed himself fully equal to the emergency; and, favored by the patriotic reaction which followed, the king and his minister Avere enabled to take the field early in the autumn Avith 40,000 men, and besieged the town of Corbie, Avhich had been surrender- ed to the Spaniards. The cardinal, who was suflfering from ill- ness, established himself during the siege at Amiens ; and it was now that two of his bitterest enemies, Gaston of Orleans and tlie Count de Soissons, entered into a fresh conspiracy against his life, which only failed through the indecision of Gaston. A council lield at Richelieu's residence offered every facility to the princes for executing their design. The unsuspecting ministsr descended A.D. 1638. THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. 401 the stair-case surrounded by the conspirators, and at this moment his fate hung upon a thread. But Gaston's nerve failed him ; he hesitated to give the appointed signal ; the rest dared not strike without his orders; they separated, and the cardinal escaped. Corbie capitulated on the 14th of November, and the enemy made no farther attempt in this direction. § 13. The campaign of 1G38 was more favorable to France, Duke Bernard of Saxe- Weimar took several places on the Upper Khine, and defeated the Imperialists in a great battle at Rheinfeld on the 8d of March. He proceeded in August to lay siege to Brisach, a strongly-fortified town of Alsace, on the right bank of the Rhine. The Fi-ench contingent on this occasion was com- manded by De G-uebriant and the Vicomte de Turenne, who was now fast rising into high reputation. Brisach was defended with dauntless resolution, and repulsed several desperate assaults, but was at last reduced to extremity, and capitulated on the 18th of December, 1 638. The news of the capture of Brisach found Riche- lieu in deep distress ; his faithful and indefatigable coadjutor, the Capuchin Joseph du Tremblay, lay in the agonies of death. The cardinal strove to cheer the last hours of his friend by detailing the events of the campaign, and hastened to announce the achieve- ment which had just shed so much lustre on the French arms. "Courage, Father Joseph!" he exclaimed, "Brisach is ours!" A momentary smile of satisfaction passed over the monk's coun- tenance, and he expired. This personage, scarcely less remarka- ble in his own line than Richelieu himself, had been employed in all the most difficult diplomatic and political negotiations of the time, and had acquitted himself with singular acuteness and dex- terity, and with unswerving fidelity to the interests of France. His loss was severely felt by Richelieu, but his place Avas supplied in some measure by Mazarin, who now advanced rapidly in the minister's confidence. § 14. Louis Xin., who had abdicated all the active functions of government in favor of his domineering minister, lived at this time a retired, isolated, melancholy life, estranged from his queen, and without power or influence. He had lately formed a platonic liaison with one of Anne's maids of hoi^or, Mademoiselle de Haute- fort. This young lady, indignant at the king's degradation, strove to rouse him from his apathy, and encouraged him to shake off" his absolute dependence on the cardinal. Richelieu, informed of this cabal against him, spared no pains to supersede Mademoiselle de Hautefort in the royal affections ; and Louis, unable to resist, dis- carded his friend in favor of Mademoiselle de Lafayette, in whom the cardinal expected to find a docile instrument of hi? policy. The influence of the new favorite, however, was exerted siill 'nore 402 LOUIS XIII. Chap. XIX. decidedly against him ; Louis began to show signs of returning in- telligence and vigor ; and the jealous minister, in alarm, employ- ed such agency to work upon the scrupulous conscience of Made- moiselle de Lafayette as induced her to take the resolution of re- tiring to a convent. She executed her purpose in May, 1637; but the king continued to visit her in her seclusion, and her influ- ence over his mind was rather augmented than diminished. The intrigues against Richelieu continued, and Louis seems to have entertained serious thoughts of dismissing him, when an incident occurred which disconcerted his enemies and restored his suprema- cy. The cardinal discovered a clandestine correspondence carried on by Anne of Austria with the court of Spain, the cardinal-infant at Brussels, and other enemies of France. Anne's confidential messenger was arrested and thrown into the Bastile, and the queen, in extreme terror, made a full avowal of her fault to Richelieu, and signed a solemn engagement never again to commit a similar offense ; Avhereupon the minister promised in return to mediate for her a complete reconciliation with her husband. This was accordingly effected, and the good genius of Richelieu once more triumphed in the re-establishment of cordial relations between the royal pair. The Jesuit Caussin, the king's confessor, was dis- missed, and Louis discontinued his visits to Mademoiselle de La- fayette. These occurrences were shortly followed by a result of the highest importance to the welfare of the kingdom. After a childless union of more than twenty yeai's' duration, Anne of Austria found herself in a condition to give an heir to the throne. To the great joy of the nation, a dauphin, who afterward became Louis XIV., was born at St. Germains on the 5th of September, 1638. This event reduced the mischievous Gaston of Orleans to comparative insignificance, and greatly strengthened the reins of government in the grasp of Richelieu. The king's health, always feeble, was now much impaii'ed, and the cardinal had already begun to count upon obtaining the regency in the prospect of his death. § 15. The military efibrts of France in 1639 were not inferior to those of preceding years, and the persevering energy of Riche- lieu was at length rewarded by the humiliation and discomfiture of his enemies in all directfons. The opportune death of Bernard of Saxe- Weimar, who had established himself in Brisach, with the object of obtaining the province of Alsace as an independent sov- ereignty, enabled Richelieu to annex it to France. The Impe- rialists were defeated in Piedmont by the famous Count Harcourf, of the ducal family of Lorraine, who was appointed to the com- mand of the French troops (1640). He followed up his victory by investing Turin, which, after a protracted and gallant defense of more than four months, surrendered on the 22d of September, A.D. 1641. CONSriRACY OV CINQ-MARS. 403 and the French immediately took possession of the capital ; Tu- renne, as Harcourt's second in command, bore a distinguished part in the operations of this memorable campaign. In the same year the Sjoaniards were driven out of Artois, and this important province was forthwith incorporated with the French dominions. This triumph was hailed with general re- joicings throughout the kingdom. At the same time a formida- ble insurrection broke out in Catalonia and Eoussillon, provoked by the violation of their fueros or immemorial privileges ; and at the beginning of the following year (1641) these provinces were formally united to the crown of France, with stipulations for the maintenance of their ancient franchises. § 16. Meanwhile the insupportable despotism which Richelieu had established drove his enemies once more to the hopeless ex- pedient of armed rebellion. The chief mover in this new revolt was the Count of Soissons, who gained a complete victory over the royal forces near Sedan on the 6th of July, 1641, but was killed by a pistol-shot at the close of the day, as he was giving orders for the pursuit of the fugitives. This event brought tlie insurrection to a close ; but it was soon followed by another at- tempt against Richelieu, the last and the most dangerous of the many conspiracies during his long tenure of power. The cardinal had placed near the king's person the gay and brilliant Plenri d'Effiat, marquess of Cinq-Mars, in the quality of grand equerry. This young noble quickly ingratiated himself with Louis, became his inseparable companion, and, being of an aspiring, enterprising character, acquired a strong ascendency over the feeble-minded monarch. His vanity and presumption increasing in proportion to the royal favor, Cinq-Mars demanded a seat in the council, and intruded his presence at the most confidential interviews of Louis with his imperious minister. Richelieu rebuked him for this in- solence in disdainful language, and absolutely forbade him to enter the council-chamber in future. From that moment Cinq-Mars exerted his whole influence to effect the ruin of the cardinal, and even proposed his removal by the same means that had dispatched the Mai'shal D'Ancre. Louis listened in silence, not daring to en- courage the scheme openly, although the thraldom in which he was held by Richelieu had long become inexpressibly irksome. Monsieur le Grand, as Cinq-Mars was called, pursued his revenge- ful design. All the cardinal's ancient enemies were more or less involved in the plot, and it was also communicated to Fran9ois de Thou, son of the historian of that name, a young man of great talent and promise, who, although he cordially hated Richelieu, refused to concur in his assassination. Louis meanwhile was at- tacked by a dangerous fit of illness ; and the conspirators, anxious 404 LOUIS XIII. Chap, XIX to strengthen their position in the event of his death, committed the egregious folly of entering into a treaty Avith the court of Spain, by which that power engaged to assist them with a large force of horse and foot, together with an ample subsidy. In return the King of Spain was to recover all the conquests made from him hj France during the war. .^ These culpable intrigues could not escape the penetration of Eichelieu ; his agents served him faithfully, and he was fully on his guard. Cinq-Mars succeeded by degrees in producing a cer- tain coolness and estrangement between Louis and the cardinal'; notwithstanding Avhicli the king was induced, in March, 1642, to undertake in person the command of the army in Koussillon, where Richelieu proposed to prosecute the war with renewed vigor. The king and his minister, both in failing health, journeyed to the south by different routes ; on reaching Narbonne, Eichelieu became so much worse that he was compelled to remain in that city, while Louis proceeded to the camp of Marshal la Meilleraie, who was besieging Ferpignan. Thus separated from the court, his frame wasted by a burning fever, disabled from active exertion, and aban- doned by his friends, Richelieu's condition seemed almost despe- rate ; still his firmness never forsook him, even when the news ar- rived of a defeat of the French under Marshal de Guiche in Ficardy, which le»ft that frontier open to the Spaniards. Louis soon wearied of the siege of Ferpignan, and discovered that in Richelieu's ab- sence he possessed no one to depend on for the conduct of affairs. A reaction followed, and a message was dispatched to the car- dinal, assuring him that he stood higher than ever in his sover- eign's favor. At this moment, by a singular stroke of good for- tune, Richelieu received from an unknown hand a copy of the treaty between Cinq-Mars and his friends and the Spanish court ; it was instantly laid before the king ; and Avith this positive proof of their treason in his hands, he could not hesitate to order the arrest of Cinq-Mars and De Thou, which took place at Narbonne on the 12 th of June. Louis then joined the cardinal at Tarascon, where a reconciliation ensued between them, the king condescend- ing to undignified explanations in excuse for his late conduct. Having conferred vmliraited poAvers upon the minister, Louis re- turned to Faris, Avhile Richelieu embarked in a magnificent barge upon the Rhone, and ascended to Lyons, dragging in a boat behind him his tAvo unfortunate prisoners, for Avhom it Avas too plain that tliere remained no hope of mercy. The contemptible Gaston of Orleans, Avith his usual baseness, betrayed his associates by ac- knowledging the treaty Avith Spain ; this completed the legal proof against Cinq-Mars ; and De Thou Avas included in his condemna- tion for having neglected to reveal a plot in Avhich he had no crim- A.D. 1C42, 1043. DEATH OF EICHELIEU AND THE KING. 405 inal share. Both culprits were beheaded in the Place des Terreaux at Lyons on the 12th of September, 1642. " Sire," wrote Kiche- lieu to the king immediately afterward, " sire, your enemies are dead, and your arms are in Perpignan." That city had surren- dered to La Meilleraie on the 9th of September. Its fall completed the conquest of Koussillon, which has ever since remained a prov- ince of the French empire. The Duke of Orleans was deprived of his dignities and domains, and commanded to retire to Blois. The Duke of Bouillon paid the penalty of his connection with the late conspiracy by the loss of his principality of Sedan, which was forfeited to France. § 17. Eichelieu had now reached the summit of his extraordi- nary fortunes. His policy was every where triumphant ; his ene- mies crushed ; the proud house of Austria checked, repulsed, mor- tified in all directions. At no former period had France exercised so decided an ascendency in Europe. But, as if to " point a mor- al"' on the utter instability of human greatness, the cardinal was at this moment sinking under the ravages of a mortal disease ; and on his return to Pai'is it became evident that his days were numbered. On his death-bed, and immediately before receiving the last sacraments, he called God to witness that throughout his administration, he had pursued no other object than the welfare of the Church and the kingdom ; and being asked whether he for- gave his enemies, he replied that he had never had any except those of the State. This illustrious statesman breathed his last on the 4th of December, 1642, in the fifty-eighth year of his age. " There is a great politician gone !" was the only observation of the cold-hearted Louis on receiving the intelligence. The chief change produced in the ministry by the death of Eiche- lieu was the elevation of Cardinal Mazarin to a seat in the coun- cil ; the other ministers retained their offices. Louis XIII. survived his great minister scarcely six months. His death took place at St. Germains on the 14th of May, 1643, thirty-three years exactly from the commencement of his reign. He had not completed the forty -second year of his age- Louis possessed no great qualities and few glaring defects. His chief merit consists in having maintained in power, from public motives, for the long period of eighteen yeai'S, a minister whom he personally disliked, and the yoke of whose supremacy became at length infinitely galling and oppressive. This evinces a disinter- ested anxiety for the advancement and prosperity of France, The correctness of his private morals, so rare a virtue among the princes of his race, must also be recorded to the credit of Louis. He left the regency to his queen, Anne of Austria, and named the Duke of Orleans lieutenant general ; they were to be assisted by 406 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Chap. XIX. a council of state composed of Mazarin, the Prince of Conde, the chancelloi' Seguier, and the secretaries Chavigny and Bouthillier. NOTES AND ILLUSTEATIONS. THE PARLIAMENTS. In the primitive times of tlie French mon- archy tlie Parlcnient was simply tlie court or council of the sovereign, consisting of the great vassals of the rlomaine royal or duchy of France, the prelates, and the principal dig- nitaries of the crown. These assemblies dis- cussed and determined all causes arising among the fiefs held in capite of the crown throughout the realm. They also decided upon questions of war and peace ; they im- posed taxes, and regulated matters of internal administration. But the authority of the Parliament at this early date was extremely partial and limited, since the constitution of the feudal system enabled any particular SLigneur to ignore and annul its decrees at pleasure. St. Louis took an important step toward improving the administration of jus- tice by instituting grands baillis to hold pro- vincial courts of appeal in the king's name. The judgments of the local seigneur.s thus be- came liable to revision by the tribunals of the sovereign ; and the result was a gradual dim- inution of the feudal, and an enlargement of the royal power. During the 13th century the study of the Roman law was extensively re- vived in France, and gave rise to the class call- ed leijistes, juristes, or jimsconsultes, who eventually Isecame the chief officers of the royal courts, and the judges of all causes throtighout the kingdom. It was Philip the Fair who first clearly defined the functions of the Parlia- ment, and gave it a regitlar constitution as the supreme court of justice. By his ordon- nance of 1302 he withdrew from its cogni- zance all matters of finance and general gov- ernment, and restricted it to jiidUial duties. All financial business was thenceforth trans- acted in the Chambre des Comptes; while political and adnmiistrative concerns were brought before the Council of State, otherwise called the Grand' Conseil. The Parliament, properly so called, was now organized in three chambers : 1. The Cliambre dcs Jieqiiete.% which tried all actions instituted directly be- fore the Parliament of Paris ; 2. The Chnni - brc des Enqwtef^ for the preliminary consid- eration of cases of appeal ; and, 3. The Grand' Climnbre, or Chambre des Plaidoiries, in which these appeals were finally heard and decided. The Parliament was ordered to as- pemble twice in the year, at Easter and on the Feast of All Saints, for two months at a time ; its place of meeting was the ancient Palais de la Cite, afterward called the Palais de Justice, which name it still retains. Philip IV. also established two courts of exchequer (scaccii- ria) at Kouen for the province of Novmiindy, and a court o{ gi'ands jours (assizes) atTroyes for Champagne. The judges of these provin- cial courts were nominated expressly by the crown. In this early period of its history, the great feudal barons alone were, strictly speaking, judges of the Parliament ; they were styled conseillers-ne's, or conseillers-jugeurs ; the ci- vilians orlegistes occupied a very subordinate position, being simjjly advisers, exponnders of the law, or, at most, assessors. But in course of time, as the science of law became more complicated, and the business of the court more important and onerous, the barons discontinued their attendance, and the law- yers succeeded to their place. From the time when this great change was accomplished, to- ward the middle of the 1-lth century, the Par- liament of Paris rapidly increased in jurisdic- tion and authority. Instead of being migra- tory as heretofore, it was now fixed perma- nently at Paris, and continued its sessions throughout the year, with the exception of a short vacation. The j udges, instead of being named by temporary commissions from the crown, held their offices for life, and soon es- tablished the right of self-appointment by presenting to the king a list of candidates from which he was obliged to choose. A de- cree of Louis XI. in 140T declared them irre- movable ; and a farther innovation took place under Louis XII. and Francis I., when the ju- dicial seats of the Parliament were openly of- fered for sale to the highest bidder. By the law called the paillette, passed in 1604, it was provided that the judges, on consideration of paying to the government annually a sixtieth part of the value of their offices, might secure their hereditary transmission, and make them the permanent property of their families. This arrangement, though at first sight it ap- pears seriously detrimental to public justice, was not without beneficial resiUts. It con- tributed to foi-m a succession of learned, pa- triotic, and courageous magistrates, wlio iu the days of the absolute monarchy did good service to the cause of liberty by firaily with- standing and arresting the encroachments of the crowii. The power and independence of the judicial order was one of the few checks upon despotism that remained when the con- vocation of the great council of the nation — the States-General — had fallen into disuse. Hence it is not surprising to find that the re- nalite des charges meets with distinct com- mendation from Jlontesquieu (Jisj}. des Luis, liv. 6, chap. 19). At the same time, this practice was undoubtedly productive of grave and multiplied abuses. It was abolished, like so many other usages of the ancien reaime, bv a decree of the Constituent Assembly, ia August, 17S9. Various alterations were made by success- ive sovereigns in tlie composition of the Par- liament of Paris. In 14iJ3 an ordonnance of Charles VII. instituted a new chamber called tlie Tournclle, because its judges were fur- nished in turn by a deputation of councilors CiiAi'. XIX. THE. PARLIAMENTS. 407 named by the other cliambei's. The Tour- nelle was a criminal court, but only for of- fenses which were not punishable with death ; capital punishment belonging exclusively to the jurisdiction of the GrancC Charnbre. At the commencement of the reign of Louis XL the Parliament consisted of one hundred mem- bers, namely, twelve peers of France, eight iriaitre-'i de-s requites, and eighty ordinary councilors, half being laymen and half eccle- siastics. A century later the number of coun- cilors was one hundred and twenty. In the latter part of the reiga of Louis XIV. the Parliament comprised no less than seven chambers, namely, the Grand' Chambre, three Ohanibres des Enquetes, the Tournelle Crim- inelle, and two Chambres des Hequetes. At- tached to the Grand' Chambre there were a premier president, and nine other jureszcteni.'* d mortier (so called from the square black vel- vet cap which they wore), four niaitres des requetes, and thirty-seven councilors, of whom twelve were clerical and twenty-five laymen. Besides these there were many honorary coun- cilors—the princes of the blood, the peers of France, the members of the Council of State, the chancellor, the keeper of the seals, the Archbishop of Paris, and the abbots of St. Denis and Clugny. The Grand' Chambre of the Parliament was the highest court of ju- dicature in the realm. Its jurisdiction em- braced all causes affecting the rights and privileges of the crown, all charges of high treason, all questions respecting the regale^ all matters coimected with the interests of the peers of France, and the affairs of the University and public hospitals of Paris. Each Chambre des Enquetes was composed of three presidents and thirty-five councilors. The Chambres des Requites had each three presidents and fifteen councilors. The Cham- bre de VEdit, established by virtue of the Edict ot Nantes in 153S, had one president and sixteen councilors, one, or, at most, two of whom were protestants. Thia court deter- mined all causes between Protestants and Catholics. It was suppressed by Louis XIV. in 1669. Besides the Parliament of Paris there were several proviiicial Parliaments, which exe- cuted similar judicial functions within the district (ressort) assigned to each. The first of these was the Pai'liament of Toulouse, which originated with Philip tlie Fair, and was con- firmed and finally organized by Charles VII. in 1443. Its jurisdiction extended over the wljole of Languedoc, Quercy, the county of Foix, Rouergue, the Vivarais, and part of Gascony. The judges of the Parliament of Paris claimed the right of sitting in that of Toulouse, and the councilors of Toulouse made similar pretensions to seats on the bench at Paris; this occasioned a vehement controversy, which remained undecided down to the time of the dissolution of the Parlia- ments. Tlie general doctrine, however, was, that while all causes arising ^vitbin the res- sort of each Parliament were to be judged .=olely by the local tribunal, without any final appeal to the Parliament of Paris, all tlie sov- cicign courts were integral parts of one and the same gseat institution, and all the judges of the realm enjoyed a perfect identity of rights and privileges. By the term sovereign courts is meant that each was independent within its own boundaries, and free from the interference and control of any superior tri- bunal. The other provincial Parliaments were those of DauphinO, which sat at Grenoble, and was instituted in 1453 ; Bordeaux, founded by Louis XI. in 1402 ; Dijon, for Burgundy, cre- ated in 1470 ; Aix, for Provence, created in 1501 ; Brittany, dating fi-om 1553 ; and Pan, established by Louis XIII., for the province of Boarn, in 1021. To each Parliament belonged a superior of- ficer, called the proctireiir-gmiral, who was at the head of the bar, and fulfilled duties nearly resembling those of the attorney-gen- eral in England. He acted as public prose- cutor in the name of the sovereign ; took the lead as principal counsel in all suits insti- tuted by the crown; caused criminals to be arrested, imprisoned and brought before the tribunals, and demanded the infliction of the penalties prescribed by the law. They were also charged, to some extent, with the main- tenance of ecclesiastical discipline ; and it was specially their duty to institute appeals against any bttUs from the court of Rome which appeared inconsistent with the liber- ties of the Galilean Church. Each procureur- general had several suhstiiiitcs to assist him in his office. They were knoivn collectively in ancient times as gens du roi^ and afterward as the parquet. The institution of these roy- al advocates dates from the year 1354. In proportion as the kings of France ad- vanced toward despotism, the Parliament of Paris assumed more and more a political character, and attempted to impose a consti- tutional check on the excess and abuse of the royal power. The means employed for this purpose deserve to be carefully noticed. The practice of enregistrement was co3val ■with the foundation of the Parliament; it was originally nothing more than the form of enrolling in the Parliamentary records the ordonnances issued by the sovereign. As early as the reign of Philip '^l. we find the following words at the end of an ordonnanca of 1336 : "• Lecta per cameram, registrata par curiam Parliamenti in libro ordinationum regiarum." In course of time it was asserted that this was no mere matter of form, but that Parliament might either register or re- fuse to register the decrees presented to them; and that no decree, while it remained unregistered, possessed force or efficacy as a law. By this skillful manceuvre a veto was established, in great measure, on the power of arbitrary legislation which had been usurp, ed by the crown. When the Parliament ob- jected to an ordonnance, they presented a re- monstrance to the king, stating the ground of their opposition ; and if this was unattend- ed to, they refused altogether to enter it among their archives. Instances of such op- position are not uncommon during the 15th, 16th, and 17th centuries; and a successful barrier was thus often raised against acts of oppression, against prodigality in public ex- penditure, and especially against the en- 408 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Chap. XIX. croachmentS of the court of Kome. The Par- liament strenuously resisted the concordat in the reign of Fraacis I. ; and again the im- portant ordonnance of Moulins in 1566, which Ihiiited, though at the same time it acknowl- edged, the riglit of remonstrance. Tliese pre- tensions were more and more pertinaciously maintained, until at last, as all readers of French history are aivare, an open collision took place between the crown and the Parlia- ment during the minority of Louis XIII. Tlie magistrates attempted to dictate to the queen regent in matters of the highest mo- ment affecting the conduct of the state, upon which an arret of the grancC conseil annulled their proceedings, and expressly forbade them to interfere in the concerns of government. Under the stern rule of Eichelieu tlie Parlia- ment was reduced to submissive silence, but during the regency of Anne of Austria the troubles broke out afresh. The President de Mesmes declared that "• the Parliaments held an authority superior even to that of the States-General, since by the right of verifica- tion they were judges of all that was there determined." Extensive reforms were pe- lemptorily demanded, and the rupture which ensued was the immediate cause of the civil war of the Fronde. The result of this strug- gle was to augment and consolidate the power of the crown; and Louis XIV., on attaining his majority, resolved to take summary meas- ures for restraining the Parliament within the bounds of its proper jurisdiction. Tlie anec- dote of his entering the Palais de Justice in his hunting costume, booted and spurred, with a whip in his hand, is probably apocry- phal; but it is certain that he rebuked the magistrates in haughty and indignant lan- guiigj ; interdicted them from remonstrating against his edicts, and even from discussing them ; and insisted on their confining tliem- sc'lves simply to the administration of justice. At;empts were made, nevertheless, by the Parliament during this reign to maintain its political influence ; in 1065 a stubborn resist- ance was made to a decres reducing the rate of legal interest on money; and in 1C67 the ordonnance civile (for reforming the proced- ure in courts of justice) was only registered after vehement remonstrance, and by an ex- treme exercise of the royal prerogative. On this occasion the king ordered the grefficr of the Parliament to tear out of the register all records relating to the war of the Fronde. Finally, in the year 1UT3, an ordonnance ap- peared rjquiring absolutely that all royal edicts should be registered within eight days, witlwut 1-emonstrance or discussion ; and dur- ing the remainder of this reign the Parlia- ment was compelled to desist from all farther assertion of its rights. But on the death of Louis the privilege of i-emonstrance was restored by the Regent IJuke of Orleans; and during the greater part of the ISth century the Parliament was in a state of almost constant antagonism to the crown, producing from time to time the most lamentable derangement and confusion in public affairs. The Pull Unigenitus, tlie financial scheme of Law, tlie Jansenist con- troversy, the billets de confession, the reforms projected by the Chancellor Maupeou, all be- came successively occasions of bitter conten- tion ; until, in the end, Louis XV. took the extreme step of suspending the Paiiiament altogether, and condemning all the magis- trates to exile. It was replaced first by a clunnbre royale^ next by a commission of councilors of state, and lastly by courts called conseils sujjeriiiors. lie-established under Louis XVI., the Parliament pursued its usual system of factious opposition to the court, witliout promoting in the smallest degree the cause of national liberty. In 1TS8 it joined in the general outcry for the assembling of tlie States- General, little anticipating the calam- itous consequences of that momentous meas- ure. The Kevolution soon put a period to its existence ; a decree of the Constituent Assem- bly suppressed the Parliaments throughout the kingdom in Xovember, 1T90. The comparative inefficiency of the French Parliaments in modern times, and their ulti- mate destiiiction, may undoubtedly be traced to one principal cause ; namely, their selfish devotion to the interests and ascendency of their own order, and their consequent isola- tion from the nation and hostility to its liber- ties. The magistrates belonged almost ex- clusively io the privileged classes ; they were exempt from the taille and other pecuniary burdens, and partook strongly of that aristo- cratic es2M'it de corps which animated the no- blesse and the clergy. Thus, when reforms were agitated, and it was proposed to distrib- ute the taxation equally among all classes, the Parliaments espoused the side of their own private interest instead of acting for the general welfare of the country. They showed, at the same time, a spirit of perverse opposi- tion to the crown, thwarting to the utmost of their power the efforts of successive ministers to improve the wretched situation of affairs. Hence they proved incapable of fighting the battle of the Constitution when the great cil- sis arrived, and eventually were swept away in the general overthrow. The ceremony by which the French kings compelled the registration of their edicts by the Parliament was called a lit de ju>itice. The monarcli proceeded in state to the Grand' Cliambre, and the chancellor, liaving taken his pleasure, announced that the king re- quired sucli and such a decree to be entered on their records in Iiis presence. It was held that this personal interference of the sover- eign suspended for the time being the func- tions of all inferior magistrates, and the edict was accordingly registered without a word of objection. The form of registration ivas as follows : "Le roi seant en ."^on lit de justice a ordonne et ordonne que les presents edits seront enregistres ;" and at the end of the de- cree, "Fait en Parlement, le roi y seant en son lit de justice." The student may consult on this subject the Histoire du Parleinenl de Paris, by Voltaire, and Lettres sur les an- ciens Parlements de France, by tlie Comte de Boulainvilliers. Also Sir James Steplien's Lectures, Lect. 9 and 23. 2 - CO o* t^ Barricades at the Porte Saint Antoine, August 27tli, 1648, tlie commencement of tlie Civil War of the Froude. (From aa engraving of the time.) CHAPTER XX. KEIGN OP LOUIS XIV. I. FROM HIS ACCESSION TO Tllli DEATH OF CAR- DINAL MAZAEIN. A.D. 1643-1661. § 1. Kegency of Anne of Austria; Cardinal Mazarin named Minister; the Importans. § 2. Battle of Rocroi ; Battle of Nordlingen. § 3. Capture of Dunliirk ; the Prince of Conde' at Lerida ; Turenne's Campaign in Ba- varia. § 4. Battle of Lens ; Peace of Westphalia ; End of the Thirty- Years' War. § 5. Civil Dissensions; the Chamber of St. Louis; Arrest of Broussel ; Insurrection in Paris. § 6. Commencement of the War of the Fronde ; Engagement at Charenton ; Treaty of Ruel ; Turenne quits France. § 7. Arrest of the Princes ; Revolt of Guienne ; Battle of Rhe- tel ; Mazarin compelled to leave France. § 8. Revolt of Conde; Return of Turenne. § 9. Battle of St. Antoine; Intrigues at Paris ; Conde joins the Spaniards ; Pacification of the Fronde. § 10. Progress of the War with Spain ; Siege of Arras ; Battle of the Downs ; Conference at the Isle of Pheasants. § 11. Peace of the Pyrenees; Marriage of Louis XIV.; Death of Cardinal Mazarin; his Character. § 1. Anne of Austria commenced her regency by setting aside the arrangements of her husband, and causing his will to be can- celed by the Parliament. The council of regency was thus sup- pressed ; and no opposition being offered, the queen assumed the supreme authority of government. To the surprise of all, she be- stowed the office of chief minister on Cardinal Mazarin, the faith- ful disciple of her persevering enemy, Kichclieu. A.D. M43-1645. THE IMPOKTANS.— BATTLE OF KOCKOI. 4II The new government soon found itself embaiTassed by hostile intrigues. The nobles, so long oppressed by Eichelieu, eagerly struggled to regain their predominance in the state ; and the fac- tion of the " Importans," headed by the Duke of Beaufort, son of the Duke of Vendome, was the first to oppose the ministry of Mazarin. The queen, in her anxiety to conciliate all parties, com- menced by granting them almost whatever they demanded. The '' Importans," charmed by her condescension, imagined that they were henceforth to cany all before them ; and the witty De Retz declai-ed that for two or three months the whole French language was compi-ised in five little words — " the queen is so good !" These, however, were transient illusions. Madame de Chevreuse, one of the foremost of the new cabal, who had attempted to displace some of the ministers, received a peremptory repulse ; in revenge, the duchess and her friends plotted no less a crime than the assassin- ation of Mazarin ; and this scheme having been discovered and frustrated, the Duke of Beaufort was arrested on the 2d of Sep- tember, and sent prisoner to Vincennes ; the Duke of Vendome, Madame de Chevreuse, and all their chief partisans, were exiled from court and quitted France. § 2. Meanwhile the events of the war were of great interest and importance. Immediately upon the death of Richelieu the house of Austria resumed the offensive, and in May, 1643, the viceroy of the Netherlands, Francisco de Mello, proceeded with an army of twenty-six thousand men to invest Rocroi, a frontier fortress in the district of the Ardennes. The Fi-ench, commanded by the young Duke of Enghien, eldest son of the Prince of Conde, march- ed immediately to relieve the place ; and on the 19th of May, five days after the death of Louis XIII., was fought the memorable battle of Rocroi, which resulted in the decisive triumph of the French array, and the defeat and dispersion of the Spaniards, with a loss of fifteen thousand men. Their magnificent infantry, so long esteemed the finest force in Europe, Avas literally exterminated on this fatal day. The victor, at this time only twenty-two years of age, thus laid the foundation of that splendid reputation by which he was afterward distinguished as the "great Conde'." He owed his early advancement to the discriminating favor of Richelieu ; the cardinal had recognized his genius, and had married him to one of his nieces, Claire Cle'mence de Maille, a daughter of the Marshal Duke of Bre'ze. Two years afterward the French, commanded by Turenne, re- cently created a marshal, and by the hero of Rocroi, again gained a brilliant victory in the terrible battle of Nordlingen, 7th of Au- gust, 1645. The Imperialists under the famous Count de Mercy had taken up a position which was at first deemed impregnable, 412 LOUIS XIV. CiiAf. XX. and the Duke of Enghien, who assailed it with the French right, was repulsed with fearful slaughter. He then joined the left wing under Turenne, and their combined efforts were at length success- ful in breaking through the enemy's lines, and completing their overthrow. The gallant Mercy was slain in this bloody field ; Marshal Grammont was taken prisoner ; Enghien, who exhibited prodigious valor, had two horses killed 'under him. He generous- ly attributed the brilliant success of the day to Turenne. Nevertheless, the I'esults of the victory of Nordlingen were not such as might have been expected. John de Werth, who succeed- ed to the command of the Imperialists, retreated without molest- ation, and was soon joined by the Archduke Leopold with nine thousand fi'esh troops ; and the French, thus considerably out- numbered, hastened to cross the Neckar, and retired to Philips- burg. The Duke of Enghien, exhausted by the fatigues of the campaign, fell ill, and returned to France. § 3. The French army in Flanders was under the command of the feeble Gaston of Orleans ; and it was resolved to make this the principal theatre of the war in 1646. The Duke of Enghien nobly consented to serve as second in command to Gaston ; and the important town of Courtrai surrendered to them on the 29th of June. Gaston, after this, quitted the army for the court ; and Enghien, left in sole command, resolved to undertake the siege of Dunkirk, the most frequented and valuable sea-port on the Ger- man Ocean: Bravely seconded by the Dutch fleet under Admiral. Van Tromp, the French general reduced Dunkirk to submission by the middle of October. This is considered one of the most re- markable achievements of the great Conde, and produced at the time an extraordinary sensation. The fall of Dunkirk was followed by a peace between Spain and the United Provinces of Holland, in January, 1647. The Duke of Enghien re-entered France, and about the same time suc- ceeded, by the death of his father, to the title of Prince of Conde, together with the governments of Burgundy and Berry, and a magnificent fortune. His ambitious character, his military re- nown, his political power and influence, now made Conde an ob- ject of jealous apprehension to the Cardinal-minister. Mazarin dreaded his presence at court ; and as a specious pretext for re- moving him, appointed him to the command of the army in Cata- lonia, whei'e Count Harcourt had lately been compelled to raise the siege of Lerida. Conde accepted the honorable mission, pro- ceeded to Barcelona, and opened the trenches before Lerida in May, 1647. Here he met with the first check in his triumphant career. Lerida made good its defense in spite of all his genius, valor, and perseverance ; the besiegers sustained immense losses A.D. 1648. BATTLE OF LENS. 41 3 both in action and by desertion to the enemy ; and Conde, in or- der to escape a greater disaster, at length abandoned the siege and retired into the mountains. The prince was deeply mortified by this failure, and reproached Mazarin, on his return to France, for having neglected to re-enforce his army so as to insure success ; the minister was profuse in his excuses, and Conde was immedi- ately reappointed to the command of the army in Flanders for the ensuing campaign. Marshal Turenne had in the mean time prosecuted the war with signal talent and success in Germany. In conjunction with the Swedes, he completely routed the Bavai-ians at Zummershaus- en, near Augsburg (1648), where they were commanded by Mon- tecuculi, so famous in the subsequent wars of Louis XIV. The Eleptor of Bavaria fled from his doK|^ons ; and the victors were only deterred from marching to Vienna by a sudden inundation of the Eiver Inn. § 4. Conde commenced the campaign in Flanders by I'educing the town of Ypres, which capitulated on the 29th of May. The French were opposed by the Archduke Leopold, brother of the Emperor Ferdinand III., with a superior force of eighteen thou- sand men, who, dui'ing the siege of Ypres, surprised Courtrai, and afterward, entering Picardy, menaced Peronne. Being pursued by Conde, the archduke retreated into Flanders, and, gaining the sea-coast, besieged and captured the town of Furnes. After some delay and much manojuvring, Conde at length brought the Im- perialists to a general engagement at Lens in Artois, between Be- thune and Douai. The battle was obstinately contested ; the rear-guard of the French was thrown into confusion by an im- petuous charge of cavalry under General Beck ; but the genius of Conde triumphed in the end, and within three hours the arch- duke's army was ii-retrievably defeated and almost annihilated. Three thousand of the Imperialists were slain in the field : five thousand prisoners, together with artillery, baggage, and stan- dards, were the trophies of the victory. General Beck was taken prisoner and conveyed to Arras, where he died in a few days of his wounds. The battle of Lens, fought on the 20tli of August, 1648, gave a povvei"ful impulse to the negotiations for peace, which had been slowly proceeding since 1644 at Munster and Osnabruck, two towns of Westphalia. The emperor, humbled by his late reverses, felt the necessity of bringing to a conclusion this sanguinary war, which had lasted thirty years ; and the two treaties of Westpha- lia, between the empire, France, Sweden, and the German states, were signed on the 24th of October, 1648. The details of this pacification are extremely intricate, as it embraced not only the 414 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XX. political, but also the religious affairs of the German Empire ; but the only points which require our notice here are those which relate to France. France obtained important advantages. The emperor ceded to her, in full sovereignty, the whole of Alsace with the exception of Strasburg, and her dominions were thus ex- tended to the long-coveted boundary of the Rhine. She also re- ceived the towns of Pignerol in Piedmont, and Brisach on the farther bank of the Ehine ; and the fortress of Philipsburg was henceforth to be garrisoned by French troops. The emperor like- wise i^cognized the annexation of the district of the Troiseveches — Metz, Toul, and Verdun — which had been conquered nearly a century before. The navigation of the Rhine was to I'emain free, and the emperor engaged to erect no fortresses on the right bank between Basle and Philipsburg. Lorraine was to remain provis- ionally in the hands of the French, until an amicable arrangement could be eflPected with the dispossessed duke. This amounted vir- tually to a surrender of the duchy. Such were the main particulars of this celebrated treaty, by which France acquired neai-ly the proportions which she retains at the present day. The general result of the Thirty Years' War was to diminish materially the preponderance of the house of Aus- tria in Europe, and to circumscribe the power of the imperial crown in Germany, the independence of the various minor states, territorial, civil, and religious, being now fully established. The Peace of Westphalia forms a memorable epoch in modern history, as its provisions were adopted for the basis of all subsequent trans- actions between the kingdoms of Europe down to the period of the French Revolution. Spain Avas not included in the pacification, and war still continued between that country and France. §5. The internal condition of France during the first few years of Anne of Austria's regency was, on the whole, tranquil and pros- perous. But the rapacity, prodigality, and misgovernment of Mazarin, whose ascendency over the queen was absolute, ere long involved the state in serious financial embarrassments, which pro- duced first discontent, then factious agitation, and at last a lament- able civil war. Richelieu had left the treasury well furnished, but these resources were speedily exhausted ; the expenses of carrying on the Avar wei-e enormous ; and, in order to procure fresh sup- plies, the court resorted to various expedients more or less op- pressive and obnoxious, under the advice of Emery, the clever but unprincipled surintendant of the finances. Among these was a tax upon all articles of merchandise brought for sale to the cap- ital, whether by land or water, levied indiscriminately upon all classes ; and it is curious that this impost, less open to objection than others on the score of equity, should have been the proximate A.D. 1648. ARREST OF BROUSSEL. 415 cause of the violent disturbances wbicli followed. The Parlia- ment, after much stormy discussion, refused to register the edict establishing the new tariff. Anne of Austria, whose education under Spanish despotism made her furious at this opposition, caused the youthful Louis XIV. to hold a bed of justice to enforce sub- mission, but without effect ; the Parliament continued intractable, and showed a spirit of determined independence in criticising and controlling the acts of government. At last, in May, 1G48, the members of the four "cours souveraines" passed a measure, called the " Edict of Union," by which they formed themselves into a de- liberative assembly in a single chamber, for a general examination and reformation of the affairs of the state; and, although this edict was instantly annulled by the council of state, the new assembly proceeded to meet and deliberate in open defiance of the royal au- thority. Matters thus wore an alarming aspect : the Parliament had placed itself in direct and active antagonism to the crown. The Chamber of St. Louis, as it was called, voted several important m^sures of reform, and demanded of the queen the abolition of the office of provincial intendants, the reduction of the taille by one fourth, the entire suppression of arbitrary imprisonment, and the abandonment of all taxes which should not be submitted to free discussion in the Parliament of Paris, and legalized by the sanction of that body. Such was the thi'eatening attitude of this self-appointed Legislature, that the court was compelled partially to yield. The terrible scenes of the rebellion then passing in En- gland had doubtless their share in producing this result. Anne of Austria, after a violent ebullition of anger, consented to remove the intendants, to suppress several newly-created offices, and to remit an entire fourth part of the taille. But these concessions, instead of satisfying the agitators, only emboldened them to pro- ceed to greater lengths. The Parliament absolutely refused to discontinue its sessions in the Chamber of St. Louis, and symptoms of popular ferment and commotion became daily more and more manifest. Things were in this state when the news arrived of Conde's splendid victory at Lens; and the court, taking advant- age of the public rejoicings in honor of that event, suddenly ar- rested three of the chief leaders of the opposition in the Parlia- ment, Blancmesnil, Charton, and an aged councilor named Brous- sel. Charton found means to effect his escape (1648). This was the signal for a violent insurrectionary tumult through- out Paris. Chains were stretched across the pi-incipal streets; bar- ricades were thrown up ; the magistrates ordered the civic guard to arm ; and the Palais Royal was besieged by a countless multi- tude of enraged citizens, shouting " Liberty and Broussel !" The 41G LOUIS XIV. Chai-. XX. Cardinal de Eetz, archbishop coadjutor of Paris, who up to this lime seems to liave taken no part in fomenting the sedition, pro- ceeded to the palace to represent to the queen the urgent peril of the moment, and to beseech her to satisfy the peojDle by releasing Broussel. Anne, who suspected him, answered with raillery and defiance. De Eetz withdrew in great irritation, and resolved forth- with to place himself at the head of the insurrection, a part for which his bold, turbulent character and popular talents eminently fitted him. Both sides organized their forces, and prej^ared for a decisive struggle on the morrow. § 6. From the 27th of August, 1648, may be dated the. com- mencement of the civil war of the Fronde.* Regiments were marched to the palace at an early hour ; the populace, in armed masses, blockaded the streets. The Parliament went in a body to demand from the regent the liberation of the two members ; they were met by an angry refusal, and on quitting the palace were forcibly driven back by the infuriated multitude, who threat- ened Mole, the first president, with death, unless he returned either with Broussel or with Mazarin as a hostage. Anne of Austria was at length induced to submit, chiefly, it is said, by the coun- sels of the unfortunate Henrietta Maria of England. Orders were sent for the release of the prisoner; and Broussel, who was already far from Paris on the road to Sedan, re-entered the city on the following day, and was welcomed with indescribable manifesta- tions of popular joy and triumph. Outward order was now restored, but the agitation continued ; the Pai-liament was intractable and even insolent ; and the regent found her situation so uneasy, that she withdrew with the young king and Mazarin to Kueil. Through the intervention of the Prince of Conde an accommodation was brought about on the 24th of October; and Anne, Avith tears in her .eyes, signed an act by which all the demands of the Chambers of St. Louis were un- conditionally granted, and wdiicli the queen described as suicidal to the royal authority. It was not long before Conde', disgusted with the arrogance and insubordination of the Parisians, combined with the court in an attempt to reduce them to obedience by force. Eight thousand troops were gathered round the capital ; on the 6th of Januar}', 1649, the regent, with the king, the Duke of Orleans, and the rest of the royal family, retired secretly from Paris to St. Germains ; and a lettre de cachet was sent to the Parliament, commanding it to transfer its sittings to Montargis. This step threw Paris again into a state of tumult ; the Parliament declared Mazarin a * The Frondeui's were so called from being compared to the gamina of Paris, who fought each other in the streets with slings (Jrondc) and stones. A.D. 1649. ENGAGEMENT AT CHARENTON. 417 disturber of the public peace and an enemy of the state, and ban- ished him fi'om the kingdom within eight days; contributions were levied, and forces hastily collected to oppose the army of Conde. The insignificant Prince of Conti, brother of Conde, was named general-in-chief for the Parliament ; a host of brilliant nobles commanded under him, including the Dukes of Beaufort, Elbceuf, Bouillon, Longueville, and La Rochefoucauld. The beautiful Duchesses of Longueville and Bouillon established themselves at the Hotel de Ville, and by their charms, their energy, and their talent for intrigue, acquired a paramount influence in the insur- rection. Most of the provincial Parliaments hastened to send in their adhesion to their brethren of the capital. Conde' disposed his troops in the villages near Paris ; and on the 8 th of February the Royalists attacked the Parliamentary gar- rison at Charenton, and cut them to pieces to the number of near- ly two thousand. This was the only serious engagement ; after a few weeks, spent rather in pamphleteering, caricaturing, and buf- foonery, than in more dangerous hostilities, the Parliament dis- patched a deputation to the regent, headed by the intrepid Presi- dent Mole, and conferences ensued at Rueil, which produced a temporary restoration of peace on the 11th of March, 1649. The disposition of the court to treat was increased, by the defection of Marshal Turenne, who now joined the Fronde, and promised to march his army to the relief of Paris. The insurgents were also encouraged by assurances of sympathy and succor from the Arch- duke Leopold, governor of the Spanish Netherlands. The news of the treaty was received with violent indignation by the Parliamentary leaders, and the deputies who had signed it, especially the President Mole, were several times in imminent danger of being massacred by the mob. Mazarin, however, con- trived to render it more palatable by modifying some of its pro- visions, and the Parliament at length consented to register it. The cai'dinal also succeeded in gaining over the principal officers of Turenne's army, who abandoned their general and declared for the court. Turenne, upon this, quitted France and withdrew into Holland. Anne of Austria, her son, and Mazarin, after a farther delay of some months, returned to Paris in August, 1649. § 7. The contest was soon renewed under a difFei'ent phase. New difficulties beset the government from the overbearing dic- tatorial demeanor of the Prince of Conde, who, presuming on his services in the hour of peril, imagined that he might tyrannize as he pleased over the regent and her minister. His demands for himself and his friends became incessant and exorbitant, and threatened to absorb the whole patronage of the state. He treat- ed Mazarin, and even Anne herself, with coarse and insolent i-id- S2 418 LOUIS XIV. . Chap. XX. icule ; and under the influence of his intriguing sister, Madame de Longueville, he formed a powerful faction among the disaffect- ed nobles, whom he flattered with hopes of a return to all their ancient independence and supremacy. This party, distinguished by its airs of afifectation and presumption, was called that of the " petits maitres," or the "young Fronde." Conde's conduct be- came at length intolerable, and the queen and Mazarin determined to express their resentment by a bold and severe stroke of author- ity. They secretly eflxjcted an understanding with the Cardinal de Retz, the Duke of Beaufort, and other leaders of the original Fronde ; and their support having been secured, the Prince of Conde, with his brother the Prince of Conti, and his brother-in- law the Duke of Longueville, were arrested in the council cham- ber on the 18th of January, 1650, and imprisoned at Vincennes. Disturbances broke out on all sides upon the news of this dar- ing coup d'e'tat. The partisans of Conde flew to arms in Bur- gundy, of which province the prince was governor; the Duke of Bouillon organized resistance in the Limousin and Guienne ; Tu- renne occupied the fortress of Stenay ; the Duchess of Longueville hurried to Normandy, where her husband had been governor, and labored with extraordinary energy, though with small success, to excite the people to rebellion. A royal army soon tranquilized Normandy; and the fair duchess, after many romantic and peril- ous adventures, made her escape into Holland, and thence proceed- ed to join Turenne at Stenay. The court met with equal success in Burgundy ; but the reduction of Guienne was a more difficult task. The high-spirited wife of Conde, Cle'mence de Maille, es- caped from Chantilly, traversed France, and, accompanied by the Dukes of Bouillon and La Rochefoucauld, threw herself into Bor- deaux with four thousand men. The Pai'liament and the inhab- itants received her with enthusiasm, and in the siege which fol- lowed she exhibited the most heroic courage. Bordeaux, how- ever, was compelled to capitulate on the 1st of October. The regent accorded a complete amnesty, and permitted the princess and her supporters to retire freely to their domains ; but the anx- ious supplications of Cle'mence for the liberation of her husband produced no effect. In the mean while Turenne, at the other extremity of the king- dom, had been joined by a Spanish force under the Archduke Leo- pold, and, entering Picardy, seized Le Catelet, Vervins, and Rlie- tel, and was marching upon Paris, when he heard that the princes had been removed, for greater security, to Havre. Marshal du Plessis-Praslin was now sent to besiege Rhetel, and Turenne rap- idly countermarched to relieve it. A battle was fought between the two marshals on the 15th of December, in which Turenne was A.D. 1650, IGol. KEVOLT OF CONDE. 4I9 totally defeated, with the loss of half his force ; he fled with a few followers into Lorraine. The revolt now seemed to be suppressed ; but Mazarin congrat- ulated himself prematurely on his triumph. A reaction took place at Paris in favor of the imprisoned princes ; their friends coalesced, through the dexterous mediation of the coadjutor, with the original faction of Frondeurs, and the result was that the Parliament unani- mously addressed to the queen an urgent application for the re- lease of the illustrious captives. Anne replied evasively. Upon this the Duke of Orleans, who was entirely governed by De Eetz, placed himself at the head of the hostile combination against Ma- zarin ; the Parliament, violently exasperated, sent again to de- mand, in peremptory terms, the liberation of the princes, and, in addition, the banishment of the cardmal from the king's pi'esence and councils forever. Mazarin, dismayed and intimidated, gave way before the storm ; he quitted Paris privately on the night of the 8th of February, 1651, and proceeded to Havre. The queen, resolved at all hazards to support her favorite, made preparations to follow him with the young king, but her design transpired, and the leaders of the Fronde promptly caused the palace to be sur- rounded with troops, and satisfied themselves personally of the pi'esence of its inmates. Anne, burning with rage and shame, Avas compelled to disavoAV her purpose. Meanwhile the fugitive car- dinal reached Havre, and hastened to announce with his own lips to the three princes their restoration to liberty. He had hoped, probably, for an opportunity of making favorable terms with tliem ; but they treated him coldly, and set out forthwith for Paris. The discomfited Mazarin retired to Bruhl, in the electorate of Cologne, and from this place of exile kept up a constant corresjDondence with the queen, by means of which he continued to control all the movements of the court and the acts of the administration. § 8. The Prince of Condc entered Paris in triumph ; but his presence, instead of producing tranquillity, added fresh fuel to the flames of discord. In the absence of the cardinal he had imagined that the whole power of government would remain in his hands ; but he found himself thwarted by the personal enmity of the queen, the superior astuteness of Mazarin, and the turbulent independ- ence of De Eetz, the Pai'liament, and the Frondeurs. After some months spent in cabals and struggles which we have not space to describe, the regent accused Conde before the Parliament of a traitorous correspondence with the court of Spain, and other dis- loyal acts : this irritated the haughty prince beyond endurance, and he hastily resolved to revenge himself upon the court by head- ing an armed rebellion. On the 30th of August, 1G51, he left Paris for Guienne, of which he had obtained the government; 420 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XX. here he raised without difRculty a considerable force, with which he took possession of Saintes and the course of the Charente, and in November laid siege to Cognac. Meanwhile the regent declared her son Louis XIV. to have attained his majority, and the youth- ful king proceeded at the head of his army into Berry. The Count Harcourt was now detached against Conde, and succeeded in forc- ing him to raise the siege of Cognac, after which the prince re- treated to Bordeaux. In throwing himself into open revolt, Conde had taken precise- ly the step most fivvorable to the wily Mazarin, and paved the way for his restoration to power. Having levied a large body of mer- cenaries, the minister boldly re-entered France in December, 1651, and, braving the angry denunciations of the Parliament, joined the court, which Avas now established at Poitiers. Turenne, who had lately resumed his loyalty to the crown, was placed in command of the royal army, together with Marshal D'Hocquincourt ; and a desultory warfare followed, undistinguished by any events wor- thy of the splendid reputation of the two rival generals. The town of Orleans was held against the king by the celebrated Made- moiselle de Montpensier, daughter of Gaston, one of the most en- thusiastic of the many heroines of the Fronde. The royal army upon this ascended the Loire to Gien, followed by that of the rebels under the Dukes of Nemours and Beaufort, who took post at Montargis. On the 7th of April, 1652, a sudden attack was made at night upon Marshal D'Hocquincourt's quarters at Ble- neau ; and Turenne, obseiwing the rapidity and vigor of the oper- ations, instantly declared to his officers that the Prince of Conde in person must be in command of the opposite army. Such Avas indeed the fact ; Conde, perceiving that the main struggle must take place upon the Loire, had crossed the country with astonish- ing celerity from Agen, and, after escaping numberless perils, had safely reached the head-quarters of his party. The Royalists were severely handled at Bleneau ; but another action was fought next day, in which Turenne had the advantage ; and both armies then directed their march upon the capital. § 9. Paris was at this moment a scene of utter confusion, dis- tracted by the agitation of the rival parties, and unable to declare itself decidedly for either. The ai'my of Condt-', having suffered another defeat at Etampes, encamped at St. Cloud on the 19th of June. The Royalists, under Turenne, ari'ived immediately aft- erward, and manoeuvred to turn the prince's position from the di- rection of Argenteuil, upon which Conde made a circuit of the eastern suburbs of Paris, and formed in order of battle in the Faubourg St. Antoine, his centre occupying the site of the present Place de la Bastile. A desperate battle was fought here on the A.D.1652. BATTLE OF ST. ANTOINE. 421 2d of July. Turenne, attacked fiercely, pressed the Frondeurs hard, and maintained for some time a decided superiority. Conde displayed all his wonted gallantry and heroism, but his troops gradually lost ground, and were driven back in confusion upon the narrow streets of the faubourg. The fortune of the day was changed by the skill and resolution of Mademoiselle de Montpen- sier, who made her way into the Bastile, and caused the cannon of that commanding fortress to open upon the Royalists. At the same moment the Porte St. Antoine was thrown open by the citi- zens ; the troops of Conde' poured into the city ; the prince made a last charge to protect the retreat of his rear-guard ; and, when the whole of his army had passed through, the gates again swung back, and Turenne, balked of his victory, drew off slowly to St. Denis. The result of the battle of St. Antoine rendered Conde and his friends for a time masters of Paris. A bloody tumult took place two days afterward at the Hotel de Ville, in which several hund- red persons lost their lives ; the court, in terror, retired to Pci.- toise ; and the popular leaders, uniting with the party of tho princes, named the Duke of Orleans lieutenant general of the kingdom, Conde commander-in-chief of the army, Beaufort gov- ernor of Paris, and the councilor Broussel prevot des marchands. But by another sudden and inexplicable turn of affairs symptoms soon appeared of a strong desire for an accommodation, and for the return of the king to his capital. Mazarin, with character- istic tact, withdrew a second time beyond the fi'ontier, in order that his presence might be no obstacle to an arrangement; and the Parisians then approached their sovereign with a loyal depu- tation, entreating him to appear once more among them. Conde - found his influence completely undermined by the treacherous arts of the Cardinal de Retz : in deep disgust he quitted Paris on the 13th of October, and joined the Spanish army under the Duke of Lorraine. Within a few days afterward Louis XIV,, with his mother and the court, escorted by Turenne, entered Paris amid the acclamations of the people, and took up their abode at the Louvre. A fresh edict of Amnesty Avas registered in a bed of jus- tice, from which, however, the Prince of Conde, the Duke of Beau- fort, and several other leaders of the Fronde, were specially ex- cepted. Conde was afterward tried, in his absence, by the Parlia- ment, aod sentenced to death as a traitor. The Duke of Orleans was ordered to retire to Blois, where he died in 1660. The Par- liament was strictly forbidden to occupy itself henceforth with the general affairs of state or the management of the finances. The arch-agitator De Eetz was arrested and sent to Vincennes, whence, however, he escaped in the course of the next year, and, 422 LOUIS XIV. CiiAv. XX. after various wanderings, proceeded to Rome. He was permitted eventually to return to France, but passed the rest of his days in quiet obscurity, and died at Paris in 1679. Such was the revolt of the Fronde — one of the most obscure and perplexing portions of French history. Mazarin returned triumphantly to Paris in February, 1653 ; and the immediate re- sult of the insurrection was to confirm and prolong the power of this sagacious minister, whose misgovernment had been the orig- inal cause of its outbreak. Notwithstanding its peculiar charac- ter of levity and burlesque, the Fronde must be regarded as a memorable struggle of the aristocracy, supported by the judicial and municipal bodies, to control the despotism of the crown. Like the many similar attempts which preceded it, it failed ; and its effect upon the mind of the youthful Louis was such as to give a decided color to the whole of his subsequent career. He ruled France for sixty years as an absolute monarch, without the sha- dow of constitutional government : nor Avas any farther effort made to resuscitate the dormant liberties of the nation until the dawning of the great Kevolution. § 10. The internal troubles of the kingdom being thus appeased, Mazarin turned his attention to the war Avith Spain, the course of which had lattei'ly been disadvantageous to France. Favored by the dissensions of the Fronde, the enemy had recovered Dun- kirk, Ypres, and Gravelines, as well as Barcelona and Casale ; and their army on the frontier of Picardy, now, unhappily, com- manded by the illustrious Conde, ravaged that province during the summer of 1653 as far as the banks of the Somme. Conde, however, met Avith a worthy antagonist in the great Turenne, who, with a force far inferior, arrested the prince's progress, drove him back to Cambrai, and kept him continually in check throughout the campaign. In 1654 the young king made his first essay in arms at the siege of Stenay ; and meanwhile Conde and Turenne measured swords at Arras, Avhich Avas iuA-ested by the prince and the Archduke Leopold Avith 25,000 Spaniards. The siege was conducted Avith consummate talent and vigor ; but on the 25th of August Turenne succeeded in forcing the Spanish lines, when Conde', having suffered great losses, found himself compelled to abandon the siege and retreat, leaving 3000 prisoners in the hands of the French. The hostilities of the year 1655 took place chiefly in Hainault, between the Sambre and Meuse, and were of no great importance. The following year Avas signalized by the siege of Valenciennes by Turenne, when Conde, by one of his most daring exploits, fell suddenly upon the division of Marshal de la Fcrte, Avliich was separated from the main army and routed it Avith ter- rible slaughter, taking pi-isoner tlie marshal himself, Avith most of A.D. 165G-1G59. WAR WITH SPAIN. 423 Lis ofRcei-s, and four thousand men. The contest between these great masters of the art of war was prolonged with fluctuating and indecisive fortune, until at length a treaty negotiated by Maz- arin with the Protector Cromwell, which secured the co-operation of England against Spain, turned the ballance in favor of the royal ai'ms of France. In 1G56 Marshal Turenne, re-enforced by a di- vision of six thousand English under General Reynolds, captured Montmedy, St. Venant, and Mardyke, which latter fortress was placed in the possession of the English. Early in the following spring the allies proceeded to blockade Dunkirk ; the Spaniards, under Conde and Don John of Austria, marched to its relief; and Turenne advanced unexpectedly to attack them before they could complete their dispositions among the dunes, or sand-hills which suri'ound that town. " Were you ever in a battle V asked Conde of the young Duke of Gloucester, son of Charles I., who had join- ed him as a volunteer. The prince answered in the negative. "Well," returned Conde, irritated by the incapacity and obstinacy of the Spaniards, " in the course of half an hour you will see us lose one." His words were fully verified : the Spanish ai'my was totally overthrown, and dispersed in all directions. The battle of the Downs (June 14, 1658) produced the immediate surrender of Dunkirk, which town was ceded to England. Turenne afterward captured Gravelines, overran Flanders, and carried his victorious standards within two days' march of Brussels. The court of Spain was induced by this train of reverses to think seriously of effecting a pacification ; and these views were furthered by a league which Mazarin now formed with the Elect- or of Bavaria and other princes of Germany for the maintenance of the treaty of Westphalia, a- combination by which Spain was virtually isolated from the rest of Europe. The first overtures for peace Avere made in October, 1658, when Philip IV. proposed the hand of his daughter the Infanta Maria Theresa in marriage to the King of France. This offer was accepted with alacrity, although Louis was at this moment violently enamored of Maria di Mancini, a niece of Cardinal Mazarin, whom at one time he se- riously purposed to raise to the throne. The minister, with re- markable and disinterested integrity, negatived ' this project, re- moved the young lady for a time froni court, and earnestly pur- sued the negotiations for the treaty with Spain. He proceeded in July, 1659, to St. Jean de Luz ; the prime minister of Spain, Don Luis de Haro, repaired to Fontarabia ; and conferences ensued between them, which were held in the small " Isle of Pheasants," on the Bidassoa, the stream which separates the two kingdoms. One of the chief difiiculties of the arrangement was that which concerned the Prince of Conde'. Spain stipulated positively for 424 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XX. his reconciliation to the court, and complete reinstatement in his possessions and dignities. Mazarin resisted long, and only yielded the point on a threat from the Spanish minister that an indepen- dent principality should be formed for Conde in Flanders. The prince received a full pardon, and was restored to his government of Burgundy. § 11. The Peace of the Pyrenees was signed on the 7th of No- vember, 1659. The Spanish Infanta was contracted to the King of France, Avith a marriage portion of five hundred thousand crowns, in consideration of which she made an absolute renunci- ation of all claims upon the. royal inheritance of her family. All issue of the marriage, and their descendants, "were expressly barred from the possibility of succeeding to the Spanish crown. France acquired by this treaty the Spanish territory of Artois, together with the towns of Gravelines, Landrecies, Tliionville, Montmedy, Avesnes, and some others. Roussillon and Cerdagne, the fruits of Kichelieu's triumphs, were also ceded to her in full possession. Lorraine was nominally restored to its legitimate duke, but in point of fact remained annexed to the French crown. Thus France might regard with just pride and satisfaction the result of her protracted warfare with both those branches of the mighty house of Austria. By the treaty of the Pyrenees, combined with the advantages previously obtained by the peace of Westphalia, she succeeded to that preponderance in Europe which had been enjoyed for a century and a half by the rival dynasty. . Louis XIV. and his mother, attended by Mazarin and a bril- liant court, proceeded to St. Jean de Luz in May, 1G60; and, after a stately interview between the sovereigns at the Isle of Pheasants, the Infanta was placed in the hands of her future consort, and the marriage was celebi'ated in the church of St. Jean de Luz, with extraordinary splendor, on the 9th of June. The Peace of the Pyrenees and the marriage of Louis mark the culminating point of the ministry of Mazarin, who had thus real- ized all the favorite objects of his policy. But, like his predeces- sor Richelieu, the hour of triumph found him rapidly drawing near to the grave ; he labored under a complication of diseases, which proved fatal within a few months after the return of the court to Paris. On receiving from the physicians an intimation that his case was desperate, Mazarin caused himself to be removed to the chateau of Vincennes, and prepared to meet death with a firm countenance. Retaining to the last his almost paternal authority over the young king, he furnished Louis with a complete code of instructions for his future government, and recommended to him as his principal ministers Le Tellier, Fouquet, Lionne, and the great Colbert, who was at that time intendant of the cardinal's A.D. 1661. DEATH OF CARDINAL MAZARIN. 425 household. Mazarin expired, with great appearance of devotion, on the 8th of March, 1661, at the age of fifty-nine. The besetting vice of this celebrated statesman was his love of money, which was unparalleled and insatiable. He had accumu- lated, by the most discreditable means, a private fortune amount- ing to fifty millions of francs, representing at least double that sum according to the present value of money. These immense riches were chiefly distributed among his nephews and nieces, for all of whom he had secured splendid alliances and lucrative dig- nities and ofiices. Four of his nieces were married respectively to the Prince of Conti, the Duke of Modena, the Constable Co- lonna, and the Duke de la Meilleraie ; one of his nephews was Duke of Nivernois. To counterbalance this odious rapacity, Ma- zarin possessed a refined and liberal taste for learning and the arts, and left behind him three conspicuous and lasting monu- ments of his munificence — the " College des Quatre Nations" (now the Institute of France), the magnificent " Mazarine" Library, and the Academy of Painting and Sculpture, r L* ^ * Isle of Pheasants, in the lliver Bidassoa, the boundary of France and Spain. (See p. 423.) CHAPTER XXI. REIGN or LOUIS XIV. CONTINUED. II. FROM THE DEATH OF CARDINAL MAZARIN TO THE PEACE OF RYSWICK, A.D. 1661-1697. § 1. Character of Louis XIV. ; he assumes the Government in Person. § 2. The Surintendant Fouqiiet ; Colbert Minister of Finance. § 3. Sale of Dunkirk ; Alliance with Holland ; War with England ; Treatj^ of Breda. § 4. Louis lays Claim to the Spanish Netherlands; Invasion of Flanders ; the Triple Alliance ; Peace of Aix-la-Chapelle. § 5. War with the United Provinces of Holland ; Passage of the Rhine ; Successes of the French ; the Prince of Orange proclaimed Stadtholder. .§ 6. Successful Defense of Holland ; Louis abandons his Conquests. § 7. Campaign of Turenne in Alsace ; Battle of SeneiFe ; Death of Turenne. § 8. Retirement of the great Conde; Naval Victories ; Successes of Marshal Cre'quy. § 9. Cap- tui-e of Ghent and Ypres ; Peace of Nimeguen. § 10. Glory of Louis XIV. ; his Aggressions ; Seizure of Strasburg ; Truce of Ratisbon. §11. ■ Private Character and Life of Louis; Madame de Maintenon, Louvois, and Le Tellier ; Persecution of the Protestants : the Dragonnades. §12. Revocation of the Edict of Nantes. § 13. League of Augsburg; Expedi- tion of the Prince of Orange to England. § 14. Louis declares War; the French ravage the Palatinate ; the Grand Alliance. § 15. French Ex- pedition to Ireland ; Battles of Bantry Bay, Beachy Head, and the Boyne. § 16. Victory of Fleurus ; Death of Louvois ; Naval Battle in the Chan- nel ; Disaster of La Hogue; Death of James II. § 17. Capture of Na- mur ; Battles of Steinkirk and Neerwinden ; Naval Action in Lagos Bay. § 1 8. Death of Marshal Luxemburg ; Recapture of Namur ; Treaty with the Duke of Savoy; Peace of Ryswick. A.D. 1661. CHARACTER OF LOUIS XIV. 427 § 1. The first act of Louis after the death of Mazarin was to assemble his council, and announce his intention to assume per- sonally the supreme direction of affairs. Hitherto, he said, he had been content to leave the conduct of the government in the hands of the cardinal ; but henceforvs^ard he enjoined the chancel- lor, and other chief functionaries both in Church and State, to . take their instructions solely from himself. The king was in many respects well qualified for such a task. He possessed a sound, though not a brilliant intellect ; a firm, resolute will ; con- siderable sagacity and penetration ; much aptitude for business, and indefatigable industry and perseverance. Mazarin estimated him highly: "There is enough in him," said he, "to make four kings and one honest man." His powers of application were re- markable. During the whole of his reign he labored regularly in his cabinet for eight hours every day. Louis had imbibed the most extravagant ideas of the nature and extent of the royal prerogative. Eegarding his authority as delegated immediately from heaven, he aimed to concentrate in himself individually all the powers and functions of government. The sovereign, in his view, was not only the guardian and dispens- er, but the fountain and author of all law and all justice. This theory he was accustomed to express in the well-known apoph- thegm, " The state is myself" (" I'e'tat, c'est moi"). And the pe- culiar position in which he found the kingdom — the power of the great nobles having been broken up by Richelieu, while the mag- istracy and the Parliament had sunk into insignificance during the distractions of the Fronde — enabled him almost literally to verify this lofty maxim. Never in the history of the world was there a more complete, nor, on the whole, a more favorable or suc- cessful specimen of absolute, irresponsible monarchy, than that es- tablished by Louis XIV. § 2. The king commenced by a rigid examination of the state of the public finances, which were found to have fallen into lam- entable disorder through the maladministration of the surintend- ant Nicholas Fouquet. Fouquet was a man of great ability and brilliant reputation, especially as a patron of letters and the arts, but he had scandalously abused his office, falsified the public ac- counts, squandered the revenue in reckless profusion, and enriched himself by shameless peculation. No less a sum than eighteen millions of livres had been lavished on his princely chateau of Vaux-Praslin near Melun ; and an entertainment given at that residence, in a style of more than regal magnificence, was so of- fensive to Louis, that the minister's disgrace was from that mo- ment determined. Fouquet was arrested in September, 1661, and sent to the Bastile. A commission was appointed for his trial, 428 ■ LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXI. but three years elapsed before the sentence was pronounced. His mortal enemies, Colbert and Le Tellier, labored to procure a cap- ital conviction, but the court condemned him only to banishment for life. Louis, with needless cruelty, changed the punishment into that of perpetual imprisonment in the fortress of Pignerol. Here the unfortunate Fouquet languished till his death, a period of nineteen years. He was succeeded as minister of finance by the famous Jean-Baptiste Colbert, who also directed the depart- ments of commerce, agriculture, and public works. This great minister, by dint of extraordinary genius and untir- ing labor, succeeded in effecting a radical reform of the finances. Things had lapsed into the same state of confusion as before the ministry of Sully. The revenue was exhausted by anticipation ; the national debt amounted to four hundred and fifty millions of livres ; out of eighty-four millions paid in taxes, only thirty-two millions were received by the treasury, while the yearly expendi- ture reached fifty-two millions. In the course of a few years Col- bert raised the gross income of the treasury to upward of one hundred millions, of which more than ninety millions were paid net into the public coffers. The rentes, or annuities paid by the state, together with other outgoings, were, during the same period, reduced by nearly one half; and the total expenditure never ex- ceeded fifty millions. This result was obtained in some measure by an augmentation of the taxes, especially of the excise duties ; but it must be mainly attributed to systematic economy, and to the exercise of strict and vigilant control over all the infei'ior of- ficers of the government. § 3. Peace was maintained in Europe during the first years of the administration of Louis ; but the king employed this period in forming new plans and combinations for the aggrandizement of France, keeping in view as his main object the dismemberment of Spain by annexing to his dominions her possessions in the Low Countries. Mazarin had been secretly actuated by ambitious proj- ects upon the Spanish monarchy in negotiating the treaty of the Bidassoa and the king's mariiage with the Lifanta ; and the for- eign policy of Louis was steadily directed toward the same end throughout his reign. Hence he eagerly supported the Portu- guese, who had lately thrown off the Spanish yoke, and induced Charles II. of England to follow his example. This led to Charles's marriage Avith Catharine of Braganza, and to that of Philip, Duke of Orleans, brother of Louis, with the Princess Henrietta of En- gland. In oi'der farther to conciliate Charles, who was in urgent need of money, Louis concluded with him a bargain for the sale of Dunkirk ; and, in consideration of five millions of livres, that important sea-port was reannexed to the French crown in No- A.D. 1662-1667. ALLIANCE WITH HOLLAND. 429 vember, 16G2. His next step was to sign an alliance offensive and defensive with the United Provinces of Holland, so as to pre- vent their forming a coalition with Spain in case of a rupture. About the same time, Louis gave a proof of his haughty and imperious temper on the occasion of a quarrel between his em- bassador in England, the Count D'Estrades, and the Spanish en- voy at the same court, who had insisted on taking precedence of the representative of France at a diplomatic reception. Louis re- called his embassador from Madrid, demanded full and immediate reparation, and threatened war in case of refusal. Philip IV. made an unqualified submission, and, in the presence of the whole diplomatic body assembled at Fontainebleau, his embassador de- clared that the Spanish agents would no longer contest the pre- tensions of the crown of France. A similar mortification was in- flicted in the course of the same year on the court of Rome. The French embassador having been insulted by some of tli^ Pope's Corsican guai'd. Innocent X. was compelled to offer an apology, to disband his guard, and to erect an obelisk at Rome with an inscription recording the offense and its punishment. Hostilities having broken out in 1665 between England and Holland, the Dutch appealed for succor to their ally the King of France. Louis hesitated ; he was unwilling to abandon his connection with Charles, while the English king, on his part, la- bored to detach him from his engagements with the republic, of- fering him carte hlanche in his projects against Spain if he would only abstain from co-operating with the States. After vainly en- deavoring to mediate, Louis dispatched a division of six thousand troops to Holland, and declared war against England on the 16th of January, 1666. The chief events of the contest which ensued were the naval battles between the English and the Dutch, in which Louis took no part, the French marine being at that time in a very feeble and depressed condition. In the summer of 1667 England Avas thrown into consternation by the appearance of the Dutch fleet in the Thames and the Medway. Charles hastened to make overtures for peace, and a treaty was concluded at Breda between England, France, and Holland, on the 31st of July, 1667, England restoring to the French certain conquests made in the West Indies and in North America. § 4. Louis, however, had in the mean time embarked in a more serious contest, the first-fruits of his long-cherished designs of ag- gression against Spain. Philip IV. of Spain expired in September, 1665, leaving, by his second wife, an only son, who succeeded to the thi'one as Charles II. The French king immediately laid claim to Brabant, Flan- ders, and the whole of the Spanish possessions in tlie Low Coun- 430 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXI. tries, founding liis title upon a local law or custom called the "Droit de devolution," by which the daughters of a first mar- riage inherited in preference to the male issue of a second. The question was debated during several months by diplomacy. The court of Spain maintained that the usage referred to was merely a civil regulation, and did not apply to transactions between sov- ereigns, or to the transmission of the dominions of the crown ; and, moreover, that the Queen of France was precluded from ad- vancing any such claim by the act of renunciation which she had executed at her marriage. To this Louis rejoined, that the re- nunciation was null and void, inasmuch as the dowry of Maria Theresa, upon which it depended, had never been paid ; and that, since the Netherlands were, strictly speaking, the family property of the Spanish princes, they ought to be governed by the same laws which settled the succession to other private estates. In such a case it was sufficient to produce arguments which were tolerably specious, for Louis had fully determined before- hand to support his reasoning by force of arms. On the 24th of May, 1667, the main body of the French army, commanded by Turenne, crossed the Flemish frontier, and overran the province with little or no opposition, the towns of Charleroi, Tournay, Ath, Courtrai, and I)ouai surrendering almost at the first sum- mons. Lille resisted for some weeks, but submitted to the king in person on the 28th of August. Louis, instead of pushing his conquests farther, now concluded a truce for three months with the Spaniards, and returned to Paris. The ambitious character and rapid success of the French mon- ai'ch quickly excited the alarm of Europe, especially of England and Holland ; and negotiations ensued between these two powei-s, Avith the view of forming a defensive coalition against France. By the dexterous and able agency of Sir William Temple, the fa- mous treaty called the Triple Alliance was signed at the Hague on the 2od of January, 1068, between England, Holland, and Sweden, by which the contracting parties interposed to mediate a peace between France and Spain, with a threat of hostilities in case of refusal. They engaged to obtain from Spain the cession of all the jjlaces already conquered by France, vipon which condi- tion Louis was to forego all farther claim against Spain in right of his queen. Louis, before receiving the official communication of this treaty, had suddenly undertaken, in the depth of winter, an expedition against Franche-Comte. Twenty thousand men were secretly assembled under the Prince of Conde, who, pressing his operations Avith unexampled rapidity, forced Besan^on to ca- pitulate on the 7th of February, and reduced the whole county to submission witliin fifteen days. Af!er this startling and S))len- A.D. 1G68-1G70. WAR WITH HOLLAND. 431 did exploit Louis consented to negotiate for peace ; and the treaty of Aix-la-Chapelle was signed on tlie 2d of May, 1668. Spain surrendered to France all her conquests on the Sambre, the Scheldt, the Scai-pe, and the Lys, together with Bergues and Furnes on the sea-coast ; France restored Franche-Comte, but in a defenseless state, its principal fortresses having been dismantled. The integ- rity of the rest of the Spanish territories was guaranteed by the Triple Alliance, as well as by the emperor and other powers of Germany. § 5. The wounded pride of Louis never forgave the Dutch Re- public for joining a confederacy which had pi^esumed to set bounds to his career of conquest. His resentment is said to have been heightened by a bombastic medal struck on the occasion in Hol- land, and by the arrogant behavior of Van Benningen, the Dutch embassador. War with the States was fully resolved on in the king's mind from the moment of his signing the treaty of Aix-la- Chapelle ; and he was encouraged in the scheme by the ministers Louvois and Colbert, who urged that, in order to reduce the Span- ish Netherlands, it was essential, in the first place, to humble and subdue the provinces of Holland. As a preliminary measure, Louis now proceeded to intrigue with Charles of England for the dissolution of the Triple Alliance. Charles, notwithstanding his recent policy, hated the Dutch in reality no less cordially than Louis himself. Liberty Avas odious to him ; he longed to become a despotic monarch ; and he was secretly more than half a convert to Eomanism. Moreover, he was constantly in extreme distress for money ; and an advantageous ti'eaty with the French king of- fered the most pi'omising means of replenishing his coffers, and thus making him independent of his Parliament, which grew more and more parsimonious. These considerations rendered Charles a will- ing listener to the propositions of the court of France. After some previous negotiation, the amiable and fascinating Henrietta of Orleans, Charles's sister, who possessed much influence over him, arrived at Dover on a secret mission in May, 1670, and a treaty was shortly afterward concluded, the provisions of which, discreditable to both sovereigns, must cover the memory of Charles with peculiar and eternal infamy. He engaged to abandon his late allies, and join Louis in invading Holland, furnishing a con- tingent of six thousand men and a fleet of fifty sail ; he was also to make a public profession of the Roman Catholic religion, and propagate it to the utmost of his power in his dominions. As the price of these disgraceful acts of treachery, Charles was to receive from Louis an annual subsidy of three millions (£120,000) during the war, together with the island of Walcheren, and two fortresses on the Scheldt, as his share of the spoil. Louis, raorever, cove^ 432 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXI. nantecl to assist liim with men and money in case of rebellion in England in consequence of his change of faith. This transaction was closely followed by the sudden death of the Duchess of Or- leans, who expired almost immediately after her return to France, under circumstances which excited strong suspicions of poison. The deed was imputed to her husband, probably without reason, and the mystery has never been cleared up. Having obtained pi-omises of neutrality from Sweden and the emperor, and of active co-operation from the Electors of Hanover and Cologne and the Bishop of Munster, Louis commenced his unjust and impolitic war with Holland in April, 1G72. His main army, commanded nominally by himself in person, but really di- rected by Conde and Turenne, crossed the Meuse near Maestricht, and, advancing to the banks of the Rhine, attacked at the same time Wesel and three other frontier towns, which all submitted in the course of a few days. The famous passage of the Rhine — an exploit celebrated in the most extravagant terms of adulation by file French courtiers — took place on the 12th of June. It was, in reality, no very wonderful achievement. Conde was wounded, and the young Duke of Longueville killed in the opei'ation, but the invaders suffered little loss, the Hollanders having no force on the spot capable of serious resistance. The States were indeed at this moment in a miserably defenseless condition ; their fleet was powei-ful, and worthily commanded by the gallant De Kuy- ter ; but the army had been totally neglected, and it was with great difficulty that twenty-five thousand men could be collected, and placed under the command of William, prince of Orange, then a young man twenty-two years of age. The civil dissensions be- tween the adherents of the house of Orange and the democratical party headed by the pensionary De Witt rendered the circumstan- ces of the Republic still more critical. The passage of the Rhine having exposed the whole of the western provinces to the torrent of invasion, the nation was seized with universal paiiic. The prince abandoned his position on the Yssel, and fell back upon Utrecht, and thence into the interior of Holland ; Guelderland, Overyssel, and Utrecht were immediately occupied by the French without the slightest resistance, and they penetrated to Muyden, within four leagues of Amsterdam. The Dutch, driven to des- peration, now contemplated a project for transporting the whole population, on board their ships of war, to their distant settlements in the East Indies. The animosity of the rival factions became more violent than ever ; and John de Witt, fearing the complete triumph of the aristocrats, determined to send a deputation to Louis to treat for conditions of peace. His propositions, though piillicieiidy jiumblc, were sternly rejected, through the influence of A.D. 1672, 1673. SUCCESSFUL DEFENSE OF HOLLAND. 433 Louvois, the French minister of war. The haughty conqueror de- manded the cession of northern Bi'abant and Flanders, and all the Dutch possessions south of the Meuse and the Wahal, together with twenty millions of livres for the expenses of the war, great commercial advantages, and the public and free exercise of the Catholic religion. Upon the receipt of these outrageous terms a terrible explosion of popular wrath burst forth against the pension- ary ; and a revolution followed, which placed the Prince of Orange at the head of affairs as stadtholder. The two brothers De Witt were brutally mui'dered by the populace on the 27th of August ; and William, thus left dictator, energetically employed all the re- sources of his genius and patriotism in the defense of his country. § 6. From that moment the fortunes of Holland took a different turn. The vast sluiees were opened, and the whole district in the neighborhood of Amsterdam laid under water ; the fleet entered the Texel to protect the capital by sea ; the triumphant progress of the enemy was suddenly arrested, and the Kepublic gained time to pi'ovide against future attacks. The Stadtholder succeeded in forming an alliance with the powerful Elector of Brandenburg, to v/hich the Emperor Leopold, notwithstanding his secret engage- ment with France, soon afterward declared his adhesion ; and, in consequence, an army of forty thousand Germans, commanded by the famous Montecuculi, marched upon the Ehine. Here, how- ever, they were confronted by Turenne, whose masterly manoeu- vres gave him the superiority at every point where they attempt- ed the passage of the river. The Elector of Brandenburg lost pa- tience, separated from the imperialists, and retired to his own do- minions, pursued by the indefatigable Turenne to the banks of the Elbe. In 1673 Louis again penetrated into Holland at the head of thirty thousand men, and captured the important fortress of Maestricht ; but France was now menaced by an imposing coali- tion between the empire, Spain, the States-General, and Several of the German princes, and the contest began to assume the pro- portions of a European war. The Prince of Orange took the of- fensive, invested and reduced Naarden after twelve days' siege, gained the Rhine, and effected his junction with the forces of Mon- tecuculi, in spite of all the efforts of Turenne. The combined ar- mies then besieged Bonn ; the French were unable to arrive in time to relieve it, and the place surrendered on the 12th of No- vember. This gave the allies the command of the Rhine, and they immediately occupied the territories of Cologne and Munster. Sevei'al desperate naval engagements were fought during the war, especially one in Solebay, in May, 1672, between the English and French navies under the Duke of York and the Comte D'Estre'es, and the Dutch under De Ruyter, but in each case without deci- T 434 LOUIS UlY. CuAP. XXL sive result. Ei'e long the British Parliament, indignant at the degrading terms of Charles's connection with Louis, forced him to detach himself from the French alliance, and peace was signed be- tween England and Holland in P'ebruary, 1674. The tide thus turned against Louis, who found it necessary to abandon all his conquests, and fall back toward his own frontiers, retaining only the towns of Grave and Maestricht. Holland was saved. § 7. The theatre of war was now entirely changed. In May, 1674, the King of France in person suddenly invaded Franche- Corate', and reduced it to complete submission, for the second time, before the beginning of July. Turenne, with a very inadequate force, was opposed to the Imperialists in Alsace. He crossed the Khine at Philipsburg, and, encountering the enemy at Sintzheim on the 16th of June, routed them with a loss of more than two thousand men, and drove them back beyond the Neckar. It was after this victory that Turenne disgraced his name by barbarously ravaging the Palatinate, which was abandoned to the ferocious license of his troops, and soon became a scene of indescribable desolation. The inhabitants retaliated by frightful excesses upon all French soldiers caught straggling from the main army. At length the Imperialists in their turn forced the passage of the Rhine at Mayence, and encamped between Spires and Phihps- burg. Upon this the minister Louvois directed Turenne to evac- uate Alsace ; but the marshal appealed directly to the king, and Louis had the good sense to support his views. Turenne main- tained his post, and, though the enemy gained possession of Stras- burg, and threatened to advance upon Lorraine, the French com- mander attacked them with brilliant success at Entsheim on the 4 th of October, and drove them back to Strasburg. He next took up a strong position near Saverne, which the allies, though with immensely superior numbers, attempted in vain to force ; they re- treated, with the intention of distributing themselves in Avinter quarters in Alsace. Turenne now executed a memorable march across the Vosges Mountains in the depth of winter ; and, con- centrating his army at Belfort on the 27th of December, fell sud- denly upon the flank of the astonished Germans, who imagined him to be fifty leagues off, routed them in a series of encounters at Muhlhausen, Ensisheim, and Colmar, and finally compelled them to repass the Rhine at Strasburg on the 11th of January, 1675. This extraordinary campaign in Alsace is considered the master- piece of Turenne's genius. The marshal's return to Paris was an uninterrupted ovation, and he was received in the capital witli unbounded transports of enthusiasm. In the mean while the Prince of Conde had been placed in command of thirty-five thousand men on the frontier of Hainault, A.D. 1674, 1675. DEATH OF TURENNE. 435 to make head against the combined Imperialist and Dutch forces under the Prince of Orange. Finding his position at Charleroi unassailable, the allies mo\ ed in the direction of Mons, thus ex- posing their flank, an error of which Conde took advantage with his usual sagacity and promptitude. A desperate battle was fought at the village of Seneffe on the 11th of August, 1674, in which, after fearful carnage, victory inclined to the side of the French ; but "William of Orange, with the steady self-possession of a vet- eran commander, took up a new and stronger position, and re- newed the battle with tremendous fury in the afternoon. The fighting lasted till midnight; the field was heaped with twenty thousand corpses ; but the general result of the day was uncer- tain. The allies afterward captured Grave, Huy, and Dinant, and thus obtained a slight superiority before the close of the cam- paign. Louis took the offensive with overwhelming numbers in the spring of 1675. The Austrian general Montecuculi manoeuvred for several weeks to bring Turenne to action on the Kintzig, be- yond Strasburg, but in vain. At length the Imperialist com- mander retired and marched southward; on the 27th of July the two armies came in sight near the entrance of the defile of Sass- bach, and a general engagement seemed inevitable. As Turenne advanced to the front of his lines to make his last dispositions for the attack, he was struck by a spent cannon-ball from the enemy's batteries, and fell dead on the spot. This irreparable loss could not be concealed from the soldiers ; dejection and dismay spread through their ranks ; and the general who succeeded to the com- mand was forced immediately to retreat. After a sanguinary combat at Altenheim the French recrossed the Rhine into Alsace. The illustrious Turenne was honored with a sumptuous funer- al, and interred, amid the tears of the whole nation, in the royal sepulchre of St. Denis. His remains have since been transferred to the church of the Invalides at Paris. § 8. There was but one man in France who could be sent to replace the great Turenne. This was the Prince of Conde', who, besides his personal qualifications, possessed an intimate acquaint- ance with the tactics and plans of the departed hero. Conde, on taking the command in Alsace, found that Montecuculi had al- ready passed the Rhine at Strasburg, and was besieging Hague- nau. He soon relieved that place, and arrested the farther prog- ress of the enemy ; but, in accordance with the system of Turenne, be eluded the efforts of the Austrians to bring him to a general action ; and Montecuculi, abandoning Alsace, retired into winter quarters around Spires. This was the last campaign of the great Conde. Increasing infirmities warned him that he was no longer 436 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXI. capable of directing the operations and enduring the fatigues of Avar ; on quitting the army he took up his abode at Chantilly, and passed the latter years of his life in comparative privacy. He died in 1686. The year 1676 was chiefly remarkable for some naval successes of the French in the Mediterranean. The distinguished Admiral Duquesne engaged and defeated the Dutch fleet under De Ruyter off the island of Stromboli on the 7th of January. A few weeks later another terrible battle was fought near Catania, in which the gallant De Euyter was slain ; and the victorious Duquesne then sailed for Palermo, where a third action, on the 2d of June, termi- nated in the complete triumph of the French. These victories led to no permanent result, but they added greatly to the reputa- tion of the French navy, and for a time the flag of Louis was without a rival in the Mediterranean. The operations of the campaign by land were of minor impor- tance. Although deprived of his greatest generals by the fall of Turenne and the retirement of Conde, Louis still possessed sever- al officers of superior talent — the Duke of Luxemburg, Marshals Crequy, Schomberg, and D'Estrades, and, above all, Vauban, a consummate master of the art of engineering. The French were successful in some sieges on the Flemish frontier, but Luxemburg was beaten by the Imperialists in the Palatinate, and lost the im- portant fortress of Philipsburg. In the spring of 1677 Louis pro- ceeded in person to invest Valenciennes, with Luxemburg and Vauban. The town capitulated, to the great astonishment of the besiegers, on the first assault, and the vainglorious Louis appro- priated to himself all the credit of the achievement. Cambrai and St. Omer were next forced to submission, and the Duke of Orleans, assisted by Luxemburg, gained a brilliant victory over the Prince of Orange at Cassel on the 11th of April. The honor of the French arms was maintained on the German fi-ontier by the Mare'chal de Crequy, who defeated the Duke of Lorraine at Kochersberg, near Strasburg, and captured Freyburg, capital of the Breisgau, on the 16th of November. This campaign, in which Crequy rivaled the scientific combinations of Turenne, at once ob- tained for the marshal a first-rate military reputation, and pro- duced a great sensation both in France and in foreign countries. § 9. Thus, notwithstanding various partial checks and failures, the arms of Louis had, on the whole, acquired a decided superior- ity during a struggle of six years' duration. -A congress had been opened at Nimeguen, under the mediation of Sweden, in 1675 ; and the Dutch, who had been reduced to the verge of ruin by the tremendous sacrifices of the Avar, showed themselves anxious to concbide a separate treaty Avith the French monarch. Tliis design A.D. 107G-1G78. PEACE OF NIMEGfUEN. 437 was strenuously opposed by William of Orange, who, as the cham- pion of Protestantism, was the implacable rival and enemy of Lou- is, a character which he maintained throughout his life. The main object of the prince was to obtain the co-operation of England in the war ; but this was no easy matter, for Charles had again sold himself to Louis for a pension of 200,000 livres, and had engaged to enter into no alliance without the consent of France. The British Parliament, however, warmly supported the views of Wil- liam ; the Commons pressed the king to declare war with France, promising him ample supplies on this condition ; and the nation- al inclinations were expressed with so much pertinacity and vig- or, that Charles was at length obliged to signify his consent. The Prince of Orange proceeded to England, and espoused the Prin- cess Mary, eldest daughter of the Duke of York, on the 23d of October, 1677 ; and two months afterward a treaty of alliance, oflfensive and defensive, was signed at the Hague between England and the States of Holland. The two parties agreed to propose certain conditions of peace to Louis XIV., and to enforce his ac- ceptance of them, in case of necessity, by hostile measures. Louis was not averse to a pacification, but his demands were exorbitant. Kesolved to make a bold stroke to obtain his own terms, he march- ed suddenly upon Ghent, and, after bombarding the city for two days, carried it by assault on the night of the 8th of March, 1678. The citadel capitulated on the 11th, and this vast and opulent city, the second in the Netherlands, remained in the hands of the French. Ypres was attacked immediately afterward, and surren- dered within ten days. These startling conquests, together with the discovery that the King of England was totally insincere in the late treaty of alliance, decided the Dutch ministers to accept the French propositions, and make peace separately from their al- lies. William of Orange, duped and deserted at the last moment by the faithless Charles, in vain attempted to resist ; and the treaty of Nimeguen was signed between France and Holland on the 14th of August, 1678. Holland sacrificed nothing, after a war which had threatened to be so calamitous, except two unimportant for- eign settlements. Four days afterward the Prince of Orange, hoping even yet to frustrate the pacification, surprised the quar- ters of Marshal Luxemburg near Mons, and a battle ensued, which cost the lives of three thousand men on each side. It was too late, however, to renew the war. Spain, after much hesitation, acceded to the peace on the 17th of September, surrendering to France the whole of Franche-Comte', together with eleven towns on the frontier of Flanders, some of which, such as Valenciennes, Cambrai, Ypres, and St. Omer, were places of great strength and importance. Thus, while the war had been waged with Holland, 438 * LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXI. it was Spain that ultimately paid for the restoration of peace. The emperor, after some farther successes obtained by Marshal Cre'quy in Alsace, at length yielded to necessity, and signed peace with Louis on the 5th of February, 1679. § 10. The peace of Nimeguen, which Louis thus dictated to Europe, raised him to his highest point of power and glory. It was now that the admiring citizens of Paris solemnly decreed to him the title of "the Great," and erected in his honor the two triumphal arches called Porte St. Martin and Porte St. Denis, which still adorn the boulevards of the capital. His courtiers worshiped him as a demigod ; foreign governments regarded him with servile awe ; and it is not wonderful that in this proud zenith of his fortunes he should have shown himself little disposed to practice moderation and forbearance. The conclusion of peace produced no abatement in his projects of aggressive domination ; on the contrary, he took advantage of his position to push his ar- bitrary encroachments beyond all bounds of reason and wise pol- icy. The late treaties had ceded to France several important cities and districts, "with the dependencies belonging to them." This vague expression opened a wide field to the grasping ambi- tion of Louis. He proceeded to institute courts called Chambres de Reunion, for the purpose of ascertaining what dependencies had appertained at any former period to the territories now an- nexed to France ; and by this ingenious device he soon added to his dominions no less than twenty towns "wrested from neigh- boring princes, including Saarbruck, Luxemburg, Deux-ponts, and Montbeliard. A far more important acquisition, that of the great free city of Strasburg, was made by means of a hostile demonstra- tion in September, 1681. The town was permitted to retain its ancient franchises and peculiar jurisdiction, together with the free exercise of the Lutheran religion. Louis entered Strasburg in state on the 23d of October. Vauban now exhausted the re- sources of his art on its fortifications, and it has ever since re- mained the impregnable bulwark of France on the side of Ger- many. Against these acts of violence, committed during a time of peace, the Imperial Diet protested vehemently, but in vain. Through the exertions of the Prince of Orange a fresh league was organized between the Dutch States, Sweden, Spain, and the empire, pledg- ing them to maintain the conditions of the treaty of IVimeguen ; but, exhausted by the recent conflict, none of these powei'S were at that moment in a condition to recommence hostilities, and, ac- cordingly, no steps were taken beyond remonstrances and negoti- ations. Louis continued his usurpations. He demanded from Spain Alost and other places in Belgium, and in March, 1682, he A.D. 1674-1684. PRIVATE CHARACTER OF LOUIS. 439 poured his troops into the province of Luxemburg under Marshal Crequy. His operations, however, were suddenly suspended on hearing of the invasion of Austria by the Turks ; he even oiFered his assistance to the emperor, designing, in case Vienna should be delivered by his arms, to exact in return the recognition of all his unjust demands and seizures. In this scheme Louis was foiled by the valor of Sobieski, king of Poland, who repelled the infidels from Vienna, and saved the empire. Upon this the French ar- mies, without farther ceremony, entered Flanders and Brabant in the autumn of 1683, captured Courtrai and Dix;mude, and laid the whole district under a heavy contribution. The cabinet of Madrid now declared war, but made no attempt to send an army into the field. Louis pursued his operations unopposed, and in the spring of 1684 invested and reduced the fortress of Luxemburg, while at the same time he threatened Mons and even Brussels. After some delay the States-General of Holland interposed with offers of mediation ; and on the 15th of August, 1684, a truce for twenty years Avas concluded at Eatisbon between France, Spain, and the empire. Strasburg and its district were by this arrange- ment formally ceded to France, together with the province of Luxemburg, and all the towns which had been annexed by the Chambres de Re'union before the 1st of August, 1681. This, it was evident, was merely a temporary accommodation, to be fol- lowed ere long by a more formidable coalition of those powers whose independence was thus recklessly assailed by Louis. § 11. Our at'^ention is now claimed by some nlemorable trans- actions of the internal government of Louis — equally marked, un- happily, by oppressive injustice, which was aggravated by peculiar circumstances of heartless and barbarous cruelty. These events are closely connected with the king's personal character and pri- vate life, upon which it is therefore necessary to bestow a rapid glance, in order to make the narrative intelligible. During the earlier years of his reign Louis lived in habits of unrestrained li- centiousness. His first object of serious attachment was the un- fortunate Louise de la Valliere, who, having borne the king two children, retired into a convent, heartbroken and penitent, in 1674. Her successor was the Marchioness Montespan. This lady re- tained the royal affections for many years, and became the moth- er of eight children, who were all declared legitimate, and inter- married with the noblest families of the realm. At length Louis, liaving reached the mature age of forty, became captivated by Fran^oiseD'Aubigne, gi'anddaughter of the famous Protestant his- torian, and widow of the comic poet Scarron. This remarkable person, afterward so celebrated as Madame de Maintenon, had been recommended to Madame de Montespan as governess to her 440 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXI. children ; in this capacity the king saw hei' constantly, and by de- grees she acquired an empire over him which lasted uninterrupt- edly till his death. ^ Madame de Maintenon possessed superior powers of intellect, attractive manners, and many excellent qual- ities ; but she was an uncompromising bigot in matters of religion. The queen, Maria Theresa, died in 1683 ; and in the course of the following year the king was secretly married to Madame de Main- tenon by his confessor La Chaise, in the presence of the Archbish- op of Paris. The union was never acknowledged, and the posi- tion of Madame de Maintenon at court remained in consequence anomalous and equivocal ; but her influence over the royal mind Madame de Maintenon. in private became boundless, and extended alike to all subjects and measures, domestic, political, and religious. It Avas chiefly by her representations that Louis was now induced to commence a violent and relentless persecution of the unoffending Calvinists, which grievously tarnished the glory of his reign, and proved in the highest degree detrimental to France. She persuaded him that the best means of making satisfaction for the sins of his past life was to exert himself for the conversion of the misguided sec- taries, and to establish absolute uniformity of faith and church government thx-oughout the kingdom. The king's good genius, A.D. 1685. THE DRAGONNADES. 441 the wise and liberal-minded Colbert, had steadily protected the Protestants, who had often done the state good service under his patronage ; but that admirable minister was now no more. Lou- vois and Le Tellier, who succee^ld him in the confidence of Louis, especially the former, were men of stern, savage, vindictive tem- per, and earnestly supported the counsels of Madame de Mainte- non. It was therefore determined to take decisive measures for the total suppression of heresy ; but gentle expedients were re- sorted to in the first instance. Numerous bands of missionaries Avere sent into the provinces ; the press overflowed with sermons, pamphlets, books of devotion, and controversial publications of all kinds ; a " caisse de conversions" was established under the direc- tion of the minister Pelisson, who dispensed the funds intrusted to him at the rate of six livres for every abjuration of the so-called Eeformed religion. But these measures, though to a great extent successful, wei*e too slow in their operation to satisfy the eager propagandists of the court, and they were soon exchanged for se- verer treatment. The " Chamber of the Edict," instituted by Henry IV., was abolished, as well as the Protestant courts in the Parliaments of Toulouse, Bordeaux, and Grenoble. Numbers of the Reformed places of worship were shut up on frivolous pre- tenses. The Huguenots were excluded from all public functions, from the liberal professions, from the Universities, from engaging in vai'ious branches of commerce and industry. They were for- bidden to intermarry with Catholics ; and their children were en- couraged to forsake the faith of their parents by being declared capable of choosing for themselves at the age of seven years. The unhappy sectaries were thus goaded to resistance, especially in Languedoc. The governor of that province Avrote to demand mil- itary aid in carrying out the king's decrees ; and Louvois instant- ly dispatched squadrons of dragoons into the disturbed disti'icts, who were quartered on the inhabitants, and abandoned themselves to every kind of brutal violence and excess, establishing a " reign of terror" wherever they appeared. These atrocious " dragon- nades" completely broke the spii'it of the wretched population, and they submitted in despair. "Not a post arrives," wrote Ma- dame de Maintenon in September, 1685, "without bringing the king tidings which fill him with joy ; the conversions take place every day by thousands." Sixty thousand persons are said to have embraced Catholicism in Guienne in the course of one month ; twenty thousand abjured in Be'arn ; eighty thousand in the two dioceses of Nismes and Montpellier. § 12. These results might have satisfied the most extravagant zealot. But the infatuated Louis, at the urgent instigation of his seci'et council, now proceeded to a still more extreme and fatal T2 442 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXI. measure of severity. On the 17th of October, 1685, he signed the celebrated decree called the Eevocation of the Edict of Nantes. Acting merely by his own despotic authority, the king annulled forever all the privile^b granted to the Huguenots by Henry lY. and Louis XIH. ; absolutely prohibited the exercise of their religion throughout the kingdom, w^ith the sole exception of Alsace ; ordered their temples to be leveled with the ground, and their ministers to quit France within fifteen days ; forbade the Eeformers to follow their pastors into exile under pain of confis- cation and condemnation to the galleys ; and required their chil- dren to be baptized henceforth by the Catholic priests, and edu- cated as members of the Established Church.* Frightful cruelties followed the publication of this decree. Mul- titudes of the Reformed, obstinately refusing obedience, were con- signed to loathsome dungeons, racked with exquisite tortures, and treated with every kind of outrage short of actual murder. Num- bers of females were immured for life in convents ; infants were torn from the arms of their mothers ; property was destroyed, and whole districts laid desolate. The king, most probably, knew nothing of these horrors, and was engaged meanwhile in receiving the inflated homage and congratulations of his court sycophants, who compared him to Constantine, to Theodosius the Great, to Charlemagne. Even such men as Bossuet, Massillon, and Fle'- chier — as Eacine, La Bruyere, and La Fontaine — were not ashamed to take part in this universal chorus of applause. Notwithstanding the strict prohibition against emigration, vast crowds of the proscribed schismatics found means to elude the vigilance of the police, and, escaping from their native land, sought shelter in England, Holland, Germany, and Switzerland. Their numbers are variously estimated : it seems probable that at least two hundred thousand persons expatriated themselves between the publication of the edict and the close of the century. Among them are to be found names of great eminence, such as that of the Marshal Duke of Schomberg, one of the ablest captains of the age, who passed into Holland, and placed his SAVord at the disposal of the Prince of Orange. Literary men of high distinction — Bas- nage, Bayle, Jurieu, Lenfant, Beausobre, Saurin, Eapin — were in- cluded in the list of exiles. But the great majority belonged to the industrial and manufacturing classes ; and the loss of their skill, experience, and energy was an irreparable calamity to France. An entire district of the British metropolis is peopled at this day by the descendants of these persecuted refugees, who established their silk-looms in Spitalfields. § 13. While the Eevocation of the Edict of Nantes thus impov- * See the Memoirs of St. Simon, vol. viii., p. 143, edit. 1857. A.D. 1686-1689. LEAGUE OF AUGSBURG. 443 erished France by depriving her of multitudes of ingenious and distinguished citizens, it had also a marked effect upon the policy of foreign nations, and tended to bring about a great change in the state of Europe. The bitter and profound resentment which it excited among the Protestants of Holland, England, and Ger- many threw an immense advantage into the hands of the vigilant William of Orange, who was thus enabled to organize a vast and imposing confederacy against the tyrant Louis. Active negotia- tions ensued under his auspices, which resulted in the famous League of Augsburg, signed July 9, 1686, between the emperor, the Kings of Spain and Sweden, the Electors of Bavaria and Sax- ony, and the Elector Palatine. Holland did not immediately join the coalition, as it did not suit the views of William at that mo- ment to break openly with the King of France. He was secretly making preparations for his memorable expedition to England, which issued, two years later, in the abdication and flight of his father-in-law James, and his own advancement, together Avith his consort Mary, to the throne. With such consummate skill did the prince mask his designs, that neither Louis nor James became aware of the truth until it was too late to oppose the enterprise. Tjouis, as soon as he had penetrated the mystery, hastened to warn James of the danger, and signified to the States-General that the first act of hostility committed against his ally the King of En- land would be regarded by him as a declaration of w^ar. But in- stead of pouring his forces into the Netherlands — vv^hich might, even at the last moment, have compelled William to remain on the Continent — the French king, anxious to anticipate the move- ments of the confederates of Augsburg, employed his armies, as we shall soon see, in a different direction. The prince was thus left at liberty to prosecute his adventurous undertaking. He sailed from Helvoetsluys on the 1st of November, 1688, landed in Torbay on the 5th, and within six weeks the revolution was suc- cessfully accomplished. The fugitive James, with his queen and infant son, sought an asylum in France, and were welcomed at St. Germains with a generosity and munificence which did infinite honor to the kingly character of Louis, on the 7th of January, 1689. § 14. The success of his antagonist deprived Louis of his only remaining ally, and added England to the list of hostile powers already arrayed against him. The cabinet of Versailles had been determined by the counsels of Louvois to strike the first blow against the coalition on the side of Germany. Pretexts for tak- ing up arms were not wanting. The Duchess of Orleans, sister of the Elector Palatine lately deceased, laid claim to a considera- ble part of his possessions under the title of allodial property : 444 LOUIS XIV. CirAr. XXI. this claim had been disallowed, on appeal, by the emperor, and Louis resolved to support it by force. Another ground of rup- ture was the election of a Bavarian prince to the Electorate of Cologne, to which the French king had advanced pretensions for a dependent of his own, the Cardinal de Furstenburg. Such were the causes assigned by Louis for commencing hostilities ; but the war which ensued was in reality a desperate struggle between the gigantic monarchy of France and the rest of the European states combined to withstand the common danger of an insatiable and all-absorbing ambition. A French army of eighty thousand men, commanded by the dauphin, with Marshals Duras and Vauban, entered the Palatin- ate in October, 1688, and, besieging Philipsburg, forced it to sur- render within a month. Manheim submitted immediately after- ward. Meanwhile a division under the Marquis de Boufflers rap- idly took possession of Mayence, Worms, Kreutznach, Spii'cs, and the whole of the Palatinate on the left bank of the Rhine ; after which the French ascended the Moselle and seized the city of Treves. Marshal D'Humieres at the same time invaded the bish- opric of Liege, and occupied Dinant. It was now that Louis, at the instigation of the brutal Louvois, proceeded to a step which has left a deep and indelible stain upon his name. Unable to maintain his conquests, he gave orders for the wholesale devasta- tion of the Palatinate by fire and sword, for the purpose of pre- venting the enemy's army from I'eoccupying the country. This inhuman decree was instantly carried into execution, and with far more disastrous effect than in the former campaign under Tu- renne. Having warned the population to retire, the French gen- erals set fire to Heidelberg, with the magnificent palace of the Electors, and reduced it to a mass of blackened ruins. Manheim, Spires, Worms, Oppenheim, Bingen, were condemned in succes- sion to the flames. Crops, farms, vines, orchards, fruit-trees, were all destroyed ; and this once rich and smiling land was converted into a desolate wilderness. The houseless peasants, to the num- ber of a hundred thousand, wandered about in abject misery, im- precating the vengeance of Heaven upon the heartless tyrant who had caused their ruin. These atrocities produced a state of furious exasperation through- out Germany which it is impossible to describe. A neAv coalition was now formed, under the title of the " Grand Alliance," consist- ing of the powers which had signed the League of Augsburg, with the important additions of England and Holland. The allies took the field with three distinct armies. The first, commanded by the Prince of Waldeck, Avith an English division under Lord Church- ill, entered the Netherlands, and, defeating Marshal D'Humieres A.D. 1689, 1690. BATTLE OF THE BOYNE. 445 in a sharp engagement at Walcourt, drove the French from the line of the Sambre. The second and third, under the orders of the Duke of Lorraine and the Elector of Brandenburg, moved upon the Rhine, successfully besieged Mayence and Bonn, and afterward established themselves for the winter in the Palatinate, where, not- withstanding the barbarous ravages of the French, it was still found possible to procure subsistence for the troops. § 15. But the chief interest of the early part of this war lies in the efforts made by Louis against the newly-acquii-ed throne of his inveterate foe, William of Orange. England, under the di- rection of a prince so able and so vigorous, was the main strength of the hostile coalition ; and it was rather to wrest the sceptre out of the hands of William than to effect the restoration of James that France now taxed to the utmost her resources both by sea and land in preparing a descent upon the British Isles. In March, 1689, a French squadron of thirteen sail conveyed James to Ire- land with a body of troops under the Count of Rosen. Marshal Schomberg was now dispatched by William to take the command in Ireland, and the king followed in person in June, 1690. About the same time, a French fleet, numbering no less than seventy- eight ships of the line, put to sea, and engaged the combined force of Holland and England off Beachy Head on the 30th of June. This battle, in which the French were ably commanded by the Count of Tourville, was gallantly contested, especially by the Dutch, who bore the brunt of the action, and suffered very severe loss. The English admiral, Herbert, earl of Torrington, is said to have spared his ships, and was suspected of being secretly in the interest of James. The result was that the allied fleet was compelled to draw off and seek shelter in the Thames, and Tour- ville claimed a decided victory. The Bourbon flag was now in- solently triumphant in the Channel for some weeks. Tourville attacked and destroyed Teignmouth, on the coast of Devonshire ; and the consternation and dismay in England, in expectation of a French invasion, were extreme. No farther naval operations, howevei', were undertaken this year. The famous battle of the Boyne was fought on the very day after the engagement off Beachy Head (July 1, 1690). King William's army numbered about thirty-six thousand men ; that of James, which included a French division under the Count of Lauzun, was somewhat inferior. The gallant Schomberg dashed into the stream at the head of his column, which consisted chiefly of Huguenot refugees, exclaiming, " Allons, messieurs, aliens; voi- ci vos perse'cuteurs !" He gained the opposite bank, but fell dead at the same moment pierced with three mortal wounds. The Protestant army, led by the dauntless William, successfully forced 446 LOUIS XIV. CiiAF. XXI. the passage, and gained an easy and complete victory. The Irish infantry broke and dispersed at the first onset ; and though the cavahy and the French contingent strove nobly to retrieve the fortunes of the day, their efforts were wholly unavailing. James, who had shown no energy or courage, instantly took flight, and scarcely halted till he reached Kinsale, from which port he sailed for Brest. Louis continued for some time longer to defend a cause which he must now have felt to be desperate. In the following year a French force was sent to Ireland under General Saint- iluth, but he experienced nothing but reverses. The capitulation of Limerick, the fall of Athlone, and the battle of Aghrim (July 12, 1691), put an end to the resistance of the Jacobites, and the whole country soon submitted to the arms of William. The French troops embarked for their own shores, under a convention, carrying with them a numerous body of Irish emigrants, who in course of time became naturalized in France. They distinguish- ed themselves greatly in the service of their adopted country, and have often attained high dignities and honors. § 16. The command of the French army in the Netherlands was now wisely given by Louis to Marshal Luxemburg, in spite of the opposition of Louvois, with whom the marshal was on terms of bitter enmity. Luxemburg displayed all his accustomed talent ; he forced the passage of the Sambre in the face of the Prince of Waldeck, and, on the 30th of June, 1690, defeated him totally at the great battle of Fleurus. Here the loss of the allies was im- mense, amounting to five thousand killed and eight thousand pris- oners, besides fifty pieces of artillery and more than a hundred standards. In the spring of 1691, the French army, with whom Louis was present in person, laid siege to the strong frontier town of Mons, and forced it to surrender in nine days, notwithstanding the vig- orous exertions of King William, who marched with a large force to relieve it, but arrived only in time to witness its fall. It was in the course of the same summer that Louis lost his minister Louvois, who, having had the misfortune to incur the en- mity of Madame de Maintenon, had been for some time past al- most in disgrace. His harsh temper and violent counsels had made him generally obnoxious, and few regretted his death ; but his pre-eminent talent and unwearied activity in all matters of military administration had been of infinite service to Louis, and it was found impossible adequately to supply his place. The death of Louvois was extremely sudden, and was by many attrib- uted to poison ; but it is sufficiently accounted for by natural causes, and doubtless resulted from the bitter mortification endured by the haughty statesman in liis loss of favor at coui't and in the pros- pect of his !ip])"n;u']iin!r fill. 448 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXI. The subsequent course of the war was fluctuating in fortune, but produced no general results at all commensurate with the vast exertions and sacrifices made both by Louis and the confederates, In May, 1692, a French army of thirty thousand men was assem- bled on the coasts of Normandy, near Cherbourg, under King James and Marshal Bellefonds, ready to embark for England in the fleet of Tourville. The combined English and Dutch fleet, under Admiral Eussell, made its appearance in the Channel, and Louis rashly sent orders to Tourville to engage, though he had but forty-four sail of the line to oppose to ninety-nine of the enemy. The gallant Tourville made it a point of honor to obey. On the 19th of May he attacked the enemy in midchannel, between Cape Barfleur and the Isle of Wight ; and, notwithstanding his immense inferiority, maintained a tremendous struggle, which lasted till nightfall without advantage to either side. During the night the French made sail for their own shores ; some of their ships es- caped through the dangerous "Race of Alderney" to St. Malo; the rest gained the roadstead of La Hogue, where Tourville caused them to be stranded, with their broadsides to the enemy, under the formidable artillery of the army of invasion planted on the heights. In this position they were attacked by the English, un- der Admiral Rooke, with some small frigates and all the boats of the fleet, on the 23d of May. The French made a manful resist- ance, but thirteen of their men-of-war were captured and burnt, and the fleet was in fact annihilated. This catastrophe was wit- nessed from the cliffs by the unfortunate James, who, while he be- held the ruin of his last hopes, could not help expressing his ad- miration of the heroic bearing of the English sailors. The battle of La Hogue was the last direct attempt made by Louis to recover the lost crown of the Stuarts. James retired to St. Germains, where he passed the remainder of his life in seclusion and prac- tices of austere devotion, and died in the year 1701. § 17. The naval defeat of Louis was counterbalanced by his military successes. On the 25 th of May he laid siege in person to Namur, the strongest fortress in the Low Countries, command- ing the junction of the Meuse and the Sambre. The science of Vauban here proved superior to that of the rival Dutch engineer Cohorn, and Namur capitulated on the 5th of June. It was in vain that King William advanced with seventy thousand men to succor the place ; his army was skillfully kept in check by Lux- emburg, and he was unable to effect the passage of the Sambre. Louis now returned to Versailles ; and William, resolved to strike an important blow before closing the campaign, assaulted Mar- shal Luxemburg at Steinkirk, in Hainault, on the 24th of July. The battle was obstinate and sanguinary, thirteen thousand men A.D. 1693-1695. DEATH OF MARSHAL LUXEMBURG. 449 being slain in the two armies ; but in the end William was com- pelled to retreat, and accomplished the movement with his usual admirable steadiness and skill. He retired upon Brussels. On the opening of the campaign in 1694 the King of England offered battle to the French, under circumstances favorable to the latter, near Louvain ; but, to the general astonishment, Louis de- clined to meet Ms illustrious opponent in a pitched battle, quitted the army, and even detached part of his troops into Germany. This incident greatly damaged his military reputation, and he never afterward made his appearance at the head of his forces. The murderous battle of Neerwinden, or Landen, fought between William and Luxemburg on the 29th of July, 1693, terminated, like so many others, in the defeat of the English monarch, who nevertheless conducted his retreat with consummate ability, and was acknowledged even by his adversaries to be more formidable in repulse than others in success. Marshal Catinat, who was now, next to Luxemburg, the most distinguished of the French commanders, obtained this year a glo- rious victory over the Duke of Savoy at Marsiglia, between Pig- nerol and Turin. Prince Eugene of Savoy, now rapidly rising into distinction, held a superior command on this occasion. The French also repaired, in great measure, the disaster of La Hogue by a successful action fought by Tourville with Admiral Rooke, in Lagos Bay, on the 27th of June. The English com- mander was in charge of an immense and richly-laden convoy of merchantmen, forty of which were captured by the enemy, togeth- er with four men-of-war. In the following year an English ex- pedition against Brest, under Admiral Berkeley and General Tol- lemache, failed through the treachery of Lord Marlborough, who revealed the destination of the fleet to James, and through him to Louis. A landing was attempted, in which the English lost a thousand men, among them General Tollemache ; two ships of the line were sunk, and several transports destroyed. The com- merce of England was at this time seriously crippled by the ex- ploits of the famous French corsaii's Jean Bart, Duguay-Trouin, Forbin, and Ducasse. Thus, on the whole, the scale of victory inclined to the side of France. § 18. Mai'shal Luxemburg, one of the most uniformly success- ful of military commanders, closed his brilliant career with the campaign of 1694 ; he expired in January, 1695, at the age of sixty-seven. Marshal Villeroi, whom Louis appointed to succeed him, was a man of slender capacity, favored by the king as hav- ing been the companion of his youth, but better qualified to shine in the gay saloons of Versailles than as the leader of mighty ar- mies. He soon proved his incompetence by allowing King Wil- 450 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXI. liam to recapture Namur in July, 1695 — a success which, from the strength and importance of that fortress, and the immense losses sustained by the besieged, produced a considerable effect in Europe. Villeroi uselessly attempted to compensate this misfor- tune by a furious bombardment of the city of Brussels- A struggle maintained by sea and land for seven years in suc- cession, at such a desperate cost of blood and treasure, had now- reduced France to a deplorable state of exhaustion, and Louis once more showed a disposition to negotiate for peace. His first object was to detach the Duke of Savoy from the coalition. To secure this he consented to great sacrifices, surrendering Pignerol, which had been held by France for nearly seventy years, and re- storing Nice and all other conquered possessions of the house of Savoy. These concessions produced a treaty of peace and alliance between France and Savoy, which was signed on the 30th of May, 1696, and strengthened by a contract of marriage between a prin- cess of Savoy and the Duke of Burgundy, eldest son of the French dauphin. The other members of the league inveighed loudly against the Duke of Savoy for thus abandoning their cause ; but, the example having once been given, several states were induced ere long to concur in a movement for the conclusion of a general peace. William III., unable to resist the clamors of the English and Dutch merchants, who had suffered ruinously from the war, at length consented to treat ; the proffered mediation of Sweden was accepted, and a congress of all the great powers was opened at Ryswick, a village near the Hague, on the 9th of May, 1697- The first of the two treaties of Ryswick, between France, England, Spain, and Holland, was signed on the 30th of September, 1697. France made restitution to Spain of her conquests in Catalonia, and surrendered likewise the duchy of Luxemburg, together with the towns of Charleroi, Mons, Ath, and Cambrai. Commercial arrangements were made between France and Holland. Perhaps the most important article was that by which Louis acknowledged William IIL as King of England, and engaged to give no farther countenance to the pretensions or adherents of James. A month afterward the Emperor Leopold, though with great and evident reluctance, ordered his envoys to sign the conditions of peace. France relinquished to him all her acquisitions made since the treaty of Nimeguen, including Friburg, Brisach, Philispburg, and other towns and fortresses on the right bank of the Rhine ; Stras- burg, however, was ceded to Louis in full sovereignty. Finally, the Duke of Lorraine Avas reinstated in his dominions, after an exile which had lasted twenty-seven years. The acceptance of such terms must have wounded in no slight degree the pride and self-love of the vainglorious Louis; but so wretched was the con- A.D. 1697. EUROPE AT PEACE. 45X dition of the French people at that moment, that peace had be- come an absolute necessity. There was, moreover, another con- sideration which powerfully influenced his conduct. Charles II. of Spain, after languishing through a reign of some length in sick- ness, melancholy, and imbecility, was now evidently hastening to the tomb. The conjuncture which Louis had been contemplating for thirty years was thus on the point of being realized. The King of Spain was childless, and his splendid inheritance w(fLild necessarily become the object of a fierce competition among sev- eral claimants. Under these circumstances, it was essential to Louis to disembarrass himself of the great European coalition, so as to be free to act when the moment for action arrived. Accord- ingly, he consented to submit to some humiliation in order to pro- cure an interval of repose in which to prepare for the fresh com- plications that must soon arise. The Emperor Leopold, on the other hand, was anxious to protract the war, hoping that so long as France was occupied in repelling hostile armies from her own frontiers, she would be disabled from enforcing her ambitious pre- tensions to the reversion of the Spanish monarchy. The politic counsels, however, of Louis prevailed, and the closing years of the seventeenth century found Europe in a state of universal peace. Louis XIY., the Great (1 lom tl e p untin-, of Rigiud in the Louvre.) CHAPTER XXII. REIGN OP LOUIS XIV. CONCLUDED. III. FROM THE PEACE OF RYSWICK TO THE DEATH OF LOUIS. A.D. 1697-1715. i 1. Circumstances which led to the War of the Spanish Succession. § 2. The Treaties of Partition ; Will of Charles II. in favor of the Duke of Anjou ; Death of the King of Spain. § 3. Duke of Anjou recognized as King of Spain ; Second Grand Alliance ; Marlborough ; Eugene ; the Pensionary Heinsius ; Louis and his Generals. §4. Campaign of 1702; Naval Fight in the Bay of Vigo. § 5. Campaign of Villars in Germany (1703) ; Battle of Hochstedt ; unsuccessful Operations of the Duke of Sa- voy ; Duke of Savoy joins the Allies. § 6. Villars sent against the Cam- isards. § 7. Campaign of 1704; Battles of Donauwerth and Blenheim; Capture of Gibraltar by the English. § 8. Campaign of 1706; Battle of Raniillies ; Defeat of the French before Turin ; Loss of Lombardy. § 9. The War in Spain ; Battle of Almanza ; ruinous Expenses of the War. Battle of Oudenarde. § 10. Dreadful Sufferings in France ; unsuccessful A.D. 169G. THE SPANISH SUCCESSION. 453 Negotiations for Peace ; Battle of Malplaquet ; Victories ofBrihuega and Valla-viciosa. §11. Change of Ministry in England ; Conferences opened at Utrecht ; Preliminaries of Peace signed ; Successes of Villars in Flan- ders ; Battle of Denain. § 12. Death of the Dauphin, of the Duke and Duchess of Burgundy, and the Duke of Bretagne ; Particulars of the Treaty of Utrecht. § 13. Results of the War of the Succession ; last Ill- ness and Death of Louis XIV. § 14. The "Age of Louis XIV.;" Cel- ebrated Characters ; the Jansenists ; Port Eoyal ; Dispute of the Regale ; Gallican Propositions on the Pope's Supremacy. § 15. Renewal of the Jansenist Controversy ; Condemnation of Quesnel ; the Bull Unigenitus ; Destruction of Port Royal ; the Quietists. § 1. We now enter upon the concluding period of the long reign of Louis XIV., which was chiefly occupied by the memorable con- test called the War of the Spanish Succession. The circum- stances which led to this war are exceedingly complicated, and demand some closeness and patience of examination in order to estimate rightly the merits of the question in dispute. In default of the direct posterity of Charles 11. , his successor was naturally to be sought for among the descendants of the sov- ei'eigns immediately preceding. Of the two daughters of Philip IV., the elder, Maria Theresa, had been married to Louis XIV., while the younger, Margarita, had espoused the Emperor Leopold. The issue of the French marriage, therefore, was clearly entitled, according to the laws of nature, to inherit in preference to that of the Austrian match ; and the rights of the dauphin, as repre- senting his mother, wex'e on this ground incontestable. Maria Theresa, however, had solemnly renounced, both for herself and her descendants, all claim whatever to the royal inheritance of her father — a renunciation which had been stipulated for the ex- press purpose of preventing the possible union of the crowns of France and Spain in the house of Bourbon. No such act had been demanded on the marriage of the younger sister, and hence it was contended that in her issue, according to all law and jus- tice, lay the true line of succession. The daughter of the em- press married the Elector of Bavaria, and had since died, leaving an infant son, the Electoral Prince of Bavaria. Accordingly, this child was generally regarded, both by the court and the people of Spain, as the legitimate heir of the monarchy. In fact, Charles, acting under the dictation of his mother, executed, so early as the year 1G96, a will bequeathing his whole dominions to the young Bavarian prince, his nephew. There was yet a third candidate, namely, the Emperor Leopold himself, who alleged that the Bavarian claim was void, in virtue of a renunciation similar to that of Maria Theresa, exacted from the electress on her marriage ; and that, consequently, the Span- 454 LOUIS XIV. CuAP. XXII. CLAIMS TO THE SPANISH SUCCESSION. ■" (1.) Claim of France. Louis XIV.= Maria Theresa, d. of Philip IV. of Spain. Louis, Dauphin=Maria Anna of Bavaria. \ I I 1 Louis, duke of Burgundy. Philip, duke of Anjou, Charles, duke of Bony. I King of Spain as Pnn.TP V., I Nov., 1700. Louis XV. (2.) Claim of Bavaria. Leopold I., Emperors Maria Margarita, younger d. of Philip IV. of Spain. Maria Antonia, Archduchess = Maximilian, elector of Bavaria. I Joseph Ferdinand, electoral prince of Bavaria, declared heir to the Spanish throne, 169S ; ob. Feb. C, 1699. (3.) Claim of Austria. Maria Anna, younger d. of = Ferdinand III., Emperor. Philip ni. of Spain. I Leopold I., Emperors Maria Margarita, d. of Philip IV. Joseph L, Emperor, 1705. Charles Francis Joseph, declared King of Spain, 1700 ; Emperor, 1711. A.D. 1698. TEEATIES OF PAKTITION. 455 ish succession devolved upon himself, in right of his mother, a daughter of King Philip III. Other arguments were not want- ing to support these views, such as the importance of preserving intact the long-descended possessions of both branches of the house of Austria, and the danger of permitting any farther augmenta- tion of the already overgrown power of a sovereign like Louis XIV. The emperor, however, waived his personal claims and those of his heir-apparent in favor of his second son, the Arch- duke Charles. Louis XIV., on his part, continued to maintain against all op- ponents that Maria Theresa's resignation of her claims was alto- gether invalid, inasmuch as the condition on which it depended, namely, the payment of her dowry, had never been fulfilled. He therefore firmly insisted on the rights of the dauphin as manifest and unassailable. § 2. Charles II., however, had a deep-rooted antipathy to France, and could not endure the notion of a French prince as his success- or. His queen, Maria-Anne of Neuburg, a sister of the empress, exercised immense control over her feeble husband, and was en- tirely in the Austrian interest ; and it appears that she succeeded in persuading Charles to destroy the testament already made in favor of the Prince of Bavaria, and to intimate to the court of Vienna that none but a member of the Imperial family would be named to the succession. Louis saw that his chance of com- plete success was very doubtful, but hoped by means of skillful intrigue to make sure of at least some part of the spoil. He ad- dressed himself, immediately after the peace of Eyswick, to Wil- liam of England, and proposed to him a scheme of compromise on the Spanish question, professedly designed to preserve the balance of European power and avert the outbreak of another ruinous war. This overture was accepted by "William ; the negotiations were conducted with the utmost secrecy by Lord Portland, Count Tallard, and the Dutch Pensionary Heinsius, and the first Treaty of Partition, as it was called, was signed at the Hague on the 11th of October, 1698, by which it was arranged that the Spanish do- minions should be divided, on the death of Charles, among the three competitors. Spain, with the whole of her American de- pendencies, and the Spanish Netherlands, were assigned to the Electoral Prince of Bavaria ; the dauphin was to have the king- dom of Naples and Sicily, certain sea-ports in Tuscany, and the border-province of Guipuzcoa, which possessions were to be united to the crown of France ; lastly, the duchy of Milan fell to the share of the Archduke Charles. Information of this treaty, not- withstanding all the precautions of its authors, was soon transmit- ted to Madrid ; and the unhappy Charles, indignant at the inso- 456 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXII. lent attempt to dismember his dominions without his consent or knowledge, immediately signed, under the direction of the Cardi- nal Primate Fortocarrero, a deed by which he declared the Prince of Bavaria universal heir of the monarchy. But this proceeding had scarcely been made known when the young prince suddenly died at Brussels, on the 6th of February, 1699, not without sus- picion of violent means on the part of Austria ; and both the Par- tition Treaty and the testamentary arrangement of Charles were thus alike rendered nugatory. Louis and William now agreed upon a second treaty (March, 1700), by which Spain and the Indies were to descend to the Austrian archduke, while France, in addition to the Italian king- doms, was to receive the duchy of Lorraine, the Duke of Lorraine accepting the Milanese in exchange. Meanwhile the dying King of Spain remained in a miserable state of vacillation and resent- ment. His own feelings strongly leaned toward the house of Austria ; but the dexterous manoeuvres of the Marquess of Har- court, the French embassador, had succeeded in drawing over to the interests of Louis both Cardinal Portocarrero and several oth- er members of the Spanish cabinet, and in neutralizing to a great extent the hostile influence of the queen. French counsels pre- dominated henceforth in the royal chamber. By the advice of Portocarrero and the papal legate, Charles applied for a final so- lution of his difficulties to the court of Rome, and Innocent XII. gave a decided answer in favor of the claims of the house of Bour- bon, as being most consonant with the true interests of Spain and with the intentions of Philip IV. The king, Avho was now sink- ing rapidly, yielded to these representations, and caused a will to be drawn up by which he designated as his universal heir and suc- cessor his " nearest relation after those who might be called to the throne of France," namely, Philip, duke of Anjou, second son of the dauphin. Within a month after this important transaction Charles II. breathed his last (November 1, 1700). § 3. For some days it remained doubtful whether Louis would accept the thx-one of Spain for his grandson, or adhere to his en- gagements with William in the Treaty of Partition. Two mem- bers of the council, the Chancellor Pontchartrain and the Duke of Beauvilliers, were in favor of maintaining the treaty ; but Torcy, nephew of the great Colbert, argued powerfully for the contrary opinion, pointing out that, since war was in either case inevitable, it was obviously better to take a course which would place at the command of France the enormous resources of such a monarchy as Spain.* Louis was convinced by this reasoning, and decided * Sucli is the account given by De Torcy in his Memoirs. St. Simon re- lates it difterently. A.D. 1700-1702. SECOND GRAND ALLIANCE. 457 to accept the will. ■ He presented the Duke of Anjou to the court as King of Spain, and the young prince was immediately pro- claimed at Madrid as Philip V. On the 4th of December he set out from Versailles to take possession of his new dominions. "Go, my son," exclaimed Louis, as he embraced him on parting, "go ; there ai-e no longer Pyrenees !" The title of Philip was recognized without opposition through- out the vast territories of the Spanish empire; and several foreign powers, including England and Holland, formally acquiesced in his elevation. The emperor protested, and prepared for war. Eu- rope, however, was at this moment so strongly disinclined to a renewal of hostilities, that a rupture might perhaps have been avoided had not Louis himself, by several imprudent and irrita- ting measures, provoked a fresh coalition of his enemies, which kindled a still more terrible conflagration than had ever yet been witnessed on the Continent. In February, 1701, French troops were suddenly introduced into all the frontier fortresses of the Netherlands, displacing the Dutch garrisons established under the treaty of Ryswick. England and Holland remonstrated, but with- out obtaining satisfaction ; and William, supported by his. Par- liament, immediately commenced warlike preparations. Louis was also unwise enough to announce by letters patent that the new King of Spain would retain his right of succession to the crown of France in the event of failure of male descendants from his elder brother. He committed another great political mistake on the death of James IL, in September, 1701, by recognizing his son, the Pretender, as King of England, contrary to his express engagements with William at the peace of Kyswick. This last step was equivalent to a declaration of war. The second "Grand Alliance" was forthwith signed at the Hague, between England, the emperor, Holland, the Elector of Brandenburg (recently be- come King of Prussia), and the Elector Palatine ; the objects of which were stated to be the procuring of reasonable satisfaction to the emperor with regard to the Spanish succession — the estab- lishment of Spanish Flanders as a barrier between France and Holland — and an effectual guarantee against the union of the crowns of Spain and France in the person of the same sovereign. Hostilities had already broken out in Lombardy, where the French commanders Catinat and Villeroi were worsted in several engagements by the Imperialists under Prince Eugene. Before the season arrived for entering on another campaign, the cause of the allies had sustained a severe loss in the death of William HI. of England, who expired on the 8th of March, 1702. The influ- ence of his genius, however, survived. Queen Anne took the ear- liest opportunity of announcing that she purposed to follow out V 458 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXII. strictly the foreign policy of her predecessor. Lord Marlborough was named generalissimo of the allied forces, and the course of the subsequent war was mainly directed by that renowned cap- tain, with the assistance of two colleagues of scarcely inferior ability, Eugene of Savoy, who was all-powerful with the emperor, and the Pensionary Heinsius, whose counsels were paramount in Holland. Louis, on his part, possessed at this moment neither statesmen nor generals of the lirst order. Although considerably advanced in years, he still affected, as usual, to originate and direct every thing in person ; but now that Colbert, Louvois, Seignelay, and Luxemburg were gone, his measures were for the most part fee- ble, mistaken, and unfortunate. His only able minister was the Marquess of Torcy, secretary of state. The two great charges of comptroller of finance and minister of war were united in the hands of Chamillart, an upright and well-intentioned, but narrow- minded and incapable protege of Madame de Maintenon. Of the generals, Catinat was in disgrace on account of his ill success in the last campaign in Italy ; Boufflers was brave, spirited, and ex- perienced, but incompetent to cope Avith the master-mind of Marl- borough ; the Duke of Vendome was a highly talented command- er, but withal grossly addicted to sloth and sensuality ; Villars, now commencing his career, was a thorough soldier of the school of Turenne and Luxemburg, and possessed, moreover, great polit- ical capacity : his good qualities, however, were disfigured by an overweening vanity and boastfulness. § 4. In the campaign of 1702 Marlboi'ough assumed the chief command of the allies, and carried on a series of admirable ma- ncBuvres, in which the French marshal Boufflers was completely outgeneraled, and compelled eventually to abandon the whole line of the Meuse. Venloo, Stephanswerth, and Kuremonde opened their gates in succession, and the city of Liege was carried by as- sault on the 23d of October. The result of these operations at once rendered the name of Marlborough redoubtable in France and celebrated throughout Europe. His victorious career, however, is so entirely identified with the annals of his own country, that we shall content our- selves with sketching it very briefly in the following pages. In Italy and Germany the campaign was not marked by any decisive event ; but England had now resumed her traditional su- pei-iority on her own element, and the maritime opei'ations of the year were disastrous to France. The allies under Admiral Kooke attacked Cadiz unsuccessfully; but on the 22d of October, 1702, their fleet encountei'ed that of France and Spain under Chateau- lienaud in the Bay of Vigo ; after a hard-fought engagement, the A.D. 1703. BATTLE OF HOCHSTEDT. 459 French admiral set fire to his ships to prevent their falling into the hands of the enemy ; the English, however, captured no less than twenty, among which were several richly-freighted galleons just arrived from America. This was a heavy blow both to the commercial wealth of Spain and to the naval power of France. The treasui'e taken on board the galleons exceeded in value seven million pieces of eight. § 0. The year 1703 is memorable for the masterly campaign of Marshal Villars in Germany. He passed the Rhine, advanced rap- idly into the valley of the Danube, and effected a junction with the Elector of Bavaria near Duttlingen. Villars now proposed to the elector the daring plan of cariying the war into the heart of the Austrian empire, and marching straight upon Vienna. Had the counsels of the French marshal been followed, a blow might have been struck which would have proved decisive in its conse- quences on the fortunes of the war ; but the elector shrank from the hazards of so bold an enterprise, and determined on an inva- sion of the Tyrol. The elector made himself master of Innsbruck ; but the warlike people of that country, on recovering from their first alarm, attacked him so vigorously that he was compelled to beat a speedy retreat, which was the more necessary as the Impe- rialists had already crossed the Bavarian border and were menac- ing Munich. Their army was in two grand divisions, one under the Prince of Baden, the other under Count Styrum ; Villars, by a skillful movement, interposed himself between them, and en- gaged Styrum on the 20th of September, in the plain of Hochstedt, near Donauwerth. Here, after an obstinate contest, the French were completely victorious, the enemy being driven from the field with a loss often thousand men. After this great success Villars again urged the elector to join him in an invasion of Austria. On being met by a second refusal, the marshal, in disgust, solic- ited Louis to recall him, and was replaced by Marshal Marsin. Some months later the elector was at length persuaded to make the attempt recommended by Villars. He marched upon Passau, and gained possession of it in two days ; but it Avas now the depth of winter, and his farther operations were impeded by the rigor of the season ; he deferred his purpose till another year, and re- turned to Munich. The lost opportunity, however, did not again present itself Whatever advantages France obtained in the field were more than counterbalanced by the defection of the Duke of Savoy, which was openly avowed by a treaty signed with the emperor on the 25 th of October. The accession of Portugal to the hostile league was secured about the same time by the famous Methuen treaty, and the allies were thus enabled to command at any moment a ready entrance for tlioir armies into the Peninsula. 460 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXIL § 6. Villars, on his return from Germany, was cliarged by Louis with the inglorious mission of quelling the insurrection of the Protestants among the Cevennes Mountains, on the borders of Languedoc. Harassed by grinding oppression, and excited by their fanatical preacjiers, these deluded sectaries had rushed wild- ly to arms, and, under the name of Camisards,* had maintained themselves successfully against the royal troops, displaying daunt- less courage, and sometimes considerable skill, in the defense of their mountain homes. Marshal Montrevel was sent against them with twenty thousand men, but his bloody cruelties only drove the suffering population to the fury of despair, and he totally fail- ed in suppressing the revolt. Villars followed a different system: he negotiated with the Camisard chieftain Cavalier, prevailed on him to make his submission, and procured for him the appoint- ment of colonel in the royal service. At the same time he pro- ceeded rigorously against all who resisted by force of arms. By this mixture of firmness and clemency Villars was enabled, by the close of the year 1704, to reduce to obedience the greater part of the insurgent districts. The leaders, for the most part, made their peace with the government, and were permitted to retire to Ge- neva. The peasants were encouraged to remain and rebuild their ruined habitations by being exempted from all taxes for three years. It was not, however, till the year 1710 that this formida- ble rebellion was finally extinguished. § 7. The threatened invasion of the empire determined the al- lies to concentrate their efforts in that direction, and Germany became again the principal theatre of war in the campaign of 1704. Marlborough crossed the Neckar on the 4th of June, and united himself with the Imperialists under Prince Eugene. Their opponents, the Elector of Bavaria and the three French marshals Villeroi, Tallard, and Marsin, were considerably superior in num- bers, but their movements were badly combined, and Villeroi, ham- pered by the injudicious orders of Louis, was detained in the Pal- atinate with his whole division, and never reached the decisive scene of action. The first engagement took place near Donau- werth on the 2d of July ; here the Elector and Marshal Marsin, after a terrible carnage, were totally defeated and driven back upon Augsburg. Tallard having joined them, they resumed the offensive with about 56,000 nien, crossed the Danube, and took up a strong position between the villages of Blenheim and Lutzin- gen, their centre occupying Hochstadt. The memorable battle of Blenheim was fought on the 13th of August, 1704. Tallard, who commanded the right wing of the French, was in a great * rroiti the white shirt or jacket which they wore, in order to rccopnizo each otlier bv niirht. A. D. 1704-1706. FKENCH REVERSES. 461 measure isolated from the rest of the army, and the allies there- fore directed their main attack upon his post at Blenheim. After a protracted and murderous conflict, it was at length forced, and Marlborough established himself upon the heights, completely sev- ering the two divisions of the French army. Prince Eugene, aft- er a struggle of some hours, was equally successful against the elector and Marsin on the left, and the rout now became total and irretrievable. Tallard was taken prisoner ; the elector and Marsin fled in terrible disorder to Ulm, where they could not suc- ceed in rallying more than twenty thousand men. Twelve thou- sand at least had been killed in action ; thousands more were Avounded ; numbers were drowned in the Danube ; and an un- touched corps, amounting to twelve thousand, which had been foolishly cooped up in the village of Blenheim, surrendered pris- oners of war. The consequences of this defeat were more disas- trous than the defeat itself Marsin having rejoined Villeroi, the French army hastily crossed to tlie left bank of the Rhine, aban- doning Germany to the conquerors ; the Elector of Bavaria fled from his dominions, and took shelter in the Netherlands ; the em- pire was completely delivered from all danger of invasion, and Louis had even reason to be anxious for the security of his own frontiers. The events of the war in Spain were scarcely less unpropitious to the cause of France. Admiral Rooke reduced Gibraltar in Au- gust, 1704. The French fleet made every effort to recover that important key of the Mediterranean, and a desperate battle took place off Velez-Malaga, but without decisive result. Gibraltar remained permanently in the possession of the English. The Archduke Charles, now proclaimed by the allies King of Spain as Charles III., landed in Portugal, and, after some successes in Es- tremadura, sailed in the English fleet for Barcelona. That city, besieged by the celebrated Earl of Peterborough, capitulated in October, 1705, and the sovereignty of Charles was almost imme- diately acknowledged throughout Catalonia, Aragon, and Valencia. § 8. In Italy, Vendome inflicted a severe defeat on Prince Eu- gene at Cassano, in August, 1705, and routed the Imperialists a second time at Calcinato in April, 1706. He was preparing to follow up these victories by the siege of Turin, when he suddenly received orders to repair to Flanders, where the allies had taken the field Avith overwhelming numbers under INIarlborough, The great battle of Ramiloes, however, was fought and lost before Vendome could arrive. The presumptuous Villeroi had commit- ted gross blunders in tlie disposition of his army, of which INIarl- borough availed himself Avith fatal eflx^ct ; the result AA-as that in less than half an hour the French Avere thrown into utter confu- 462 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXII. sion, and fled from the field with the loss of thii'teen thousand men (May 23, 1706). This disaster entailed the conquest of the whole of Brabant and the greater part of Flanders. The enemy entered Brussels, where Charles III. was immediately proclaimed ; Antwerp, Ghent, Ostend, Menin, Termonde, Ath, submitted in the course of a few weeks. Louis received the news of these disheartening reverses with unmoved composure. His behavior to Villeroi was magnani- mous. "Monsieur le Mare'chal," said the king, Avhen he made his. appearance at Versailles, " at our age one is no longer for- tunate." The operations in Italy this year were no less calamitous to France than those in the Low Countries. Upon the departure of Vendome the command was intrusted jointly to the young Duke of Orleans, nephew of Louis, and Marshal Marsin. The French, imder the Duke de la Feuillade, had invested Turin; the Impe- rialists, commanded by Prince Eugene and the Duke of Savoy, boldly advanced to relieve the capital. Marsin, overruling his colleague by virtue of a special commission from the king, stub- bornly'determined to aAvait the enemy in his lines. Here the French were furiously assaulted on the 7th of September, and, after a gallant resistance, were driven from their intrenchmenrts in irremediable confusion. Marsin, heading a desperate charge, Avas killed ; the Duke of Orleans was severely wounded ; the army Avas seized with panic, lost all discipline, abandoned Uie whole train of siege artillery to the enemy, and fled to the Alps. All the towns of Lombardy instantly submitted to the victors, and Charles III. was proclaimed at Milam By a convention signed in March, 1707, the French agreed to an immediate evacuation of the whole of Northern Italy ; and the triumph of the Imperi- alists in the Peninsula was completed three months later by the reduction of Naples and the recognition of the Austrian prince throughout that kingdom. § 9. Rapid fluctuations took place at this period in the fortunes of the two competitors for the throne of Spain. In 1706 the allies seemed to be carrying all before them ; the English fleet reduced Alicante and Carthagena ; the army under Lord Galway captured Ciudad-Rodrigo and Alcantara, and marched -upon Madrid. Phil- ip fled precipitately to Burgos, and his rival was proclaimed in the capital on the 24th of June. The partisans of the house of Bour- bon were in despair ; and it was seriously proposed at Versailles that Philip should abandon Spain and retire to reign over the dis- tant possessions of that crown in America. Louis, however, with generous courage, rejected this advice, and determined to redouble his exertions to maintain his grandson on the throne. With the A.D. 1707, 1708. BATTLE OF OUDENARDE. 463 beginning of the year 1707 the face of affairs entirely changed. Philip re-entered Madrid amid general acclamations ; and the de- cisive battle of Almanza, won by the Duke of Berwick over the Anglo-Portuguese under Lord Galway and the Marquess das Mi- nas, triumphantly established the Bourbon cause. Louis was also encouraged by the successes of his generals in other quarters. An invasion of France by the frontier of Pro- vence, under Eugene and the Duke of Savoy, signally failed ; and the allies were forced to retire from Toulon by Marshal Tesse, after sacrificing upward of ten thousand men. About the same time, Villars performed one of his most masterly exploits by break- ing through the lines of Stolhoffen, hitherto deemed impregnable. Vendome, by the exercise of rare skill and prudence, was enabled to keep Marlborough in check, during the same campaign, in the Low Countries. But these were only momentary gleams of good fortune. The expense of such a war was prodigious, and the financial situation of France had become seriously alarming. Ev- ery means of raising money was exhausted — loans at ruinous in- terest, the creation of new and frivolous offices, assignments on the revenue of future years, vexatious taxes, immense issues of paper currency. The nation groaned under such burdens, and popular clamor ran so high that it was necessary to dismiss the finance minister Chamillart, and to name as his successor the able and energetic Desmarets, a nephew of the great Colbert. His measures, however, were precisely of the same character, and the embarrassments of the state only became more and more over- whelming. In 1708 the allies resumed the offensive in the Netherlands, and gained a great victory over the Duke of Burgundy and Ven- dome at Oudenarde on the 11th of July. By this success the northern frontier of France was laid open to invasion ; the victors entered Artois and Picardy, and besieged Lille, which, though nobly defended by the veteran Boufflers, capitulated on the 2 2d of October. Ghent and Bruges surrendered shortly afterward. § 10. The following winter was one of unprecedented rigor. Even the impetuous waters of the Phone were frozen over. La- bor and commerce were almost totally suspended ; all kinds of provisions rose to famine prices, and the distress and sufferings of the poorer population were indesci'ibably harrowing. Violent manifestations of discontent broke forth against the government ; and Louis, deeply mortified and humbled, was induced to open negotiations for peace. His overtures were met with almost scorn- ful haughtiness, and demands were made which he could hardly accept without the sacrifice of honor. The allies insisted that Louis should dethrone his grandson and acknowledge Charles as 464 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXII. King of Spain, all members of the Bourbon family being forever excluded from the succession. They also required the immediate cession of Strasburg, Brisach, Landau, Lille, and several other places of the first importance. Notwithstanding his urgent neces- sities, Louis refused to descend to such a depth of humiliation. He made an energetic appeal to the patriotism of the nation, which produced an enthusiastic response, all classes protesting that they would rather perish than accept a peace under condi- tions so insulting to the French name. The war therefore con- tinued with increased exasperation on both sides, and incredible exertions were made iu France to prosecute it with effect. The king and many of the nobility sent their plate to the mint ; thir- ty-five millions, in gold and silver bullion, were obtained from the Spanish colonies in the West Indies ; a heavy requisition of corn was made upon the provinces for the subsistence of the army ; and most of the ordinary taxes were anticipated for eight years in succession. Two hundred and twenty millions of livres were pro- vided by these means for the service of the year. Villars was wisely named to the command in Flanders, where, as usual, the most important operations were expected. The gal- lant Boufflers, tliough considerably senior to Villars, offered his services as second in command ; and the two marshals, with a force of about ninety thousand men, directed their march against the allies under Marlborough, who, after capturing Tournay, was menacing the fortress of Mons. It was in the neighborhood of that place, at Malplaquet, that the most terrible and obstinately- contested battle of the whole war was fought on the 11th of Sep- tember, 1709. Villars received a severe wound and was com- pelled to quit the field, which no doubt contributed in gi-eat meas- ui'e to the defeat of the French ; the retreat, however, was con- ducted in perfect order by Boufflers on Valenciennes ; and the loss on the side of the allies, amounting to twenty thousand men, was considerably greater than that of the beaten army. Villars wrote to his master that another such defeat would deliver Finance from all danger of farther hostilities from the Grand Alliance. The battle of Malplaquet was followed by renewed diplomatic conferences at Gertruydenberg, near Breda, in which the French commissionei's went so far as to offer to subsidize the allied armies acting against Philip V. in Spain, and to sui-render the whole of Alsace to the emperor. But even these degrading terms were re- jected ; the allies demanded, as a preliminary to any arrangement, that Louis should join them in enfoi'cing, by arms if necessary, the absolute renunciation by Philip of the Spanish crown, with the whole of its dependencies. This outrageous proposition once more destroyed the hopes of peace. *' If I must make war," said Louis, A.D. 1710. VICTORIES OF BRIHUEGA AND VALLA-VICIOSA. 455 " I prefer fighting against my enemies to fighting against my own children." This generous determination to support the throne of his grand- son was rewarded by two brilliant victories in Spain in the fol- lowing year. Charles III. had a second time forced his way to Madrid, but soon found it impossible to maintain himself in pos- session, and commenced a retreat toward Barcelona. Vendome, who had been sent to command the French, marched in pursuit, and surprised the English general Stanhope at Brihuega on the 9th of December, 1710, when, after a Avhole day's desperate fighting, the town was forced, and the entire British division surrendered prisoners of war. Two days afterward Vendome attacked the main army of the Imperialists, imder Charles and Count Starem- berg, at Valla-viciosa, and overthrew them with immense slaughter. Their broken squadrons fled in disorder to the Ebro, and Philip found himself once more seated on the throne, of which he was ere long to obtain acknowledged and peaceable possession. § 11. Two unexpected occurrences now took place, which paved the way for an accommodation, and eventually brought to a close this sanguinary and exhausting conflict. The first was the dis- missal of the Whig ministry of Godolphin in England, which was succeeded, in August, 1710, by that of Harley and St. John, de- clared and bitter enemies of Marlborough. 'Mrs. Masham, the ri- val of the Duchess of Marlborough, replaced her at the same time in the position of the queen's confidential favorite ; and a com- plete reversal of the great commander's policy was evidently at hand. Immediately on their accession to power, the new minis- ters opened a secret correspondence with the Secretary De Torcy ; and it was soon arranged that a general European congress should meet at Utrecht. The second circumstance alluded to as tending in the same direction was the death of the Emperor Joseph I., whose nearest relative, in default of direct issue, was the Arch- duke Charles, the pretender to- the crown of Spain. That prince immediately took his departure for Germany, where he soon after ascended the imperial throne as Charles VI. This materially al- tered the views and interests of the allies, who were as little dis- posed to see the Spanish sceptre united with that of the empire as with that of the house of Bourbon. England, at all events, now considered herself fully justified in withdrawing from the coalition. The Parliament and the nation expressed their con- currence in the pacific disposition of the ministry, and the nego- tiation with the court of France accordingly proceeded. The British envoys proposed that Philip V. should be left in possession of his kingdom, but under an express proviso that the crowns of France and Spain should never be worn by the same sovereign. U 2 466 LOUIS ZIV. Chap. XXII. They demanded, moreover, that Naples and the Milanese should be separated from the Spanish monarchy and ceded to the house of Austria ; that Louis should recognize Queen Anne and the Protestant succession according to the Act of Settlement, and ex- clude the Pretender and his family from France ; and that Gib- raltar, Port Mahon, and Newfoundland should be made over to England. To these terms — reasonable and even advantageous in comparison with those which the Dutch had attempted to extort two years before — Louis gave his assent, and the preliminaries of peace were signed in London on the 8th of October, 1711. Hostilities meanwhile were not discontinued. It Avas in 1711 that Marlborough fought his last campaign, which was signalized by two of his most remarkable successes — ^the forcing of the in- trenched camp established by Villars at Arleux, and the capture of Bouchain. The illustrious general was now recalled to En- gland, where the vindictive malice of his enemies immediately stripped him of his command and all his offices, and he was even charged before Parliament with wholesale peculation and embez- zlement. The empire and other powers loudly complained that England had betrayed the allied cause, and for a long time absolutely re- fused to treat for peace. In consequence, although the congress was actually opened at Utrecht in January, 1712, another cam- paign ensued between Prince Eugene and Villars. Lord Oi'mond commanded an English contingent, but had received secret orders to abstain from undertaking any serious operations. The French marshal once more proved himself a perfect master of the strategic art. Eugene besieged Landrecies ; Villars deceived him by a false attack on that point, while he directed his main army upon Mar- chiennes and Denain, forced the post of Lord Albemarle at the latter place, and either destroyed or made prisoners his whole di- vision, consisting of seventeen battalions. This success was fol- lowed by the I'ecapture of Douai, Le Quesnoy, and Bouchain ; and security was thus restored upon the northern border of France, lately in such imminent danger. The result of the campaign re- vived the hopes and confidence of Louis, and had a considerable effect on the proceedings of the negotiators at Utrecht. § 12. Melancholy events occurred during the progress of the conferences in the family of the King of France, which had also an important bearing on the course of public affairs. The dau- phin, the only legitimate son of Louis, died in April, 1711, and was succeeded as licir to the throne by the Duke of Burgundy, a prince of whom the nation had formed high expectations as tlic pupil of the admirable Fenelon. The young dauphiness, Adelaide of Savoy, wliose graces had made her the idol of tlie king and the A.D. 1712-1714. PEACE OF UTRECHT. 467 whole court, was suddenly attacked by malignant fever, which car- ried her off in February, 1712 ; her husband, struck by the same fatal contagion, followed her to the grave Avithin a week ; and their eldest child, the Duke of Brittany, was laid in the tomb about a month afterward. The life of a sickly infant, the Duke of An- joLi, now alone interposed between Philip of Spain and the French throne; and, unless peace should be concluded without delay, the allies saw that the two crowns might after all be not improbably united, and thus the main object for which they had expended so much blood and treasure would be frustrated. This argument, together with the recent triumphs of Villars, and the known de- termination of Great Britain to secede from the league, at length prevailed ; and, after much tedious opposition, the Peace of Utrecht was signed by the plenipotentiaries of France, England, Holland, Portugal, Prussia, and Savoy, on the 11th of April, 1713. Its chief provisions have been already mentioned ; but it was stipu- lated in addition that the Spanish Netherlands, as well as Naples, Milan, and Sardinia, should be ceded to the emperor ; and that a line of frontier fortresses, extending from Furnes on the sea-coast to Charleroi and Namur, should be garrisoned by the Dutch, as a perpetual barrier between France and the Low Countries. The fortifications of Dunkirk were to be demolished, and Lille was re- stored to Louis in compensation. The island of Sicily was assign- ed to the Duke of Savoy, who now assumed the title of King. Great Britain acquired the odious privilege of the asiento, or monopoly for providing the Spanish colonies with slaves from Af- rica, with other lucrative commercial advantages. The emperor still obstinately refused his adhesion to the treaty, and France was thus compelled to sustain another campaign, which was conducted with great success by Villars in the Palatinate. Austria soon found it impossible to protract the war without the support of her allies ; and, after the reduction of Spires, Worms, Landau, and Freibvirg, negotiations were opened between the gen- erals, which resulted in the conclusion of peace with the emperor at Rastadt, and with the German princes at Baden, in March and September, 1714. § 13. The powers which profited most, both materially and mor- ally, by the peace of Utrecht were Austria and Great Britain, es- pecially the latter ; notwithstanding which the treaty was severe- ly censured in England, both in and out of Parliament, as incom- mensurate with the results which the allies had a right to expect from their great militaiy successes. In France it was considdred matter of congratulation, after such terrible reverses and suffer- ings, that she had been able to preserve her independence and the integrity of her frontiers. The illusory visions of the earlier part 468 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXII. of the reign had been rudely dispelled ; and Louis, instead of main- taining his lofty position as the arbiter of Europe, was glad to ac- cept a humiliating peace, signed at a moment when the internal condition of his empire was such as to excite the most gloomy and distressing apprehensions. The close of the war left the national credit at the lowest ebb. The public debt amounted to eighty-six millions sterling — an immense sum at the then value of money. The annual revenue was mortgaged for years to come ; bankrupt- cy seemed inevitable, and", indeed, took place to a considerable ex- tent. Agriculture, industry, manufactures, were reduced to a mis- erable state of depression ; the laboring classes were perishing by thousands of disease and famine. Such were the domestic results of the calamitous War of the Succession ; to counterbalance which Louis could only reckon one solitary advantage, that of haying es- tablished a prince of the house of Bourbon on the throne of Spain — a throne which was now despoiled of some of its most valuable appendages. The health of Louis had been sensibly impaired by the multi- plied anxieties and misfortunes of his later years. Repeated be- reavements had left his palace desolate ; he lived in melancholy retirement, entirely governed by Madame de Maintenon and his confessor Le Tellier. His great-grandson, the Duke of Anjou, now the heir of the monarchy, was a child of five years old, of feeble constitution, and apparently unlikely to attain to manhood. Under these circumstances, Louis caused his two sons by Madame de Montespan, the Duke of Maine and the Count of Toulouse, to be declared legitimate, and placed in the line of succession to the throne in case of failure of princes of the blood. He also appoint- ed, by testament, a council of i-egency, of which the Duke of Or- leans was named president, and intrusted the guardianship and education of the youthful heir to the Duke of Maine. Soon after making these arrangements Louis was attacked by a malady which confined him to his chamber, but was not at first considered to be mortal. In the course of a fortnight, however, symptoms of gan- grene appeared in one of his legs ; and the king, perceiving that his days were numbered, prepared for death Avith exemplary for- titude, resignation, and devotion. Causing the young dauphin to be brought to his bedside, the dying king gave him a few words of admirable counsel, exhorting him to remember his responsibil- ity to God, to cultivate peace Avith his neighbors, to avoid extr:iv- agant expense, and to study to the utmost the comfort and well- being of his people. Madame de Maintenon, worn out by fiitigue, withdrew to St. Cyr, and was not present at the closing scene. Louis was left in his last moments to the physicians, the priests, knd his ordinary attendants. After rallying several times for brief A.D. 1715. DEATH OF LOUIS.— JANSENIST CONTROVERSY. 459 intervals, he breathed his last on the morning of the 1st of Sep- tember, 1715, at the age of seventy-seven. His reign, the longest on record, had occupied seventy-two years. § 14. The so-called "Age of Louis XIV." is even more mem- orable for its brilliant attainments in every walk of literature, sci- ence, and art than for its political and military triumphs. This, however, is a subject which can not be treated, even in the scan- tiest outline, Avithin the compass of the present work. The stu- dent must learn from other sources to appreciate the dramatic gen- ius of Corneille, Boileau, Moliere, and Eacine ; the profound rea- sonings of Pascal and Malebranche ; the vast erudition of Mabil- lon and Ducange ; the ethical wisdom of Nicole, La Bruyere, and La Rochefoucauld ; the fervid and sublime oratory of Bossuet, Fene'lon, Bourdaloue, Massillon, and Flechier. Nor can we do more than chronicle the names of the eminent painters Poussin, Le Sueur, Claude Lorraine, Lebrun, and Mignard ; of the archi- tects Mansart and Perrault ; of the sculptor Puget; of the com- poser Lulli. We must, however, briefly notice the religious controversies and ecclesiastical history of this eventful reign, which are of more than usual interest. The opinions of Jansenius, bishop of Ypres, on the mysterious doctrines of grace, predestination, and free will, found numerous supporters in France, the chief of whom was the famous Duvergier de Hauranne, abbot of St. Cyran. The Jan- senists rapidly increased in influence, and fixed their head-quarters at the monastery of Port Royal, between Versailles and Chevreuse, which has been immortalized by the fame of its illustrious inmates, Arnauld, Pascal, De Sacy, Nicole, and Lancelot. The Jesuits, however, who took the opposite view of the questions in dispute, were predominant in the Church of France ; and during the min- istry of Mazarin they obtained from Popes Lmocent X. and Alex- ander VII. a condemnation of certain propositions extracted from the writings of Jansenius. The Jansenists resisted this, alleging that the censured propositions were not to be found in the work referred to ; the Pope replied by imposing on the whole clergy a form of declaration accepting the condemnation without reserve. A violent controversy followed, in the course of which Pascal pub- lished his celebrated " Letti-es Provinciales," a sarcastic and crush- ing attack upon the moral system of the Jesuits, from which they have never recovered. At length, by the wise management of Pope Clement IX., the recusants were persuaded to a modified acceptance of the papal decision ; and a reconciliation took place in 1668, which is commonly known as the "Peace of Clement IX." The Jansenists, however, continued to flourish, and acquired considerable political influence ; for, the court having espoused the 470 LOUIS XIV. Chap. XXII. Jesuit side, the opposite faction was the natural resort of all who were disaffected to the government. The Duchess of Longueville, tlie heroine of the Fronde, was during the later years of her life one of its most ardent partisans. During the intervals of the Jansenist controversy, the affair of the "Regale" gave rise to a serious misunderstanding between Louis XIV. and the court of Rome. This was the right claimed by the king to present to all the benefices in a diocese during the va- cancy of the see, and to dispose of the episcopal revenues until the new bishop had taken the oath of allegiance. Two of the French prelates opposed these pretensions, and were supported by Pope Innocent XI. Upon this, Louis convoked an assembly of the cler- gy in 1682, which drew up, chiefly under the influence o£ Bossuet, bishop of Meaux, four propositions, strongly asserting that the Pope has no right to meddle with the State in mattei'S temporal — that his power must be limited by the ecclesiastical canons — that his decrees are not authoritative nor infallible without the assent of a General Council — and that he can not ordain any thing contrary to the constitutions and liberties of the Gallican Church. The Pope censured these propositions, and caused them to be publicly burnt at Home ; he also refused the bulls of insti- tution to all bishops Avho adhered to them ; and at one time a third of the whole number of dioceses in France were held by the prelates, who, although enjoying their revenues, were incapable of executing any episcopal function. An arrangement was at length effected in 1693 ; the bishops wrote separately to the Pope, ex- pressing their grief at the proceedings of the assembly of 1682 ; and the king retracted an edict by which he had sanctioned the four articles as law. With this qualified submission the Pope de- clared himself content, an^ peace was restored. But the famous pi'opositions of 1682 have nevertheless continued to be appealed to in France from that time to the present, and are I'egarded as expressing the Gallican view of the Pope's supremacy, in contra- distinction to the Ultramontane. § 15. The Jansenist dispute was revived in 1693 by the appear- ance of a work by Quesnel, a priest, of the Oratory, entitled " Re'- flexions Morales sur le Nouveau Testament," which was reported to contain heterodox doctrine. Le Tellier, the Jesuit confessor of Louis, persuaded the king to appeal to the Pope against this pub- lication ; and its condemnation was easily procured from Clement XL Noailles, archbishop of Paris, a patron of Quesnel, refused to receive the papal brief; and the affair continued to be violent- ly agitated on both sides. After many vain attempts to settle the quarrel, the Jesuits succeeded in extorting from Clement the mem- orable bull " Unigenitus," dated September 8, 1713, which speci- Chap. XXII. THE QUIETISTS.— MADAME GUYON. 471 fied and condemned a long list of propositions quoted from the " Reflexions Morales" as conveying false doctrine in a covert and plausible manner, and forbade the faithful to hold or encourage them under pain of excommunication. This proceeding convulsed the Church and realm of France from one end to the other, and threatened to produce the most calamitous consequences. Louis insisted on the immediate and unqualified recognition of the bull; the archbishop and other prelates declined compliance, and were forthwith banished from court. Louis and his advisers resolved to px-oceed to extreme measures of persecution against the protest- ing party; and the unhappy Jansenists, of all professions and classes, were subjected to imprisonment, confiscation, and every species of vindictive oppression. It is even said that a lettre de cachet was actually signed for arresting the Cardinal de Noailles, and was only suspended by the illness and death of the king. A few years previously, in 1709, Le Tellier had obtained frcm Louis a decree for the total suppression and demolition of the con- vent of Port Royal des Champs. This cruel mandate was carried into execution with the most inexorable rigor. A lieutenant of police, with a body of soldiers, expelled the nuns forcibly from their cloister, and distributed them in other houses about the country. The building was then razed to the ground ; the church was bru- tally profaned, the sacred relics torn from the altar, the bodies disinterred from the cemetery, and every trace of the establish- ment destroyed — the very soil being abandoned to the plow. Great agitation was created about the same time by the doc- trines of the sect of mystics called Quietists, which had obtained currency in France through the influence of the celebrated Ma- dame Guyon. Complaints were made to the Pope against a work of the excellent Fe'nelon, archbishop of Cambrai, entitled " Max- imes des Saints sur la Vie Interieure," which was said to favor these opinions. Bossuet was his chief opponent, and wrote with vehement animosity against him. Fenelon's book was condemn- ed by a papal brief in March, 1G99 ; and tlTe prelate, with saintly humility, accepted the decision without reserve, read the brief from the pulpit of his cathedral, and declared that he abjured from the heart the opinions censured. Madame Guyon, a woman of great genius and deep piety, but of visionary, enthusiastic temper, continued, nevertheless, to propagate her views, and gained a won- derful ascendency over several persons of high station. She was, in consequence, arrested and imprisoned at Vincennes, and, after remaining there some years, was transferred to the Bastile, but was at length restored to liberty in 1705, and died peacefully in the bosom of her family. 472 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Chap, XXIL NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. AUTHORITIES FOR THE REIGN OP LOUIS XIV. The principal source of contemporary his- tory for this period is the Memoirs of the Duke of Saint Simon^ of which the best edi- tion is that recently published at Paris, 20 vols. Svo, 1S5T. . This work, though abound- ing with puerilities and idle gossip, will al- ways preserve its reputation and authority, from the high position of its author, his gen- eral fidelity and accuracy, and his remarkable power of delineating individual character. It estends to the death of the Regent Duke of Orleans In 1723. The author died in 175T. The Memoirs of the Marquis de Darujeau., of the minister De Torcij, of Duelos, of the Duke of Berwick^ and of Marshal Villars^ are full of important information. See also the Life of Madame de Maintenon^ by the Duke of Noailles. Among the best modem works relating to this period are Lemontey, Essai sur V Mtablissentent Monarehique de Louis XIV. ; Voltaire, Siicle de Louis XIV. ; D'Anquetil, Louis XIV.., sa Cour., et le Re- gent; Clieruel, De V Administration de Louis XIV. CHAPTER XXIII. EEIGN OF LOUIS XV. I. FROM THE REGENCY OF THE DTIKE OF ORLEANS TO THE PEACE OF AIX-LA-CHAPELLE. A.D. 1715-1748. § 1. Regency of the Duke of Orleans; his Character; Financial Reforms; the "Chambre Ardente." § 2. The Abbe Dubois; Alliance between France and England ; the Quadruple Alliance opposed by Philip of Spain. §3. Conspiracy of Cellamare ; War with Spain ; Fall of Alberoni ; Spain accepts the Quadruple Treaty. § 4. Schemes of the Financier Law ; the Royal Bank ; the Mississippi Company ; total Failure of Law's System ; National Bankruptcy. § 5. Dubois named Cardinal and Archbishop of Cambrai ; Majority of Louis XV. ; Death of the Duke of Orleans and of Dubois. § 6. Ministry of the Duke of Bourbon ; Marriage of Louis to Maria Leczynski. § 7. Resentment of Philip of Spain ; the Pragmatic Sanction ; Dismissal of the Duke of Bourbon ; Fleury Prime Minister. § 8. Prudent and peaceful Administration of Fleury ; Treaty of Seville. § 9. Disputes arising from the Bull Unigenitus ; Collision between the Parliament and the Crown; Persecution of the Jansenists ; the "Con- vulsionnaires." §10. Stanislas Leczynski elected King of Poland ; Franco supports him against Russia ; War with Austria; Death of the Duke of Berwick and of Marshal Villars; Peace of Vienna. §11- Death of the Emperor Charles VI. ; War of the Austrian Succession; calamitous Re- treat of Marshal Belleisle from Prague. § 12. Death of Cardinal Fleury ; the Duchess of Chateauroux ; Battle of Dettingen ; Louis XV. joins his Army ; dangerous Illness of the King at Metz. § 13. Death of the Em- peror Charles VII. ; ineffectual Overtures for Peace ; Battle of Fontenoy ; Marshal Saxe conquers Belgium ; Wnr with Holland ; Battle of Lawfeld. § 14. Hostilities in the East Indies ; La Bourdonnais and Dupleix ; Siege 474 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIII. of Pondiclierry. § 15. Maestricht suiTenders to Marshal Saxe ; Peace of Aix-la-Chapelle. § 1. The late king had predicted that his will would be treat- ed as so much waste paper. Such was literally its fate. The Parliament scarcely went through the form of reading it ; and, without any discussion, the Duke of Orleans was appointed re- gent unconditionally, with the full and supreme authority of gov- ernment. The Duke of Maine inade no attempt to resist ; he was deprived of the guardianship of the young king, and of the super- intendence of his household, but was permitted to keep the direc- tion of his education. The new regent, Philip, duke of Orleans, had married one of the illegitimate daughters of Louis XIV. He possessed superior abilities, eager ambition, great personal courage, and a warm, amiable, generous temper ; but, at the same time, he was totally destitute of religious and moral principle, and his habits of life were shamelessly dissolute. His example had a most pernicious and deplorable effect upon the tone of society in France. Having named his council of regency, the principal members of which were the Duke of Bourbon, the Duke of Maine, Marshal Villeroi, and the Duke of Saint Simon, the regent intrusted the departments of the administration to seven councils or commit- tees, composed of ten members each, selected chiefly from the no- bility.* At the head of the council of " conscience," or ecclesi- astical affairs, was the Cardinal de Noailles. He immediately banished the Jesuit Le Tellier and others of his order, and ap- pointed the excellent and learned Abbe de Fleury f to the office of confessor to the young king. The lettres de cachet were at ther same time strictly examined, and the doors of the Bastile were thrown open to numbers of unfoi-tunate captives, many of whom had been confined for causes altogether unknown. Other important measures followed. A considerable reduction was effected in the army. With a view to remedy the lamenta- ble disorder which prevailed in the finances, a new coinage was issued, which raised the value of the louis d'or from fourteen livres to twenty, and that of the crown from three livres and a half to five. The validity of all bills in circulation upon the state was severely, investigated, and upon the report of the commissioners the public liabilities were summarily reduced from six hundred millions to two hundred and fifty millions, which sum was pro- vided for by bills bearing interest at four per cent. A still more arbitrary and tyrannical step was the creation of a special court * These councils were abolished two years afterward. t Fleury, the Church historian — not to be confounded with the Bishop of Frejus, afterward cardinal and prime minister. A.D. 1715-1717. - THE ABBE DUBOIS. 475 of justice, or " chambre ardente," for the verification of all claims upon the government' by the fermiers ge'ne'raux and other public creditors. Tiie most atrocious means, including torture, were used without scruple to obtain convictions before this tribunal. Serv- ants were encouraged to give evidence against their masters under false names ; informers received a large portion of the sums re- covered ; and with such relentless rigor was the proceeding con- ducted, that after an inquiry extending over twenty-seven years past the names of no less than four thousand five hundred heads of families were published as guilty of frauds upon the treasury. Numbers of the proscribed financiers were thrown into prison, whence they only escaped by paying enormous ransoms to the re- gent and his greedy courtiers ; some were punished with death j many committed suicide. In the end popular indignation was roused against this odious persecution. Most of the convicted debtors were released upon payment of a very small part of the amount first demanded ; and not more than a thii'd of the whole sum expected from the scheme was actually realized. The " chambre ardente" was suppressed in March, 1717. § 2. The foreign policy of the regency took a very different turn from" that which France had pursued for the last thirty years. The man who exercised the greatest ascendency over the Duke of Orleans was the Abbe Dubois, who had formerly been his pre- ceptor, and had shaped his character very much upon the model of his own. Dubois was to the last degree base, false, and aban- doned ; utterly corrupted in heart by long habits of gross sensu- ality, but withal gifted with extraordinary shrewdness and pene- tration ; and with indomitable energy and perseverance. The regent, in spite of the entreaties of the duchess his mother, who dreaded the abbe's influence, appointed Dubois a councilor of state, and soon afterwai'd secretary for foreign affairs ; and he be- came, in fact, all powerful as long as the regency lasted. Dubois, who was in the pay of the Whig ministers of George I. of En- gland, now persuaded the Duke of Orleans that his true interest lay in contracting a close alliance with Great Britain. Philip V. of Spain cherished a deep and rancorous hatred against his cousin the regent ; he fully believed the imputations which had branded him as accessory to. the death of the dauphin and other members of his family ; he contested his right to the regency ; and, farther, in case of the death of Louis XV., he designed to usurp the succession to the French throne, in opposition both to the claims of the regent and to his own solemn oath of renuncia- tion. It was in order to counteract this menaced danger from the side of Spain that Dubois cultivated the friendship of the house of Hanover, which was in like manner threatened by the 476 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIIL Pretender and the Jacobites, enemies still formidable, notwith- standing the defeat of their recent attempt'in Scotland. Mutual interest, urged Avith consummate subtlety and skill by Dubois, soon brought the two parties to an understanding, and by his agency a treaty of tripte alliance between England, France, and Holland was signed at the Hague in January, 1717. After some farther negotiation, the Emperor Charles VI. acceded to this com- pact in August, 1718, and it was thenceforth called the Quadruple Alliance. The contracting powers guaranteed the succession to the crowns of France and Spain according to the terms of the Treaty of Utrecht ; the emperor acknowledged Philip V., re- nouncing his own pretensions ; Sicily was annexed to Austria in exchange for Sardinia, which was allotted to the Duke of Savoy with the title of King of Sardinia ; lastly, France engaged to ex- pel the Pretender and his adherents from her territories, and to demolish, in addition to Dunkirk, the important fortifications of Mardyke. Thus the system of Louis XIV. Avas entirely reversed ; the ministry of the regent leagued itself with the immemorial en- emies of France, while it offended and sacrificed a power which, by the will of Charles II. and the establishment of a Bourbon at Madrid, had become its natural ally. The weak and indolent Philip V. was at this time absolutely governed by his second wife, the talented and ambitious Elizabeth Farnese, and by her confidential friend, the Italian adventurer Al- beroni, whose extraordinary genius had raised him to the post of prime minister and the dignity of cardinal. Alberoni was bent upon the hopeless project of re-establishing the ancient ascendency and prosperity of Spain, and he now employed all his energies and resources in withstanding the Quadruple Alliance. An outrage offered by the emperor to one of the Spanish envoys in Italy pre- cipitated the impending rupture : nine thousand Spaniards landed in Sardinia in August, 1717, and in less than three months com- pleted the conquest of the island. An attempt was now made by France and England to obtain the acquiescence of Spain in the views of the coalition ; but Alberoni peremptorily rejected the pro- posal, and in July, 1718, dispatched a second fleet and army to at- tack the island of Sicily. Upon this Great Britain interfered, and sent a powerful armament to oppose the Spaniards, although war had not been actually proclaimed ; a great battle was fought off Cape Passaro, and the Spanish fleet was annihilated. War be- came inevitable. It was hastened by a singular occurrence Avhich happened about the same time in France, namely, the discovery of the so-called conspiracy of Cellamare. § 3. The Prince Cellamare, the embassador of Spain at Paris, was the instrument of Alberoni's hostile intriaues against the re- A. D. 1717-1710. CONSPIRACY OF CELLAMAEE. 477 gent. Pie was in close correspondence with many of the malcon- tent French nobility, but his chief confidants were the Duke and Duchess of Maine, who had never forgiven the duke's removal from the posts of authority assigned to him by the will of Louis XIV. A plot was organized (though it seems doubtful how far the design was seriously entertained) for carrying off the regent into Spain, and placing Philip V. at the head qf the French gov- ernment. Assistance was expected from Brittany, which was just then in agitation in consequence of an attempt against the ancient privileges of the province ; and a fleet was actually dispatched from Spain to support the insurrection. The confederates,- however, were betrayed to Dubois ; an agent of Cellamare was seized at Poitiers on his way to Madrid ; and dispatches of which he was the bearer fully compromised all the principal parties to the scheme. Cellamare was forthwith arrested, and conducted to the frontier under a strong guard ; the Duke and Duchess of Maine wei-e imprisoned, together with numbers of their partisans ; and the conspiracy was completely crushed. Some needless severities took place in Brittany, where several gentlemen were executed ; and much hostile feeling was excited against Spain, of which Du- bois failed not to take advantage. The regent and the council adopted his views, and France declared war against Spain on the 10th of January, 1719. England had taken the same step a few days previously. The Duke of Berwick, at the head of forty thousand men, cross- ed the Spanish frontier, and, after desti'oying a large quantity of shipping in the harbor of Passages, reduced the towns of Fontara- bia and San Sebastian. In concert with an English squadron which cruised off the coast, the French afterward burnt several large ships of war at Santona, " in order," as Berwick wrote to the regent, " to prove to the British Parliament that no exertion had been spared to cripple the Spanish navy." This war, in fact, tended far more to promote and confirm the maritime supremacy of England than to advance the interests of France. Meanwhile an Austrian army, embarked in British vessels, made a descent upon Sicily, and the Spaniards, after a gallant but ineffectual de- fense of Messina, were compelled to give way, and evacuated the island. The faint-hearted Philip now became discouraged, and solicited terms of peace. The allies exacted, as a preliminary condition, the dismissal of Alberoni; and in December, 1719, that great minister Avas suddenly deprived of all his offices, and oixler- ed to quit Madrid within eight days. The downfall of Alberoni removed the main obstacle to an accommodation, and reduced Spain to an ignominious submission. In February, 1720, Philip signified his acceptance of the terms of the Quadruple Treaty. 478 LOUIS XV. . Chap. XXIII. He renounced Sicily and Sardinia, of which the emperor and the Duke of Savoy immediately took possession ; and by way of in- demnity, the duchies of Parma, Placentia, and Tuscanj^, in the event of the death of the present possessors without heii-s, were promised to Don Carlos, the eldest son of Philip by his second marriage. France and England now interposed to mediate a peace between Peter the Great of Eussia and the King of Sweden, and by the treaty of Pystadt (September, 1721) tranquillity was once more restored throughout Europe. § 4. While PVance was thus wasting her strength and squan- dering her revenues in a war from which she derived no advant- age, the financial condition of the kingdom, notwithstanding all the expedients resorted to, had become more and more disastrous. The public debt continued to increase ; the deficit amounted to ninety-seven millions of livi-es ; commerce was at a standstill, and the nation seemed on the verge of ruin. At this crisis the regent was induced to listen to the proposals of a Scotch adventurer named John Law, who, having been exiled in consequence of a duel, had passed some years on the Continent, and had made a considerable fortune at the gaming-table. The principle of Law's system was that of multiplying the resources of the state by an indefinite issue of paper money, which was to be substituted for the precious metals as the circulating medium. Gold and silver, he argued, have no*real, but only a conventional value ; the supply of them is limited, and can not be increased at pleasure. If, then, their value can be transferred to paper, which can easily be issued to any desired amount, it is evident that national wealth may be augmented to an almost inconceivable extent. Law accordingly proposed to the regent to establish, on the credit of the govern- ment, a royal bank of deposit and discount, with an unlimited pa- per currency, and by the profits of its operations to reduce and gradually extinguish the overwhelming liabilities of the state. The bank was opened in 171G, but at first only as a private en- terprise. Its success was rapid and complete ; and in December, 1718, the regent converted it into a royal bank, the state becom- ing the proprietor of the whole of its twelve hundred shares. The next step was to set on foot, and associate Avith the bank, a gigantic mercantile speculation, called the Mississippi or West In- dia Company, which possessed the exclusive right of trading Avith Louisiana in America, and other privileges. The public mind was fnflamed by reports of the inexhaustible riches of the Indies, and of the discovery of gold and diamond mines in those remote colonies. The project was embi'aced w^ith feverish ardor ; the shares of the company rose in value witli surprising rapidity, and by September, A.D. 1719, 1720. SCHEMES OF THE FINANCIER LAW. 479 1719, were worth five thousand francs each instead of five hund- red, at which they were originally issued. The demand still in- creased, and one hundred thousand new shares were created to meet it, which, by an express enactment, were to be purchased, not Avith coin, but with bank-notes. The government paper thus ob- tained an immense premium. The regent now granted to the company a lease of the public taxes, in return for which the com- pany lent him twelve hundred millions of francs toward paying the debts of the state. The interest of this loan was three per cent, instead of four, which had been paid hitherto ; this difference, then, was in favor of the regent ; and the public creditor was henceforth paid, not in cash, but with the shares of the India Com- pany, taken at their present fabulous market-price. A dividend of twelve per cent, was soon declai'ed upon the shares, and an in- credible impulse was given to the sale, the anxiety to obtain them amounting to infatuation. In October they reached the prepos- terous price of ten thousand francs, twenty times their original value; it is even said that at last they were not to be purchased under eighteen or twenty thousand francs. Enormous fortunes were realized during the height of the ferment by speculators of all classes — from princes, generals, and prelates, down to petty shopkeepers, clerks, lackeys, waiting-maids, and co'urtesans. A fictitious and baseless prosperity overspread the whole kingdom. But a reaction was inevitable. Such was the rage for obtaining the bank-paper, that Law found himself unable to control its is- sue ; its circulation was increased to the portentous amount of three thousand millions of francs, whereas the whole value of the metallic coinage existing in France did not exceed seven hundred millions. Toward the close of 171 9 suspicion began to gain ground as to the solvency both of the bank and of the company, and many of the largest shareholders prudently converted their shares and notes into investments in money, jewels, and landed property. The Prince of Conti gave the signal for this assault upon the pub- lic credit by extorting from the bank three cart-loads of silver in exchange for his bank-notes. Every exertion was now made by the regent and Law to arrest the downward movement, but in vain. Money payments were forbidden for sums above one hund- red francs ; the currency of the bank-notes was made obligatory ; and at last all payments in specie wei-ej)rohibited. Violent means were adopted to enfoi'ce these tyrannical decrees ; but it was im- possible to stem the tide of reaction ; the public confideno* was shaken more and more every day, and, the hollowness of the whole system soon becoming manifest, a universal panic ensued. On the 21st of May, 1720, an edict appeared which amounted to an act of national bankruptcy ; it reduced both the company's shares and 480 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIII. the notes of the bank to one half their nominal value. Such was the general exasperation produced by this measure, that the regent revoked it shortly afterward. But this extraordinary delusion was now finally dispelled ; an overwhelming rush was made upon the bank to obtain cash for its paper, and on the loth of July it was compelled to suspend payments. The notes soon became al- most worthless ; in October they were altogether withdrawn from circulation ; and the vast fabric constructed by Law crumbled at once into ruin. He himself escaped with difficulty with his life from the fuiy of the populace, and, carrying with him the mere wreck of his fortune, retired to Venice, where he died in abject poverty a few years afterward. The financial condition of France was a perfect chaos. A com- mission was appointed, under the direction of the four brothers Paris, to investigate and liquidate the claims of the bank creditors, multitudes of whom were left without the means of procuring the necessaries of life, and M^ere dying of hunger. It was found that six thousand millions of the discredited notes were scattered over the kingdom ; only about a third of that amount was presented to undergo the operation of the visa ; a large proportion of this residue was disallowed by the commission ; and the conclusion Avas that seventeen hundred millions were reimbursed to the hold- ers, partly in cash, and partly by mortgages on the taxes and oth- er government securities. The national debt, which the scheme of Law had undertaken to abolish altogether, now proved to liaAe augmented to no less than six hundred and twenty-five millions of francs. On the other hand, the improved management and in- creased value of the taxes had raised the revenue of the state from sixty-nine to one hundred and twenty-three millions. Notwithstanding this strange catastrophe, which involved in ruin thousands of families in all ranks, the system of credit which was first introduced by Law obtained a permanent hold upon the public mind, and brought about an important change in the nature of commercial and mercantile transactions throughout Europe. § 5. Little more remains to be recorded during the regency of the Duke of Orleans. That prince again immersed himself in his disgraceful pleasures, and allowed the infamous Dubois to monop- olize the whole power of government. Not satisfied with being named prime minister, Dubois had the effrontery to demand and obtain from the regent the archbishopric of Cambrai. The clergy seeniifo have made no opposition to this scandalous appointment ; and one of the two bishops who testified to the qualifications of the candidate was the celebrated Massillon of Clermont. A year later the new archbishop was nominated to a seat in the Eoman conclave. This elevation was the reward of liis c;ood services to A.iD. 1723. MINISTRY OF THE DUKE OF BOURBON. 48I the papal court in the matter of the bull Unigenitus. Dubois de- clared himself in favor of the Jesuits, and the regent, who had hitherto supported their opponents, blindly yielded to his dicta- tion. Notwithstanding the opposition of several bishops and a large body of the clergy, backed by the University of Paris, Dubois forced the reluctant Parliament to register the obnoxious edict, and this famous constitution Avas thus acknowledged as the law of the Church and the realm. Louis XV. attained his legal majority in February, 1723, upon which the Duke of Orleans resigned the regency, and became pres- ident of the Council of State, which also included the Duke of Bourbon, Cardinal Dubois, and Fleury, bishop of Frejus, the king's preceptor. Louis was now betrothed to the youthful Infanta of Spain, eldest daughter of Philip V., and the princess arrived in France, where her education was to be conducted. Dubois, whose constitution had been ruined by his eai'ly excesses, was suddenly cut short in the enjoyment of his full-blown honors, and expired, from the results of a painful operation, on the 10th of August, 1723. The Duke of Orleans succeeded nominally to the office of prime minister, but his determined habits of debauchery had weakened and debased his faculties, and he manifested a total in- difference to the course of public affairs. Fortunately for the state, the duke survived Dubois but a few months. He was cai*- ried off by a fit of apoplexy on the 2d of December, 1723, at the premature age of forty-nine. § 6. Fleury might now with ease have made himself prime min- ister, but either from modesty or policy he declined to come for- Avard, and the reins of government fell into the hands of the Duke of Bourbon, first prince of the blood, and the lineal heir of the great Conde'. The duke was a dull, indolent, insignificant person, and was under the absolute dominion of an intriguing and violent woman, his mistress^ the Marchioness of Prie. This lady is said to have succeeded to the pension from the British government which had been received by Dubois. She was governed in her turn by a clever but unscrupulous financier named Paris Duver- nay, one of those Avho had directed the operations of the visa aft- er the disaster of Law. The principal event during the Duke of Bourbon's tenure of office was the marriage of Louis XV., which led to some singular complications. The Infanta of Spain, as already mentioned, had been accepted as the futui'e Queen of France, and had been brought to Paris for her education. She was, however, ten years younger than the king, and a long period must necessarily elapse before the completion of the union. Louis gave signs of feeble health, and his advisers, anxious for an aiTangement which miglit provide X 482 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIIl. a direct successor to the throne, determined abruptly to break oiF the Spanish match, and marry the king elsewhere with the least possible delay. Philip Y. had offended Madame de Prie by de- clining to appoint her husband a grandee of Spain, and she now seized with avidity the tempting opportunity of revenging and re- taliating the affront. The young princess was sent back to Mad- rid, without even the courtesy of an excuse, in January, 1725, and the indignation of the haughty Philip and his court may be more easily imagined than described. The duke and his mistress, after a fruitless negotiation for the hand of an English princess, selected as the consort of Louis the amiable daughter of Stanislas Leczynski, the dethroned King of Poland, who at that time was living obscurely in Alsace on a small pension allowed him by the French government. Their purpose in this step was simply to preserve and consolidate their own power, since the new queen would naturally be bound by strong ties of gratitude to those who had procured her elevation. No opposition being made either by Louis or his preceptor Fleury, Maria Leczynski was conducted immediately to court, and the royal nuptials were celebrated at Fontainebleau on the 4th of September, 1725. § 7. The gross insult which Philip had received from France occasioned an immediate and not unnatural change in his for- eign policy. He reconciled himself to his ancient rival Charles VL of Austria, and a treaty, ably negotiated by the famous min- ister Ripperda, was concluded betvi^een the two powers in May, 1725, which amounted to an alliance offensive and defensive against France and England. Philip guaranteed the Pragmatic Sanction by which the emperor secured the Austrian succession to his daughters in default of male issue ; Charles affianced the two archduchesses to Philip's two sons by his second marriage, and promised his aid in obtaining from England, by force if neces- sary, the restitution of Gibraltar and Minorca. This combination led to a counter-alliance between France, England, and Prussia ; allies were industriously sought for on both sides ; and it seemed as if Europe was once more about to plunge into all the miseries of a general war. Russia and Poland leagued themselves on this occasion with the empire and Spain. The wretched maladministration of the Duke of Bourbon, or rather of his mistress and her creature Duvernay, soon occasioned a change of government in France. Duvernay greatly reduced the value of the coinage, and at the same time lowered the rate of interest ; he re-established the unpopular impost of the "joyous entry," Avhich was leased at twenty-three millions of francs ; and a tax of a fiftieth levied upon all landed property, including even A.D. 1726-1729. FLEUKY MADE CAKDINAL. 4533 that of the privileged orders, the nobility and clergy, exposed the ministry to general odium. The immediate cause of the Duke of Bourbon's disgi-ace was an attempt which he made to supplant Fleury, the king's preceptor and confidential friend, in the royal favor. Fleury, on discovering this intrigue, instantly retired to his country house at Issy, intimating to the king that he found himself precluded from taking any farther part in public affairs with advantage to his service. Louis, who was sincerely attached to the good bishop, was at first inconsolable ; but, taking courage at length from the I'epresentations of one of the noblemen in wait- ing, he ordered the duke to recall Fleury, who accordingly reap- peared at court. Conscious of his powei', he now insisted on the dismissal of Madame de Prie and Duvernay : the former was ex- iled into Normandy, the latter imprisoned in the Bastile. Short- ly afterward, on the lltli of June, 1726, the king, on leaving Ver- sailles for Kambouillet, invited the Duke of Bourbon to follow him, and bade him, with a gracious smile, " not to be late for sup- per." No sooner was Louis gone than a royal order was present- ed to the duke commanding him to retire forthwith to his domain at Chantilly. Bourbon obeyed in silence, and from that moment his power was at an end. Fleury, as every one had foreseen, was immediately named his successor. § 8. Fleury, who had considerably passed his seventieth year when he assumed the direction of affairs, was a man of honor and integrity, of unblemished morals, gentle temper, and moderate pa- cific views in politics. He was raised without delay to the rank of a cardinal. His administration, which lasted seventeen years, was, on the whole, a period of tranquillity, during which France repaired her losses, extended her commerce, and increased im- mensely in wealth and general prosperity. Fleury, by a system of strict economy, materially reduced the public bui-dens. The obnoxious tax of the fiftieth was abolished, the tallies diminished, and the value df the coinage permanently regulated, the mark of silver being fixed at 51 livres. Confidence was gradually restored, and the national credit re-established. The revenue steadily augmented, until at length no less than 140 mil- lions of francs were annually paid into the treasury. Fleury exerted himself successfully to prevent a fresh rupture of the peace of Europe. Philip of Spain and his impetuous queen were determined upon war ; and without any formal announce- ment of hostilities, a Spanish fleet and army besieged Gibraltar in February, 1727. But this war was of short duration, and a treaty of peace was signed at Seville, November 9, 1729, between France, Great Britain, and Spain. The contracting parties guaranteed the integrity of the possessions of the three crowns in every part of the 484 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIII. world ; and, in particular, France and England engaged to main- tain the succession of the infant Don Carlos to Parma, Placentia, and Tuscany, the darling object of the ambition of Elizabeth Far- nese. On the other hand, as the treaty made no explicit mention of Gibraltar and Minorca, those possessions were tacitly abandon- ed to Great Britain. The emperor, thus left alone, soon afterward made overtures for an arrangement to the British embassador at Vienna, and in March, 1731, signed an agreement with England, by which he promised to make no farther resistance to the occupation of the Italian duchies by the Spaniards, upon condition that the Prag- matic Sanction should be formally guaranteed by Great Britain. The Duke of Parma had died a short time previously, leaving no issue ; and after some farther delay, the Spanish forces at length took possession of his long-coveted dominions in the name of Don Carlos, who was acknowledged at the same time as presumptive heir to the Grand-Duke of Tuscany, the last of the Medici. Thus the clouds which had gathered on the political horizon were in great measure dispersed, and the storm averted for a time ; but the renewal of a friendly understanding between the courts of Vienna and St. James's, coupled with the reconciliation of the two branches of the house of Bourbon, led eventually to an interruption of that friendship between France and England which Fleury, to his honor, had so sedulously cultivated, § 9. Notwithstanding the compulsory reception of the bull Uni- genitus in France, the Jansenist controversy was by no means wholly extinguished. The Bishop of Senez, having published a pastoral in opposition to the bull, Avas suspended by a provincial council at Embrun, and banished from his diocese. This stirred up fresh agitation ; the middle classes throughout the country sided strongly Avith the Jansenists, and eagerly seized every op- portunity of testifying their opinion. In 1780 Louis XV. pro- ceeded to hold a bed of justice in the Parliament ; and in spite of the opposition of two thirds of the members, enforced a second registration of the papal edict. The Parliament, however, met the next day, and drew up protests and remonstrances ; and a few months later, on the occasion of a somewhat violent "mande- ment" of the new Archbishop of Paris, the same body issued a decree asserting, in exaggerated terms, the doctrines of the coun- cil of 1682 on the independence of the temporal power. This edict Avas immediately canceled by the council of state. The Parliament refused to submit, and attempted to expostulate witli the king in person at Marly ; Louis, however, declined to receive them. Four of the refractory magistrates were now taken into custody and sentenced to banishment; upon this their colleagues A.D. 1732-1733. PERSECUTION OF THE JANSENISTS. 485 refused to proceed with the administration of justice, and the greater part tendered tlieir resignation. Fleury endeavored to accommodate matters, and most of the councilors after a time re- turned to Paris ; but, instead of resuming the official business of their courts, they spent their time in framing fresh petitions of remonstrance. A royal order of August 18, 1732, forbade them to receive appeals upon the matters in dispute, and enjoined them to recommence their judicial duties. They returned a positive refusal, affirming that it was impossible to execute the king's dec- laration. Lettres de cachet wex'e forthwith issued, which exiled the oftenders from Paris, and confined them in different parts of France. During the progress of this struggle, the persecuted Jansenists took advantage of the excited st&.te of popular feeling to propa- gate a belief in a supernatural intervention of Heaven in their fa- vor. Miracles in abundance were produced, as demonstrating be- yond all controversy the truth of the Augustinian tenets, and the credulous multitude, without pausing to inquire and examine, greedily swallowed the delusion. The most notable instance of this superstitious frenzy was that connected with an ecclesiastic named Paris, who, having fallen a victim, at an early age, to the excess of his ascetic rigor, was venerated after death as a saint by devout crowds who came to pray at his tomb in the cemetery of St. Medard. Soon it began to be rumored that miracles had been wrought by his remains ; instantaneous cures were effected ; the lame, the impotent, the paralytic, seized with convulsive spasms, and raised to a state of preternatural ecstasy, suddenly recovered the use of their limbs ; various nervous diseases disappeared un- der the same influence ; it was even pretended that obstinate wounds and cancerous ulcers had been healed. These strange phenomena increased to such an extent that the Archbishop of Paris published a brief in which he attributed them to the agency of Satan. But the extravagant fanaticism of the movement in- sured its speedy failure. The " convulsionnaires" began to hold nocturnal meetings, which led to scandalous and indecent scenes ; the tomb of the Jansenist saint became the general rendezvous of the most abandoned and dangerous characters of the capital ; at length, in 1732, the government found it necessary to interfere, and i]^ entrance to the cemetery Avas closed to the public. It was now that some profane humorist wrote over the gate the well- known lines, " De pai- le Roi, defense a Dieii Dc fairc miracles en ce lieu." § 10. The peace of Europe was disturbed in 1733 by complica- tions which arose upon the death of Frederick Augustus II., Elect- 486 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIII. or of Saxony and King of Poland. Stanislas Leczynski was in- vited by his adherents to assert his claims to the vacant thi-one ; he accepted the summons, although the renunciation of his rights had been made an express condition on the marriage of his daugh- ter w^ith the King of France ; proceeded to Warsaw, and, no less than sixty thousand Poles having recorded their votes in his favor, the Diet solemnly proclaimed him king. But liussia, Austria, and Denmark were arrayed in arms against him ; Stanislas appealed for support to France ; and Fleury, notwithstanding his pacific disposition, could not refuse assistance to the father-in-law of Louis. Instead, however, of aiding him largely and eflFectually, the French minister contented himself with sending Stanislas a subsidy of three millions of livres and a detachment of fifteen hundred soldiers. The coalition meanwhile acted with great vig- or ; fifty thousand Russians marched upon Warsaw ; Stanislas was driven from his capital, and his rival, Augustus III., son of the late king, was forthwith crowned at Cracow. France having once embarked in war, a powerful party, headed by Chauvelin, the minister for foreign affairs, warmly urged its prosecution on a moi'e extended scale in other quarters. In con- cert with the cabinets of Madrid and Turin, it was agreed to un- dertake the expulsion of the Austrians from Italy, and the estab- lishment of Don Carlos on the throne of the Two Sicilies. The duchy of Milan was to be annexed to Piedmont, so as to consti- tute a kingdom of Lombardy ; and Savoy was to be ceded in re- turn to France. Having secured the neutrality of England and Holland, the confederates declared war against the emperor, who was now left without allies, in October, 1733 ; and armies were at once directed upon the Alps and the Rhine, the former com- manded by the veteran Villars, the latter by the Duke of Berwick. Prince Eugene was opposed to Berwick. In 1734 the duke com- menced the siege of Philipsburg, but lost his life by a cannon-ball while examining the progress of the operations from the top of one of the trenches (June 12, 1734). The campaign of this year was fatal to the French commanders. The brave Villars, who, at the age of eighty-two, had displayed all the ardor and energy of a young general, carried all before him in the Milanese, and was preparing to pursue the Imperialists beyond the Po, when he fell ill from excessive fatigue, and expired at Turin withinA week after the Duke of Berwick had fallen at Philipsburg. Marshal Coigny, who succeeded to the command, fought a great battle with the Austrians near Parma, on the 29th of June, which, after tremendous slaughter on both sides, terminated without certain result. Othar engagements followed, but the campaign concluded indecisively. A.D. 1734-1739. TREATY OF VIENNA. 487 Meanwhile an army of twenty thousand Spaniards entered the territory of Naples, and, supported by a fleet, marched with little or no opposition upon the capital. Don Carlos made his solemn entry into the city on the 15th of May, 1734, and took undisputed possession of the throne of the Two Sicilies. Within six months the Bourbons were in triumphant possession of the whole of the Neapolitan monarchy. A suspension of arms was announced, through the mediation of Great Britain and Holland, in February, 1735, and in the fol- lowing October the preliminaries of peace were signed at Vienna. By this treaty the emperor ceded Naples and Sicily to Don Car- los, receiving Tuscany and Parma in exchange. Stanislas Lec- zynski, in return for his abdication of the throne of Poland, was invested with the duchies of Lorraine and Bar, which, after his death, were to be annexed to Ihe crown of France. The Duke of Lorraine, in compensation, was to succeed to the ducal throne of Tuscany on the- death of the present possessor. A few places in the Milanese were granted to the King of Sardinia ; and, last- ly, the emperor obtained, as the price of his concessions, a joint guarantee of the Pragmatic Sanction by the crowns of France, Spain, and Sardinia. Nearly three years passed before the provi- sions of this treaty were completely executed. The Duke of Lor- raine, who had espoused the Archduchess Maria Theresa, heiress of the house of Austria, was put in possession of the duchy of Tuscany in July, 1737 ; and the definitive Treaty of Vienna was signed on the 18th of November, 1738. § 11. This short war had been maintained by France with hon- or and advantage, and its close marks the only brilliant moment in the administi-ation of Cardinal Fleury. For several years, from the cessation of hostilities in 1735, his government pursued its usu- al peaceful course; but in 1739 an unfortunate quarrel between Great Britain and Spain, arising from the contraband trade car- ried on by the former power with the Spanish American colonies, threatened once more to drag France into the vortex of war. Sir Eobert Walpole was constrained, by the violence of popular feeling, to declare war with Spain in October, 1739 ; Fleury labored earn- estly, but unsuccessfully, to mediate between the hostile parties ; and upon the capture of Porto Bello by the English Admiral Ver- non, Spain formally demanded the armed assistance of France, in conformity with the terms of their alliance. The union which had just taken place between a French princess and one of the sons of the King of Spain made it the more difficult to resist this appeal. Fleury, however, unwilling to sacrifice his long-standing friendship with England, still attempted to negotiate ; but, while affairs remained in this precarious state, the death of the Emperor 488 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIII. Charles VI., on the 20th of October, 1740, created fresh and dan- gerous elements of discord, and led to an embroilment which be- came general throughout Europe. Notwithstanding the positive engagements by which the hered- itary possessions of the house of Austria had been so recently guaranteed to the Archduchess Maria Theresa, the rights of that princess were now vehemently contested by all the great, powers of Europe, with the exception of Great Britain. No less than five princes — the Elector of Bavaria, the King of Spain, the Elector of Saxony, the King of Sardinia, and the King of Prussia — laid claim to different portions of the Austrian empire ; and France, although she demanded nothing for herself, was bound by a prom- ise made by Louis XIV. at the peace of Utrecht, to support the young Elector of Bavaria as a candidate for the imperial crown. Fleury was now beginning to sin^ beneath the infirmities of ex- treme old age ; he was besieged on all sides by warlike solicita- tions which he lacked the courage and firmness to resist ; and at length, yielding to the national impulse, he signed a treaty of al- liance with the Elector of Bavaria in May, 1741, Avhich was fol- lowed soon afterward by a secret compact with the most formi- dable of the opponents of the young archduchess, the ambitious Frederick 11. of Prussia. The confederates projected a partition of the Austrian dominions, by wLich Maria Theresa was to be re- duced to Hungary, Austria Proper, and the Netherlands, while the remainder of the empire was to be divided between the sov- ereigns of Bavaria, Prussia, and Spain. Frederick of Prussia, taking advantage of the defenseless and forlorn position of Maria Theresa, had already overrun the Austrian province of Silesia, and had distinguished himself by the great victory of Molwitz. By the treaty of Nymphenburg, France engaged to take the field with two armies, one of which was to watch and control the Elector of Hanover (George II.), while the other united itself with the troops of the Elector of Bavaria. The Franco-Bavarians crossed the Austrian frontier in Sep- tember, 1741, and in the course of a few days made themselves masters of Linz, Passau, and other places in the valley of the Dan- ube ; their advanced parties were even pushed within a few leagues of the gates of Vienna. The Prussians at the same moment pen- etrated into Moravia, while the Elector of Saxony invaded Bohe- mia. The proud house of Austria seemed doomed to inevitable and total ri.in. At this crisis the young Queen of Hungary dis- played an intrepidity and heroism worthy of her illustrious race. She repaired to the Hungarian Diet at Presburg, harangued the assembly in pathetic and stirring language, and commended her- self, her children, and the cause of the empire to their well-known A.D. 1742, 1743. KETRKAT FROM PRAGUE. 439 patriotism, fidelity, and courage. The gallant Magyars responded with tumultuous enthusiasm, waving their sabres, and shouting " We will die for our king Maria Theresa !" The population rose en masse, and, the movement spreading into Crot^and Dalmatia, a powerful army was soon marshaled for the defense of the em- pire. The Elector of Bavaria, recoiling before this display of vig- or, abandoned his march upon Vienna, and turned aside into Bo- lieraia ; he took possession of Prague, and was crowned in that city in November. He next proceeded to Frankfort, where the diet proclaimed him emperor, by the title of Charles VII., on the 24th of January, 1742. But meanwhile the forces of Maria The- resa, largely subsidized by England, advanced to the succor of Prague. The French army, commanded by Marshals de Belleisle and Broglie, were at length compelled to evacuate this city, and commenced a difficult and calamitous retreat across the mountains to Egra. After enduring terrible sufferings and losses, the survi- vors of this gallant host, reduced from fifty thousand to twelve thousand men, regained the French frontier in the beginning of January, 1743. § 12. Shortly after this disastrous repulse of the French arms, Cardinal Fleury sunk under the accumulated weight of his great age and the labors and anxieties of his station, and expired at Issy, in his ninetieth year, on the 29th January, 1743. He had retain- ed office too long for his credit ; the latter part of his administra- tion was marked by feebleness and incapacity ; and the exhaust- ing conflict in which he left France involved was imputed, not without reason, to his want of vigor and determination. Louis XV. now affected, after the example of his predecessor, to take the government into his own hands, and consequently appointed no prime minister. His character and habits, however, made him altogether unequal to the task ; and the country was left for some years to the disunited management of the ministers presiding over different departments, the most prominent being the Chancellor D'Aguesseau, the war minister D'Argenson, Maurepas, the min- ister of marine, and Cardinal Tencin. The influence which really predominated in the state was that of the king's mistress, the Duchess of Chateauroux, the youngest of four sisters of the fam- ily of Nesle who had successively yielded to his licentious pas- sion. Madame de Chateauroux was a woman of talent, spirit, and ambition, and did her utmost to rouse Louis from liis consti- tutional indolence and torpor to a bold, energetic policy, better befitting the ruler of a great and gallant nation. New combinations were now. formed unfavorable to the inter- ests of France. Sir Robert Walpole having been compelled to re- sign, George II., whose assistance of Maria Theresa had hitherto X2 490 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIII, been confined to subsidies, prepared to enter more seriously into the struggle ; and without any regular declaration of war, a com- ■ bined army of fifty thousand English, Hanoverians, and Hessians assembled in ^jl^ Netherlands, and directed its march upon the valley of the Main, to join the Austrians under Prince Charles of Lorraine. The King of Prussia, after his unprincipled seizure of Silesia, had concluded the treaty of Breslau with Maria The- resa, by which, in return for the cession of the conquered province, he engaged to observe a strict neutrality during the rest of the war. The King of Naples, alarmed by the sudden appearance of a British fleet whicli threatened to bombard his capital, had in like manner abandoned the coalition. The King of Sardinia was in- duced to take a similar step ; and France was thus left to bear the brunt of the struggle single-handed. The King of England joined his troops in person at AschafFen- burg, accompanied by his son the Duke of Cumberland, but found, to his dismay, that the French under Marshal de Noailles had oc- cupied all the commanding positions in the neighborhood so advan- tageously that his farther progress was altogether impeded. The allies were soon greatly straitened for provisions, and it became necessary to commence a retrograde movement toward Hanau. Their line of retreat was, however, intercepted by the vigilant foresight of the French marshal, Avho had bridged the river at Seligenstadt, and posted a powerful division of his army in the defile of Dettingen, through which lay the route of the enemy. The situation of the allies seemed desperate, but they were ex- tricated by an error of the Duke of Grammont, the French officer commanding at Dettingen, who, contrary to the express orders of his superior, imprudently abandoned the defile, and attacked the English in the open ground in such a way as to render useless the French batteries established on the opposite bank of the Main. This entirely disconcerted the arrangements of Noailles, and the battle which ensued (June 27, 1743), notwithstanding the brilliant valor of his army, especially of the household troops, terminated in his defeat, with a loss of five thousand men. The allies accom- plished their retreat in safety, but reaped no other advantage from their success. Yet the victory of Dettingen was celebrated with extraordinary rejoicings both in London and at Vienna. France having declared war against Great Britain in March, 1744, Louis XV. proceeded, for the first time, to place himself at the head of his army. It was commanded under him by Maurice, count of Saxony, aftei'ward so celebrated as Marshal Saxe ; a natural son of Augustus II., king of Poland, who had acted as lieutenant general to Belleisle in the campaign of Prague, and was accounted one of the ablest officers in the French service. Louis A.D. 1744, 1745. WAR OF THE AUSTRIAN SUCCESSION. 491 invaded the Netherlands in the middle of JNIay, and reduced sev- eral towns in succession ; but Frederick of Prussia now suddenly- violated his engagement at Breslau, and resolved once more to make common cause with France in opposition to the house of Austria. An alliance was signed at Frankfort in June between France, Prussia, the Emperor Charles VII., and Sweden ; and Frederick, resuming his aggressive projects, prepared to pour his legions into Bohemia, having stipulated that half that province should be united to his crown. Upon reaching Metz in August, 1744, Louis was attacked by a dangerous malignant fever, and was soon reduced to the last ex- tremity. In this condition his confessor, by dint of urgent en- treaty, prevailed with him to banish from his presence his mistress, Madame de Chateauroux, who had accompanied him in the cam- paign, and to reconcile himself with his neglected wife. Louis Avas ere long given over by the physicians, and received the last sacraments ; but a violent remedy prescribed by an empiric ar- i-ested the disease, and in the course of a few days he was pro- nounced out of danger. This result was hailed by a general out- burst of popular joy and congratulation ; all the churches of the kingdom resounded with fervent thanksgivings ; and the king was saluted by his warm-hearted subjects by an appellation which he little merited, that of " Bien-aime," or well-beloved. On witness- ing the loyal transports excited by his recovery, Louis could not help exclaiming " What have I done, that they should love me so much ?" § 13. An event occurred in January, 1745, by which the pos- ture of affairs was materially altered ; this was the death of the Emperor Charles VII., who expired at Munich, worn out as much by mortification and chagrin as by the effects of disease. The new Elector of Bavaria, Maximilian Joseph, though urged by France to renew the pretensions of his family to the imperial crown, soon effected an accommodation with the Queen of Hun- gary, renounced all claims upon the Austrian succession, accepted the Pragmatic Sanction, and engaged to give his vote in the Diet to Maria Theresa's husband, Francis of Lorraine, Grand-Duke of Tuscany. Upon these terms the young elector recovered all his hereditary dominions. As this arrangement decided the point which had originally given occasion to the war, the French gov- ernment now became desirous of peace, and made overtures with that object ; but the haughty and resentful obstinacy of the Queen of Hungary caused the negotiation to fail in its commencement ; and as Great Britain, by whom the Austrian troops were chiefly paid, consented to continue her subsidies, the war was necessarily prolonged, although its only purpose henceforth, so far as France was concerned, Avas to procure an honorable peace. 492 LOUIS XV. CiiAr. XXIII. Marshal Saxe, with seventy thousand men, invested Tournay in April, when Louis joined his camp in person, attended by the dauphin. The allies, under the orders of the Duke of Cumber- land, who was assisted by the veteran Marshal Ivonigsegg, re- solved to relieve that fortress ; on their approach, the French com- mander, leaving a strong division before Tournay, drew out his army in order of battle on the right bank of the Scheldt, having in front of his centre the village of Fontenoy. The engagement took place on the 11th of May, 1745 ; it was long and desperate- ly contested, but after six hours' fighting victory seemed on the point of declaring for the allies ; two of the French lines were in complete disoi'der, and the reserve alone, composed of the house- hold troops, remained unbroken, with a small battery of four heavy cannon. These pieces opened a vigorous and well-sustain- ed fire upon the advancing columns of the English, Avhich, being ill supported and even abandoned by the Dutch, at length waver- ed and fell into confusion ; the French guards charged at the same moment, and triumphantly retrieved the fortunes of the day, driv- ing the enemy from the field with a loss of near ten thousand men. The victory was dearly purchased, at least seven thousand having fallen on the side of the French. The results of the battle of Fon- tenoy were important ; Tournay, Ghent, Bruges, Oudenarde, and several other principal cities of Flanders, surrendered almost with- out resistance to Marshal Saxe. Louis, on his retui'n to Paris, was welcomed with universal enthusiasm as a conqueror. On the other hand, Maria Theresa had the satisfaction of see- ing her husband elevated to the throne of the empire in Septem- ber, 1745, and soon afterward received proposals of peace from the King of Prussia, to which, after some hesitation, she consent- ed ; and the treaty of Dresden, which included, besides Prussia, the Palatinate and Saxony, was signed at the close of the year. The empress was thus enabled to send large re-enforcements to her armies in Lombardy; the Austrians took the field in 1746 Avith greatly superior numbers, and gained a glorious and decisive victory over the combined French and Spaniards at Piacenza on the IGth of June. The French fled in total confusion to Genoa, and, rapidly continuing their retreat along the sea-coast, re-enter- ed France in September. The victorious Austrians pursued, crossed the Var, and plundered and laid waste the country as far as the Durance. Marshal Belleisle, displaying in this moment of peril great skill and the most brilliant courage, checked the march of the invaders, and forced them to recross the frontier with loss in February, 1747. After the battle of Fontenoy, Marshal Saxe, vigorously pursu- ing his career of victory, invested Brussels in the middle of win- A.D. 1747. STRUGGLE FOR POWER IN THE EAST. 493 ter, and forced that capital to surrender after a siege of three weeks. The capitulation of Antwerp followed in May, 1746, and that of the fortress of Namur in September. The French gener- al then concentrated his whole army, gained a decisive victoi-y over the Austrians, under Charles of Lorraine, at Eaucoux, on tlie Meuse, near Lie'ge, and became master of the whole of Belgium. In the following year Louis declared war against Holland (17 th of April, 1747). The French army, numbering one hundred and twenty thousand men, under the orders of Marshal Saxe, imme- diately crossed the Dutch frontier, and in less than a montli took possession of the whole line of forti-esses which defend the Scheldt from the sea to Antwerp. These startling successes produced an insurrection in Holland in favor of the house of Nassau, and Wil- liam IV. of Orange was proclaimed stadtholder by the popular par- ty. The prince, however, was possessed of no particular talent or sagacity, and proved quite incapable of arresting the triumphs of the invader. Great Britain now succeeded in inducing Kussia to join the confederation against France ; and the court of St. Peters- burg engaged to place at the disposal of the allies a tieet of fifty sail, and a land force of thirty-seven thousand men. But, before these succors could arrive, the consummate generalship of the French marshal had made him once more a conqueror at Lawfeld, near Maestricht, whei'e the Duke of Cumberland, after a murderous conflict, was routed with a loss of eight thousand men, and forced to retire beyond the Meuse. § 14. While France and Englan^i thus contended for predom- inance in Europe, a similar struggle had commenced in the East Indies, Avhere the influence and authority of France were at this time decidedly superior to those of her rival. The establishments founded by the Compagnie des Indes — Pondicherry, Chanderna- gore, Calicut, Surat, Mahe — were in the most flourishing condi- tion ; and the power of France in the East had been greatly ad- vanced by the efforts and policy of three men of first-rate ability, Dumas, La Bourdonnais, and Dupleix. The active genius of Du- pleix had conceived the idea of an immense French empire ex- tending over Bengal, the Deccan, and the Carnatic ; and with this object he labored to associate the native races, especially the Mah- rattas, with the various European settlers — French, Portuguese, Danes, Dutch — in one irresistible confederation against Great Britain. La Bourdonnais and Dupleix attacked the English set- tlement of Madras in September, 1746, and after a short resist- ance all the British subjects, civil and military, were compelled to surrender themselves prisoners of war. Mutual jealousy now produced a violent rupture between the two French commanders, which ended in the recall of La Bourdonnais ; on reaching France 494 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIII. he was consigned to the Bastile on the accusation of his late col- league, and died in prison some years afterward. Madras was recovered by the English with the aid of the Nabob of the Car- natic ; and in the summer of 1748 the fleet of Admiral Boscaw- en, in its turn, attacked Pondicherry ; the siege was formed, and carried on for two months, but with total want of success. Du- pleix made a heroic defense, and, the enemy being at length com- pelled to retreat with signal loss, his reputation, together with that of the nation which he represented, rose to the highest pitch throughout India. § 15. The final operation of this sanguinary war was the suc- cessful siege of Maestricht by Marshal Saxe in April, 1748. A suspension of hostilities was declared immediately on the fall of that fortress, and the treaty of Aix-la-Chapelle was signed in the following October. All conquests were mutually restored be- tween France and England ; the duchies of Parma, Piacenza, and Guastalla were ceded by Austria to Don Philip of Spain ; the possession of Silesia was confirmed to the King of Prussia ; Francis I. was recognized as emperor, and the Pragmatic Sanction once more guaranteed. It seems to have been expected by the allies that, after the distinguished success of the French arms, and es- pecially after such important conquests in the Low Countries, Louis would have exacted either some territorial extension, or some other advantage. That monarch, however, announced that he wished to negotiate, not like a merchant, but like a prince ; and France obtained no sort of recompense for the sacrifices of this bloody and exhausting conflict, which had ruined her com- merce, crippled her navy, and augmented her national debt by twelve hundred millions of livres. Nor was England at all moi'e fortunate. All the substantial benefits secured by the peace were shared between Prussia and the empire. Abbey uf Oluny, in Buvgimdy, before tlie Eevolution.* CHAPTER XXIV. KEIGN OF LOUIS XV. CONTINUED. II. FROM THE PEACE OF AIX-LA- CHAPELLE TO THE DEATH OP LOUIS. A.D. 1748-1774. § 1. Private Life of Louis XV. ; Madame de Pompadour; the Pare aux Cerfs ; Machault Comptroller General of Finances ; Beaumont Archbish- op of Paris; the "Billets de Confession." §2. Struggle between the Court and the Parliament of Paris ; Attempt of Damiens on the Life of Louis ; the Parliament recalled. § 3. War breaks out with England ; hos- tilities in North America. § 4. Alliance of France with the Empress Ma- ria Theresa ; the Seven Years' War ; successful Expedition of the French against Minorca ; Admiral Byng; Convention of Kloster-seven. § 5. Ex- ploits of Frederick of Prussia ; Battles of Rosbach and Leuthen ; Prince Ferdinand of Brunswick. § 6. The War in North America ; the Mar- quess of Montcalm ; General Wolfe ; Capture of Quebec ; Loss of the French Possessions in Canada ; the Duke of Choiseul Minister ; Naval Engagements ; Battle of Minden. § 7. The Family Compact ; Reverses of the King of Prussia ; Negotiation for Peace ; definitive Treaty of Paris. § 8. Suppression of the Jesuits in France ; Death of Madame de Pompa- dour, of the Dauphin, and of the Queen ; Lorraine and Bar annexed to France. § 9. Madame du Barry ; Annexation of Corsica to France. § 10. Coalition against the Duke of Choiseul; Proceedings against the Duke of Aiguillon, Governor of Brittany ; Dismissal of Choiseul ; Sup- pression of the Parliament of Paris; the "Conseils Supe'rieurs." § 11. Terray Minister of Finance; the "Pacte de Famine;" Partition ofPo- * This church was the largest in France, having been 580 feet in length and 120 feet in width. It was commenced in 1089, and dedicated in 1131. It was destroyed in the Revolution. 49G LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIV. land; Death of Louis XV. § 12. The "New Opinions;" the Encyclo- pasdists ; Jean Jacques Eousseau ; Agitation of the Public Mind ; Aliena- tion of the People from the Throne ; clamorous Demands of Keform. § 1. The treaty of Aix-la-Chapelle procured for Europe sever- al years of tranquillity, and, for the most part, of progress and prosperity. France had attained a proud eminence of political power, and was rapidly increasing in material wealth, intellectual activity, and all the refinements of modern civilization ; neverthe- less, her condition, if regarded in a social and moral point of view, was sucli as to excite in all thoughtful minds grave misgiving and alarm. Louis XV. had given proofs, at intervals during the war, of considerable intelligence, energy, and courage ; but no sooner was peace restored than he relapsed at once into his habits of voluptuous indolence, and drowned all thought of his duties as a sovereign in the practice of unrestrained debauchery. Upon the death of Madame de Chateauroux, the royal affections were transferred with heartless levity to a new mistress, Madame Le- normant d'Etioles, a person of low birth, but of decided talent and great accomplishments, who was soon afterward created Marchion- ess of Pompadour. Louis abandoned himself slavishly to her in- fluence, and for twenty years she was the most powerful person- age in France. All the great affairs of state were discussed and arranged under her guidance. Generals, ministers, embassadors, transacted business in her boudoir ; she dispensed the whole pat- ronage of the government ; the rich prizes of the Church, of the army, of the magistrature, were to be obtained solely through her favor. When her personal attractions began to wane, she had the address to maintain her empire over the king, by sanctioning, if she did not actually suggest, the infamous establishment called the Pare aux Cerfs^ which was neither more nor less than a se- raglio, after the fashion of the Oriental monarchs, formed by Louis in a beautiful retreat belonging to his mistress near Versailles. The favorite thus secured herself against the rise of any danger- ous rival who might dispute her supremacy ; but the spectacle of- fered thenceforth by the French court was a flagrant outrage to every principle of public decency, and produced results in the high- est degree prejudicial to the royal authority. The financial condition of the kingdom, which had greatly im- proved under the ministry of Fleury, became once more seriously damaged through the reckless extravagance of the king and the scandalous misgovernment of Madame de Pompadour and her creatures. The comptroller general, Machault, was entirely de- voted to the marchioness ; and with his connivance she com- menced the ruinous practice of drawing bills at sight {acquits cm comptant) upon the treasury, under the king's signature, and that A.D. 1749-1753. BEAUMONT AKCHBISHOP OF PAEIS. 497 to a prodigious extent : matters thus fell into inextricable confu- sion. In 17J:9 Machault imposed a tax of a twentieth upon all incomes, including those of the privileged orders. This excited general discontent, and was successfully resisted, especially by the clergy. It was followed up, however, by an edict of mortmain, which prohibited the foundation of any new religious establish- ment, and thus depi'ived the Church of future endowments; while, at the same time, an official survey {cadastre) was ordered of all ecclesiastical property, with the avowed purpose of taxing it for the benefit of the state. Upon this the clergy throughout the kingdom became violently exasperated, and their indignation found vent in measures of inquisitorial tyranny, which, however they might have been tolerated in medijeval times, now only served to bring them into general and deserved odium. The Archbishop of Paris, Christophe de Beaumont, a prelate of austere virtue and earnest but intolerant zeal, renewed the persecution against the Jansenists, who were supposed to be the authors of the late ob- noxious edicts. The cures of his diocese received orders to de- mand from the sick certificates of confession attesting their ac- ceptance of the bull Unigenitus, in default of which they were to be denied the last sacraments of the Church, and, by consequence, the privilege of Christian burial. This led to a struggle which embroiled all orders and parties in the state, and shook the very foundation of society. The cure of St. Etienne-du-Mont refused the sacraments to an ecclesiastic suspected of Jansenism. The Parliament of Paris promptly interposed, and caused the priest to be arrested. The agitation spread throughout the country ; the bishops fulminated angry pastorals against the Pai'liaments ; the Parliaments ordered these documents to be publicly burnt ; the court, siding alternately with both parties, exposed itself to deris- ion and contempt ; and the general confusion turned to the advant- age of a dangerous school now rapidly advancing in influence, that of the philosophers or free-thinkers, headed by Voltaire, who scoffed at ail religion, and were industriously plotting that total overthrow of established ideas and principles which was eventual- ly accomplished in the terrible Revolution. § 2. The contest reached its crisis in 1753, when, upon an at- tempt made by the Parliament to seize the temporalities of the in- flexible archbishop, and bring him to trial in the Court of Peers, the king banished and imprisoned most of the refractory magis- trates, and established a provisional court, called the Koyal Cham- ber, to undertake their duties. This measure excited such de- termined opposition, that Louis was compelled to recall the Par- liament in the following year. A compromise Avas now effected through the good offices of the Cardinal de llochefoucauld. The 498 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIV. bishops jigreed to give up insisting on the hillets de confession upon condition that the tax of the twentieth should no longer be en- forced upon the clergy. Machault was transferred from the min- istry of the finances to that of the marine. The Royal Chamber was suppressed, and the Parliament re-entered Paris in triumph on the 4th of September, 1754, having acquired, by its spirited re- sistance to the court, the warm sympathies of the great mass of the nation. The occasion chosen for this reconciliation was that of the birth of the Duke of Berry, second son of the dauphin, aft- erward the unfortunate Louis XVI. The Church party, however, although by their turbulent, per- secuting policy they had gained their point of remaining exempt from ordinary taxation, evaded the terms of the late agreement, and persisted in demanding the vexatious billets de confession. The court upon this changed sides, banished the archbishop to liis country house, and dismissed several other prelates to their dioceses. The Parliament, resolving to make the most of their advantage, now renewed their attacks upon the bull Unigenitus, suppressed a brief issued by the Pope with a view of settling the dispute, and obstinately refused to register an edict imposing some additional taxes in preparation for the war which M^as about to commence. This contumacious conduct was met by a vigorous stroke of despotic authority. Holding a bed of justice at Ver- sailles in December, 1756, Louis enforced the registration of the edicts in his presence, strictly forbade the Parliament to interfere at all with the ecclesiastical question in dispute, suppressed two of the chambers, and ordered that no member should henceforth have the right of voting till he had completed ten years of serv- ice. The magistrates withdrew in silence ; and the next day no less than one hundred and eighty of their number sent in their resignation. Mui-murs and indignation now resounded on all sides, and Par- is seemed ready, had the instigation been given at the moment, to break out into revolt. As it was, this ebullition of popular wrath impelled a crazy fanatic named Damiens to make an attempt upon the life of the sovereign. As Louis was stepping into his carriage at Versailles on the 5th of January, 1757, Damiens mingled with the crowd, and stabbed the king in the side with a penknife. The Avound was very slight, but considerable alarm was excited, as it was feared that the weapon might have been poisoned. Damiens declared that his purpose was to punish the king for his tyran- nical treatment of the Parliament, and to force him to take meas- ures for preventing the refusal of the sacraments. After being cruelly tortured, the wretched criminal was executed with all the frightful barbarities which the law denounced on parricides ; his A.D. 1754-175G. WAR BREAKS OUT WITH ENGLAND. 499 limbs were torn with red-hot pincers, and boiling melted lead w^as poured into the wounds ; after which his body was dragged in pieces by four horses, and the remains burnt and scattered to the winds. c This catastrophe led to a reaction of feeling among the con- tending parties, and at length put a period to their tedious strife. The exiled members of the Parliament were recalled, and the pre- lates were reinstated, upon the understanding that they would desist from all persecutions with regard to the bull TJnigenitus. The ministers Machault and D'Argenson were dismissed. A veil of oblivion was thrown over the past, and peace was apparently restored ; but neither the Jesuits nor the Parliaments had any reason in the sequel to congratulate themselves on the conse- quences of this unhappy conflict. § 3. While France was thus convulsed by internal dissension, her ancient and inextinguishable spirit of rivalry with England involved her once more in hostilities abroad. Various gi'ounds of complaint existed between the two governments ; and, in par- ticular, ditferences had arisen with regard to the boundary be- tween the British colony of Nova Scotia and the P^-ench posses- sions in Canada, which had been left im determined by the treat- ies of Utrecht and Aix-la-Chapelle. The English claimed the whole line of the St. Lawrence, as far as Lakes Erie and Onta- rio ; the French desired to limit them strictly to the peninsula of Acadia, or Nova Scotia proper. A commission was appointed to deliberate on the question ; but, in the mean time, the French erected a series of forts along the course of the Ohio, in order to connect their widely-separated provinces of Canada and Louisi- ana. This was resented by Great Britain as an aggression, the banks of the Ohio being regarded as belonging to the colony of New England ; remonstrances were made, but unavailingly ; and in May, 1754, an English force under Major Washington (after- ward the great American hero) was sent to the Ohio, with orders to interrupt and put a stop to the French operations. A French officer, proceeding with a small detachment to summon the in- truders to decamp, was surprised and cut to pieces with his whole party ; and the French promptly avenged his fall by attacking AVashington in his intrenchments, and forcing him to sign a ca- pitulation, by which he sacrificed a half-finished fort, with its ar- tillery, and quitted the contested territory. After this, war was no longer a matter of uncertainty; but still it was not actually declared till January, 175G, though hostilities had been cai-ried on by sea during the whole of the preceding year. § 4. Alliances were diligently negotiated by both the hostile courts. Louis XV., to the astonishment of Europe, concluded a 500 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIV. treaty with the imperial house of Austria, which for upward of two hundred years had been the inveterate enemy of France. The empress-queen, Maria Theresa, had adroitly flattered the van- ity of Madame de Pompadour by an autograph letter in which she gave her the title of " ma cousine ;" the favorite, charmed with tliis condescension, henceforth set her mind on contracting a close friendship with the court of Vienna ; and, the views of both par- ties tending to the same point, this strange and unnatural com- bination was arranged without difficulty. France and Austria now leagued themselves for the partition of Prussia by the treaty of Versailles (May 1, 1756), to which Rus- sia, Saxony, and Sweden afterward acceded. Frederick of Prus- sia, having been apprised of this confederacy through the treachery of a clerk in the Saxon service, was the first to strike a vigorous blow by seizing Leipsic and Dresden. Such was the origin of the mighty struggle known under the name of the Seven Years' War. Great Britain thereupon entered into a close alliance with Prus- sia, and the Duke of Cumberland took the command of the Han- overian army to oppose the French on the Lower Rhine. But the French, under the command of the Duke of Richelieu, forced the English commander to evacuate almost the whole of Hanover and Brunswick, and at length to sign an inglorious convention at Kloster-seven on the Elbe, by which Hanover was surrendered to the enemy until the conclusion of a peace, and the Hanoverians and other troops were disbanded and dismissed to their respective territories. The Duke of Richelieu had distinguished himself in the preceding year by a successful expedition against the island of Minorca. The English fleet under Admiral Byng had failed to relieve Fort St. Philip, had allowed the French squadron to escape without bringing it to a serious engagement, and had retired to Gibraltar. Port Mahon was thus abandoned to its fate, and sur- rendered to the French after a gallant resistance of nearly three months. The news of this affair was received with violent indig- nation in England. Admiral Byng was tried by a court-martial, found guilty of negligence and error of judgment, and, notwitli- standing every exertion to save his life, was shot in Portsmouth harbor in March, 1757. § 5. Frederick of Prussia, pursuing his successes, burst into Bohemia in May, 1757, and routed the Austrians in a desperate battle under the walls of Pi'ague. Flushed with victory, he now rashly attacked a far superior force of the Iinperialists under Mar- shal Daun, and sustained a severe defeat, which compelled him to repass the Bohemian frontier into Saxony. Prussia was invaded at the same moment by an army of seventy thousand Russians ; the Swedes landed in Pomerania ; the Austrians threatened Sile- A.U. 1757, 1758. HOSTILITIES IN NOKTH AMERICA. 501 sia ; and a second French army, under the Prince of Soubise, with an auxiliary corps of Germans, advanced upon Saxony. Fred- crick, like a lion at bay, confronted these hosts of enemies with dauntless courage and consummate military genius. He first turn- ed his arms against the Franco-Austrians, over whom he gained a splendid victory on the 3d of November, at the village of Ros- bach, the enemy, although vastly superior in number, being driven from the field in total disorder, with a loss of twelve thousand killed and wounded. A second victory over the Austrians at Leuthen, on the 5th of December, concluded the campaign, which had been signally unfavorable to France and her allies. The war was ^ow prosecuted Avith redoubled energy by En- gland, under the powerful ministry of William Pitt, afterward the great Lord Chatham. An enormous subsidy was granted to the King of Prussia ; the humiliating convention of Kloster-seven was indignantly repudiated ; the troops of Hanover, Brunswick, and Hesse were recalled to their standards; and the army was placed under the command of Prince Ferdinand of Brunswick, the ablest of the lieutenants of the King of Prussia, who not only drove the French out of Hanover, but even over the Rhine, whither he fol- lowed them, and gained, on the left bank, a victory at Creveld. The Prince of Soubise, however, having rallied and reunited his army after the disaster of Rosbach, re-entered Hanover, and gave battle to the allies at Lutterberg on the 7th of October with de- cided success. Meanwhile Frederick of Prussia defended himself with his usual skill and vigor against the Austrians and Russians, beating the former at Schweidnitz in Silesia, and totally over- throwing the latter in the sanguinary battle of Zorndorf. The Russians retired into Poland, and, although Frederick received a severe check from Marshal Daun at Hochkirchen, the Imperial- ists were unable to keep their ground in Saxony. § 6. The hostilities in North America were marked by brilliant valor and fluctuating fortune. The city of Louisburg, assailed by General Amherst and Admiral Boscawen, capitulated after a siege of six weeks ; a French squadron was burnt in the harbor, and near six thousand soldiers and sailors remained prisoners. The whole island of Cape Breton now fell into the hands of the English, and they obtained the command of the navigation of the St. Law- rence. An attempt to penetrate into Canada, however, was re- pulsed by the Marquess of Montcalm, the governor of that prov- ince, an officer of distinguished talent and merit; General Aber- cromby totally failed in an attack on Fort Ticonderoga, between Lakes George and Charaplain, and lost upward of two thousand men. But the gallant Montcalm was strangely neglected and abandoTied by the home government ; no re-enforcements reached 502 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIV. him from France ; and in the following year (1759) the British resumed their operations with an overwhelming force of near forty thousand men, in three grand divisions under Generals Amherst, Prideaux, and Wolfe. The latter, a commander young in years, but of pre-eminent gallantry, energy, and skill, ascended the St. Lawrence, and appeared before Quebec on the 25th of June, 1759. Montcalm, with admirable judgment, encamped in a position of great strength between the rivers Montmorency and St. Charles ; and on the enemy's attempting to cross and land by a narrow ford close to the falls of the Montmorency, they were received with so terrible a cannonade, that the plan was soon abandoned as hope- less. Meanwhile Wolfe received intelligence of the reduction of the forts at Ticonderoga and Crown Point by General Amherst ; and, resolving to make another effort for the possession of Que- bec, he landed his troops on the night of the 12th of September within a mile and a half of the city, and, scaling the precipitous heights of Abraham, hitherto deemed inaccessible, he established himself before morning in a position almost commanding Quebec. r.Iontcalm instantly crossed the St. Charles, and assailed the En- glish with desperate valor ; the battle was resolutely sustained on both sides ; but the French were considerably outnumbered, and in the end were driven back in great confusion on the tow^n. The two heroic leaders met death gloriously in the hottest of the ac- tion ; and five days afterward the governor of Quebec signed a capitulation by which the French evacuated the city and retired to Montreal. This misfortune decided the fate of the French North American territories. In the following year«General Am- herst concentrated his army, and surrounded the French at Mont- real. Here the governox", the Marquess of Vaudreuil, finding his situation hopeless, signed a convention on the 8th of September, 1760, by which his garrison became prisoners of war, and the French possessions in Canada were surrendered to the British crown. Nor was France at all more fortunate at this period in her mar- itime enterprises. The Duke of Choiseul, who succeeded the Cai'- dinal de Bernis as minister for foreign affairs in November, 1758, had formed the adventurous project of attacking England on her own shores ; and vast preparations were made for a descent, in the spring of 1759, in all the harbors from Dunkirk to Toulon. The Toulon squadron, under M. de la Clue, in attempting to pass the Straits of Gibraltar in order to unite with that of Brest, was attacked by the English under Admiral Boscawen off Cape Lagos, and a furious engagement followed, in which the French were de- feated with the loss of five of their largest ships. The Brest fleet, consisting of twenty-one sail of the line, put to sea on the 14 th of A.D. 1769-1762. THE FAMILY COMPACT. 503 November, under the command of the Count of Conflans, and, falling in soon afterward with twenty-three English vessels under Admiral Hawke, was almost annihilated in a desperate action oiF Belleisle. A few months later an armament left Dunkirk, and, effecting a descent on the north coast of Ireland, seized the town of Carrickfergus. Here the French commander, Thurot, was kill- ed, and the whole of his followers were made prisoners of war. In short, the naval genius and resources of Great Britain, under the vigorous direction of Pitt, were now so manifestly superior, that the cabinet of Versailles desisted from all attempts to main- tain the contest by sea. On the Continent the French forces were intrusted to the com- mand of Marshal Contades and the Duke de Broglie. They ob- tained several successes over Prince Ferdinand of Brunswick in the beginning of the campaign of 1759, but were unable to bring him to a general action till the 1st of August, when the two armies encountei'ed near Minden on the Weser, and the French received a severe defeat, sacrificing upward of seven thousand men. They now retreated precipitately upon Cassel, thus abandoning the electorate of Hanover, and almost the whole of Munster and Westphalia. § 7. Choiseul now formed a treaty of close alliance with the Spanish branch of the house of Bourbon. This treaty, so cele- brated under the name of the Family Compact, was signed at Versailles (Aug. 15, 1761). Louis XV. and Charles HI. guaran- teed their respective possessions in all parts of the world ; what- ever power might be laostile to the one was henceforth to be treat- ed as an enemy by the other, and peace was never to be made but by mutual consent. No power external to the house of Bourbon was to be admitted as a* party to the treaty. Other articles stip- ulated the amount of forces by land and sea to be furnished by each court on demand. This famous alliance, however, by no means realized the san- guine expectations entertained by its author. It soon became known to Pitt, who resigned office because his colleagues would not consent to an immediate rupture with Spain. Nevertheless, his successor, Lord Egremont, found it necessary to adopt the same views, and war was proclaimed by Great Britain against Spain on the 4th of January, 1762. The flourishing city of Ha- vana, the capital of Cuba, was successfully attacked by the En- glish during the next summer ; a considerable fleet Avas captured in the harbor, together with treasure amounting to several mil- lions. The islands belonging to France in the Caribbean Sea — Martinique, Grenada, Tobago, and others — fell into the hands of the British during tlie same year. Spain was also compelled to surrender hcv rieli colonies in the Philippine Islands. 504 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIV. The Kill" of Prussia, meanwhile, had maintained the war with unabated vigor and ability, though by no means with uniform suc- cess. At one time his capital itself was occupied by the Aus- trians and Russians ; he afterward defeated the Austrians at Tor- gau, but was again seriously crippled by the loss of Schweidnitz and Colberg, and the general posture of his affairs became to the last degree critical and disheartening. An unexpected change in his favor occurred on the accession of Peter III. to the imperial throne of Russia, in January, 1762. The new emperor, who was an ardent admirer of the martial genius of Frederick, immediately established friendly relations between the two courts ; his exam- ple was followed by Sweden ; and although the emperor died within a few months, his successor, the Empress Catharine, re- fused to renew the war, and observed a strict neutrality. But Prussia, exhausted by her tei-rible sacrifices, was now anxious for the restoration of peace^ Lord Bute, who had lately succeeded to the direction of affairs in England, was animated by similar views, and peace was concluded by the Treaty of Paris on the 10th of February, 1763. The extraordinary good fortune which had attended the arms of England justified her on this occasion in exacting costly and humiliating conditions from her rival. France surrendered the whole territory of Canada, Cape Breton, and other islands in the gulf and river of St. Lawrence, and all that part of Louisiana which lies east of the Mississippi, She also ceded the West Indian Islands of Grenada, Tobago, St. Vincent, and Dominica, and the settlement of Senegal on the coast of Africa. Minorca was re- stored to Great Britain ; Martinique, St. Lucia, and Belleisle to France. The French likcAvise recovered their factories in the East Indies, but on the express condition oT maintaining no troops and erecting no fortifications in Bengal. The right of fishery on the coast of Newfoundland was conceded to France, with the small islands of St. Pierre and Miquelon for the protection of the fisher- men. The fortifications of Dunkirk, it was once more stipulated, were to be demolished. Tlie peace of Paris was immediately followed by a treaty signed at Hubertsburg between Austria and Prussia, which left the for- mer power in the enjoyment of precisely the same extent of terri- tory as before the war. Thus, after this sanguinary struggle of seven years, which had cost Austria one hundred and forty thou- sand men and Prussia one hundred and eighty thousand, the gen- eral balance of power on the Continent of Europe remained ulti- mately unchanged. § 8. The ignominious peace of Paris was closely followed by one of the most remarkable transactions of the administration of A.D. 1759. SUPPRESSION OF THE ORDER OF JESUITS. 505 Choiseul, namely, the suppression of the Ordei* of the Jesuits in France. We have already noticed the extraordinaiy power ac- quired by this celebrated community. After having successfully combated the Lutheranism and Calvinism of the sixteenth cen- tury, it had become dominant among the clergy of France^ — had gained the confidence of royalty — had governed the consciences of three monarchs in succession — and had thus exercised a vast though secret influence u^Don the political movements and fortunes of the state. The first serious blow against the Order was that aimed by the Jansenists. That pernicious system of morals which had been so mercilessly exposed by the reasonings and sarcasms of a Pascal and an Arnauld never afterward recovered its hold upon the public mind. The persecution of the Port-Royalists, ■which Avas presumed to be instigated by their rivals, increased their discredit ; and the contest between the court and the Par- liaments, in which the latter, as we have seen, suftered repeatedly from measures of the most galling and oppressive tyranny, drew upon them the deadly hatred of the magistracy, backed by the popular party throughout the kingdom. The Encyclopasdists, again — the school of skeptical philosophers, led by Voltaire, Dide- rot, and D'Alembert — had joined with vehement animosity in the outciy against the Jesuits, and contributed not a little to their final downfall. The Duke of Choiseul Avas their bitter enemy, and had for some time resolved on their ruin, in secret concert with Madame de Pompadour, whom they had mortally offended by an attempt to put an end to her scandalous connection Avith the king. These manifold seeds of hostility produced at no distant period their natural fruits. Having incurred the enmity of the Portu- guese minister Pombal, the Jesuits were expelled from Portugal in 1759, upon an vmjust accusation of having fomented sedition in their settlements in Paraguay, and of being concerned in a mys- terious attempt to assassinate the King of Portugal, Joseph L This gave a ncAv impulse to the intrigues against the company in France ; and an occasion soon presented itself of proceeding ac- tively against them, of which their enemies were not slow to take advantage. The immense extent and success of the missions conducted by the Jesuits had encouraged them to embark largely in commercial enterprises ; and the enormous wealth thus accumulated was one of the abuses in the Order against which public opinion most loudly exclaimed. Among other speculations, Father Lavalette, the superior of the missions in the Antilles, had established a mercantile and banking firm at Martinique, Avhich corresponded with all the principal houses in France and Europe. In consc- Y 506 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIV. quenee of the extensive damage inflicted by the English on French commerce during the Seven Years' AVar, Lavalette became a de- faulter to the amount of three millions of francs ; two of his cred- itors, merchants of Marseilles, regarding the whole Order as re- sponsible for its bankrupt member, demanded compensation from the general, Ricci ; which being refused, they appealed to the courts of justice, and obtained a decision in favor of their claims. The Jesuits, with fatal indisci'etion, now carried their cause before the Parliament of Paris ; that tribunal proceeded to examine the constitutions of the society, and, having ascertained that by these rules the whole of the corporate property was absolutely vested in the general, gave judgment that the Order, as a body, was answer- able for Lavalette, and bound to discharge all his liabilities. The publication of this decree gave the signal for an attack upon the Jesuits by most of the provincial Parliaments. After much hesitation, Louis at length yielded to the persuasions of liis minister and his vindictive mistress, and abandoned the unfor- tunate Jesuits to the Parliament of Paris. That tribunal passed a decree on the 6th of August, 1762, by which the Society of Jesus was abolished in France, its members secularized, and the whole of its pi'operty confiscated. The sentence was executed with un- relenting vigor ; and two years later the extinction of the Jesuits was finally confirmed by a royal edict of the 26th of November, 1764. After having been successively banished from Spain, Na- ples, and Parma, the Order was formally abolished by a bull of Pope Clement XIV. in 1773. Madame de Pompadour did not long survive her triumph over the Jesuits ; she died in April, 1764, at the age of forty-four, having maintained her ascendency over the king, and her influ- ence in the councils, of the state, to the last hour of her life. The dauphin, a prince of excellent character, but of no political im- portance, was carried off by consumption in the following year, at the age of thirty-six, leaving three sons, who became in the sequel Louis XVI., Louis XVIIL, and Charles X. The dauphiness, a pi'incess of Saxony, expired in 1767 ; and the patient, neglected queen, Maria Leczynski, Avas borne to the grave in June, 1768. Her father, the excellent Stanislas, after a prosperous and useful reign of twenty years in Lorraine, had preceded her to the tomb in February, 1766, upon which the duchies of Lorraine and Bar were definitively incorporated with the French monarchy. § 9. Louis XV. was to all external appearance profoundly af- fected by the death of his amiable consort. He wept over her re- mains, seemed for some time absorbed in sorrow, and gave signs of a real resolution to amend his course of life. But these im- pressions wei-e but transient ; little more than a year had elapsed A.D. 1768. ANNEXATION OF CORSICA. 597 before he resumed his habits of profligacy, and descended to the lowest depth of infamy by connecting himself with an abandoned woman named, Jeanne Vaubernier, who, having been married, by the king's command, to a nobleman of the court, was soon intro- duced at Versailles as the Countess du Barry. Choiseul, highly to his honor, remonstrated strongly and almost indignantly with Louis against this new degradation of the throne of France, and treated the upstart countess with undissembled scorn and disgust. He thus created for Inmself a powerful enemy ; and a sort of co- alition was ere long formed against the minister between Madame du Barry, the Duke of Aiguillon, governor of Brittany, the Chan- cellor Maupeou, and the Abbe Terray, comptroller "general of the finances. Choiseul, however, continued for the present to hold the reins of power ; and his administration was on the whole wise, enlightened, upriglit, and beneficial to France. One of the most important events of this period Avas the an- nexation of the island of Corsica to the French dominions, which took place in 1768. Corsica had been for a long series of years subject to the Genoese republic ; twice the inhabitants had shaken off this foreign yoke, and declared themselves independent ; and twice had France interfered, at the request of Genoa, to reduce them to submission to their former masters. On the second oc- currence, however, the popular cause was so vigorously maintain- ed by the celebrated General Pascal Paoli, that the Genoese gave up all hope of ever re-establishing their power. Choiseul re- solved to avail himself of these circumstances to obtain possessiori of Corsica for France. A convention was concluded, by which the Genoese relinquished all their rights in favor of Louis XV. ; a large military force was immediately dispatched to the island ; and although the brave Paoli made a stout resistance, and kept up hostilities for more than a whole year, he was compelled to yield in the end, and the whole island submitted to the sovereign- ty of France. § 10. A violent and complicated struggle now commenced be- tween Choiseul and his enemies, which at length ended in the overthrow of the minister. It was, in point of fact, a vindictive movement of the vanquished Jesuitical party, to retaliate upon those who had caused their doAvnfall. The Duke of Aiguillon, the leader of the faction opposed to Choiseul, liad made himself odious by his unwise and tyrannical administration in Brittany. The Parliament of Pennes instituted a process against him for abuse of power ; but the king transferred the hearing of his cause from Rennes to Paris, on the ground that the accused was a peer of France ; and as the Parisian Parliament showed itself disposed to still more violent measures, Louis at last forbade them alto- 508 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIY. gether to proceed with tlie trial. Upon this the Parliament had the audacity to declare the duke suspended from his privileges and functions as a peer; the king instantly held a bed of justice, and annulled the decree ; and the rebellious magistrates forthwith put a stop to the administration of justice. The Duke of Aiguil- lon, warmly supported by his friends Maupeou and Terray, now urged Louis to take severe and decisive steps against the body which thus insolently braved his sovereign authority. They rep- resented that the Parliament must be signally chastised and hum- bled if the king would avert the impending danger of a civil war ; and, as a necessary preliminary measure, they insisted on the dis- missal of Choiseul, by whom the magistrates were known to have been mainly encouraged in their resistance to the court. Second- ed by the importunate entreaties of the vile Du Barry, these in- trigues against the minister were at length successful. A royal order of the 24th December, 1770, deprived Choiseul of his of- fices, and banished him to his estate at Chanteloup. He carried with him into retirement the sincere admiration, respect, and re- gret of the greater part of the nation. The confederates now seized the helm of government ; Aiguil- lon was nominated secretary of state for foreign affairs. The Par- liament soon felt the vengeance of the new ministry. On the night of the 19th of January, 1771, the magistrates were awakened in their several dwellings by gendarmes, who presented to them a royal command to resume their judicial duties, to which they were required to answer on the spot either yes or no. Out of near two hundred, barely forty signed in the aflRrm.ative, and these retracted their assent the next day. They were at once removed from their posts, and banished by lettres de cachet into different parts of France. The court next proceeded to the hazardous step of sup- pressing altogether the ancient Parliaments of the realm, both in the capital and in the provinces. Six new tribunals, under the name of conseils supei'ieurs, were instituted in the towns of Arras, Blois, Chalons-sur-Marne, Clermont, Lyon, and Poitiers, the cen- tral court of justice being still maintained at Paris. In order to recommend the new Parliament to public favor, Maupeou an- nounced that justice would be administered gratuitously, and that the delays, perversions, and venality of the old system would be swept away. This great organic change was not accomplished without pro- tests and expostulations, in which even princes of the blood took part ; but it excited no determined or sustained opposition. Nev- ertheless, the tendency of such arbitrary proceedings was not un- perceived by those who looked deeper than the surface. The pres- ident of the court of aides at Paris, the virtuous Lamoignon dc A.D. 1772. THE FACTE DE FAMINE. 599 Malesherbes, complained to the king with honest and eloquent freedom of the systematic infraction of the ancient constitution of France, and declared that no resource was left for the nation but the calling together of the States-General, which had been totally disused for upward of a century and a half His words were echoed by several distinguished members of the Parliaments of Besangon, Toulouse, and Rouen. But the king, absorbed in selfish apathy, took no heed to these presages of the coming storm, and suffered nothing to disturb his self-complacency. He con- stantly repeated his belief that things would last in their present state at least as long as himself, and added that his successor must shift as he could. " Apres nous le deluge," was the favorite max- im of this infatuated court in the days which immediately pre- ceded its ruin. § 11. The closing years of Louis XV. present but few events deserving of special notice. The finances of the state being still disordered to an alarming extent, the minister Terray resorted to various desperate remedies, such as that of breaking faith with the national creditor by sudden reductions of the interest on gov- ernment securities, and the imposition of excessive taxes. His utmost efforts only succeeded in reducing the annual deficit to twenty-five millions of francs ; the total amount of the public in- come being three hundred and seventy-five millions, while the an- nual expenditure reached four hundred millions. At the same time, the distress of the lower classes was grievously augmented by a scandalous association called the " Facte de Famine," which produced artificially an immense rise in the price of corn. The king liimself was a large shareholder in this company, which bought up the grain in France, exported it, and then reintro- duced it at an enormous profit. The people were thus driven to the last extremity of misery ; and yet no one ventured to raise his voice against this abominable traffic, the slightest complaint being followed by consignment to the dungeons of the Bastile. Who can wonder that, under such a government, the most fierce and deadly hatred was engendered toward the throne and the privileged orders among the suffering multitudes who lay prostrate under their iron yoke ? The ti'iumvirate Avho had procured the disgrace of Choiseul — Aiguillon, Maupeou, and Terray — remained in ofl^ce till the end of the reign, but with small honor or success, either in their do- mestic or external administration. Aiguillon tamely permitted in 1772 the disgraceful partition of the kingdom of Poland be- tween Russia, Austria, and Prussia ; upon which occasion Louis observed that, had Choiseul been still at the head of affairs, such a transaction could never have taken place. 510 LOUIS XV. Chap. XXIV. Ill the midst of the accumulated abuses and embaiTassments of a disorganized and decaying monarchy, Louis XV". at length died at the age of sixty-four, on the 10th of May, 1774, after a reign of fifty-eight years. An attack of malignant small-pox had reduced his already distempered frame to a mass of corruption even before it proved fatal. His remains were hastily consigned to the coffin, and transported without pomp to St. Denis, amid the scarcely suppressed contempt and maledictions of the people. § 12. Encouraged by the scandalous misgovernment, corrup- tions, and social disorders of this reign, the "new opinions," as they were called, had made an extraordinary and alarming prog- ress. All institutions, religious, political, and domestic, were alike criticised in a spirit of daring reckless independence. The great principle of authority was unscrupulously attacked in all its bear- ings ; and as the reformers employed with masterly ability every available weapon — wit, sarcasm, invective, argument, appeals to the passions, to self-love, to the natural instinct of self-direction, to common sense, to the original laws and liberties of our being — the agitation they created was felt ere long in the remotest cor- ners of the empire. The president Montesquieu, Voltaire, Dide- rot, D' Alembert, Helvetius, Condillac, the Abbe Kaynal, were the chief apostles of the new philosophy, and went far to revolution- ize the views of the nation as to the established system xinder which they found themselves. Their principal work was the cel- ebrated " Encyclope'die," a huge store-house of general informa- tion in seventeen volumes folio, deeply imbued throughout with materialist, democratic, and irreligious doctrines. But the writer who acquired the most extensive and pernicious influence over, the mind of France at this period was undoubtedly Jean Jacques Kousseau. In his works on the " Inequality of the Condition of Mankind," in his " Emile," " Contrat Social," and " Nouvelle Heloise," he developed his notions on the reconstruction of so- ciety with a subtlety, a charm of style, a specious air of philan- thropy, a false morbid sensibility, peculiarly attractive to the Fi-ench character, but the effects of which Avent directly to un- dermine and subvert the very foundations of religion, morality, and legitimate government. Under such guides the French people had become penetrated with an intense anxiety for change. Freedom of thought and be- lief — complete security for person and property — radical adminis- trative reform — equality of taxation — the abolition of state mo- nopolies — free competition in trade and manufactures, were clam- orously demanded on all sides. The lower classes were in a state of angry and malignant alienation from their rulers, and thorough- ly determined to obtain, sooner or later, a complete redress of their Chap. XXIV. INFATUATION OF THE NOBILITY. . 511 manifold wrongs. The court and the privileged orders, on the other hand, seemed given over to the blindness of infatuation. Devoted to their pleasures, they refused to recognize the sio-ns of the times, and utterly disregarded the miseries and murmurs of their dependents. When at length they awoke to a sense of the danger, it was too late to retrieve their error ; they had been slumbering on the ashes of a volcano, which suddenly burst and overwhelmed them in destruction. NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. AUTIIOEITIES FOR THE REIGN OF LOUIS XV. For this period tlie chief worki? to be con- sulted are the Memoirs of the Due de. ^toail- l''-i; the Journal de VAvocat Barhier, 1718- 1703 ; Voltaire, Steele de Louis XV. ; de Toc- queville, Hisioire PMlosopMque du Regne de Louis XV. ; and Lacretelle, Histoire de Francapendant le Dix-huitienie Sieole. Also the very entertaining Memoirs of the Mar- quise de Crequy. Medal struck to couuuemoi-ate the alliance of France and the United States against England. CHAPTER XXV. REIGN OF LOUIS XVI. I. FROM HIS ACCESSION TO THE MEETING OF THE STATES-GENERAL. A.D. 1774-1789. § 1. Accession of Louis XVI. ; his Cliaracter; Maria Antoinette ; the Count de Maurepas ; Turgot ; Necker. § 2. France supports the Americans in their Contest with England ; Naval Action in the Channel ; Hostilities in the West Indies. § 3. The "Armed Neutrality;" Naval Actions of De Grasse ; his Defeat by Admiral Rodney ; Siege of Gibraltar. § 4. The Bailli de Suffren in the East Indies; Peace of Versailles. § 5. "Compte Rendu" of Necker ; his Resignation ; Ministry of Calonne ; Assembly of Notables. § 6. Administration of Cardinal de Brienne ; the Parliament exiled to Troyes ; Arrest and Imprisonment of D'Epremesnil ; the " Cour ple'niere." § 7. Necker recalled; the States-General summoned; Ques- tions as to their Composition. § 8. Sieyes' Pamphlet on the Tiers Etat ; Meeting of the States-General at Versailles. § 1. Louis XVI., the thivd son of the dauphin, only legitimate son of Louis XV., ascended the throne in the twentieth year of his age, having been born at Versailles on the 2od of August, 1754. His education had been directed by the Duke of Vauguyon, a frivolous and narrow-minded courtier, who totally neglected to instruct his pupil in the art of government, the affairs of state, and the duties of his future station. Louis was full of excellent intentions, pure in morals, not deficient in natural good sense, and sincerely anxious for the welfare of his subjects; but he was dif- fident and timid to a fault, lamentably Avanting in strength and energy of character, and, by an unfortunate fatality, always dis- posed both to be firm and to give way at the wrong moment. He was also too decidedly under the influence of his young and lovely queen, Marie Antoinette, a daughter of the Empress Maria Theresa, who combined with the imperious temper of her house a levity and frivolity of manners which soon rendered her unpopu- lar, and whose counsels, in the difficult circumstances in which the court was placed, were often deplorably ill-judged. A.D.1774. LOUIS XVI.'S FIEST MINISTEY. 513 The first act of the new monarch was to displace the Duke of Aiguillon, and to appoint as principal minister the Count de Mau- repas, a nobleman of slender political talent, and withal upward of seventy years of age, who had formerly been disgraced and ban- ished from court for having offended Madame de Pompadour. His chief colleagues were the Count de Vergenries, minister of foreign affairs ; the Count de St. Germain, minister at war ; Tur- got, who was at first minister of marine, but was soon transferred to the comptrollership of the finances ; and Lamoignon de Males- herbes, who was placed at the head of the king's household. Turgot was a disciple of Rousseau, and the head of the party call- ed " Economistes ;" a man of superior character and real genius, of whom his friend Malesherbes said that he possessed "the heart of L'Hopital and the head of Bacon." He was a successful au- thor, and had gained a high reputation for administrative talent as intendant at Limoges. Turgot addressed himself immediately to several measures of reform of the highest importance ; his lead- ing pi'inciple was that of making all oi'ders and classes contribute in just proportion to the burdens of the state. He therefore prp- posed the abolition of the corvee, or compulsory repair of the high roads by the peasantry of the district ; the imposition of a mod- erate land-tax on the nobles and clergy; the establishment of free trade in corn within the kingdom ; and the suppression of various antiquated corporations and monopolies which fettered the na- tional industry. " No bankruptcies, no augmentation of taxes, no loans" — such was the financial programme of Turgot; and during his brief tenure of office he succeeded in retrenching no less than one hundred millions of francs from the liabilities of the state. But the plans of this enlightened minister were unhappily thwarted by the blind selfishness of the noblesse, the court party, and all the numerous classes interested in keeping up the prevail- ing abuses. On the appearance of the edict for the free circula- tion of grain much opposition was excited, and disturbances took place in the agricultural districts ; bands of rioters even invaded Versailles and the environs of Paris, and committed excesses which it was found necessary to repress by force. The Parliament, which Louis, by the mistaken advice of Maurepas, had re-estab- lished, refused to accept the projects for abolishing the corvee and other unequal burdens; and, although the registration of these edicts was compelled in a bed of justice, the current of hostility now set in so strongly against Turgot that the feeble-minded Louis became afraid to support him, and the fair prospect of a safe con- servative reformation was accordingly sacrificed to selfish and ig- norant clamor. Turgot was dismissed from office in May, 177C ; his friend Malesherbes had previously sent in his resignation. Y 2 514 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXV. The schemes of reform were now abandoned, and the corve'e re- imposed. Maurepas continued at the bead of the government, and, after a brief interval, M. Necker, a wealthy banker of Gene- va, who enjoyed higli credit in the commercial world, was named to the management of the finances in June, 1777. Necker was a man of perspicuous views, liberal principles, and distinguished abil- ity ; but he was not so bold and determined as his predecessor Turgot in attacking the root of the evils which afilicted France. The expedient upon which he chiefly relied for the relief of the finances was that of negotiating successive loans, which, owing to the confidence inspired by his great talents and brilliant reputa- tion, he was enabled to raise with wonderful facility. Necker also swept away no less than six hundred superfluous and sinecure of- fices connected with the court and the administration — a measure which produced an immense saving to the public service ; and he effected a farther reduction of expenditure by changes in the mode of collecting the revenue. In order to be in a more favorable po- sition for suppressing the salaries of others, Necker steadily de- clined to accept the emoluments of his own office. § 2. But fresh and serious embarrassments, upon which Necker had not calculated, arose not long after his accession to power, from the unwise intervention of France in the quarrel between Great Britain and her North American colonies. Shortly after the American declaration of independence, signed on the 4th of July, 1776, three deputies from the new Kepublic — Benjamin Franklin, Arthur Lee, and Silas Deane — arrived in Paris to so- licit aid from France in the struggle against the mother country. Their presence created an extraordinary sensation ; and the en- thusiasm thus produced was undoubtedly one of the causes which contributed powerfully to the subsequent outbreak of the Revolu- tion. Louis XVI. was strongly averse to any proceeding at this moment which might involve him in a war with England. His ministers, especially Necker, shared his sentiments ; but the ex- pression of popular sympathy with the Americans was so ardent and so general that it was deemed imprudent to resist it ; and on the 8th of February, 1778, a treaty of commerce and alliance was signed with the United States, by Avhich, although France ex- pressed a wish to remain neutral in the contest, it was agreed that, in the event of a rupture, an auxiliary French force should be sent to America, and that peace should not be made until Great Britain had fully recognized the independence of the colo- nies. Immediately on the receipt of this intelligence the British government directed its embassador to withdraw from Paris ; and, without any regular declaration of war, orders were given for tlie seizure of vessels found in the ports of the two countries. It was A.D. 1778-1780. WAR WITH ENGLAND. 515 now that the young and high-spirited Marquess de la Fayette, afterward so celebrated in the Revolution, equipped a ship at his own expense, and proceeded to join the army of the American patriots under General Washington. Immense exertions had been made since the conclusion of the last war to reorganize the French marine ; a very powerful navy had been collected in the various harbors; and the hostilities which followed were almost entii-ely maritime. A fleet of thirty-two sail-of-the-line quitted Brest under the command of the Count D'Orvilliers, and on the 27th of July (1778) encountered the En- glish Admiral Keppel, with thirty ships, within sight of the Isle of Ushant. A severe running-light of some hours ensued, but without decisive result, not a single ship being lost on either side ; the French, however, were the most seriously damaged, and es- caped with difficulty into Brest to refit. Still it was regarded as almost equivalent to a victory to have fought a general naval ac- tion with the English without sustaining a total defeat. Another French squadron, under the Count D'Estaing, appeared olF the American coast, and afterward steered for the West Indies. In the following year, having received a considerable re-enforcement, the Count D'Estaing fought an action with Admiral Byron of}' St. Lucia, and, thougli not decidedly victorious, obtained a partial success. The cabinet of Versailles now summoned Spain, in accordance with the Family Compact, to take part in the contest with Great Britain. War was accordingly declared, and, the fleet of D'Or- villiers having united with thirty Spanish sail-of-the-line near Ca- diz, this second Armada entered the British Channel. The En- glisli force under Admiral Hardy, then cruising in the Bay of Biscay, numbered only thirty-eight sail, while that of the enemy amounted to sixty-seven. There was a moment of considerable alarm in England; but, to the general surprise, the allied fleet, on coming up with Hardy off Plymouth, made no attempt to bring on an engagement ; the French and Spanish crews were suf- fering greatly from epidemic sickness ; tempestuous weather en- sued ; and D'Orvilliers, not venturing to risk a battle, effected his retreat to Brest in a shattered state. A Franco-Spanish arma- ment, meanwhile, made an abortive attempt to reduce Gibraltar. The hope of recovering that commanding fortress seems indeed to have been the main motive of the court of Madrid in engaging in the war. Sir George Rodney, however, defeated a Spanish squadron off Cape St. Vincent on the 8th of January, 1780, after which he relieved and revictualed Gibraltar, and, proceeding to the West Indies, fought two actions with the French Admiral Guichen, in which victory did not declare positively for either side. 516 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXV. § 3. A coalition was formed in 1780 by the northern powers, under the name of the "Armed Neutrality," for protecting mer- chandise carried in neutral vessels against the right of search which had been hitherto exercised by the cruisers of Great Britain. Russia, Prussia, Denmark, Sweden, and Holland were the original members of this league ; the Two Sicilies and Portugal afterward acceded to it. Upon this, a rupture ensued between England and the States of Holland; the British fleets received orders to attack the Dutch colonies both in the East and West Indies ; and, the Dutch government appealing to France for protection and succor, the war was prosecuted with renewed vigor. At the urgent re- quest of General Washington, a powerful armament was now dis- patched to his assistance, under the Count de Kochambeau, who placed himself under the orders of the American leader. A splendid fleet of twenty-eight sail, commanded by the Count de Grasse, crossed the Atlantic early in 1781 to support this move- ment ; and, having fought an indecisive action with the English Admiral Graves, anchored in the Chesapeake on the 10th of Sep- tember. The combined French and Americans now blockaded the English under Lord Cornwallis at Yorktown, cut off his com- munications with New York, and reduced him to the mortifying necessity of capitulating with his whole force on the 19th of Oc- tober, 1781. On this occasion the whole of the shipping in the harbor of Yorktown was surrendered to the King of France. This transaction had a decisive effect upon the course of the war in America, and may be said to have sealed the triumph of the insurgent colonies. Among the many distinguished French vol- unteers Avho shared the dangers and glory of this memorable strug- gle, we find, besides La Fayette and Rochambeau, the names of the Duke of Lauzun, the Vicomte de Noailles, Alexandre Berthier, Mathieu Dumas, and Charles de Lameth. The French were on several occasions successful in their naval operations in the West Indies. De Grasse captured Tobago, and recovered the Dutch island of St. Eustatius, which had been taken by the British ; after which, his fleet, in conjunction with a land- force under the Marquess of Bouille', attacked and reduced the isl- ands of St. Christopher's, Nevis, and Montserrat. The French commanders next projected an attempt upon Jamaica ; for this purpose De Grasse sailed from Martinique with thirty-two ships, intending to form a junction with the Spaniards at Hispaniola; but on the 12th of April, 1782, he was overtaken by Admiral Rodney with a somewhat superior English fleet, and a general and desperate action followed, in which the British admiral practiced for the first time the daring manceuvre of breaking through the enemy's line, and in the end gained a decisive victoiy, capturing A.D. 1782. SIEGE OF GIBEALTAR. 517 seven shlps-of-the-line and two frigates. The "Ville de Paris," the French Admiral's flag-ship, a magnificent vessel of one hund- red and twenty guns, was compelled to strike her colors after a most gallant defense, and De Grasse himself became a prisoner. The rest of his ships bore away for St. Domingo in a very disabled condition. This great disaster put an end to the enterprise against Jamaica, and dealt a fatal blow to the maritime power of France and Spain in the West Indies. An expedition against Minorca, under the Duke de Crillon, met with better success. The combined French and Spanish fleets disembarked fourteen thousand men upon the island ; and the brave English garrison under Genei-al Murray, after sustaining a siege of five months, capitulated in February, 1782. After this exploit the allied commanders made extraordinary exertions to accomplish the reduction of Gibraltar, the siege of which had al- ready lasted, in a desultory manner, for upward of three years. The gallant defense of this fortress by General Elliot was one of the most celebrated and glorious achievements of the war. A fleet of forty-eight sail blockaded the bay, while an army of forty thousand men was massed upon the shore ; two princes of the blood-royal of Finance, the Count D'Artois and the Duke of Bour- bon, were present in the besieging lines. The expedient of im- mense floating batteries, invented by a French engineer, the Cheva- lier D' Argon, was tried with sanguine hopes of success ; but it was found, after a time, that they were not proof against the tre- mendous cannonade of red-hot balls from the English batteries ; their powder-magazines exploded, and the whole flotilla was de- stroyed. Lord Howe, dispatched with a large fleet to the relief of the besieged, contrived, with admirable courage and dexterity, to reach the harbor of Gibraltar during the temporary absence of the blockading force ; ample supplies were furnished to the garri- son, and the assailants fruitlessly continued the siege till the close of the war, without the slightest prospect of a successful result. Such was the final failure of the vigorous and repeated efforts of the Spanish crown to recover Gibraltar by force of arms ; nego- tiation was afterward resorted to, with much eagerness and per- tinacity, for the same purpose, but was ultimately unsucces^ul, and Gibraltar was left in the permanent possession of Great Britain. § 4. One of the most distinguished of the French commanders in this war was the Bailli de Suffren, who was sent to the East Indies with a powerful fleet in 1781, to co-operate with the famous Hyder Ali, Sultan of Mysore, against the British dominion in the Carnatic. On his way out he fought a sharp action with Com- modore Johnstone oft" the Cape de Verd Islands; and, having 5 1 8 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXV. reached the coast of Coromandel, he engaged in several spirited encounters with the squadron of Sir E.Hughes, in which the ad- vantage was, on the whole, on the side of the French. Sulfren recovered the Dutch post of Trincomalee, which the English ad- miral had captured a short time before. Hyder Ali died toward the close of 1782, but his son Tippoo Saib prosecuted the Avar Avith the English with equal resolution, and Avas supported Avith great skill and energy by Suffren. After another hard-fought ac- tion with Admiral Hughes off Cuddalore, Suffren relieved the gar- rison of that place, and hostilities Avere soon afterAvard terminated by the arrival from Europe of the tidings of a general peace. The ministry of Lord North, having resigned in March, 1782, Avas succeeded by that of Lord Rockingham, Avhich immediately entered into communication Avith the Count de Vergennes, French minister of foreign affairs, Avith a vicAV to put an end to the Avar. Louis XVI. and his cabinet Avere noAV anxious for peace, for the Avar had already cost the country one thousand four hundred mil- lions of francs, and the treasury Avas exhausted. Considerable difficulties, hoAvever, intervened ; and it AA^as not till tlje States of America had signed a separate treaty with Great Britain, with- out the knowledge of their allies, that the three European pow- ers at length effected an accommodation. The preliminaries Avere signed at Versailles on the 20th of Januarj^, 1783, and the defini- tive treaty on the 3d of September folloAving. France obtained on this occasion .honorable and adA^antageous terms, Avhich efiaced in great measure the humiliation of 1763. All the stipiilations of former treaties Avith respect to the fortifications and harbor of Dunkirk Avere now canceled. France recoA'ered all her posses- sions in the East Indies, Avith a considerable addition of territory round Fondicherry and Carical. Tobago was ceded to her in the West Indies, Senegal and Goree in Africa. The West India isl- ands Avhich she had captured Avere restored to England. Arrange- ments Avere likcAvise made for a commercial treaty, upon the prin- ciple of moderate ad valorem duties, betAveen the two countries. § 5. Great changes had taken place in the French administra- tion since tlie commencement of the Avar. Necker persuaded the kinc^ to sanction, early in 1781, the publication of his famous " Compte rendu," Avhich, for the first time, professed to place be- fore the eyes of the nation a complete account of the receipts and expenditure of the state. According to this official report, Avhich Avas marked by a somcAvhat ostentatious personal vanity, the de- ficit in the finances had already disappeared, and the public rcA-- enue exceeded the expenditure by ten millions of francs. The grounds of this result, hoAvever, Avere not very clearly demon- strated, and Avere probably to some extent fallacious ; indeed, the A.D. 1781-1783. NECKER— CALONNE. 5I9 Avisdom of the whole proceeding seems extremely questionable. The implied appeal to the sense and judgment of the nation ren- dered it popular among the middle classes, and the great capital- ists readily furnished two new loans upon the strength of its rep- resentations ; but, on the other hand, it awakened the jealousy of the Count de Maurepas — it oiFended the privileged orders, as be- ing an exposure of th^f glaring abuse of their exemption from tax- ation — and after a time the king himself took umbrage at it, hav- ing been persuaded by the queen and the courtiers that such a publication tended to degrade the supreme authority of the crown in the eyes of the subject. Another scheme of Necker's — a plan of administrative reform by the creation of provincial represent- ative assemblies — roused against him the bitter hostility of the Parliament of Paris, which body, since its restoration, had evinced an nni-easonable, obstructive, and factious spirit. Necker found himself surrounded by intrigues, embarrassments, and discontent ; he was even denied by Maurepas a seat in the council of state on the ground of his being a Protestant ; and the result Avas that this patriotic statesman, in disgust, tendered his resignation, which Avas accepted by the king on the 25th' of May, 1781. The imbe- cile Maurepas died a few months afterward ; and the Count de Vergennes, without being named prime minister, succeeded to the chief place in the confidence of the king. Joly de Fleury now undertook- the direction of the finances, in which he proved him- self signally incapable ; D'Ormesson, his successor, retained the office for only seven months ; and at length M. de Calonne, for- merly intendant at Lille, Avas preferred to the control of the finances, chiefly by the favor and recommendation of Marie An- toinette, in October, 1783. Calonne possessed talents of a high order, and was celebrated for his Avit, his elegant manners, and his luxurious, extravagant habits of life ; he A\'as overwhelmed Avith debt, and his morals were notoriously profligate. Such a man Avas ill calculated to direct the helm of state in these threat- ening times ; nevertheless, Calonne obtained considerable influence over the king by his presumptuous self-confidence and inexhaust- ible fertility of resource, Avhich made light of all difficulties. Plis administration Avas characterized by reckless prodigality ; the greedy courtiers Avere gratified Avithout hesitation in all their demands ; all thought of economy Avas derided and cast to the Avinds ; every possible expedient for raising money Avas exhausted in succession, Avitli a total disregai'd of the future. In the course of four years Calonne borroAved no less than eight hundred mil- lions of francs ; and liis later loans Avere not registered by the Parliament Avithout angry remonstrances on the one side and menaces of despotic constraint on the other. MeauAvhile the dis- 520 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXV. tress of the people became more and more insupportable, and the conviction rapidly gained ground that no real improvement in their condition could be looked for except through great and rad- ical changes in the entire system of government. The royal family and the court sank sensibly in the popular estimation during the wretched ministry of Calonne. The enor- mous debts of the Count D'Artois — the ckdldish follies and ruin- ous extravagance of the queen — the outrageous amount of the pensions and other gratifications lavished upon idle, worthless fa- vorites — all furnished matter of profound scorn and resentment throughout the country. The celebrated and mysterious affair of the " collier" — a diamond necklace said to have been purchased by the Cardinal de Rohan for Marie Antoinette — belongs to this period, and tended, however unjustly, to render that unfortunate princess an object of wide-spread suspicion and obloquy. Affairs at last arrived at such a pitch that it was found impossible to pay the interest of the various loans contracted by the state, and the minister could no longer disguise the alarming truth either from himself or from the king. Roused to earnestness by the crisis, Calonne now prepared and submitted to Louis a plan of reform, comprising various measures already proposed by his predecessors — such as the equal distribution of taxes, the suppression of unjust privileges, the diminution of the failles, the abolition of the corvee and the gabelle. In order to procure the semblance of national sanction for his scheme, Calonne determined to convoke the As- sembly of Notables, of which several precedents had occurred un- der former reigns. Louis, after some hesitation, consented to the step, and a list was drawn up of one hundred and forty-four indi- viduals, belonging almost exclusively to the privileged classes, whom the sovereign was to appoint on this important occasion to represent the nation. The meeting of the Notables took place at Versailles on the 22d of Februaiy, 1787. Calonne addressed them in a brilliant but specious and disingenuous speech, in which, after acknowledging that the actual deficit in the finances amount- ed to one hundred and twelve millions of francs, he ascribed the blame to the mistakes of former statesmen, and especially incul- pated Necker, He then proceeded to unfold his propositions of reform, which met with the reception that might have been ex- pected from the composition of the assembly ; for it was little less than absurd to suppose that the privileged orders would willingly vote the abrogation of their own privileges. Calonne's demands were indignantly rejected ; his enemies, headed by De Brienne, archbishop of Toulouse, accused him of systematic fraud and mal- versation, and excited a general clamor against him ; his friends and supporters, including even the queen and the Count D'Artois, A.D. 1787. MINISTRY OF CARDINAL DE BRIENNE. 52I disavowed and abandoned him ; and Louis found it necessary in the end to demand his resignation, and even to banisli him into Lorraine. § C. The fallen minister was succeeded in power by his rival, the turbulent, intriguing Archbishop de Brienne, who owed his ap- pointment entirely to the influence of Marie Antoinette. This prelate, who was soon created Archbishop of Sens and a cardinal, presented to the Notables several of the measures of his predeces- sor, which, after much stormy discussion, were approved ; and the king then dissolved the sessions of this body on the 25th of May, 1787. But De Brienne now found himself confronted by a much more intractable and formidable assembly, namely, the Parliament of Paris. Here it soon appeared that a powerful opposition had been organized against the crown, under the leadership of four el- oquent and determined magistrates, Duport, Robert de St. Vin- cent, Freteau de St. Just, and D'Epre'mesnil. The spirit by which the Parliament was animated at this juncture seems at first sight wholly unaccountable ; for, instead of stoutly defending popular rights and liberties, as of old, it now contested measures of salu- tary reform directed against the privileged classes. But the sim- ple truth is that these reforms were resisted solely because they were proposed by the court and the government. So long as they were combating the royal authority, the opposition leaders felt sure of popular sympathy and support, whatever might be the na- ture and real merits of the struggle. A few of the ministerial propositions, including that relating to the new provincial assem- blies, were adopted ; but upon the presentation of two edicts for levying a tax upon landed property without distinction of orders, and for a duty upon stamps, a violent outburst of indignation en- sued, and the registration was peremptorily refused. The Par- liament even went so far as to declare its own incompetence to enforce the establishment of any new impost, maintaining that, according to the ancient constitution of France, that power be- longed to the States-General only. The mention of the States- General operated like magic ; the cry was caught up with avidity by multitudes throughout the kingdom, and it was speedily recog- nized as the rallying word for all who desired to apply a search- ing and effectual remedy to the inveterate maladies of the state. De Brienne, however, resolved on attempting to overawe the Par- liament by an extreme exercise of sovereign authority ; he caused Louis to hold a bed of justice, in which the edicts were registered by force ; and as the Parliament persisted in remonstrating, and declared the registration null and void, it was exiled by royal proc- lamation to Troyes. This step was followed by serious popular riots both in Paris and the provinces. 522 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXV. The mistakes and incompetence of De Brienne greatly hasten- ed the march of events toward the catastrophe which was ah'eady inevitable. He was soon forced to enter into a sort of compro- mise with the rebellious Parliament, which was recalled to Paris upon the understanding that the projected imposts on stamps and land should be withdrawn, and that the States-General should be convoked within the period of five years. The Parliament agreed in return to grant certain subsidies for the present exigencies of the public service, and to consent to renewed loans for the future. But mutual confidence was now at an end between the parties, . and neither seems to have acted in sincerity. The minister re- quired the sanction of the Parliament to a loan of four hundred and twenty millions of livres, to be raised in five years; and in order to secure compliance, Louis held what Avas called a "royal sitting," an expedient which differed very slightly from the des- potism of a bed of justice. This was a fxtal indisci-etion ; the Par- liament was instantly in arms, and, amid violent agitation, refused to consent to the loan. The king still insisted on implicit obe- dience, arrested and imprisoned two of the magistrates, and ban- ished the Duke of Orleans, who had made himself oifensively prominent in the discussion, to his chateau at Villers Cotterets. The court and the Parliament were now once more in open col- lision. A long and high-sounding statement of grievances, pre- sented to the king in January, 1788, was promptly met by the ar- rest of two of the most obnoxious leaders of the opposition, D'Ep- reraesnil and Goislard, who were placed in close confinement, the first in the isle Ste. Marguerite, the latter at Pierre Encise. This act of rigor was followed up by a still bolder coup d'e'tat, which entirely changed the constitution of the Parliament, and transfer- red the duty of registering the royal edicts to a "cour pleniere," or council composed of nobles, prelates, and other personages of distinction, nominated by the king himself This new institution, however, by which the court probably hoped to evade the neces- sity of convoking the States-General, -was received with universal derision, and proved a lamentable failure. Even the heads of the clergy, and several noblemen of the highest rank and of unques- tioned loyalty, absolutely refused to sit in the cour ple'niere ; se- ditious disturbances broke out in the provinces — in Brittany, Dau- phine. Beam ; the Parliament of Renncs, in particular, denounced as criminal and infamous any one who should take part in carry- ing out the late decree. The Cardinal de Brienne had now com- pletely exhausted all his resources, and was at a loss for funds to defray the most ordinary expenses of the government. In this ex- tremity he counseled Louis to make tlie grand concession Avhich was now clamorously demanded by the popular voice from one A.D. 1788. NECKER RECALLED. 523 end of the kingdom to the other; an.d accordingly, an official an- nouncement was soon published that the States-General were summoned to meet on the 1st of May, 1789. This was the last act of the cardinal's administration ;• he resigned office on the 25th of August, 1788, and forthwith quitted France for Italy, leaving the king and the government in a pitiable state of confusion, ap- prehension, and distress. § 7. Louis took perhaps the wisest course that was open to him at this perilous crisis : he recalled Necker, and confided to him the chief direction of affiiirs. His choice was fully justified ; the re- turn of this popular statesman was hailed by a general outburst of applause ; the public funds rose instantaneously ; and the gov- ernment received voluntary offers of loans to an immense amount. Necker, although estimating but too truly the difficulties and dangers of his position, hastened to undo, so far as was possible, the grievous mistakes of the two preceding cabinets ; he revoked the edicts establishing the cour pleniere, reinstated the Parlia- ment, liberated numbers of political prisoners, and exerted him- self laudably to relieve the almost starving population in the rural districts. But the main subject of his solicitude was the ap- proaching meeting of the States-General, which was indeed the topic which absorbed the anxious attention of the whole nation. That ancient constitutional assembly had been so long disused, that the greatest ignorance and confusion prevailed respecting it ; Qven Necker himself deemed it advisable, as a preliminary meas- ure, to convoke the Notables a second time, and obtain their judg- ment as to the composition of this great national council, which was about to decide the destinies of France. The grand problem to be solved was this : Avhat should be the relative proportion and importance of the commons, or tiers e'tat, as compared with the representatives of the two privileged classes, the nobles and cler- gy. In ancient times, each of the three orders had returned to the States-General an equal number of deputies; but it was now demanded on the part of the people that their representatives should equal those of the other two orders combined; and farther, that, in voting, the assembly should form but one united body, in- stead of three separate chambers as heretofore. Another point to be settled was whether the possession of landed property should be a necessary qualification for the deputies of the commons. This latter question — one of extreme importance — was at once decided by the Notables in the negative ; and the principle of tlie double representation of the tiers etat was in like manner rejected by a very large majority. Necker was nevertheless induced, by a most deploi'able and ruinous misapprehension, to overrule this de- termination ; and a royal ordonnance prescribed that the total 524 NOTES AND ILLUSTRATIONS. Chap. XXV. number of deputies should .be at least one thousand — that the principles of election should be those of population and amount of taxes contributed in each bailliage — and that the representa- tives of the commons should- be equal to those of the other two orders conjointly. On the third question — that of the mode of voting — no mention was made at all. § 8. The elections took place amid indescribable excitement throughout the country, and were in some instances attended with serious tumults. Meanwhile Paris was inundated with pamphlets upon the- all-engrossing theme, no less than two thou- sand having been published in the course of three months. The most celebrated was that of the Abbe Sieyes, entitled " What is the Tiers Etat ?" which was circulated into every corner of the kingdom, and ci'eated an extraordinary and profound impression. Its main principles were thus enunciated: "What is the Third Estate ? Every thing. What has it been hitherto in a political sense? Nothing. What does it ask to be ? Something." The winter which preceded the meeting of the States was one of unusual severity ; the harvest had partially failed, and provis- ions soon rose to an enormous price. This aggravated the suf- ferings of the impoverished population, and added- greatly to the general discontent and agitation. Necker generausly sacrificed a large part of his private fortune in endeavoring to provide food for the famishing poor of Paris. It was under such gloomy auspices that the States-General met at Versailles on the 5th of May, 1789. This memorable day was virtually the last of the old Monarchy of France, and the first of the Ilevolution. NOTES AND ILLUSTEATIONS. ON THE PUBLIC REVENUE, TAXA- TION, AND FINANCIAL ADMINISTKA- TION. The revenues of the early French monarchs consisted chiefly of the feudal dues accruing to them as lords of the domaine royal. Most of these have been already described in the Note on the Feudal System (see p. 134). Be- sides the ordinai-y seigneurial payments, the king was entitled, ou his accession, to the droit de joyeux aveneriient, for confirming in their appointments all officers depending di- rectly on the crown. Farther revenues were derived from the regale^ paid by every bishop and abbot on succeeding to his preferment : from the droit de franc Jief, due from a rotu- Her whenever he was raised to the possession of a fief; from the sale of charters and muni- cipal privileges; from the droit d'aubaine^ by which the sovereign claimed the property of all foreigners dying on the soil ; from the droit de gite and droit de pourvoirie, or de prise, which furnished the king and hia household with every thing necessary to their accommodation during a royal progress. In later times one of the most fruitful sources of the royal revenue was the sale of public offi- ces, venalite des offices — chiefly magisterial and judicial.1- which was first introduced by Louis XII. on undertaking his Italian wars, and was afterward carried to an enormous extent under Francis I. and succeeding mon- archs. The first approach to a regular system of taxation dates from the energetic reign of Philippe le Bel. This prince levied a taille, or general property-tax, amounting at first to a hundredth part, and aftenvard to a fiftieth, of the value of tlie property assessed. This measure provoked a violent resistance,' re- volts broke out at Paris, Rouen, and Orleans ; and Philip found himself unable to maintain the taille as a permanent burden. Ills ne- Chap. XXV. ON THE PUBLIC REVENUE, ETC. 525 cessities compelled him to resort to other fis- cal expedients. He imposed a duty on arti- cles of consumption; greatly increased the gabelle, or salt-tax ; and obtained from the States-General of 1314 a percentage of 6 den- iers in a livre on the sale of all provisions. He also established custom-duties (droit de limit-passage) of T deniers per livre on the import and export of merchandise. These imposts received the generic name otmallotes (from the two corrupt Latin words mala tolta), and the officers who collected them were call- ed Tnaltotiers. Charles V. , after the suppression of the in- surrection under Marcel, took farther steps to- ward a regular fiscal revenue, and in ISGO re- newed the taille under the name of fouage, at the rate of four livres for every house in the towns, and thirty sous in the rural districts. (Fouage is derived from feu, answering to the English hearth-tax.) But on his death- bed Cliarles revoked the fouages. Various changes and fluctuations followed ; and the taille did not become perpetual until granted to Charles VII. by the celebrated edict of the States of Orleans in 1439, for the maintenance of the standing army. From this date the financial system was administered witli great- er precision ; its jirincipal resources may be classed under the two heads of tallies, or di- rect taxes, and aides, or indirect taxes, other- wise excise duties. I. The taille was at the same time a tax on persons and on landed property. It produced under Charles VII. 1,800,000 livres; but in- creasing with great rapidity, it was raised tinder Francis I. to upward of nine millions of livres. It soon became odious, and excited grave discontent and agitation, not only from its burdensome amount, but from the glaring inequality of its assessment. The privileged orders, the noblesse and the clergy, were al- together exempt from the taille ; the former on account of their ancient pretensions to feu- dal sovereignty, the latter because they voted supplies to the crown in their own ecclesias- tical assemblies. In consequence, the failles pressed exclusively upon the humbler classes ; and in course of time the grievance became so insupportable that every finance minister of modern times made it a primary object to diminish the taille. It was considerably re- duced by Sully in 1G03, and afterward by Eichelieu and Colbei't ; the latter statesman, in a remarkable memorial presented to Louis XIV. in 1G64, pointed out tlie ruinous op- pressiveness of this unjust tax, and strongly urged the necessity of abolisliing the exemp- tions enjoyed by the richer classes. He suc- ceeded in suppressing a great number of false titles of nobility, and subjecting the u.-urpers to taxation; but after his death (1GS3) the tallies and other burdens were again enor- mously augmented, and tlie misery tlius oc- casioned became eventually one of the main causes of the Kevolution. The celebrated Vauban proposed, in 169,5, to replace the taille and other direct taxes by a uniform contribution imder the name of the dime rmjale, to be payable by all classes alike. This project was unfavorably received by Louii XIV., and led to tlie disgrace of its au- thor. A tax, however, of the same nature and amount — the dixievie — was imposed upon the entire nation in 1710, toward the close of the great war of the Spanish Succession. The dixie-me was to last till the expiration of three months from tlie announcement of peace; it was continued, in fact, for a much longer period. II. I'he aides, or excise duties, date from the memorable States-General of 1356. They were originally voted and assessed by the rep- resentatives of those who were to pay them ; but the kings soon usurped the right of im- posing them by their own authority. They became pennanent at the beginning of the 15th century. The aides were of three kinds : 1. Ordinary, consisting of the vingtieme, or one sou per livre on all liquors sold wholesalf, and of the fourth — or, in later times, the eighth— part of tlie retail price. 2. Extraor- dinary, which were duties levied in time of war or other special exigency ; and, 3. Octrois, or duties imposed on all provisions exposed for sale in towns, a certain proportion of which, usually one half, was paid into the royal treasury. To these may be added other indirect taxes, such as those on gold and sil- ver plated articles, on cards and dice, on wrought iron, on weiglits and measures, and on brokerage. The government monopolies of gunpowder, saltpetre, salt, and tobacco, were also immensely lucrative sources of rev- enue. The customs, or douanes, were in ancient times of a veiy complicated and vexatious nature, including the droit de haui-passage, or export duties ; the 7'eve, a duty paid by aliens for carrying on traffic in France; and the traiteforaine, or import duty. These customs were established, not only between France and foreign countries, but between different provinces of France. Artois, Picardy, Anjou, Poitou, Auvergne, Lyonnais, and Languedoc possessed each its separate douane with a lo- cal tariff; and this multiplicity of duties op- erated as a very serious hinderance to com- merce. Colbert induced twelve provinces to unite in establishing freedom of commercial intercourse within thtir limits. These were styled the cinq grosses fermes. The rest were classed in the two categories of provinces repulees etrangeres, and 2>f'ovinces traiiees comme pays etrangers. He thus greatly di- minished, though he could not extinguish, the diversity of export and import duties. He also revised and simplified the tariff. The system oi farming the public revenue obtained in France from an early period. ■ Tlie indirect taxes, especially, were leased by the crown upon terms wliich enabled the holders to realize enormous profits by oppressive ex- actions from the people. Hence arose the general odium which attached to these farm- ers of the taxes, both in ancient and modern times. Their extortions became so scandal- ous, that both Sully and Colbert were com- pelled to cancel the greater part of tlie leases, and to apportion them afresli upon more equi- table terms. But these reforms proved inef- fectual, and ere long the abuses became more inveterate than ever. In 1720 tlie farmers of the taxes formed a regular associatioi , 526 NOTES AND ILLUSTKATIONS. Chap. XXV. called the ferme generate ; it included orig- inally {ovtyfe7'iniers generaux, who possessed for a specified number of years the exclusive management of the gabelle^ the monopoly of tobacco, the octrois of Paris, and other excise duties. The number of the fermiers gene- raux was increased ultimately to sixty. They were supported by a crowd of inferior agents, called croupiers^ who, without being named in the leases, advanced large sums of money up:n their credit, and shared amply in their profits. The enorm.ous wealth and predom- inant influence acquired by these fermiers geniraux grew into a serious public evil in the latter days of the old monarchy. Minis- tex's of state, noblemen, courtiers, and func- tionaries of all classes were salaried and pen- sioned by the ferraiei's, and were thus di- rectly interested in keeping up the ruinous system. Necker made a vigorous attempt to remedy the evil by withdrawing some of the taxes from the fermiers, and placing them under the direct control of the crown ; but the pi'oject succeeded only partially, and the old arrangement remained substantially in force until it was swept away by the revolu- tionary constitution of 1791. Financial Jukisdiction and Adminis- TEATioN. — The administration of the finances was originally in the hands of the civil and military officers of the crown — the baillif!, .lemchau.v, prevots^ and vicomtes. Philip IV. took the first step toward separating these functions, by instituting the Chamber des Comptes for the supreme control of all mat- ters relating to the finances. This court be- came sedentary at Paris by an edict of Philip V. in 1319. It consisted of two presidents, ten maitres des comptes, and other officers called correcteurs, clercs, and cmditeurs. A farther change took place by the creation of the Cour des Aides, which was first fully organized in the reign of Charles VII. This tribunal tried and decided en dernier ressort, all legal actions and causes connected with matters of taxation and finance, the chambre des comptes being thenceforth restricted to the collection and management of the rev- enue. In process of time auxiliary chambres des comptes and coiirs des aides were estab- lished in the provinces — at Dijon, Grenoble, >fantes, Rouen, Blois, Montpellier, etc. ; but they were all subject to the supreme jurisdic- tion of the courts at Paris. In the time of Louis XIV. tlie chambre des comxites com- prehended no less than 220 judges and offi- cers of various ranks. At the moment of its suppi-ession in 1790 it numbered in all 2S9 members. The earliest ministers of finance were des- ignated siirintendants des finances ; the un- fortunate Enguerrand de JNIarigny was the first appointed to this office by Philip the Fair. Afterward they were called tresoriers de France, and sometimes, as in the case of the famous Jacques Coeur, had the title of argcnfier du rot. In 1523 Francis I. instituted a central treasury, under the name of the epargne, into which were paid all receipts on account of the public taxes, the excise, and the do- maine royal. At the head of this was placed the tresorier de Vepargne, assisted by two controleurs generaux. It was their duty to make all payments out of the funds of the state, upon the authority of orders signed by the surintendant des finances ; these vouchers were to be produced when they passed their accounts before the chambre des comptes. A few years later France was divided for fis- cal purposes into seventeen districts, called generali.es; these were afterward added to and subdivided; in the 18th century there were twenty generalitis des pays d'elcction, six generalitis des]}ays ductals, and seven in- tendances. To each of these circumscriptions belonged a Bureau des Finances, composed of two tresoriers, two receveurs generaxix, a garde du tresor, and other officers. These bureaux were created by Heniy III. in 1577. They were charged with the distribution of the taxes within their several limits, with the superintendence of subordinate agents, and with the general jurisdiction in matters af- fecting taxation, subject to appeals to the Parliaments. All these offices were venal, and were for that reason multiplied by the cro\vTi from time to time on various pretexts. This complicated and cumbrous machinery existed without material alteration down to the Revolution of 1789. In 1661 the office of surintendant des finances was suppressed, and replaced by that of controleur general. The first of these was the immortal Jean Baptiste Colbert. The chambre des comptes, cour des aides, and btireaux des finances, were all abolished in 1790. A bureau de complabiliie was named to undertake their functions provi- sionally, and an entirely new financial ad- ministration was introduced under the Con- sulate, framed chiefly by the talented minis- ter Gaudin, afterward Duke of Gaeta. Un- der this system the supreme control of the public treasury was intnistedto the ministrc des finances. In tlie chef-lieu of each de- partment was establislied a receveur general for the revenue of the whole department; each arrondissement or sous-prefecture had its receveur jMrticulier ; and each canton, or group of three or more communes, its per- cepteur, to whom all the direct taxes were payable. The contributions indirectes, or excise, to- gether with the customs, the administration des domaines, the enregistrement, and other branches of the revenue, formed several dis- tinct jurisdictions. All cases of complaint against the fiscal government were to be heard in the first instance before the conseils de 2)refecture, from which an appeal lay to the final judgment of the Council of State. The cour des comptes was restored by a decree of the first Napoleon in 1807, as a su- preme tribunal for tlie revision and auditing of the public accounts. The financial organization of the first em- pire has remained in force, with slight mod- ifications, down to the present time. Medal commemorative of the night of August 4, 1T89. (For reverse, see p. 534,a BOOK VII. EEVOLUTIONAEY FEANCE. FROM THE MEETING OF THE STATES-GENERAL TO THE ACCESSION C^ NAPOLEON III. A.D. 1789-1852. CHAPTEE XXVI. FROM THE MEETING OF THE STATES-GENERAL TO THE DEATH OP LOUIS XVI. A.D. 1789-1793. § 1. Proceedings of the States - General ; The National Assembly; the Oath of the Jeu de Paume ; the Eoyal Sitting ; Fusion of the Three Or- ders. § 2. Troops drawn round Paris ; Insurrection ; Camille Desmou- lins ; Fall of the Bastile ; Louis at the Hotel de Ville ; Murder of Foulon. § 3. Vote of the 4th of August ; Debates on the Veto ; Banquet at Ver- sailles ; the Mob of Paris inarch to Versailles and attack the Chateau ; the King and Royal Family brought back to Paris. § 4. Measures of the National Assembly ; Confiscation of Church Property ; the Assignats. § 5. Emigration of the Nobility ; Fete of the Federation ; Retirement of Necker. § 6. Intrigues of the Court with Mirabeau ; Death of Mirabeau ; the Flight to Varennes; Affair of the Champ de Mars. § 7. The LeG" ISLATIVE Assembly ; State of Parties ; the Feuillants ; the Girondins. § 8. Decrees against the Emigrants and the Non-juring Priests; Petion Mayor of Paris ; Declaration of Pilnitz ; the Girondist Ministry ; France declares War against Austria. § 9. Position and Strength of the French Armies ; Reverses in the Netherlands ; Dismissal of the Girondist Minis- tcj-s ; Lafayette's Letter to the Assembly ; Insurrection of the 20th of Juno. § 10. The Country proclaimed to be in Danger; March of the A.D. 1789. MEETING OF ThS STATES-GENERAL. 529 Federates to Paris ; Proclamation of the Duke of Brunswick ; popular In- dignation at Paris; Preparations for Insurrection. § 11. The 10th of Au- gust ; Capture of the Tuileries ; Massacre of the Swiss Guard ; Deposition of Louis. § 12. The Eoyal Family committed to the Temple ; the Prus- sians invade France, and take Longwy and Verdun ; Defection of Lafay- ette. § 13.' Consternation at Paris; Massacres of September. § 14. Successful Operatio'ns of Dumouriez ; Battle of. Valmy ; Ketreat of the Prussians to the Rhine; Battle of Jemmapes; Conquest of Belgium. § 15. The National Convention; the Girondists, the Montague, the Plaine; Debates on the Trial of the King. § 16. The King brought to Trial before the Convention ; his Defense by Deseze. § 17. Violent Scenes in the Convention ; Louis sentenced to Death ; his Execution. § 1. The States-General met on the 5tli of May, 1789, in the hall of the "Menus Plaisirs" at Versailles, which had been pre- pared for the occasion. The king, after the imposing pageant of a magnificent procession fi-om the church of Notre Dame to the hall of meeting, opened the session in a speech full of generous, benevolent, and conciliating sentiments, which was favorably re- ceived. Necker followed, and made a financial statement which, although perspicuous and well-arranged, Avearied the audience by the length of its details ; his tone with regard to projected reforms was also considered vague and unsatisfactory. The first business to be transacted by the Chambers was to verify their Avrits of re- turn. The assembly consisted of eleven hundred and forty-five members, of wliom two hundred and ninety-one belonged to the clergy, two hundred and seventy to the nobility, and five hundred and eighty-four to the tiers etat. Thus the plebeian deputies more than outnumbered the united force of the nobles and clergy ; and when we add to this that two thirds of the clerical representatives were parish priests, who from habit and association would natu- rally sympathize with and support the tiers etat, it is plain that the predominance of the people was, from the first, decisive and irresistible. The commons, who, on account of their numbers, occupied the great hall of assembly, invited the attendance of the nobles and clergy, in order to perform this duty in conjunction ; a proceeding designed to settle, by tacit implication, the all-import- ant question of the mode of voting — that it should take place, not by separate orders, but together and numerically. The nobles de- clined this proposal, verified their powers in their own chamber, and declared themselves constituted. The clergy made a simihir decision, but proposed a conference to adjust the difficulty; this accordingly took place, but without effect beyond that of increas- ing the disunion and irritation between the orders. The tiers etat, conscious of its overwhelming strength, persisted in its system of passive obstruction ; the deputies refused to enter on any busi- Z 530 LOUIS *XVf. CuAP. XXVI. ness, and announced that, in the absence of the other two orders, they remained unconstituted for the purposes of legislation. Sev- eral weeks were thus passed in inaction ; a conciliatory attempt on the part of the court proved fruitless ; and at length, on the 10th of June, after bold and inflammatoiy speeches from the fa- mous Count Mirabeau and the Abbe Sieyes, the commons pro- ceeded to the verification of powers for the whole body of repre- sentatives, whether present or absent. They were now joined by a few members of the clergy, but the nobles resolutely continued to stand aloof On the I7th, again at the instigation of Sieyes, the commons, rejecting the title of States-General, assumed that of the National Assembly, and proclaimed that, being now rec- ognized as the sole legitimate representatives of the French peo- ple, they would at once address themselves to the great and lu*- gent questions of the state of the nation, and imperative measures of reform. The clergy, on the next day but one, determined, though by a small majority, to unite itself with this self-consti- tuted Legislature. The king, the royal family, the court, even Necker himself, were dismayed by this energetic and audacious conduct. The great no- bles besought Louis to repress with a vigorous hand tliis first at- tempt on the part of the commons to possess themselves of supreme power. It was resolved, by the advice of Necker, to hold a royal sitting in the Assembly, in which, with every appearance of gra- cious concession, the alarming aggression of the tiers e'tat should be firmly met and arrested ; and the meetings of the deputies were suspended by proclamation for three days, under the pretext of making the necessary preparations in the hall. The president, Bailly, accompanied by several members, presented himself not- withstanding at the doors, Avhere he found a guard of soldiers posted, and was refused entrance. Bailly, indignant at this in- vasion of the rights of the Assembly, protested strongly against the violence ; the deputies hurriedly gathered round him, and it Avas resolved to adjourn to a neighboring tennis-court (jetc de paume), where, with every demonstration of patriotic ardor and enthusiasm, the members took a solemn oath " that they wbuld continue to meet for the dispatch of business wherever circum- stances might require, until the constitution of the kingdom had been established upon sound and solid foundations." A farther attempt was made by the court to prevent the meeting of the Assembly on the 22d ; it took place, nevertheless, in the church of St. Louis, and here one hundred and forty-nine deputies of the clei'gy, headed by the Archbishop of Vienne, associated themselves with the tiers e'tat. The royal sitting was held on the 23d of Juno according to appointment. The king severely condemned A.D. 1789 THE ROYAL SITTING. 531 the proceedings of the commons, and afterward propounded a se- ries of extensive changes and concessions, which, had they been offered at the proper time, and with an ait of unconstrained good- will, would most probably have been accepted with universal grat- itude and joy. But it was the fate of" Louis, like that of our own imfortunate Charles, to yield in an ungracious manner, and at a moment when yielding could no longer profit him. His language and demeanor on this occasion commenced that rupture between himself, the States-General, and the nation, which ended in his ruin. He concluded his speech by ordering the deputies to ad- journ immediately, and to reassemble the next day in the separ- ate chambers assigned to them, for the dispatch of business. An expression was added, which resembled a threat to dissolve the Assembly in case of a refusal to comply with his commands. Then followed one of the most remarkable scenes of the Revolu- tion. When the king withdrew, the nobles and the greater part of the clergy also quitted the hall ; the tiers e'tat retained their seats. After a time the Marquess of Breze, grand master of the ceremonies, reappeared, and said, " Gentlemen, you have heard the orders of the king." "Yes," replied the president; "and I am now about to take the orders of the Assembly." Mirabeau then rose, and said, " Yes, sir, we have heard the king's inten- tions ; and you, who have no seat or voice in this Assembjy, are no fit organ of communication to remind us of his speech. Ke- turn and tell your master that we are here by the power of the people, and that nothing short of the bayonet shall drive us hence." The marquess retired ; and the Assembly, having been reminded by Sieyes that " they were to-day neither more nor less than they had been yesterday," proceeded to vote the personal inviolability of its members, and to denounce the penalty of death against any one who should attack their liberty. The king had now the weakness to make it a personal and ur- gent request to the rest of the deputies of the nobility and clergy that they would join the sittings of the tiers e'tat. With great reluctance they complied ; and the fusion of the three orders took place accordingly on the 27th of June. By this fatal measure Louis sanctioned all the unconstitutional assumptions of the low- er chamber, and signed, in effect, his own death-warrant. § 2. Another step soon followed in the same disastrous course. The queen and her intimate advisers determined Louis to attempt maintaining his authority by force ; and for this purpose, an army of forty thousand men was concentrated from various quarters upon Paris and its vicinity, and placed under the orders of Mar- shal Broglie. Among these troops were several regiments of Swiss and Germans. At the same moment, Necker, whom the 532 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. court party distrusted and feared, was dismissed from office, and commanded to leave France forthwith. He obeyed, and retired to Brussels. No sooner was tliis publicly known than a violent insurrection burst forth in the capital. A young man named Camille Des- raoulins harangued the populace with burning eloquence in the Palais Royal; the cry "To arms!" resounded on all sides; the multitude rushed tumultuously toward the Hotel de Ville ; and a charge made by the Prince of Lambesc at the head of a German regiment, by which several persons were killed and wounded, in- flamed their indignation to the utmost pitch of fury. An assem- bly of electors, sitting at the Plotel de A'ille, governed the move- ments of the insurgents ; they ordered the immediate enrollment of a national burgher guard, and took vigorous measures for pro- viding these enthusiastic volunteers with arms ; fifty thousand pikes Avere manufactured in two days, and an immense quantity of muskets, swords, and cannon were seized at the Hotel des In- valides. The royal troops, meanwhile, remained inactive in their encampment in the Champs Elysees, their officers, it is supposed, having good reason to believe they would not act against the peo- ple. Thus the mob found themselves, in fact, masters of Paris, and on the 14th of July a desperate attack was made on the Bas- tile. The governoi*, De Launay, defended himself nobly with his scanty garrison of two hundred Swiss ; but an entrance was at length forced with cannon, and after a bloody conflict of five hours, this detested strong-hold of despotism was stormed and captured. De Launay and three of his officers were barbarously murdered ; and the pre'vot des marchands Flesselles, whom the savage victors accused of treachery to the popular cause, shared the same fate. From the first moment of the outbreak at Paris, Versailles had been a scene of extreme agitation and terror. The Assembly sent a deputation to the king to request him to dismiss the troops ; this Louis declined, but offered, if the members felt alarmed, to transfer their sittings to Soissons, and to proceed himself to Com- piegne. When the Duke de Liancourt came to announce to him the fall of the Bastile, the king exclaimed, "This is a revolt!" "Sire," replied the duke, "it is a Revolution." The next morn- ing Louis went to the hall of the Assembly on foot and without guards, and in a few simple and touching words assured the rep- resentatives that they had nothing to fear, promised to dismiss the foreign troops and to recall Necker, and expressed the utmost con- fidence in the loyalty of his hearers. He was received with trans- ports of applause, and reconducted by a deputation of the mem- bei'S to tlie palace. On the following day, Louis, in compliance A.D. 1789. LOUIS AT THE HOTEL DE VILLE. 533 with the advice of Lafayette and of the famous astronomer Bailly, who had just been nominated Mayor of Paris, proceeded from Versailles to the capital, escorted by an immense multitude of the lowest rabble, hastily armed with pikes, hatchets, and muskets and dragging with them some pieces of artillery. The cortege reached the Hotel de Ville in safety, although an outbreak of vio- lence had been fully expected. Bailly welcomed the king with much specious profession of loyalty, and placed in his hands the keys of the city, observing that they were the same keys that had The Unteiu uuincr of the Place de GKvc. been presented to Henry IV. ''Then,'' continued the orator, "it was the king who had reconquered his people ; now it is the people who have made a conquest of their king." Having assumed the tri-colored cockade, and confirmed the appointment of Lafayette as commandant of the newly-formed city militia, henceforth called the National Guard, Louis then withdrew, and returned to Ver- sailles under the protection of his body-guard. - The fury of the people, however, demanded victims. Their 534 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. rage was directed against Foulon, who bad succeeded Necker as one of the new ministry. He attempted to escape, but was seized on his way to Fontainebleau, and dragged back to Paris, to tlio Hotel de Ville, on the 22d of July. Lafayette attempted to save him by proposing to conduct him to the prison of the Abbaye ; but the mob, impatient for their prey, hung him by the lantern at the corner of the street. His son-in-law Berthier was seized later in the day, and was hanged in the same way. This was the beginning of mob-law, and of the fatal cry of a la lanterne, which was so frequently heard in the streets of Paris. § 3. The spirit of lawlessness and insurrection now spread rap- idly into the provinces. The peasants in various districts, espe- cially in Dauphine, Provence, and Burgundy, rose against the landed proprietors, and fearful scenes of plunder, devastation, and bloodshed ensued. The National Assembly, upon receiving the news of these excesses, entered upon an animated discussion of the measures to be taken for the restoration of order; and two noble- men, the Viscount of Noailles and the Duke of Aiguillon, pro- posed as a remedy that all feudal rights and exclusive privileges should be redeemed at a valuation, and that all seigneurial cor- vees, and other antiquated claims of personal service, should be absolutely abolished. The impulse thus hastily given was follow- ed up with Avild and reckless enthusiasm ; the members eagerly vied with each other in devising acts of self-sacrifice for the pub- lic benefit ; and on the memorable night of the 4th of August a Kcverse of medal commemoi'ativo of niglit of August 4, 1TS3. {For obverse, see p. .'>10.) A.T>. 1789. PATIilOTIC GIFTS. 535 general immolation was voted of the ancient feudal constitution Avhich had reigned for so many centuries in France. The decree passed by the Assembly on this occasion was an act of revolution more profound and sweeping than even the destruction of the Bas- tile. It entirely changed the face of society ; and like so many of those sudden schemes of reform which spring up in times of pop- ular agitation, it ended in extremes Which were by no means con- templated when it was first proposed. The ecclesiastical tithes, which in the first instance had been declared redeemable, were abolished, a few days later, without compensation ; the Assembly simply undertaking in vague terms to provide a maintenance for the clergy. Against this act of spoliation the Abbe Sieyes pro- tested in a vehement and well-reasoned speech, and the debate was protracted to some length ; but the measure was eventually car- ried by an immense majority. "You have vinloosed the bull, M. I'Abbe','' observed Mirabeau to Sieyes, " and you must not be surprised if he makes use of his horns." The king was com- pelled, however reluctantly, to accept the whole of these alarming decrees, upon which he was saluted by the Assembly as the " Re- storer of French Liberty." A Te Deum was chanted in celebra- tion of the event. On! BKAVO, Mesdames; o'est j>o:so a votric toui: Patriotic Gifts. Ttli September, 17Si). (From an engraving of tlie time.) The example of the Assembly inspired in the other citizens a desire of making sacrifices for the benefit of tlie state. On the 7th of September a deputation from the wives of the artists pre- sented to the Assembly a casket full of jewels ; and for many months similar patriotic gifts were made to the Assembly toward llie payment of the national debt and the support of the poor. The Assembly next occupied itself in drawing up a " Declara- 536 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. lion of the Rights of Man," in imitation of a similar document published by the patriots of North America ; after which follow- ed lengthened deliberations upon the form of the new constitution, and especially upon the questions whether the Legislature should consist of two chambers or of one, and whether the royal veto upon laws proposed by the Assembly should be absolute or only suspensive. It was decided by large majorities that the power of legislation should reside in a single chamber, and that the veto of the crown should be suspensive during the term of two sessions. This restrictive clause, which left to the crown little more than a nominal prerogative, was carried in opposition to Mirabeau, who argued with extraordinary eloquence in favor of the absolute veto. Mounier, Lally Tollendal, Clermont de la Tonnerre, Malouet, and other wise and moderate members, also voted in the minority. Meanwhile the court party, alarmed by rumors of a fresh in- surrectionary outbreak at Paris, labored to persuade the king to withdraw to Metz, the head-quarters of a considerable force under the Marquess of Bouille. Failing in this, they induced him to recall to Versailles one of the regiments of the line, called that of Flanders. On the 3d of October the officers of this regiment were entertained at a grand banquet by their comrades of the body-guard in the theatre of the palace. Great enthusiasm was manifested ; loyal toasts were given, loyal airs played by the band ; the boxes were crowded by the noblemen and ladies of the court ; the king and queen, with the infant dauphin, made their appear- ance among the guests, and their presence raised the prevailing excitement to the higlftst pitch ; the Avhite cockade of the Bour- bons was distributed with rapturous applause, and it is said that the national tri-color was trodden under foot. When the news of this indiscreet proceeding reached Paris, it was instantly denounced by the popular leaders as an attempt on the part of the court to create a counter-revolution ; and as the lower classes were suffering at this moment from a scarcity of provisions, the prospect of famine, added to other provocations, made it easy to excite them to fresh acts of lawless commotion and violence. The outbreak which followed is generally attribu- ted to the agency of the turbulent and worthless Duke of Orleans, whose feelings toward his relative, Louis XVI., were those of jealous and bitter hatred, and who probably aimed at obtaining, by means of his deposition, the first place in the government. The mob of Paris was instigated to march to Versailles. Head- ed by a band of half-frantic women, they set out on the morning of the 5th of October, under the leadership of one Maillard, a no- torious ruffian who had distinguished himself at the capture of the Bastile. On their arrival in the afternoon, they rushed to A.D. 178<). MOB AT VERSAILLES. 537 the hall of the Assembly, and Maillard, attended by a crowd of women, proceeded to harangue the dismayed legislators, exposing to them the miseries of the famished people, and demanding in- stant redress. Mounier, the president, was directed to go at once to the palace, whither sevei'al of the female rioters insisted on ac- companying him. The king received them with his wonted affa- bility, and such was the impression made on his strange visitoi's by the kindness of his language and demeanor, that their fury was for the moment completely overcome, and they retired from the presence with acclamations of "Vive le Roi!" In the mean time, however, a fierce brawl haxl broken out in the square before the chateau between the rest of the Parisian rabble, the body-guard, and, the national guard of Versailles. Two of the body-guards were killed, and several women wounded. The irritation of the mob now rapidly increased ; they broke out into furious impreca- tions and threats against the court, especially against the queen ; and caused general terror by establishing themselves for the night by the side of large fires in every part of the town. About mid- night Lafayette at length arrived from Paris at the head of the national guard ; he hastened to the palace, and reassured the king and the royal family by answering for the fidelity of his troops. Louis intrusted the exterior posts of the chateau to his charge, and then retii'ed to rest; Lafayette, worn out with fatigue and anxiety, himself sought repose at five in the morning. Before daylight a party of the rioters gained entrance to the chateau through a gate which had been left unfastened, and penetrated with horrid menaces to the door of the queen's apartment. The sentinel, assaulted and severely wounded, had just time to alarm the ladies in waiting, who warned the queen, and she escaped into the king's bedcliamber. The palace now became a scene of in- describable tumult. The multitude rushed in, and were nobly confronted by the faithful body-giiai'd, several of whom lost their lives; Lafayette, roused from his slumbers,. at last made his ap- pearance with a party of grenadiers, rescued seventeen body-guards Avho were on the point of being massacred, and by dint of extra- ordinary personal energy, bravery, and resolution, succeeded in expelling the murderous brigands from the chateau. The dis- turbance was thus quelled ; but it was found absolutely necessary to comply with the demand of the populace that the king and his family should return immediately to Paris, where their movements would be under the eye and control of the municipality and the revolutionary leaders. This humiliating journey accordingly took place on the Gtli of October, the royal carriages moving at a slow pace in tlie midst of a vast tumultuous throng of the lowest of the people, madly exulting in their triumph over their captive sover- 538 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. eign. " We shall not die of hunger now," cried the furious 2^ois- sardes, "foi* here is the baker, his wife, and the little apprentice!" On alighting at the Tuileries at the close of this agitating day the unhappy Louis must have felt that he Avas entering a prison i-ath- er than a palace. The National Assembly in like manner trans- ferred its sittings to the capital. § 4. Notwithstanding the fearful excesses of these days of Oc- tober, nearly a year now elapsed in comparative order and tran- quillity. The Assembly pursued its labors in organizing the new constitution, although many of its most valuable members, at the head of whom were Mounier and Lally Tollendal, had given in their resignation and retired, despairing of the state of affairs. Every remaining vestige of disability and restriction was unspar- ingly swept away. All religious persuasions were declared equal before the law; the right of succession by primogeniture was ab- rogated, and parents were compelled to make an equal division of their property among all their children ; the liberty of the press was proclaimed ; hereditary titles of nobility were suppressed, and the aristocracy reduced to the level of ordinary citizens ; all Frenchmen, without distinction of class or creed, were declared alike admissible to all civil and military employments ; the crim- inal code was reformed, and its provisions much mitigated with regard to capital punishment. The ancient division of France into provinces was now replaced by the creation of eighty-three nearly equal departments, Avhich Avere again subdivided into dis- tricts, cantons, and communes. The electoral franchise was placed virtually in the hands of every individual citizen. These were momentous changes, all tending alike to the total abolition of the old monarchical system, and the consolidation of the supreme pow- er in the hands of a centralized governrnent, directed really by the representatives of the people. The Assembly Avas also anxiously engaged on the all-import- ant subject of national finances. Necker, on resuming office, had found it necessary to propose two loans, of thirty and of eighty millions of francs, and also an extraordinary tax amounting to a fourth part of the contributors' income. These measures had been sanctioned, after long debates, by the Assembly, but the loans could not be negotiated, and the income-tax, being assessed by the proprietors themselves, and very partially collected, proved quite inadequate to the necessities of the state. In this emergency it was resolved to confiscate the entire possessions of the Church of France. Upon the motion of Talleyrand de Pe'rigord, bishop of Autun, the Church estates Avere declared the property of tJie na- tion, and a decree AA-as passed authorizing their sale for the public benefit to the amount of four hundred millions of francs. Such, A.D. 1790. EMIGRATION OF THE NOBILITY. 539 however, was the state of confusion and alarm. which now pre- vailed throughout the country, that it was found extremely diffi- cult to obtain purchasers. To meet the urgency of the moment, the corporation of Paris contracted to take a certain portion of the sequestered estates, which was to be resold in course of time to private individuals ; other municipalities followed this example ; and as they were unable to pay in specie, they were allowed to issue bonds or promissory notes, secured upon the property, Avhich the creditors of the state were to accept instead of money. It was thus that the famous system of assignats took its rise. These as- signats were afterward issued upon the credit of the government, and, a forced currency being given to them, they were made to answer all the purposes of coin. But, as tlie value of the assig- nats depended wholly upon public credit, the subsequent rapid march of the Kevolution reduced them at length to a state of ut- ter depreciation. They Avere reissued from time to time in im- mense.quantities, but became altogether worthless in the end, the amount in circulation far exceeding the whole value of the prop- erty which they professedly represented. § 5. Lafayette and Necker now united their influence to pro- cure the exile of the Duke of Orleans, who quitted France under cover of a diplomatic mission to England. The emigration of the higher nobility, which had commenced almost immediately after the fall of the Bastile, also greatly increased. The Count of Ar- tois, brother of the king, the Princes of Conde and Conti, the Dukes of Bourbon and Enghien, several members of the Polignac family, and others bearing the most illustrious names in the king- dom, abandoned their country in this hour of terror, and sought shelter in Piedmont, Switzerland, the towns on the Ehine, and in England, Tlie fete of the Federation, celebrated on the anniversary of the taking of the Bastile, July 14, 1790, was one of the few days dur- ing the progress of the Revolution which gave some faint promise of the restoration of social order, and the advent of a more aus- picious era for France. An altar was erected in the midst of the Champ de Mars ; in front of this the king took his seat upon a splendid throne, the president of the Assembly occupying one pre- cisely similar at his side. The royal family were seated immedi- ately behind, and the vast square Avas thi-onged by the members of the Legislature, the national guard, the troops of the line, sixty thousand federates, and a countless multitude of the population of Paris. Pligh mass was celebrated by the Bishop of Autun ; after which Lafayette recited the oath of fidelity to the new constitu- tion, and, taking it first himself, was followed by the whole body of the federates, each raising his riglit hand and exclaiming, " Je 540 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI, le jure !" Louis took the oath in the form prescribed for him by the Assembly, and the queen at the same moment held up the dau- phin in her arms, as if to associate him Avith his father's act. This festive demonstration produced intense and wide-spread en- thusiasm ; but, as one of the historians remarks, it was a fete which " had no morrow." Fresh revolutionary agitation broke out immediately afterward, and serious riots occurred, especially at Marseilles, Valence, Nismes, and Toulouse. Several regiments mutinied in the garrison at Nancy, and were not reduced to sub- mission by the Marquess of Bouille till after a combat in which two thousand lives were sacrificed. Necker, finding that his pop- ularity had greatly declined, and that he had lost his influence both with the king, his colleagues, and the Assembly, now re- signed his office, and retired, for the last time, into Switzerland. (September, 1790.) § 6. An attempt was made at this juncture by the court to avert the ruin Avhich but too cleai'ly threatened the raonarehy, by entei-ing into a secret correspondence with the brilliant and vain- glorious Mirabeau, who in January, 1791, was appointed presi- dent of the Assembly, and was perhaps at this moment the most admired and commanding personage in the kingdom. Mirabeau accepted a large monthly pension from Monsieur, had an interview Avith Marie Antoinette in the park of St. Cloud, and is said to have drawn up a plan for arresting the torrent of democratic an- archy, and establishing the authority of Louis as a constitutional sovereign. The king was to take his departure secretly from Paris, and proceed either to Lyons or Metz, where he would be surrounded by troops and generals faithfully devoted to him. He was then to repudiate all the proceedings and decrees of the ex- isting Legislature, to pronounce its dissolution, and summon an- other to meet forthwith. Mirabeau conceived himself strong enough to insure a majority of moderate men, disposed to maintain a limited monarchy, in the new Assembly ; he reckoned on the zealous adhesion of the clergy, who, since the confiscation of their property, were bitterly exasperated against the present leaders and the whole revolutionaiy movement ; the noblesse and the heads of the army might be depended on for rallying round the throne ; and the Parisian mob was to be coerced and overpowered, in case of necessity, by armed foi^ce.* This scheme, in the existing state of parties, wore the appearance of very probable success; Louis, however, from natural indecision of character, and from an insur- mountable horror of civil war, long hesitated to accept it ; and when at last he had reconciled his mind to its adoption, the course of events had rendered it no longer practicable. Mirabeau, who * Dumont, Souvenirs siir Mirahean. A.D. 1791. THE FLIGHT TO VARENNES. ' 54 1 had ruined his constitution by habits of long-continued intemper- ance and debauchery, was attacked by an incurable disease, and, after a few Aveeks of intense suffering, expired on the 2d of April, 1791. The death of this celebrated man was a serious misfortune to the cause both of royalty and of constitutional liberty, as it threw the chief authority in the Assembly into the hands of agi- tatoi's pledged to the most extreme doctrines of republicanism. Mirabeau predicted in his last moments the approaching ruin of the monarchy: "When I am gone," said he, " the factions will soon rend it into fragments." Finding his position more and more critical, and exposed daily to fresh mortifications and insults, Louis eagerly pursued the proj- ect of effecting an escape to the frontiers ; and measures were con- certed for this purpose with Bouille, who had collected a large body of troops, upon whose loyalty he placed great reliance, in his camp at Montme'dy. The king also, entered into negotiation with several foreign princes, especially with his brother-in-law the Emr peror of Germany, to obtain their armed intervention in his favor in case of necessity. The emperor, at an interview with the Count of Artois at Mantua, engaged to march thirty- five thousand men to the Flemish frontier, and fifteen thousand more into Alsace, while other points of the kingdom were to be menaced simultane- ously by the forces of Piedmont and Spain. The king now drew up a temperate manifesto, to be presented to the Assembly after his departure, in Avhich he recapitulated all the acts of violence and crime perpetrated against the crown and the constitution dur- ing the past two years, and declared that he found it absolutely necessary to withdraw to the army, in order to recover his own freedom of action, and to effect the restoration of public order and security. Bouille having made his preparations, by stationing va- rious detachments of hussars along the road, under pretense of escorting a large sum of money expected from Paris for the pay- ment of the troops, Louis quitted the Tuileries in disguise at mid- night on the 20th of June, Avith the queen, his sister Madame Elizabeth, the dauphin, the princess royal, and Mme. de Tourzel, governess to the royal children. The fugitives drove rapidly to Bondy, Avhere they entered a traveling-carriage Avhich aAvaited them, and proceeded in safety as far as Chalons-sur-Marne. Here it seems that the king Avas recognized by more than one individu- al, Avho, however, made no attempt to impede his progress. The carriage advanced to Ste. Menehould ; at that place the king, im- prudently putting his head- out of the AvindoAv in his agitation at not finding the expected escort, Avas observed and at once identi- fied by Drouet, the son of the postmaster, a young man of violent republican opinions, Avho resolved to arrest his unfortunate pov- 542 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. ereign. Having overheard the direction given to the postillions to drive to Varennes, a small town which lay off the high road to Montmedy, Drouet rode at full speed across the country to that place, and alarmed the municipality. The royal carriage was. stopped on its arrival late at night, and detained on various pre- tenses until a sufficient force of national guards had been collect- ed, when Sausse, the procureur of the commune, informed the king that he was discovered and was a prisoner. All this time a de- tachment of Bouille's hussars was waiting in the lower town of Varennes, the commanding officer, through some unaccountable want of intelligence, being ignorant of the events which were pass^ ing beyond the bridge. A messenger arrived at five in the morn- ing with a decree of tlie Assembly for the immediate return of the royal family to Paris ; the hussars, who might have rescued them, refused to obey their officers, and fraternized with the na- tional guard ; the king's carriage was turned back, and retraced the road to the metropolis. An hour and a half afterward, Bou- ille himself reached Varennes, after a forced march of twenty- seven miles, with a whole regiment of cavalry ; but he found the bridge broken down, and the passage of the river strongly guard- ed ; the difficulties were insuperable ; he was compelled to. give up the enterprise as hopeless, and consult his own safety by crossing the frontier into Germany. The king was joined at Chfdons by three commissioners from the Assembly, under whose charge he re-entered Paris on the 25th of June. The fiiilui'e of this unhappy attempt was a cruel blow to the hopes of the Royalists, and was followed by the gravest conse- quences. Louis was now genei-ally i-egarded as having forfeited all title to respect and consideration. The Assembly suspended him provisionally from his royal functions, and assumed the ex- ecutive power ; the ultra-Democrats demanded that he should be brought to trial, and clamored openly for the proclamation of a republic. The Assembly, however, determined, after an agitating debate, that there was no ground for proceeding judicially against Louis on account of the flight to Varennes, and tliat therefore he should be restored to his throne upon the promulgation of the new constitution ; but that, if he should retract his oath of fidelity, or repeat the attempt to leave the kingdom, or place himself at the head of foreign troops, or permit an invasion of France to be made on his behalf, he should be deemed ipso facto to have abdicated, and should become amenable to the law like a private citizen. This decree enraged the Republican party ; and by the instiga- tion of their principal organs, the Jacobin and Cordelier clubs, a tumultuous popular demonstration in opposition to it was made in the Champ de Mars on the 17th of July. The Assembly, with A.D. 1791. THE FEUILLANTS. 543 an attitude of firm resolution to maintain its own authority, in- structed Bailly and Lafayette to take all necessary measures for preserving the public tranquillity. On proceeding to the Champ de Mars they were received with menacing shouts, showers of stones, and other outrages. All remonstrances proving fruitless, the mayor proclaimed martial law, and ordered the soldiers to fire upon the multitude ; when fifty persons — according to other ac- counts several hundreds — fell dead or wounded. Tliis affair en- tirely destroyed the popularity of Bailly, and brought both La- fayette and the Assembly into suspicion and discredit with the Eevolutionists, § 7. The scheme of the remodeled constitution was at length complete ; it was presented to the king, who, after several days' deliberation, signified his acceptance of it, and, repairing to the hall of the Assembly, took an oath to maintain and execute it faithfully. Louis was upon this declared to be reinstated in the exercise of his regal office ; the president then announced that the Constituent National Assembly had terminated its mission, and it was accordingly dissolved on the 30th of September, 1791, having previously decided that none of its members should be re-eligible to the forthcoming legislative body. The Legislative Assembly commenced its sittings on the 1st of October. It consisted of 745 members, chosen almost exclu- sively from the middle class, a lai-ge proportion being provincial avocats, men of slender fortune, doubtful character, and little weight in the country. Very few of the deputies belonged to the higher ranks of society, and altogether the Assembly could not be said to represent adequately the intelligence, wealth, or real sentiments of France- It was soon found that, notwithstanding the general diffusion of revolutionary principles and doctrines, the new Legis- lature contained within itself several distinctly marked parties, Avith smaller subdivisions. The cote droit was occupied by the Con- stitutionalists or Feuillants* who were for some time the prepon- derant section, until they lost the command of the municipality of Paris, which was wrested from them by their opponents of the cote gauche. The Feuillants professed to be satisfied with the political changes which had already taken place, and upheld the new system as giving sufficient security for popular liberty, while it preserved, at the same time, the forms and restraining authori- ty of monarchy. The leaders of this party were Mathieu Dumas, Ramond, Vaublanc, Girardin, and Lemontey ; it was also joined by Barnave, Duport, and Lameth, through whom friendly and even confidential relations were kept up with Louis and the court. * So called from their club, which Avas held in the convent of the Feuil- lants, £1 branch of the Order of St. Bernard. 544 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. The most powerful adherent of the Feuillants beyond the walls of the Assembly was Lafayette. The cote gauche, or party op- posed to the Feuillants, consisted of Kevolutionists, more or less violent and extreme in their views and purposes. Many of the ablest men in the Assembly were ranged on this side ; the most conspicuous were Vergniaud, G-uadet, and Gensonne', members for the department of the Gironde, from whom the party obtained the name of Girondins ; Bi'issot, a man possessed of great eloquence, capacity for business, and extensive acquaintance with foreign af- fairs ; and Condorcet, a metaphysical Avriter of considerable emi- nence. In close connection with the Girondins was a small knot of extravagant politicians, whose avowed object was to subvert the monarchy and establish a republic ; they were styled la Mon- tague {the Mountain), from their occupying the highest rows of benches on the extreme left of the hall. These were the dema- gogues of the ferocious rabble of Paris, npon whom they relied for the execution of their designs. Their power was chiefly ex- ercised and maintained by means of the two clubs called the Jac- obins and the Cordeliers, the former of which was governed by the terrible Maximilian Robespierre, and the latter by Danton, Marat, Camille Desmoulins, and Fabre d' Eglantine. The Centre of the Assembly was composed of members profess- edly moderate and independent in their principles. They acted, however, with timidity and vacillation, and soon lost all influence. They voted, for the most part, with the Girondins. § 8. The first question which occupied the Legislative Assembly was that relating to the emigrants, who had organized a regular army on the banks of the Rhine, under the Prince of Conde, and were intriguing with ceaseless activity to bring about a counter- revolution. After a long and stormy discusrion two decrees were passed ; the first enjoining the Count of Provence (afterward Louis XVIII.) to return to France within two months, under pain of forfeiting his eventual rights to the regency of the kingdom ; the second declaring the emigrants in general suspected of conspiring against France, and enacting that, if still found assembled in ai'ms on the first of January, 1792, they should be punishable with con- fiscation and death. To the former of these measures the king assented, but upon the latter he imposed his veto. This greatly offended and irritated the Assembly ; and, although Louis imme- diately afterward issued a proclamation to the emigrants, urging them to return, and threatening them with severe treatment in case of refusal, his sincerity was loudly called in question, and he was denounced as implicated in all the criminal schemes of tlie refugees against their country. The next subject which came un- der discussion was that of the priests who had refused to take the A.D. 1791. KOYAL MEETING AT PILNITZ. 545 prescribed oath of fidelity to the new constitution ; and here again the king and the Assembly came into dii-ect collision. The house decreed that the non-juring clergy should be deprived of the scanty provision which had been assigned to them in lieu of their confis- cated property, and should be placed under the surveillance of the authorities. Louis declared that nothing should induce him to sanction such an act of persecution, and a second time interposed his constitutional veto. At the same time the court committed the inconceivable and fatal error of affronting and alienating the constitutional party by supporting Fe'tion, a zealous Girondist, as candidate for the mayor- alty of Paris, in opposition to Lafayette. Lafayette seems never to have enjoyed the confidence of the royal family, and was re- garded by the queen with peculiar aversion ; she insisted that "he wished to ba mayor of Paris only in order to be at the same time mayor of the palace." The court accordingly intrigued in every way against Lafayette ; Petion gained his election ; and the ene- mies of the Constitution and the throne thus acquired the immense advantage of directing the civic government of the metropolis. The municipal council was now filled with men notoriously pledged to the cause of revolution, such as Danton, llobespierre, Tallien, and Billaud-Varennes. Meanwhile there was another question, which became every day more urgently important, and which involved eventually the triumph of the Kevolution and the fate of Louis, namely, the re- lations between France and the foreign powers, especially the states of Germany. The Emperor Leopold and the King of Prussia, at a meeting held at Piinitz in August, 1791, had issued a declaration announcing that they regarded the situation of the King of France as of common interest to all the sovereigns of Eu- rope, and appealing to the other powers to support them in an armed intervention for the purpose of I'e-establishing the monarch- ical government, with all its rights and prerogatives, in the hands of Ijoiiis. Troops had consequently been assembled, and Austria, Prussia, Piedmont, and Spain assumed a threatening attitude on difierent points of the French frontier. A special pretext for hos- tilities arose out of the alleged grievances of certain petty German princes, who had inherited claims to feudal jurisdiction in the provinces of Alsace and Lorraine. These obsolete rights had been swept away by tlie Kevolution, like every other remnant of the mediajval system ; but the proprietors — " princes possessiones"' as they were called — now made vehement complaints to the em- peror and the German Diet, insisting on complete restitution ; and angry communications on the subject were exchanged between the courts of Vienna, Berlin, and Paris. At length, upon the death 54G LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVi. of Leopold and the accession of Francis II., the Austrian minister Kaunitz dispatched an ultimatum to Paris, demanding that the French monarchy should be re-established in conformity with the royal declaration of June 23, 1789 ; that the fiefs of Alsace and Lorraine should be immediately restored to the dispossessed princes, and the county of Venaissin to the Pope ; and that the Church of Finance should be replaced in the enjoyment of the whole of its confiscated property. This proceeding filled the Legislative Assembly with suspicion, resentment, and alarm. The constitu- tionalist ministers of Louis — Bertrand de Moleville, Delessart, Narbonne, and others — were denounced as having traitorously fomented the hostile coalition against France ; the king found it impossible to support them against a vote declaring them to have forfeited the confidence of the nation ; they resigned abrupt- ly, and were succeeded in March, 1792, by a ministry chosen from the party of the Girondins — Roland being made minister of the interior, Claviere of finance, Servan of war, Duranthon of justice; while the portfolio of foreign affairs was given to General Du- mouriez, a man of genius, ambition, and great political boldness and sagacity, who, had he been placed earlier in a position of lead- ing influence, might perhaps have succeeded in averting the down- fall of the king and the monarchy. The advent of the Girondists to power was the signal for an immediate declaration of war. Indeed, after the recent manifesto from Vienna, the step had become unavoidable. It was announced in person by Louis to the Assembly on the 20th of April, 1792, and was received with marks of profound emotion, and general acclamations of "Vive le roi." Europe was now to enter on a struggle which, whether we con- template the momentous magnitude of the interests involved, tho permanent results arising from it, or the terrible extent of the sufferings and sacrifices it entailed, is altogether without parallel in the history of nations. § 9. Three considerable armies covered at this moment the line of the French frontier from Belgium to the borders of Switzer- land. Forty-eight thousand men under General Rochambeau lay between Dunkirk and Philippeville ; the corps of Lafayette, be- tween Philippeville and Lauterbourg, amounted to fifty-two thou- sand ; Marshal Luckner was at the head of forty-two thousand between Lauterbourg and Basle. The first operations, directed against the Austrian Netherlands, were unfortunate for the arms of France. A column of four thousand men under General Bi- ron, marching from Valenciennes upon Mons, dispersed and fled in a sudden panic, abandoning their camp to the enemy ; a second di\ ision, commanded by General Dillon, also broke their ranks be- A.D. 1792. ROLAND'S LETTER TO THE KING. 547 fore a shot had been fired, and massacred their commander and another officer, whom they accused of betraying them to the Aus- trians- Paris was violently agitated on the news of these stranoe reverses, and bitter recriminations were exchanged among the dif- ferent parties, all imputing the disaster to treachery, of which, however, no distinct proof could be produced. The Assembly in- stantly declared itself en permanence, and adopted three decrees, the first of which empowered the departmental authorities to ban- ish the refractory priests from France, the second disbanded the king's household troops and sent their commandant for trial be- fore the high court of Orleans, and the third ordered the estab- lisiuTient of a camp of twenty thousand provincial federates in the immediate vicinity of Paris. Louis consented to the dismissal of his guards, but resolutely placed his veto upon the other two pro- posals. The ministers remonstrated, and Roland published a long letter which he had addressed to the king, conceived in a tone of harsh and insolent menace ;* a rupture ensued between Louis and his cabinet ; Roland, Claviere, and Servan were dismissed from office on the 12th of June, and Dumouriez, after vainly attempt- ing to persuade his majesty to sanction the two decrees, sent in his resignation. This was another, and almost the last, of the manifold mistakes committed by the feeble-minded and ill-fated Louis. He named as successors to the discarded Girondists cer- tain obscure members of the Feuillant party, who found them- selves utterly powerless in the Assembly, and were loaded with abuse, insults, and derision by the populace. He also dispatched a secret envoy, Mallet Dupan, with confidential instructions to the emigrants and the princes of the coalition, thus identifying his cause with those who were regarded by the people as their bitter- est enemies. The Feuillants, however, exerted themselves to make a stand in defense of the tottering Constitution ; and Lafayette, especially, took the bold step of addressing from his camp at Mau- beuge a letter to the Legislative Body, denouncing in strong terms the iniquitous faction of the Jacobins, and peremptorily demand- ing the suppression of this and the other revolutionary clubs. This open declaration of war produced an explosion. The Girond- ists combined Avith the Jacobins to instigate an insuri'ectionary movement of the mob, in order to strike terror into the councils of the king and his advisers, and compel their acquiescence in the obnoxious decrees. On the 20th of June, the anniversary of the memorable oath of the Jeu de Paume, the multitude assembled, to the number of * Tliis document was composed in reality by his wife, the celebrated Ma- dame Roland, wliose influence in the Girondist ministry was equal, if not su- perior, to that of any of its ostensible members. 548 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. twenty thousand, in the Faubourgs St. Antoine and St.MarQeau, and, led by the brewer Santerre and the ci-devant Marquess of St. Pluruge, proceeded toward the Hall of the Assembly, under pretense of presenting a national petition. They Avere armed with pikes, clubs, scythes, axes, and other weapons, and carried with them various hideous emblems, and banners inscribed with insult- ing legends : a bullock's heart on the top of a pike, with the in- scription, " Heart of an aristocrat !" " Death to tyrants !" "Down with Veto and his wife!" "The Sans-culottes are coming;" "Liberty or death!" etc. These ruffianly bands were permitted, after some discussion, to appear at the bar of the Assembly, where Santerre apostrophized the members in a violent declamation, and afterward to defile through the hall, shouting, singing, and produc- ing a scene of indescribable confusion. From the Assembly the mob proceeded to the Tuileries, whei'e, although the gates were closed and locked, no definite orders had been given for defense. They entered the square of the Carrousel ; the national guards attempted to oppose their progress, but were ordered to desist by tlie municipal officers, who had doubtless received previous instruc- tions from the mayor, Pe'tion. The doors of the palace were open- ed without resistance, and the crowd swarmed up the grand stair- case, and penetrated to the presence of Louis, who was surround- ed by a few devoted friends and officers of the national guard. The king displayed on this trying occasion the most heroic cour- age, and never lost for a moment his calm dignity and self-posses- sion. A butcher, named Legendre, made himself the spokesman of the mob, and demanded, in insolent language, the recall of the popular ministers, and the sanction of the deci'ees for the banish- ment of the priests and the formation of the camp at Pai'is. "This is neither the time nor the place," replied Louis; "I will do all that is prescribed by the Constitution." This answer was applauded ; and when the king placed on his head the bonnet rouge, the symbol of revolutionary liberty, which, was offered to him by one of the rioters on the point of a pike, the shouts of ap- probation became general. This extraordinary scene lasted for upward of two hours ; at the end of which time Petion made his tardy appearance, and, after a few words of commendation to the people for their conduct, succeeded in persuading them to take their departure without committing farther violence. The palace was not entirely cleared before ten o'clock at night. § 10. The noble intrepidity which the king and his family had . manifested on the 20th of June, and the outrageous treatment to which they had been subjected, produced a momentary reaction of public feeling in their favor. The Constitutionalists endeavor- ed to avail themselves of this to reaain the confidence of the As- A.D. 179-2. REBELLION AND ANARCHY. 549 sembly and overthrow their RepubHcan rivals. Lafayette hasten- ed from his camp to Paris, appeared at the bar of the Assembly, expressed the indignation felt by all good citizens, and especially by the army, at the late disgraceful proceedings, and demanded the prompt and signal punishment of those w^ho had instigated the rising. His petition was i-eferred to a committee ; but when he attempted the farther measure of collecting an armed force to attack and overpower the Jacobins, Lafayette totally failed of success; not a hundred persons assembled at his summons. Aft- er an ineffectual effort to induce the king to try once more the chances of an escape from Paris, the general returned, bitterly disheartened, to his head-quarters on the frontier ; and he and his party thenceforth abandoned Louis to the fate which they now saw to be inevitable. The tide of rebellion and anarchy had indeed set in with un- controllable force. All France was seized with consternation at the near prospect of an invasion by eighty thousand foreigners, at a moment Avhen internal factions were threatening the outbreak of a disastrous civil war, while the government was manifestly powerless and disordered, and was more than suspected of being secretly in league with the invaders. The Legislative Body, im- pelled by the fiery and irresistible eloquence of Vergniaud, pro- claimed on the 11th of July that "the country was in danger." This was the signal for a general armed rising tlu'oughout France. Thousands of volunteers, or fedei'e's, hastened by forced marches toward the capital, headed by a battalion enrolled in Marseilles and its neighborhood, wliich by its sanguinary deeds acquired a terrible reputation in the subsequent course of the Revolution. A formidable insurrectionary army was thus marshaled under the walls of Paris, implicitly devoted to the Jacobin leaders ; and these latter immediately resolved on a decisive onslaught which should prostrate the throne of the Bourbons forever in the dust. At this moment of intense excitement appeared a most impolitic and of- fensive proclamation by the Duke of Brunswick, commander-in- chief of the allied armies, in which he summoned all the authox*- ities, military and civil, to make an immediate submission to their lawful king, declared the whole French nation individually re- sponsible for whatever opposition might be made to the invading army, and threatened, in case of the smallest outrage being offer- ed to the king or his family, to take exemplary and memorable vengeance, by delivering up the city of Paris to military execution and complete demolition. Upon this the flame of popular indig- nation blazed forth with inextinguishable fury. On the 3d of August the sections of Paris, with Petion at their head, proceeded to the Assembly, and unanimously demanded the deposition of the 550 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. king. On the Gth the same demand was repeated by a deputation of the federes. The Assembly hesitated ; and on the 8th, after a debate upon the recent conduct of Lafayette, they resolved, by a large majority, against the proposal for arresting and bringing him to trial. This exhausted the patience of the insurgents ; they saw that the Assembly was not to be trusted, and determined forth- with to bring matters to a summary conclusion in their own way. During the night between the 9th and 10th of August all the members of the commune of Paris were expelled from office, and their places filled by commissioners named by the forty-eight sec- tions ; the entire municipal authority was thus usurped by the leaders of the insurrection. Their arrangements for the attack having been made under the eye of Danton, and his accomplices Westermann, Santerre, Barbaroux, Desmoulins, and Alexandre, at midnight the terrible tocsin pealed throughout the city, and before daylight the multitude, well provided with arms and artillery, com- menced their fatal march upon the Tuileries. § 11. There had been gathered together, for the defense of the palace, a Swiss regiment numbering about nine hundred — an equal force of gendarmerie — twenty-five hundred national guards, of whom, however, only two battalions could be relied on for fidelity — and some four hvmdred noblemen and gentlemen, who claimed the privilege of surrounding the person of their sovereign in this hour of extreme pei-il. Petion, the mayor, also repaired to the Tuileries, but rather in the character of a spy than of a friend ; and Mandat, the commandant of the national guard, having re- ceived from him authority to repel force by force, disposed his. troops to the best advantage in and around the chateau. While the attack of the insurgents Avas momentarily expected, Mandat was summoned by an order of the municipality to attend them at the Hotel de Ville. On arriving, he found himself, to his utter dismay, in the hands of the Jacobins and their illegally- appointed commune ; he was arrested .and committed for trial, but, as he went out, a pistol-shot stretched him dead on the steps of the Hotel de Ville. This loss was fatal to the Eoyalists ; the troops at the chateau, deprived of their leader, became bewilder- ed and disordered ; the king, who, had he possessed the active, daring gallantry of men of a diiferent stamp, might in this critical moment have restored confidence, manifested a total want of en- ergy, and an attempt which he made to review the soldiers in the court served only to add to the prevailing discouragement. By seven in the morning the rioters had invested the palace in overpowering numbers, and fifty, pieces of cannon threatened it Avith destruction from the opposite quays of the Seine. The great- er part of the national guards now openly passed over to the side A.D.1792. THE TENTH OF AUGUST. 55 1 of the insurgents, and the artillerymen in the Carrousel absolutely refused to fire upon the people. It was evident that all was lost ; and the king, yielding to the urgent solicitations of Eoederer, pro- cureur general of the department, determined to retire from the Tuileries with his family, and to seek protection in the hall of the Legislative Assembly. It was a desperate step, and equivalent, under the circumstances, to an abdication of the throne ; but it was probably the only measure that could have secured the life, not only of Louis, but of the queen, their children, and their faith- ful friends and followers. Escorted by a small band of armed gentlemen and national guards, the royal party accordingly cross- ed the garden of the Tuileries, and, not without being exposed to considerable risk, gained the Salle du Manege, where the Assem- bly was sitting. Louis entered with dignity, observing that he was come among them in order to prevent the commission of a great crime. The president replied that the king might count upon the firmness of the National Assembly, which had sworn to die in defense of the people and the constituted authorities. The royal family were placed in a small box or chamber called the logographe, behind the president's chair. They were scarcely seat- ed in this place of refuge when a heavy discharge of fire-arms from the Tuileries announced that the struggle had commenced between the rebels and the brave defenders of the chateau. It appears that the Swiss at first showed a disposition to treat with the assailants with a view to reconciliation ; meanwhile a cannon- shot was fired in the court below, and the Swiss, concluding that their post was attacked, replied by a deadly volley from the win- dows, which spread consternation amid the rebel forces ; this was followed up by a vigorous sally from the chateau, which cleared the courts and dispersed the populace in terror on all sides. The Swiss remained victorious ; but at this instant they received an order from the king to cease firing, to abandon the chateau, and to proceed to the hall of the Assembly. In the confusion, the or- der was not communicated to the entire regiment; the greater part marched out into the garden, but some three hundred re- mained in the palace. Meanwhile the multitude rallied, and re- turned furiously to the assault ; the remnant of the guards main- tained for twenty minutes an heroic but totally useless contest, and in the end were cut down and massacred to a man. Numbers were slaughtered in the gardens and the adjoining streets ; and by eleven o'clocl* the insurrection had achieved a complete tri- umph. The conquerors then rushed in tumultuous masses to the Assembly, and dictated their own terms to the territied legislators. The president, Vergniaud, soon announced their decision ; it de- clared that "the chief of the executive power" was provisionally 552 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. suspended from his functions, and assigned the Luxembourg pal- ace as his temporary residence. A national Convention was to be named forthwith, to determine the future form of government, and secure the sovereignty of the people, and the reign of liberty, equality, and fraternity. Thus terminated the celebrated Tenth OF August. § 12. The supreme authority Avas now seized by the Jacobin The Temple. municipality, or commune of Paris, by whom this last decisive act of the revolutionary drama had been planned and executed. The Assembly became the subservient instrument of Irie commune, and was used simply for the purpose of giving a color of legality to its tyrannical decrees. The three Girondist ministers, Koland, A.D. 1792. ROYAL FAMILY SENT TO THE TEMPLE. 553 Claviere, and Servan, were immediately recalled ; Danton was named minister of justice ; Monge and Lebrun were placed at the head of the marine and of foreign affairs. The bloodthirsty Ma- rat was appointed president of a committee of " surveillance" or " surete gene'rale," which established a terrible system of espion- age and domiciliary visitation in Paris, under pretense of prevent- ing conspiracies against the state. A special criminal tribunal was instituted for the trial of all persons accused of sharing in the pretended " conspiracy against the nation" on the 10th of August, This court consisted of nine judges ; it proceeded by martial laAv, and its decisions were without appeal. The presidency was offer- ed to Robespierre, who was now rapidly rising into power ; he, however, declined it, as incompatible with his duties as a leading member of the commune. Three days after the insurrection the dethroned king and his family were consigned, by order of the commune, to the gloomy fortress of the Temple, where they re- mained prisoners under the custody and personal responsibility of the mayor and of Santerre, now commandant of the national guard. Their confinement was from the beginning cruelly rigor- ous ; they Avere deprived of their ordinary attendants, and for some time were even denied communication with each other ; the barest necessaries of life were not supplied them without much difficulty; and even in their daily walks in the narrow garden of their prison they were subjected to the brutal insults and outrages of the mu- nicipal guard. While these momentous events were passing in the capital, the grand army of the allies, numbering one hundred and ten thou- sand, with the King of Prussia in person at their head, had enter- ed the French territory on the 30th of July, and advanced upon Longwy, which fortress was invested on the 20th of August, and capitulated three days afterward. The invaders then marched upon Verdun, detaching at the same time a corps to form the siege of Thionville. The French army, amounting to about nine- ty thousand, was disposed in three great divisions, under Luckner, Lafayette, and Dumouriez ; the head-quarters of Lafayette were at Sc^dan. Three commissioners Avere dispatched to that place by the Assembly to give intelligence of the revolution of the 10th of August, and secure the adhesion of the troops to the new order of things. Lafayette, however, refused to recognize the authority of the Assembly, arrested their commissioners, and caused his sol- diers to renew their oath of fidelity to the king and the Constitu- tion. Upon this the Assembly forthwith declared the general a traitor to his country, and decreed his impeachment. The corps of Dnmourlez sided with the Kepublicans, and gradually induced their comrades to adopt their sentiments; and Lafayette, findinu- A A 554 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. himself abandoned and in personal danger, fled on the 20th of August to the camp of the allies, where he was detained as a pi-is- oner of war, and was sent eventually to the Austrian fortress of Olmutz, where he remained in confinement for five years. Du- mouriez was now appointed to replace Lafayette in the chief com- mand, and soon justified the confidence reposed in him by a mas- terly defense of the French frontier, which led to the entire dis- comfiture of the invaders. § 13. The news of the capture of Longwy, which was shortly followed by the surrender of Verdun, was received at Paris with universal consternation and dismay. The army was known to be divided by faction and defective in discipline ; the generals were inexperienced and of doubtful fidelity; an insurrection was on the point of breaking out in La Vende'e ; the central government was abandoned to frightful anarchy ; Servan and other ministers stated plainly that they saw no available means of preventing the Prus- sians from marching to Paris, and proposed that the Assembly and the authorities should retire behind the Loire. At this crit- ical moment Danton rose, and, having warmly combated the proj- ect of quitting Paris, declared, with terrible emphasis of voice and gesture, that, in order to save the country, " it was necessary to strike the Koyalists with terror ;" the phrase was repeated with still greater vehemence, and the Assembly immediately separated in confusion and alarm. It Avas then that the atrocious resolution was taken by the committee of surveillance to arrest and im- prison, under the name of suspected persons, all who, for whatev- er reason, were considered likely to be hostile to the Kevolution, and to exterminate them by a deliberate and organized massacre. On the night of the 30th of August all the barriers were closed and strictly guarded ; domiciliary visits were made throughout the city by the officers of the commune ; three thousand persons Avere arrested, and distributed in the various prisons, which were all crowded to overflowing. On the Second of Seitemeer the tocsin was rung, the generale beat, alarm-guns fired ; a preposter- ous, but too successful rumor was set on foot that the Royalists were about to attack the prisons and betray the city to the Prus- sians ; and under this pretext the hired ruffians of the commune rushed upon their prey, and the work of blood began. Twenty- four priests, who were being conducted from the Hotel de Ville to the Abbaye, were the first victims ; they were all inhumanly butch- ered by a band of cutthroats led by the infamous Maillard. The assassins next hurried to the chui'ch of the Carmelites, where more than two hundred priests were confined ; they were all merciless- ly slaughtered. Then returning to the Abbaye, these miscreants formed a sort of mock tribunal, in which Maillard assumed the A.D. 1792. THE MASSACRES AT PARIS. office of president; the unhappy captives were summoned from their cells one by one, and after a brief examination, wei-e dis- missed, almost without exception, with the expressive formula " Monsieur h la Force !" At this appointed signal they were thrust forcibly through a wicket into the court, where the fiendlike exe- cutioners awaited them, and were instantly hewn in pieces. Massacres at the Abbaye. 2d of September. This horrible jail-delivery continued for four days in succession. At the Chatelet, at the Bicetre, at the Conciergerie, at the Salpe- triere, at La Force, similar revolting scenes were enacted ; at the latter place the beautiful Princess de Lamballe, the confidential friend of Marie Antoinette, perished beneath the blows of these infuriated monsters, who afterward savagely profaned and mangled her remains. The murderers Avere regularly paid for their labor by the commune, and Billaud Varennes, one of the magistrates, appeared personally among them to applaud their patriotic zeal, and assure them that France knew not how to recompense their services. At length all the pi-isons were emptied, and the bloody torrent ceased to flow. It is impossible to ascertain positively the total number of those who wei'e sacrificed in these September mas- sacres ; it seems probable that at least two thousand Avere put to death in Paris alone, while many more suffered in the provinces, at Versailles, Lyons, Reims, Meaux, and Orleans. The Assembly maintained during the whole time a pusillanimous silence, coolly transacting the most ordinary and even trivial business, and af- fecting ignorance of the horrors which were passing almost before their eyes. 55G LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. § 14. It is a relief to turn to the operations of the military cam- paign. After the fall of Verdun, the Duke of Brunswick, instead of boldly advancing on the road to Paris, distributed his army along the line of the Meuse, and lost ten days in inactivity. This gave Dumouriez time to concentrate thirty thousand men, and to occupy the defiles of the forest of Argonne, wliich, with admirable intuition, he called the Thermopylje of France. He was well sup- ported by Generals Kellermann, Dillon, and Beurnonville, and es- tablished himself in a strongly-intrenched position at Grandpi'e, having collected in his rear every available means of arresting tlie farther progress of the enemy. On the lltli of September the French were vigorously assailed on several points, but the attacks were decisively repulsed. On the 13th, however, the position of the Croix-anx-bois Avas forced by the Austrians, and the situation of Dumouriez, attacked in front by forty thousand Prussians, while the Austrians menaced him in tlank, became extremely critical. On the 16th he decamped from Grandpre, but, instead of falling back upon Chalons, he ascended the River Aisne, and took post at Ste. Me'nehould. In consequence of this movement, the road to Chidons and Paris now lay open to the Prussians ; of this, how- ever, they took no advantage, but advanced toward the French po- sition, and on the 20th an action took place with the corps com- manded by Kellermann at Vai>my, which was confined chiefly to a cannonade, the loss on both sides being about equal. An at- tempted charge, however, of the Prussians was met by the French Avith so much steadiness and gallantry, that the Duke of Bruns- wick countermanded the movement, and the engagement ceased. The Prussian general now made overtures for negotiation, but re- ceived for answer from the Convention (which opened its sittings on the day after the victory at Valmy) that " the French Eepub- lic could listen to no propositions vmtil the Prussian forces had entirely evacuated the French territory." The duke, whose army was in a deplorable condition, and greatly I'educed by disease and scarcity of provisions, gave orders for a retreat on the 30th of September. Dumouriez, who was suspected on this occasion of a treacherous understanding with the enemy, permitted them to traverse the dangerous passes of the Argonne without molesta- tion. They restored Longwy and Verdun, recrossed the frontier, and reached Coblenz toward the end of October, having sacrificed in this ill-conducted and inglorious expedition neai'ly thirty thou- sand men. Meanwhile General Montesquieu, with twenty thousand men, had invaded Savoy, where he met with an enthusiastic reception ; another corps, under General Anselme, took possession of the coun- ty of Kice; General Custinc seized without opposition the cities A.D. 1792. THE NATIONAL CONVENTION. 55*^ of Worms, Spires, and Mayence ; and tlie imperial forces in tlie Netherlands, having bombarded Lille, retired hastily across the frontier on the news that the victorious Dumouriez was in full march against them. These rapid successes highly elated the lie- publican dictators at Paris, restored the confidence and courage of the nation, and inspired Europe with astonishment and admiration. Dumouriez, having obtained the consent of the ministers to a plan of offensive operations against Austria, now undertook the conquest of Belgium. Pie marched from Valenciennes upon Mons on the 23d of October, and, finding the Austrians, under General Clairfait, strongly posted on the wooded heights near the village of JicMMAPES, he attacked them on the 6th of November. U'he combat was stern and bloody, upward of two thousand being slain on each side ; but the position of the Austrians was triumphantly carried, and they made a precipitate retreat toward Brussels. The submission of the whole of the Netherlands was the fruit of the victory of Jemmapes. Dumouriez took possession of Brussels on the 14th of November, amid general acclamations, and the Bel- gians immediately renounced the dominion of the emperor and proclaitned a republic. The lievolutionists of Paris now gave way to transports of joy and self-congratulation. On the 19th of No- vember the Convention published a vainglorious decree, proffer- ing fraternity and succor to all nations of the world who might desire to recover their liberty ; and a few weeks later it was re- solved that, wherever French generals might carry the arms of the republic, they should forthwith proclaim the sovereignty of the people, the abolition of the ancient system, the confiscation of the property of priests and nobles, and the appointment of new officers for the civil and municipal administration. In such a style of insolent arrogance did revolutionized France defy the le- gitimate thrones of Europe. § 15. The National Convention met for the first time on the 21st of September, 1792. Its members were exclusively of Ee- publican sentiments, but it contained, nevertheless, two bitterly hostile parlies — the Girondists, who now occupied the cote droit, and tlie Montague, who formed the cote' gauche, and were the or- gan of the commune, the Jacobin club, the sections, and the Par- isian rabble. Between these two lay, as usual, the neutral party of the Centre, which was now styled La Plaine or Le Marais ; tliey voted sometimes with the Girondins, sometimes with their opponents ; but, being destitute of any independent firmness or vigor, found themselves unable in decisive moments to prevent the defeat of the former or to restrain the outrageous and infamous excesses of the latter. On the first day of its session the Conven- tion resolved by acclamation, on the motion of Collot d'Herbois, 558 LOUIS XVI. Chap. XXVI. that "royalty was abolished in France," and that from that day should be dated the year One of the French Republic. A decree of perpetual banishment was passed against the emigrants, who were to be punishable with death if they re-entered France or were taken with arms in their hands. The usual titles of courtesy. Monsieur and Madame, were now suppressed, and replaced by citoyen and citoyenne ; tu and toi were also substituted for vous. The fierce antagonism between the Girondists and tlie Mon- tagnards became apparent from the earliest days of the Conven- tion. But the great occasion of conflict between the rival jaarties was the question of the trial of the deposed king. Much discus- sion took place upon the preliminary points whether Louis (whose person was declared inviolable by the constitution) could be tried at all ; and again, if tried, before Avhat tribunal should the cause be brought*? The report of the committee, presented on the 7th of November, recommended that the king should be tried at the bar of the Convention itself, and that his fate should be determ- ined by the votes of the whole body, taken separately and deliv- ered aloud. To this the Girondists, who were desirous of saving the king's life, but lacked the honesty and courage to avo^v their real sentiments, assented, intending, without doubt, in case of a condemnation, to sentence Louis, not to capital punishment, but to imprisonment or exile. It was at this moment that Eoland, minister of the interior, received information of a mysterious iron chest, which had been secreted behind a panel in the king's bed- chamber at the Tuileries. The chest was discovered in the spot indicated, and Roland took possession of all the papers it contain- ed, which Avere said to afford ample proof of the king's culpable correspondence with the emigrants and foreign enemies of France, and of all the intrigues in which he had engaged to promote a counter-revolution. It was upon the evidence thus obtained, in great measure, that the indictment against Louis was framed. This document was presented to the Convention on the 10th of December, and it was ordei'ed that the king should be brought to the bar on the following day. § IG. On the 11th of December the unfortunate prince accord- ingly appeared before this self-constituted tribunal, where he con- ducted himself with an unmoved calmness, self-possession, and resignation which touched the hearts of many of his judges, and produced a considerable impression in his favor. Barrere, the president, addressing him as Louis Capet, proceeded to read the long catalogue of imputed crimes by which the king had at- tempted to "establish his tyranny by destroying the liberty of the French people." The charges related chiefly to his negotiations with foreign powers Avitli a view to the invasion of France, the A.D. 1702. TRIAL OF THE KING. 5.59 •liight to Varennes and the ai-rangements which preceded it, various instances of resistance to the popular will, and refusal of his sanc- tion to the decrees of the Legislature, and, above all, to the blood- slied of the 10th of August, which, by an outrageous perversion of truth and justice, was alleged to have been caused by his or- ders. Louis replied to the lengthened interrogatory with great patience and temper. Some of the charges he absolutely denied, disclaiming especially all knowledge of the iron chest and its con- tents ; others he refuted by observing that no law existed at the time to prevent his acting as he did ; and others, again, by throw- ing the responsibility on his ministers, and on the Assembly it- self. The accusation of having shed the blood of the people on the 10th of August he repelled with some energy, by saying that as one of the constituted authorities he had a perfect right to de- fend the Tuileries against attack, but that he had not even done this ; on the contrary, he had voluntarily quitted the palace to take refuge in the bosom of the Assembly. The examination be- ing at length concluded, the king was remanded to the Temple, and from this time was refused all communication Avith his fami- ly. Lie obtained permission, however, to name advocates to con- duct his defense, and selected two eminent lawyers, Tronchet and Target ; the latter declined the office, and his place Avas instantly supplied by Lamoignon-Malesherbes, one of the most distinguish- ed of the former ministers of Louis, who eagerly volunteered his services. To these was afterward added a young barrister of brilliant talent named Deseze. These courageous men fulfilled with the utmost zeal, ability, and devotion the honorable but per- ilous duty assigned to them. Louis appeared before the Convention for the second and last time on the 26 th of December. The speech of Deseze in his de- fense was a masterpiece of argument and oratory, demonstrating that the charges relating to the period before the king's accept- ance of the constitution were answered by the very fact of that acceptance, while the declared inviolability of his person shielded him from judicial censure for whatever had occurred since that date. But the appeal was wholly useless, for it fell upon the eare of judges who had long before resolved upon their sentence. As soon as Louis withdrew, the Chamber became a scene of ex- traordinary agitation and tumult, and the rancor of the difierent factions was several times on the point of breaking out into actual violence. The Girondists endeavored to compound Avith their consciences by proposing to submit the question of the king's guilt or innocence to the judgment of the people; that so either the responsibility of shedding his blood, or, in the contrary case, the rench army retired unmo- lested to the frontier. But meanwhile intelligence of the treason- able projects of Dumouriez had been secretly conveyed to Paris ; the Convention immediately passed a decree summoning him to appear at their bar to answer for his conduct, and transmitted the order to the camp by the hands of Beurnonville, minister of war, and four other commissioners. Dumouriez flatly refused obedi- ence, arrested the commissioners, and sent them under a guard to the head-quarters of the Austrians at Tournay. He then issued a pi'oclamation to his army, exhorting them to follow him in a march to Paris, to deliver France from the sanguinary tyranny of the Convention. His troops, however, abandoned liim ; and Dumouriez, with the Duke of Chartres and the rest of his staff, took refuge in the camp of the Imperialists. Dumouriez was never afterward permitted to return to France. He resided chiefly in England, where he died at an advanced age in 1823. § 2. The inevitable and immediate result of the murder of Louis XVI. was to hurry on to its crisis the internecine strife between the Girondists and the Jacobins. One of the first great measures carried against the former was the establishment, on the lOtli of March, 1793, of the Revolutionary Tribunal — the most execrable engine of lawless oppression and cruelty that ever disgraced a civ- ilized nation. This was followed by the appointment, on the 27th of May, of the terrible " Committee of Public Safety"' {Comite da Sahit Public), which consisted of nine members, Barrere and Dan- ton being the most influential. This committee, whose delibera- tions Avere secret, was empowered to take whatever measures might appear necessary to the welfare of the republic, both in- ternal and external. It controlled the proceedings of the minis- ters, acted with supreme independent authority in matters of ur- gency, and made a report every week to the Convention. On the 2d of June the Tuileries were completely surrounded by an armed multitude of eighty thousand men, with a formidable park of artillery commanded by Henriot ; and the commune re- quired from the affrighted deputies an immediate decree for the 5QQ THE REPUBLIC. CiiAP. XXVII. arrest of the Girondist members. They at finst refused compli- ance, but were at length compelled to vote at the point of the bay- onet the arrest of thirty-two Girondist members, including Bris- sot, Vergniaud, Guadet, Gensonne, Petion, and all the celebrated names of the party. Such was the fall of the Girondists — a mem- orable and righteous retribution for their cowardly abandonment of the king. § 3. Many of the expelled deputies made their escape from Paris, and repaired to Caen, where they placed themselves at the head of an insurrectionary movement of the western departments against the Convention. A rival administration was formed, and regular communication established Avith the disaffected in other parts of France, especially at Bordeaux, Lyons, Marseilles, and Toulon ; armed levies were made, and very general symptoms appeared of the outbreak of civil war. It was now that a young woman be- longing to an ancient but decayed family, Charlotte Coi'day, an enthusiastic admirer of the Girondists, set out from Caen to Paris, ■and, having obtained an interview with the sanguinary Marat under pretense of giving him information about the progress of the revolt, stabbed him to the heart as he lay in his bath. She House iu wliich (Jhailoite iJorduy was born, at Koncerac, departement de VOrne. was instantly arrested, glorying in her deed ; and having been condemned by the Kevolutionary Tribunal, suffered with extraor- dinary fortitude and courage on the loth of July. A formidable insurrection, but of a different character, had broken out in the province of La Vendee. The population of A.D. 1793. INSUKKECTION IN LA VENDEE. 567 this district were remarkable for their ardent and devoted attach- ment to the throne, the aristocracy, and the ancient constitution of France. The murder of the king, and a subsequent decree of the Convention ordering a compulsory levy of three hundred thou- sand men, drove this loyal and high-spirited peasantry into open revolt. They chose for their leaders several noblemen and gen- tlemen of high local reputation — La Rochejacquelein, Lescure, D'Elbee, Bonchamps, Charette — together with others of their oAvn class, Cathelineau and Stofflet ; and within two months made themselves completely masters of that part of the country, having repeatedly defeated the Republican generals, and driven them be- yond the Loire. Fresh forces were sent against them, and after a lierce and gallant struggle the insurrection was crushed by the end of the year, though Charette and Stofflet continued to carry on a desultory warfare among the marshes of Lower Brittany. The city of Lyons made a determined and proti-acted resistance to the Convention. SuiTounded by an army of sixty thousan;! men under Kellermann, it sustained heroically the horrors ci' a two months' siege, and only surrendered when reduced to the lat^t extremity. Three commissioners — Couthon, Fouche, and CoUot d'Herbois — were then dispatched from Paris, and wreaked on the devoted city a vengeance of tmparalleled atrocity. Near two thousand of the inhabitants perished by the sentence of a revolu- tionary tribunal. The ordinary method of the guillotine was found insufficient to dispatch the victims ; they were brought out in batches to the Place des Brotteaux, and mowed down by re- peated discharges of musketry and cannon. All the public edi- fices, and many of the handsomest private dwellings, were totally demolished ; and a monument was erected among the ruins, with the inscription, "Lyons made war against liberty — Lyons is no more." It was ordered that the town should bear thenceforth the name of " la Commune affranchie."' Toulon, where the population was decidedly Eoyalist, called in the assistance of the fleet under Admiral Hood, and the town was occupied by a British garrison. A regular siege was soon com- menced ; and it was on this occasion that the talents of Napoleon Bonaparte, then a young officer serving under General Dugom- mier as commandant of artillery, were first brought into prominent notice. The victory of the republic was entirely the result of his sagacious and scientific dispositions. The British troops evacu- ated Toulon on the 19th of December, and escaped on board the fleet, carrying Avith them several thousands of French refugees. § 4. After the downfall of the Girondists the Jacobins were driven by the necessities of their position to establish a system of sanguinary despotism, to which no parallel can be found in the 568 THE REPUBLIC. Chap. XXVIL whole stream of liistoiy, and which has consigned their name to the everlasting abhorrence of mankind. Their reign Avill be known to the remotest ages as the Reign of Terkor. llOBESPiERRE was chosen a member of the Committee of Pub- lic Safety in July, 1793, and from that moment its proceedings were marked by a degree of firmness, activity, and systematic vig- 01', which, if displayed in a good cause, would have been Avorthy of high commendation. The principal colleagues of Kobespierre in this terrible secret conclave were Barrere, Carnot (who directed all military operations), Couthon (who presided over the police), Herault de Sechelles, St. Just, and Billaud-Varennes. They com- menced by proclaiming a new and hastily framed constitution, of an absurdly democratic and impracticable character, which was inaugurated at a national fete, with pagan and atheistical ceremo- nies, on the 10th of August. Next followed a decree for a levy en masse of all citizens capable of bearing arms ; another for a forced loan amounting to nearly one year's revenue ; another ex- torting from all landowners and farmers a contribution of two- tliirds of their produce in grain for the consumption of the army ; another imposing a maximum — that is, a fixed arbitrary price above Avhich no provisions could be sold — upon bread, meat, wine, salt, wood, and other articles. A farther measure— the famous "loi des suspects" — placed the liberty and property of the Avhole population of France at the uncontrolled disposal of the govern- jiient, and soon filled the prisons with upAvard of two hundred thousand miserable captives. The executive administration of the dreaded Decemvirate Avas of the most ferocious and relentless character. 'Jhe Eevolution- ary Tribunal Avas brought into constant requisition, and the scaf- folds soon reeked with the blood of victims of all classes, ages, and conditions, immolated for the all-comprehensive crime of hostil- ity to the republic. The first remarkable personage condemned Avas General Custine, Avho suffered for his defeat at Mayence and for the fall of Valenciennes. The unfortunate queen, Marie An- toinette, Avas next sacrificed ; she Avas charged Avith having exer- cised a ci'iminal influence OA'er her husband, with having wasted the public treasure, Avith having instigated the foreign invasion ; she died Avith touching serenity and magnanimity on the 16th of October, 1793. Then followed the trial of tAventy-one of the pro- scribed Girondist deputies. They defended themselves AA'ith great address, boldness, and eloquence ; and the court, after sitting for four days, shoAved, for the first time, symptoms of embarrassment and hesitation. A resolution Avas forthwith passed in the Con- vention, authorizing the jury, Avhen three days had been spent in the iuA^cstigation of a case, to declare themselves satisfied, Avifliout A.D. 1793. IIEIGN OK TERROK. 569 waiting for farther pleadings ; this infamous justification was at once acted upon, and the Girondists were sentenced to death. One of them, Yalaze, committed suicide in the court ; the rest met their fate by the guillotine on the 31st of October, displaying in their last moments great resolution and intrepidity. On their way to the scatFold they chanted in chorus the famous Marseillaise Hymn. The despicable Egalite, duke of Orleans, Avas executed on the 6tli of November. His long career of wickedness, and especially his baseness in voting the death of Louis, had deprived him of all sympathy, and his head fell amid the savage imprecations of the multitude. The enthusiastic and noble-hearted Madame Roland was led to the scaffold a few days afterward. On passing before the statue of Liberty which was erected at the Place de la Re'vo- lution, she apostrophized it in the memorable words, "O Liberty! what crimes are committed in thy name!" Pier husband, who with her aid had escaped the fatal decree of proscription on the 31st of May, deliberately stabbed himself on receiving the tidings of her death. The executions continued in rapid succession. Bailly, the ex-mayor of Paris, was guillotined on the Champs de Mars, the scene of his unpardonable offense in firing on the peo- ple on the 20th of July. Barnave, Duport, Lebrun ; the unsuc- cessful generals Houchard, Brunet, and Biron Lauzun ; and the notorious Madame du Barry, so long the reigning mistress of Louis XV., all suffered in turn imder the fatal knife. While these bloody scenes passed in the- capital, the Terrorists were executing vengeance in its most hideous and revolting form on the wretched survivors of the Vendean insurrection. A revo- lutionary tribunal was established at Nantes, under the presidency of a miscreant named Carrier, who, not content with the ordinary action of the guillotine, racked his hellish invention in discovering new methods of wholesale destruction. We need not do more than allude to the atrocious noyades, fusillades, and manages re'pnh- Ucains of Nantes ; the details are too disgusting to soil our pages. The very waters of the Loire became so polluted by these horrors that their use was forbidden as injurious to health. Not less than fifteen thousand persons are computed to have perished at Nantes by Carrier's orders during the three months of October, Novem- ber, and December, 1793. § 5. Divisions quickly arose among the Terrorists themselves. Robespierre and Danton were moderate in their ideas and decent in their conduct compai'ed with the desperate faction of tlie He- bertists, who now exercised tlie chief sway over the commune of Paris. Hebert and other ultra-Democrats made a furious assault on the Christian religion, the very profession of which they de- 570 THE REPUBLIC. Chap.XXVII. termined to root out from France, well knowing it to be the foun- dation of all morality and social order. By their instigation a petition to this effect was presented to the Convention by Gobel, the " constitutional" Bishop of Paris, and his clergy, who publicly renounced their belief and functions as ministers of the Catholic Church, and declared that henceforth they would recognize no public worship but that of liberty, equality, and reason. A de- cree was forthwith passed in accordance with this appalling act of apostasy. The religion of Jesus Christ was formally proscribed and suppressed ; all Christian worship was prohibited ; the God- dess of Reason, personated by a well-known figurante from the Opera, was impiously enthroned in the very sanctuary of the ca- thedral of Notre Dame ; and the meinbers of the Convention, the commune, and all the constituted authorities, bowed before her in public adoration. Over the entrance to the cemeteries was now placed the heathen inscription, "Death is an eternal sleep." The churches were desecrated throughout France ; abbeys and relig- ious houses were secularized and pillaged ; the very graves of the dead were violated ; the remains of the French monarchs were sacrilegiously dragged forth from their sepulchres at St. Denis, and exposed to the scorn and brutal insults of the multitude. It was at this time, too, that the Gregorian Calendar was abolished, and replaced by the Revolutionary Era, which commenced from the 22d of September, 1792. The year was divided into twelve equal months of thirty days each, to which were added five intercalary days, ridiculously called Sansculottides. The months were fanci- fully named from the characteristic features of the different sea- sons ; Vende'miaire (vintage month), Brumaire (foggy month), Ni- vose, Pluviose, etc. The observance of Sunday being abrogated, every tenth day, or decadi, as it was termed, was proclaimed a public holiday. These grotesque innovations of the infidel repub- lic remained in force, strange to say, till the 1st of January, 1806. Robespierre, who seems always to have preserved some senti- ments of decency, and in religious matters never went beyond the profession of deism, opposed himself vigorously to these outra- geous extravagances of the He'bertists. They attempted to organ- ize an insurrection of the sections ; but the populace made no movement, and the fate of the conspirators Avas sealed. They were impeached by St. Just in the Convention on the 13th of March, 1794, arraigned before the Revolutionary Tribunal on the 20th, and, the trial having lasted for three days, were condemned to death by virtue of the late regulation permitting the jury to declare itself satisfied at the expiration of that time. They were executed, to the number of nineteen persons, including Hebert, Vincent, Ronsin, and a fanatical Prussian baron named Anachar- A.D. 1794. DEATH OF DANTON. 57I sis Clootz, on the 24th ; all the gang, with the exception of Ron- Fin and Clootz, betraying the most abject weakness and terroi' in their last moments. The fate of the He'bertists was received with universal joy. It was regarded as a proof that Robespierre and his friends had de- cidedly espoused the cause of moderation and mercy, and that the Reign of Terror was about to terminate. There remained, how- ever, between Robespierre and the possession of that absolute, un- divided, unlimited empire at which he aimed, the party headed by Danton, who had now become thoroughly disgusted with the enormities of the Revolution, and earnestly desired to return to a more lenient and tranquil system of government. Danton be- came, in consequence, an object of mortal suspicion and enmity to the merciless dictator. He was repeatedly warned of his dan- ger, but replied that his enemies dared not arrest him, and dis- dained to fly. His name was still universally feared, and it was Avith extreme astonishment that Paris learned, on the 1st of April, 1794, barely a week after the death of Hebert, that the redoubta- ble Danton had been seized in his bed the night before, and, with his associates, was a prisoner at the Luxembourg.* The Convention, mute with consternation, offered not a shadow of opposition. The prisoners — Danton, Camille Desmoulins, Fabre d'Eglantine, He'rault de Se'chelle, and others, to the num- ber of fifteen — were brought to trial without delay, upon various incoherent and impi-obable charges. Danton defended himself with lion-like vigor and audacity ; and such was the sympathy manifested toward him by .the Parisians, that Robespiei-re and his enslaved tribunal were for some time in trepidation as to the re- sult. At length, by a skillful manoeuvre, an order was obtained from the Convention enjoining the judges to put out of court (mettre hors des debats) any prisoners who might fail in respect to the tribunal, and to proceed at once to their condemnation. This was instantly acted upon ; Danton and his friends were drag- ged away from the bar in the midst of their angry declamations, and on the Gth of April they all suffered by tlie guillotine. § 6. Having thus pitilessly trampled down all opposition, Robes- piex-re reigned for a brief period in sole and undisputed despotism. No i-elaxation, however, took place in the accursed system of ter- ror; on the contrary, the judicial massacres greatly increased in numbers and cruelty, as if the tyrant felt that the continuance of * These transactions are understood toliave resulted from a compact made 1)y Robt'spierre, Couthon, and h't. Just, with Collot d'Hcrbois, Biilaiid-Va- rennes, and Barrere, the latter abandoning tlie Hebertists to llobespierre on condition tliat he sliould make no opposition to the destruction of the Dan- tonists. 572 '^HE REPUBLIC. Chap. XXVII. liis power depended on his persevering energy in the same detest- able measures by which he had attained it. At the same time Kobespierre took an early opportunity of repealing those blasphe- mous acts which had made the French a nation of professed athe- ists. He proclaimed in the Convention that belief in the exist- ence of a God was necessary to those principles of virtue and mo- rality upon which- the republic was founded ; and on the 7th of May the national representatives, who had so lately prosti-ated themselves before the Goddess of Reason, voted by acclamation that " the P'^rench people acknowledge the existence of the Su- preme Being and the immortality of the soul." The " Fete de ri^tre Supreme," held soon afterward (June 8), was a theatrical exhibition of very questionable taste, in which Kobespierre, as president of the Convention, played the part of high-priest, with ill-concealed self-exaltation and triumph. At this moment the tyrant may be said to have attained the summit of his extraordi- nary fortunes ; and, by a strange fatality, it was on this occasion that the first seeds were sown of that hostile coalition which in the course of a few weeks was to achieve his ruin. Great dissat- isfaction was excited by the pre-eminence assumed at the festival by Kobespierre over his colleagues. Various threatening hints were dropped in his heai-ing : " It is but a step from the Capitol to the Tarpeian Kock," said one; "He would accustom the Ke- public to adore some one, in order to make himself adored by-and- by," exclaimed another. On the 22d Prairial (June 10) resolu- tions were presented to the Convention by Couthon for conferring increased and monstrous powers on the Kevolutionary Tribunal. It was to be divided into four courts, for the more expeditious dispatch of business ; the " enemies of the Kepublic," against whom it was to act, were defined in the most vague, arbitrary, and comprehensive terms ; the juries were empowered to convict without examining witnesses or hearing counsel, and upon any proof, material or moral, verbal or written, which they might deem sufficient ; and the sole penalty to be inflicted for all off'enses was death. This frightful proposition, which manifestly placed the lives of the whole Convention, and, indeed, of the whole French nation, at the absolute disposal of Kobespierre, was vehemently combated, but was ultimately adopted. Its effects Avere appalling. Between the 10th of June and the 27th of July, 1794, upward of fourteen hundred victims perished by the hands of the execution- er. The daily batches (fournt'es) frequently included fifty, and even sixty, seventy, and eighty individuals. Fouquier-Tinville, tlie public accuser, at length proposed to erect the guillotine in a hall adjoining the tribunal, and to dispatch five hundred prisonei'S in one day. The total number of those sacrificed during the six- A.D. 1794. FALL OF ROBESPIERRE. 573 teen months that the tribunal was in force is ascertained to have been two thousand seven hundred in Paris alone. Of the blood- shed in the provinces no accurate estimate has ever been formed. § 7. At this crisis Robespierre suddenly absented himself from the Committees of Public Safety and of General Security, where his enemies, especially CoUot d'PIerbois and Billaud-Varennes, had acquired considerable influence, and did not conceal their act- ive hatred. A powerful confederacy was gradually formed against him in the Convention, headed by Tallien, Fouche, Barras, Bour- don, Carnot, and Barrere — able and determined men, all fully conscious that the struggle about to commence must be one of life and death, since a private list had been discovered in which the tyrant doomed them to the guillotine, together with forty of their colleagues, on the first opportunity. The conspirators in- trigued rapidly and secretly, and determined to bring matters to an immediate issue. On the 26th of July the final conflict be- gan ; Robespierre suddenly made his appearance in the tribune at the Convention, and delivered a vague and tedious, but angry and insolent tirade against the two committees, the government func- tionaries, and all others who opposed him, denouncing them as traitors, calumniators, atheists, profligates, brigands. The house heard him without the smallest sympathy ; and the tyrant with- drew, disconcerted and humiliated, to the Jacobin club, where measures Avere arranged for the mortal strife expected on the morrow. The 27th of July was the decisive day. A report on Robes- pierre's speech, read by St. Just, was tumultuously interrupted by Billaud-Varennes and Tallien, who were powerfully supported by Collot d'Herbois, the president of the day. ''A chasm deeper than the catacombs," cried Billaud, "is dug at your feet, and ei- ther you must fill it Avith your dead bodies, or you must hurl down Robespierre and his fellow-tyrants." Tallien drew forth a daggei', and declared that, if the Convention had not the courage to order the arrest of Robespierre, he Avould instantly strike him to the heart. Vainly did the doomed man strive to obtain a hear- ing. Plis voice was drowned by the indignant shouts which arose from all sides of "Down with the tyrant !" "Death to the tri^ umvirs!" and in the midst of inconceivable agitation and disorder the house voted itself in permanent session, and decreed the arrest of Robespierre, Couthon, and St. Just, to whom Lebas and the younger Robespierre were added by their own desire. The five members were removed to the bar with general acclamations and cries of "Vive la Re'publique !" and were soon afterward confined separately in different prisons. The ferocious Henriot, command- ant of the civic force, was taken into custody at the same time. 574 THE REPUBLIC. Chap. XXVII. The cause of Kobespierre, liowever, was not yet utterly lost. The commune was instantly in arms, roused the sections, released Henriot, sent strong detachments of officers and troops to the five prisons, delivered the popular tribunes, and carried them in tri- umph to the Hotel de Ville. The Convention acted in this crisis Avith determined firmness. They passed a decree of outlawry against Robespierre and his four colleagues, Henriot, and the Avhole commune of Paris. The greater part of the sections at once declared in favor of the national representatives. Barras was named to the command of their armed force ; at midnight he surrounded the Hotel de Ville with his battalions, and, all resist- ance being hopeless, the conspirators surrendered at discretion. As the gendarmes approached to seize them, Lebas shot himself dead with a pistol, the younger Eobespiei-re leaped from a window and fractured his leg, and his elder bi'Other, attempting suicide, wounded himself frightfully in the lower jaw. The long file of prisoners were conveyed first to one of the committee-rooms at the Tuileries, and thence to the Conciergerie. On the 28th of July they were all carried before the Revolutionary Tribunal, but merely for the formality of being identified, since they were al- ready sentenced to death as outlaws. Insults, maledictions, and brutal exultation accompanied them to the guillotine ; and as the head of Robespierre rolled upon the scafibld, the vast crowd broke into a loud, unanimous, and prolonged chorus of acclamation. § 8. The revolution of the Ninth Thekmidor put an end to the Reign of Terror, although it by no means appears that such was the intention of its authors. Tallien, Fouche, Legendre, and their friends were scarcely less bloodthirsty than those whom they had overthrown ; but the whole nation saw in the fall of Robespierre a reaction against tyranny, and in favor of just and humane gov- ernment ; and the force of public opinion produced this as a nec- essary result. The Committees of Public Safety and General Se- curity were now remodeled, and their power much restrained. The prisons Avere visited, and upward of 10,000 detained under the infamous "loi des suspects" Avere restored to liberty in the capital alone. An outcry for vengeance against the Terrorists soon arose among those whose relatives had perished under the late fearful system. An association was formed by the young men of Paris, to the number of several thousands, chiefly of the upper classes, who, under the appellation of " la Jeunesse Doree," and wearing a fantastic costume " a la victime," devoted them- selves to measures of summary retaliation upon the Jacobins. On the 9th of November they made a desperate attack on the hall of the Jacobin club ; the windows Avere smashed, the doors forced open, and, after a brief contest, the discomfited clubbists Averc A.D. 1795. FINAL DEFEAT OF THE MONTAGNARDS. 575 driven forth from their den of iniquity, and the assailants remain- ed victorious. The hall was now closed by order of the Conven- tion, and this odious fraternity was soon afterward dissolved, to the great joy of the nation. Retributive punishment now fell fast upon the accomplices of Robespierre. The detestable Carrier was sent before the Revo- lutionary Tribunal, and suffered by the guillotine. The same fate Avas most deservedly inflicted on Fouquier-Tinville, the heartless public prosecutor under the Reign of Terror. The Convention proceeded to decree that there was matter of accusation against Collot d'Herbois, Billaud-Varennes, Barrere, and Vadier, all execrated as having been foremost among the* Ter- rorists. They were committed to prison, but were not brought to trial till some months later. A resolution was next passed re- calling to their seats in the Convention seventy-three members, chiefly Girondists, who had been expelled after the 31st of May. These reactionary measures, however, were not suffered to pass without opposition from the lately rampant, but now vanquished faction of the Jacobins. A rigorous winter, exorbitant prices, a ruinous depreciation of the assignats, numerous bankruptcies which occasioned great misery both in Paris and in the provinces, enabled the agitators to stir up once more the elements of insur- rection; and on the 1st of April, 1795, the hall of the Conven- tion was invaded by a tumultuous mob from the faubourgs, clam- oring violently for bread, the constitution of the year II., and the liberation of Collot d'Herbois and the other Terrorists. The sectional troops, led by the Jeunesse Doree, soon dispersed the insurgents, and the danger was at an end. The victorious Ther- midorians proceeded forthwith with the trial of Collot d'Herbois and his accomplices, who were all convicted and sentenced to transportation. Another and a more desperate attempt of the same kind was made six weeks later, on the 20th of May. The armed rabble again surrounded the Tuileries, and burst into the hall of the Con- vention. The fighting was partially renewed on the next day, but the Convention remained finally victorious. This formidable out- break was followed by severe measures of punishment. General Menou, at the head of an imposing force, marched upon the fau- bourg St. Antoine, and thi'eatened a bombardment unless all arms and weapons of offense were immediately delivered up. It was useless to resist ; pikes, muskets, and cannon, in large quantities, were surrendered, and this strong-hold of the tyranny of the mob became comparatively powerless. The Montagnards were now tried by a military commission, and six of their leaders were con- demned to death. Several moi"e were transported for life ; many 576 '^HE REPUBLIC. Chap. XXVII. fled into concealment ; and the political influence of the pai-ty was from this moment finally crushed. § 9. During this dark period of intestine struggle and convul- sion the armies of the republic maintained their ground against the European coalition with a gallantry, skill, and persevering res- olution which commanded universal admiration. General Jour- dan, taking the command of the army of the Sambre and Meuse, defeated the allies at Fleurus on the 26th of June, 1794. After this victoiy he formed a junction with General Pichegru and the army of the north, and the Eepublicans entered Brussels in tri- umph on the 9th of July. The Duke of York now retreated rapicTly toward Holland, abandoning the whole of Belgium to the French. Pichegru' s army encamped on the line of the Meuse, and prepared for the invasion of Holland. MeauAvhile Jourdan drove back the Austrians toward the Rhine, defeated them with great slaughter at Ruremonde, and forced them to retire to the German side of the river on the 5th of October. The French took possession of Cologne and Coblentz ; Treves submitted to their "army of" the Moselle,"' and before the end of October they were masters of the entire course of the Rhine from Worms to Nimeguen. During the same summer the Republican arms achieved con- siderable success on the Sardinian and Spanish frontiers. By way of counterpoise, however, to these triumphs, it was in this year that Lord Howe won his celebrated victory of the 1st of June, off the Isle of Ushant, when the French were defeated with a loss of seven ships of the line and eight thousand men. The army under Pichegru, resuming the offensive in the depth of a severe winter, crossed the Meuse on the ice in the last week of December, and on the 11th of January, 1795, attacked the En- glish and Dutch at Nimeguen, and forced them to a disastrous re- treat. The Dutch troops showed symptoms of disaffection, while the populace openly welcomed the Republican invader. The stadt- holder now fled to England, abandoning Holland to Pichegru, who entered Amsterdam in triumph on the 20th of January. The English, under General Walmoden, after enduring dreadful suf- ferings in their retreat, gained the port of Bremen, where they embarked for their own country. Their army had been reduced to a mere wreck by privation, disease, desertion, and the sword of the enemy. The conquest of Holland, thus accomplished with- out fighting a battle, and with very trifling loss, established the reputation of Pichegru as one of the foremost generals of the Revolution. A democratical form of government was now or- ganized in Holland upon the model of Republican France. Ne- gotiations were opened about the same time with the King of A.D. ir95. DEFEAT OF THE CHOUANS. 577 Prussia, who had been the first to declare himself in arms against the Eevolution ; and peace was signed at Basle on the 5th of April, Prussia surrendering to France all her provinces on the left bank of the Rhine. A similar treaty was concluded soon aft- erward with Spain. That Bourbon monarchy, to preserve some appearance of decency, stipulated at first that the two children of Louis XVI., still prisoners in the hands of the Convention, should be restored to liberty; but, while the discussion was pending, the unhappy young prince whom the Royalists styled Louis XVII. was released from his miseries by the hand of death. After a lingering illness, resulting from the systematic ill usage and bru- tality of his jailers, he expired, at the age of eleven, on the 8th of June, 1795. This difficulty being removed, Spain signed the terms of pacification, by which she fully recognized the French republic, and ceded her possessions in the island of St. Domingo in return for the restoration of the French conquests in the north of Spain. The youthful sister of Louis XVII., afterward Duchess of An- gouleme, was now liberated from the Temple, in exchange for the Commissioners of the Convention whom Dumouriez had betrayed to the Austrians. ■ § 10. The Vendean insurgents, after signing a treaty of peace with the Convention in February, 1795, once more assembled in arms in the June following, under the leadership of Charette and Stofiiet. The Royalists now prevailed upon the British govern- ment to aid them by making a descent upon the coast of Brittany. Some thousands of French emigrants and prisoners wei-e collected in England and the Channel Islands under the Count de Puisaye, and transported on board a British fleet to the peninsula of Qui- beron, where they effected a landing on the 27th of June, and made themselves masters of Fort Penthievre. But the expedi- tion was ill planned, and the Chouans, as the Royalists of Brittany were called, though brave and ardent, were by no means equal in military qualities to the soldiers of La Vendee. General Hoche, at the head of a large Republican army, blockaded the invaders by throwing up intrenchments across the narrow isthmus Avhich joins Quiberon to the main-land. Puisaye totally failed in an attempt to break through the enemy's lines ; on the night of the 20th of July Hoche stormed and recaptured Fort Penthievre ; the gallant defendei's struggled desperately to regain the English ves- sels, but, the weather being stormy, by far the greater part of them perished miserably in the waters. The remainder surrendered to Hoche, under a vague and unauthorized promise of quarter. Upon a reference to Paris, it was decided that the laws against emigrants must take their course ; and near eight hundred of these unfortu- nate prisoners were in consequence shot to death at Auray, after Bi{ 578 THE REPUBLIC. Ciiai-. XXVII. the form of an examination before a military commission. Char- ette retaliated by the wholesale massacre, in cold blood, of upward of a thousand Republicans who had fallen into his hands. Hoche followed up his success at Quiberon by proceeding to at- tack the insurgents of La Vendee, who, weakened and dishearten- ed by their manifold reverses, ceased to defend themselves with their former skill and vigor. The Count of Artois, who had join- ed them, behaved with gross incapacity, and at length abandoned them to thoir fate and embarked for England. Stofflet was de- feated by Hoche near Bressuire, and, being captured soon after- ward, was executed at Angers in February, 1796. His brave comrade Charette, having disbanded his troops, was hunted for days together through the forests and marshes, and, being at hist taken prisoner, was conducted to Nantes, Avhere he was shot on the 29th of March. This catastrophe extinguished the memora- ble civil war of La Vendee, which is said to have cost the lives of no less than one hundred thousand Frenchmen. Harrowing de- tails are given of the state of devastation, depopulation, and wretch- edness to which the province was reduced in the course of it. § 11. At Paris, meanwhile, the Convention had named a com- mittee of eleven members, almost exclusively Girondists, to draw up organic laws as the basis of a new constitution. The scheme Avhich they proposed was accepted by the Convention on the 22d of August, 1795. By the new arrangement the legislative power Avas intrusted to two chambers, one of which, called the Council of Five Hundred, possessed the sole privilege of initiating laws, while the other, the Council of Ancients, had the right of discus- sion, and could either accept, the measures presented to it, or re- ject them by an absolute veto. The executive authority was to reside in a Directory, consisting of five members appointed by the two legislative chambers, one director retiring by rotation ev- ery year. The Koyalists, who, since the revolution of Thermidor and the restoration of the Girondist deputies, had recoveied a cer- tain amount of influence in the national councils, strenuously re- sisted this proposal, so manifestly designed to perpetuate the pow- er of the authors of the Eevolution. Considei-able agitation fol- lowed both in Paris and throughout the country. The new con- stitution, with its supplementary article relating to the composi- tion of the chambers, was submitted to the people in their primary assemblies ; several of the Parisian sections, gained over by the manoeuvres of tlie Eoyalists, formed a central committee, and made preparations for maintaining their opposition by force. In spite of this, the proposed arrangements were accepted in the provinces by an immense majority, and the successful result of the appeal was publicly announced by the Convention on the 23d of Septem- A.D. 1795. DAY 01' THE SECTIONS. 579 ber. The refructory sections, nevertheless, gfive no signs of sub- mission, and became more and more menacing. The Convention gave the command of the armed force to Barras, who had acquit- ted himself with so much resolution in the crisis of the 9th Ther- midor. Barras, anxious to obtain as second in command an offi- cer in whom he could thoroughly confide, bethought himself of Na- poleon Bonaparte, at that time a general of brigade without em- p>loyment. Little anticipating the momentous consequences which would follow from the step, he intrusted to Bonaparte the direc- tion of the military operations against the insurgent sections. The young general took his measures with i-apid and skillful de- cision ; he planted his cannon upon all the approaches to the Tuil- eries, and occupied strongly witli his troops all the neighboring" streets, the bridges, and the Place Louis XV. The expected strug- gle took place on the 5th of October (13th Vendemiaire), 1795. The troops of the sections, numbering between* twenty and thirty thousand, advanced against the Convention in two divisions, from each side of the Seine. A furious combat ensued in the Hue St. Lion ore, where, the sections having established themselves in front of the church of St. Koch, Bonaparte opened a murderous fire of artillery upon the post, and completely routed the assailants, Avitli a loss of some three hundred slain'. He then hastened to the Pont Neuf, toward which the second column of the rebels was march- ing from the Quartier St. Germain, and, having pointed some pieces of artillery so as to command them both in front and flank, met them as they came within range with a cannonade which in a moment scattered them in all directions. The fighting, which did not begin till late in the afternoon, was over in less than an hour and a half. The Convention used its victory with modera- tion and clemency ; only one of the conspirators was put to death, and a few others imprisoned. The important services of Bona- parte on the Day ov tjie Sicctions were promptly acknowledged and rewarded ; he was appointed second in command of the array of the interior, and, upon the retirement of Barras shortly after- ward, succeeded to the post of commander-in-chief. The Conven- tion, now upon the point of dissolution, decreed a general amnesty for political offenses, from which, however, all emigrants and their families were expressly excluded. By another decree Belgium Avas declared to be incorporated with France. The president noAV announced that the mission and labors of the Convention Avere terminated ; and this assembly, so fatally memorable in French histoi-y, broke up on the 2Gth of October, after a continuous ses- sion of three years and tAVO months. The ncAvly-adopted form of government came immediately into operation. The Council of Five Hundred presented to the Council of Ancients a list of fifty 580 THE REPUBLIC. Chap. XXVII. representatives, from which the latter selected five to compose the executive Directory. The pei'sons named were La Reveillere-Le- paux, Rewbell, Sieyes, Letourneur, and Barras, all stanch Repub- licans, who had voted for the death of Louis XVL Sieyes de- clined to serve, and was replaced by Carnot. The Directors en- tered at once upon their office, Avith a considerable amount of state and dignity. The Luxembourg palace was assigned as their resi- dence, a military guard suiTounded them for protection, and they enjoyed an ample revenue. § 12. The new government, on commencing its labors, found the national finances in a state truly alarming and deplorable. The treasury w^as empty ; the armies were clamoring in vain for long arrears of pay; the dearth of specie became every day more and more pressing and universal ; public credit had fallen to the lowest ebb ; the assignats, which were still a legal tender, realized no more than the tAvo hundredth part of their nominal value. At length, after the issue of paper money had reached the almost in- credible amount of forty-five thousand millions* (eighteen hund- red millions sterling), it was found utterly impossible to maintain it in circulation ; the assignats were refused by all classes, from the highest to the lowest, throughout France. The government now determined to withdraw them, and substituted for them a new kind of paper currency, called mandats territoriaux : these mandats were charged upon the landed estates belonging to the nation, and entitled the holder to a certain specified amount of that property, according to the valuation made in the year 1790. The assignats were suppi'essed, and the plate used for engraving them broken up, in March, 1796. The issue of the mandats Avas an improve- ment, since they represented a substantial value in land, for which they were exchangeable at any moment ; but after a time they also fell into discredit, and could only be negotiated at an enor- mous discount. The measure led eventually to a bankruptcy of no less than thirty-three milliards of francs. The pressure of the financial crisis and the generally unsettled state of affairs exposed the Directory to intrigues and conspiracies from various quarters. Their suppression, Avhich Avas effected Avithout much difficulty, contributed to strengthen the hands of the Directory ; but the chief glory of their administration was that derived from the brilliant successes of Bonaparte in Italy, of which Ave must proceed to give some account.! § 13. The fortunes of Napoleon Bonaparte had been manifestly * Thiers, Hist. Rev., vo\. viii., p. 199. t It is impossible, within the limits of the present work, to present even a sketch of Napoleon's memornhle campaigns : an account of their result!; is al- most all that cn7i bo attcm])tod. A.D. 1796. MAERIAGE OF BONAPARTE. 581 in the ascendant ever since his important services rendered to the government on the "Day of the Sections;" immediately after which, as already stated, he had been advanced to the chief com- mand of the army of the interior. His marriage with Madame de Beauharnais* (afterward the Empress Josephine), which took place on the 9th of March, 179G, was another step in his prosper- ous career. This connection procured for him the good offices of JJarras, Tallien, and Carnot — pei-haps the three most influential men of the day. Bonaparte, who had not yet completed his twen- ty-seventh year, was now appointed general-in-chief of the army of Italy ; and quitting Paris only twelve days after his marriage, he reached head-quarters at Nice, and assumed the command on the 27tli of March, 1796. The force under his orders, amounting to about thirty-five thou- sand men, was at this time in a wretched state of distress and in- efficiency fi'om the want of provisions and clothing ; neglect and disorder prevailed in all departments of the service. The French were opposed to the combined army of sixty thousand Austrians and. Piedraontese, commanded by Generals Beaulieu and Colli. Bonaparte, notwithstanding the destitute condition of his troops, lost no time in executing a forward movement toward Genoa. His plan was to pierce the centre of the enemy's line, thus sep- arating the Imperialists from their allies. In this he was com- pletely successful ; Beaulieu fell back toward Milan, Colli toward Turin ; Bonaparte marched in close pursuit of the latter, and hav- ing reached Cherasco, only ten leagues from Turin, there dictated on the 28th of April the conditions of an armistice, which was soon afterward converted into a definitive peace. Hard terms were imposed on the vanquished ; the King of Sardinia ceded to the French republic Savoy and the county of Nice, thus placing at the command of the victors all the great lines of communica- tion between France and Italy; and Alexandria, Tortona, and other principal fortresses of (he kingdom Avere given up to the French in guarantee until the conclusion of a general peace. § 14. Scarcely allowing his soldiers to taste repose, Bonaparte now turned against the discomfited Austrians. The French cross- ed the Po at Piacenza on the 7th of May, and drove back Beau- lieu upon the line of the Adda; the strongly fortified bridge of Lodi was carried, after a desperate struggle, on the lOtli, and the enemy retreated in the utmost confusion on the Mincio. This * This l;T(ly was tlie daughter of a West Indian planter, and widow of the Vicomte de Beauharnais, who had been guillotined during the Reign of Ter- ror. She had two children by her first husband ; Eugene, afterward Vice- roy of Italy, and Hortense, afterward Queen of Holland, and mother of the present Emperor of the Freneli. 582 THE REPUBLIC. Chap. XXVII. movement left the road to Milan open to the march of the invad- ers ; they advanced immediately, and Bonaparte made his entry into the capital of Lombardy amid the acclamations of the multi- tude on the loth of May. Meanwhile the commanding genius and marvelous success of the young general had inspired the home government with aston- ishment and admiration, which were soon exchanged for feelings of jealous alarm. Finding that they had to deal witli one Avho could not only direct manoeuvres and win battles, but who also took upon himself to negotiate with sovereign pi'inces, to sign treaties, to decide independently questions of the highest political importance, the Directors made several attempts, by letters full of advice and even of covert rebuke, to obstruct and fetter his move- ments, lionaparte met their interference witli firm resistance; and a proposal having been made to divide the army — one half i-emaining in Lombardy imder the orders of Kellermann, while Avith the other Bonaparte was to march upon Kome and Naples — the latter positively declined to comply, and intimated that lie would prefer resigning his command. So great already was his fame and popularity, that the Directory dared not accept this al- ternative, and Bonaparte was consequently left in supreme and imdivided authority. From that moment he not only directed the whole of the operations of the war in Italy, hut acquired an influence over the government at Paris which could not be con- cealed or disavowed, and 'which Avas destined to lead in due time to results of the greatest importance. On the 27th of May the French army Avas again in motion, and commenced the siege of the strong fortress of Mantua. A second Austrian army Avas noAV dispatched to Lombardy, under the or- ders of Marshal Wurmser, one of the ablest and most experienced generals of the empire. While he was on his march to the scene of action, Bonaparte, leaving a strong force to blockade Mantua, proceeded to Bologna, and there dictated the conditions of an armistice Avith Pope Pius VI. Twenty-.one millions of francs, to- gether with one hundred valuable pictures and other Avorks of art, Avere extorted from the helpless pontiff; he also consented to the occupation of Bologna, Ferrara, and Ancona by French troops. The Grand-Duke of Tuscany was in like manner constrained to receive a French garrison at Leghorn, in order to exclude the En- glish from the commerce of that port. § 15. Marshal Wurmser, having concentrated an army of sev- enty thousand men, advanced from Trent on the 29th July. But he Avas no match for the young general. After repeated defeats, the A-eteran marshal retreated Avith the remains of his army into Mantua, Avhich, having been amply furnished Avith stores and pro- visions, Avas cMpahlo of a prolonged resistance (Sept. 10). A.D. 1796. BATTLE OF AKCOLR. 583 During these memorable campaigns in North Italy, the course of the war in other quarters had proved unfavorable to the arms of the French republic. The army of the Sambre and the Meuse, under Joui'dan, and tiiat of the llhine and the Moselle, command- ed by the famous Moreau, were confronted by the Austrians un- der the Archduke Charles, a prince of superior niilitary capacity, with a force numbering upward of oiie hundred thousand men. Moreau and Jourdan both crossed the ilhine, the former between Strasburg and Kelil, the latter at Mayence. Jourdan was defeat- ed at Wurtzburg on the 3d of September, and rccrossed the Rhine soon afterward into the P"'rench territory. Moreau, who had con- tinued his advance as far as Munich, thus found himself in an ex- ceedingly critical position. The archduke marched upon tlie Neckar, with the view of cutting off liis communication with France ; upon this Moreau determined to retrace his steps by the valley of the Danube, and executed, in spite of all difficulties, his masterly and celebrated retreat through the I^lack Forest and the de'files of the Hollenthal. In twenty-six days he conducted his army, without serious loss, to the French frontier at Huningue. § 16. The army under Bonaparte, notwithstanding its extraor- dinary train of victories, was left in a situation of considerable anxiety upon the retreat of Jourdan and Moreau. The cabinet of Vienna, making a vigorous effort, assembled at Verona a third ai-my, sixty thousand sti'ong, under the command of Marshal Al- vinzi. The French were far inferior in number ; and, in the ear- lier encounters which ensued, success was decidedly on the side of the Austrians. The French attempted in vain to storm the Austrian position on the formidable heights of Caldiero, in front of Verona. Tlie troops now lost heart; alai'm, discontent, and murmuring became general. The fertile and daring genius of Bo- naparte, however, did not desert him in this dangerous predica- ment. Ho conceived the bold scheme of turning the left Hank of the enemy, and thus compelling him to abandon Caldiero and ac- cept battle at a disadvantage in the plain. Marching secretly from Verona, the French descended the Adige as far as Eonco ; there they crossed the Adige, and on the 14th of November made a furious* att:ick upon the bridge and village of Akcole, which commanded the great road from Verona to Vicenza. Arcole, which is surrounded by marshes, was obstinately contested, with terrible cai-nagc on botli sides ; Bonaparte himself, having seized a standard, Avhich he planted with his own hand upon the bridge to animate the soldiers, was precipitated into the mar.'^h, and was for some time in innninent peril. At nightfall, ho\ve\ci', the French recrosscd the Adige, and fell back upon Konco. The next day the struggle Wfis renewed, but ngr.in v>itlt indecisive result; 584 'iiliC KEPUBLIC. Chap. XXVII. for Alvinzi had now descended from Caldiero, and Arcole was occupied with an overwhelming force. On the 17th the French advanced for the third time to attack this much-disputed village, and their heroic bravery and perseverance were at length success- ful ; the Austrians were driven out of Arcole, and retreated on Montebello, their losses during the three engagements having fallen not far short of eight thousand men. Never had Bonaparte pur- chased victory so dearly ; still he had triumphed — re-entering Ve- rona by the eastern gate, the opposite side to that from which he had marched four days before. § 17. Six weeks of repose now^ intervened ; but early in Janu- aiy, 1797, Alvinzi once more appeared on the Adige with an army recruited to sixty thousand men ; and on the 14th of that month Avas fought the memorable field of Rivoo, in which 15onaparte, with scai'cely one half the numerical force of his opponent, obtain- ed one of his most splendid victories by sheer superiority of mili- tary science and precision of movement. This victory was fol- lowed by the surrender of Mantua. Wurmser capitulated on the 2d of February, 1797, upon terms equally honorable to both par- ties. Twenty thousand Austrians became by this suiTcnder pris- onei'S to the French. From the theatre of their triumphs on the Adige and the Mincio Bonaparte 1 d his army into the territories of the Pope, against ■whom the Directory had resolved to proceed to extremities. The States of the Church were quickly overrun, the papal troops over- powered and dispersed after a feeble resistance ; and Pius, yielding to necessity, signed the humiliating treaty of Tolentino (Feb. 19, 1797), by which he ceded to the rapacious invader the legations of Bologna, Ferrara, and the Romagna, and Avignon with its terri- toiy ; an additional contribution of fifteen millions of francs was likewise exacted, and the Vatican and other celebrated galleries of Rome were again plundered of their choicest treasures. § IS. Bonaparte, having vanquished in succession three imperial armies on the Italian side of the Alps, determined in the campaign of 1797 to transfer the Avar into the hereditary possessions of the house of Austria. He took the field on the 9th of March, forced the passes leading to Carinthia, and on the 9 th of April took up his head-quarters at Leoben, Avithin a few days' march of Vienna. The imperial cabinet, in consternation, hastened to demand a sus- pension of arms, which was granted ; commissioners were sent to the French head-quarters, and on the 18th of April, 1797, the preliminaries of peace betAveen F'rance and the empire Avere signed at Leoben. During the progress of this negotiation Bonaparte received tidings of a popular insurrection Avhich had broken out against the French at Bergamo, Verona, and otlier places in the A.D. 1797. THE FUENCIl OCCUPY VENICE. 535 Venetian territory. Fearful excesses had been committed ; num- bers of the French were murdered, including even tlie helpless sick in the hospitals ; some hundreds were thrown into prison. A French vessel was lired at by the forts at the entrance of the Lido, and the captain and crew were killed. Upon the news of these outrages, the French general, burning with indignation, launched a declaration of war against the republic of Venice, and proceeded to take vengeance on the Queen of the Adriatic by the total annihilation of her ancient sovereignty. A French division immediately marched upon Venice, and took forcible possession of the arsenal and other military posts. The Venetian senate now abdicated its functions, and a democratical form of government was forthwith proclaimed. The conqueror next prescribed tlie terms of a treaty, by which Venice and its territory were to remain in the occupation of the French until a general peace ; a contri- bution was levied of six millions of francs, and the usual stipula- tion was made for the sacrifice of pictures and manuscripts. Such was the sudden and ignominious extinction of the time-honored commonwealth of Venice. § 19. While the armies of the republic were thus daily adding to their laurels, and triumphing over the proudest monarchies of Europe, the internal condition of France was one of continual agitation and confusion. In the elections to the Legislature in the year 1797, the Royalists succeeded in returning upward of two hundred members iirmly attached to their opinions ; a strong party was thus formed in direct opposition to the existing govern- ment ; and its preponderance became immediately manifest by the nomination of General Pichegru (now a decided partisan of the Bourbons) as president of the Council of Five Hundred, and of another Royalist, Barbii-Marbois, to the same office in the Coun- cil of Ancients. Bai'thelemy, a man of known monarchical views, was substituted in the Directory for Letourneur, who retired by rotation. A counter-revolution appeared imminent ; and, to add to the embarrassment of the situation, the Directors were at feud among themselves. Barthelemy and Carnot favored the designs of the majority of the councils — the former from his Royalist con- victions, the latter mainly from bitter hatred of his colleague Bar- ras. The other three members, however — Barras, Rewbell, and La Rt'veillere — stood firm a^gainst the hostile coalition ; and since they possessed no constitutional or legal means of acting against their opponents in the l^egislature, they determined on the expe- dient of a coiqt cVe'lat, and for this purpose appealed for support to the young conqueror of Italy, who had given repeated proofs of his zeal for the Republican government, and to General Ploche, also an ardent Republican, and then in command of one of the n n 2 586 THE REPUBLIC. Chap. XXVII. armies on the Rhine. Hoche marched a large body of troops to- ward Paris, in direct contravention of the law which forbade the military to approach within a certain d'stance of the capital, l^onaparte dispatched one of his lieutenants, Augereau, a man of no political capacity, but a sturdy Eepublican and fearless soldier, who was immediately appointed to the chief command of Paris. Barras and his friends now made full preparations for striking a decisive blow. At a very early hour on the 18th of Fi-uctidor (Sept. 4, 1797) Augereau occupied the principal posts in Paris with 12,000 men, directed a strong column on the Tuileries, and placed a guai-d at the entrance of both the cliambers. AVhcn the obnoxious members made their appearance they were taken into custody, to the number of fifty-three, including Pichegru and Bar- be-Marbois, and conveyed to various places of confinement. A detachment was sent at the same time to the Luxemburg to ap- prehend the two refractory Directors, Carnot and Barthelemy, who had been kept in total ignorance of the scheme of their col- leagues. Carnot contrived to escape ; Barthelemy Avas captured and committed to the Temple. The minorities of the two cham- bers, consisting of members faithful to the Directory, were now assembled; and the Directors justified their proceedings by pro- ducing papers which fully proved the confidential correspondence of Pichegru and his associates with the exiled Bourbons. Upon this a decree was passed annulling the elections made in fifty-three departments, and condemning the representatives so elected, who were already in confinement, to ti'ansportation for life. This un- just sentence was executed in its utmost rigor; the unfortunate prisoners were banished to the pestilential swamps of Cayenne, which speedily proved fatal to many of them. A few, among whom Avere Pichegru and Barthelemy, eventually succeeded in making their escape. § 20. Notwithstanding the preliminaries agreed upon at Leoben, many difficulties and much delay intervened before a full under- standing could be arrived at with Austria for the conclusion of a definitive peace. At length, through the firm and even menacing determination displayed by Bonaparte, the imperial commissioners yielded the points in dispute, and the result was the Treaty of Campo Formio, which was signed on the 17th of October, 1797. By this settlement France acquired possession of the Belgic prov- inces and the boundary of the Rhine, and of the Ionian Islands in addition. An independent commonwealth was established in North Italy, under the name of the Cisalpine Republic, compre- hending Lombardy, Parma, Modena, the Papal Legations, and the Venetian territory to the line of the Adige. On the other hand, the French ceded to the emperor the city of Venice, witli the rest A. D. 1798. EGYPTIAN EXPEDITION. 587 of her ancient possessions — Friuli, Istiin, Dalmatia, and the islands of tlie Adriatic. A congress was opened immediately afterward at Kastadt to settle the details of a pacific arrangement between France and the minor states of German}^ Bonaparte, to whose genius alone the republic was indebted for the glory of this signal triumph, now repaired to Paris, and on the 10th of December received the honor of an imposing public recep- tion from tlie Directory. He was at this moment, without ques- tion, the most popular man in France, and the impression became prevalent on all sides that his vast powers and ambitious charac- ter destined him eventually to play a foremost part in the political drama. The government, however, from mean pusillanimous feel- ings of jealousy, left him for the present without any substantial recompense for his great services, although several attempts were made in the chambers to obtain for him some suitable national acknowledgment. Bonaparte remained for some months in retirement, apparently occupied in the tranquil enjoyments of domestic life, and in learn- ed and scientific researches. But circumstances soon called him again into active employment. Early in 1798 great preparations were made by the Directory for a descent upon England, and the command of the expedition was offered to Bonaparte. The gen- eral visited Boulogne, reviewed the " army of England," made a cai'eful examination of the line of coast from Etaples to Ostend, and came to a conclusion unfavorable to the projected invasion ; it was consequently abandoned. Shortly afterward he proposed to the Directory an enterprise in a different quarter, by which, as he was persuaded, the commerce and power of England might be far more successfully assailed than by any direct attempt upon the Jiritish shores? this was an expedition into Egypt. Bonaparte liad long meditated on the immense advantages which the posses- sion of that country Avould secure to France, more especially as regards the command of the Mediterranean and the means of com- munication with India. He found great difficulty, however, in inducing the Directory to embrace his views ; and there is no doubt that their chief motive in at length giving their consent was the desire of removing from Paris a personage whom they very justly regarded as a dangerous rival. § 21. Extensive preparations were now set on foot for the Egyptian expedition, and on the 19th of May, 1798, Bonaparte sailed from Toulon with an army of 3G,000 men, embarked in a fleet of twenty ships of war, besides an immense multitude of trans- ports, under the command of Admiral Brueys. A numerous body of savcuhs — naturalists, geographers, and other scientific men — also accompanied the expedition. Tlie Frcjicli shaped their course for 588 THE REPUBLIC. Chap. XXVII. Malta, the acquisition of whicli island was one of the principal objects contemplated by Bonaparte. The recreant knights of St. John, and their Grand Master de Hompesch, had already entered into a secret correspondence with the Kepublican general ; Valet- ta was surrendered after an empty show of resistance ; the island was ceded by a convention to France, and on the 10th of June Bonaparte took formal possession. General Vaubois, with a gar- rison of 3000 men, was left in command at Valetta ; the French armament again set sail, and after narrowly escaping an encount- er with the English fleet under Nelson, who scoured the Mediter- ranean in all directions to intercept them, the French descried the shores of Egypt on the 1st of July. The landing was effected the next day, and Bonaparte with little difficulty made himself master of Alexandria. Egypt, though nominally a province of the Turk- ish empire, was at this time, in fact, under the dominion of the Mamelukes, a race celebrated for ages for their martial qualities, and especially for the excellence of their cavalry. Mourad Bey, one of their most powerful chieftains, now concentrated his troops for the defense of Cairo. Bonaparte advanced without delay, and after a harassing march through the desert under a scorching sun, the French, on the 21st of July, came in sight of the army of the Beys, consisting of 6000 Mameluke horsemen and 20,000 infant- ry, posted in an intrenched camp at Embabeh, in front of Cairo. "Soldiers!" exclaimed Bonaparte, "remember that from those Pyramids forty centuries contemplate your deeds !" The Mame- lukes charged with furious gallantry, but made no impression upon the I'rench, who were drawn up in squares, and remained im- movable. After a desperate conflict the invaders gained a com- plete victory ; the enemy fled in confusion into Upper Egypt, and thence into Syria. The " battle of the Pyramids," as it was call- ed, gave Bonaparte immediate possession of Cairo, and decided virtually the conquest of Egypt. But this brilliant success was to be closely followed by a disastrous reverse. On the 1st of Au- gust, 1798, was fought the ever-memorable battle of the Nile, in which the French fleet was annihilated by Nelson. It left the in- vaders without a fleet, isolated from communication with Europe, and dependent on the precarious resources of a hostile country. Notwithstanding this great misfortune, Bonaparte applied himself with indomitable energy to the task of administering the government of Egypt, and labored to reduce the country under the permanent rule of the republic. His efforts were to some extent successful ; but a revolt which broke out on the 22d of October at Cairo cost the lives of several hundred Frenchmen, and was not suppressed till after the massacre of at least five thousand of the native in- habitants. The Ottoman Porte, too, encouraged by the triumph A.D. 1798. BATTLE OF ABOUKIK. 589 of tlie British in Aboukir Bay, declared war against France, made an alliance with Russia, and assembled two armies, one at Rhodes, the other at Damascus, for the purpose of recovering Egypt. Bonaparte now determined, instead of waiting to be attacked, to advance against the Turks in Syria. He commenced his marcli with 13,000 men in February, 1799, and having captured El Arish, the frontier-fortress of Syria, proceeded to lay siege to Jaf- fa, which was carried by assault on the 13th of March. It was here that Bonaparte disgraced his name by butchering in cold blood no less than 1200 Turkish prisoners — an act of barbarity which he did not hesitate to acknowledge, but in vain attempted to excuse and justify. § 22. The celebrated siege of Acre immediately followed. Tlic Turkish governor, Djezzar Pacha, was supported by Colonel Phi- lippeaux, an emigrant French officer, and by Sir Sidney Smith, who commanded a small Britisli squadron in the roads. The siege was pressed with the utmost skill, vigor, and bravery, but without suc- cess ; every attack was gallantly repulsed. During the progress of the operations a considerable Turkish force advanced from Damascus, and a battle ensued at Mount Tabor (April 16), in which Bonaparte routed the enemy with terrible slaughter. Acre, however, proved impregnable ; a last and desperate assault total- ly failed ; and Bonaparte, whose vague visions of Oriental domin- ion were thus finally dissipated, found it necessary to give orders for a retreat into Egypt. With an army seriously diminished and profoundly discouraged, the French general re-entered Cairo on the 14th of June. Fresh attempts were now made by Ibrahim and Mourad Beys to excite insurrection in Upper Egypt, and their movements were supported by the arrival of the second army of the Turks fi'om Rhodes, Avhich disembarked at Aboukir, 18,000 strong, on the 11th of July. On the 25tli Bonaparte attacked the Turks in their intrenched camp at Aboukir, and after an ob- stinate contest succeeded in overthrowing them with tremendous slaughter. This victory, one of the most complete and brilliant in Bonaparte's career, was gained principally by the desperate gallantry of the French cavalry under General Murat. The Turkish army was annihilated ; besides those who fell in action, thousands of these turbaned warriors threw themselves headlong into the sea, Avhcre they perished in the vain attempt to reacli their ships. The battle of Aboukir was the last of Bonaparte's achieve- ments in the Egyptian expedition. Opposition, indeed, was now at an end, and the French were left in undisputed possession of the country. The thoughts of the conqueror, hoAvever, were soon diverted from the task of consolidating the rule of tlie repHblic in 590 THE liEPUBLIC. Chap. XXVII. its Eastern acquisitions. The accounts which reached him of the incapacity and misgovernment of the Directory — of the alarming reverses sustained by the Frencli arms in Italy — and of the gen- eral discontent, agitation, and anarchy which prevailed through- out France — determined him to take the bold step of quitting his army without permission from tlie government, and proceeding immediately to Paris. He felt that the long-looked-for moment had now arrived when he might strike a blow for the supreme di- i-ection of affairs with every prospect of decisive success. 'J'wo frigates were secretly prepared at Alexandria ; and Bonaparte, having intrusted the chief command of the army of the East to General Kleber, embarked on the 2oth of August. After a tedi- ous voyage, during which he was in imminent danger of being- captured by the English cruisers, and was detained several days at his native place of Ajaccio in Corsica, the general and his suite landed safely near Frejus on the 9th of October. His journey to Paris was an uninterrupted ovation ; he arrived on the 16th, and took up his abode without ostentation in a small house in the Kue de la Victoire. § 23. "Their five Mnjesties of the Luxembin-g," as the Direct- ors were called, had proved themselves more and more incompe- tent to meet the various perplexing difficulties — social, financial, and administrative — which beset Republican France. They be- trayed their weakness by repeatedly resorting to the expedient of violent infractions of the law and the Constitution. The elections of 1798 had been, to a great extent, hostile to the government; and the precedent of the 18th Fructidor was followed by another coup d'etat on the 22d Floreal (May 11, 1798), Avhen a consid- erable number of deputies, of the ultra-deraocratical or anarcliist party, were forcibly expelled from the Legislature. The disorders of the finances, again, were a source of continual and vehement clamor against the Directors. The tyrannical law of hostages, by which tlie sons and brothers of emigrant Koyalists were liable to be imprisoned as substitutes for their expatriated relatives, was another grievance deeply felt and resented. 15 ut perhaps the most fatal ground of dissatisfaction was the ill success of the French armies in Italy and Switzerland, and the consequent loss of the proud and triumphant position which had be-en achieved by the treaty of Campo Formio. In 1798 the Emperor Paul of Russia took the initiative in form- ing a new coalition against France ; and a powerful army, com- manded by the celebrated Suwarrow, was marched into Northern Italy to co-operate with the Austrians under General Kray. Tlie French Generals Sherer, Masscna, and Joubert were successively defeated, the last being killed in the bloody and decisive battle of A.D. 1799. CABALS AGAINST THE DIRECTORY. 59] Novi (August 15). The powei" of France in Italy was destroyed by these repeated disasters, and tlie odium arising from this sud- den change of fortune fell heavily on the Directory. Naples sur- rendered to the royal army, assisted by the English under Nelson; and the French garrison at Home having capitulated after some resistance, the government of the Pope was re-established. The Kepublicans were thus completely expelled from Central and Southern Italy. The hostilities which took place during the same campaign in Switzerland were, on the whgle, more favorable to the French. Massena encountered the Kussians in the valley of the Linth, near Zurich, and in a succession of combats which followed, ex- tending over a line of near one hundred miles, discomfited all their manoeuvres, and finally drove them out of Switzerland in total confusion. Suwarrow now made a precipitate retreat into Bavaria, and Russia soon afterward withdrew from the coalition. An ill-advised descent of the English upon North Holland about the same time (Sept., 1799) was opposed with success by Gencr;;l Brune ; the Duke of York, who commanded, was bafHed in hi.i operations, and driven back upon the coast ; he found it necessary to sign a capitulation at Alkmaar on the 18th of October, and re- embarked for England Avith the remains of his army. § 24. The elections made in the spring of 1799 were again de- cidedly hostile to the Directory, and a powerful cabal was imme- diately formed in the two councils for the purpose of effecting a change in the government. Rewbell, whose term of office had ex- pired, was succeeded by Sieyes, a declared enemy of the existing Constitution ; and that subtle intriguer accordingly became the leader of the malcontent faction. The Director Treilhard was forthwith compelled to resign, and was replaced by Gohier, an honest Rejuiblican of respectable ability ; and shortly afterward La Reveillere and Merlin yielded to a dictation Avhich they could not resist, and made way for Roger-Ducos, a mere creature of Sieyes, and General Moulin. This was called the Revolution of the 30th Prairial (June 18, 1799). The new Directory was thus composed of Barras, Sieyes, Go- hier, Roger-Ducos, and Moulin ; the chief influence in the admin- istration being unquestionably in the hands of Sieyes. That rest- less politician eagerly pursued his schemes for overturning the Directorial systeni, which he regarded as hopelessly corrupt and exhausted. He saw that the time was close at hand for striking a decisive blow, and looked anxiously around for fit instruments to aid in the accomplishment of his design. "We must have a head," he observed, " and a sword." For the first he relied, some- what too complacently, upon himself; for the second it was ncc- 592 THE REPUBLIC. Chap. XXVII. essfiry to secure the services of some able, popular, and resolute military leader. It was now that the relatives and friends of Bo- naparte wrote to apprise liim of the favorable opportunity which circumstances had opened to his ambition, and to urge his imme- diate return to France. Bonaparte, after a brief examination of the state of parties, decided on offering his military support to Sieyes in the enterprise which the latter had long meditated ; and the revolution which followed was the result of their combination. § 25. The Constitution of the year III. had conferred on the Council of Ancients the power of changing the place of meeting of the Legislative Body. The confederates, who possessed a ma- jority among the Ancients, arranged that the sessions of the Leg- islature should be transferred to St. Cloud ; a decree to that eifect was published on the morning of the 18th Brumaire (Nov. 9, 1799), and General Bonaparte was charged with its execution, being named for that purpose to the command of the military di- vision of Paris. The Council of Five Hundred, in which the ma- jority was hostile to the conspirators, met in the Orangery at St. Cloud on the 19th. Lucien Bonaparte was president. The as^ sembly proceeded, in the midst of extraordinary agitation, to re- new individually the oath of fidelity to the Constitution of the year IIL Upon this, Bonaparte, losing patience, resolved to in- terfere personally, and bring matters to a decisive issue. After speaking at the bar of the Council of Ancients, he presented him- self at the door of the Council of Five Hundi-ed ; but here he was met by a storm of fierce disapprobation ; shouts of " Down with the dictator ! Down with the bayonets ! Outlaw the tyrant !" resounded on all sides. Bonaparte grew pale ; the assembly rose tumultuously and pressed with threatening gestures round the in- truder ; he turned to withdraw, and was at last almost carried out of the hall in the arms of his grenadiers."* He now determ- ined to employ armed force for the purpose of expelling the re- fractory council from its place of meeting. The word of command was given ; the grenadiers, led by Murat, entered the hall at the pas de charge with fixed bayonets ; and after a few moments' hes- itation, the terrified representatives dispersed in all directions. The hall being thus cleared, and fortunately without bloodshed, a small minority of the fugitives was collected under the presidency of Lucien ; and resolutions Avere passed, in conjunction with the Council of Ancients, which completed the trffnsactions of this eventful day. The Directory was abolished ; fifty-seven members of the Legislature were proscribed and sentenced to banishment ; the session of the Chambers was adjourned to the 20th February, =' It was affirmed that move than one dagger was aimed at the peneval's breast, and warded off by the soldiers. But tliis was never substantiated. A.D. 1799, REVOLUTION OF BRUMAIRE. 593 1800; and the executive powei' was placed provisionally in the hands of a consular commission, composed of the citizens Sieyes, Bonaparte, and Roger-Ducos. Finally, both the legislative coun- cils nominated a committee of twenty-five members to prepare a report on the necessary changes to be made in the organic laws of the Constitution, to be presented at their next meeting. Such was the Revolution of the 18th and 19th of Brumaire (9th and 10th of November, 1799), which, from various causes, was accepted by the mass of the French nation, not only without opposition, but with general and lively satisfaction. The fall of the Directory, odious and contemptible as it had become by its vexatious tyranny, its gross corruption, and its signal ill success in the conduct of affairs, was regarded as an unmixed benefit ; while the name of Bonaparte — a name already celebrated not only in France, but throughout Europe, for all that is most splendid in genius and achievement — was echoed as a sure omen of pros- perity at home and recovered dominion abroad. Dazzled by hjs glory, so dear to the heart of a great martial people, the French did not pause to ask whether his elevation was likely to subserve the cause of Republican freedom, for which such terrible struggles and sacrifices had been made during the past ten years. The helm was abandoned to him in blind implicit confidence. He contin- xied to maintain for a short time the external forms and usages created by the Revolution ; but, in reality, the first day of Bona- parte's assumption of power was the last of the republic. Revo- lution, after exhibiting various successive phases of social disor- der, license, and extravagance, seems to have an almost inevitable tendency to merge in the directly opposite extreme — that of a stringent military despotism. Such was now to be the destiny of revolutionary France during a period of fourteen years, under the rule of her cherished idol. Napoleon Bonaparte. ■jL+i-^-. lit,, '►■r'l *" ■*• '1 Execiitioa of tlic Duke of Knghien at Vincennes, March 21, 1S04. ('See p. fiOT.) CHAPTER XXVIII. THE CONSULATE. NOVEMBER 10, 1799 MAY 18, 1804. § 1. The " Constitution of the Year VIII." § 2. Bonaparte's first Measures of Government ; fruitless Negotiation with England. § 3. Cam]!aign of 1800 ; Passage of the St. Bernard ; Battle of Marengo ; Convention with the Austrians. § 4. Campaign of Moreau in Bavaria ; Battle of Hohen- linden; Peace of Lune'ville. § 5. English Expedition to Egypt; Assas- sination of General Klcber ; Battle of Alexandria ; Evacuation of Egvpt by the Erench ; Peace of Amiens. § G. Attempts against the Life of Bo- naparte ; the "Infernal Machine." § 7. Internal Administration of Bo- naparte; the Code Napoleon ; the Concordat. §8. The Legion of Hon- or ; Bonaparte appointed Consul for Life. § 9. The Italian Republic ; Ligurian Republic ; Disturbances in Switzerland ; Bonaparte becomes "Grand Mediator of the Helvetic Confederation ;" Insurrection in St. Do- mingo ; Toussaint I'Ouverture. § 10. Rupture of the Peace of Amiens; its Causes ; Detention of British Subjects traveling in France. §11. Seizure of Hanover ; Preparations for the Invasion of England ; Conspi- racy of Georges Cadoudal and Pichegru. § 12. Seizure and Execution of the Duke of Enghien. . § 13. Trial and Execution of the Chouan Con- spirators ; Napoleon proclaimed Emperor of the French ; Creation of Marshals of the Empire. § 14. Coronation of the Emperor and Empress ; the Kingdom of Italy. § 1. The "Constitution of tlie Year VIII." was promulgated on the loth of December, 1799. The executive consisted of THREE Const i.s, named for ten years, and capable of re-election. A.D. 1799. THE CONSULATE. )95 It Avas their province to prepare and propose new laws, in con- cert with the Council of State, tlie members of wliich they nominated. The discussion of the measures tlius reconmicnded belonged to a Tribunate of one hundred members ; while the Legislative Chambek, numbering three hundred deputies, pos- sessed only the power of accepting or rejecting diem without dis- cussion. Another institution was added, called the Consekva- TivE Senate, which was composed of eighty members appointed for life: its duty was to watch over the maintenance of the Con- stitution, to prosecute and punish any infractions of it, and to name, from the lists presented by the electoi-al colleges, the mem- bers of the Tribunate and the Legislative Cliamber. The repre- sentative system was retained in name, but the influence of the people was in fact greatly diminished, if not altogether nullified. The mass of tlic citizens voted only for the notables of the com- munes, who again elected a tenth of their number as notables of the deiKU'tments ; a tenth part of these were in their turn named nota- bles of France; and it was from this latter list of candidates that the members of the Legislative Chamber were selected by the Sen- ate. It was easy to discern, under this very thin veil of popular institutions, the inevitable approach of an absolute dictatorship. Medal of lliree l^on.-^ulJ. § 2. Bonaparte was now appointed, as a matter of course. First Consul, and, being empowered to nominate two colleagues, chose 596 THE CONSULATE. Chap. XXVIIL Cambaceres, a lawyer of considei*able talent, who in the Conven- tion had voted for the death of Louis XVI., and Lebrun, a man of integrity but of slender ability, who had held a subordinate of- fice in the last years of the monarchy. The second and third consuls possessed only a consultative voice in the government ; the supreme executive power rested with Bonaparte alone. Sieyes, declining, from feelings of not unnatural pique, the post of second consul, was named a member of the Senate, and received from the First Consul the fine estate of Crosne, which was exchanged aft- erward for another near Versailles. The new constitution was submitted, pro /brma, to the approbation of the nation at large, and was accepted by upward of three millions of suflfrages in- scribed on the public registers, while the dissentient votes were only 1567. On the 19th of February, 1800, the First Consul took up his official residence with great pomp at the palace of the Tuileries, and was soon surrounded by a court foi'raed very much upon the ancient regal pattern. Bonaparte's first political step on assuming the reins of power was to address a letter directly to the King of England contain- ing overtures for peace. "Must the war," he asked, "which for eight years past has ravaged the four quarters of the globe, be eternal? Are there no means of coming to an understanding? Why should the two most enlightened nations of Europe sacrifice to vain ideas of greatness the interests of commerce, internal pros- perity, and the happiness of families, forgetting that peace is the highest necessity as well as the highest glory V This communi- cation, however, met with no favorable response from the British government. The First Consul's sincerity was doubted ; and a formal diplomatic reply was returned by Lord Grenville to Talley- rand, intimating that the only substantial security for peace was to be found in the restoration of the ancient dynasty to the throne of France, The negotiation thus proved fruitless, to the satisfac- tion pi'obably of Bonaparte, who gained credit with the country for his endeavors to effect a pacification, while at the same time he rejoiced in the prospect of continued warfai'e, from which he anticipated fresh triumphs, and the consequent stability of his own powei'. Austria likewise persisted in hostility, and the First Con- sul forthwith commenced his preparations for taking the field in the spring. The first acts of Bonaparte's internal administration were judi- cious, moderate, and conciliating. The tyrannical law of hostages Avas repealed ; the churches were once more thrown open for Chris- tian worship; the heathenish "Decades" of the Revolution were abolished, and the observance of Sunday restored; numbers of A.E7. ISOO. BONAPARTE CROSSES THE ALPS. 597 emigrants were permitted to return to France ; thousands of non- juring priests, who had languished for years in prison, regained their liberty. The sentence of transportation against the fifty-nine deputies, passed on the 19th of Brumaire, was not executed; they were merely ordered to remain at a distance from Paris, under tlae surveillance of the police. The state of the public finances im- proved rapidly under the able management of the minister Gaudin, and the national credit revived to a great extent. § 3. The campaign of 1800 commenced in April by a movement of the Austrians, commanded by General Melas, against the French army of Italy under ihe orders of Massena. The enemy drove back Massena and Souls into Genoa, and compelled Suchet, with another French division, to retire to Borghetto. The imperial general now detached a s^rong force to besiege Genoa, and with the rest of his army pursued Suchet, intending to invade Franco by the frontier of Provence. His plans, however, were soon dis- concerted by the daring genius and vigorous operations of Bona- parte. The First Consul had conceived the design of forcing a passage for his army across the most difficult and dangerous of the Alps of Switzerland, and descending upon the plains of Piedmont in the rear of the Austrian lines. On reaching Geneva, on the loth of May, Bonaparte found himself at the head of about 35,000 soldiers. The pass of the Great St. Bernard had been carefully examined by the French engineers, and upon their reporting that it was possible, though barely possible, to cross, the order was im- mediately given to advance, and the march commenced. Officers and troops vied with each other in surmounting with admirable devotion the obstacles which met them at every step of their prog- ress. The cannon, dismounted and placed in the hollow trunks of trees, were dragged by the soldiers up paths usually deemed im- practicable at that season of the year, a hundred men being har- nessed to each gun. The carriages were taken to pieces and trans- ported on the backs of mules. The summit of the mountain was attained on the loth ; the descent on the Italian side, though of- fering difficulties by no means inferior to the ascent, was safely ac- complished, and on the 16th of May the advanced guard, consist- ing of six regiments commanded by the gallant Lannes, debouched into Piedmont, and took possession of Aosta. But Lannes soon found his advance arrested by the fortress of Bard, which com- pletely commands the passage of the narrow valley of the Dora- Baltea. It was attempted to carry the place by assault, but in vain ; at length the cavalry and infantry, making a detour to the left, forced their way across the precipitous sides of the Mont Al- baredo; the artillery, concerning which serious apprehensions were at first entertained, was cari'ied during the night through the streets 598 THi: CONSULATE. Chap. XXVIII, of the town of Bard, -which had been thickly covered with straw and dung, under the very guns of the citadel, without exciting the observation of the garrison. Having overcome this formidable obstacle, the French army continued to advance, and proceeded by Novara to the banks of the Ticino. Meanwhile General Moncey, with 16,000 men, had crossed the Mont St. Gothard and descend- ed to Bellinzona, and General Thuneau, with another division, had entered Lombardy from the Mont Cenis ; the whole French army now moved in concert upon Milan, and Bonaparte took posses- sion of that city without opposition on the 2d of June. During these operations, Massena, who had sustained with dauntless resolution a siege of sixty days in Genoa, was reduced to the last extremity, and compelled to capitulate; he evacuated the place with th.e remains of his garrison on the 5th of June. Melas, on receiving the utterly unexpected and alarming intelli- gence of Bonaparte's arrival at Milan, concentrated his army in all haste at Alessandria. Bonaparte took up a position Avith his Avhole force in the great plain of Marengo, being sejjarated by the l^ivcr Boi'raida from the enemy's lines. The memorable battle of Marengo was fought on the 14th of June, 1800. In the early part of the day the advantage was decidedly on the side of the Im- perialists ; but in the afternoon, the arrival of Desaix with a fresh corps, and a desperate charge of cavaliy under Kellermann, com- pletely changed the fortunes of the day. The Austrians were driven back on all points, and lied in confusion across the Bor- mida. The loss of the two armies in this engagement Avas about equal, amounting on each side to about 7000 slain. The French had to lament the untimely death of Desaix, one of their ablest and most brilliant captains, who was mortally wounded at the head of his column as he led it to the charge. But the position of the Austrians, with a victorious enemy encamped on the Bor- mida in their front, was now desperate ; and Melas had no re- source but to enter into negotiation with the French general. A convention Avas signed on the day after the battle, by Avhich it AA'as agreed that the Austrian army should retire beyond the Mincio ; twelve fortresses Avere likcAvise surrendered to France, including Milan, Turin, Genoa, Piacenza, and Alessandria. Thus, in the coui'se of a single month, and by the unfavoi'able issue of one great battle, did the Imperialists lose all the advantages they had ac- quired in Northern Italy, Avhile France recovered all the ground Avhich had been conquered by Bonaparte in his earlier campaigns. An armistice was concluded until the arrival of instructions from Vienna, which might prove the basis of a general peace ; and Bo- naparte returned immediately to Paris, Avhere he Avas naturally Avelcomed Avith boundless enthusiasm. The splendid A'ictory of IVIarenco had an immense effect in consolidating his pov.or. A.D. 1800, 1801. BATTLE OF HOHENLINDEN. 590 § 4. The campaign of the nrmy of the Rhine, under the orders of Moreau, was scarcely less successful, and added much to the al- ready high reputation of that general. The object was to pene- trate by the valley of the Danube into the hereditary states of Austria. Moreau, driving before him the Austrians, took posses- sion of Munich ; but the news of the convention entered into be- tween Bonaparte and Melas after the battle of JMarengo led to a coi-responding cessation of hostilities in Germany. Negotiations for peace Avere now opened between Finance and Austria; but, after a delay of some months, the conferences were broken off, and hostilities recommenced toward the end of November. The Austrian army, now commanded in chief by the Archduke John, was strongly posted on the line of the Inn. The archduke imprudently advanced toward Munich through the great forest of Hohenlinden, which is intersected in all directions by narrow and difficult defiles. Moreau attacked him vigorously on the 2d of December, and tlie result was the glorious victory of Hohenlin- den; the Imperialists sustained a tei'rible defeat, and fled in ut- ter panic, leaving behind them 7000 killed and wounded, 8000 prisoners, and a hundred cannon. So severely was this calamity felt at Vienna, that all hope of prolonging the struggle successfully was at once abandoiied. An armistice was granted by Moreau ; and peace Avas concluded between Austria and France at Lunc- ville on the 9tli of February, 1801, on terms nearly identical with those of Campo Formio. The emperor renewed the cession of the Belgic provinces and the boundary of the llhine ; he also ac- knowledged the independence of the Batavian, Helvetic, Cisalpine, and Ligurian republics. § 5. Great Britain was still obstinate in the prosecution of hos- tilities. Malta surrendered to the British in September, 1800, and the communications between France and Egypt became, in consequence, difficult and precarious. The English cabinet now resolved on undertaking an expedition to Egypt, with a view of Avresting it altogether out of the hands of the enemy. General Kleber, whom Bonajmrte had left there in command, was stabbed to the heart by a fanatical Turk, and expired on the 14th of June, 1800, the same day that witnessed the death of Desaix on the field of Marengo. The command now devolved upon General Menou, a man of inferior capacity, who had made himself ridiculous in the eyes of the army by embracing the Mohammedan religion, and marrying a Turkish wife. The English armament, under the or- ders of Sir Ralph Abei-cromby, reached the Bay of Aboukir on the 1st of March, 1801 ; the disembai-kation was effected on the 8th in the face of the French, after some desperate fighting and severe loss on botli sides ; and a general engagement took place GOO THE CONSULATE. Chaf. XXVIII. on the 21st, in wliicli the British, after a long and sanguinary con- flict, repulsed their adversaries, who were driven back for shelter into the fortress of Alexandria. The victory, however, was dearly purchased; the English sustained an irreparable loss in their com- mander Aberci'omby, who died of his wounds a few days after the battle. The French wei-e sorely discouraged by this defeat, and on the 31st of August Menou signed a convention with General Hutchinson, in virtue of which the remainder of the French army was immediately withdrawn from Egypt. Many considerations, however, now disposed both the French and English governments toward an accommodation of their dif- ferences. Mr. Pitt, the pertinacious enemy of France, retired from the ministry in February, 1801 ; a congress assembled at Amiens, and peace was signed in that city between Great Britain, France, Spain, and tlie Batavian Republic, on the 27th of Mai'ch, 1802. England surrendered on this occasion all her conquests made dur- ing the war, with the exception of the islands of Trinidad and Ceylon, which were ceded to her in full sovereignty. Malta was to be restored to the Knights of St. John, its independence being guaranteed by all the powers of Europe. Egypt reverted to the dominion of the Ottoman Porte. France engaged to evacuate the kingdom of the Two Sicilies and the Papal States, and to re- place in their full integrity the dominions of the queen of Portu- gal. Although the terms of this treaty were complained of in both houses of Parliament as humiliating to Great Britain, the tidings of the pacification were received, on the whole, with lively satisfaction on both sides of the Channel. It appears, however, that no sanguine expectation existed on either side that the peace would be of long continuance. § G. In proportion as the pre-eminent abilities displayed by Bonaparte, and the marvelous successes of his recent campaigns, added strength and the promise of stability to his government, he incurred the deadly enmity of the two extreme factions of the Kevolutionists and the Royalists, whose hopes he had so signally defeated. They plotted against him with unwearied activity, aiming, in the desperation of their malice, at nothing short of his assassination. One attempt on the part of the Royalists was within a hair's breadth of success. The " infernal machine" is said to have been originally invented by a Jacobin named Cheva- lier.* It consisted of a barrel full of gunpowder and various deadly projectiles, fixed upon a cart, and furnished with a slow match, by means of which it might be suddenly exploded from a considerable distance, producing indiscriminate slaughter on all sides. This murderous engine was imitated by two fanatical * Tliibnudo.ui, Cons/i/af, vul. ii., [i. 'do. A. D. 1800-1803. INFERNAL MACHINE.— CODE NAPOLEON. QQl Chouans named Carbon and St. Regent, already well known for their fearless hardihood in the bloody scenes of the Vende'an war; they placed it, on the 24th of December, 1800, in the middle of the narrow Kue St. Nicaise, through which they knew that Bona- parte must pass that evening on his way to the Opera. The equi- page of the First Consul passed the cart an instant before the ex- plosion took place, and he reached the theatre in safety ; but the glasses of Madame Bonaparte's carriage, which closely followed, were shattered to fragments. The sacrifice of life was terrible; fifty-two persons were killed or severely wounded. § 7. Bonaparte's measures of internal organization were for the most pai't wise, sagacious, and highly beneficial to France. His task was, in fact, nothing less than the reconstruction of society, which had lapsed into a state of utter chaos ; and the versatile genius and indefatigable industry of the First Consul carried new life and energy into every department of the social system. Com- merce, agriculture, manufactures, the. revenue, the regulation of public institutions of all kinds — museums, libraries, schools, col- leges, professorships — public works, many of vast magnitude — such, for instance, as the splendid road from I'rance to Italy by the Pass of the Simplon — all became in turn the subjects of his personal and anxious labor, and all prospered to a marvelous ex- tent under his hands. But perhaps the most valuable and important monument of the earlier part of Bonaparte's administration is the systematic digest of national law, called the Code Civil, or Code Napoleon. The necessity of this great enterprise had been already pi'oclaimed by the Constituent Assembly, in order to reduce to uniformity the confused mass of provincial customs and traditions, and some pre- liminary steps had been taken toward it. Bonaparte intrusted the undertaking to a commission, consisting of the Second Consul Cambaceres, and several lawyers of the highest reputation, who executed their task with remarkable zeal, patience of research, ability, and learning. The result of their labors was eventually submitted to the Council of State, in which the First Consul him- self presided. He entered freely into the debates, and is said to have treated the various pi'ofound and complicated qu^tions un- der consideration Avith an acuteness, perspicuity, and force of rea- soning which astonished even the most experienced jurisconsults who had devoted their whole lives to the study of law. The de- liberations on the Civil Code extended over three years ; it was at length promulgated on the 21st of March, 1803. Another subject, and one of extreme delicacy and difficulty, was the state of ecclesiastical affairs. Personally, the First Con- sul seems to have had no religious belief beyond a vague recogni- C r 602 THE CONSULATE. Chap. XXVIII. tion of the existence of a Supreme Being ; yet he had fully re- solved, from political considerations, to re-establish the public profession of Christianity, and to restore, within certain limits, the ancient Catholic Church of France. The negotiation which he entered into with the Pope was successfully conducted, and the celebrated act called the Concordat was signed on the 15 th of July, 1801. The following were its principal provisions: I. The Koman Catholic religion was declared to be that of the French government, and of the majority of Frenchmen ; its woi'- ship was to be publicly celebrated throughout France. II. All the ancient sees were suppressed, the Pope requiring the existing prelates to resign their preferments for this purpose. III. Ten new archbishoprics and fifty bishoprics were created, to which the First Consul was to nominate, while the See of Kome was to con- fer the canonical institution. The diocesans were to present to the parochial cures, their choice, however, being in all cases sub- ject to the approval of the government. IV. The Pope sanction- ed the sale of Church property which had taken place during the Revolution, and reno.unced for himself and his successors all fu- ture claims to its resumption; the French government, in return, pledged itself to make an adequate provision for the maintenance of the clergy of all ranks. V. All ecclesiastics were to take an oath of allegiance to the existing government, and a prayer for the republic and the consuls was inserted in the service of the Church. Certain "organic decrees" were artfully appended to the Con- cordat, consisting of farther regulations for the government of the Church, and asserting in strong terras the Galilean liberties, with express reference to the famous resolutions of 1682. § 8. Bonaparte published soon afterward a general amnesty to emigrants, with certain exceptions. This measure was followed by the institution of the celebrated Legion of Honor (May 19, 1802). This was designed by him primarily as a means of publicly re- warding distinguished services, military, civil, and scientific ; but he had also an ulterior object — to lay the foundation of an order of society which should occupy a middle place between the gov- ernment and the mass of the people ; to excite emulation, self- respect, a^ense of responsibility to public opinion, and other qual- ities whicn go to form the moral strength and prestige of a com- munity.* This purpose, however, was by no means understood or appreciated by the then generation of Frenchmen ; and the project of the Legion of Honor was vehemently combated and condemned, especially by the Republicans, who stigmatized it as contrary to the great principle of equality, as a revival of aristo- cratic privilege, and a first step toward hereditary nobility. * Thibaudean, Consulnf, vol. ii., p. 471, 479. A.D. 1802. THE ITALIAN REPUBLIC. 603 The interval of peace which Europe now enjoyed was looked upon by Bonaparte and his friends as a favorable opportunity for prolonging his tenure of office as consul, and preparing the way for his assumption of absolute power. The Council of State de- termined to consult the nation on the question " whether Bona- parte should be named consul for life T' and, farther, " whether he should have the power of nominating his successor?" Kegisters were opened without delay in every cominune throughout France; the affirmative suffi-ages exceeded three millions and a half; and a senatiis-consultum of the 2d of August, 1802, proclaimed that the French people had elected Napoleon Bonaparte consul for life. At this epech of his career Bonaparte may be said to have reached the extreme limits of legitimate and honorable ambition. His domestic government had enabled him to assuage and rem- edy some of the most alarming maladies which afflicted France ; while abroad, the vigor of his character, the lustre of his talents, and the strong attitude assumed by France under his rule, had extended his influence, directly or indirectly, over almost the whole Continent of Europe. Could he but have rested content with this pi'oud position, his name might have descended to the latest posterity, not only as a consummate master of the art of war, but with the far more exalted glory of a real benefactor of his country. But, unhappily for himself and for the world, he soon began to betray that arbitrary reckless spirit of encroach- ment and self-aggi-andizement which at length combined all the great European monarchies in one indignant league against him, and ultimately sealed his ruin. § 9. It was in the course of this year that the First Consul, summoning the most distinguished deputies of the states of north- ern Italy to meet him at Lyons, proceeded to reorganize the con- stitution of tlie Cisalpine Republic. The assembly resolved, after some discussion, that the executive government should be confided to a president, and requested Bonaparte to undertake that office. He accepted the proffered honor, and at once assumed the chief authority as President of the Italian Republic. A native Italian, Melzi, was named to represent him, with the title of Vice-president, at Milan. The Ligurian Republic was next remodeled upon the same pattern, except that in this case Bonaparte appointed a Doge as head of the executive power, instead of taking that dignity upon himself. Piedmont was formally incorporated Avith the French dominions in September, 1802 ; and about the same time the duchies of Parma, Piacenza, and Guastalla were likewise seized, and placed under a French administration. The conduct of the First Consul with regard to Switzerland was equally oppressive and unjustifiable. The French troops had been withdrawn from 604 'I'lIE CONSULATE. Chap. XXVIIL the country in accordance with the treaty of Luneville ; but stormy feuds immediately broke out between the Federalists, or friends of the ancient Constitution, and the partisans of the gov- ernment which had been established by the French Directory. The aristocratic faction succeeded in expelling their rivals from office, and set up a new executive go\ernment at Berne, at the head of which they placed the patriotic Aloys Reding. Upon this Bonaparte dispatched an army of 20,000 men under Ney to Berne to enforce the submission of the patriots and the re-estab- lishment of the Republican Constitution. The Swiss had no re- source but to bow implicitly to the dictator's will. Bonaparte was invested with the title of " Grand Mediator of the Helvetic Confederation." Geneva, Basle, and the canton of Valais were annexed to France. Though still recognized as independent, the Swiss republic became thenceforth subject in reality to the para- mount influence and authority of France. A successful insurrection having broken out in the island of St. Domingo,* headed by the celebrated negro adventurer Toussaint rOuverture, a powerful French army was dispatched thither in February, 1802, under General Leclerc, who had married Bona- parte's sister Pauline. Toussaint, a man of extraordinary energy and talent, defended himself with desperate valor for several months ; but, being worsted in many successive engagements, he was at length compelled to surrender, and was admitted to favor- able terms. Suspicion, however, having afterward arisen that he was secretly concerting fresh schemes of rebellion, Toussaint was suddenly arrested and carried to France. Here he Avas treated with extreme severity, and consigned to the remote fortress of Joux, among the Jura Mountains, where he expired on the 27th of April, 1803. Meanwhile the war between the French and the negroes in St. Domingo was x'enewed with the utmost fury. Ere long the yellow fever broke out in the island with unusual viru- lence, and the French troops were swept away by thousands by this tremendous scourge of a West Indian climate. Genei'al Le- clerc was among the victims. General Rochambeau succeeded him in the command ; but the army was now reduted to the most deplorable and helpless condition, having lost upward of 20,000 men out of 30,000 by the merciless ravages of the pestilence. By this time the rupture of the peace of Amiens had once more pre- * The negroes of this colony had been declared free by a decree of the National Convention in 1 794. Not long afterward the black population rose against the Europeans, and after a bloody struggle established their inde- pendence. The Directory attempted, but in vain, to restore the dominion of Prance ; Generals Hedouville and Rigaud were defeated and driven from the island, and the government was then seized by Toussaint. Bonaparte, ou becoming first consul, had confirmed him in his authority. A.D. 1803. DISPUTES BETWEEN FRANCE AND ENGLAND. gQS cipitated Great Britain and France into hostilities ; and a strong English armament having made its appearance at St. Domingo, the feeble remnant of the French force, after a brief attempt at resistance, capitulated in November, 1803. This important and once flourishing colony Avas thus wrested definitively from the do- minion of France. § 10. The mutual grievances and acrimonious disputes which arose between the French and English governments almost im- mediately after the publication of the peace of Amiens left little hope that that arrangement was based on solid and durable foun- dations. The chief bone of contention was Malta, which Great Britain refused to evacuate, according to the stipulations of the treaty. Upon this point animated discussions took place between the First Consul and the British embassadoi'. Lord Whitworth ; and on one occasion during these negotiations Bonaparte so far forgot himself as to make use, at a public reception at the Tui- leries, of offensive and passionate language, and even of gestures personally insulting to the representative of England. Lord Whit- worth at length demanded his passports, and took his departure ■from Paris on the 13th of May, 1803. This step was immediate- ly followed by the seizure of all vessels belonging to France found in the harbors of Great Britain ; and the damage to French prop- erty and commerce was estimated at three millions sterling. Bo- naparte retaliated by arresting all British subjects traveling at that time in France, and detaining them as prisoners of war. Plaving been so long excluded from the Continent by the Revolutionary war, the English had flocked across the Channel in multitudes on the announcement of the peace of Amiens ; and many thousand individuals of all classes and conditions, but especially of the high- er ranks, were thus suddenly deprived of their liberty, separated from their families and connections, and cut off for years from all intercourse Avith their native land. § 11. The French commenced operations with vigorous energy. Toward the end of May a large body of troops under General Mortier invaded the electorate of Hanover, which submitted after a feeble resistance, and remained in the occupation of the French. Another strong division, commanded by St. Cyr, entered the king- dom of Naples, and took possession, without opposition, of Taren- to, Otranto, and Brindisi. But Bonaparte's chief attention Avas j\ow fixed upon a grand and hazardous project Avhich he had al- ready entertained, and which had only been laid aside until a fa- vorable opportunity — that of an armed descent upon the British shores. For this purpose immense naval preparations Avere made at Boulogne, Etaples, Ambleteuse, St. Valery, and other ports in the Channel, and a flotilla of near two thousand sail Avas collect- 606 THE CONSULATE. Chap. XXVIII. ed ; a vast and splendidly-appointed army was at the same time assembled in a line of camps extending along the coast from Havre to Ostend. The only effect, however, of these menacing demon- strations was to excite a general outburst of patriotism and mar- tial spirit in England. The volunteer force of the United King- dom numbered in the course of a few weeks no less than 300,000 men, while the fleet was augmented to the extraordinary amount of near six hundred vessels of war of various sizes. The recommencement of the war was the signal for fresh at- tempts, on the part of the various factions hostile to Bonaparte in France, to overturn his government and destroy his life. A con- spiracy was hatched in the autumn of 1803 among the Royalist refugees in London, headed by the brave and desperate Chouan Georges Cadoudal, General Pichegru, and two members of the Po- lignac family. A British vessel landed them secretly in Norman- dy, and they proceeded to Paris, where they endeavored to engage in their enterprise Moreau. The gallant general, however, recoil- ed in horror from the design of assassinating the First Consul ; and although there is no doubt that he held two private interviews with Cadoudal and Pichegru, and was in a state of sullen enmity' and opposition to the existing government, it does not appear that he in any way countenanced the plot, much less that he actively promoted it. The fact of the conspiracy, meanwhile, was soon discovered by Fouche and the police ; and Bonaparte, seizing with avidity the opportunity of destroying the influence of the only ri- val whom he really feared, determined to proceed against Moreau as a criminal, and caused him to be arrested on the 15th of Feb- ruary, 1804. Farther revelations led to the apprehension of Pi- chegru and Georges Cadoudal. Other arrests followed in quick succession, until more than forty prisoners were secured. § 12. While the Parisians were speculating upon the trial and punishment of the culprits, a mysterious and fearful deed of blood had been perpetrated close to the capital, the sudden announce- ment of which produced a profound sensation of horror not only in France, but throughout Europe. The Duke of Enghien, eldest son of the Duke of Bourbon, and grandson of the Prince of Conde, had been residing for some time at Ettenheim, in the territory of Baden, a few miles from the French frontier, with a vague inten- tion, it would seem, of taking part in any future attempt which might be made by the emigrants for the restoration of his family to the throne. The First Consul, harassed and exasperated by the reports which reached him from all sides of schemes for his assassination, resolved to seize the person of this young prince, and to deal with him as accessory to the conspiracy of Pichegru and Cadoudal, although no evidence whatever could be produced A.D. 1804. EXECUTION OF THE DUKE OF ENGHIEN. gQ? to connect him with it, either by guilty knowledge or overt act.* A party of dragoons arrested the Duke of Enghien at Ettenheim on the night of the 15th of March ; he was conducted to the cita- del of Strasburg, and thence, after an interval of two days, trans- ferred rapidly to Paris, I'eaching the barriers early on the 20th. Without entering the city, the prince was taken to the castle of Vincennes, where he was brought before a military commission named by Murat, governor of Paris, The mock trial was con- ducted with indecent precipitation in the dead of the night ; the sentence of the court had been fully arranged beforehand ; the prisoner was condemned to death, and his execution took place in the fosse of Vincennes at six in the morning of the 21st of March. Conscious of the universal odium which this great crime must needs entail upon its author, Bonaparte made vai-ious inconsistent and lame attempts to shift off the responsibility from himself upon others, but in his more deliberate moments he adopted a very dif- ferent, and at least a more candid line of defense. He states in his last will and testament, "I caused the Duke of Enghien to be arrested and condemned, because that step was necessary to the safety, the interest, and the honor of the French people, at a mo- ment when the Count of Artois maintained, by his own confession, sixty assassins at Paris. In similar circumstances I would act in" the same way again."! § 13. The formidable conspiracy of Georges Cadoudal was ini- doubtedly the proximate cause which impelled Bonaparte to take the final step in his extraordinary ascent to supreme despotic pow- er ; it was followed almost immediately by his assumption of an hereditary imperial throne. In an address voted by the senate, this change was expressly declared to be npcessary in consequence of the malignant plots of the enemies of France against the safety of the state ; Republican institutions, it was confessed, had proved unequal to the exigencies of the country ; a more fixed and stable government was indispensable. The proposal was accepted unan- imously by the Legislative Chamber; and on the 18th of May, 1804, an " organic senatus consultum" proclaimed Napoleon Bo- naparte Emperor of the French, and declared the throne heredit- ary in his family in the order of male succession. The emperor might adopt either of the children of his brothers ; in default of his direct issue, or of such adoption, the imperial crown devolved upon his brothers Joseph and Louis Bonaparte, and their descend- ants. Lucien and Jerome were excluded from the succession in consequence of having contracted marriages of which Napoleon disapproved. Once more the flattering but altogether superfluous *■ Thibaudeaii. Consulnt, vol. iii., p. 548. j' Las Cases, Metnorial de Sainte Helene, COS THE CONSULATE. CnAi>. XXVIII. appeal was made to the will of the people, and the new dynasty was consecrated by 3,572,329 affiraaative votes, against 2569 only in the negative. Six grand dignities of the empire were now created : those of Grand Elector, Arch-Chancellor, Arch-Treas- urer, Chancellor of State, Constable, and Grand Admiral ; eight- een distinguished generals, most of whom had acquired their lau- rels under the command of Napoleon in the Italian campaigns, Avere named Marshals of the Empire. A few days after the promulgation of the empire (May 28, 1804), the Chouan conspirators, among whom the government in- cluded General Moreau, were brought to trial before the ordinary criminal tribunal at Paris. One of the most important prisoners, Pichegru, was now no more ; on the 7th of April he had commit- ted suicide in his prison in the Temple. Georges Cadoudal and eighteen others were condemned to death, and Moreau to two years' imprisonment. Napoleon is said to have desired a capital sentence against Moreau, in order to gain credit for generous clem- ency by granting him a pardon ; he, however, commuted the im- prisonment for exile to the United States of America. Cadoudal and ten of his accomplices Avere executed, and met death with re- markable firmness and intrepidity. The remaining eight were spared by the emperor. Jledal of Napoleon, king of Italy. § 14. Preparations were now commenced for the solemn cor- onation of the emperor and empress at the Cathedral of Notre Dame. As the founder of a new dynasty of French monarchs. Napoleon had resolved, after the example of Pepin, to obtain for his crown the personal sanction and benediction of the successor of St. Peter, the visible head of the Catholic Church. Pope Pius VII. made no difficulty ifi complying with the imperial request ; and the coronation was solemnized, with all imaginable pomp and magnificence, on the 2d of December, 1804. Napoleon, with char- A.D. 1804, 1805. CORONATION OF NAPOLEON. 609 acteristic arrogance, took the crown, which had been previously blessed, out of the hands of the pontiiF, and placed it upon his own head ; he then proceeded to crown the empress, who knelt before him. A few months later Napoleon transformed the Cis- alpine Kepublic into a monarchy, and assumed the additional title of King of Italy. His coronation took place in the Cathedral of Milan on the 26th of May, 1805, the celebrated iron crown of the ancient Lombard princes being used on the occasion. The em- peror's stepson, Eugene de Beauharnais, was now invested with the dignity of Viceroy of Italy. The grandeur of the new empire was farther augmented by the annexation of the Ligurian Repub- lic ; the Genoese territory, constituting three French departments, was incorporated with France on the 30th of June, 1805. Cc2 GIO GENEALOGY OF THE BONAPARTE FAMILY. Chap. XXIX. S •- ■■^ a Ph pq — S^ •X I- CO -i . 2 , '- iO •* rt g d th o4 (— i t< ;;;j) o 9 M y. .2 S g .3 ^ t-o 5 =3 a •P.-S QJ a g . - c 'S J"- CO ^ 0) ! ■^ O O . •- :5 ' II N s;5 ° o^ 03 a> w t^co o a .. ^ 52 II O ^'B II II a, 3 d II 3 iJ'53 o 3'^ 'S g 1-5 t»^ 3J .2 "o .■ lans of Napoleon were far more extensive. Had he been able G56 ' THE REST(3RATI0N. Chap. XXXI. to postpone the outbreak of hostilities for three months longer, a total of not less than 800,000 men would in all probability have been assembled for the defense of the French frontiers ; '• a wall of brass," as the emperor afterward remarked, "which no earthly power would have been able to break through." Two plans for the approaching campaign presented themselves to Napoleon's choice. He might either remain for the present on the defensive, and await the arrival of the Allies, who could not commence offensive operations on a combined plan before the mid- dle or end of July, or, on the other hand, he might anticipate the movements of the enemy, concentrate the mass of his forces on the Belgian frontier, and attack Wellington and Blucher before they could be succored by the other armies of the coalition. The latter alternative was that selected by the emperor, and Belgium was to become once more, as on so many other memorable occa- sions, the battle-field of Europe. Napoleon crossed the Belgian frontier on the 14th of June. The total force with which he commenced the campaign was 115,500 men. His plan was to advance in person against the Prussians, who formed the left of the Allied army, while, at the same time, Marshal Ney, detached with 45,000 men, was to en- counter the English, prevent their junction with Blucher, and keep them hotly engaged until the emperor should arrive with an immense superiority of force to complete their discomfiture. The enemy received intelligence of this scheme from General Bour- mont, who, with his aids-de-camp and thi'ee other officers, treach- erously deserted Napoleon on the night of the 14th, and joined the camp of Blucher.* § 6. At daylight on the 15th of June the French dii^ected their march upon Charleroi. On the 16th Napoleon discovered the Prussian army, about 80,000 strong, drawn up on a range of heights near the village of Ligny. He had ordered Ney, after making himself master of an important point called Les Quatre Bras, to countermarch and fall upon the rear of the Prussians. Having allowed the time necessary for this movement, he com- menced the attack at four in the afternoon, and at length estab- lished himself in possession of I^igny after a frightful carnage. The contest continued till a late hour at night, when Blucher at length commenced a retreat upon Wavre, which was executed in perfect order. The French loss at Ligny has been stated at from 8000 to 10,000 men,t that of the Prussians exceeded 15,000. Meanwhile Ney, whose object was to possess himself of the post of Quatre Bras (at the intersection of the roads from Brussels to * General Jomini, Precis de la Campat/ne c^e 1815. + Tliibaiulean, vol. vii., p. 382. A.D. 1815. BATTLE OF WATERLOO. 657 Charleroi and from Nivelles to Namur) before the arrival of the English army, was forestalled by the Duke of Wellington ; Quatre Bras was occupied at an early hour on the 16th by some Belgian and Dutch regiments under the Prince of Orange, and about mid- day by the division of Sir Thomas Picton, with the Brunswickers and Nassau troops. The French attacked about three in the aft- ernoon, and easily drove back the Belgians, but failed to gain any advantage over the British, who held their ground with immov- able constancy until the Duke of Wellington came up with con- siderable re-enforcements.* At nightfall Ney withdrew his forces toward Frasnes, having lost upward of 4000 men in killed and wounded. Napoleon's main object, that of penetrating between the British and Prussian armies, and beating them in detail, was thus frustrated. But the retreat of Blucher upon Wavre rendered it necessary that tlie English general should make a correspond- ing movement ; and the Duke of Wellington accordingly fell back and took up a position near the village of Waterloo, which he had previously examined and fixed upon for the purpose of cover- ing Brussels. He thus maintained unimpaired his line of com- munication with his allies. Napoleon, ignorant of the direction of Blucher's retreat, dis- patched Marshal Grouchy on the 17th, with 32,000 men, to pur- sue and overtake the Prussians, and prevent, at all hazards, their junction with the Duke of Wellington. The emperor himself then joined the corps of Marshal Ney at Frasnes, and with his united force followed the retreating English. A severe skirmish occurred with their rear-guard at Genappe, but when the French arrived in sight of the field of Waterloo it was too late to com- mence farther operations that evening, and the decisive struggle Avas postponed till the morrow. As soon as Napoleon discovered that Wellington had determined to accept a general engagement at Waterloo, he sent positive instructions to Grouchy to occupy strongly the defiles of St. Lambert, for the double purpose of pre- serving his own communication with the grand army, and prevent- ' ing Blucher from coming up in force to the assistance of the En- glish. With this order, however, the marshal was unable to com- ply, for reasons which will be explained hereafter. The French army was posted on a chain of gentle eminences taking its name from the village of Rossomme, the centre of their line being cross- ed, at the farm of La Belle Alliance, by the high road from Char- leroi to Brussels. The English occupied a similar range imme- * The British force at the beginning of the action at Quatre Bras was 19,000 men ; large re-enforcements arrived during the battle, and at the close of the day the duke had 30,000 men. — Remarks on the Campaign q/lSlS, by Cap- tain W. Pringle, of the Engineers. E E 2 658 THE KESTORATION. Chap. XXXI. diately opposite, at the distance of about half a mile ; the hamlet of Mont St. Jean marked the centre of their position, which ex- tended on the right nearly to Merke-Braine, and on the left to Ter-la-Haye. In front of the right centre was the chateau of Hougoumont, surrounded by its gardens and a small wood; the farm-house of La Haye Sainte formed in like manner an advanced post in front of the left centre. On his extreme left the Duke of Wellington communicated with the Prussians at Wavre by the road through Ohain and St. Lambert, the distance between the two armies being somewhat more than twelve miles. Marshal Blucher had promised the British general to support him at Wa- terloo on the 18th with one corps, or more if necessary ; three out of the four Prussian divisions eventually took part in the opera- tions of the day. § 7. The momentous battle of the 18th of June, 1815, has been repeatedly described by writers of the highest intelligence and ability, and with the utmost variety and minuteness of detail-, but, although the great leading features of the day are incontest- able, there are several points concerning Avhich it is still difficult to ascertain the precise truth, from the conflicting and contradict- ory language of the different narratives. These discrepancies re- late chiefly to the comparative numerical strength of the armies — to the extent of the co-operation of the Prussians in the actual contest at Waterloo — and to the movements of Marshal Grouchy and his corps, detached by Napoleon toward Wavre on the pre- ceding day. Waterloo was not a day of intricate manoeuvres, nor was there any remarkable display of military science or skill on either side. The object of each commander was simple and obvious. That of the Duke of Wellington was to maintain possession of his post on the ridge of Mont St. Jean until the promised arrival of Blucher's divisions should enable him to assume the offensive with a decided superiority of force. That of his adversary was to penetrate and .carry the English position by dint of impetuous and incessant at- tacks, before the Prussians, fiercely engaged with Grouchy, should be able to undertake any movement to the succor of their allies. Had he succeeded in effecting this. Napoleon would immediately have gained possession of Brussels ; all Belgium would not im- probably have risen in his favor; and the face of affairs would have been essentially altered. The battle began about half past eleven a.m. with a furious at- tack on the advanced post of Hougoumont, which the Duke of Wellington regarded as the key of his position. Tiie English Guards defended themselves at this point with desperate resolu- tion ; and though part of the chateau was at Icngtli set on fire by A.D. 1815. CAPTURE OF LA HAYE SAINTE. 659 the French shells, Hougoumont was held undauntedly throughout the day, the enemy sacrificing, in their repeated attempts to force it, nearly 10,000 men. Three dense masses of infantry, and a magnificent body of cuirassiers, advanced meanwhile against the •British centre at La Haye Sainte, under cover of a tremendous storm of artillery from the heights of La Belle Alliance. The gallant Ney dii'ected this movement. His columns penetrated beyond La Haye Sainte, and attempted to charge the English regiments drawn up in squares on the ci-est of the hill; a terrible conflict ensued ; Sir Thomas Ficton, with the brigades of Gener- als Kempt and Peck, forced back the assailants across the ridge, and, a division of heavy cavalry under Lord Uxbridge falling upon them at tlie same moment, they were overwhelmed and almost annihilated ; two eagles were captured in this brilliant charge, with more than 2000 pi'isoners. But the victorious Brit- ish, in the excitement of the moment, pushed their advantage too far toward the enemy's line, and became entangled in the masses of the French infantry in the valley ; here Generals Picton and Sir W. Ponsonby were slain, and the famous fifth division was re- duced to a mere skeleton of its former numbers. For five hours did Napoleon continue his attempts with unabated vigor to storm the centre of the English line, each effort being repulsed with the same indomitable gallantly on the part of the defenders. No ad- vantage had been gained beyond the occupation of some of the inclosures around Hougoumont and the capture of La Haye Sainte. But frightful. havoc had been made in the British ranks by these repeated and murderous assaults ;" several of the foreign regiments had become disordered, and one had taken fliglit, panic-stricken, to Bi-ussels. Wellington's situation, although his confidence in his army was boundless and unshaken, became every hour more critical ; he testified his anxiety by referring constantly to» his watch, and longed fervently for the arrival of Blucher. About half past four a cannonade in the direction of Planchenoit, on the right flank of the French, announced the arrival of the 4th Prus- sian division under General Bulow. His march had been im- peded by the state of the cross-roads between AYavre and Mont St. Jean, at all times difficult from the rugged nature of the ground, and which recent heavy rains had rendered almost impracticable. Napoleon ordered Count Lobau, with the 6th corps, to keep the Prussians in check, while he made another desperate efibrt to drive the English from the central plateau of Mont St. Jean, well knowing that, unless he could effect this before the Avhole Prus- sian army came into action upon his right flank, his ruin was in- evitable. While the battle was thus raging at Waterloo, Grouchy, whom the emperor had been impatiently expecting throughout the 660 THE EESTOEATION. Cuap. XXXI. clay, had been detained at Wavre by the 3d Prussian corps tinder General Thielman, which he strangely mistook for the Avhole of Blucher's army. Messenger after messenger was dispatched to hurry up the marshal to Napoleon's assistance, but the order fail- ed to reach him till late in the afternoon ; and when at length he^ crossed the Dyle at Limale, the decisive field of Waterloo had been already fought and won. The 1st and 2d Prussian divisions suc- cessively appeared on the scene, and began to operate with serious eifect on the right and rear of the French. About seven in the evening, Napoleon, as a last resource, ordered up the Imperial Guard, which had hitherto been kept carefully in reserve, and, having marshaled them in person at the foot of his position, launched them in two columns against the opposite heights, under the command of the intrepid Ney. This was the crisis of the bat- tle. The British line gradually converged from the extremity of its right wing upon the advancing French as they ascended the hill, and poured in so withering a tire as they were in the act of attempting to deploy, that, notwithstanding their consummate dis- cipline, they were thrown into total confusion ; and being charged on the instant by the British Guards, were chased down into the valley with tremendous cai'nage. Without allowing the enemy a moment to rally from this fatal repulse, AVellington now command- ed his Avhole army to advance. But the French Avere utterly dis- heartened and panic-struck by the defeat of the Guard ; the at- tack of the Prussians, 36,000 strong, had disordered their rear; and after a brief and despairing resistance from four remaining battalions of the Old Guard, they broke their ranks and tied from the field in indescribable dismay. Napoleon, on witnessing the failure of his final effort, suddenly turned pale, and muttered in a tone of anguish, " They are mingled together!" Then turning to Ms staff, "Tout est perdu," he exclaimed; "sauve qui pent !" and rode at full gallop from the scene of his discomfiture, scarcely pausing till he reached Charleroi. Never was disaster more complete, overwhelming, and irreme- diable. The fugitives were pursued by the Prussians with savage and unrelenting animosity ; no quarter was given ; and thousands who had passed unharmed through all the perils of the battle, perished miserably beneath lance, sword, and bayonet before they gained the frontier. The total loss sustained by the French on the 18th is stated by one of their own least partial writei's at 37,000 killed, Avounded, and prisoners.* § 8. Napoleon, committing to IMarshal Soult, his major-general, the task of rallying and reorganizing the remains of his shattered army, continued his flight with the utmost speed, and reached * Thibandean, vol. vii., p. 39 1 . A.D. 1815. NAPOLEON'S DEFEAT AND EXILE. C61 Paris at four in the morning of the 21st, bearing himself the first authentic tidings of the catastrophe at Waterloo. Agitation, ter- ror, confusion, despair, overspread the capital. Finding that the chambers were firmly I'esolved to extort his abdication, he drew up a "Declaration to the French People," in which he stated that, having been disappointed in the hope of uniting all parties and authorities in the cause of national independence, he offered him- self as a sacrifice to the enemies of France. " May they prove sincere," he continued, " in their declarations, and have really no designs except against my person ! My political life is termina- ted ; and I proclaim my son, under the title of Napoleon II., Em- peror of the French. The present ministers will form provision- ally the council of government." This act of abdication was car- ried by FoLiche to the Assembly, who voted an answer of respect- ful thanks to Napoleon, but avoided any express acknoAvledgment of his son. Napoleon first withdrew to the villa of La Malmaison, and thence proceeded to Rochefort on the 29th of June, where he hoped, to procure the means of embarking for America. It v\; s found impossible, how^ever, to elude the observation of the Briti.-h cruisers, which blockaded the whole line of the coast from Brest to Bayonne : and at length Napoleon, after discussing and abandon- ing several plans of secret escape, determined on appealing for pro- tection to the honor and generosity of Great Britain. On the 14th of July he dispatched a letter by General Gourgaud to the prince regent, announcing that his political career was terminated, and that he came, " like Themistocles, to thi'ow himself on the hospitality of the British people, claiming the protection of their laws." On the next day he embarked with his suite on board the "Bellerophon," a line-of-battle ship commanded by Captain Mait- land, which immediately sailed for England, and on the 24th an- chored in Torbay. Here Napoleon was met by the deeply morti- fying intelligence that he would not be permitted to land ; and a few days later the final decision of the English government Avas comrhunicated to him, namely, that he was to be conveyed to the island of St. Helena, there to remain for the rest of his life as a prisoner of state, under the surveillance of commissioners from all the Allied Powers. He protested strongly, but in vain, against this harsh proceeding, which nothing but the extreme urgency of the circumstances could justify ; and several times uttered threats of self-destruction in order to escape from such a dismal and hope- less banishment. Sheer necessity by degrees seemed to reconcile him to his fate ; he selected Generals Montholon, Bertrand, and Gourgaud, with the Count Las Cases, to attend him as companions of his exile ; and having been transferred to the " Northumber- land," under the commnnd of Sir George Cockburn, the illustrious 662 THE RESTORATION. Chap. XXXI. captive landed on the 16th of October at St. Helena, where neai-ly six years of languishing misery awaited him before his restless and exhausted spirit found repose in the grave. § 9. Louis XVIII. (a.d. 1815-1824).— France was now to sub-= mit a second time to the indignity of accepting a dynasty imposed on her by the bayonets of foreign armies, and that under circum- stances far more degrading and oiFensive to the national vanity than before. The allied generals absolutely refused to listen to any propositions for an armistice until they were under the very walls of Paris, Negotiations were opened with the Duke of Wel- lington and Blucher, and on the 3d of July a convention was sign- ed at St. Cloud, by which Paris was to be surrendered to the Al- lies within three days, and the French army, evacuating the city, Avas to retire upon the Loire. By the 7th the whole army had withdrawn from Paris, of which the Allies immediately took pos- session ; and on the next day Louis XVIII. re-entered the city, attended by five marshals, escorted by his household, and sur- rounded by foreign battalions. His reception was by no means generally cordial ; the partisans of the old regime shouted and congratulated, but the populace were for the most part gloomily silent, or muttered suppressed murmurs of indignation. Talley- rand was declared president of the council of ministers ; and the king was induced, sorely against his will, to bestow the depart- ment of police on the regicide Fouche, the despicable traitor who had duped and betrayed all parties in succession, but who was now felt, both by the Allies and the ultra-Koyalists, to be too im- portant and dangerous a personage to be offended. Paris was treated by the exulting Allies as a conquered capital The Prussians, especially, showed themselves ungenerous and mer- ciless in this hour of vengeance ; Blucher was with difficulty re- strained from blowing up the Pont de Jena, and destroying the column of the Place Vendome. A harsh order was issued by liaron Muffling, govei'nor of Paris, directing the sentinels to fire upon any person who might insult them by word, look, or gesture. The museum of the Louvre was despoiled of the priceless treasures of art which had been collected there from various parts of Europe during the reign of Napoleon — a proceeding which deeply wound- ed the susceptibilities of the French, although, in fact, it was no more than a just restitution of stolen property to its rightful own- ers. But these were among the lightest of the penalties inflicted on the vanquished. The greater part of the whole French terri- tory was occupied by foreign armies. The Russians and Austri- ans overspread the eastern provinces — Burgundy, Lorraine, and Champagne; Paris and the surrounding country were in the hands of the Prussians ; the Englisli, Hanoverians, and Dutch were can- A.D. 1815. THE TREATY OF VIENNA. 6G3 toned in the northern districts; while troops of various nations — Spaniards, Italians, and Hungarians — were quartered in the south. § 10. The king himself, ui-ged by indiscreet and violent coun- sels, had entered France with plainly avowed threats of penal retribution against the Bonapartists. "I owe it," said he,* "to the dignity of my crown, to the interest of my people, and to the repose of Europe, to exempt from pardon the authors and insti- gators of this traitorous plot. They shall be delivered up to the vengeance of the laws by the two chambers which I propose to as- semble forthwith." The new Legislative Chambers — meeting un- der the influence of one of those rapid and uncontrollable i-evul- sions of feeling which are so specially characteristic of France — not only sanctioned these rigorous measures, but carried their vin- dictiveness against the empire and the revolution to still farther extremes. The Chamber of Representatives soon proved itself " more counter-revolutionary than all Europe, and more Koyalist than the king."t The chamber proceeded to invoke tlie king's justice against those who had endangered his throne, promising tlieir zealous concurrence in forming the new laws necessary to their punishment. The violence of the ulti-a-Royalist reaction soon produced the fall of the ministry. Fouche was summarily dismissed from his post, was banished from France, and escaped in disguise. After a time he took up his residence at Linz in Austria, and at length died in 1820, entirely forgotten, at Trieste. In September M. de Talleyrand resigned his office ; and the king, chiefly under the guidance of his new favorite, M. Decazes, a man of superior .sense^nd tact, called the Duke of Richelieu to the head of his councils. After protracted and anxious conferences, the definitive treaty between France and her conquerors was signed on the 20tli of November, 1815. Its provisions were humiliating beyond all for- mer example. An indemnity of seve?i hundred millions of francs £28,000,000 sterling) was imposed upon France for the expenses of the war, besides which an enormous sum was claimed by way of damages for the occupation of the territories of the Allies by the French armies. The fortresses of Philippeville, Sarrelouis, Marienburg, and Landau were surrendered ; and the fortifications of Iluningen wei-e to be demolished. A population of about 2,500,000 was thus severed from France. Lastly, the entire line of the French frontier was to be garrisoned, dui'ing five years, by a foreign army of 150,000 men, under the command of a general named by the Allies, their pay and maintenance being defrayed by France. Tlie five years of occupation wei-e afterward reduced to * In his proclamation from Cambray, June 28. t Lamartine, Hist, of the Restoration, vol. iii. 664 THE EESTOEATIOX. Chap. XXXI. three; at the congress of Aix-la-Chapelle in October, 1818, a con- vention was signed for the immediate and complete evacuation of France by the AlUed forces. § 11. The earlier months of the second Restoration did not pass without violent and bloody outbreaks of popular fury in the provinces, especially in the south. Upon the news of the disaster of Waterloo, the ruffianly mob of Marseilles rose against the Bo- napartists, numbers of whom were inhumanly massacred. Mar- shal Brune, who had commanded for Napoleon in that district, was attacked by the populace at a hotel in Avignon, and assas- sinated in his apartment. Fearful outrages were perpetrated against the Protestants of Nismes. These ferocious excesses of the multitude were suppressed, though with some difficulty, by the Duke of Angouleme ; and it must be admitted, to the credit of the Bourbons, that the examples of extreme vengeance on the opposite party were by no means numerous. Two victims of high distinction were, however, sacrificed — General Labedoyere and Marshal Ney. Labedoyere, an attached and zealous personal friend of Na- poleon, had been the soul of the conspiracy which placed him for the second time on the throne. It was the defection of his regi- ment at Grenoble that determined the whole army in the emper- oi-'s favor, and enabled him to march without a shadow of opposi- tion to Paris. Labedoyere was discovered by the police in Paris in disguise, and was handed over to a court-martial for trial. The facts of the case were too notorious to require to be established by evidence, and admitted of no vindication. He was unanimously sentenced to death, and paid the penalty of his treason on the plain of Grenelle on the 19th of August. Marshal Ney had escaped from Paris, with a false name and passport, immediately after the capitulation. He proceeded first toward the frontier of Switzerland, but, being apprehensive of vi- olence from the Austrians, sought refuge afterward in the interior of France, and was arrested at the chateau of Bessonis, among the mountains of the Cantal.* He was condemned to death by an immense majority of the peers : seventeen only had the courage to vote for a commutation of the capital penalty. Earnest and importunate appeals were made to the king, the Duke of Riche- lieu, and even to the Duke of Wellington, for the life of the illus- trious culprit ; but the excited passions of the Royalists prevailed against the dictates of humanity. Early in the morning of the 7th of December the hero of the Moskowa and the Beresina, the * Ney was discoA-ered by means of a Turkish sabre, of peculiar form and exquisite workmanship, which he had left accidentally on a table in the salon of the chateau. It was a present from Napoleon. A.D. 1815-1818. EXECUTION OF MURAT. 665 " bravest of the brave," was conveyed in a carriage to an appoint- ed spot in the gardens of the Luxembourg Palace, where a platoon of grenadiers awaited him. He fell dead instantaneously, pierced by thirteen bullets in the head and breast. The brilliant but rash and headstrong Murat, ex-king of Naples, met a tragical fate in the autumn of 1815, in consequence of a ridiculous attempt which he made to recover his forfeited throne. Having landed with about thirty followers on the coast of Lower Calabria, he was almost instantly arrested by a detachment of the Neapolitan troops, and handed over to a court-martial, which sen- tenced him to death. He was shot in front of the castle of Pizzo on the 14th of October, 1815. He met death with the utmost firmness and heroism, fixing his eyes steadily in his last moments on the portrait of his wife. § 12. The Chamber of Deputies meanwhile pursued its reac- tionary course with reckless ardoi", and showed symptoms of a de- sign to annul the Constitutional Charter under pretext of revising some of its articles. Their pretensions, which tended to exalt them above the law, and to absorb all the functions of govern- ment, were steadily resisted by Louis, with the support of M. Decazes; and on the 5th of September, 1816, a royal tfrdonnance suddenly appeared, dissolving the chamber, convoking the electoral colleges for the 4th of October, and announcing that the king was determined to reign in strict accordance with the provisions of the Charter. This vigorous blow effectually arrested the march of the ultra-Royalists. The result of the new elections was de- cidedly favorable to the moderate and Constitutional party for which the king and his advisers had wisely declaimed themselves. A new law on the important subject of elections Avas passed (1817), by which the elective power was placed chiefly in tlie hands of the small proprietors and the bourgeoisie, most of whom were of moderate views in politics. A new cabinet Avas formed in December, 1818; Decazes was in reality its chief, though he took the secondary post of minister of the interior ; General Dessolles became president of the coun- cil. M. Decazes now found a powerful support in the new-born party of the Doctrinaires, which comprised many men of transcend- ent talent and enlarged conceptions, such as Koyer-Collard, Mole, Pasquier, De Barante, Guizot, Villemain, and Mounier. Several of these were influential writers in the public press. On the other hand, the party called Independents now began to rise into notice in the Legislature, and formed the nucleus of an opposition which eventually overthrew the Bourbon throne in the memor- able three days of July. § 13. The Duke of Berry, second son of the Count of Artois, 666 THE RESTORATION. Chap, XXXI. was assassinated on the night of the 13th of February, 1820, as he was conducting the duchess his wife to her carriage after a performance at the Opera. The murderer was a man named Louvel, by trade a saddler, deeply imbued with fanatical revolu- tionary opinions ; he had long meditated an act of violence against the Bourbon family, whom he abhorred as tyrants and the most cruel enemies of France. The wretch declared that he had se- lected the Duke of Berry for his victim because that prince ap- peared the most likely to carry on the royal line of succession ; his elder brother, the Duke of Angouleme, being childless. He expressed no repentance or remorse, and repeatedly afiii'med that he had no accomplices. The news of this atrocious crime thrcAV Paris into a state of general ferment and commotion ; the most extravagant rumors were circulated, among which that of a des- perate conspiracy for the destruction of the Bourbons and the overthrow of the throne became widely prevalent. The ultra- Eoyalists resolved to take advantage of the excitement of the pub- lic mind to rid themselves of the favorite minister who thwarted their ascendency. The Count of Artois declared that it would be impossible for him to remain at the Tuileries unless Decazes were renrfeved from the king's counsels ; and Louis, overcome by the impassioned entreaties of his bereaved brother, and his niece the Duchess of Angouleme, at length consented, though with ex- treme reluctance, to sacrifice his favorite. Decazes retired from office on the 20th of February, receiving at the same time mai-ks of distinguished favor, sympathy, and confidence from his royal mastei'. The reins of power were now seized by the party which saw no safety for the state except in a system of harsh repressive laws and government by arbitrary pi'erogative. The Duke of Riche- lieu, after some hesitation, became premier. He forthwith pro- posed and carried in the chambers a measui-e for suspending the liberty of the subject, by which power was given to the ministers to arrest and detain, without warrant from a court of law, any person suspected of intriguing against pui)lic safety or any mem- ber of the royal family. A new law was proposed respecting the electoral suffrage, which excited the most vehement opposition, but was at length passed amid scenes of turbulence and disorder which recalled the most stormy days of the National Convention. It enacted that the electors of each arrondissement wgyq to nomi- nate a list of candidates, from Avhicli the electors of the depart- inerit, consisting of those who were the most highly rated in taxa- tion, were to choose the members of the Legislature, The effect of this was manifestly to place a preponderant influence in the hands of the richer landed proprietors, the vast majority of whom A.D. 1820, 1821. DEATH OF NAPOLEOiSr. 667 were zealous Royalists. It became known as the "law of the double vote^' because it permitted the electors of the higher class to vote first in the colleges of the arrondissements, and afterward a second time in those which met at the chief towns of the de- partments. § 14. The young widow of the Duke of Berry (Caroline Louisa, sister of the King of the Two Sicilies) gave birth, on the 29th of September, 1820, to a prince, more than seven months after the death of his father. The infant received the names of Henry Charles Ferdinand, and the title of Duke of Bordeaux. This event, so full of good omen for the continuance of the reigning dy- nasty, was hailed with the warmest demonstrations of joy by the court, the government, and all partisans of the Bourbons through- out France. The first elections under the new law took place in November. It was very soon apparent tha^t the ultra-Koyalists had acquired a substantial and decided advantage by the system of the double vote. The departmental colleges named without exception men pledged to strict monarchical and aristocratical principles ; thoso chosen in the arrondissements were more moderate, but the gen- eral result gave an overwhelming majority to the supporters of tlie government. The Liberals could not count on more than 75 Votes in the new diamber ; and, as soon as the session com- menced, the dominant party plainly announced their purpose of carrying things henceforth with a high hand. Napoleon expired at Longwood, the house which had been built for him by the English government at St. Helena, on the 5th of May, 1821, in the fifty-second year of his age. For many months previously the ex-emperor had been visibly declining in health ; his disease was a scirrhous ulcer in the stomach, which he seems to have inherited from his father. The malady was no. doubt ag- gravated by the mental distress and despondency occasioned by his situation ; the unfa^'orable climate of the island, and the dis- use of the habits of active exercise to which he had been so long accustomed, may also, in some degree, have hastened his end. The later years of his captivity were much embittered by a series of vexatious disputes with the governor. Sir Hudson Lowe, in which, though Napoleon's behavior was often unreasonable and even in- sulting, the fault does not seem to have been always wholly on his side. His corpse was interred Avith military honors at Slane's Valley, a retired and favorite spot Avhich he himself had chosen for the purpose, in the centre of the island. The removal of one whose mighty genius had for so many years overawed the thrones and swayed the destinies of Europe produced a less profound sen- sation than might have been expected. Napoleon had been po- G68 THE EESTORATION. Chap. XXXI. litically dead from the date of his second abdication in 1815, and public affairs in Fi-ance had subsequently taken a turn quite un- connected with his interests; yet by the whole of the Liberal party the memory of the departed hero was inseparably identified with the glory and grandeur of France, and the immediate effect of his death was to unite the Bonapartists with the disaffected of all classes in a fresh league of resistance to the despotism of the Bourbons. On the other hand, the party in power, now relieved from all apprehension of the reappearance of the arch-disturber of European peace, pursued with increased vigor their reactionary and oppressive schemes. § 15. The misgovernmcnt of the restored Bourbon dynasties in Spain and Italy had been so flagrant, inveterate, and intolerable, that in the year 1820 insurrectionary troubles broke out in both kingdoms. An army assembled at Cadiz for an expedition against some rebellious colonies in America, revolted under the influence of General O'Donnell and other officers, and proclaimed the Lib- eral Constitution of the year 1812. The insurrection spread rap- idly to Madrid and throughout the kingdom ; the pressure was ir- resistible ; and Ferdinand VII., finding that he had only to choose between submission and the loss of his crown, announced on the 7th of March his acceptance of the Constitution imposed on him by the nation. He was also compelled to banish the Jesuits, to suppress the Inquisition, and to restore the liberty of the press. The example of Spain was soon followed by Portugal, and a rev- olutionary movement also took place at Naples, in consequence of wliich King Ferdinand was constrained to recognize a consti- tution framed upon the Spanish pattern. This latter outbreak was mainly the work of the secret society called the Carbonari, a powerful and well-organized band of agitators, numbering upward of 500,000 members in Italy alone, and possessing affiliated branch- es in Fi-ance^md other countries. Commotions of a similar char- acter at Turin drove the king, Victor Amadeus, from his capital, and led him to abdicate his crown. The thi'ee»-sovereigns of Russia, Austria, and Prussia, after their memorable triumph in 1815, had entered into a solemn mutual en- gagement which received the name of the " Holy Alliance." This celebrated compact ostensibly pledged the monarchs to take the precepts of Christianity for their rule of government, and to as- sist and support each other on all occasions in the spirit of broth- erly sympathy and affection, regarding themselves as delegates of heaven to govern three branches of the same great Chi'istian fam- ily. But this language had a secret meaning, which was revealed by subsequent events. There can be no doubt that the contract- ing parties considered it as binding them to, enforce submission to A.D. 1821-1823. FRENCH INTERVENTION IN SPAIN. (569 arbitrary and absolute power throughout Europe, and to suppress all movements in the cause of popular liberty. In accordance with this principle, the Holy Alliance made no scruple in inter- fering vigorously in defense of the Kings of Spain, Naples, and Sardinia, against their rebellious subjects. They announced, in a meeting at Troppau, their resolution to sanction no institution as legitimate which did not flow spontaneously from the will of the monarch ; they marched an army of 80,000 men to Naples, overthrew the constitutional government, and reinstated Ferdi- nand ; Turin was in like manner occupied by an Austrian gen- eral, who restored the absolute monarchy. § 16. The sovereigns of the Holy Alliance now met in congress at Verona, and persuaded Louis XVIII. to send an army into Spain, in order to replace the supreme authority in the hands of Ferdinand. In December, 1821, the Duke of Richelieu had re- signed office, and a new ministry was nominated at the dictation of the Count of Artois, of which M. de Villele became premier. This new ministry seconded •vvarmly the schemes of the Holy Al- liance ; and Ijouis, in his speech at the opening of the chambers, announced that 100,000 French soldiers, commanded by the Duke of Angouleme, were about to pass the Spanish frontier. The French crossed the Bidassoa on the 7th of April, 1823. The Constitutionalists of Spain offered but a feeble and desultory opposition ; and on the approach of the Duke of Angouleme to Madrid, the Cortes fled precipitately to Seville, and thence to Cadiz, carrying off with them the helpless Ferdinand, whom they constrained to sanction their proceedings Avith his name. On the 1st of June the Duke of Angouleme quitted Madrid on his march to the south, and, without encountering any hostile force, encamp- ed with his army in front of Cadiz on the IGth of August. Here the Cortes stood resolutely on their defense. But on the 31st of August the Spanish batteries were stormed and carried with trifling loss, the Duke of Angouleme greatly distinguishing him- self by his coolness and gallantry. This success decided the cam- paign, for Cadiz was no longer defensible. The victorious prince, in answer to a communication from the town, declined to treat until Ferdinand should be freed from all restraint. The Cortes had no means of resistance, and on the 1st of October Ferdinand repaired to the French camp, where he was welcomed with en- thusiasm. Thus replaced unconditionally on an absolute throne, the king cast from him all counsels of lenity and moderation ; he annulled all the acts extorted from him during his forced submis- sion to the Cortes, and proceeded to take summai*y vengeance on the authors of his humiliation. The triumph of the French arms re-established despotism and tyranny in their most odious shape througliout Spain. C70 THE EESTOKATION. Chap, XXXI. On the othei" hand, the success of the Duke of Angouleme in this Spanish campaign rendered signal service to the Bourbon monarchy in France, by associating that name once more with the martial glory of the nation. The friends of absolutism made full use of this opportune advantage. The ultra-Royalists and the party of the Jesuit ^'■congregation" were intoxicated with joy, and set no bounds to their arrogant pretensions. In the elections of the spring of 1824 the government resorted without scruple to fraud, corruption, intimidation, and discreditable manoeuvres of all kinds, in order to secure an overwhelming majority in the rep- resentative chamber. By these iniquitous means a Chamber of Deputies was returned in 1824 which contained only nineteen lib- eral members. M. de Villele now carried a law to repeal the regulation for the annual renewal of a fifth part of the chamber, and lo prolong its existence for a period of seven years, at the end of which time a dissolution and general election Avere to take place. The i*eign of Louis XVIII. was brought to a close on the 16th of September, 1824, when he expired at the Tuileries after severe and lengthened sufferings. In his last moments he earnestly rec- ommended to the Count of Artois that system of prudent modera- tion which had enabled him to preserve his throne during a season of violent party agitation and extreme difficulty. " The Charter," said the dying monarch, " is the best inheritance I can leave you." Then placing his hand on the head of the young Duke of Bor- deaux, "May Charles X.," he added, "be careful oi {menage) the throne of this child !" Louis possessed intellectal abilities above the average, and had improved his natural powers by diligent study and literary and philosophical pursuits. . In the bitter school of adversity and exile he had learned invaluable lessons of pa- tience, fortitude, and self-control; these supported him through years of misfortune, and were scarcely less useful amid the mani- fold embarrassments and dangers of the Restoration. The Con- stitutional Charter, Avhen once he had conceded it, was honestly and fii-mly adhered to by Louis ; and if he was unable to carry out the liberal policy inaugurated by the ministry of Decazes, this must be imputed to the unfortunate influence of his presump- tive heir and other relatives and friends, which, under the circum- stances, it Avas next to impossible for him to resist. Personally, he was content with a limited monarchy, and fully comprehended the principles upon which alone it was possible, in those critical times, to govern France ; but his advanced age and painful infirm- ities disabled him from giving complete effect to these convictions, and it Avas beyond his power to transmit them to those yvlxo were to foUoAV him. A.D. 1824-18-27. CORONATION OF CHARLES X. 671 § 17. Charles X. (a.d. 1824-1830). — Charles Philippe, count of Artois, who now succeeded to the throne as Charles X., was much inferior in natural understanding to his predecessor, and had paid little or no attention to the cultivation of his mind. With regard to his political views and conduct he might claim at least the merit of consistency ; from his youth upward he had maintained without variation or compromise the same lofty mo- narchical principles which had prevailed under the most absolute of his ancestors. He had steadily opposed all concessions to the authors of the Revolution ; had been the first to emigrate from France in 1789 ; and re-entered it with precisely identical ideas and prejudices at the Restoration. In his early days he had been addicted to licentious pleasure ; and having reformed in later life, had become strictly, not to say superstitiously, devout — so much .so that he was generally supposed to be slavishly subject to priestly and Jesuitical influence. This impression, which, however, seems to have been to a great extent mistaken,* rendered the new sov- ereign from the first an object of mistrust to the great mass of the people, and was one of the main causes of his subsequent misfor- tunes. In disposition Charles was frank, amiable, and warm- hearted ; and the peculiar graciousness and cordiality of his man- ner secured him the sincere attachment of those nearest to his person. Charles X. was crowned in the Cathedral of Reims on the 29th of May, 1825, the ancient ceremonial handed down from the Mid- dle Ages being punctually observed in all its details on the occa- sion. Even the Saints Ampoule, or miraculous phial containing the consecrated oil, which had been broken by order of the Repub- lican Convention, was repaired and used, to give additional effect to the solemnity. § 18. In the sessions of 1826 and 1827 the measures proposed by government were such as to excite considerable suspicion and dissatisfaction. In the latter year a proposed law of vexatious restrictions on the liberty of the press added seriously to the pre- vailing irritation against the government and the court. A gen- eral storm of clamor Avas raised by this impolitic step ; the court yielded at the eleventh hour to the threatening manifestations of public opinion, and on the 17th of April the obnoxious bill was withdrawn. A few days afterward the king experienced a some- what equivocal reception at a grand review of the national guard on the Champ de Mars ; exclamations of " Vive la Charte," and others betokening irritation, reached his ears more frequently than the usual shouts of "Vive le Roi ;" and after Charles had left the ground, the soldiers gave vent to their ill-humor in loud outcries * See Lamartine, Hisl. de la Restauration,\o\. iv., p. 2G7. 672 THE KESTORATION. Chap. XXXI. of "Down with the ministers! down with the Jesuits!" The king and the royal family, as well as the members of the cabinet, were highly incensed by this demonstration. A council was held immediately ; and partly in anger, partly in terror, it was resolved to proceed to a severe measure of coercion : on the following morn- ing (April 30), a royal ordonnance disbanded the national guard of Paris. Although astounded by this bold exercise of the prerog- ative, the capital remained tranquil ; but De Villele, whom the king had retained in office, now felt that the tide was turning strongly against him, and induced the king to pronounce the dis- solution of the Chamber of Deputies. The new elections were fixed for a very early day, so as to disconcert, if possible, the ar- rangements of the opposition camp. But this manoeuvre was in- effectual ; a hasty coalition took place between the Liberals and £f large section of the ultra-Royalists, and their united votes sent to the chamber a powerful phalanx of representatives pledged to the overthrow of the ministry. Villele saw himself defeated, and, without attempting to meet the Legislature, placed his resignation in the hands of the king. The cabinet Avas reconstructed from the ranks of the moderate Royalists, M. de Martignac taking the post of premier. § 19. It was in the course of this year (July 6, 1827) that a treaty was entered into by France, Great Britain, and Russia for the purpose of putting a stop to the hostilities between the Otto- man Porte and the unfortunate Greeks, who were then in a state of general insurrection against their Turkish oppressors. The three powers dispatched a naval squadron, under the command of Sir Edward Codrington, who destroyed the Turkish navy in the battle of Navarino (Oct. 20, 1827).* The sultan, no longer possessing a maritime force, soon ordered his general to evacuate the Morea, which, in the spring of 1828, was occupied by the French under General Maison ; and the Turkish government shortly afterward accepted the proposals of the Allies for an ac- commodation. The negotiations terminated in a treaty of peace, by which, after a painful struggle of ten yeai*s, the independence of the Greek nation was finally acknowledged and assured. The Martignac cabinet, anxious to disarm the popular indigna- tion excited by their predecessors, brought forward several' meas- ures of a liberal tendency, and professed a spirit of sincere con- formity with the provisions of the Charter. An important con- cession to public opinion was made by a royal ordonnance of the 13th of June, 1828, which suppressed the educational establish- ments directed by the Jesuits, and subjected all seminaries through- out the kingdom to the immediate control of the University of * Sec The StiuknVs Hume (Harpers' edition), v- 730. A.D. 1829, 1830. CHANGE OF MINISTRY. 673 Paris. This decree gave unqualified offense to the bisliops and the party of the " Congregation," and Charles confessed to his ministers that he signed it with extreme reluctance and regret. Charles had never given his cordial confidence to M. de Martignac; and in the following year (8th of August, 1829) he dismissed the ministry and appointed Prince Polignac the head of the new ad- ministration. Count Labourdonnaie was named minister of the interior, and Count Bourmont minister at war. The nomination of such a cabinet was looked upon as an open declaration of war against the Charter, the Constitution, and all the liberties of Frenchmen. Three more unpopular and odious names than those of Polignac, Labourdonnaie, and Bourmont could scarcely have been found in the kingdom. The first represented the vicille cour and the emigrants of the Revolution, with all their implacable rancor and obstinate bigotry; the second had been prominently concerned in the proscriptions and bloodshed of the Restoration ; the last was identified in the eyes of the nation with treacherous desertion to the enemy on the eve of a decisive campaign. Paris became intensely agitated, and the excitement spread rapidly into the provinces. The chambers were opened by a speech from the throne on the 2d of March, 1830. An address was voted in reply, in Avhicli they plainly declared that the present ministry did not enjoy the confi- dence of the country. The gauntlet was thus fairly thrown down, and a contest followed, in which the antagonist parties were not so much the chambers and the ministry as the French nation and the Bourbon monarchy. The address was carried by 221 votes against 181, the majority being obtained by a coalition between the two sections of the Left with the Doctrinaires and the " defec- tion"' party. This result was hailed by one of the daily papers as "the first manifesto of the Revolution of 1830." Charles X. had firmly determined to support his minister against the chamber; "No compromise, no surrender," was his declared motto. On the IGth of May he dissolved the chamber, and con- voked the electciMl colleges for a new election. Both parties now prepared for the decisive struggle. The 221 deputies who had voted the obnoxious address were rechosen without exception, and many additional seats were Avrested from the Royalists ; the op- position counted at least 270 voices in the new Legislature. § 20. A series of insults and injuries oflfered to the French con- suls and merchants by the Dey of Algiers had been left, in spite of vigorous remonsti'ances, without reparation, and a formidable expedition, under the command of Bourmont, minister of war, was now undertaken in order to obtain redress by force of arms. The disembarkation on the Alcerine coast was effected on the F F 674 THE RESTORATION. Chap. XXXI. 14th of June. A desperate engagement was fought on the 19th, when the French forced the intrenched camp of the enemy, inflict- ing on them terrible slaughter. On the 4th of July Bourraont made himself master of a fort which completely commanded the town and citadel of Algiers, and the dey immediately afterward capitulated. The victorious army entered the city, where the spoil of all kinds which fell into their hands Avas prodigious. The treasure accumulated by successive deys amounted to upward of 48 millions of francs. This important conquest has been perma- nently retained by France ; and Algiers forms at the present day by far the most extensive, if not the most flourishing of her colo- nial dejjendencies. § 21. But the glory of this triumph had no eifect in calming the political ferment and irritation which had overspread the king- dom. A crisis was evidently at hand. No sooner was it known that the voice of the nation had strongly ratified the vote of the late chamber, than Charles and his advisers determined to have recourse to a strained interpretation of the 14th article of the Charter, which, in somewhat vague and ambiguous terms, author- ized the sovereign to " make regulations and decrees necessary for the execution of the laws and the safety of the state." By virtue of this clause the king proceeded to assume a temporary dictatoi*- ship, and to alter and abrogate some of the most essential provis- ions of the Charter. The five celebrated oj^domiaiices were signed at St. Cloud on the 25th of July, and published in the Iloniteur on the following day. The first of these suspended the liberty of the press ; no journal or periodical publication was to appear without a previous license from the government, which Avas to be renewed every three weeks, and might be withdrawn. The sec- ond decree dissolved the newly-elected Chamber of Deputies. The third introduced organic changes into the system of election, reduced the number of representatives from 430 to 258, and pro- hibited any amendment to a law unless it had been proposed or assented to by the crown. The fourth convoked the two cham- bers for the 28th of September ensuing. The fifth contained some new nominations to the Council of State from the extreme Koyalist party. The first to revolt against this audacious violation of the Con- stitution were the journalists and proprietors and publishers of newspapei's, comprising some of the most enlightened and influ- ential classes of the capital. Headed by M. Thiers, at that time editor of the National, they held a numerous uj^eeting, and drew up a bold protest against the coiqj (Ve'tat, which received forty-four sig- natures. Symptoms of agitation appeared at the l^ourse, where the funds fell suddenly as much as 4 per cent. ; but public tran- quillity remained undisturbed. A.D. 1830. EEVOLUTION OF 1830. (375 On the morning of the 27th of July Marshal Marmont received his appointment to the supreme command of the military force in Paris and its neighborhood. It is said that the first collision be- tween the authorities and the people took place in the Eue St. Honore, opposite the corner of the Palais Royal. The gendarmes were assailed with stones ; the officer commanding a small de- tachment of the guards, having in vain attempted to disperse the crowd, lost patience, and ordered his men to fire ; they obeyed after some hesitation, when one of the rioters fell dead, and three others wounded. Such Avas the commencement of the Revolution of the "three glorious days of July." Barricades were thrown up with marvelous rapidity at the entrance of the Rue de Richelieu and of the Rue de I'Echelle ; behind these the multitude defend- ed themselves for some time against the troops, but at last the barricades were forced, and the soldiers advanced down the Rue St. Honore', sweeping away their opponents, several of whom were killed and severely wounded. The same scenes were repeated elsewhere ; the military patrolled the streets till eleven at night, and then retired to their barracks, when all appearance of tumult ceased throughout the city. Next morning, the 28th, Paris was declared in a state of siege. Meanwhile the citizens had been on the alert at an early hour ; they attacked and gained possession of the Hotel de Ville, where they immediately hoisted the tri-color flag, which soon floated also from the towers of Notre Dame ; the great bourdon of the Cathe- dral then rang out the tocsin of alarm and insurrection through- out the city. At this crisis Marmont wrote urgently to the king to represent the necessity of taking measures of pacification while there was yet time ; but the only answer he received Avas a posi- tive order to suppress the rebellion by force of arms. The mar- slial accordingly put his troops in motion in five columns — an ar- rangement which has been much censured, as they were thus too far separated to be able to support each other effectively, and were, besides, compelled to fight in narrow, crooked, and crowded streets, where the insurgent populace had a manifest advantage. A series of bloody conflicts now commenced ; the whole popula- tion of Paris Avas transfoi'med into an army ; every house became a forti'ess, from which the inhabitants successfully assailed tlie soldiers in a thousand different ways, and for the most part with- out suffering at all seriously in return. The royal troops, how- ever, prevailed, after a protracted contest of several hours, on most of the points which they attacked, particularly at the Hotel de Ville. In the afternoon, a deputation, consisting of MM. Laf- fitte, Casimir Pe'riei-, General Lobau, and others, sought an intei'- view with Marmont, and offered a suspension of arras on condi- tion tliat the ministers siiould be dismissed and the offensive or- 676 THE RESTORATION. Chap. XXXI. donnances "vvitlulrawn. The marshal wrote a second time to the king, earnestly recommending that these terms should be accept- ed; but Charles, with reckless and fatal infatuation, desired him in reply to " hold fast, to concentrate his forces on the Carrousel and the Place de la Concorde, and to act in masses." On the 29th, two regiments stationed on the Place Vendome suddenly refused to obey their officers, and fraternized with the people. Marmont, upon this, ordered off another regiment, whose fidelity he suspected, to the Champs Elysees ; and, by mistake, a battalion of the Swiss was at the same moment withdrawn from tlie Louvi'e, which was thus exposed without sufficient defense to the furious assaults of the mob. The remaining Swiss battalion, seized with panic, abandoned the court of the Carrousel, and rush- ed in terror and confusion through the arched gateway of the Tu- ileries into the garden. Instantly the triumphant insurgents pour- ed by thousands into the Louvre, and in a few minutes were in undisputed possession of this commanding post. Marmont, find- ing his troops discouraged and disorganized, now ordered a retreat into the Champs Elyse'es ; and shortly afterward, in consequence of a message from St. Cloud, evacuated Paris with his whole force. The populace, like an overwhelming torrent, then burst into the Tuileries, and on discovering that all opposition had ceased, and that the metropolis was completely in their powei", celebrated their victory with prolonged and frantic acclamations. Wild excesses Avere committed in the intoxication of the moment ; the palace M'as sacked ; the magnificent furniture broken to pieces, hurled from the windows, and cast into the Seine. The conquerors, how- ever, almost universally abstained from theft; one or two instances of it Avhich occurred were promptly and severely punished. § 22. Marmont himself was the first to announce the catastro- phe to the unfortunate king at St. Cloud. Charles was now to experience the fatality Avhich so constantly attends the counsels of minds at once weak and obstinate. He consented to yield the points which, conceded only twenty-four hours earlier, might per- haps have saved his throne. He dismissed the ministers, and named the Duke of Mortemart president of the council ; he re- voked the ordonnances, though Avith great hesitation and reluc- tance ; he re-established the national guard ; he convoked the two chambers for the 3d of August. But these measures came too late. Paris had already made its decision, and the elder branch of the l^oui'bons was for the second time dethroned. A meeting had been held at the house of the great banker Laffitte, when a new municipal council was appointed. Their first act Avas to place General Lafayette at the head of the national guard — an appointment every Avhere Avelcomed with enthusiasm ; the Avhite flag Avas then hastily removed, and tlie tri-color cockade A.D. 1830. LOUIS PHILIPPE MADE KING OF FRANCE. G77 and ensign restored in all quarters of the city. A proclamation drawn up by MM. Thiers and Migiiet was published throughout Paris, recommending in energetic terms the transfer of the crown to the Duke of Orleans. Upon an invitation addressed to him by the peers and deputies, the duke repaired to Paris on the night of the 30th, and the next morning signified his acceptance of the ollice of lieutenant general of the kingdom. He was im- mediately proclaimed by the chambers. On assuming his func- tions, he announced that "the Charter should be thenceforth a realityr Charles quitted St. Cloud for Versailles and the Trianon, and arrived on the night of the 31st at the chateau of Rambouillet. The army, however, now began to desert him by whole regiments ; and on the news of the decisive events at Paris, the king took the resolution of abdicating the throne in favor of his grandson, the Duke of Bordeaux. The dauphin, formerly Duke of Angouleme, in like manner resigned his rights to his nephew. The act of ab- dication was signed on the 2d of August. Charles X. now set out for Normandy under the protection of his guards, commanded by Marmont, and on the 16th of August embarked at Cherbourg for the shores of England, with the dauphin and dauphiness, the Duchess of Berry, the Duke of Bordeaux, and a very numerous suite of attendants. The squadron anchored at Spithead on the 17th. The royal fugitives took up their residence for a short time at Lulworth Castle, in Dorsetshire, the seat of the ancient Roman Catholic family of Weld, but eventually removed to Holy- rood Castle at Edinburgh, which was placed at their disposal by the British government. Before he finally quitted the soil of France, Charles received the news of the elevation of his kinsman, the Duke of Orleans, to the throne which he had so lately renounced. The duke, in his quality of- lieutenant general of the kingdom, opened the session of the chambers on the 3d of August. The first business upon which they entered was a careful revision of the Charter, which was altered in several important particulars. The system of elec- tion was greatly improved, the liberty of the press assured, the fa- mous 14th Article expunged, and the most ample guarantees pro- vided for popular liberty and constitutional government. The crown was now offered by the Legislature to Louis Philippe, duke of Orleans, to descend to his heirs by perpetual succession in the male line, with the title oi King of the French. In a royal sitting on the 9th of August the new monarch declared his acceptance of the Charter as now amended, and took a solemn oath to ob- serve it f\nthfully. He thereupon ascended the throne, and the ensigns of royalty were presented to him by Marshals Macdonald, Oudinot, ]\Iortior, and otlier great officers. f578 THE RESTORATION. CiiAr. XXXI. § 23. Thus did France repudiate forever the venerable but anti- quated principle of the "Divine right of Kings." The throne of Louis Philippe was founded avowedly upon the contrary theory — that sovereignty resides primarily in the inople, and may conse- quently be granted or withdrawn at their pleasure ; that the sov- ereign is in fact only the delegate and nominee of the nation. The experiment of a reconciliation and fusion between the France of the ancient legitimate dynasty and that which was the oiFspring of the Kevolution had been fairly tried, and had ended, as many sagacious thinkers had foretold, in utter and calamitous failure. Indeed, it is only wonderful, considering the state of things which preceded it, that the Eestoration lasted for so long a period as fifteen years. From the very moment of their return the Bour- bons occupied a false position ; whatever line of policy they might adopt, they could not avoid offending either what may be called their own party or the new generation which had grown up with the Revolution and the Empire. If they attempted to act con- sistently with the traditions of their family and the principles of the old monarchy, they were instantly denounced as enemies to public liberty, and traitors to the Charter and the Constitution, in virtue of which alone their reign was tolerated. If, on the other hand, they showed themselves disposed to accept frankly the new social system wliich had b.en organized during their exile, and to acknowledge candidly the benetits it had secured to the great mass of the nation, the ultra-Royalists straightway broke forth into indignant protests and reproaches, and prophesied the speedy advent of a catastrophe in which the Church and the throne, law, oi'der, and society, would all, for the second time, perish to- gether. To reduce to union two such discordant and contradict- ory elements was manifestly beyond the power of Louis XVIII. and Charles X., or, indeed, of any mortal man. Decazes and Vil- lele, Richelieu and Chateaubriand, Martignac and Polignac" — the statesmen of the old regime, and the most sincere and ardent Con- stitutionalists — all failed alike to solve this hopeless problem. At length a violent and outrageous stretch of the prerogative threw a fatal advantage into the hands of one of the contending parties ; it was seized with avidity, and employed with resolution ; and the " days of July" were the result. The Bourbons having thus ir- retrievably ruined themselves in public opinion, a return to legiti- mate government in France is rendered in the highest degree im- probable, if not impracticable. Whatever may be the particular form of administration preferred from time to time, a succession of revolutions seems to be the inevitable legacy bequeathed by the eighteenth century to the most enlightened and highly-gifted peo- ple in the world. GENEALOGY OF THE BOUEBON-ORLEANS FAMILY. 679 < M OJ to ^. 2 % 1-1 ^ rs ;h m ^< 5 O •a -a s o (3 ft 2"^ S'-^^a •s S O •R°s n o to2=g- ■^ (P rS dS'^ a 5 11 5;o B to 0.2 S rM ^ 0) C3 0C r-l ^ <^ 2 60-= ^ ?:■ £; * CO c3 "O 'S 1^ "S to'' ^ £, 2 to-^; S o .2 CO 's g^ § 2 Sp=i5 . . — . O o) 52 ";= v. ^' >-. c X .^ ' .-•CIO ;z; p CO tJ 1-1 w^ - i is s S rag;- _c cc 2 i o3 rH s- 9 ^ -5 II 1 II o s ^ .s a. a *^ ?f "w ^^ fd ■^ :i SS ,C 00 fa OJCO 9 T— < o -^ tH .ss O h 1" ;5 II "o ^ c? c T-* X u ;j >c ?^' s ^oi -O - "e GJ O ".S ffl to Interior of the ChiniilAi i 1 l)iimlii- CHAPTER XXXII. REIGN OF LOUIS PHILIPPE. A.D. 1830-1848. § 1. Early Life of Louis Philippe. § 2. Principles of the Orleans Mon- archy; Revolution in the Netherlands. § 3. Trial of the ex-Ministers of Charles X. ; Tumults in Paris and the Provinces; Attempt of the Duch- ess of Berry in Brittany. § 4. The Secret Societies ; Infernal Machine of Fieschi ; the "Laws of September." §5. Parliamentary Conflicts; frequent Ministerial Changes; M. Casimir Pe'rier ; M.Thiers; M. Guizot. § G. Repulse of the French at Constantino; Attempt of Louis Napoleon at Strasburp. § 7. Four Parties in tlie Chamber; Coalition of MM. Thiers and Guizot ; second Administration of M. Thiers. § 8. Affairs of the East ; Mehemet Ali ; the Quadruple Treaty ; Campaign in Syria ; Submission of Mehemet Ali. § 9. General Indignation in France ; war- like Preparations; Fortification of Paris ; Ministry of M. Guizot; Re- moval of the Remains of Napoleon from St. Helena to Paris. § 10. Mis- understanding in the Affair of Mr. Pritchard ; the Spanish Marriages. §11. Death of the Duke of Orleans ; Regency Bill ; Affairs in Algeria ; Abd-el-Kader ; Battle of Isly ; Surrender and Imprisonment of Abd-cl- Kader. § 12. The Session of 1847; Socialist Agitatioii; the Reform Banquets ; Insurrection of February, 1848 ; Disaffection of the National Guard. § 13. Attack on the Hotel of Foreign Affairs; Victory of the Insurgents; Abdication of Louis Philippe ; Sack of the Tuileries. § 14. Scene in the Chamber of Deputies ; Rejection of the Regency ; Procla- mation of the Republic ; Escape of the Royal Family to England. § 1. Louis Philippe, whom his principles and character, ratli- er than his royal lineage, had thus raised to the throne, Avas the eldest son of Philip, duke of Orleans, the notorious "Egalite" of the Revolution, and of Louisa, a daughter of the Duke of Pen- A. D. 1773-1830. EAKLY LIFE OF LOUIS PHILIPPE. 681 thisvre. He was born at the Palais Royal on the Gth of October, 1773, and received the title of Duke of Valois. The branch of the Bourbon family to which he belonged was descended in a di- rect line from Philip, duke of Orleans, the second son of Louis XIII. and Anne of Austria. His early education, together with that of his brothers the Duke of Montpensier and the Count of Beaujolais, was directed by the celebrated Countess of Genlis. On the outbreak of the llevolutionary war, the young prince, then Duke of Chartres, took the field at the head of his regiment of dragoons, and fought with distinction by the side of Kellermann and Dumouriez at Valmy and Jemmapes. He accompanied the latter general when he took refuge in the camp of the Imperialists in April, 1793. After the death of his father, the Duke of Orleans, refusing to bear arms against France, joined his sister and Madame de Genlis in Swit- zerland, where they lived for some time in obscurity under an as- sumed name. In 1795 he traveled into the north of Germany, Sweden, and Norway, and in the following year sailed from Ham- burg for the United States of America. Here he was joined by his two brothers ; and after a sojourn of some years in the States, during which they were often in considerable distress for money, the three princes repaired to Englarj^ in P^ebruary, 1800. The Duke of Orleans now sought and obtained a reconciliation with the heads of his family, Louis XVIII. and the Count of Artois. Subsequently he became a guest at the court of F&rdinand IV., the dispossessed King of Naples, at Palermo ; and here was cele- brated, in November, 1809, his union with the Princess Marie Amelie, daughter of that monarch, by whom he had a numerous family. Upon the restoration of Louis XVIII. in 1814, the Duke of Orleans returned to France like the other princes of his house, and was received with favor and apparent cordiality by the king, who intrusted him with the chief militaiy command of the north- ern departments. But there can be no doubt that in secret Louis regarded his kinsman with jealousy, if not Avith actual dislike ; for, independently of ancient family reminiscences, the duke made himself generally known as a friend of constitutional liberty, and acquired in consequence a degree of influence and popularity Avhich gave umbrage to the court. He remained in England during the Hundred Days. Upon the second Restoration he re-entered France, and took his seat in the chamber of peers; but having fallen under suspicion of disaffection, he once more retired to En- gland, and did not reappear in France till 1817. During the re- mainder of the reign of Louis he took no part in public affairs, and lived in tranquillity at his favoi'ite villa of Nenilly; main- tainintr, however, his intimacy with the leaders of the liberal par- F i.^ 2 682 LOUIS PHILIPPE. CiiAP. XXXII. ty, and lamenting the errors of the ultra-Royalists and the parti pretre, who seemed bent on exasperating the people to a second revolution. The Duke of Orleans has been accused, but apparently without just reason, of conspiring against the throne of Charles X. That he liad been for many years previously the avowed hope and ral- lying-point of those who longed to establish in France a limited monarchy and really free popular institutions, is undeniable ; but there is nothing to prove that he was induced by the temptations of this position to take any step inconsistent, with the duty of a loyal subject. He was unquestionably actuated by ambition in eventually accepting the throne ; but, if usurpation be ever defens- ible, his was certainly not without plausible and strong excuse. He was called to the crown by the spontaneous voice of the rep- resentatives of the nation at a moment when the rash folly of an incapable tyrant had imperiled all the best interests of France. Had he failed to respond to the invitation, anarchy and all the miseries of civil war would have been almost inevitably the result. It is no more than justice, therefore, to give credit to Louis Phil- ippe for a patriotic anxiety to be of service to his country at this dangerous crisis. His qualifications for the undertaking were pre-eminent, and were recognized by all parties. § 2. The two leading principles of the Orleans monarchy were peace with foreign powers and constitutional government at home. Louis Philippe had no inclination for war ; he knew that France had need of repose ; and his object was to strengthen his throne by a cordial alliance with all constitutional and free governments, especially with that of England, for which he entertained a sincere and special admiration. The absolutist states, such as Austria and Russia, could not be expected to regard with satisfaction the events which had raised him to the throne ; but he purposed to gain their confidence by studiously avoiding all interference in external politics, except in cases where the interests of France were directly involved. With regard to interior administration, an honest adherence to the Charter, two legislative chambers, freedom of popular election, and a press substantially independent, though not left altogether without control, formed the main fea- tures of the new system. The king desired, in fact, to assimilate, so far as might be practicable and expedient, the constitution of France to that of England. The Revolution of 1830, like all great national movements which have occurred in France, produced a wide-spread sensation throughout Europe. Belgium, which, ever since its union with Holland in 1815, had manifested a constantly inci'easing antipa- thy to the Dutch government, upon the first news of the explosion A.D. 1830-1832. REVOLUTION IN THE NETHERLANDS. G83 at Paris prepared for a general insurrection. It broke out vio- lently at Brussels on the 25tli of August, and spread with the ra- pidity of lightning to Liege, Louvain, Namur, and other principal towns. Prince Frederick, who had been placed at the head of an armed force to maintain tranquillity at Brussels, was attacked by the populace on the 23d of September, and after a sanguinary struggle was compelled to evacuate the city and retire to Antwerp. A provisional government was then formed, wliich proclaimed the dethronement of King William, and determined that Belgium should henceforth constitute an independent state, in perpetual separation from Holland. An appeal was now made, both by the King of the Netherlands and the Belgian Congress, to the five great powers of Europe, and they proceeded to interpose jointly for the adjustment of the questions in dispute. By a protocol of the 20th of December the independence of Belgium was recog- nized, and the crown was bestowed upon Prince Leopold of Saxe- Coburg, the widowed husband of the Princess Charlotte of En- gland. The prince was proclaimed at Brussels in June, 1831 ; and in the course of the following year the political combinations connected with the establishment of the Belgic throne were com- pleted by the marriage of King Leopold with the Princess Louisa, eldest daughter of Louis Philippe. But as the King of Holland continued to resist the dismemberment of his dominions, and re- fused to evacuate Antwerp and the forts on the Scheldt, the French and English governments entered into a farther treaty, in conse- quence of which a French array of 50,000 men, under Marshal Gerard, was sent to Belgium, and besieged the citadel of Antwerp in November, 1832. The place was gallantly defended by Gen- eral Chasse with a garrison of 4000 men ; but resistance was hopeless against a force so infinitely superior ; and on the 23d of December, before the final assault of the great breach, the Dutch commandant signed a capitulation. After this decisive success, which gave Belgium the free navigation of the Scheldt, the King of Holland withdrew his troops, and the French army immediately afterward quitted the country. § 3. The internal condition of France during the first years of Louis PhiUppe's reign was one of much difficulty and disquietude. Serious disturbances were of frequent occm-rence, both in the cap- ital and in the provinces ; the state of society was so unsettled and excitable, that the smallest spark sufficed to kindle a fresh explosion. The first outbreak at Paris took place on the occasion of the public trial of the four ex-ministers of Charles X. — Prince Polignac, and MM. de Peyronnet, de Chantelauze, and de Guer- uon-Ranville. 'I'hey were arraigned before the Chamber of Peers in December, 1830, and were condemned to imprisonment for life. G84 LOUIS PHILIPPE. Chap. XXXn. with the loss of their titles, rank, orders, and civil rights ; but, be- cause the sentence fell short of the capital penalty, the populace became savagely exasperated, and the gravest apprehensions were entertained. During the following winter an insurrection broke out among the manufacturing population of Lyons ; for three days there was desperate fighting in the sti-eets ; and it was found necessary to direct a considerable body of troops upon the city, commanded by the Duke of Orleans and Marshal Soult. The agitation now be- came general throughout the kingdom ; and an attempt was made simultaneously by the Legitimists to excite a civil war in La Vendee, imder the auspices of the adventurous and eccentric Duchess of Berry. Upon this, several of the western depart- ments were declared in a state of siege ; fierce and bloody con- flicts ensued at different points between the insurgents and the royal troops ; but ere long the duchess found that the enterprise was hopeless, and took refuge at Nantes, in the house of a fjimily devotedly attached to her cause. Here she remained for some months in close concealment ; but the secret of her retreat was revealed to the government by a treacherous confidant, and on the Gth of November, 1832, the unfortunate princess was arrested, after a confinement of several hours in a narrow recess in a chim- ney, where the heat became at length insupportable. The duchess was imprisoned at first in the citadel of Blaye on the Gii'onde, Avhere in May, 1833, she unexpectedly gave birth to a daughter; and this event led to a confession that she had contracted a secret marriage with an Italian nobleman, the Count of Lucchesi-Palli. She was forthwith permitted to retire to Palermo ; and after this occurrence the Legitimist cause became so much discredited in the eyes of the public, that it ceased to be a ground of anxiety to the reigning dynasty. In June, 1832, the funeral of General Lamarque, an officer well known for his liberal or rather democratical opinions, was the oc- casion of a Eepublican demonstration at Paris, which led to a col- lision between the people and the military. In April, 1834, Ly- ons became the theatre of a second insurrection among the oper- ative classes, which was put down by Marshal Soult, though not without a deplorable sacrifice of life. § 4. These attempts of the Kepublican party were instigated by vai'ions secret political associations which sprung up at this un- settled period. Their most active members Avere individuals who have become notorious in subsequent commotions which have dis- tracted France, such as Marrast, Flocon, Raspail, Blanqui, Caus- sidiere, Carrel, and Jules Favre. After the revolt at Lyons in 183-1-, which Avas followed bv renewed distiu'bances at Paris, a A.D. 1835, 1836. INFERNAL MACHINE OF FIESCIII. 685 general trial was held in May, 1835, before tlie Chamber of Peers, of all prisoners implicated in the late seditious movements. They were sentenced to transportation or to ditierent periods of imprisonment. This result was a decisive blow to the secret so- cieties ; but a few incorrigible agitators, such as "Barbes and Blanqui, still continued to weave obscure plots against the mon- archy and public order. This year (1835) witnessed the first of a series of desperate at- tempts to assassinate Louis Philippe, which were continued at in- tervals during the remainder of his reign. On the 28th of Julv the king was proceeding to hold a grand review in honor of tlie fifth anniversary of the " three glorious days." As the royal cortege passed along the Boulevard du Temple a terrific explosion took place, and a shower of musket-balls, fired from a window on the upper story of one of the houses, scattered death, mutilation, and panic on all sides. The king escaped uninjured; the Duke of Orleans received a slight contusion ; but Marshal Morticr (Duke of Treviso), General Lachasse, and twelve other persons Avere killed on the spot, while forty were more or less seriously wounded. The assassin was a miscreant named Fieschi, a native of Corsica ; he had constructed an " infernal machine," consisting of twenty-four musket-barrels fixed hori^ntally on a wooden frame, and communicating with a train of gunpowder, so that the whole could be discharged at once. Fieschi was arrested by the police in the act of making his escape, and was guillotined on the 19th of February, 1836. The general alarm caused by the late insurrectionary move- ments and fiagi'ant outrages against public order induced the gov- ernment to propose to the chambex's certain rigorous measures (memorable as the '^ laws of Septembe?-'') with regard to offenses of the pi'css and the proceedings in courts of justice. These laws were adopted by large majorities in both houses, and Avere re- garded with decided favor by the public. But it was not possi- ble by any legislative acts to impart permanent strength and so- lidity to the throne of Louis Philippe ; for not only did it labor under the radical defect of a revolutionary origin, but it was gradually weakened and sapped by the dissensions and jealous rivalry of the very parties to Avhom it owed its existence. This will be better understood by a brief review of the political con- fiicts and vicissitudes of parliamentary government which dis- tinguished the period between the Kevolution of 1830 and that of 1848. § 5. Three great parties with widely differing views and inter- ests, arose in France out of the events of July, 1830: the Legiti- mists, or adherents of tl;c older brancli of the Bourbons, who re- 686 LOUIS PHILIPPE. . Chap. XXXn. garded the Duke of Bordeaux (Henry V.) as their lawful sover- eign ; the Oiieanists, or friends of the existing government ; and the Democrats or Eepublicans. Louis Philippe, of course, selected his ministers from the second of these parties ; and for many years tliey commS,nded a large and decisive majority in both chambers of the Legislature. But it was not long before symptoms of mis- understanding and division appeared in the camp of the Orleanists themselves. The one section, considering that all necessary re- forms in the Constitution had already been secured by the Revo- lution of July, took a sti'ongly conservative line, and steadily op- posed all farther concessions to popular clamor ; the other desired that the liberties and power of the people should be extended to the very extreme limit compatible with the form of a monai'chical government, their fevorite maxim being thus expressed : " Le roi regne, et ne gouverne pas." During the earlier and more stormy period of Louis Philippe's reign the prime ministers were taken from the ranks of the Conservatives. Casimir Pe'rier, perhaps the ablest statesman of the party, assumed the reins of power on the 13th of March, 1831, but unhappily he fell a victim to the rav- ages of the cholera, which carried him off on the 16th of May, 1832. In the ministry which followed, under the premiership of Marshal Soult, M. Thiers obtained for the first time a share in the direction of affairs, being appointed minister of the interior. This celebrated politician (already mentioned in our pages as the editor of the National, and one of the chief promoters of the resistance to Charles X.) was destined to exercise a powei'ful influence on the fortunes of the Orleans dynasty and of Finance. It is difficult to explain the singular fluctuations and inconsistencies of his career upon any other principle than that of selfish and unscrupulous de- votion to the dictates of his own personal ambition. Originally the apostle of extreme liberal opinions, his views seem to have un- dergone a sudden change as soon as the dooi-s of the cabinet were opened to him. He was the chief author of the restrictive "laws of September," which might almost have figured among the meas- ures of the absolute monarchy. On the other hand, when again in opposition, M. Thiers veered round to a directly contrary sys- tem. He vigorously contested the prerogatives of the crown ; became the eloquent advocate of pai'liamentary reform ; and sup- ported, if he did not originate, the famous political banquets which resulted in the fall of Louis Philippe. It was during the admin- istration of Marshal Soult, of which both M. Thiers and M. Guizot were members, that the Avell-known rivalry commenced between these two distinguished men, so essentially opposed in principles and general character. In January, 1836, the cabinet, of which the Duke of Broglie was at that time the head, was defeated in A.D. 1836. CONSPIRACY OF LOUIS NAPOLEON. 687 the Chamber of Deputies on the question of the budget ; and on the 22d of February following, M. Thiers was gazetted as presi- dent of the council of ministers and secretary for foreign affairs. But the new premier soon found himself in a situation of great embarrassment, owing to his pertinacious anxiety to interfere in the affairs of Spain, at that time distracted by the outbreak of a sanguinary civil war. Louis Philippe was strongly opposed to the policy of intervention ; the minister positively refused to surren- der his own opinion, and the consequence was the dissolution of the cabinet after an existence of little more than six months. Count Mole now succeeded to the post of president of the council, M. Guiz- ot being associated Avith him as minister of public instruction. § 6. Two unexpected and untoward events which occurred in 1836 involved the government in considerable difficulties : these were the failure of the expedition to Constantine in Algeria, and the singular conspiracy headed by Prince Louis Napoleon Bona- parte at Strasburg. Marshal Clausel advanced from Bona against Constantine on the 13th of November, 1836, with a force of about 10,000 men. The town of Constantine, perched on the summit of a lofty rock, and protected by strong fortifications, was valiantly defended by the Ai'abs under Achmet Bey ; and two simultaneous assaults given by the French on opposite sides of the fortress were re- pulsed with severe loss on the night of the 23d of November. The assailants were at length compelled to retreat, an operation Avhich exposed them to fresh disasters ; and, in a word, the expe- dition was a total failure. This reverse excited general mortifica- tion and indignation in France.* Prince Louis Napoleon (the present Emperor of the French), who had resided for some time at Areneberg in Switzerland, had become acquainted with various French officers belonging to the garrison of Strasburg ; one of these. Colonel Vaudrey, command- ing the 4tli regiment of artillery, ottered to join the prince in an attempt to gain possession of the city, and afterward to march with all the troops they could collect upon Paris. On the morn- ing of the 30th of October, 1836, Louis Napoleon, in the uniform of an artillery officer, suddenly appeared on the great square of Strasburg, accompanied by the chiefs of the conspiracy, among whom was his intimate friend and confidant, M. Persigny. An exciting proclamation was read, to which the troops replied by shouts of "Vive I'Empereur!" But the 4Gth regiment of infan- try, maintained in their duty by the courage and firmness of Colo- * A second expedition to Constantine, nndcr General Dami'emont and the Duke of Nemours, in the .lutnmn of 1837, was crowned with complete suc- cess, and contributed greatly to consolidate the French conquest of Algeria. G88 LOUIS PHILIPPE. Chap. XXXII. nel Talanciier, refused to join the movement. Louis Napoleon and his companions were arrested on the spot, M. Persigny alone contriving to make his escape. The ex-queen Hortense, mother of the young prince, anxiously sought an interview Avith Louis Phiblppe, and implored his clemency in favor of her son ; but there was no intention to proceed harshly against him. He was con- veyed to Paris, and thence to Lorient, where, on the 15th of No- vember, he embarked on board the " Andromeda" frigate, and sailed for New York. § 7. There were now four principal parties in the Chamber of Deputies : the cute droit, of which the most conspicuous member was the great barrister M. Berryer ; the cute gauche, led by M. Odillon-Barrot ; the centre gauche, under the direction of M. Thiers ; and, lastly, the centre droit, under that of M. Guizot. Count Mole having dissolved the Chamber of Deputies in 1838, a general election followed ; and although in the new chamber the minister still possessed a majority, it was by no means strong- ly constituted, and rested upon no distinct and elevated pi-inciples of policy. The dislocated state of parties was now dexterously seized by M. Thiers as an opportunity of preparing the Avay for his own return to power. He intrigued to bring about a recon- ciliation and coalition between his own party (the centre gauche) and that of the doctrinaires under M. Guizot, who had quitted office in the previous year, and in the course of the autumn of 1838 this celebrated combination was finally arranged. The junction of these various elements of opposition destroyed the ministerial majority in the session of 1839. But difficulties im- mediately arose among the leaders of the new confederacy as to the distribution of offices in the cabinet which they were called upon to form. M. Thiers behaved with his usual vexatious ob- stinacy and arrogance ; M. Guizot, too, was peremptory and ex- acting ; and the interregnum was so long protracted, that a sud- den insurrection broke out in the capital on the 12th of May, headed by Barbes, Bernard, and other violent demagogues. This quickly put an end to the suspense. On the very day that the disturbance took place (May 12, 1839), the name of Marshal Soult Avas published as president of the council and minister of foreign affiiirs ; the other members of the cabinet were chosen from the centre droit and the centre gauche; but the three chiefs of the victorious coalition (Guizot, Thiers, and Odillon-Barrot) were all alike excluded from the administration. It soon appear- ed, however, that this arrangement Avas not likely to be of long duration. The supporters of the government were Avavering and lukewarm in their allegiance, the factions Avere vehemently ex- cited, and the Chamber Avas intractable. On the question of a A.D. 1839, 18^0. REBELLION OF MEHEMET ALL 689 proposed settlement to be made on the Duke of Nemours on his marriage, the ministers sustained a defeat (February 20, 1840), and immediately afterward placed their resignations in the hands of the khig. The triumph of the Coalition was thus complete, and on the 1st of March M. Thiers obtained for the second time the coveted object of his ambition, the first place in the direction of affairs. M. Guizot accepted the post of embassador to the court of St. James's, where he immediately became involved in a series of difficult negotiations connected with the critical and threatening state of affairs in the East. This embarrassing point of external policy became fatal to the second administration of M. Thiers. § 8. The rebellion of Meheraet Ali, the ambitious and turbulent viceroy of Egypt, against his nominal sovereign the Turkish sultan, had for some years past seriously menaced the integrity of the Ot- toman empire. The French government vv^as well known to enter- tain strong sympathy with the Egyptian viceroy ; the latter senti- ment having arisen in great measure from the spirit of rivalry with England, to which power Mehemet Ali was specially obnoxious. In 1839 hostilities broke out afresh in Syria. The Turkish forces were defeated, and the whole of Syria became subject to the Vice- roy of Egypt. France now demanded that the jjossession both of Egypt and Syria should be guaranteed to the pacha, while England insisted on the complete restitution of Syria to the Porte. Upon this point agreement seemed impossible ; and the result was that, without communicating their intention to France, the other four powers signed a ti'eaty with Turkey on the 15th of July, 1840, for the purpose of compelling Mehemet Ali to withdraw his forces from Syria, and to acquiesce in the other terms of the proposed accommodation. This treaty was carried into effect without de-. lay. A combined fleet, under the British, Austrian, and Turkish flags, proceeded to the Levant, bombarded and captui'ed Beyrout and other Syrian fortresses, and in one brief campaign cleared Syria of the Egyptian troops. Mehemet Ali eventually accepted a set- tlement which left him in independent hereditary possession of Egypt, while the whole of Syria was restored to the dominion of the sultan. § 9. The Quadruple Treaty came like a thunderclap upon the French government. Indignant outcries Avere raised against the treachery and insolence of England, and for some time a rupture of the alliance between the two countries was considered immi- nent. The prospect of a European war led to one of the most important events of the reign of Louis Philippe, the fortification of Paris. The works were to comprehend a complete encientc of the city on both banks of the Seine, together with a line of de- GOO LOUIS PHILIPPE. Chap. XXXIL tached casemated forts ; the expense, as voted by the chambers, was 150,000,000 of francs, or £6,000,000 sterling. Meanwhile the public became more and more clamorous for war, and mur- murs and menaces arose on all sides against the government which could tamely endure the humiliation inflicted upon France by her recent exclusion from the councils of the Eui'opean powers. In the midst of this excitement, another desperate attempt was made upon the life of Louis Philippe by a wretch named Darmes ; his weapon was a rifle, which, being overcharged, burst in his hands, and the king fortunately escaped unhurt. This occurrence is said to have been fatal to the ministry of M. Thiers. He had latterly become so unpopular, and the state of affairs, both foreign and do- mestic, was so embarrassed and discouraging, that the king de- termined on changing his advisers; and on the 29th of October, 1840, a new cabinet was installed in office, under the nominal presidency of Marshal Soult, but directed in reality by M. Guizot, who was named minister for foreign atfars. Vehement personal disputes ensued during the next legislative session between MM. Guizot and Thiers, whose position as antagonist party leaders had now reached its climax ; but the new ministry proved strong, and was supported by triumphant majorities in both houses. The peace of Europe was happily maintained intact, and the violent effervescence of warlike feeling subsided in France. By way of an act of reconciliation and amnesty between the governments of France and England, it was now arranged that the remains of the great Napoleon should be removed from the island of St. Helena to a final resting-place in France, according to the desire expi'essed by the late emperor himself in his last tes- tament. The Pi-ince de Joinville arrived at James Town early in October, 1840, in the " Belle Foule" frigate. The cei'emony of the exhumation took place on the 15th, in the presence of Gener- als Bertrand and Montholon and the Count Las Cases, who had witnessed the interment in 1821; and the well-remembered fea- tures of the hero, exposed to view after an interval of nineteen years, were found altogether unchanged by the hand of time and decay. The precious deposit was conveyed to the French frigate under a discharge of minute guns ; the squadron sailed immedi- ately, and reached Cherbourg on the 8th of December. The cof- fin was then transferred to a smaller vessel, which followed the course of the Seine to Paris. On the 15th of December the corpse was received at the church of the Invalides by the king in person, surrounded by his sons, the civil and military authorities, and a countless multitude of the population, all animated by one enthu- siastic impulse of admiration and attachment. The scene is stated by eye-witnesses to have been one of indescribable solemnity, and never to be forgotten. A.D. 1842-184G. THE SPANISH MARRIAGES. 691 § 10. Notwithstanding this event, and the hopes expressed on the occasion that France and England had " buried their ancient animosty in the tomb of Napoleon," a temporary interruption of the entente corcliale took place at two subsequent periods in the reign of Louis Philippe, in 1843 and 1846. The first of these misun- derstandings was connected with the occupation of the Society Islands by the French — a proceeding which the British govern- ment viewed with dissatisfaction, though it had not thought proper to oppose it. The arrest of Mr. Pritchard, the British consul at Tahiti, by the French Captain D'Aubigny, called forth from the British cabinet a demand of prompt and ample satisfaction. Much irritation and violence of feeling was displayed on both sides of the Channel ; but the cabinet of the Tuileries, determined to ob- viate every pretext for hostile measures on the part of England, expressed its willingness to gi-ant the required redress. This marked moderation disarmed the rising indignation of Great Brit- ain, and all apprehension of war was at once removed. But, on the other hand, it greatly injured the popularity and strength of M. Guizot's administration. The mari'iage of the Queen of Spain, in the year 1846, produced a still farther estrangement between the French and English courts. The British government wished Queen Isabella to marry Prince Leopold of Saxe-Cobui'g, and offered the strongest opposition to Louis Philippe's proposal of a matrimonial connection between the Bourbons of France and Spain. But the policy of Louis Phil- ippe was in the end crowned with success. On the 10th of Oc- tober, 1846, the Queen of Spain married Don Francisco d'Assisi, duke of Cadiz, the eldest son of her uncle ; and on the same day the Infanta Luisa was united to the Duke of Montpensier, the fifth and youngest son of the King of the French. This result was a severe mortification to the cabinet of St. James's ; and in one particular, at least, the British government had a valid ground of complaint against Louis Philippe, for M. Guizot had given a distinct promise to Lord Aberdeen that the nuptials of the Duke of Montpensier should not take place until the Queen of Spain had become the mother of a direct heir to the throne. The peace of Europe remained undisturbed ; but feelings of coldness and suspicion took the place of cordiality in the relations between France and England, which lasted till the downfall of the Orleans monarchy. § 11. On the 13th of July, 1842, the king and the royal family were thrown into the deepest affliction by the sudden death of the Duke of Orleans, who was thrown out of his carriage, and expired in the course of a few hours. lie had married in May, 1837, the Princess Helena of Mecklenburg-Schwerin, and left two sons, G92 LOUIS PHILIPPE. Chap. XXXIL Louis Philippe, comte de Paris, born in August, 1838, and Robert, due de Cliartres, born in November, 1840. This melancholy event was of considerable importance in a political point of view ; for a long minority and regency, which in the course of nature were now more than probable, would necessarily open the door to mul- tiplied intrigues and perplexities, and the future of the Orleans dynasty thus became overclouded and precarious. The Duke of Nemours was designated as regent of the kingdom in the event of the king's death. In Algeria, France maintained a severe and prolonged, but ul- timately successful struggle against the native Arab tribes, and particularly with the Emir Abd-el-Kader, a chieftain of indomi- table courage and considerable ability. In 1842 he Avas beaten in a sharp engagement by the Duke of Auniale, and at length fled for refuge, with a few followers, into the mountains of Morocco. He now dexterously excited the Emperor of Morocco, Muley Ab- . Fall of, 174. Besieged by Bonaparte, 5SJ. Achmet Bey, 6S7. Adalberon, Bishop, 104. Adalghis, son of Didier, 64. Adalhard, abbot of Corbey, 70. Adela, wife of Baldwin V., count of Flanders, 113. Adelaide of Aquitaine, 106. Adelbert, count of Perigord, 105. Adhemar, Bishop. 119. Adrian I., Pope, 04. .£dui, their quarrels witli the Sequani, 6. ^gidius, 29. ' ^.lianus, 22. Aetius, General, 27, 2S. Affre, archbishop of Paris, shot, 699. Agatha (Agde), 4. Aghrini, battle of, 440. Agincourt, battle of, 239. Agnadel, battle of, 289. Agnes de Meran, third wife of Philip Augustus, 14S. Agnes of Vermandois, wife of Charles of Lorraine, 104. Aguesseau, D', Chancellor, 4S9. Aides^ ex.cUe duties, 525. Aiguillon, Duke of, hU oppo- sition to Choiseul, 507, 50S. Made secretary of state for foreign affairs, 50S, 509. Dis- missed, 513. Aix,5. Aix - la - Chapelle, capital of Charlemagne's empire, 74, 75. Diet at, 76. Treaties of, 431, 494. Congress of, 004. Alan, count of Vannes, 04. Alan, duke of Brittany, 112. Alani, 24. Alaric II., King, 33. Slain by Clovis, ib. Alauda, legion of the, 11. Albemaile, Lord, 400 Alberoni, Cardinal, 470,477. Albert, Archduke, governor of tlie .Netherlands, 373. Albert, Secretary, 090. INDEX. |Albigense3, sect of, 151, 152. Crusade against, 152, 153. Albret, Constable D', com- mands an army against Hen- ry V. of England, 233, 239. Albret, Henry D', of Navarre, 300. 303. Albuera, battle of, 032. Alby, 151. Alcuiu, 73, 74. Alemanni, 31. Alenibert, D', 505, 510. Alencon, Duke of, youngest brother of Charles IX., 344, 347, 348. Alesia, city of, 3; siege of, 10. Ale.\:ander HI., Pope, 129. Alexander VI., Pope, 276. Alexander, emperor of Kussia, concludes a treaty with Na- poleon, 017. 018, 622, 030. Determines to take up arms against Napoleon, 033. En- ters into an alliance with Prussia against Napoleon after the retreat from Mos- cow, 038, 641. His entry into Paris, 646. Alexandre, accomplice of Dan- ton, 550. Algeria, war in, 092. Algiers, expedition against, 6T;), 074. Alice, third wife of Louis VII., 141. Alliance, Grand, 444. The sec- ond, 457. Quadruple, 476. Holy, between Kussia, Aus- tria, and Prussia, OOS. Allies invade France during the Kevolution, 553. Attack Dumoiiriez at Grandpre, 550. Their retreat, 557. De- feated by tlie armies of the Kepublic, 570. Defeated at Lutzcn and Bautzen, OSS Enter Paris, 040. Proclaim Louis XVIir., 048. Organ izc three armies upon the news of Napoleon's escape from Elba, 054. Again take jiossession of Paris, 002. Their treatment of the city, C02. Allodial lands, 129, 130. Almanza. battle of, 403. Almeida taken by the French, 031. Besieged by English, 032. Alphonso, count of Poiliers. son of JjonU VIII., nuirrics Jeanne, daughter of l!uyr mond of Toulouse, 104. ANIANK. \lsace, 203. Ceded to France at the close of the Thirty Years' War, 414. Turenne'.s campaign in, 435. Dispute between Germany and the Ijegislative Assembly about fief of, 545. Alva, Duke of, 323, 324. His conferences with Catharine de Medicis, 337. 1 lis perse- cution of the Protestants of the Netherlands, ib. Alvinzi, Marshal, 683. Amandus, 22. .■\maury, abbot of Ci.caur, marches against Albigenses, 152. Amaury, son of Simon de Montfort, 157. \mbiorix, chief of the Ebu- rones, S. Amboise, George D', cardinal archbishop of Rouen, minis- ter of Louis XIL, 283. Amboise, massacre of, 331. Treaty of, 330. America, North., communica. tion opened between France and, 377. War between En- gland and France in, 409, 501, 502. Republic of, so- licits aid from France against England, 514. Amherst, General, 501, 502. .■Vmiens taken by Spaniards, 373. Recaptured, 374. Peace of, 600. 9 Anacletus, Pope, 129. Ancc-nis, Treaty of, 201. Ancients, Council of. See Council of Ancients. Ancre, D', Marchioness. See Leonora Galigai. Ancre, D', Marshal. See Con- cini. Audelot, the Sire D'. See Cha- tillon. Andclot, Treaty or "Plaid" of, 44. Andelys, fortresses of, 149. Andre, Mar.-hal St., 334, 336. Angarians, 05. Angelus, Alexius, 159. Angouleme,Duclie.-s of, daugh- ter of Louis XVI., 577. En- ters Paris withLouisXVIII., 052. Angouleme, Duke of, 6j4. Commands a French expedi- tion against Spain, 669. Re- signs his claim to tUj throne, 077. Aniane, school of, 73. 708 INDEX. EALDWIX. Anjou, Duke of, bi'other of Charles IX., 33S, 339. Be- sieges Kochelle, 344. Kle- vated to the throne of Po- land, ib. Besieges Cnmhrai. 351. Betrothed to Elizabetli of England, ?b. Seizes Ant- werp, ib. Death, ib. Anjou, Gaston, duke of, broth- er of Louis XIII., 3'JT, after- ward Duke of Orleans, ([.v. Anne, queen of England, ac- cession of, 457. Anne, wife of Henry I., 113. Anne of Austria, wife of Lout? XIII., dSS. Animosity be- tween Richelieu and, 394, 395. Iler clandestine corre- spondence witli the court of Spain, 402. Her regency during minority of Louis XIV.,~41D. Anne of Beauieu, daughter of Louis XL, 271, 272. Anne of Brittany, 273. Mar- ried to Charles VI I L, 274. Secondly to Louis XII., 283. Anquetil, llistoiy of France, 14. Anselm, St. 127. Anselme, General, 550. Antiocli taken by Ci'nsadei-s, 122. Taken by tlie Mame- luke Emir Bibars, 172. Antipolis (Antibes), 4. Antoine, St., battle of, 420. Faubourg, overpowered by General Menoii, 575. Antwerp besieged by the French, CS3. Apostolici, sect of, 120. Aquaj Stxtife, city of, 5. Aquitaine, 42. Invaded by Saracens, 53. Incorporated intoCarlovingian empire, 62. Kingdom of, coiistituted by Cliarlemagne, 63. Aquitani, 2. Aquitani:!, IG. I'rima, 33. Arago, COO, 099. Aragou, a dependency of Aqui- taine, 03. Arbogast, 24. Arc, D', Jeanne, Jlaid of Or- leans. Incorrect orthogra- phy. See Dare. Arcisrsur-.4ube, battle of, 044. Arcole, battle of, 533. Ar,;on, D', Chevalier, 517. Arelate (Aries), 5. School of, 17. lioman remains at, 18. Argenson, D', war minister under Louis XV., 4S.1. Dis missed from office, 499. Argentier du Jloi, 520. Arians, 29. Ariovistus, Gennan chief, 6. Arietta, mother of William the Conqueror. 112. Arleux, Marlborough forces the camp at, 400. Armada, Bccoud, 515. Armagnac, Constable, assumes [Aumale, Duke of, son of Louia the direction of affairs, 240. | Philippe, 092. Armagnacs, their hostilities Aumont, 308. against the Burgundians, 'Ausculta, fili, papal bull, 134. 237. Become masters of the Auskes. See Euskes. government, 233. >;umberS|Austerlitz, battle of, C13. massacred, 241. lAustrasia, kingdom of, 41, 42. Armorica colonized by Gauls, I Its wars witti Neustria, 43, 2. By Cimri. 3. Conquer ed by Romans, S. .4.rnaud, St., General, 703. .\rnauld, 469. Arnulf, Bishop, 40. Chief min- ister, ib. Arques, successe.? of Henry IV. at, 300. Ai-ran, regent of Scotland, 320. Arras, peace of, 252. Treaty of, 209. Siege of, 422. Arri('ri'fief,ttiTiereBassal,1o2. Artevelde, James van, joins Edward III., 201. Artevelde, Philip van, 220. Arthur, duke of Brittany, 147, 148. Artois incorporated with the French dominions, 403. Artois, 1)', Count, his debts, 520. Emigrates, 539. Aban- dons La \"endee, 578. Lieu- tenant General of France, 651. Enters Paris witli I^ouis XVIIl.. 052. His reaction- ary policy, COO, G09, C70. Succeeds to the thi'ono as Charles X. See Cliarles X. Aspern, battle of, 025. Assembly, Constituent. See Constituent Assembly. Assembly, liCgislative. See Legislative Assembl}\ Assembly, National. See Na- tional Assembly. •Assembly of Notables. See Notables, Assembly of. Assignats, their origin, 539. Suppression of, 580. Assisi, D', Df n Francisco, mar- ries Isabella, queen of Spain, 091. Astolph, king of the Lombards, 01. Ataulphus, leader of the Visi- gotlis, 20. Aidicr.'i ^ationaux, 693, 699. Attalia. See Satalia. Attila, 27. His march upon Gaul, 28. Aubigne, D', historian, 366. Aubigny, D", Captain, 091. Aubigny, Stuart D', leader of the French army in the war against Italy imder Louis XII., 234,235. .Vudoen. See Ouen. .\ugsburg, League of, 443. August, tenth of. .551, 552. Augustus III. of Poland, 430. A\igustU3, Philip. See Philip II. Aumale, Duke of, brother of Henry of Guise, 359. 44. Conclusion of first great struggle between Neustria and, 40. War between Neu- stria and, 49. 50. Union under Pepin d'Heristal, 50. Austrasians defeat Neustrians at Vinci, 51. Austria, project of Henry IV. for the humiliation of the house of, 331. House of, its alliance with Fr.ance during the regency of Mary de Med- icis, 330. Invaded by Turks, 437. Disputed succession to throne of, upon the death of diaries VI., 433. Her alliance with France for the partition of Prussia, 500. Espouses the cause of Louis XVI., 545, 546. Combines with Russia and England against France imder the Empire, 612. Invades Ba- varia, 024. Napoleon's cam- paign against, ib. ,020. Com- bines with Russia and Prus- sia against Napoleon, C39. Keconquers her possessions on tlie Adriatic, 042. Her war with Lombardy and Sardinia, 700. Re-estab- lishes her dominion in Italy, 701. Austiians defeated by Bona- parte, 531, 532. Their suc- ces.ses under Archduke Charles, 533. Defeated at Arcole and Pivoli, ib., 534. Tbeir struggle with Bona- parte in Italy, 597, 598. Sign Treaty of Luneville, 599. Ausonius, poet, IS. Autun sacked by Moors, 53. School of, 17. Avaricum (Bourges), siege of, 9. Avars, kingdom of, subjugated by Charlemagne, OS. Avignon, siege of, 100. Ceded to the Pope by Philip IIL, 174. Residence of the popes, ISO. B. Badajoz, siege of, C32. Bagaudie, 22. Bmtlis, 153, 230, 406. Bailly, president of the Na- tional Assembly, 530. May- or of Palis, 533. Executed, 509. Baldwin of Boulogne, brother of Godfrey de Bouillon, ac- BALDWIN. INDEX. BKUNAUI). 709 companies his brother on the , first crusade, I'il. Succeeds liim as king of Jerusalem, 122. Baldwin V., count of Flanders, guardian of Philip ]., 113. Baldwin IX., count of Flan- ders, emperor of the Fast, 159. Baldwin, count of Ilainault. engages in first crusade, 121, Banquets, political, 093, G'Ji. Barante, be, G(J5. Barbarossa, 313. Barbarou.x, 551). Barbe-Marbois made president of tlie Council of Ancients, 5S5. Arrested, 5SG. Barbos, CSS, CSS. Barcelona, siege of, 461. Barnave joins the Feuillants, 543. (iuillotiued, 50'.). Barras, 5T4. Appoints Napo- leon Bonaparte to serve un der him, 579. One of the five Directors, 5S0, 5S1, 5S5, 501. Barrere, president of the Con- vention, 55S. Member of tUe Committee of Public Saft'- ty, 505, 50S. Imprisoned, 575. Barricades, Day of the, 356. Barry, Countess du, mistress of Louis XV., 507. Guillo- tined, 569. Bart, Jean, corsaii', 449. Barthelemy, member of the Directory, bSb. Arrested, 5S0. Banished to Cayenne, ib. His escape, ib. Bartholomew, St., massacre of, 342. Basina, 30. Basle, treaty of, 577. Basnage, 442. Basques, their wars with Char- lemagne, 07, 03. Bassompierre, Jlarshal, 337, 399. Bastile, foundations of, laid, 222. Attack on the, 532. Battle of Aboukir, 5S1). Agh- rini, 44;5. Agincourt, 239. Agnadel,2?9. Albuera, 632. Almauza, 403. Arcis-sur- Aube, 044. Arcole, .''(S3. Arques, 306. Asperu, 025. Austerlitz, 013. Bautzen, G3S. Beachy Head, 445. Borodino, 034. Bouviues, 15.'S. Bnyne, 445. Blenheim, 460, 461. Chalons, 2S. Co- mines, ISO. Conmna, 023. Coutras, 354. Crucy, 205. Denis, St., .337. Dettingen, 490. Divio (Dijon), 10. Dresden, 039, 040. Dreu.K, 330. Eekmiihl, 024. Kylau, 617. Fleurus, 440, blC: Fontaine -Fran;ai.se, 373. Fontenay, S2. Fontenoy, 492. Fornovo, 277. Fried- land, 617. Fuentes de Onor, 032. Furnes, ISO. Gaza, 107. Grandella, 171. Gran- son, 260. Hasbain, 230. Hastings, 114. Hohenlin- den, 599. llogue. La, 44S. 1 vry, 307, 30S. Jarnac, 33S. Jemmapes, 557. Jena, 010. Krasnoi, 036. Landen, 449. Lawfeld, 493. Leipsic, 040. Lens, 413. LeuUien, 501. Ligny, 650. Lutterberg, 501. Lutzen, 038. Maida, C15. Malo, St., 179. Malplaquet, 464. Mansourah, 169. Ma- rengo, 598. Marignano, 296. Marsiglia, 449. Minden, 503. Molwitz, 4SS. Moucontour, 33S. Monteil,217. Montl'- hery, 200. Morat, 206. Mount Tabor, 5S9. Muret, 153. Navarino, 672. Neer- winden, 534, 565. Nile, the, 583. Nordlingen, 4a, 491. Bavard, 2SS, 2U5, 302. Bayle, 442. Baze, 703. Beachy Head, battle of, 445. Beam, province of, 391. Beatrice, daughter of Kaymond Be renger, count of Provence, married to Charles, count of Anjou and Maine; son of Louis VIII., 107. Beai'nois, name of Ileniy of Navarre, 366. Beaugency, council of, 141. Beauharnais, Eugene de, step- son of Napoleon Bonaparte, made viceroy of Italy, 609, 624. Beaujeu, the Sire de, husband of Anne, daughter of Louis XL, 271, 272. Beaujolals, Count of, brother of Louis Philippe, 6S1. Beaulieu, abbey of, 149. Beaulieu, favorite of Charles VI L, 245. Beaulieu, General, 581. Beausobre, 412. Beauvais, siege of. 264. Beauvilliers, Duke of, 45C. Beck, General, 413. Becket, Archbishop, 142. Pie- ceived by Louis VI I., 142. Bedeau, General, 699, 70.':. Bedford, John, duke of, g .v- erns FV.ance as regent, '.-i4 Beds of justice, institution of, 202, 40S. Belenus-ApoUo, altar of, 18. Belgaj, their conquest of Northern Gaul, 3. Belgians proclaim a republic, 557. Belgica, 3. Belgiun), Frank.s gain posses- sion of, 27. Declared to be incorporated with I'lance, 579. United with Holland under the house of (Ji-ange, 052. Its insurrection against the government of King William, 082, 633. Its in- dependence declared, 083. Bellefond.s, Jlarshal, 4-18. Belleisle, Marshal de, 4S9, 492. Belliard, General, 047. Benedict, abbot of Aniane, 76. Benedict XL, Pope, 185. Benedict XII I. , Pope, 232. Bem-Jicium, 131. Benihgsen commands the Kus- sians against Napoleon, 617, 610. Benningen, Tan, Dutch em- bassador, 431. Beresford, Marshal, 632. Beresina, passage of the, 037. Berg. Hee Cleves. Bergerac, Treaty of, 350. Berkeley, Admiral, 449. Berlin, entry of Napoleon into, 610. Bernard, St., 128, 129. Apos- tle of second crusade, 13S. Bernard, Duke, of Saxe-Wei- mar, 401. Death, 402. Bernard, CSS. '10 BKKNAKD. INDEX. BRITTANY. Bernard, Great St., Napoleon's passage of, t>'.)~. Bernadotte, Marslial, made prince royal of Sweden, tiSI, C33, 640. Bernhard, duke of Septimania, TS, 79. Bernhard, king of Italy, revolt of, 7T. Death, ib. Berquin, Louis de, burnt as a heretic, 309. Berry, Duchess of, OTT. At- tempts to excite a civil war in La Vendee, 6S4. Berry, Duke of, 652. Assas- sinated, 065, 606. Berryer, OSS. Bertha, Princess, wife of Rob- ert the Pious, 106. Bertha, wife of Pliilip I., im- prisoned, 116. Death, 117. Berther, mayor of the palace, 50. Berthier, Alexandre, serves in America, 516. Berthier hung by the mob at the outbreak of the Itevolu- tion, 534. Bertrade de Monfort, 116, 117, 1'23. Bertrand, General, 654, 001, 690. Berwick, Duke of, 433. In- vades Spain, 477. Killed, 4S6. Besrae, 342. Bethlehem, Count of, 123. Beurnonville, General, 550. Beza, Theodore, 341). Beziers, storming of, 152. Bibars, Sultan, 1T2, 173. Billaud - Varennes, 545, 568, 573. Imprisoned, 575. Biron, Marshal, 340, 356, 308, 370, 374. Conspires with the Duke of Savoy against Hen- ry IV., 379. Death, 380. Biron, General, 546. Guillo- tined, 569. Black Pestilence, 200, 215. Blanc, Louis, 096, 098. Blanche of Aquitaine, wife of Louis le Faineant, 99. Blanche of Castile, niece of King John of England, mar- ried to Louis VIII., 148, 160. Kegency of, 104, 165. Gov- ernment coniided to her dur- ing absence of her sou Louis IX., 167. Death, 170. Blanche of Navarre, wife of Philip VI., 206. Blancmesnil, 415. Blanqui, 684. Blenheim, battle of, 460, 461. Blois, Charles of, nephew of Philip VI., claims Brittany in opposition to John, count of Montfort, 203. Blois, treaty of, 287. Blucher takes possession of Nancy, 643. Arrives at Paris, 645. His campaign aaain.«t Napoleon iu 1S15, 054, 657, 062. Bohemond, prince of Taren- tum, 121. Boileau, 469. Bonaparte, genealogy of fam- ily, 010. Bonaparte, Jerome, 607. Made King of Westphalia, 61S. Bonaparte, Joseph, commands the French army invading Naples, 014. Proclaimed King of Naples, ib. liaised by his brotlier to the throne olt' Spain, 621. Unable to maintain possession of the capital, li)., 626. Ke-enters Madrid, 683. Dethroned, 642. Chief counselor of Ma- ria Louisa, 644. Authorizes the surrender of Pai'is, 645. Bonaparte, Louis, 607. Cre- ated King of lloUand, 014. Abdicates, 630. Bonaparte, Imcien, 007. Bonaparte, Napoleon. See Na- poleon. Boncliamps. 537. Boniface VIIL, Pope, 179. Me- diates between England and France, ISO. His struggle with Philip the Fair, 183, 1&5. Boniface IX., Pope, 232. Boniface, St. See Winifrid. Bonnivet, Admiral, commands French army invading the Milanese, 302. Death, 303. Bordeaux sacked by Saracens, 53. Bordeaux, school of, 17. Bordeaux, siege of, 418. Bordeaux, Duke of (Henry V.), son of the Duke of Berry, 007, 070, 677, 6S6. Borgia, Caesar, son of Pope Alexander VL, 2S3. Borodino, battle of, 634. Boroughs, constitution of, 124. Boscawen, Admiral, 494, 501, 502. Boson, Duke, revolt of, 91. Bossuet, 469, 470, 471. Bouchain captured by Marl- borough, 4J150. Eecaptured,' ib. Boucicaut, Marshal, 239. Boufflers, Marquess of, 444 Opposed to Marlborough, 458. Serves under Villars in Flanders, 404. Bouillo, Marquess of, 516. Ar- ranges the escape of Louis XVI., 541. Gives up the enterprise, and crosses into Germany, 542. Bouillon, Duchess of, 417. Boulogne surrendered by the English, 321. Camp at, 605. Bourbon, Antoine de, duke of Vendome, 327. King of NavaiTe, leader of the Prot- estants, 327, 332. Appoint- ed lieutenant general, 333. Keoonciled to tiie Church of Home, 334. Death, 335. Bourbon, Cardinal of, uncle of Henry of Navarre, 352. Pro- claimed king by his brother the Duke of Jlayenne. 365. Death, 368. Bourbon, Charles, duke of, made constable, 295. Re- volts against Francis I., 301. Attacks France, 302. De- feats the French in Italy, ib. Recovers his possessions by the treaty of Madrid, 305. Invader the States of the Church, 306. Death, ib. Bourbon, Duke of, prime min- ister of Louis XV., 4S1. Dis- missed from office, 483. Bourbon, house of, its estab- lishment on the throne of France, 375. Established on the throne of Spain, 468. Bourdaloue, 469. Bourdonnais, La, opposes the English in India, 493. Bourges, council of, 160. Bourmont, General, deserts Napoleon before the battle of Waterloo, 050. Minister of Charles X., 673. Com- mands an expedition against Algiers, 674. Boutliillier, Secretai')', 406. Bouvines, battle of, 155. Boyne, battle of tlie, 445. Brandenburg, Elector of, hi-i alliance with William of Orange against Louis XIV., 433. Breda, Treaty of, 429. Breslau, Treaty of, 490. Bretigny, Treaty of, 214. ^ Breze, ftlarquess of, 531. Brifonnet, bishop of Meaux, his protection of the Re- formers, 309. Brienne, De, archbishop of Toulouse, 520. Succeeds Calonne, 521. His struggle with the Parliament, ib. Counsels Louis to convoke the States-General, 522. Re- signs, ib. Brisach, siege of, 401. Brissac, Count de, appointed governor of Paris, 371. Sur- renders it into the hands of the Royalist.=, 372. Brisson, president of the Par- liament, 309. Brissot, leader of the cCtti gauche, 544. Brittany, disputed succession to, 203. Insurrection in, against Charles V., 220. In- corporated with French em- pire, 274. The descent of the English fleet upon, 577. BKOGLIIC. INDEX. CELESTIN'E. 11 Broglie, Marshal, advances to the succor of Prague, 4S.t. Broglie, Marshal, commands the army concentrated upon Paris during the struggle between the National As- sembly and the court, 531. Brosse, Pierre de la, 1T5. Broussel, 415, 410,421. Bructeri, 2T. Brueys, Admiral, 5S7. Brune, General, 591. Marshal, 064. Brunechilda. See Brunehaut. Brunehaut, wife of Sighebert of Austrasia, 43, 44, 45. Death, 40. Brunet, General, guillotined, 509. Brunswick, Duke of, com- mander-in-chief of the allied armies against France at the Eevolution, 540, 556. Gen- eralissimo of the Prussian forces against Napoleon, 010. Brussels taken by Mai'shal Saxe, 493. Taken by Jour- dan and r'ichegru, 570. Bruyere, La, 409. Bruys, I'eter de, heresy of, 129. Buch, Captal de, 210, '213. Buckingham, Duke of, 393. His enmity toward Kiche- lieu, 395. Assists the Hu- guenots of La ISochelle, ib. Bude, or Budteus, 310. Bugeaud, Marshal, 692, 695. Bulow, Prussian general, 043, 650. Burgundians invade Gaul, 24. Extend their dominions, 20. Burgundy, 39. Anne.xed to em- pire of Pranks, 41. Founda- tion of second ducal house of Burgundy, 216. Annex- ed to the French monarchy, 267, 26S. Burgundy, Charles the Bold, duke of, his enmity as count of Charolois against Louis IX., 259. Succeeds his fa- ther as Duke of Burgundy, 261. His struggles with Louis XI., ib. Visited by Louis at Peronne, 202. De- clares war against France, 204. Defeated by the Swiss, 206. His death, 200, 207. Burgundy, Jean sans Peur, duke of, Ills quarrel with Louis of Orleans, 2.33. Placed at the head of the govera- parture of the regent Louis of Anjou for Naples, 220. Replaced at the head of af- fairs on account of the im- becility of Charles VI., 231. Death, ib. Burgundy, Philip le Bon, duke of, son of Jean sans Peur, his alliance with England, 242. Reconciliation with Charles VIL, 252. Bute, Lord, English minister, 504. Byng, Admiral, 500. Byron, Admiral, 515. C. Caboche, skinner, 237. Cabochlens defend Paris against the Armagnacs, 237. Second insurrection of, 23S. Massacre Armagnacs, 241. Cadoudal, Georges, Chouan, 006, 60S. Cfesai', Caius Julius, C. His victory over the Germans, 7. Conqu&st of Gaul, 7, S, 9, 10. Cahierg, 280. Cairo taken by Bonaparte, 6SS. Calais, siege of, 200. Recov- ered by the French, 325. Calonne, minister of finance, 519, 520. Banished, 521. Calvinists persecuted by Louis XIV., 330, 331, 440, 442. Cambaceres associated with Bonaparte in the Consulate, 596, 601. Cambrai, League of, 2SS. Cambrai, Peace of, called the Pai.x; des Dames, 30S. Cambronne, General, 054. Camisards, insurrection of the, 400. Campo,Formio, Treaty of, 536. Canada, French colonies estab- lished in, 377. Surrendered to England, 504. Capeluche, executioner, 237. Cai'ET, Hugh, defends Paris, 99. Proclaimed king, 100. Reign, 104, 106. Capetian dynasty founded by Hugh the Great, 98. Capitularies of Charlemagne, 72. Carbon, 601. Carbonari, secret society, 60S. Carcassonne taken in crusade against .41bigenses, 152. Cardona, don Ramon de, Span- isli viceroy, 290. ment, ib. A league formed, Caribert, son of Clotaire, 42 to overthrow him, '.'35, 2:16. Forms a league with Queen Isabella, 240. Re-enters Par- is, 241. .Murdered, 242. Burgundy, Philip the Bold, Carloman, son of Charles Mar- tel, retires into a monastery, 55 Carloman, son of Louis le Bi'gue, 91. Death, 92. duke of, receives the duchy Carloman, son of Pepin leBref, of Burgundy from his father, j 03. John, 215. Administers af-i Carlos, Don, son of Philip V., fairs in France after the de-l 478, 484. Succeeds to the duchy of Parma, 484. Takes possession of the throne of the Two Sicilies, 487. Carlovingian dynasty, founda- tion of, 56, 100. Carlovingian empire, disunion of, 82. Final dismember- ment of, 93. Causes of its decline and fall, 100. Cai-melites, slaughter of two hundred priests at church of the, 554. Carnac, druidical monument of, 13. Carnot, 568, 580, 581, 585, 580., Caroline Books, 75. Caroline, queen of Naples, daughter of Maria Theresa, 614. Carrel, 684. Carrickfergus seized by the French, 503. Carrier, president of the Revo- lutionary Tribunal at Nan- tes, 509. Guillotined, 575. Casale, siege of, 396. Cases, Las, Count, 661, 690. Cassino, Monte, monastery of, 5j. Castanos, General, 021. Castelnau, Peter de, appointed to root out heresy in Langue- doc, 151. Catalonia a dependency of Aquitaine, 68. United to the croivn of France, 403. Cateau-Cambresis, peace of, 327. Catharine of Braganza mar- ried to Charles II. of En- gland, 428. Catharine, empress of Russia, 504. Catharine de Medicis nego- tiates with the Huguenots, 339. Plans the death of Co- ligny, 341. Pei-suades the king to sanction the massa- cre of the Huguenots, 342. Confederacy formed against her, 344. Appointed regent by Charles IX. at his death, 345. Makes concessions to the Protestants, 348, 356. Death, 359. Catharine, wife of Heniy V. of England, 243. Cathelineaii, 507. Catherini, sect of, 151. Catinat, Marshal, 449, 457, 458. Cauchon, Pierre, bishop of Beauvais, 250. Caulaincourt, 037, 647, 648. Caussidiere, 084. Caussin, Jesuit, 402. Cavaignac, 699, 700, 703. Cavalier, Camisard chieftain, 400. Celestine IL, Pope, 137. Celestine HI., Pope, 146. Re- monstrates with Philip Au- gustus, 147. ■12 CKLLAMAUK. INDEX. CHILDKBKRT. (Jellamaie, conspiracy of, 470, 477. Cellini, Benvenuto, 317. Celtibei'i, 4. (Jelts divided into two branch e?, 2. Their iive dialects, 2. Centenarii, 72. Centre, neutral party in the National Convention, 557. Cerda, Charles de la, constable of France, 207, 208. Cevennes, mines of, 3. Chaise, La, confessor of Louis XIV., 440. Chalons, battle of, 28. Chamavi, 27. Clianiber of Deputies, estab- lished on the Restoration, C52, 053. Dissolved by Louis XVII I., GG5, 070, 672, G74. Its divisions under Louis Pliilippe, OSS. Chambord, palace of, 317. Cliambre Ardente^ 476. Chambre des Comptes. 40G, 520. Chambre de VBdit^ 407. Chambre des Enqxietcs, 400. Chambre des Plaidoiries^ 403. Chambres des lieqitetes, 40G. Chnmbres de Reunion, 43S, 439. Chamillart, 45S. Dismissed from office, 4G3. Champ de Mars, Bailly fires upon the mob in, 543. Champagne, Duke of, son of Pepin d'Hei'istal, 51. Champeaux, William de, 127. Champlain, founder of Quebec, 377. Changamier, General, 702, 703. Chantelauz?, De, trial of, GS3, CS4. . Charette, 567, 577, 573. Shot, 57S. CiTARLEMAGNE, SOU of Pepin le Bref, reign of, 63-75. Char- acter, 75. CiiAKLES I., the Bald, son of Louis I.,7S. Kingdom cre- ated in liis favor, ib. Ini- piisoned, 75). Kingdom of Aquitaine bestowed upon him, SO. Confined in the abbey of Priim, ib. Country west of the Meuse, Saone, and Rhone declared subject to, S3. His wars with Aqui- taine, Peptimania, and Brit- tanj', S6. His countiy in- v.ided by Normans, ib. Crowned emperor by Pope John VIII., 8S. Death, i6. C'liARi.KS II., the Fat, reign of^ 92-'J3. CiiAELEs III., the Simple, reign of, 04-07. Charles IV., le Bel, reign of, 102, 193. Charles V., the Wise, reign of, 21G-222. Ciiari.es VI., le Bien-Almo. reign of, 224-244. Charles VII., the Victorious, reign of, 244-256. Charles VI II. , r Affable, reign of, 271-279. Charles IX., reign of, 333- 34.5. Charles X. See Artois, Count of. Reign of, G71-G7S. Ab- dicates, 077. Charles II. of England sup ports the Portuguese against ypain, 42S. Marries Catha rine of Braganza, ib. Con eludes a treaty with Louis XIV., 429. Concludes a sec ond treaty engaging to join Louis in the invasion of Hol- land, 431. Signs a peace with Holland, 434. Con eludes another treaty with Louis, 437. Charles 1 1, of Spain, his claim to the Netherlands disputed by Louis XIV., 429, 430. Bequeaths his dominions to the electoral prince of Bava ria, 453. Persuaded by his wife to destroy this testa ment, 455. Names Philip of Anjou as his successor, 45j. Death, ib. Charles III. of Spain proclaim- ed at Madrid, 402. Defeated by Vendume, 40.5. Crown ed as Charles VI. of Ger- many, ib. Charles IV. of Spain, G19, 020, 621. Charles VI., emperor of Aus- tria, 465. Death, 487, 4SS. Chailes Albert, king of Sar- dinia, 7i.0. Abdicates, 701. Charles, Archduke, son of Em- peror Leopold, becomes a candidate for the crown of Spain, 453. Proclaimed King of Spain as Charles III., 461. Charles, Archduke, commands the Austrian army against the Republic, 5S3. Driven out of Italy, 012. Collects a force in Hungaiy, 613, 623, 624. Charles, count of Anjou and Maine, son of Louis VIII., marries Beatrice, daughter of Raymond Berenger, count of Provence, 167. Charles, count of Valois, sec- ond son of Philip III., do- minions of King of Aragon conferred by the Pops upon, 176. Renounces pretensions to Aragonese crown, 17S. Marries Marguerite of An- jou, ib. Charles, dauphin, son of John, assumes the government while his father is imprison- ed in England, 211. Regen- cy of, ib., 215. Charles, dauphin, son of Charles VI., 240. Charles of Anjou, son of Louis VIII., invested with the Two SicUies, 171. Defeats King of Tunis, 173. Conspii'acy against him, 175, 176. Death, 177. Charles of Austria, Charles v., emperor, ascends the ■ throne of Spain, 298. Suc- ceeds Maximilian as Emper- or of Austria under the title of Charles V., 299. His al- liance with Henry VIII. of England, rt., 300. Enters into secret compact with Pope Leo X., 301. His wars with Francis, i&., 314. tJon- federacy against, 321, 323. His abdication, ib. Ciiarles of Provence, son of the Emperor Lothaire, 87. Charles the Bad, king of Na- varre, grandson of Louis X., 207, 20S, 211, 213, 214, 220. Charles the Bold, duke of Biu-- gundy. /b'ce Burgundy, duke of. Charles, son ef Charlemagne, 74. Charles, son of Louis d'Outre- mer, made Duke of Lower Lorraine, 98, 99. Prosecutes his claim to the crown, 104. Death, 105. Charlotte Corday, 500. Charta, Magna, signed, 155, 150. Charter, Constitutional, C70, 674, 677, 682. Charton, 415. Chartres, Duke de (aftei'ward King Louis Philippe), 565. Chartres, Robert, Due de, son of the D uke of Orleans, 692, 696. Chasse, General, 083. Chastel, Jesuit, 372. Chateau-Renaud, 458. Chateauroux, Duchess of, mis- tress of Louis XV., 489, 491. ChatiUon, Cardinal de, 327. ClLitillon, Francois de, callel the Sire D'Andelot, nephew of Montmorency, 3^7. Chatillon, Jacques de, 181. ChatiUon, fortress of, taken by Philip Augustus, 143. Chatre, Pierre de la, 137. Chauvelin, minister of Louis XV., 4S6. Chavigny, Secretary, 400. Cherasco, Treaty of, 397. Chevalier, Jacobin, 000. Chevreuse, Madame de, 411. ). Fursteuburg, Cardinal de, 444. Gabelle, tax, 206. The citizens of Paris demand the aboli- tion of the, 224. 530. Gabrielle d'Estrees, mistress of Henry IV., 378. Death, ib. Gaels. See Gauls. Galeswintha, wife of Chilperia of Neustria, 43. Gai'lard, chateau, 149. Gallia Belgica, 16. Gallia Braccata, 5. Gallia Cisalpina, 5. Gallia Comata, 11. Gallia Lugdunensis, 16. Gallia Narbonensis, 5. Gallia Sequanensis, 26. Gallia Togata, 5. GalUachd, 2. Galway, Lord, 462, 463. Garibaldi, 701. Garnier-Pagos, 696, 698, 099. Gascony lost to the English, 255. Gatian, 20. Gaudin, minister of finance during the Consulate, 597. INDEX. IIASBAIN. 717 Gaul, boundaries of, 2. Con- quered by Romans, T, S. Partitioned into four di.-i- tricts under Augustus, 16. Intellectual civilization, 17, 18. New division, 22. In- vaded by Germans, 23, 24. Gauls, their emigrations, 2. Struggles with the Romans, 4. Gaunt, John of, commands En- glish army invading France, 219. Gaza, battle of, 16T. Geneva, Treaty of, 29T. Genlis, Countess of, 681. Genoveva (St. Genevieve), 28. Gensonne, leader of the Gi- roiidins, 544. Geoffrey, younger brother of Henry II. of England, 141. George II. of England joins his troops in person against France, 489, 490. Gerard, Marshal, 633. Gerberga, wife of Louis d'Ou- tremer, 98. Gerbert, archbishop of Reims, 106. Gemiain, St., Count de, min- ister of Louis XVI. , 513. Germain, St., palace of, 317. Germaine de Foix married to Ferdinand the Catholic, 287. Germains, St., Treaty of, 339. Germans, their struggles with ■ the Romans for possession of Gaul, 6. Again invade Gaul, 23, 24. Settle in the countiy, 24. Gerona, siege of, 177. Ghent, revolt of, 312. Taken by Louis XIV. , 437. Giac, De, favorite of Charles VII., 245. Gibraltar taken by Admiral Rooke, 431. Besieged by Spanish fleet, 483. Besieged by France and Spain, 517. Giocondo, Fra, architect, 2.93. Girardin, leader of the Feuil- lants, 543. Girondists, their advent to power, 546. Combine with the Jacobins, 547. Their opposition to the Montagne, 558. Their vacillation, 559, 560. Their fall, 535, 566. Twenty-one condemned to death by the Revolutionary Tribunal, 568, 569. Recall- ed to their seats in the Con- vention, 575. Gisele, Princess, wife of Sollo, C5. Gloucester, Duke of, son of Charles L, 423. Gobel, "■constitutional" bish- op of Paris, 570. Godefrid, Norman chieftain, 92. Godfrey de Bouillon, engages in the first crusade, 120. Made King of Jerusalem, 122. Death, ib. Godolphin, 465. Godoy, Don Manuel, "Prince of the Peace," his secret treaty with Napoleon, 619, 620, 621. Gohier, Director, 591. Goislard, Parliamentary lead- er of the opposition, arrest- ed, 522. Gombette, Loi, 33. Gondebald, Burgundian king, 32. Gondemar, king of Burgundy, 41. Gonthran, son of Clotaire, 42, 43, 44. Death, 44. Gosselin, bishop of Soissons, 137. Goth, Bertrand de, raised to the papal throne by Philip the Fair, under the title oif Clement V., 186. Gottschalk, monk, 91. Goujon, Jean, 317. Gourgaud, General, 661. Grammont, Marshal, 412. Granada, Treaty of, 2S5. Grand' Chambre, 406, 407. Grandella, battle of, 171. Granson, battle of, 266. Granvelle, Cardinal, 327. Grasse, Count de, 516, 517. Gratian, 24. Graves, Admiral, 510. Greek kingdom, its independ- ence of the Ottoman Porte assured, 672. Greeks, their colonies in Gaul, 4. Gregory III., Pope, 54. Gregory IV., Pope, demands from Louis I. fulfillment of constitution of 817, 79. Gregory V., Pope, excommu- nicates Robert the Pious, 106. ■ Gregory VII., Pope, his men- aces against Philip I., 116. Grenville, Lord, 590. Grimoald, son of Pepin of Lan- den, succeeds him as mayor of the palace, 4S. His at- tempt to usurp the crown, ib. Grimoald, son of Pepin d'Ho- ristal, assassinated, 61. Grouchy, Marshal, 657, 65S, 65). Guadet. leader of the Giron- dins, 544. Guastalla seized by the French under the Consulate, 003. Guebriant, De, 401. Guelf, Count, of Bavaria, joins second crusade, 138, 139. Guernon - Uanville, trial of, 083, 6S4 Gueselin, Bertrand du. Gen- oral, 216, 217, 218, 219, 220. Guiafer, Duke, 62. Guiche, Marshal de, 404. Guichen, Admiral, 515. Guiscard, Robert, 115. Guise, Charles of, archbishop of Reims, afterward cardinal of Lorraine, 320. Shares the government with his broth- er, 330. Guise, family of, 320. Guise, Claude, first duke of, "20. Guise, Francis, duke of, com- mands French army against Charles V., 323. Governs Francis II., 330. Head of the Catholic party, 333-335, 3D6. Assassinated, 336. Guise, Henr3', duke of, 342, 347, 348. Organizes a Catli- olic league, 349. Plots ti) obtain the succession to the throne, 351, 352. All the chief ijosts of authority be- stowed upon, 353, 354, 353. Assassinated, 359. Guise, Duke of, in the reign of Henry IV., 369, 373. Guiton, mayor of La Rochelle, 395. Guizot, 665. Minister, C86, 687. Leader of the Centrj Droit, 688. Embassador to the English court, 689. Min- ister for foreign affairs, 690, 691, 693. Resigns, 694. Gundbald, monk, 79. Gustavus Adolphus, king of Sweden, 400. Guy of Flanders, 170, ISO. Guyon, Madame, 471. Guzman, Dominic de, 151. H. Hachette, Jeanne la, 264. Haganon, minister of Charles tiie Simple, 90. Haguenau, diet at, 143. Hakim, Caliph, destroys tin; church of the Holy Sepul- chre, 103. Halle, Treaty of, 381. Hanau, battle of, 641. Hanover invaded by the French under the Consulate, 605. Resumed by England, 641. Hanse, 14D. Hanseatic towns seized by Na- poleon, 630. Harcourt, Count, 402, 420. Harcourt, Marquess of, French embassador in Spain, 456. Harding, St. Stephen, 12S. Hardy, Admiral, 515. Harengs, Journee des, 240. Ilarlai, President de, 350. Harley, his correspondence with de Tore)-, 405. Haro, Don Luis de, prime min. ister of Spain, 423. Htisbain, battle of, 233. 718 IIASTIiXG. INDEX. INNOCENT. Hasting, Norman leadei', ST. Hastings, battle of, 114. Hauranne, Duvergier de, Jan- senist, 4G9. Hautefort, Mademoiselle de, 401. Hauteville, Tancred de, the sons of, 114, 115. Havana attacked by the En glish, 503. Hawise of Gloucester, ■wife of King John of England, 14S. Hawke, Admiral, 503. Hebert, 569. Executed, 570. Hebertists, faction of the, 56D. Condemned to death, 5T0. Heinsius, 455, 45S. Helvetius, 510. Henricians, sect of, 129. Henrietta Maria, sister of Louis Xni., married to Charles, prince of Wales, 393. Henrietta, Princess, of En- gland, married to Philip, duke of Orleans, brother of Louis XIV., 42S, 431, 432. Henriette d'Entr;igues, mis- tress of Henry IV., 3T8. Henriot, 565. Arrested, 5T4. Henky I., reign of, 109-113. Henky II., reign of. 319-32S. Henky III., reign of, 34T-361. Henry IV., reign of, 365-3S3. For early life, see Henry of Navarre. Henky V. See Bordeaux, duke of. . Henry I. of England, hia war with Louis VI., 125. Heniy H. of England, 141. Joins third crusade, 144 His quarrels with Philip Augustus, 145. Death, ib. Henry III. of England, hostil ities between Louis VIII and, 159. His war with France, 166. Henry IV. of England enter into an alliance with the Orleanist party in France, 237. Henry V. of England invades France, 23S. Again invades Fi-ance, 240, 241. Henry VI. of England pro- claimed King of France, 244. Crowned at Notre Dame, 251. . Henry VIII. of England in- vades France, 292. His al- liance with France, 304. His treaty with Charles V., 314. Takes Boulogne, 815. His treaty with Francis I., ib. Death, ib. Heniy VI., emperor of Ger- many, 140. Heniy of Navarre man-ies Marguerite of Valois, 341. Pi'ofesses the Eoman faith, 343. Joins in a confederacy against Catharine de Mcdi- cis, 344, 347, 348. Descent of, 351. Leader of the Prot estant party against the League, 353, 354. His alii ance with Henry III. against the League, 360. Becomes King of France. See Henry IV. Herault de Sechelles, 56S, Guillotined, 571. Hermengarde, wife of Charle- magne, 03. Hermengarde, Empress, wife of Louis I., 77. Death, ib. Heruli, 29. Hilary, St., bishop of Poitiers, 21. Death, ib. Hilderic. See Childeric. Hincmar, Archbishop, 90, 91. Hire, La, 253. Hoclie, General, 577, 5S5, 586. Hocquincourt, D', Marshal, 420. Hofer, Andrew, leader of the Tyrolese, 624. Hogue, La, battle of, 448. Hohenlinden, battle of, 599. Holland invaded by Louis XIV., 432, 433. Invaded by Marshal Saxe, 493. Her war with England in the reign of Louis XVI. , 516. Appeals to France for protection, ib. Invaded by the Republican army under General Piche- gru, 576. Annexed to France by Napoleon, 630. Expels the French authoi'ities, 642. United with Belgium, 652. Separated from Belgium, 683. Homagium., 133. Hompesch, De, grand master of the Knights of St. John, 5SS. Hongrie, Le Maitre de, 170. Honorius, Emperor, 26. Honorius III., Pope, proclaim a second crusade against the Albigenses, 157. Hood, Admiral, assists Toulon in resisting the Convention, 507. Hopital, Chancellor de 1', 332, 333. Hortense, mother of Louis Na- poleon, 638. Ilouchard, General, guillo- tined, 569. Howe, Lord, 517. His victoiy over the French, 576. Hu Cadarn, chieftain of Cimri, 3. Hubertsburg, treaty of, 5"4. Hugh (Hugues) of Lorraine, 92. Hugh, count of Vennandois and Valois, engages in first crusade, 120. Hugh le Blanc, or the Great, father of Hugh Capet, 90, 97, OS. Hugh Capet, King. See Capet. Hughes, Sir E., Admiral, 518. Hugonet, Chancellor, 268. Huguenots, origin of name, 330, note. Persecution of the, 380, 331. Acquire pow- er, 332, 334. Catharine de Medicis grants complete tol- erance to, ib. Take up arms, 335, 336. March upon Paris, 337. Defeated at Jarnac, ■ 33S. Defeated at Moncon- tour, ib. Massacre of, 342. Wars of, 347, 348, 353, 354, 357. Their alliance with Henry III. against the Catli- olic League, 360, 365. Take up arms against Louis XIII., 391, 392. Their rising un- der the dukes of Rohan and Soubise, 364, 396. Perse- cuted by Louis XIV., 441, 442. Humi^res, D', Marshal, 444. Hundred Days, 655. Hungarians, their revolt under Kossuth, 700. Hungary rises in defense of Maria Theresa, 489. Huns, 28. Huruge, St , 548. Hutchinson, General, 600. Hyder Ali, sultan of Mysore, 517. Iberi, south of Garonne, 2. Ibrahim Bey, 589. Imbercourt, the Sire D', 268. Importans, faction of the, 411. Independents, party of, 605. Indies, East, struggle between France and England in, 493, 494. French assist Hyder Ali against the English in, 517. Indies, West, contest between France and England in, 516, 517. Ineffabilis, papal bull, 184. Infanta Clara Eugenia, daugh- ter of Philip II., 367, 369. Ingelberga of Denmark, sec- ond wife of Philip Augustus, 147, 148. Innocent II., Pope, 129. Quar- rels with Louis VIL, 137. Innocent III., Pope, interposes between Philip Augustus and Richard Cceur de Lion, 146, 147. Violent struggle between Philip Augustus and, 147. Pei-secutes here- tics in Languedoc, 151. In- vites Philip Augustus to conquer England, 154. Com- mands fourth crusade to be preached, 15S. Innocent X., Pope, 429, 469. Innccent XI., Pope, his quar- rel with Louis XIV., 470. Innocent XII., Pope, 456. INQOISITION. INDEX. LANCELOT. '19 Inquisition, its establishment at Toulouse, 164. Suppress ed in Spain by Ferdinand VII., 60S. Irenseus, 20. Irene, Empress, 71. Irmensul, Saxon idol, 65. Isabella, daughter of Philip the Fair, affianced to Ed- ward, prince of Wales, ISO. Isabella of Angouleme, 148. Isabella of Aragon, wife of Philip III., 174. Isabella of Bavaria, wife of Charles VI., 227. Isabella, Queen, sister of Charles le Bel, conspires against her husband, Ed- ward II., 193. Isabella, Queen of Spain, mar- ried to Don Francisco d'As- sisi, 691. Isabella, wife of Philip Augus- tus, 143. Italy, the wars of Louis Xn. against, 2S4, 292. Bona- parte's campaign in, 6S1. Ivry, battle of, 86S. J. Jacobin Club, 542, 544. Jacobins comlDine with the Gir- ondist.?, 547. Seize the su- preme authority, 552. Op- posed to the Girondists, 557, 55S. Establish the Keign of Terror, 567, 56S. Their fall, 574, 575. Their attempts to stir up an insurrection, 575. Jacqueline, Countess of Hain- ault and Holland, 244, 245. Jacquerie, insurrection of the, 212. Jaffa besieged by Bonaparte, 5S9. James II. of England at St. Germains, 443. Assisted by Louis XIV. against William III., 445. His last attempt to recover England, 446, 44S. Jansenists, 469, 470, 471, 4S4, 4S5. Persecuted by Chris- to]jhe de Beaumont, 407. Jansenius, 409. Jarnac, battle of, 338. Jeanne d'Albret, 327. Jeanne d'Albret, wife of the King of Navan-e, 327, 335, 338, 330. Death, 340. Jeanne Dare, maid of Orleans, See Dare. Jeanne, daughter of Raymond of Toulouse, married to Al- phonse, count of Poitiers, 1&4. Jeanne of Valois, wife of Rob ert d'Artois, 200. Jemmapes, battle of, 557. .Tena, battle of, 616. i erusalem taken by Cru.^aders, 122. Captured by Saracens, 144. Sacked by Kharis- mians, 167. Jerusalem, Assises de, 123. Foundation of Latin king- dom of, 122. Jesuits banished from France, 372. Attacked by Pascal, 469. Their order suppress- ed in France, 505, 506. Ban- ished from Spain by Ferdi- nand VII., 668. Their edu- cational establishments sup- pressed, 672. Jeuncsse Doree, la, 574, 575. Jews persecuted by Robert the Pious, lOS. Persecution of the, 192. John, le Bon, reign of, 207- 216. John, Archduke, commands the Austrians at Hohenlin- den, 599. Collects a force against Napoleon in Hun- gary, 613, 623. John, Don, of Austria, 423. John, duke of Touraine, 243. John, king of England, war between Philip Augustus and, 148, 149, 150. Loses his possessions in France, 150. Endeavors to recover them, 150, 154, 155. John XXII., Pope, his influ- ence on Philip v., 191. John, St., his correspondence with De Torcy, 465. Joinville, Sire de, his Me- moires, 193. Joinville, Prince de, 630. At- tacks Mogador, 692. Joppa, Marquis of, 123. Johnstone, Commodore, 517. Joseph du Tremblay, Capu- chin, 401. Josephine de Beauhamais married to Napoleon Bona- parte, 5S1. ' Divorced, 627. Joubert, General, 590. Jourdan, General, 576, 583, 026. Joyeuse, Duke of, 351, 354, 373. Joyous Entry, impost of the, 4S2. Judges, 406. Judith, second wife of Louis I., 77. Obliged to take the veil, 79. Reappears at court, ib. Imprisoned at Tortonia, 80. Returns to France, 81. Death, 84. Julian subdues the Franks, 23. Proclaimed emperor, ih. Juliers. See Cleves, siege of, 3S6. Julius II., Pope, attacked by the French array, 289. July, revolution of the Three Days of, 675, 676. Junot, General, 619, 620, 622. Jurieu, 442. Jui'ists, French, 400. Just, St., Freteau de, organ- izes an opposition to the crown, 521, 568. Arrested, 573. Justice, administration of, 406. K. Kaunitz, Austrian minister, 546. Kellermann, General, 556. Besieges Lyons, 507. Serves in Lombardy, 582, 598. Kempt, General, 053. Keppel, Admiral, 515. Kharismians sack Jerusalem, 167. Kiersy-sur-Oise, council of, 89. Kilidge-.\rslan, Sultan, Cru- saders attacked by, 121. Kleber, General, 590, 539. Kloster-seven, convention of, 600. Konigsegg, Marshal, 492. Koning, Peter, ISl. Kossuth, 700. Krasnoi, battle of, 636. Kray, General, 5i)0. Kutusotf, Russian general, opposed to Napoleon, 634, 630. Kymri. See CimrL L. LabMoySre, General, 664. Labourdonnaie, Count, minis- ter of Charles X., 673. Lachasse, General, killed, 685. Lafayette joins the army of Washington, 515. Placed at the head of the National Guard in 1789, 533. At Ver- sailles, 537. Suspected by the Revolutionists, 543. Ad- herent of the Feuillants, 544. Court intrigues against, 545, 540, 547. His last attempt to save Louis XVI., 543. Refuses to recognize the au- thority of the Assembly, 553. Imprisoned at Olmutz, 554. Commands the National Guard in 1S30, 676. Lafayette, Mademoiselle de, 401, 402. Lafin, 380. Laffitte, 675, 676. Lally Tollendal, member of the National Assembly, 536. Resigns, 538. Lamarque, Genera], 684. Lamartine, 695, 698, 699, 700. Lamballe, Princess de, mur- dered, 555. Lambesc, Prince of, 532. Laraeth, Charles de, serves in America, 516. Joins the Feuillants, 543. Lamoignon-Malesherbeg. See Malesherbes. Lamoriciere, Genera], 692, 699, 703. Lancelot, 469. 720 LANDEX. INDEX. LOL'IS. Landen, or Neerwinden, bat- tle of, 449. Langue d'oc^ 162. Lmigm d'oil^ 162. Langiiedoc, heresy in, 151. Reduced by Simon de Mont- fort, 152. Keaction in, 151. Louis VIII. prosecutes the war in, 153. Its submission to the crown of France, 164. Its revolt against Duke of Anjou, 221. Lannekin, Colin, Flemish leader, 109. Lannes, duke of Montebfllo, commands the advanced guard in ISOO, 537. Death, 625. I.annoy, Viceroy, 303. Laon, Bishop of, advises Charles VI. to take the reins of government into his own hands, 229. La Keveilliere-Lepaux, 5S0. Launay, De, governor of the Ba-itile, 532. Laiiriston, General, 634. L.iu'.rec, Marshal, 295, 300, 3' I!, 307. I^auzu'', Count of, 445. Lauzua, Duke of, serves in America, 516. Lavalette, Father, 605, 506. Law, John, 47S, 479. Lawfeld, battle of, 493. League, Catholic, during the reign of Henry IIL, 349, 300. During the reign of Henry IV., 366, 373. League, Holy, 2S9_, 305. League of the Public Good, 260. Lebas, 573. Shoots himself, 574. Lebrun, 463. Lebrun, minister, 553. Guil- lotined, 539. Lebrun associated with Bona- parte in the consiilate, 536. Leclerc, Perrinet, 241. Leclerc, General, 604. Mar- ries Pauline, sister of Bona- parte, lb. Death, ib. Lecoq, Robert, bishop of Laon, 211. Ledru-Eollin, 695, 698, C9J 700. Les, Arthur, 514. L':febvre, Marshal, 624, 647. Legendre, 54S, 574. Leger, St., bishop of Autun, 49. Legion of Honor, instituted by Bonaparte, 602. Legislative Assembly com mences its sittings, 513. De- clares itself en pennaiience^ 547. Proclaims that the country is in danger, 549. Ruled by the Jacobins, 552. Legislative Chamber under Napoleon, 595, 607, 618. Remonstrates with Napo lecm, 643. Legitimists, 684, 685. Legoix, butcher, 237. Leipsic, battle of, 640. Lemontey, leader of the Feu- illants, 543. Lenfant, 442. Lens, battle of, 413. Leo IX., Pope, 115. Taken prisoner by Normans, ib. Leo X , Pope, signs the Con- cordat, 297. Enters into a secret compact with Charles v., 301. Leonora Galigai, foster sister of Mary de Medicis, and wife of Concini, 386. Death, 390. Leopold, duke of Austria, takes prisoner Richard I., 14G. Leopold", Archduke, brother of Ferdinand III., opposes Condii in Flanders, 413. Promises help to the Fronde, 417. Joins Turenne, 418, 422. Leopold of Saxe-Coburg made King of the Belgians, 683. Marries Princess Louisa, daughter of Louis Philippe, ib. Lepers, persecution of the, 192. Lerida, siege of, 412, 413. Lescure, 537. Lesdiguieres, Marshal, 380. His conversion to Catholi- cism, 392. Letourneur, 580, 585. Leuthen, battle of, 501. Leyva, Antonio de, 303. Liege captured by the Bur- gundians under Charles the Bold, 203. Ligny, battle of, 656. Liguge, monastery of, 22. Ligurian republic, 603. An- nexed to tUe empire of France, 609. Lille captured by Philip Au- gustus, 154. Limoges, its capture by Ed- ward the Black Prince, 218. Lionne, 424. Lit de juntice, 408. Lobau, Count, 653, 675. Loi des suspects, 568. Loignac assassinates the Duke of Guise, 358, 359. Lombardy conquered by Char- lemagne, 64. Invaded by Francis L, 295. Its revolt against Austria, 700. Lorraine and Bar incorporated with the French monarch}', 500. Lorraine, dispute between Gennany and the Legislative Assembly about fief of, .545. Lorraine, Cardinal of, 327. Lorraine, Charles of, opposed to Marshal Saxe, 493. liOngsword, William, earl of S:ili^bury, 97, 155. Longneville. Duchesse de, 41T, 418, 470. ■ Longivy captured by the Allies during the Revolution, 554. Restored, 556. Loria, Roger de, Admiral, 176, 177. Lothaire, son of Louis I. , made his associate in the empire, 76. Conspires with his brother against his father, 79. Real soveieignty passe, into his hands, ?b. Forfeits imperial title, ib. Again conspires against his father, ib. Proclaims himself sole emperor, 80. His flight into Burgundy, 81. Assumes the title of Emperor upon his father's death, 82. Defeated at Fontanay, ib. • Receives title of emperor from his bvothere, 83. Death, 87. Lothaire, king of Lorraine, son of the Emperor Lothaire, 87, Lothaire, son of Louis d'Ou- tremer, crowned, 98. Death, 99. Lotharingia (LoiTaine), 83. Louis I., le Debonnaire, as- cends the throne, 75. Crowned at Reims by the Pope, 76. His sons conspire against him, 78. Retains the nominal government, 79. Reinstated on throne, ib. His sons again revolt against him, SO. Dispossessed of the empire a second time, 81. Death, 82. Louis II., son of Lothaire, 87. Death, 88. Louis III., son of Louis le Biigue, 91. Louis IV., D'Outremer, son of Charles the Simple, 97, 98. Louis V., le Faineant, reign, 99. Louis VI., le Gro-, reign of, 123-127. Louis VII., le Jeune, son of Louis VI. , his marriage with Eleanora of Aquitaine, 126. Rdgn of, 136-143. Louis VIIL, reign of, 159, 160. Louis IX., St-, reign of, 164- 173. Louis X. (le Hutin), reign of, 189-191. Louis XI., reign of, 257-271. Louis XII., reign of, 282-293. Louis XIH., reign of, 387-400. Louis XIV., reign of, 410-471. Louis XV., reign of, 474^-511. Louis XVI., reign of, 512-562. Louis XVII., proclaimed king by the emigrant anny, 564. Deatli, 577. Louis XVIII., reign of 651- 670. Sec Provcncp, Count of. LOUIS. INDEX, MARIA. 721 Louis le Begue, son of Charles the Bald, 91. Louis of Anjou, second son of John, king of France, deliv- ered up as liostage for his father, 215. Appointed re- gent during the minority of Charles v'l., 224. Named successor to the throne of Naples, 225. Louis, Prince, eldest son of Piiilip Augustus, marries Blanclie of Castile, 148. Croivn of England oiTered to, 15G. * Marches against Ray- mond of Toulouse, 15T. Aft- erward Louis VIII. Louis, Prince of Conde, 327. Leads the revolt against the Guises, 330, 332. Becomes a member of the Council, 332, Louis the German, son of Louis I. , 76. Conspires against liis father, 78, 80. Attacks the Rhenish provinces, 82. His death, 88. Louis Pdilippb, duke of Or- leans, made lieutenant gen- eral of the kingdom, 677. Elected to the throne, ib. His descent, C80, 681. His life previous to his election as king, 681, 682. Rsign, 633-G95. Abdicates, 685. Death, 697. Louis Napoleon. See Napoleon in. Louis, Chamber of St., 415. Louisa, daughter of Louis Phi- lippe, married to Leopold, king of the Belgians, 683. Louisa of Savoy, duchess of AngoulJ-me, appointed i-e- gent of France during the absence of her son Francis 1., 295. Signs the psace of Cambrai, 308. Louisbui'g, siege of, 501. Louise de Vaudemont, wife of Heni-y IIL, 347. Louvel assassinates the Duke of Berry, 666. Lou vols, 441. His enmity to Lu.xemburg, 446. Death, ib. Louvre, its foundations laid by Pliilip Augustus, 153. Lowe, Sir Hudson, 667. Loyola, Ignatius, 300. Lucchesi-Palli, Count of, his marriage witli the Duchess of Berry, 684. Lucknei-, Marshal, 546, 553. Lugdunum (Lyons), city of, 17. laigenfeld, or Field of False- hood, SO. Luisa, infanta of Spain, mar- ried to the Duke of Mont- pensier, son of Louis Phi- lippe, 691. Lulli, 469. Luneville, Treaty of, 599. Lupus, Duke, leader of the Basques, 67. Lusignan, Hugh de, count de la Marclie, 148. Opposes the claims of Alpiionso of Poi- tou, 165, 166. Lutetia (Paris) 23. Luther, lieresy of, 308. Lutterberg, battle of, 501. Lutzen, battle of, 638. Luxemburg, Duke of, 436, 437, Commands French army in the Netherlands, 446. De- feats William III. of En- gland at Steinkirk, 448, 449. Death, 449. Luxemburg, province of, ceded to France, 439. Luxeuil, monastery of, 49. Luynes, the Sieur de, favorite of Louis XIIL, 339. As- sumes the chief direction of affairs, 390. Receives the Constable's sword, 391 Death, ib. Lyceums, 618. Lyons, its resistance to the Convention, 567. Insurrec tions at, in the reign of Louis Philippe, 684. Lyons, Pauvres de, sect of, 151. M. Mabillon, 469. Macdonald, Marshal, 647, 677. Machault, comptroller general, 496,497. Minister of marine, 4')8. Dismissed from office, 409. Mack, General, 612. Madrid occupied by the allies after tlie battle of Salaman- ca, 633. Madrid, Treaty of, 305. JIaestricht, siege of, 494. Maid of Orleans. See Dare. Maida, battle of, 615. Maillard, leader of the marcli to Versailles, 536, 554. Maillart, Jean, slieriff of Paris, 213. Maillotins, revolt of the, 225. Maine, Duke of, son of Mad- ame de Montespan, 468, 474, 477. Maintenon, Madame de, mar- ried to Louis XIV., 440. Her persecution of the Protest- ants, 440, 441, 468. Maison Carree, Corinthian temple, 18. Maison, General, 672. Maitland, Captain, 661. Malebranche, 409. Malesherbes, Lamoignon de, 508,509. Placed .at the head j of tlie houseliold of Louis XVL,513. Resi,gns,i&. Se-* lected to defend Louis XVI. , I 559. Malestroit, troatv of, 204. I Hii Mallum, supreme court of the Fr.anks, 43, 50. Malo, St., battle of, 179. Malodeczno, bulletin of, 637. Malouet, member of the Na- tional Assembly, 536. Malplaquet, battle of, 464. Malta, Bonaparte takes posses- sion of, 583. Surrenders to the British, 599. Its inde- pendence guaranteed by all the powers of Europe, 600. England and France dispute about, 605. Ceded to Great Britain after the abdication of Napoleon, 652. Maltote, tax, 183, 525. Mandat, commander of the Na- tional Guards, 550. Death, ib. Mandats territoricatx., 530. Manfred, king of Sicily, 171. Manny, Sir Walter, 202, 204. Mansart, 469. Mansfeld, Count, 393. Mansourah, battle of, 169. Mansus, 130. Marais, Le, 557. Marat, 644. President of a committee of " surveiU lance," 553. Killed by Char- lotte Corday, 566. Maraviglia, 31(). Marcel, Etienne, prevot des marchands, 211. Heads an insurrection against the court, 212. Forms a plot against the daupliin, 213. Marengo, battle of, 508. Margarita, daughter of Philip IV. of Spain, married to Leo- pold of Austria, 453. Marguerite, daughter of Ray- mond Berenger IV., count of Provence, married to Louis IX., 165. Marguerite of Anjou, wife of Henry VI. of England, '254. Marguerite of Austria, regent of tlie Netherlands, signs tiie peace of Cambrai, 308. Marguerite of Flanders,wife of John of Montfort, 203, 204. Marguerite of Valois, sister of Charles IX., married to Heni-y of Navarre, 341. Di- vorced, 378. Marguerite, Princess, wife of Edward I. of England, 180. Marguerite, sister of Francis I., attaches herself to the party of the Reformers, 309. Marguerite, sister of Henry II. of France, m.arried to Phili- bert Emanuel, duke of Sa- voy, 326. Marguerite, wife of Louis X., 190. Maria Anne of Neubui-g, wife of Charles II. of Spain, 45,5. Maria di Mancini, niece of Car- dinal M.Tzarin, 423. 722 INDEX. MONCONTOUK. Maria Leczynski, daughter of Stanislaus Leczynski, de- throned King of Poland, married to Louis XV., 4S2. Maria Louisa, wiie of Charles IV. of Spain, 021. Maria Louisa, wife of Napo- leon, 62T, 62S. Named re- gent, G44. Quits Paris, C45. Maria Theresa contracted to Louis XIV., 423. Their marriage, 424. Death, 440. Maria Theresa, Archduchess, married to the Duke of Lor- raine, 4S7. Her claims to the crown of Austria dis- puted on the death of Charles VI. , 483. Her treaty ■with the Elector of Bavaria, 491, 500. Marie, Kcpuhlican, C96, C39. Marie Amelie, daughter of Fer- dinand IV. of Naples, mar- ried to Louis Philippe, 681. Marie Antoinette, wife of Louis XVI., 512. Her extrava- gance, 520. Counsels the king to maintain his author- ity by force, 531. Her pres- ence at the fute of the Fed- eration, 540. Her execution, 568. Marignano, battle of, 296. Marignano, Marquis of, 323. Marillac, brothers, conspira- tors against Richelieu, 308. Marlborough, Duke of, 449. Named generalissimo of the allied fores?, 458. His cam- paign of 1702, ib. His cam- paign in Germany in 1704, 460, 401. His campaign in Flanders, 461, 462, 463, 404. His last campaign, 466. Dis- grace, lb. Marmande, siege of, 157. Marmont, Marshal, 632. C33, 645, 647, 675, 677. Marmoutiers, abbey of, 22. Marot, Clement, 316. Marrast, A., 684, 696, 698. Mars Camul, altar of, 18. Marsiglia, battle of, 4iO. Marsin, Marshal, leplaces Vil- lars, 459, 460, 461, 462. Martel, Charles, Duke, 51, 55. ]\lartialis, 20. Martignac, premier under Charles X., 672, 073. Martin, Duke, 49. Martin, St., Bishop of Tours, 21, 22. Death, ib. Mary, daughter of Charles the Bcv;;, ■ id.uke of Burgundy, S.07. liarried to the Arch- duke Muximiliau of Austria, ■ £68. De;ith, 269. Mary de Mediois, (;aua,!'.tcr of Grand -duke of Tiisci-.ny, married to Henry IV., 378, Appointed regent during the king's iibscncc, 382; made regent during minority of Louis XIIL, 385. Exiled to Blois, 389, 390. Liberated by Epernon, 391. Kecon- ciled to lier son, ib. Her in- trigues against Kichelieu, 397. Exiled from the court, 398. Retires to Brussels, ib. Death, ib. Mary of Lorraine, wife of James V. of Scotland, 320. Mai-y, sister of Henry VIII. of England, married to Louis XII., 293. Mary, sister of the Duke of Brabant, and second wife of Philip III., 175. Mary Stuart, 320. Affianced to the dauphin, 321. Mar- riage, 325. Her influence with her husband, 330. Death, 354. Masham, Mrs., 405. Massena, General, 590, 597, 598, G12, 614, 624, 631, 632. Massilia, colony of, 5. Massillon, 469. Matignon, Jlarshal, 354. Matilda, Empress, daughter of Henry I. of England, mar- ried to Geoffrey Plantage- net, 125, 126. Maude, Empress, lier wan against Stephen, 137. Maupas, 703. Maupeou, Chancellor, 507, 509, Maurepas, minister of marine under Louis XV., 489. Min- ister of Louis XVL, 513. Op- poses Necker, 519. Death, 2 6. Maurevert, 341. Maurice, elector of Saxony, 321, 322. Mayenne, Duke of, brother of Henry of Guise, 360, 365, 373. Mayors of the palace, 42, 44, 46. Acquire supreme pow er, 48, 56, 57. Maximilian of Austria enters into a league with Charles XH. against Venice, 2S8, Invades France with Hen- ry VIII. of England, 292. Death, 299. Mazarin, Cardinal, 397, 401. Elevated to a seat in the council, 405. Cliief minis ter, 410. His misgovern ment, 414. His war witli the Fronde, 410, 417. Joins the C.^,rdinal de Itetz a^^ai:: -^t the ■•'•young Fronde," 418, 419. Retires to Havre, 4L9. Re-enters France, 4"10, Withdraws a second time beyond the frontier, 421. Hie) power confirmed, 422. Treaty with Cromwell, 42: NegotiiUej the marriage of louis XIV. and the i>eace of the Pyrenees, 423, 434. Mazarine Library, 425. Mazzini, 701. Meaux, persecution of Protest- ants at, 315. Medici, Catharine de', married to Henry, duke of Orleans, second son of Francis I., 310. Appointed regent, 322. Her alliance with the Guises, 330. Favors the Bourbons, 332, 339. Assumes the gov- ernment during the minor- ity of Charles IX., 339. Grants complete tolerance to the Protestants, 334. ■■ Mehemet All, rebellion of, 689. Meilleraie, Marshal la, 404. Melancthon invited to France by Francis!., 310. Mello, Francisco de, viceroy of the Netherlands, 411. Mellohrand, 24. Melzi, 003. Menou, General, 575, 599, GOO. Mercy, Count de, 411. Mere,- Poltrot de, 336. Merlin, 591. Merovingian dynasty, S9. End of, 53. Merovingian history, division of, 56. Messina besieged by Charles of Anjou, 176. Methuen, Treaty of, 459. Metternich, Count, Austrian minister, 639. Metz, 40, 42. School of, 73. Siege of, 323. Mezerai, father of French liis- toiy, 14. Mignard, 469. Mignet, 677. Milan claimed by Louis XII., 284. French driven from, 301. Taken by Bonaparte, 59S. Minas, Marquess das, 463. Minden, battle of 503. Minorca taken by the French and Spanish fleet, 517. Miollis, General, 6i'6. Mirabeau, Count, 530. .531, 535, 536. His secret correspond- ence with the court, 540. President of the Assembly, ib. Death, ib. Missi Dominici., 72. Mississippi or West India Com- panj', 47S, 479. Molay, Jacques du, G;':ind Master of the Templars, 187, ISO. Mol6, president of tlie Parlia- ment, 41(i, 417. Molt', Count, prem.ier. 687, GS3, 094. Molevillo, Bertrand dc, minis- ister of LoLiin XVL, 54j Moliere, 469. Molwitz, battle of, 4SS. Moncey, General, .'598. M'oncoutour, battle of, 303. MONGE. INDEX. NAPOLKON. Monge, minister, 553. Moniteur, journal, CIS, 074. Mons, siegu of, 440. Moas-en-Piielle, victory of Philip the Fair at, 1S2. Monsieur, peace of, 34S. Montagnards, tried by a mili- tary commission, 575. Montague, La, 544. Its oppo- sition to the Girondists, 558. Montauban, siege of, 391. Montcalm, Marquess of, 501, 50-2. Montecuculi, 413. Montecuculi, Count, 312. Montecuculi, Austrian gener- al, 433, 435". Montesquieu, 510. Montesquieu, General, invades Savoy, 550. Montferrat, disputed succes- sion to, 390. Montfort, John of, claims Brit- tany in opposition to Charles of Blois, 203, 204. Montfort, Simon, count of, marches against Albigenses, 152. His supremacy estab- lished over Languedoc, 153. Killed at the siege of Tou- louse, 15T. Montgomery, 320. Montiel, battle of, 21T. Montl'hery, battle of, 200. Montmorency, Constable, 311, 310, 319, 324 Retires from court, 330. Resumes the command of the army, 333. His alliance with the Duke of Guise, 333, 334. Defends Rouen, 335. Taken prison- er, 330. Death, 33T. Montmorency, duke of, unites with Gaston of Orleans against Richelieu, 399. Death, 399, 400. Montespan, Madame de, mis- tress of Louis XIV., 439. Montholon, General, 001, 090. Montpellier, Peace of, 392. Siege of, ib. Montpensier, Duke of, 354, 308. Montpensier, Duke of, brother of Louis Philippe, 031. Montpensier, Duke of, son of Louis Philippe, marries Lu- isa, infanta of Spain, 091. Montpensier, Duchess of, sis- ter of the Duke of Guise, 35S, 301. Montpensier, JIademoiselle de, daughter of Gaston, 420. Montreal, convention of, 5!)2, JIontreuil-sur-Mer, Treaty of, ISO. Montrevel, Marshal, 400. Moore, Sir John, 022, 023. Morat, battle of, 200. Moors, invasion of France by, 53. Moreau, General, 583, 5S4. His campaign on the Rhine, 599. Gains the battle of Hohenlinden, ib. Arrested, 000. His trial and condem- nation, 008. Death, 040. Morny, Count, T03. Morocco, the war with Fi'ance, 092. Mortemart, Duke of, named president of the council by Charles X., 676. Mortier, General, invades Han- over, 005. Marshal, 026, 030, 045, 07T. Killed, 685. Mortimer, Roger, 193. Moscow, Napoleon's entry into, 635. Retreat from, 036, 637. Moulin, General, member of the Directory, 591. Mounier, member of the Na- tional Assembly, 536. Pres- ident, 537. Resigns, 538. Mount Tabor, battle of, 5S9. Mourad I'ey defends Cairo against Bonaparte, 588, 5S9. Muffling, Baron, 662. Mulilberg, victory of, 320. Muley Abderrahman, emperor of Morocco, 692. Murat, General, 589, 592. Gov- ernor of Paris, 607. His campaigns, 620, 626, 634, 637, 642. Death, 665. Muret, battle of, 153. Murray, General, 517. N. Namur, siege of, 449. Recap- tured by King William III. of England, 450. Nantes, edict of, 374, 375. Re- newed, 380. Revocation of, 442. Nantes, revolutionary tribunal at, 509. Naples, Ch.arles VIII. of France acquires the sover- eignty of, 27.5, 270. Claim- ed by Louis XII., 284. Con- ferred by Pope Alexander VI. upon France and Spain, 285. Taken possession of by Gonsalvo de Cordova, 280. Blockaded by the French un- der Francis I., 307. Taken by Don Carlos, 487. Napo- leon places his brother on the throne of, 014. Revolu- tionary movement in, 008. Its constitutional govern- ment overthrown by the Holy Alliance, 069. Napolkon I., Bonaparte, serves under Dugommier at the siege of Toulon, 507. Directs the military opera- tions against the msurgent sections, 579. Succeeds 15ar- ras, ib. His marriage, 581. Appointed to the command of the army in Italy, ib. Cuiupaigns, 5S1, 5S0. Uis authority over the Direct- ory, 582, 586. His entry into Paris, 587. His cam- paign in Egypt, 587, 588, 589. Arrives in Paris from Egypt, 590. Combines with SieyGs to overthrow the Di- rectory, 591, ,593. Appoint- ed First Consul, 595. Makes proposals of peace to En- gland, 590. Later campaign against the Austrians in It- aly, 597, 598. Revolutionist and Royalist plots against him, 000, 001. Internal ad- ministration during the Con- sulate, 001, 002, 003. Elect- ed consul for life, 003. Made president of Italian republic, 582. His conduct toward Switzerland, ib. Arrests British subjects in France, 605. Projects a descent upon England, 600. Fresh designs against his life, ib. Declared emperor, 607. Cro^vued, 008. Assumes the title of King of Italy, 609. Again makes pa- cific overtures to Great Brit- ain, 612. Coalition of Rus- sia, Austria, and England against him, ib. His suc- cesses against the Austrians under General Mack, ib. ■Gains the battle of Auster- litz, 013. Places his broth- ers upon tlie thrones of Na- ples .and Holland, 614. De- feats the Prussians at Jena, 616. Defeated at Eylau, 617. Gains the battle of Fried- land, ib. His peace with Russia and Prussia, ib. His " Continental system," 016, 618, 619. His campaign in Spain, 622. Campaign against Austria, 623, 620. His rupture with the See of Rome, 626. Divorces Jo- sephine, 627. Marries Ma- ria Louisa of Austria, ib. Seizes the Hanseatic towns, 030. His Russian campaign, 634, 637. Wins the battles ofLutzen and Bautzen, 638. Defeated by the Allies at Leipsic, 640. Leaves Paria to repsl the invasion of the Allies, 044. Abdicates, 047, 048. Sails for Elba, 049. His escape from Elba, 053. Lands near Cannes, 654. Enters Paris, 055. His cam- paigu m Belgium, 056-058. Defeated iit Waterloo, 05S- 000. Abdicates again, 001. Imprisoned at St. Helena, 061, 6<;2. Death, 607. Hia remains removed to Paris, 690. Napoleon II. proclaimed em- peror by his lather. 661. 724 NAPOLEON. INDEX. PALATINATE. Nafoleon III., Louis, son of ex-king of Holland, heads the conspiracy at Strasburg, 63T. Taken prisoner, 688. His attempt at Boulogne, 700, note. Elected a repre- sentative to the National Assembly, TOO. President, ib. Assists Pope Pius IX., TOl. His antagonism toward the Assembly, t02. His coup d'etat, 703. Elected emper- or, 704. Marries Eugenie Marie de Guzman, ib. Napoleon Eugene Louis, prince imperial, 705. Narbonne, minister of Louis XVL, 546. Nassau, Louis of, 344. National, edited by Thiers,] 674. National Assembly, its first meeting, 530. Royal sitting held in, 531. Transfers its sittings to the capital, 538. Organizes the new constitu- tion, lb. Assumes the ex- ecutive power, 542. Disso- lution, 543. National Convention opens its sittings, 550, 557. Declares war against Great Britain, Holland, and Spain, 564. Names a committee to draw up laws as the basis of a new constitution, 578. Its stnig- gle with the tections, 57S, 579. Dissolution, 579. National Guard disbanded by Charles X., 672. Re-estab- lished, 676. Navarino, battle of, 672. Navarre invaded by Francis I., 300. Nazareth captured by Prince Edward of England, 173. Nazareth, Count of, 123. Necker, minister of finance, 514. His administration of the finances, 518. Resigns, 519. Recalled, 523. Dis- missed from office, 531, 532. Recalled, 532. His admin- istration, 538, 539. Resigns, and retires for the last time into Switzerland, 540. Neerwinden, battle of, 564, 565. Nelson, 588, 591. Nemours, Treaty of, 353. Nemours, Dvike of, son of Louis Pliilippe, 692. Nemours, Jacques d'Armagn- ac, duke of, 269. Nes'<\ Raoul de, constable of France, 207. Netherlands, Louis XIV. dis- putes the claim of Charles II. of Spain to the, 429, 430. Invaded by Louis XIV., 430. Luxenibui'g's campaign in the, 446. Invaded by Louis XV., 491. Neustria, 42. Wars with Aus- trasia, 43, 44. Conclusion of first great struggle between Austrasia and, 46. War be- tween Austrasia and, 49, 50. Union under Pepin d'Heris- tal, 50. Neustrians elect a rival mayor,. 51. Defeated by Charles Martel, ib. Neutrality, armed, 516. Ney, General, 604. Marshal, 026, 630, 639 ,647, 654, 656, 600. Death, 665. Nicsea (Nice), 4. Taken by Crusaders, 121. Nicephorus, Logothetes, Em- peror, treaty of peace be- tween Charlemagne and, 71. Nicholas le Flamand, 224. Nicholas I., Pope, Hincmar's contest with, 91. Nicole, 469. Nile, battle of the, 588. Nimeguen, Treaty of, 437. Nismes, Roman remains at, IS. Nivemols, Duke of, nephew of Cardinal Mazarin, 425. Noailles, Archbishop of Paris, 470. Cardinal, 474. Noailles, Marshal de, 490. De- feated at Dettingen, ib. Serves in America, 516. Nogaret, William de, 185. Nogent, Jean de, minister, 229. Nomenoi.', chief of Brittany, SO. Nominalistf-, IJG. Nord, Roger du, 703. Xordlingen, battles of, 400, 411. Normandy, its prospanty un- der Rollo, S6. Normans, invasions of, SO. De- feated by Louis III. , 91. Be- siege Paris under Rollo, 92, 93. Their conquest of Apu lia and Sicily, 114. Conquest of England, ib. Notables, Assembly of, insti- tution of, 280. Revived in 1789, 520, 523. None, La, 344. Novara, battle of, 701. Novi, battle of, 590, 591. Noyon, Treaty of, 298. ■ Nymphenburg, Treaty of, 488. O. Octrois^ 525. Odillon-Barrot, OSS, 695. Odo. See Eudes. O'Donnell, General, OOS. Ogwina, Queen, 97. Oldenburg, Duke of, 030. Olivier, Chancellor, 331. Orange, Roman remains at, 18. Orange, Prince of, 057. Ordonnaiicss des Rois, histor- ical work, 14. Organimtion du Travail, 098. Oriflamme, 132. Orleanists, CS6. Theii' divis- ion, ib. Orleans, 40, 42. Orleans, Duchess of, wife of the son of Louis Philippe, 091. Her conduct at the Revolution of 184S, 695. Orleans, Charles, duke of, taken prisoner at Agincourt, 239. Orleans, Louis, duke of, op- poses the regency of Philip of Burgundy, 232, 233. As- sassinated, 284. Orleans, Louis, duke of, aftef- ■ ward Louis XIL, 282, 283. Orleans, Gaston, duke of, brother of Louis XIII., 394, 398, 399, 400, 404, 405, 412, 416, 419. Made lieutenant general of the kingdom, 421. Ordered to retire to Blois, ib. Death, ib. Orleans, Philip, duke of, ap- pointed regent at deatli of Louis XIV., 474. His licen- tiousness, ib. His adminis- tration, 474^81. Resigns the regency, 481. His death, ib. Orleans, Pliilip Egalite, duke of, his jealousy of Louis XVI., 536. Sent to En- gland, 539. Votes for the king's death, 560. His ex- ecution, 509. Orleans, Louis Philippe, duke of, king of the French. See Louis Philippe. Orleans, Ferdinand, duke of, son of Louia Philippe, his death, 691. Oi'leans, Maid of. See Dare. Orleans, sieges of, 245, 247, 830. Orme des conferences, 145. Ormesson, D', minister of finance, 519. Ormond, Lord, 460. Orthez, battle of, 648. Orvilliers, D', Count, 515. Ostphalians, 05. Otho, invasion of France by, 98. Otho II. invades France, 99. Otho IV. , Emperor, 154. His war against Philip Augus- tus, 155. Oudenarde, battle of, 463. Oudinot, Marshal, 630, 637, 647, 077, 701. Ouen, St., Bishop of Rouen, 47. Oxenstlern, Chancellor, 400. Pack, General, 659. Facte de Famine, 509. Palais de la Cile, afterward Palais de Justice, 406. Paix pcrpetiielle, treaty be- tween the French and Swiss, 297. Palatinate invaded by Couis XIV., 444. PALESTINE. INDEX. PLANTAGENKT. 25 Palestine, Latin Icingdoni of, conquered by Saladin, 144. Palisse, La, commands the French army in Italy, 291. Made marshal, 295. Death, 303. Papacy, alliance betiveen Car- lovingians and the, 60. Quar- rel between Louis VII. and the, 13T. Quarrel of Philip Augustus with, 147. Over- throw of its power by Philip the Fail-, ITS. Struggle with French (Jhurch, 232. Quar- rel with Louis XIV., 410. Napoleon's rupture with the, 620. See Church. Pare aux Cerf^, 400. Paraclete, monastery of the, 12S. Paris, 42. Dagobert fixes his court at, 4T. Sacked by Nor- mans, S6. Besieged by RoUo, 92. Enfranchised by Louis VL,125. Blockaded by Hen- ry IV., 363,369. Capitulates to the Allies, 645. Again sur- renders to the Allies, 602. Fortified by Louis Philippe, 6S9. Paris, Jansenist saint, 4S5. Paris, Louis Philippe, Comte de, son of the Duke of Or- leans, 692, 695. Paris, Parliament of, 178. See of, founded, 20. Treaty of, 504. University of, 158. Parlemcnt^ 144. Parliament, antagonism be- tween crown and, 415. Its struggle with Louis XV., 484. Its struggle with the Church and court in the reign of Louis XV. , 497, 498. 507, 508. Its opposition to the court under Louis XVI., 521. Exiled to Troyes, ib. Eecalled, 522. Its farther opposition, ib. Constitution of, 406^08. Parma seized by the French under the Consulate, 603. Battle of, 486. Parma, Duke of, 367, 369, 370. Partition, first Treaty of, 455. Second Treaty of, 456. Pascal, 469. Pascal, Paoli, General, 507. Pasquier, 665. Passaro, Cape, battle of, 476. Passau, Treaty of, 323. Pastoureaux, rising of the,170. Second insurrection of, 191. Pateriui, sect of, 144, 151. Paul, missionary in Gaul, 20. Paul, emperor of Russia, forms acoalitionng.ainsttheFrench Repuljlic, 5.10. Paul III., Pope, 310, 312. PauUV., Pope, 324. PauUtte, tax, 377, 406. Pauline, sister of Bonaparte, married to General Leclerc, 604. Pavia, battle of, 303. Peace of God, 111. Pedro the Cruel, king of Cas- tile, 216, 217. Pedro II., king of Aragon, at- tacks Simon de Montfort at Muret, 153. Pedro of Aragon crowned king of Sicily, 176. Peers, court of, 159. Pelisson. minister of Louis XIV., 441. Pembroke, Earl of, invades France, 324. Peninsular war, 619, 623, 626, 631, 633. Pepin d'lleristal, Duke, 49, 51 . Pepin, king of Italy, conquest of the Avars by, OS. Pepin Ic Bref, son of Charles Martel, 55. Causes himself to be proclaimed king of the Pranks, 50. Reign, 60, 63. Pepin of Landen, leader of Austrasian nobles against Brunehaut, 45. Chief min- ister, 40, 48. Death, ib. Pepin, son of Charlemagne, 74. Pepin, son of Charles Martel, his elevation to the throne sanctioned by the Pope, 60. Places himself at the head of national Church, ih. Pepin, sou of Louis I., 77. Con- spires against his father, 78, 79, SO. Death, 81. Pequigny, Treaty of, 265. Perier, Casimir, 675, 6S6. Perpignan, siege of, 404. Perrault, 469. Persign}-, 6S7. Peter III., emperor of Russia, 504. Peter the Great of Russia, 478. Peter the Hermit, 117, 118, 119. Peter the Venerable, abbot of Cluny, 128. Peterborough, Earl of, 461. Potion, mayor of Paris, .545, 548, 550. Petit, Jean, monk, 235. Petrobussians, 129. Peyrounet, trial of, 683, 084. Philibert Emanuel, duke of Savoy, 320. Philip I., reign of, 113-12.3. Philip II., reign of, 143-159. PuiLip III. (le Hardi), reign of, 174-177. Philip IV. (le Bel), reign of, 177-189. Philip V. (le Long), reign of, 191-193. Pnif.ip VI., grandson of Philip III., reign of, 197-207. Philip II. of Spain, his treaty with France, 326. Assists the Catholics in France, 335. His league with tlie Guises, 352 Advances pretensions to the throne ofFrance on behalf of his daughter, 367, 370. His negotiations with the Seize, 369. His territories invaded by Henry IV., 3T2, 373. Conclusion of his war with France, 374. Joins with the Emperor Ferdinand against France, 397. Philip IV. of Spain enters into a treaty with France, 423. His submission to Louis XIV., 429. Philip V. of Spain flies from Madrid, 462. Signs the Quad- ruple Treaty, 4"77, 482. Be- sieges Gibraltar, 483. Philip, duke of Anjou, named by Charles II. of Spain as his successor, 456. Proclaimed at Jladrid as Philip V., 457. Philip of Inlanders joins third crusade, 144. Philip Egalite. See Orleans, Duke of. Philippeaux, Colonel, 589. Philipsburg, siege of, 486. Phoebus, Gaston, count of Foix, .213. PhoBnicians, their colonies, 3. Piacenza seized by the French under the Consulate, 603. Piacenza, battle of, 492. Pichegru, General, 576. In- vades Holland, ib. Made president of the CJouncil of Five Hundred, 585. Arrest- ed, 586. Banished to Cay- enne, ib. His escape, ib., 606, 60S. Picton, Sir Thomas, 657, 659. Piedmont espouses the cause of Louis XVI., 545. Incor- porated with the French do- minions under the Consul- ate, 603. Piedmontese ^defeated at No- vara, 701. Pierre, son of Louis IX., 174. Pilnitz, meeting at, .545. Pinkie, battle of, 320. Pisa, council of, 289. Pitt, William, earl of Chatham, prosecutes the Seven Years' War, 501. Resigns office, 503. Pitt, William, son of the Earl of Chatham, retires from of- fice, 600. Premier a second time, 012. His death, 014. Pius VI., Pope, 582, 584. Pius VII., Pope, 008. Excom- municates Napoleon, 026. Forced by the French to quit Rome, 76. Pius IX., Pope, (luits Rome, 701. Replaced on his throne by the French, ib. Plaid., or Treaty of Andelot, 44. Plaine, La, 557. Plantagenet, Geoffrey, 126. In- vested with the duchy of Nor- mandy by Louis VII., 137. 726 PLECTRUDE. INDEX. EICHARD. Plecti'ude, wife of Pepin d'He- ristal, 51. Plessis-Praslin, Marshal du, 418. Poiree, Oilbert de la, heresy of, 129. Poitiers, battle of, 209-211. Poitou, county of, submits to Philip Augustus, 149. Pol, St., Constable, 260, 265. Executed, 266. Pol, Count de St., 302, 303. Poland, disputed succession to throne of, 486, 487. Its par- tition in the reign of Louis XV., 509. Its hopes of de- liverance encouraged by Na- poleon, 617. Polignac, Prince, prime minis- ter of Charles X. , 673. Tri- al of, 683, 684. Politiques, party of the, 348, 357. Pombal, Portuguese minister, 505. Pompadour, Madame de, mis- tress of Louis XV., 496, 500. Aids in the suppression of the Jesuits, 505. Death, 506. Pondicherry, siege of, 493. Poniatowski, Marshal, 641. Ponsonby, Sir W., 659. Pontigny, abbey of, 142. Pontchartrain,Cliancellor,456. Port Royal, monastery of, 469. Port Royal des Champs, con- ' vent of, 471. Portland, Lord, 455. Porto Bello captured by the English, 487. PortocaiTero, governor of Doul- lens, 374. Portocarrero, Cardinal - pri- mate, 456. Portugal invaded by Napo- leon, 619, 620. Insurrection against the French govern- ment, G21, 622. Napoleon prosecutes the war against. 626. Revolution in, 668. Portuguese supported by Louis XIV. against Spain, 428. Pothinus, Hishop, 20. Poussin, 469. Pragmatic Sanction revoked by Louis XL, 259. Repre- sentatives of clergy demand re-establishment of, 272, 482, 484, 404. Prague, battle of, 500. Praguerie, insurrection of the, 254. Preshurg, Treaty of, 614. Press, liberty of the, 671, 674, 677, 682. Pretender, the, recognized as King of England by Louis XIV., 4.57. Prevots, 158. Prideaux, General, 502. Prie, Marchioness of, 481, 483. Primaticcio, 317. Princes possession^, 645. Pritchard, arrest of, 691. Procida, John of, his conspiracy again st Charles of Anj ou, 176, Procureur-general^ 407. Provengal, 162. Ri'ovence, insurrection in, at the outljreak of the Revolu tion, 534. Provence, count of, afterward Louis XVIIL, 544. Assumes the title of regent upon the death of Louis XVI., 564. See Louis XVIII. Prussia invaded by Russia,500. Her alliance with England in the Seven Years' War, ib. Espouses the cause of Louis XVI., 546. Signs a treaty with the republic, 577. Rup- ture with France under the empire, 615. Concludes a treaty with Napoleon, 617. Declares war against Napo- leon after the Russian cam paign, 638. Combines with Russia against Napoleon, 638, 639. Ptolemais (Tyre), Marquis of, 122, 123. Puget, 469. Puisaye, Count de, 577. Pyramids, battle of the, 588. Pyrenees, mines of the, 3. Pyrenees, peace of the, 424. Q. Quadrivium, 73. Quadruple Treaty, 689. Quebec founded by Champlain, 377. Quentin, St., siege of, 324. Quesnel, 470. Quietists, sect of, 471. R. Rabelais, 316. Rachenfried, mayor of the pal- ace, 51. Racine, 469. Radbert, Paschasius, 90. Eadetsky, Marshal, 701. Ragnachaire, 34. Ralph, Cistercian monk, ap- pointed to root out heresy in Languedoc, 151. Eamiliies, battle of, 461. Ramond, leader of the Feuil- lants, 543. Rapin, 442. Raspail, 684, 700. Ratisbon, Treaty of, 439. Raucoux, battle of, 493. Ravaillac, Franfois, assassin of Henry IV., 383. E.xe- cuted, ih. Ravenna, battle of, 290. Raymond, count of Toulouse, engages in first crusade, 121. Raymond de St. Gilles, count of Toulouse, 119. Raymond VI., count of Tou- louse, excommunicated and deprived of his dominions by the Pope, 152. Defeated by Simon de Montfort, 153. Re- gains Toulouse, 157. Death, ib. Raymond VII. succeeds his fa- ther, 157. Excommunicated, and his possessions granted in sovereignty to the King of France, 160. Raymond of Poitiers, 139. Raymond-Roger, vicomte de Beziei's, 152. Realists, 127. Reding, Aloys, Swiss patriot, 604. Reformation, 308, 309, 314. Its progress in France during the reign of Henry II., 327. Regale, 470. Regent, St., 601. Regnier, General, 615. Regnor Lodbrog, Norman chieftain, 80. Reign of Terror, 558-575. Reims, Archbishop of, appoint- ed member of council of re- gency, 139. Relief, feudal impost, 133, 134. Renaissance, period of th e, 293. Renaudie, Godfrey de la, 330, 331. Rene, duke of Lorraine, 266. Republic, First French, procla- mation of, 558. History of, 564, seq. Second, proclaim- ed, 606. Overthrown, 704. Republicans, their insiu-rec- tions under Louis Philippe, 084 Retz, Cardinal de, 411, 416, 418, 419, 421. Reveillere, La, 585, 591. Revenue, 52J^526. Revolution, state of society immediately pi-eceding the, 508-511. Commencement of the, 524. Revolutionary Tribunal, 565, 568. Increase of its author- ity. 572. Rewbell, 580, 585, 591. Reynolds, General, 423. Rheims, school of, 17. Rheinfeld, battle of, 401. Rhine, passage of the, 432. Ricci, general of the Jesuits, 506. Richard Coeur de Lion joins third crusade, 144. Revolts against his father, 145. Does homage to King of France for his Continental possessions, ib. Ascends the English throne, ib. Distinguishes himself in the crusade, ib. Taken prisoner by Leopold of Austria, 146. Regains his liberty, ih. Defeats Philip, ib. Death, 147. Richard III., duke of Norman- dy, 112. KICHAED, Eichard of Burgundy, 95. Kichelieu, Armand Duplessis de, 3SS. Made secretary of state, 3S9. Ueprived of of fice, 390. Negotiates be- tween Louis XIII. and his mother, i&., 391. Made car dinal,392. Summoned to the councils of Louis XIII., ib. Tlie objects wliich he pur- sued, 394. Makes peace with the Rochellois, ib. First plot formed against him, ib. Be- sieges La Rochelle, 395, 396. His successes against Philip of Spain and the Duke of Savoy, 396, 397. Intrigues against him, 39T, 399. His intei-vention in the Thirty Years' War, 400. Revolt against him headed by the Count of Soissons, 403. Last conspiracy against him or- ganized by Cinq-Mars, ib., _40-i. Death, 405. Kichelieu, Duke of, minister of Louis XVIII., 663, 666. Resigns office, 669. Eichemont, Count de, consta ble, 245. Eipperda, 4S2. Ripuarii, 27. EiviSre, Bureau de la, minis- ter, 229. Eivoli, battle of, 5S4. Robert the Pious, son of Hugh Capet, associated in his father's government, 105. «eign of, 106-109. Eobert, count of Artois, son of Louis VIIL, 160. Eobert, count of Flanders, en- gages in first crusade, 120, Eobert Courthose, son of W*il- liam the Conqueror, rises in arms against his father, 115. Engages infirst crusade,121. Eobert, Duke, 94, 95, 96. Re- volts against Charles the Simple, 96. Crowned at Reims, ib. Slain, ib. Eobert, duke of Burgundy, brother of Henry I., 110. Eobert, duke of Normandy, surnamed the Devil, defeats Eudes, 110. Makes a pil- grimage to the Holy Land, 112. Death, 113. Eobert of Artoi?, Comte de Beaumont-Roger, 199. Tries to regain his possessions by a fraud, '200. Intrigues against Philip VI. at the English court, 201. Eobert the Strong, count or duke, oppo.ses the Xormanc, 86. Death, S7 INDEX. Conspiracy against, 573. Guillotined, 574. Robespierre, the youngei', 573, 574. Rochambeau, Count de, joins the army of Washington, 516. Rochambeau,Greneral, 546,604. Rochefoucauld, La, 469. Rochefoucauld, Cardinal de, 497. Rochejacquelein, La, 567. Rochelle, sieges of, 344, 395, 396. Synod of the Refoi-m- ed Church held at, 340. Rockingham, Lord, ministry of, 518. Rocroi, battle of, 411. Rodney, Sir George, 515, 516, Rodolph of Burgundy crowned at Soissons, 96. Death, 97. Roederer, 551. Roger, Count, de Hauteville, 115. Roger-Ducos, 591, 593. Rolian, Duke of, opposed to Richelieu, 394, 396. Roland made minister of the in terior, 516. Dismissed, 547. Recalled, 562, 553. Discovere evidence against the king, 55S. Commits suicide, 569. Roland, Madame, her execu- tion, 569. Roland, Paladin, 68. RoUo, Norman chieftain, 92. Treaty between Charles the Simple and, 95. Romance language, 83. Romans, their settlements in Gaul, 5 Rome sacked by the army of Charles of Bourbon, 306 Galleries of, plundered by Bonaparte, 584. Papal gov ernment re-established at, 591. City besieged by the French, 701. Occupied by French troops, ib. Republic proclaimed at, ib. Romorantin, Edict of, 331. Roncesvalles, overthrow of Franks at, 07. Ronsin, Hebertist, 670. Kooke, Admiral, 44S, 449, 458, 461. Rosbach, battle of, 501. Roscelin, founder of the Nom- inalists, 127. Rosebecque, battle of, 226. Rosen, Count of, 445. Rossi, Count, 701. Rotruda, Princess, daughter of Charlemagne, 74. Rouen, siege of, in the reign of Charles IX., 335. Rouher, minister of justice,703 Eobespjerre, 544, 546. Chosen Rousi-eau, Jean Jacque?, 510 a. member of the Committee of Public Safety, 5U8. Op- poses the Hobertists, 570. Keigna euiTeme, 571, 572, Roussillon, united to the crown of France, 403. Royal chamber euppreased, 493. SCALIGER. 727 Royer-Collard, 665. Rue, de, 220. Ruremonde, battle of, 576. Russell, Admiral, 448. Russia declares war against France at the death of Louis XVL, 564. Attacks the French in Italy, 590. Com- bines with England against France under the Empire, 612. Concludes a treaty with Napoleon, 617, 618. Com- bines with Prussia against Napoleon, 638, 639. Ruyter, De, 432, 433, 436. Rystadt, Treaty of, 478. Ryswick, first Treaty of, 450. S. Sabinus, Julius, raised to the purple, 19. Is executed at Rome, ib. Sacy, De, 469. Saib, Tippoo, assisted by the French against the English, 51S. Saint-Ruth, General, 446. Saintes, battle of, 166. Saisset, Bernard de, bishop of Pamiers, 1S4. Saladin conquers Latin king- dom of Palestine, 144. Saladine, dime, 144. Salamanca, battle of, 633. Salic law, 191. Salii, 27. Salviati, 317. Salyes, defeat of the, 5. Santerre, 548, 560. Has the custody of Louis XVI. in the Temple, 553. Santrailles, 253. Saracens defeated by Charles Martel, 52-55. Defeated by Pepin, 62. Harass Charle- magne's southern frontier, 68. Saragossa, siege of, 621, 622. Second siege of, 027. Sardinia conquered by Span^ iards, 476. Its war against Austria, 700. Sarto, Andrea del, 317. Satalia, 139. Saturninus, 20. Saurin, 442. Sausseinforms Louis XVI. that he is a prisoner, 542. Savoy, Charles Emmanuel, duke of, intrigues against Henry IV., 379. Savoy, Duke of, 459, 463. Savoy, Treaty of France with, 450. Saxe, Marshal, commands the French army un.'ler Louis XV., 490, 492, 453. Be- sieges Maestricht, 494. Saxons, their struggles with Charlemagne, 65, 66. osbini, 72. Scaiigtr, 316. 728 SCAERON. INDEX. TALLEYKAND. Scarron, poet, 439. Schombei-g, Marshal, 39T, 399, 43G. Joins the Prince of Orange, 442. Takes the command in Ireland, 445, Death, ih. Schonbrunn, 625. School of the Palace, 73. Schwartzenberg, an Austrian prince, 639, 643,645, 646, 654. Scotland, its alliance with France in the reign of Hen- ry II., 320. Scotus, John, sumamed Erige- na, 90. Scythians, irruption of, 3. Sebastian!, General, 626. Sections, Day of the, 579. Seguier, Chancellor, 406. Seize, .secret council, 354, 355, 35S, 367. Their power de- stroyed, 369. Senate, Conservative, 5D5, 646, 652. Seneflfe, battle of, 435. Senez, Bishop of, 484. Senones, their defeat of the Roman arms, 4. September massacres, 554, 555. Septimania conquered by the Moors, 53. Annexed to the French crown, 62. Sequani, their quarrels with the ^Edui, 6. Serfs, 132. Serisy, Abb3 de, 236. Servan, minister of war, 546. Dismissed, 547. Kecalled, 553. Seven Years' War, close of, 504. Sforza, Francesco, 306, 310. Sforza, Ludovico, 276-279. Is driven from Italy by the French, 2S4. Recovers Mi- lan, ib. Taken prisoner, 285. Death, ib. Sforza, Maximilian, son of Lu- dovico 11 Moro, 291, 295, 297. Sherer, General, 590. Sicambri, 27. Siey^s, Abbe, his pamphlet, 524. Member of the Nation- al Assembly, 530, 531, 535, ■ 5S0. Leader of the New Di- rectory, 591. Combines with Bonaparte for the overthrow of the Directoiy, 5D2, 593. Member of the Senate, 596. Sigebert, king of the Eipuari- ans, 34. Sighebert, son of Clotaire, 42, 43. Assassinated, 44. Sighebert II., son of Dagobert, 48. Sigiamund, king of Burgundy, 40. SilesiaoverrunbyFrederickll. of Prussia, 4^8. Confirmed to the King of Prussia, 494. Simon, Saint, equerry of Louis XIII., 398. Sintzheim, battle of, 434. Sixtus v.. Pope, 353, 367. Smith, Sir Sidney, 589. Smolensko attacked by Napo- leon, 634. Sobieski, king of Poland, 439. Socialists, 693, 698, 699, 702. Societies, secret, of the Repub- licans, 684, 685. Societies, secret political, 694. Society Islands, dispute be- tween England and France about the, 691. Soissons, 29, 40, 42. Solyman, Sultan, 308. His al liance with Francis I., 313. Sorbonne, the. 355, 359. Sorel, Agnes, 253, 255. Somerset, protector of En- gland, 320. Soubise, Prince of, 501. Soult, Marshal, 597, 623, 626, 632, 633, 642, 648, 660, 684. Premier, 636. President of the council, 688. Premier, 690. Spain, England declares war figainst, under the ministiy of Lord Egremont, 503. Es- pouses the cause of Louis XVI., 545. Signs a treaty with the Republic, 577. Na poleon's projects against, 619, 620, 621. Wellington's cam paign in, 642. Rises against the government of Ferdi nand VII. , 663. Invaded by France under Louis XV'IIL, 669. Its matrimonial alli- ances with France under Louis Philippe, 691. Spaniards, their defeat at Eo- croi, 411. Spanish Succession, war of the, 453. Spurs, battle of the, 2S2. Stanhope, General, 465. Stanislas Leczynski asserts his claims to the throne of Po- land, 486, Driven from AVarsaw, ib. Invested vnth the duchies of Lorraine and Bar, 487. Staremberg, Count, 465. State, Council of. See Coun- cil of State. States-General convoked un- der its modern constitutional form, 178. Struggle for pow- er under John, 211. Meeting at Blois under Henry III., 349. Want of power, 375. Public desire for the convo- cation of, 521. Summoned to meet, 523. New compo- sition of, ib. Meet at Ver- sailles, 529. Account of their constitution, 2T9, 280. States of the Church invaded by Bonaparte, 534. Steinkirk, battle of, 443, 449. Stenay, siege of, 422. Stephen III., Pope, 61. Stephen IV., Pope, 75. Stephen VIII., Pope, 98. Stephen, king of England, hia wars against the Empress Maude, 137. Stephens, Robert, 316. Stilicho, 24. Stofflet, 567, 578. Executed, 578. Strahan, Sir Richard, 613. Strasburg acquired by France, 433. Conspiracy headed by Louis Napoleon at, 687. Stremonius, 20. Stuart, Robert, Scottish officer, 337, 338. Stuart, Sir John, 015. Styrum, Count, 459. Subinfeudation, 133. Suchet, 597. Sue, Eugene, 702. Sueur, Le, 469. Suevi, 24. Suifren, Bailli de, 517, 518. Suger, abbot of St. Denis, min- ister of Louis VI., 126. Coun- selor of Louis VIL, 137. Ap- pointed member of Council of Re.gency, 139. Devotes himself to the duties of his administration, 140. Sully, Maximilian de Bethune, baron of Rosny, aftenvard duke of, 374. Made surin- tendant des finances, 376. Takes measures for placing the regency in the hands of Mai-y de Medicis, 385. Be- tu-es from office, 336. Death, ih. Surintendant des Finances, 526. Susanna, wife of Charles, duke of Bourbon, 301. Suwarrow, General, 590. Sweden, hostilities between France and, 633. Swiss serve under Prosper Co- lonna against Francis I., 295, 296. Their treaties with Francis, 297. Charles the Bold of Burgundy makes war upon the, 266. Swiss Guards, their defense of the Tuileries, 551. Switzerland subject in reality to France under the Consul- ate, 604. Syagrius, Count, 29. Defeated by Clovis, 30. Syria, campaign against Me- hemet Ali in, 689. T. Tagliacozzo, battle of, 171. Taille, tax, 524, 525. Talandier, Colonel, 683. Talavera, battle of, 626. Tallard, Count, 455, 460. Talleyrand, 596, 646, 653. De- clared president of the coun- INDEX. VALTELINE. 729 cil of ministers, 6G2. Re- signs, C03. TaUien, 545, 573, 5T4, 581. Tancred, prince of Galilee, 121. Tarascon, Treaty of, ITS. Target, lawyer, selected to de- fend Louis XVI., 559. Tassilo, Duke, of Bavaria, CS. Ta.x;es, 524-526. Tchichagofif, Russian general, 63T. Tellier, Le, 424, 428, 441. Tellier, Le, confessor of Louis XIV., 468, 4T0, 4T1. Templars, foundation of the order of, 129. Suppression of order of, 1ST, 188, 189. Temple, Sir William, 430. Tencin, Cardinal, 489. Terra}', minister of Louis XV., SOT, 509. Terrorists, division among,569. Tertre, iJu, 220. Tess(), Marshal, 463. Testry, battle of, 50. Theodebald, son of Theode- bert, 41. Theodebald, grandson of Pepin d'lleristal, 51. Theodebert, son of Childebert IL, 45. Theodebert, son of Thierry, 41. Theodoric the Visigoth, 28. Theodorio (Thierrv), son of Clovis, 40. Death, 41. Thermidor, ninth, revolution of, 5T4. Thermidorians, 575, Thibald, count of Champagne, 13T. Thielman, General, 6C0. Thiers, 6T4, 6T7. Minister of the interior, GS6. Premier, 687. Leader of the centre gauche, OSS. Premier, 68^. I)ismissed,C90. Named min- ister in 1S48, GC5. Ai'rested in 1851, 70;;. Thierry. Sec Theodoric. Thierry, son of CMldebert II., 45. Thien-y III. incarcerated at St. Denis, 49. Name of king con- firmed to him by Pepin, 50. Thierry IV., death of, 51. Tliionville, siege of, 553. Thirty Years' War, 400. End of, 414. Thou, Jacques Auguste de, his histoiy, 302. Thou, Francois de, son of the historian, 403, 404. Thudan, Avar chieftain, 70. Baptized, ih. Thuneau, General, 5"S. Thurot, French commander in Ireland, 503. Tiberias, battle of, 141. Tiberias, principality of, cre- ated in favor of Tancred,122. Tiers Elat, development of, 124, 2T9. Definition of, by the Abbe Sieyes, 524. Their preponderance in the States- General in 17S9, 529. Tilsit, Peace of, 61T, 018. Tithes, ecclesiastical, abolish- ed, 535. Tolentino, Treaty of, 584. Tollemache, General, 449. Tonnerre, Clermont de la, member of the National As- sembly, 530. Torcy, nephew of Colbert, 456, 453, 465. Toulon, its resistance to the Convention, 56T. Toulouse, capital of the Visi- goths, 26. Battle of, 648. Toulouse, Count of, son of Madame de Montespan, 468. Toulouse, school of, IT. Toussaint I'Ouverture, negro adventurer, 604. Tournelle^ 40T. Tours, capital of Henry IV. for a time, 36T. Tours, school of, T3. Tourville, Count of, 445. At- tacks the English fleet, 448, 449. Tourzel, Mme. de, governess to the children of Louis XVI., 541. To.^;andria, 27. Trafalgar, battle of, 613. Trastamara,Henry of, 216, 217. Treilhard, Director, 591. Tremouille, La, favorite of Charles VII., 245, k51, 252, 254. Tremouille, La, general of Louis XII. and Fi-ancis I., 291, 295. Death, 303. Tremouille, La, duke of Then- ars, 365. Tiesorier de I'epargne^ 520. Tresoriers de France, 526. Treves razed to the ground by the Germans, 24. Tribunate,5'. 5. Abolished,618. Tributary lands, 131, 132. Trilingual College. See College. Triple Alliance, 430. Tripoli, county of, conferred upon Raymond of Toulouse, 122. Tristan, Jean, duke of Nevers, son of Louis IX., 172. Tristan I'Hermite, gossip of Louis XI., 271. Trivium, 73. Trivulzio, leader of the French army in the war against It- aly under Louis XII., 2S4. His victory over the papal forces, 289, 291, 295. Trogus Pompeius, 18. Trois-uvtchos, its annexation i to France recognized by Austria, 414. Tromp, Admiral Van, 412. Tronchet, lawyer, selected to defend Louis XVI., 559. Trophimus, 20. Troppau, meeting at, 069. Troubadours, 162. Ti'ouveurs, or Trouveres, 162. Troyes, Jean de, surgeon, 237. Troyes, treaty of, between Charles VI. and Henry V. of England, 243. Truce of God, 111. Tiiileries, the march upon the, 550, 551. Tunis, King of, defeated by Charles of Anjou, 173. Turenne,Vicomte de, 401, 403, 411, 412, 413. Joins the Fronde, 417. Withdraws into Holland, ib., 418. De- feated by Marshal du Plessis- Praslin, 418, 419. Resumes his loyalty to the crown, 420, 422, 423, 430, 433. His cam- paign in Alsace, 434. Kill- ed, 435. Turgot, minister of Louis XVI. , 513. His administration of the finances, ib. Dismissed from office, ib. Turin, sieges of, 402, 462. Rev- olutionary movement in, 668. Occupied by Austrians, 669. Turks, their defeat of the Cru- saders, 139. Invade Austria, 439. Declare war against France, 589. Defeated at Aboukir, ib. Hostilities be- tween Greeks and, 672. Tyre, Archbishop of, 144. Tyrol, its opposition to Napo- leon, 624. U. Uga, 48. Unam Sanctam, papalbull,lS5. Unigenitus, papal bull, 470, 481, 484, 498. Union, council of the, 367. United States, treaty of Fi'anco with, 514. University, National, estab- lished at Paris by Napoleon, 618. Urban II. , Pope, Philip I. anathematized by, IIT. His charge to Peter the Hermit to proclaim the holy war, lis. His discourse at the council of Clermont, 119. Utrecht, peace of, 46T. . Uxbridge, Lord, 059. V. Vadier imprisoned, 575. Valaze, Girondist, 569. Valenciennes, siege of, 422. Valentine, duchess of Orleans, 231. Valerius Cato, 18. Valliere, Louise de la, mistress of Louis XIV.. 439. Valmy, battle of, 550. Valteiine, French army sent into the, 393. '30 VANDALS. INDEX. ZOUNUOUF. Vandals, 24. Varennes, Billaud, 555. Varennes, flight to, 5i2. Vassy, massacre of, 334, 835. Vauban, 430, 438, 444. Vaublanc, leader of the Feuil- lants, 543. Vaubois, General, 5SS. Vaudois, sect of, 151. Perse- cution of the, 315. Vaudreuil, Marquess of, 502. Vaudrey, Colonel, CST. Vauguyon, Duke of, 512. Velasco, constable of Castile, 3T3. Venaissin, county of, ceded to the Pope by Philip III., 1T4. Venalile des offices, 524. Vendue, La, InsuiTection of, 560. Insurgents of, reassem- ble in arms, 577. The war extinguished, 578. Legiti- mists attempt to excite a civil war in, 084. Vendome, Duke of, 458, 461, 463, 4G5. Venice taken by Bonaparte, 585. Ceded to Austria, 586. Vercingetorix heads insurrec- tion against Ceesar, 9. Ex- ecuted, 10. Verdun captured by the allies during the Kevolution, 554. Restored, 556. Verdun, Treaty of, 83. Vergasillaunus, 10. Vergennes, Count de, minister of Louis XVL, 513. Minis- ter of foreign affairs, 518. Prime minister, 519. Vergniaud, leader of the Gi- rondins, 544, 549, 560. Vote; for the king's death, 500. Vermandois, Herbert, count of, 96, 97. Vermandois, Count of, ap pointed member of Council of Regency, 139. Vernon, Admiral, 487. Verona, congress of, 009. Versailles, the mob of Pari: marches upon, 536. Versailles, Treaties of, 500, 518. Vervins, Treaty of, 374. Vespers, Sicilian, 176. Veto,, royal, debate upon, 536. Vezelai, council of, 138. Vicarii, 72. Viotoire, abbey de la, 155, Victor, Marshal, 626, 637. Victor Amadeus driven from Turin, 068. Victor Emmanuel, the present king of Italy, 701. Vienna, entry of Napoleon into, 612. Napoleon's second ea try into, 624. Vienna, congress at, in the reign of Louis XVIIL, 653. Vienna, Treaties of, 487, 654. Vienne, Archbishop of, 530. Vienne, council of, abolishes the Order of Templars, 188. Vienne, school of, 17. Roman remains at, 18. Villars, governor of Rouen, 370. Villars, Marshal, general of Louis XIV., 458. His cam- paign in Germany, 459, 463. Named to the command in Flanders, 464. Sent against the Camisards, 460, 460. His campaign in the Palati- nate, 467. Death, 486. Villefranche, 125. Villehardouin, Geoffrey de, 159. His history of the con- quest of Constantinople, 193. Villcle, De, made premier, 669, 670. Resigns, 072. Villemain, 665. Villemongis, S31. Villenage, 132. Villeneuve, 125. Villeneuve, Admiral, taken prisoner by the English, 613. Villeroi, Marshal, succeeds Luxemburg, 449, 450, 457, 400, 401, 462, 474. Villes Neuves, 143. Vimiera, battle of, 622. Vincent, Hcbertist, 570. Vincent, St., Robert de, organ, izes an opposition to the crown, 521. Vinci, Leonardo da, 316. Visigoths take possession of part of Gaul, 26. Vitry taken and set on fire, 137 Vitr}-, De, captain of the royal guard, 389. Vittoria, battle of, 642. Voltaire, 497, 510. Vote, double, law of the, 667. W. Wagram, battle of, 625. Waiter, Duke, 02. Wala, Count, 75. Waldeck, Prince of, 444, 446. Walmoden, General, 576. Walpole, Sir Robert, 487. Walter Sans-avoir, 121. Wardelin, mayor of the pal ace, 44. Wardship, 134. Warsaw, grand-duchy of, as- signed to the Elector of Sax- ony, 618. Washington opposes the French in America, 499. Waterloo, battle of, 657, 600. Wellington, Duke of, his cam paigns in Spain, 622, 627, 631, 032, 033, 642, 648, 654 Campaign in Belgium, 656- 653. Gains the battle of Waterloo, 658-060. Werth, John de, 412. Westermann, 550. Westphalia, Treaties of, 413, 414. Westphalians, 65. Whitworth, Lord, 605. William, Bras de Fer, count of Apulia, 114, 115. William, Count, au Court-nez, 08. William X. , duke of Aquitaine, 126. William, prince of Orange, commands an army against Louis XIV., 432. 'Stadt- holder, 433. His alliance with the Emperor Leopold and the Elector of Branden- burg against Louis XIV., ib. Opposed to Conde, 435. De- feated at Cassel, 436. Mar- ries Mary, daughter of the Duke of York, 437. Signs the Treaty of Nimeguen, ib. Organizes a confederacy against Louis XIV., 443. King of England, ib. Gains the battle of the Boy.ae, 445. Defeated by Luxemburg, 448. Signs Treaty of Rys- wick, 450. Signs the first Treaty of Partition, 455. Death, 457. William IV. of Orange, 493. William the Conqueror, son of Robert, duke of Normandy, 112,113. Conquers England, 114. Invades the Vexin,115. Death, 110. Willibrord, St., 50. Conse- crated archbishop of the Frisians by Pope Sergius, 51. Wlnifrid or St. Boniface, arch- bishop of Mayence, 55. Winzingerode, Russian gener- al, 043, 044. Witgenstein, Russian general, 637, 638. Witikind, Saxon chief, 65, 66. Witt, John de, 432, 433. Wolfe, General, 502. Wolsey,Cardinal, 299, 300, 301. Worms, Treaty of, 82. Wrede, General, 641. Wurmser, General, 582. Y. York, Duke of, retreats before the Republican army, 576, 591. Ypres reduced by Conde, 413. Z. Zacharias, Pope, 56. Z.ira besieged by Crusaders, 159. Zedekias, physician, 88. Zorndorf, battle of, 501. THE END. LIBRARY OF CONGRESS 029 446 163 2